The Edinburgh Companion to Political Realism 9781474423298

The first reference work to explore the 2000-year history of political realism and reassess its place in today’s world D

233 99 5MB

English Pages 592 [586] Year 2022

Report DMCA / Copyright

DOWNLOAD FILE

Polecaj historie

The Edinburgh Companion to Political Realism
 9781474423298

Citation preview

The Edinburgh Companion to Political Realism

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd i

23/10/18 12:44 PM

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd ii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

The Edinburgh Companion to Political Realism

Edited by Robert Schuett and Miles Hollingworth

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd iii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

Edinburgh University Press is one of the leading university presses in the UK. We publish academic books and journals in our selected subject areas across the humanities and social sciences, combining cuttingedge scholarship with high editorial and production values to produce academic works of lasting importance. For more information visit our website: edinburghuniversitypress.com

© editorial matter and organisation Robert Schuett and Miles Hollingworth, 2018 © the chapters their several authors, 2018 Edinburgh University Press Ltd The Tun – Holyrood Road 12(2f) Jackson’s Entry Edinburgh EH8 8PJ Typeset in 10 / 12 Adobe Sabon by IDSUK (DataConnection) Ltd, and printed and bound in Great Britain. A CIP record for this book is available from the British Library ISBN 978 1 4744 2328 1 (hardback) ISBN 978 1 4744 2329 8 (webready PDF) ISBN 978 1 4744 2330 4 (epub)

The right of Robert Schuett and Miles Hollingworth to be identified as the editors of this work has been asserted in accordance with the Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988, and the Copyright and Related Rights Regulations 2003 (SI No. 2498).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd iv

23/10/18 12:44 PM

Contents

Contributor Biographies Introduction

viii 1

Part I: Political Realism and the Political 1. Political Realism and Human Nature Erica Benner

11

2. Political Realism and the Western Mind Zhao Tingyang

23

3. Political Realism and Strategic Theory Samir Puri

37

4. Political Realism and Realpolitik John Bew

49

5. Political Realism and Ideology David Martin Jones

61

6. Political Realism and Civil–Military Relations Lindsay P. Cohn

72

7. Political Realism and the English School Jodok Troy

85

8. Political Realism and Global Reform William E. Scheuerman

97

Part II: Political Realism and Political Thinking 9. Thucydides Neville Morley 10. Kauṭilya Stuart Gray

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd v

111 124

23/10/18 12:44 PM

vi

contents

11. Livy Ayelet Haimson Lushkov

137

12. Augustine of Hippo Miles Hollingworth

151

13. Niccolò Machiavelli Markus Fischer

164

14. William Shakespeare Tim Spiekerman

177

15. Thomas Hobbes Kody W. Cooper

189

16. Jean-Jacques Rousseau Grace G. Roosevelt

202

17. Friedrich Nietzsche Paul E. Kirkland

215

18. Max Weber Christopher Adair-Toteff

227

19. Walter Lippmann Alan Chong

239

20. Reinhold Niebuhr Menno R. Kamminga

252

21. E. H. Carr Konstantinos Kostagiannis

265

22. Leo Strauss Robert Howse

277

23. Herbert Butterfield Kenneth B. McIntyre

290

24. Hans Kelsen Robert Schuett

303

25. Raymond Aron Christopher Adair-Toteff

317

26. George F. Kennan David A. Mayers

328

27. Hans J. Morgenthau Felix Rösch

342

28. Hannah Arendt Douglas B. Klusmeyer

355

29. John H. Herz Peter M. R. Stirk

368

30. Isaiah Berlin Joshua L. Cherniss

380

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd vi

23/10/18 12:44 PM

contents

vii

Part III: Political Realism and Foreign Policy 31. Political Realism and Threat Perception John Mueller

395

32. Political Realism and Russia David Kerr

406

33. Political Realism and China Derek M. C. Yuen

417

34. Political Realism and Iran Marzieh Kouhi Esfahani

431

35. Political Realism and Israel Uriel Abulof

445

36. Political Realism and India Rashed Uz Zaman

458

37. Political Realism and Japan Masashi Okuyama

470

38. Political Realism and Regionalism David Martin Jones

481

39. Political Realism and Nationalism Peter Iver Kaufman

494

40. Political Realism and Religion Cecelia Lynch

507

41. Political Realism and the Environment Tom Switzer

517

42. Political Realism and the Internet Richard Forno

528

43. Political Realism and Terrorism Alex S. Wilner

540

44. Political Realism and the Open Society Todd Breyfogle

554

Index

567

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd vii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

Contributor Biographies

Uriel Abulof is a Senior Lecturer (US Associate Professor) at Tel-Aviv University’s School of Political Science, Government and International Affairs, where he directs the graduate studies programme. He is also a research fellow at Princeton University’s LISD/Woodrow Wilson School and at the Truman Institute for the Advancement of Peace. Abulof studies the politics of fear and legitimation, social movements, existentialism, nationalism and ethnic conflicts. His recent books include The Mortality and Morality of Nations (2015) and Living on the Edge: The Existential Uncertainty of Zionism (2015); the latter received Israel’s best academic book award (Bahat Prize). He is also the co-editor of Self-Determination: A Double-Edged Concept (2016) and Communication, Legitimation and Morality in Modern Politics (2017). He is the recipient of the 2016 Young Scholar Award in Israel Studies and is currently working on another book for Cambridge University Press on ‘Political Existentialism and Humanity’s Midlife Crisis’. His articles have appeared in journals such as International Studies Quarterly, International Political Sociology, Nations and Nationalism, British Journal of Sociology, European Journal of International Relations, Ethnic and Racial Studies and International Politics. Christopher Adair-Toteff has published extensively on German philosophy and especially on classical German sociology. He is author of Max Weber’s Sociology of Religion (2016), Fundamental Concepts in Max Weber’s Sociology of Religion (2015) and Sociological Beginnings (2005). He is editor of The Anthem Companion to Ernst Troeltsch (2017) and The Anthem Companion to Toennies (2016), and is co-editor with Stephen Turner of a book on Edward Shils, due to appear in 2019. Adair-Toteff is completing a book on Raymond Aron’s political philosophy, scheduled to be published in 2019. He has published numerous articles on Toennies, Troeltsch, Simmel and especially Max Weber. His articles on Weber have been published in such journals as Max Weber Studies, Journal of Classical Sociology, History of the Human Sciences, Archives Européennes de Sociologie, Revue Internationale de Philosophie and Österreichische Zeitschrift für Geschichtswissenschaften. His ‘Max Weber’s Charisma’ (Journal of Classical Sociology) has been cited more than 100 times. He is the author of numerous entries in The Wiley Blackwell Encyclopedia of Social Theory (2017), The International Encyclopedia of Social and Behavioral Sciences (2001) and The Routledge Encyclopedia of Philosophy (1998). He has published on Carl Schmitt

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd viii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

contributor biographies

ix

and is English Language Editor of Carl Schmitt-Studien. He was Honorary Senior Researcher, University of Kent, and has been a Fellow at the Center for Social and Political Thought, University of South Florida, since 1993. He has taught in the US and Europe, and is currently teaching at Zeppelin Universität in Germany. Erica Benner is the author of Really Existing Nationalisms (1995 and 2018), Machiavelli’s Ethics (2009), Machiavelli’s Prince: A New Reading (2013) and Be Like the Fox: Machiavelli’s Lifelong Quest for Freedom (2017). She has written widely on the ethics and intellectual origins of nationalism and on Machiavelli. She received her D.Phil. from Oxford University in 1993 and taught for many years at Oxford and the London School of Economics, before becoming Fellow in Political Philosophy at Yale. John Bew is Professor in History and Foreign Policy in the War Studies Department at King’s College London. In 2015, he was awarded the Philip Leverhulme Prize for Politics and International Studies, and in 2013–14, he held the Henry A. Kissinger Chair in Foreign Policy at the John W. Kluge Center at the US Library of Congress. He is the author of five books, including Attlee: The Man Who Made Modern Britain (2017), which won the 2017 Orwell Prize and Elizabeth Longford Prize, and Realpolitik: A History (2016), a Times book of the year in 2017. He has also served as Specialist Advisor to the UK House of Commons Foreign Affairs Committee. Todd Breyfogle is Director of Seminars for the Aspen Institute, overseeing and moderating humanities-based executive leadership seminars in the US and Europe, including the flagship Aspen Executive Seminar on leadership, values and the good society. Breyfogle has published and lectured widely on the great books, political philosophy, theology, literature, music and liberal education. He is the editor of Literary Imagination, Ancient and Modern (1999) and co-editor of Philosophy, Politics, and the Conversation of Mankind (2016). His latest book is On Creativity, Liberty, Love and the Beauty of the Law (2017). Before joining the Aspen Institute, Breyfogle directed the Honors Program at the University of Denver, taught as a visiting professor at the Iliff School of Theology and the University of Tulsa, and was a fellow at the Liberty Fund. He has received research and curriculum grants from the National Endowment for the Humanities, the Arts and Humanities Research Board (UK) and the Templeton Foundation, and is editor emeritus of the quarterly journal The American Oxonian. He has lectured at universities or institutes in the US, Europe and India. He chairs the board of the American Academy for Liberal Education, serves on the board of the Alliance for Liberal Learning and is a Senator of the Phi Beta Kappa Society. Breyfogle studied at Colorado College, attended Oxford (as a Rhodes Scholar) and earned his PhD at the University of Chicago’s Committee on Social Thought (as a Century Fellow and Javitz Fellow). Joshua Cherniss is an Assistant Professor of Government at Georgetown University in Washington DC. He previously taught at Harvard University and Smith College, and has been a graduate fellow at the Edmond J. Safra Center for Ethics and the Minda de Gunzburg Center for European Studies, Harvard, and visiting faculty fellow at the University Center for Human Values, Princeton. He is the author of A Mind and its Time: The Development of Isaiah Berlin’s Political Thought (2013) and co-editor of the forthcoming Cambridge Companion to Isaiah Berlin. He has published articles

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd ix

23/10/18 12:44 PM

x

contributor biographies

and chapters on Berlin, Reinhold Niebuhr, Max Weber, Stanley Hoffmann and Albert Camus, and is completing a book exploring the connection between the defence of liberalism and questions of political ethics in twentieth-century political thought. Alan Chong is Associate Professor at the Centre for Multilateralism Studies, S. Rajaratnam School of International Studies in Singapore. He has published widely on the notion of soft power and the role of ideas in constructing the international relations of Singapore and Asia. These ideational angles have also led to enquiry into some aspects of ‘non-traditional security’ issues in Asia. His publications have appeared in The Pacific Review; International Relations of the Asia-Pacific; Politics, Religion and Ideology; The Review of International Studies; The Cambridge Review of International Affairs, Armed Forces and Society; The Journal of Strategic Studies, Global Change, Peace and Security; The Asian Journal of Comparative Politics; and The Japanese Journal of Political Science. He is also the author of Foreign Policy in Global Information Space: Actualizing Soft Power (2007) and co-editor (with Faizal bin Yahya) of State, Society and Information Technology in Asia (2014/15). He is currently working on several projects exploring the notion of ‘Asian international theory’. His interest in soft power has also led to investigation of the sociological and philosophical foundations of international communication. In the latter area, he is currently working on a manuscript titled ‘The International Politics of Communication: Representing Community in a Globalising World’. In tandem, he has pursued a fledgling interest in researching cyber security issues and international discursive conflicts. He has frequently been interviewed in the Asian media and consulted in think-tank networks in the region. Lindsay P. Cohn (PhD Political Science International Relations/Theory, Duke University, 2007) is Associate Professor in the National Security Affairs Department at the US Naval War College, where she has taught Strategy, International Security, US Foreign Policy, Civil–Military Relations and Military History. Previously, she was Assistant Professor of Political Science and Co-Director of the Center for International Peace and Security Studies at the University of Northern Iowa. She has held fellowships from the Center for Transatlantic Relations (Johns Hopkins School of Advanced International Studies), the Stiftung Wissenschaft und Politik, the Alexander von Humboldt Foundation, the Free University Berlin and Harvard’s Olin Institute for Strategic Studies. As a Council on Foreign Relations International Affairs Fellow, she spent a year working in the office of the US Deputy Assistant Secretary of Defense for Special Operations and Combatting Terrorism. Her research and publications focus on Civil–Military Relations, primarily in the areas of personnel management, cross-national comparison, democratic theory and public opinion. She has been invited to speak on issues of military manpower, civil–military relations, and international law of armed conflict at Princeton’s Security Studies Colloquium, the Bundeswehr University Munich, the University of Southern Denmark’s Centre for War Studies, the Centre d’Études et de Recherches Internationales (Paris), the University of Wisconsin-Madison, Brown University’s Watson Institute for International Studies and West Point’s Modern War Institute. Her other interests are international security, comparative political economy, international law and terrorism/insurgency. She is fluent in German and reads French, Dutch, Swedish, Norwegian and Danish.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd x

23/10/18 12:44 PM

contributor biographies

xi

Kody W. Cooper is an Assistant Professor in the Department of Political Science and Public Service at the University of Tennessee at Chattanooga. Dr Cooper received his MA and PhD in Government from the University of Texas–Austin in 2014 and has been a postdoctoral research fellow at Princeton University and the University of Missouri. He also spent a year as a Visiting Scholar at Wolfson College, Cambridge University. His research interests lie in the areas of natural law theory, political philosophy, the history of political thought, American constitutional law/theory, and jurisprudence. He is the author of Thomas Hobbes and the Natural Law (2018). Marzieh Kouhi Esfahani is a Teaching Fellow at Durham University’s School of Government and International Affairs. She received her PhD in 2017 from the same university. Her research focuses on Iran’s foreign policy, particularly its regional policy in the Middle East and South Caucasus. She is the chief editor of the book Nuclear Politics in Asia (2018). Prior to joining Durham University, she held different posts in the Iranian private sector and non-governmental organisations, including the International Centre for Dialogue among Civilizations and Tehran International Studies and Research Institute, where she managed the establishment of Iran’s first web-based digital library of Politics and International Relations, undertook research and hosted several national and international events. Markus Fischer is Professor of Liberal Studies at California State University, Fullerton. His work encompasses political theory and international relations theory, in particular Machiavelli’s political thought and political realism. Using a cross-disciplinary approach, Fischer has published with a variety of journals and presses, including Dao, Review of Politics, Security Studies, International Organization, Cambridge University Press and MIT Press. Richard Forno is a Senior Lecturer in the Department of Computer Science and Electrical Engineering at the University of Maryland, Baltimore Country (UMBC), where he directs the UMBC Graduate Cybersecurity Program, serves as the Assistant Director of UMBC’s Center for Cybersecurity, and is an Affiliate of the Stanford Law School’s Center for Internet and Society (CIS). Prior to academia, Forno’s twentyyear career in operational cybersecurity spanned the government, military and private sectors, during which time he helped build a formal cybersecurity program for the US House of Representatives and served as the first Chief Security Officer at Network Solutions (then, the global centre of the internet domain name system), where he helped design and manage the global information assurance program for one of the Internet’s most critical resources. He has been a technical and/or executive consultant on many projects related to cybersecurity, information operations and critical infrastructure protection. As a technologist and student of national security studies, Forno has a strong interest in the influence of technology upon national security, individuals and global society. He holds undergraduate and graduate degrees in international relations from American University and Salve Regina University, and completed his doctoral work at Curtin University of Technology. He is also a graduate of Valley Forge Military College and the US Naval War College. Stuart Gray is an Assistant Professor of Politics at Washington and Lee University, and formerly a Charles and Amy Scharf Post-Doctoral Fellow at Johns Hopkins University.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xi

23/10/18 12:44 PM

xii

contributor biographies

He specialises in Indian and cross-cultural, comparative political theory, addressing issues concerning the meaning of rule, political realism, human–non-human relations, and contemporary reinterpretation and use of the historical past. His work has been published in journals such as Political Theory, History of Political Thought, The Review of Politics and Philosophy East and West. He is the author of A Defense of Rule: Origins of Political Thought in Greece and India (2017). Miles Hollingworth lives in Northern Italy. He is the author of several books, including Saint Augustine of Hippo (2013) and Ludwig Wittgenstein (2018). Robert Howse received his BA in philosophy and political science with high distinction, as well as an LLB with honours, from the University of Toronto, where he was co-editor-in-chief of the Faculty of Law Review. He also holds an LLM from Harvard Law School. Howse has been a visiting professor at, among other institutions, Harvard Law School, Tel Aviv University, the Hebrew University of Jerusalem and the University of Paris 1 (Pantheon-Sorbonne). His books include Leo Strauss Man of Peace (2014), The Regulation of International Trade (with Michael Trebilcock and Antonia Eliason; 4th edition, 2013) and The WTO System: Law, Politics, and Legitimacy (2007). He is also co-translator and principal author of the interpretative commentary Alexandre Kojeve, Outline of a Phenomenology of Right (2000). Howse has been a frequent consultant or adviser to government agencies and international bodies such as the Organisation for Economic Cooperation and Development (OECD), United Nations Conference on Trade and Development (UNCTAD) and the Inter-American Development Bank. He has also been a consultant to the investor’s counsel in a number of investor–state arbitrations. Howse is a member of the Board of Advisers of the NYU Center for Law and Philosophy. He serves on the editorial advisory boards of the London Review of International Law, The Journal of World Investment and Trade, Transnational Legal Theory and Legal Issues of Economic Integration. He is co-founder of the New York City Working Group on International Economic Law and is currently chair of the Executive Committee, Association of American Law Schools (AALS) Economic Globalization and Governance Section. David Martin Jones is Honorary Reader in the School of Political Science and International Studies at the University of Queensland and Visiting Professor and Teaching Fellow in War Studies at King’s College, University of London. He received his PhD from the London School of Economics and has taught at the Open University, National University of Singapore, University of Malaya and the University of Tasmania. His works include Towards Illiberal Democracy in Pacific Asia (1995), Political Development in Pacific Asia (1997), The Image of China in Western Social and Political Thought (2001), ASEAN and East Asian International Order (2007), The Rise of China and Asia Pacific Security (2013), (with M. L. R. Smith) Sacred Violence: Political Religion in a Secular Age (2014) and The Political Impossibility of Modern Counter-Insurgency (2015). His essays on aspects of regional political development have appeared in a wide range of academic and policy journals. Menno R. Kamminga is a Senior Lecturer in the Department of International Relations and International Organization at the University of Groningen. He studied agricultural and environmental economics at Wageningen University and theology at

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

contributor biographies

xiii

Utrecht University. He received his PhD at the University of Groningen for a dissertation on ethics, nationalism and religion. Kamminga’s research and teaching interests broadly concern the tensions between ‘utopia’ and ‘reality’ and between ‘universalism’ and ‘particularism’, and include the ethics of foreign policy and global society, international relations theory, and methodology of international relations. He has published, among other things, many theoretical and philosophical academic articles (in English and Dutch) on a variety of topics, including Kenneth Waltz’s neorealist theory of international politics, Reinhold Niebuhr’s Christian realism, John Rawls’s Law of Peoples, Thomas Pogge’s ethics of world poverty, Amitai Etzioni’s socio-economics and communitarianism, global distributive justice, international political theory, Europatriotism, cosmopolitan Europe, freedom of religion, ritual slaughter, carbon commodification, moral diversity in climate politics, normative prudence in international politics, humanitarian intervention and development assistance. Peter Iver Kaufman is Professor Emeritus, University of North Carolina, Chapel Hill and holds the George Matthews and Virginia Brinkley Modlin Chair at the University of Richmond. He is the author of, inter alia, Redeeming Politics (1990) and Politically Incorrect: Augustine and Thomas More (2007). David Kerr received his PhD on China–Russia relations from the Institute of Russian and East European Studies, University of Glasgow, in 1995 and subsequently worked as a post-doctoral researcher on Chinese relations with the Russian Far East. From 2002 to 2017 he was Lecturer in the International Relations of China at Durham University, where he was also Director of the Centre for Contemporary China Studies, 2009–14. He has published on the politics, political economy and foreign policy of Russia and China in journals such as Europe–Asia Studies, Review of International Political Economy, International Studies Quarterly and International Affairs and Critical Asian Studies. Two of his edited volumes are The International Politics of EU–China Relations (2007) and China’s Many Dreams: Comparative Perspectives on China’s Search for National Rejuvenation (2015). Paul Kirkland is Associate Professor of Political Science and Great Ideas at Carthage College. He is the author of Nietzsche’s Noble Aims (2009) and several articles on Nietzsche, Du Bois, aesthetics and other topics. He is currently working on a book on the role of tragedy in Nietzsche’s political thought. Douglas B. Klusmeyer earned both a PhD in modern European history and a JD from Stanford University. He was formerly an Associate with the International Migration Policy Program at the Carnegie Endowment for International Peace. He is currently an Associate Professor in the Department of Justice, Law and Society and an affiliate faculty member of the History Department at American University, Washington, DC. He has published articles in an array of journals, including Criminal Justice Ethics, Dædalus: Journal of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences, Ethics and International Affairs, International History Review, International Relations, Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, International Studies Review, Journal of Refugee Studies, Law and Humanities, Law, Culture and the Humanities and Publius. He is the editor of several published collections of studies on international comparative citizenship. He is also author of Between Consent and Descent: Conceptions of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xiii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

xiv

contributor biographies

Democratic Citizenship (1996) and Immigration Policy in the Federal Republic of Germany: Negotiating Membership and Remaking the Nation (2009). He has published a variety of articles on both Hannah Arendt and Hans Morgenthau: most recently, ‘Morgenthau’s Vietnam Writings and the National Security State’, in Hans Morgenthau and the American Experience, edited by Cornelia Narvari (2018). His research interests include citizenship, legal history, migration, history of international political thought, and political ethics. Konstantinos Kostagiannis is a Visiting Researcher at the University of Peloponnese. He has previously taught at the universities of Edinburgh and Maastricht. He is the author of Realist Thought and the Nation-state (2017). Ayelet Haimson Lushkov is Associate Professor of Classics at the University of Texas at Austin. Her research focuses on the Roman historian Livy and his depictions of politics, politicians and political processes in the Roman republic, and more broadly on Latin literature and its reception. Her current project, a study of the literary mechanisms of historiographical citation, explores the poetics and politics of citation in Livy. In addition to articles on various topics in Classics, she is the author of Magistracy and the Historiography of the Roman Republic: Politics in Prose (2015) and You Win or You Die: The Ancient World of Game of Thrones (2017); and an editor of Reception and the Classics: An Interdisciplinary Approach to the Classical Tradition (2012). Cecelia Lynch is Professor of Political Science and International Studies at the University of California, Irvine. Her work focuses on questions of peace and diplomacy, religion and ethics, humanitarianism, and interpretive/qualitative methodologies. She continues to work on questions of International Relations theory and the interwar period, but has also been researching the ethics of Islamic and Christian non-governmental organisations (NGOs) in humanitarian work in Africa, the Middle East, and the centers of NGO power such as Geneva, London, New York and Washington, DC. She is the author or co-author of three books and two edited volumes, including Interpreting International Politics (2014), Strategies for Research in Constructivist International Relations (2007, with Audie Klotz) and Beyond Appeasement: Interpreting Interwar Peace Movements in World Politics (1999), which won two prizes; she co-edits the blog, ‘Critical Investigations into Humanitarianism in Africa’ (CIHA Blog, at www.cihablog.com), which brings religious and critical perspectives into humanitarian debates. She has received fellowships from the Social Science Research Council/MacArthur Foundation, American Association of University Women, Andrew W. Mellon Foundation and the Henry Luce Foundation, and her articles have appeared in Globalizations, International Studies Quarterly, International Theory, Millennium, Ethics & International Affairs, Global Governance, International Journal, Journal of Peacebuilding and Development, and numerous edited volumes. In 2014, she was co-recipient of the J. Ann Tickner Award of the International Studies Association (ISA), in recognition of ‘bravery in pursuing high-quality, pioneering scholarship that pushes the boundaries of the discipline with a deep commitment to service, especially teaching and mentoring’ (ISA website). Kenneth B. McIntyre is an Associate Professor of Political Science at Sam Houston State University in Huntsville, Texas. He is the author of The Limits of Political Theory: Oakeshott’s Philosophy of Civil Association (2004) and Herbert Butterfield:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xiv

23/10/18 12:44 PM

contributor biographies

xv

History, Providence, and Skeptical Politics (2011). His research interests include the philosophy of history, the philosophy of law, ethics, British Idealism and classical liberalism. He is currently working on a book on value pluralism, negative liberty and the rule of law. David Mayers teaches at Boston University, where he holds a joint appointment in the History and Political Science departments. His principal books are George Kennan and the Dilemmas of U.S. Foreign Policy (1988), The Ambassadors and America’s Soviet Policy (1995, awarded Douglas Dillon prize of the American Academy of Diplomacy), Wars and Peace: The Future Americans Envisioned, 1861–1991 (1998), Dissenting Voices in America’s Rise to Power (2007), FDR’s Ambassadors and the Diplomacy of Crisis (2013) and America and the Postwar World: Remaking International Society, 1945–1956 (2018). Mayers’s most recent journal article is ‘Crossing to Safety from Cold War America: The Collaboration and Friendship of John Paton Davies, Jr. and George Frost Kennan’, Diplomacy and Statecraft (June 2018). Neville Morley is Professor of Classics and Ancient History at the University of Exeter. He works on a range of topics in ancient history and its modern reception, in particular ancient economic and social structures, ancient and modern ideas of development, globalisation and imperialism, historiography and the representation of the past, and the relationship between ideas of antiquity and modernity. His books include Trade in Classical Antiquity (2007), Antiquity and Modernity (2009) and The Roman Empire: Roots of Imperialism (2010). He has a special interest in the ancient Greek historian Thucydides and his reception in modern historiography and political theory (including Thucydides and the Idea of History, 2014), and is currently working on books on Karl Marx and Classical Antiquity, Thucydides and Political Thought, and the reception of antiquity by Christa Wolf. He blogs on all these topics at http:/www.thesphinxblog.com. John Mueller is Woody Hayes Senior Research Scientist at the Mershon Center for International Security Studies, as well as an Adjunct Professor of Political Science, at Ohio State University. He is also a Cato Senior Fellow at the Cato Institute in Washington, DC. Among his books are War and Ideas (2011), Atomic Obsession: Nuclear Alarmism from Hiroshima to Al Qaeda (2010), Retreat from Doomsday: The Obsolescence of Major War (1989), Capitalism, Democracy, and Ralph’s Pretty Good Grocery (1999), The Remnants of War (2004), Overblown (2006), War, Presidents and Public Opinion (1973) and, in collaboration with Mark Stewart, Are We Safe Enough? Measuring and Assessing Aviation Security (2018), Chasing Ghosts: The Policing of Terrorism (2016) and Terror, Security, and Money (2011). He is also the editor of a set of case studies, Terrorism Since 9/11: The American Cases (2018), and has published hundreds of articles in newspapers and academic journals. He has been a visiting fellow at the Brookings Institution, the Hoover Institution and the Norwegian Nobel Institute. In another field, he is the author of Astaire Dancing (1985) and of two musicals, and provides the DVD commentary track for the 1936 film, ‘Swing Time’. He is a member of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences, has been a John Simon Guggenheim Fellow, and has received several government grants. In 2009 he was given the International Studies Association’s Susan Strange Award, which ‘recognises a person whose singular intellect, assertiveness,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xv

23/10/18 12:44 PM

xvi

contributor biographies

and insight most challenge conventional wisdom and intellectual and organisational complacency in the international studies community’. Masashi Okuyama has a PhD from the University of Reading and is a senior fellow in the International Geopolitical Institute Japan and a lecturer at Aoyama Gakuin University in Tokyo. He regularly teaches at the Staff Colleges of Japan’s Self Defence Forces. His publications (in Japanese) include Geopolitics (2010); he has also translated into Japanese several dozens of books, such as John Mearsheimer’s The Tragedy of Great Power Politics (2017). Samir Puri is Lecturer in the War Studies Department at King’s College London, a position he has held since 2015. Previously, he served with the UK Foreign Office (2009–15). His assignments included counterterrorism policy, and a secondment to the Organization for Security and Co-operation in Europe (OSCE)’s monitoring mission in east Ukraine. His career began as a Defence Analyst at RAND (2006–9). At King’s, Puri has published books and articles on terrorism, insurgency and the challenges posed by revanchist powers like Russia. His PhD, which he completed at Cambridge University, examined different strategies for engaging non-state armed groups around the world. He is currently writing a book on the lingering impact of yesterday’s empires on today’s security and foreign policy challenges. In 2017, he also served as an academic advisor to the Commonwealth Secretariat, writing its strategy for countering violent extremism. He remains a Research Fellow with RAND. Grace Roosevelt’s research interests have focused on the political and educational thought of Jean-Jacques Rousseau, bridging the academic fields of political theory and educational philosophy. In the 1980s, Roosevelt discovered a coherent order for the until-then puzzling manuscript pages of Rousseau’s unpublished fragments on ‘L’État de Guerre’. She published the results of her discovery, together with her translation of the text, as ‘A Reconstruction of Rousseau’s Fragments on the State of War’, in History of Political Thought, vol. 8, no. 2. In Reading Rousseau in the Nuclear Age (1990) and in ‘Rousseau vs. Rawls on International Relations’ (The European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 5, no. 3), she developed her interpretation of Rousseau’s international relations theory more fully. Her recent work on Rousseau’s educational writings include a chapter on Rousseau in Philosophy: Education (2017). Among her other interests are the French Enlightenment, eighteenth-century peace projects, American progressivism, and the history of the idea of liberal education. She recently retired from teaching as an Associate Professor at Metropolitan College of New York. Felix Rösch is Senior Lecturer in International Relations at Coventry University. He works on encounters of difference in transcultural and intercultural contexts at the intersection of classical realism and critical theories. Amongst others, he has published with the Review of International Studies, European Journal of International Relations, International Studies Perspectives and Ethics & International Affairs. His most recent books include The Concept of the Political (2012), Émigré Scholars and the Genesis of International Relations (2014), Power, Knowledge, and Dissent in Morgenthau’s Worldview (2015) and Modern Japanese Political Thought and International Relations:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xvi

23/10/18 12:44 PM

contributor biographies

xvii

Encountering Difference in Japan since the 19th Century (2018). With Hartmut Behr, he edits the Global Political Thinkers book series. William E. Scheuerman’s primary research and teaching interests are in modern political thought, German political thought, democratic theory, legal theory and international political theory. After teaching at Pittsburgh and Minnesota, he joined the Indiana faculty in 2006. Scheuerman’s most recent book is Civil Disobedience (2018). He is also the author of Between the Norm and the Exception: The Frankfurt School and the Rule of Law (1994), which won two prestigious awards, as well as Carl Schmitt: The End of Law (1999), Liberal Democracy and the Social Acceleration of Time (2004), Frankfurt School Perspectives on Globalization, Democracy, and the Law (2008), Hans J. Morgenthau: Realism and Beyond (2009) and The Realist Case for Global Reform (2011). He has edited (with Peter Caldwell) The Rule of Law Under Siege (1996), From Liberal Democracy to Fascism: Legal and Political Thought in the Weimar Republic (2000) and (with Hartmut Rosa) High-Speed Society: Social Acceleration, Power, and Modernity (2009). Scheuerman has published in many professional journals, including Constellations, History of Political Thought, International Theory, Journal of Political Philosophy, Politics & Society, Review of International Studies and Social Research. Robert Schuett lives in Vienna. He is the author of Political Realism, Freud, and Human Nature in International Relations (2010). Tim Spiekerman teaches politics at Kenyon College. He is the author of Shakespeare’s Political Realism (2001). Peter Stirk is a Senior Lecturer at the University of Durham. His publications in recent years have focused on German political thought, including international political thought, especially the work of John Herz and Carl Schmitt, and the history and politics of military occupation. His monographs include Twentieth-Century German Political Thought (2006), The Politics of Military Occupation (2009) and A History of Military Occupation from 1792 to 1914 (2016). Tom Switzer is Executive Director of the Centre for Independent Studies in Sydney. He is also a columnist at Fairfax Media and a presenter at the Australian Broadcasting Corporation’s Radio National. Zhao Tingyang is Chair and Professor of Philosophy at the Chinese Academy of Social Sciences in Beijing, working on political philosophy, metaphysics and ethics. His main theories include the political theory of the ‘Tianxia system (all-under-heaven)’, the ‘metaphysics of possibilities’ and the ‘ontology of coexistence’, as well as the theory of ‘credit human rights’. He has published many books in Chinese, such as On Possible Lives (sixth printing since 1994), An Introduction to All-under-Heaven System (fourth printing since 2005), Studies on Bad World (third printing since 2009), Politics for Everybody (second printing since 2010), First Philosophy: from Cogito to Facio (second printing since 2013), A Possible World of All-under-Heaven System (fourth printing since 2016), The Making and Becoming of China (second printing since 2016) and Forking Possibilities (2017), as well as books in French, such as Tianxia tout sous un meme ciel (2018) and (with Régis Debray) Du ciel à la terre (2014).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xvii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

xviii

contributor biographies

Jodok Troy works at the University of Innsbruck and has been a visiting scholar (2016–18) at the Europe Center at Stanford University, held a research fellowship (2007) at the Center for Peace and Security Studies at Georgetown University, and has been an affiliate scholar of the Swedish National Defense College. His international relations research focuses on religion, ethics, the English School, and classical Realism. For more information see https://uibk.academia.edu/JodokTroy. Alex Wilner is an Assistant Professor of International Affairs at the Norman Paterson School of International Affairs (NPSIA), Carleton University, Ottawa. He teaches classes on terrorism and violent radicalisation, intelligence in international affairs, cybersecurity and blockchain technologies, strategic foresight in international security, and a capstone course on Canadian security policy. Past capstone partners have included Public Safety Canada, Global Affairs Canada, Policy Horizons Canada, Financial Transactions and Reports Analysis Centre of Canada, and the Bank of Canada. Wilner’s research focuses on the application of deterrence theory to contemporary security issues, like terrorism, radicalisation, organised crime, cyber threats and proliferation. His books include Deterring Rational Fanatics (2015) and Deterring Terrorism: Theory and Practice (as editor; 2012). He has published articles in International Security, NYU Journal of International Law and Politics, Security Studies, Journal of Strategic Studies, Comparative Strategy, Studies in Conflict and Terrorism, Journal for Deradicalization and International Journal. In 2016, he was awarded a prestigious Social Sciences and Humanities Research Council (SSHRC) grant from the Government of Canada to study state and non-state cyber deterrence. In 2017, he was given funding by a number of Canadian federal departments to organise a workshop on strategic foresight in national security policy. Prior to joining NPSIA, Wilner held a variety of positions at Policy Horizons Canada (the Government of Canada’s foresight laboratory), the Munk School of Global Affairs at the University of Toronto, the National Consortium for the Study of Terrorism and Responses to Terrorism (START) at the University of Maryland, and ETH Zurich. Derek M. C. Yuen has a PhD in Strategic Studies from the University of Reading. He is the author of Deciphering Sun Tzu: How to Read ‘The Art of War’ (2014) and is currently working on a book manuscript on the strategic thought of Mao Zedong. Based in Hong Kong, he has been working on the synthesis of Chinese and Western strategic thought and Taoist strategic thinking. Rashed Uz Zaman has been teaching at the Department of International Relations, University of Dhaka, since 1998. He holds a bachelor’s and a master’s degree in International Relations from the same university. He also obtained a master’s in Security Studies from the University of Hull, and a PhD in Strategic Studies from the University of Reading. In 2009–11, Zaman was an Alexander von Humboldt fellow at the University of Erfurt, Germany. He was a Fulbright Visiting Professor in the Department of Political Science at Vanderbilt University in 2012. Zaman works on strategic and international security issues. Recent publications include a chapter on Bangladesh and United Nations peacekeeping missions in Paul Williams and Alex J. Bellamy (eds), Providing Peacekeepers: The Politics, Challenges and Future of United Nations Peacekeeping Contributions (2013). A chapter titled ‘South Asian Regionalism and UN Peacekeeping Missions: A Case of “and Never the Twain Shall Meet”?’ has been published in Brendan Howe and Boris Kondoch (eds), Peacekeeping and the Asia-Pacific

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xviii

23/10/18 12:44 PM

contributor biographies

xix

(2016). His piece ‘Strategic Culture in South Asia: Kautilyan Sempiternity’ in Arvind Gupta, P. K. Gautam and Saurabh Mishra (eds), Indigenous Historical Knowledge: Kautilya and his Vocabulary, Part 3 (IDSA) came out in August 2016. A special issue on Commonwealth Armies and Peacekeeping carried his article, ‘The Contribution of Commonwealth Armed Forces in UN Peacekeeping Missions: The Case of Bangladesh’, The Round Table: The Commonwealth Journal of International Affairs, vol. 106, no. 4 (August 2017).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xix

23/10/18 12:44 PM

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd xx

23/10/18 12:44 PM

Introduction Political Realism, liberal democracy and world politics Miles Hollingworth and Robert Schuett

W

orld politics seems to be accelerating to somewhere new and as yet undefined. We are in a moment in which old certainties and old rivalries are giving way. Political Realism used to be a mainstay of the former way of seeing things. It revolved around the maxim that power is all that can truly count in the final analysis – and, accordingly, it reached its heyday in the nuclear age, when that final analysis could shimmer on the near horizon of every citizen’s waking experience. Political Realism was a theory of international relations that reverse-engineered itself from the atom bomb, and in just the same way that Thucydides had once seen fit to reverse-engineer his version of political reality from the power and fact of the Athenian fighting machine. One could go further back than that – right the way back to the first time that man took up arms against man to settle the outcome of a dispute. Political Realism is therefore as old as the hills, or at any rate, as old as human nature itself; which means that it is, in this its long tradition, an essentially negative doctrine. That is to say, it is not interested so much in the content of political discourse in any particular moment but rather in the fact that it can always be found to be taking place beneath some looming threat. If there were only two people in the world and a rock, then Political Realism would already have all it needed for its fundamental belief, even before those two people had had a chance to open their mouths. The sheer existence of the rock would mean that one of them could be the first to pick it up and raise it over the other’s head. The conversation that would then ensue would be a conversation – or a politics – taking place within the meaning of Political Realism. The antidote to this depressing picture was meant to be democracy, or more to the point, modern Western liberal democracy. If the original democracy was the plan to stymie the would-be tyrant or mob with the irreproachable imposition of the impartial procedure, then the new liberal democracy was the acknowledgement of all that had happened in between, and which Plato had warned of anyway. That is to say, if pure, procedural democracy was a logical response to the problem of someone who would otherwise be able to muscle their way into a polity and rule for as long as that muscle lasted, it harboured a long-term problem, this being its accidental relationship to goodness and virtue. It was not of itself a way of determining who might be fittest to rule. For long periods of European history, this obvious problem kept it in the shadows, and meant that it would have to wait until the great nineteenth-century experiments in rights and suffrage to really flourish. Once again, it found itself to be the only fair alternative to the bogie of aristocratic rule. And then, in an industrialising West, with the first flashes of social justice and the welfare state, the problem of its accidental relationship to goodness and virtue was something that could be handed over to the great

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 1

23/10/18 12:44 PM

2

introduction

new question of the betterment of the citizen – of the ‘greatest good of the greatest number’. This was, strictly speaking, illogical, but the illogicality of it went unnoticed. In fact, so readily did the advantages of an improved citizenry sweep the popular mind that it was altogether forgotten that the underlying illogicality might at any moment bite back to undo all the intervening good work – that you could not insert an identity sign between democracy and anything else because democracy was, like the identity sign, merely a function. Thus, democracy came to be equated with all the good and virtuous things that it was said to be bringing about, when really these were the products of wider efforts. Fascism was a sharp and nasty reminder of what could happen if those wider efforts were relaxed. A discontented modern citizenry could turn out to be horribly easy prey to manipulation and short-term hope. The post-1945 remedy for this was the launching of gargantuan projects to cultivate an ultimate class of citizen: pacified and prosperous, and in relationships of irreversible interdependence with her fellow citizens and her state. Versions of this were also enacted between states in the international system. But we notice that, by this means, the problem of determining ‘who might be fittest to rule’ was simply handed over again – and on the grandest scale yet – to the objective of bringing about such wide and general peace and happiness that the problem itself could pass unnoticed and moot. It is instructive in this regard to notice how communism was forced into doing the same. Regimes that, on the face of it, were totalitarian and repressive could hope to pass beyond all such criticism by delivering their citizens into the ultimate state of peace and happiness. Correspondingly, this peace and happiness would come to mean the same thing as the ‘wisdom’ of the citizenry – that is to say, their wisdom in continuing to love and uphold the system. On these terms (and ironically), liberal democracy could only hope for the same – that is, it could only hope that such an eventual state of affairs in its own realms would turn around and become the final answer to Plato’s challenge. And that to top it all, its ‘eventual state of affairs’ would be of an altogether higher category than communism’s, so that it could smoothly and persuasively win that argument, too. What do these observations have to do with The Edinburgh Companion to Political Realism today? Quite simply this: if Political Realism has, by its very nature, been a ‘negative’ doctrine – disengaged and aloof from this discourse of wisdom in the state – then those very qualifications might now equip it to play a larger, more active, even more ‘positive’ role, given liberal democracy’s new and apparently perilous position in the West. This demands some explanation. As our example above was intended to show, Political Realism is a logic that holds only so long as its view of human nature holds. Moreover, it always makes you, the reader, the ultimate proof of its appeal. In our example above, it says to you, Sure, there is always the romantic and utopian scenario, in which neither of you reaches for the rock, or even considers reaching for it (the same state of enlightenment that liberal democracy aims to create). But would you really have the nerve just to sit there and trust your life to that hope? Would you? Think about it. What do you really know about your fellow inhabitant of planet earth, other than that they must be running through the same thoughts in their head. The utopian spirit may be strong in you. Fine; congratulations. Maybe you will always be able to hold your nerve. But what about the other? How could you ever be 100 per cent sure of the same in them? Come now, be honest – even 1 per cent of doubt in this direction must abolish the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 2

23/10/18 12:44 PM

introduction

3

utopian dream! So, what to do next? Do you go for a pre-emptive strike and wipe them out? Possibly. But you love your fellow humankind. Fine. Then how about this? How about you agree between the two of you to break the rock in half, and then each take a half? Now, you both possess the equal capacity to destroy one another. Perfect! You can now go about the business of life secure in the knowledge that you have taken the maximum possible measure to protect yourselves from each other. If you do decide to fight it out, neither of you will hold a decisive advantage; and it might just end in mutual destruction. That’s a sobering thought. Best, then, simply to make sure you always have your half-rocks in your pockets, and to go about your daily lives peacefully in the knowledge of that. Here it is plain to see that when Political Realism manipulates you, it manipulates you by means of your self-interest. If you were a nation-state instead of a person, we would say that it was doing so by means of your national interest. In both cases, interest means ‘survival’, while your desire to survive at all costs is taken to be self-evident. Survival, as far as Political Realism is concerned, is the quantum of all rationality. It should now be clear why Political Realism has prospered at the level of international relations while at the same time being resented everywhere else for its gloomy, almost gleeful reductionism. The international system of nation-states remains crude, and therefore crudely continues to prove Political Realism’s claim; because if the linchpin of the international system is the inviolable right of every recognised nationstate to absolute sovereignty within its own borders – if every nation-state is, in this sense, permitted to be ‘closed’ to the others, with a corresponding inviolable right to guard and protect its inner thoughts and motives – then it is logically possible only for nation-states to know each other and to interact at the level of their perceived national interests. It is as though a man and wife were to put aside their long, complex, historical and emotional knowing of each other and continue solely on the basis of their shared mutual commitment to survival. On one level, this would be horrifying. On another level – the level of theory and analysis – it would be deeply preferable because it would have reduced what was infinitely subjective and particular to what could now be traced out easily and accurately with a few basic tools and inputs. This is the reason behind Political Realism’s long-term fascination with ‘systems’ and ‘structures’, for systems and structures are all that it can see through its analytical lens. Once again, we stress that it is in this sense a negative doctrine. Its sole traditional role has been to listen patiently to the world’s great utopian dreams and then to shatter them with a few quick moves. ‘That is all very well, but . . . ’. In other words, Political Realism is its logic; it has only ever been its logic. And it has embraced and made a virtue of that logic. Hence its bullet-proof track record, if only you first accept its terms. That is to say, if you accept seeing the world of international politics through the lens of ‘interest’ and ‘survival’, then you will not be disappointed in the results, in the same way that Charles Darwin was not disappointed when once he applied the principle of natural selection to Nature. In both cases, you are committing yourself to seeing what is already there to be seen. And how different this is to that other commitment that it is possible to make as a human being, which is the commitment to making a new and better world in which to live. Of course, Political Realism, like Science, has an immediate retort here, or a ‘work-around’. If Science must first observe and document the laws of the universe before it can apply them creatively so as to improve the material conditions of humankind, then Political

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 3

23/10/18 12:44 PM

4

introduction

Realism can claim to be doing the same. Yes, it is ‘negative’. Yes, its sole initial purpose is to present you with what is really, empirically there in the politics before you. But from then on up, it can, like Science, make its legitimate claim to be using the real to bring about qualitative improvements to human wellbeing. What is more, these improvements, because they are based so stringently upon the real, can be relied upon not to disappoint. In this regard, it is often forgotten how the projects of even the most notorious Realists like Machiavelli and Hobbes were triggered by the sincere conviction that they should engineer a peace and a stability that might actually last because it would be designed to work with humans as they really are, not as they might one day become. In contrast to this, liberal democracy has not been able to fall back on its logic in the same triumphant way. In fact, all that its logic can supply to it in any particular moment are the concepts of fairness and equality. Make no mistake, though, these are mighty concepts and a triumph all of their own. Liberal democracy says, Here is a procedure for determining who should rule, which cannot afterwards be questioned. Here is a procedure that brooks no alternative. You cannot have a democratic politics one day and then abandon it the next. Well, you can – but then that would be bad, evil, wrong. It would be all of those things because democracy supplies the very definitions of ‘fairness’ and ‘equality’ in decision-making scenarios from which recourse to Divine Wisdom/Supreme Truth/The Super Man has been excluded. If we say that the question of who should rule us cannot be a matter of discovering The Leader and giving them carte blanche over us – if we say that the questions of leadership in the state cannot be settled by telephone calls to the heavens – then democracy is all that can remain to us as the way forward. And as the way forward, it really must then be that its concepts of fairness and equality cannot be challenged. For they have, by that stage, instated themselves not as principles with arguable moral content, but as the clearest and most demonstrative way of counting out people like numbers. The liberal democratic society is thus the society that has made its chief triumph and virtue out of this conclusion. It says that everything that was wrong with ages past was the way in which people could be classified, graded and discriminated against. Fairness and equality in such societies really could only mean that ‘philosophers should be kings’. But now, in the democratic age, political wisdom does not require that we open people up and peer inside their brains for what is or is not there. It does not require that we seek systems and methods of finding out the philosopher kings. It requires the opposite of that. It requires that we treat all people fairly and equally as numbers. No more than numbers. One citizen, one vote. And as for the rest, we hold to the belief that it will somehow just work itself out, in a freewheeling, unregulated progress similar to the market forces of capitalism itself. In this sense, democracy today meets Plato’s challenge in the same way it always has. It swaps the self-evident truth of the philosopher king for the self-evident truth of the identical worth of humans qua humans. But please note that our purpose in pressing these distinctions is not to raise the one above the other. Far from it! It is simply to show how very interesting matters become when one compares these two styles of political argument at this level. For example, if liberal democracy can only work if the societies it is working with are already and automatically working – if the citizenry en masse are of one reasonable and enlightened mind, and if their chosen leaders at each election time are representatives of the same, and if the standard of living is high and universal, and if the nation-state

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 4

23/10/18 12:44 PM

introduction

5

suffers no threats from abroad – then it must find itself in immediate and desperate straits if things start to move in the opposite direction. As we have indicated, its very logic simply cannot support movement in the opposite direction. Democracy simply is what you have when you do not have dictatorships and their versions. We repeat, ‘Democracy is the self-evident truth that stands against those systems’ self-evident truth.’ We repeat again, ‘If all is well in society and state, then you can afford to treat citizens impartially and objectively as numbers, but if substantial enough divisions start to occur in that citizenry, then this method can start to produce destructive results.’ In this way, liberal democracy is committed to the idea that there can be no ‘bad apples’ – just ‘apples’, and ‘one apple, one vote’. In fact, the very definition of a ‘bad apple’ would be an apple who believed in the ontological possibility of a ‘bad apple’, for that would then make that apple a discriminating bigot apple. Our point is that all of this works out just fine if it really is the case that the first-world system of life has triumphed and all apples are now much of a muchness. But what if that has not happened, and they are not? Well, the depressing news is that democracy qua democracy can do absolutely nothing about this situation – can indeed speak nothing into it – because long ago it staked everything on the supreme virtue of the numbers game and of keeping silent on what inwardly separates citizen from citizen. What is more, democracy today is, thanks to technology, returning at a pace to the pure form of its classical roots. The single-issue referendum, made swift and expedient by mobile and online culture, will increasingly take over the big decisions in the state. After all, it was only ever the technological obstacles to direct democracy in the expanding nations of the eighteenth, nineteenth and twentieth centuries that gave us democracy as we have known it until recently, with the citizens’ power being filtered through representatives of their interests. If democracy is all about that power, and if there is now a technical way to deliver it pure and unfiltered, then it simply must be pursued – because there is absolutely nothing in democracy’s own logic that can stand against it. And catching up with the referendum even, is the device of the online petition: the twenty-first-century version of the street protest – a quick and simple way to deliver the power of the plain force of numbers. Once again, we want to point out that we are not pursuing a partial line here, but simply following the facts of the moment to where they would lead us. And as we stressed above, fairness and equality are mighty concepts and a critically important triumph of their own, as is the power of the plain force of numbers. Has there been anything more stirring in recent political history than the way in which these numbers and the solidarity movements brought about the end of the communist bloc? We think not. But the point from which these examples will still not allow us to escape is what we called above the ‘accidental’ relationship of democracy to goodness and virtue. They are examples of when the power of numbers was able to coincide with the high moral content of the moment. Yet if the moral content of the moment had been low, or even monstrous, then the power of numbers would have delivered that instead. There have, of course, been some ingenious attempts to overcome this disconnect between the numerical majority and the high ground. But generally speaking, these have involved contriving ways to make the logic of democracy hedge against itself. These so-called ‘original position’ arguments – the most famous recent example being that of John Rawls – attempt to overcome democratic logic’s moral blindness after the fact by developing hypothetical original positions that would come before the fact.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 5

23/10/18 12:44 PM

6

introduction

That is to say, if democracy is at bottom a logical function imposed upon a pre-existing society – like the function of counting imposed upon a barrel of apples – then original position arguments attempt to give that function a beginning in history. Logic is thus made to vote on itself, or for itself, by contracting humans who, being humans, supply the moral intention and eyesight that it would otherwise be impossible to impute to mere functionalism. If Ludwig Wittgenstein was the first to show systematically that logic can never be wrong, for the reason that it can never conceive or construct an interest for itself (a self-interest), then Rawls was the first to show systematically that you can appear to get around this obstacle by contriving the circumstances in which humans cannot but act logically each time. If logic can have no awareness, or pleasure, in the knowledge that it is being logical, then at least the human animals now replicating it can. Rawls’s thought experiment therefore makes you, the reader, do for logic what it cannot do for itself. The ‘principles of fairness’ that are arrived at in this way are as irreproachable as if logic really did step out of its infinity (its infinite constancy) and give itself a political beginning in time. It is as though humans had, once upon a time, voted the law of gravity into existence, or the second law of thermodynamics, rather than that these laws, along with all the other laws of nature and number, had merely existed all along. Here we see isolated and magnified the great strength, but also the great weakness, of democratic logic. On the one hand, it has absolutely nothing to do with the existential and ethical business of human life in association, save that it is a law of the universe brought down to settle a decision once it has been decided that it shall not be settled by recourse to the wisdom of the better human, or the better god. But on the other hand, because it is a law of the universe, once brought down and entrenched, it becomes irresistible – to the extent that it must, by definition, make every alternative to it seem like political evil. Once again, to resist it would be like resisting the law of gravity or the second law of thermodynamics. And like the second law of thermodynamics, democracy therefore also slips into becoming political thought’s ‘arrow of time’. It points from left to right, from the past to the future, such that there can be no turning back, because the future must always be qualitatively better than the past if democracy is to answer Plato’s challenge with the manifest evidence of a universally improved – of a universally wiser and more ethical – citizenry. There are many today who would say that the unimagined is happening: that the arrow is starting to point in the opposite direction, and that liberal democracy is starting to turn up results that challenge the idea of a universally improved citizenry. Once again, we wish to stress that we are not taking a position on whether or not this is the case. We are simply noting the feeling in the air, and noting it, we are trying to say that there has never then been a better moment to rehabilitate and rediscover Political Realism. Not because Political Realism is on one or the other side of this development, but precisely because – as we pointed out above – it is ‘disengaged and aloof’ from this problem of ‘wisdom in the state’. That is to say, it offers a political lens and language that does not make democratic logic’s normative and transformative demands on the human element, but which makes it its business to investigate that element as it really is. We repeat, if the rhetoric of Liberal Democracy runs simultaneously with the concept of the citizen that it positively forms and educates, then the rhetoric of Political Realism looks to the psychological hard-wiring that has allowed that citizen to be

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 6

23/10/18 12:44 PM

introduction

7

a zoon politikon in the first place. If liberal democracy has had to look to history to see the proof of concept that its plain logic cannot otherwise supply it with, then Political Realism does not now find itself under the same burden. For it has only ever sought to identify the internal and external structuring that makes it possible to speak sensibly – and at all – about the self-interest of the human animal and the national interest of the state. It does not therefore look into history in order to see a narrative that points in any particular direction, but seeks to find there only new and amplifying material for its science of the human condition. What we are saying, then, is that Political Realism cannot be inherently conservative or liberal or anything on that scale. It can be worked up to be, of course, and has been. But at base, it looks to do only what liberal democracy and other such programmes of reform cannot do for themselves, which is to furnish the foundational logic of human nature that their later logics must rely upon at second hand. Now there are, of course, inevitable historical reasons why Political Realism has had to look like the chief antagonist of all that would be positive and idealistic in world politics; we have referenced these above. They can be summed up as the idea – still held to in Western political thought – that all political thinking can be reduced to the belief that human nature is either plastic or adamant. Whole histories of the subject have been written on this idea that you divide by the denominator of human nature in order to arrive at one or the other belief – with ‘plasticity’ standing for the progress of the species, and ‘adamance’ for the arbitrary and elitist opposition to it. What we are now saying in response to this is that human nature cannot be – and has never really been – the result obtained by performing this calculation. It is not a quantity of positive or negative integers, for it does not in fact exist within the logic that makes those very calculations and arguments of political thought possible. It does not because it is that logic. Think of it like this, if you like. It really does not matter whether you believe that human nature has always been plastic and go on to argue a theory of politics that exemplifies plasticity (or vice versa), or whether you believe that it has always been adamant and go on to argue a theory of politics that exemplifies that (or vice versa), for in both cases you commit yourself to a logic of political truth and political meaning that must settle itself at the biological level of the human animal. Political truth and political meaning thus refer to the fact that the human animal has ‘always been this’ or ‘always been that’, where what is significant is not the this or the that but the always. This is exactly analogous to the realisation that would lead Sigmund Freud to have to start speaking of ‘metapsychology’. It became obvious to him that for psychology really to be psychology – for it really to be able to provide total, scientific explanations of events involving humans – then it had better find a way of locating the always outside and apart from the mental processes being documented. In other words, if the always is going to be that which makes possible the mental processes as processes – if it is going to supply the principle in relation to which they can be infallible (in relation to which they can be logical) – then this principle cannot itself be such that it could ever come under the jurisdiction of the human mental apparatus. Or what is the same thing: it cannot itself be a judgement of value. Rather, it must be such as makes judgements of value possible in the first place. We repeat, judgements of value become what they are and logical, only once they can be seen in relation to a principle that is so self-evident that it can unquestionably stand as the first impulse to human thought. We are back to the language of the opening paragraph, in which we noted that Political

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 7

23/10/18 12:44 PM

8

introduction

Realism concerns itself with what can be ‘reverse-engineered’ from the point of view of a single incontrovertible fact. In the stark and forensic lands of psychology, the point is seen clearly. For Freud, it was the ‘pleasure principle’: the principle that ‘dominates the operation of the mental apparatus from the start’ (Freud 1930: 76). But in the charged and emotive lands of political theory, in which obstacles to progress and enlightenment must acquire an instant anathema, the very idea of an always – and let us not put too fine a point on it, the very idea, then, of the Christian doctrine of original sin – must at once be pounced upon and discredited. Of course, Political Realism has itself generated a nomenclature and a discipline, and a history of that discipline’s development and reception. It has been a leading school of thought within the study of international relations; and you will see its history of scholarship referenced and illuminated in many of these essays. But what we have tried to do, on the whole, is to come in with a clean cut. If the trouble and confusion that world politics is in today are down to the fact that its lens and language now stretch across some 2,000 years of intervening history and emotion, then a plain basic Realism – such as we have depicted it above – may now offer some much-needed cleansing. It is precisely because Political Realism does not play for a team, and never has, that it can be so useful to us now. You will accordingly see many essays here that have not been written by card-carrying Realists. Some will even show their authors engaging with Political Realism for the first time. What is more, we have tried to snap the elastic that has held the tradition of Political Realism to the Western, nation-state view of the world. For one of the consequences of globalisation and the breaking down of walls has been the natural turn towards the universal human person as the touchstone of analysis and dialogue – such that it simply can no longer be assumed to be the case that people will remain to be counted and theorised as units of their native cultures and nations. Yes, the world is fast becoming a domain through which people do move freely and expect to be able to do so. And this turns up a situation that Political Realism is perfectly adapted to address – arguably, the only situation that it ever really was adapted to address. This is its special subject: Homo sapiens. You will therefore also discover here chapters that seek to identify and explain the sense in which Realism can be observed in different parts of the globe, as well as chapters that seek to take the measure of our new and accelerating situation on some of its hot-button issues; and then chapters that ask what a realistic response to these issues should look like now. Because while Political Realism has so often had to exist in hindsight, as the retroactive justification of unpopular action, these chapters show it to be just as capable of initiating viable and visionary solutions for the future.

Bibliography Freud, Sigmund (1953–1974) [1930], Civilization and its Discontents, in The Standard Edition of the Complete Psychological Works of Sigmund Freud, ed. by James Strachey, Anna Freud, Alix Strachey and Alan Tyson, 24 vols, London: Hogarth, p. 76 in vol. 21, pp. 64–145.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 8

23/10/18 12:44 PM

1 Political Realism and Human Nature Classical and modern arguments Erica Benner

Chapter Overview

T

hree authors are most often named as founding fathers of Western realism: Thucydides, Machiavelli and Hobbes. All three take the study of human nature as a basis for examining the possibilities and limitations of politics, pay close attention to sources of conflict that stem from basic human drives, and consider human beings at their worst, not just their rational or pacific best. But attempts to make classical authors speak to more recent realist concerns have often carried high costs, for both the quality of realist thinking and the history of political thought. Modern realists tend to read the classics in a highly selective way. Focusing on arguments that they could use against ‘idealist’ or ‘moralist’ ideas and projects, they often give short shrift to others that have some whiff of idealism or moralism. In the interests of balance, this chapter looks at three realist positions that are frequently traced back to classical thinkers: pessimism about human nature, structural determinism, and the idea that political prudence and morality involve separate kinds of reasoning that often conflict. It asks how far so-called classical realist authors in fact defend these views, and tries to illustrate the richness of classical arguments about human nature and its considerable moral potential. *

*

*

Realism claims to identify the most basic realities that drive political action and limit what it can achieve. All political theories and doctrines, of course, do this to some degree. But writers who explicitly defend realism treat the notion of reality – rather than principles of justice, ideas of the good life and the best state, or religious precepts – as their main guide to explaining political life and prescribing ways to deal with it. Realists have widely diverse views about what should count as basic political realities.1 For the past century or so, many have focused on structural and social facts – the ‘autonomy of politics’ as a field of action, the competitive logic of international relations, or the plurality of human values – rather than physical or psychological facts about human beings themselves. Yet it is hard to distinguish structures from the people who create and sustain them. Even when factors like topography or geography seem to shape politics in fundamental ways, politics always involves distinctively human responses to natural and social environments, and unique human aptitudes for forming, sustaining or sabotaging relations with other people.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 11

23/10/18 12:44 PM

12

erica benner

Unsurprisingly, then, the old-fashioned concept of ‘human nature’ has never vanished from realist discourse. Political scientists are fond of pointing out that older accounts of human nature are speculative, tendentious or steeped in archaic prejudices and moral judgements. Realists of a more historical and philosophical bent, however, still draw freely on very old ideas about human nature, defying efforts to supplant them with the harder sciences of psychology or neurology, for though the term ‘political realism’ is a rather recent invention, its exponents trace their main ideas back to the dawn of history-writing and political philosophy. Three authors are most often named as the founding fathers of Western realism: Thucydides, Niccolò Machiavelli and Thomas Hobbes. All of them take the close study of human nature as their starting point for examining creative possibilities and limitations of politics. They pay close attention to sources of conflict that stem from basic human drives, place the analysis of such conflict at the centre of their political thought, and refuse to shy away from scrutinising human beings at their worst, not just their rational or pacific best. Attempts to make ancient and early modern authors speak to more recent realist concerns have been both fruitful and problematic. The writers who began describing their own positions as realpolitik, and later ‘realism’, in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries saw themselves as warriors in high-stakes political battles. They lived in times of virulent ideological strife, when republican and communist ambitions to reshape the world crashed against stubborn traditionalism, national rivalries, and disagreements over political values. Modern realists called on classical writers to support their arguments about the imprudence of pursuing such idealistic programmes. But they often read the classics selectively, highlighting ideas that they could use against opponents while neglecting others that had some whiff of idealism or moralism. Such selectivity has carried high costs for realism, and for the history of political thought. This chapter tries to provide a taste of the richness of classical arguments about human nature, and its very considerable moral potential.

Political Pessimism What I call ‘modern’ realism and its close relative realpolitik were born in response to the French Revolution and Napoleonic invasions of German lands.2 Revolutionary rhetoric trumpeted high hopes that the decadent old orders of Europe could be swept away forever, to be replaced with the universal rights of man and brotherly republics. The revolution’s critics, including some whose views have come to be associated with realism, doubted that radical measures could bring about permanent progress in human affairs. The basic obstacle was the change-resistant, imperfectly rational nature of human beings. Instead of seeking to found perfect republics in haste, the German–Austrian thinker Friedrich Gentz wrote, in 1805–6, that one should move slowly to reform corrupt political systems, and never expect to achieve perfect harmony within states or in international relations (Gentz 2010: 56). Anti-perfectionist and anti-rationalist realism gained momentum over the next two centuries with the flowering of allegedly ‘utopian’ politics, especially revolutionary communism and internationalist idealism after the two World Wars. In the first decades of the twentieth century, realism emerged under that name as a distinct ‘school’ of thought in academic studies of international relations and later politics.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 12

23/10/18 12:44 PM

human nature

13

From the outset, founders of modern realism looked for, and easily found, supportive arguments in the works of Thucydides, Machiavelli and Hobbes. All three men lived in times of violent contrasts between soaring political ideals and catastrophic realities. Thucydides recounts a wartime oration in which Pericles, leading statesman of Athens, praises his city’s military, political and cultural greatness to the skies – at a time when many thousands of Athenians were dying from plague or in battle, and when the city’s supposedly free democracy was run ‘like a tyranny’ by Pericles himself (Thucydides 2003: II.35–46, II.65). In late fifteenth-century Florence, Machiavelli witnessed the divisive effects of a crusading, ascetic politics led by the Dominican friar Girolamo Savonarola, whose sermons urged Florentines to build a city of angels on earth.3 To Hobbes, whose first published work was a translation of Thucydides’ history, there were few greater threats to peace than the Christian millenarian utopias and democratic excesses that fuelled the English Civil War. These classical writers give readers good reason to doubt that human nature is, or can ever be made, fit to sustain societies free from division and strife, at domestic or international levels. Conflict and disagreement, they suggest, are rooted in human beings’ physical and psychological make-up, and thus inescapable. Even if a supremely wise legislator were to design a perfectly rational constitution, or temporarily convert whole cities to angelic virtue through force, persuasion or prayer, unruly humanity would soon find ways to corrode the perfection. Egoistic ambition, short-term thinking, excessive regard for one’s family and friends and irrational fears of strangers, capacities for deceit and self-deception: these are the essential realities that politics must address. As Machiavelli put it, anyone who wants to design laws and institutions must ‘presuppose that all men are bad [rei], and that they always have to use the malignity of their spirit whenever they have a free opportunity for it’ (Machiavelli 1996a: I.3). If legislators assume that most people are good or fully rational, they usually find that their constitutions quickly collapse, or wind up as idealistic facades covering rampant corruption. Hobbes agrees that it is prudent to adopt a general attitude of suspicion towards one’s fellow humans, especially in times like his own when there was widespread confusion about what qualities ought to be called ‘good’ or ‘bad’. Even if ‘there were fewer evil men than good men, good, decent people would still be saddled with the constant need to watch, distrust, anticipate, and get the better of others, and to protect themselves by all possible means’ (Hobbes 1998: Preface). Passages like these give the impression that classical realist views of human nature are thoroughly pessimistic. Yet modern realist readers often focus too one-sidedly on earlier authors’ pessimism while showing less interest in other arguments that temper it. On the one side, for example, Machiavelli’s reputation as a human nature pessimist seems deserved if we read some of his best-known lines out of context. The generality of men, he declares in his Prince, are ‘ungrateful, fickle pretenders and dissemblers, evaders of danger, eager for gain’ (Machiavelli 1998: 17). On the other side, in The Prince and other works, Machiavelli spends a great deal of time examining human capacities that allow people to contain corruption and to build far better – even excellent – political orders. Among these are abilities to think far ahead and consider the consequences of present actions; to consider how one’s unchecked desires can harm oneself and others; to study the world and other people, and understand how they necessarily constrain one’s own projects; and to foster creative capacities to think beyond what is and what has been, and imagine ‘what can reasonably exist’ (Machiavelli 1996b: 257–60).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 13

23/10/18 12:44 PM

14

erica benner

Machiavelli associates these self-critical yet constructive capacities with the qualities he calls virtù.4 They are not entirely innate but have to be developed through education and hard work. His understanding of virtù is anti-perfectionist and antiaristocratic. He treats very few historical or contemporary individuals as paragons of virtuoso excellence, and even they are far from perfect.5 The most important kind of virtù is that found among ordinary citizens or whole peoples, fostered with the help of well-crafted institutions and laws. Though legislators should ‘presuppose that all men are bad’ by nature and assume that human ‘malignity’ is a constant threat to political life, their aim should be to reduce the degrees of badness in people’s outward actions. This, for Machiavelli, is the work of laws that help ‘make men good’ by placing limits on each person’s freedom (Machiavelli 1996a: I.3). And the capacity to make self-improving laws is as much part of human nature as malignità. Far from supporting a draconian approach to legislation, Machiavelli uses the presupposition of badness to call for moderate punishments for most crimes, and to stress the value of rigorous, transparent judicial procedures. A prince who studies human nature well and knows his own limits, we read in the Prince, will ‘be slow to believe and to move’ when dealing with people accused of crimes; ‘nor should he make himself feared, and he should proceed in a temperate mode with prudence and humanity’. And ‘if he also needs to proceed against someone’s life, he must do it when there is suitable justification and manifest cause’, or his subjects’ natural indignation will rise against him (Machiavelli 1998: 17). Machiavelli’s desire to encourage human nature’s constructive potential gives even his dark-toned Prince an upbeat air, leaving readers with an exhilarating sense of humanity’s creative political potential. Hobbes’s account of human nature contains a similar mix of pessimistic and constructive elements. On the bleaker side, he posits as ‘a general inclination of all mankind, a perpetual and restless desire of power after power, that ceaseth only in death’, and sets out three main ‘causes of quarrel’ in human life: competition, diffidence and the desire for glory (Hobbes 1996: 11, 13). On the other side, ‘Reason is no less of the nature of man than passion, and is the same in all men’ (Hobbes 1994: 15). Though people’s passions too often overpower their reason, Hobbes insists that most individuals are able to distinguish desires that are rational – above all, ‘life, health, and . . . so far as it can be done, security of future time’ – from those that aim at merely apparent or fleetingly attractive goods (Hobbes 1991: 2, 6). He holds out some hope that efforts like his to throw a spotlight on rational or ‘real’ goods might move people to take bold peace-seeking measures. Hobbes’s moderate optimism is mainly rooted in his account of human reason, but it finds further support in his view that most people have ‘desire of good to another’, or what he calls benevolence, good will, charity and kindness (Hobbes 1996: 6). Contrary to a common misperception, Hobbes does not see human passions and desires as altogether egoistic. He does see Christian love-thy-neighbour teachings as ineffectual unless they are allied with purely rational motives for seeking peace: chiefly, the desire for self-preservation. But natural dispositions to seek good for others can give support to peace-seeking efforts, even if the others one cares most about are only close friends and relations. Since Thucydides’ only known work is a history of a war that ended disastrously for Athenians and all of Greece, it is tempting to read him as a thoroughgoing pessimist.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 14

23/10/18 12:44 PM

human nature

15

Viewed from one side, his history of the Peloponnesian War is a fine-grained study of the many decisions – some reckless, others seemingly brilliant, or at any rate couched in brilliant rhetoric – that drove Greeks to fight other Greeks for more than two decades, to the detriment of all concerned. As a portrait of human nature seen through the prism of war, Thucydides’ work shows how ambitious cravings and fears can produce terrible conflicts out of seemingly trifling quarrels, and then become so grotesquely magnified in the course of conflict that they blot out peace-seeking reason. Politics here seldom looks like a rational or constructive activity. Inside democratic Athens it is effectively the rule of one overconfident leader, Pericles, then after his death a nasty, brutal competition between rabble-rousing demagogues. Warring Greek states continue to observe customary protocols and laws governing their relations but interpret them in self-serving ways or find pretexts for violating established norms. Soon, common standards of conduct have been so badly shredded that the Athenians stop paying lip service to them, declaring to a conquered people, the Melians, that might is right and winners need not take account of justice. ‘You know as well as we know’, Thucydides has them say, ‘that what is just is considered in human arguments only when the necessity on both sides is equal, and that the powerful exact what they can, while the weak yield what they must’ (Thucydides 2003: V.59). Human drives that destroy peace – especially philotimia (ambition) and pleonexia (the quest for more than one’s share of power, wealth or other goods) – triumph over all the better parts of human nature that Thucydides lets readers glimpse from time to time. Yet he shows just enough of these parts, struggling harder to reverse the rot as the war goes on, to temper his history’s pessimistic overtones. His first pages tell us that after centuries of war and disunity, the Greeks had, not long ago, started calling themselves ‘Hellenes’, acknowledging with this common name a sense of community or koine that was rooted in shared language, religion and customs but also had strong affective dimensions. However hard-won and fragile this common Greekness was, Thucydides suggests, it had proved beneficial for a time, and could perhaps be recovered (Thucydides 2003: I.2–19). He has a handful of individuals try to stop the onset of war, and later the decay of humane standards under pressure of war. Sparta’s king, Archidamus, ‘a man reputed to be both sagacious and prudent’, anticipates clearly its long-term costs, while an otherwise unknown Athenian, Diodotus, reminds vengeful fellow-citizens that conquered people will keep revolting and weaken their conqueror’s position if they are treated too harshly (Thucydides 2003: I.80–5, III.42–51). Though pleonexia defeats the old Greek virtue of sôphrosunê (wise temperance) in the end, Thucydides’ history reveals as much about human beings’ extensive – if deplorably underexercised – capacities for self-restraint as it does about their talent for self-destruction. For Thucydides and his translator Hobbes, nothing epitomises the ambivalence of human nature more than language or logos, a word often translated as both ‘speech’ and ‘reason’. Human speech is both a basic cause of strife and the essential means of moderating it. Language is the greatest and most dangerous of human inventions. On the one hand, as Hobbes writes, language is the principal means through which people ‘devise errors’ and spread them far and wide. With its power to seduce, abuse logic and misrepresent reality, speech ensures that ‘man errs more widely and dangerously than can other animals’; he can ‘teach what he knows to be false’ or ‘lie and render the minds

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 15

23/10/18 12:44 PM

16

erica benner

of men hostile to the conditions of society and peace’ (Hobbes 1991: 10, 3). On the other hand, ‘the most noble and profitable invention’ of human ingenuity was that of Speech . . . whereby men register their Thoughts . . . and declare them to one another for mutuall utility and conversation; without which, there had been amongst men, neither Common-wealth, nor Society, nor Contract, nor Peace, no more than amongst Lyons, Bears, and Wolves. (Hobbes 1996: 4) In their different ways, Thucydides, Hobbes and Machiavelli all try to warn readers about the many ways that language can deform perceptions of reality. At the same time, they insist on the need for people to agree on the meanings and proper uses of words. Without them, we could scarcely speak of reality or truth at all. But we need these words and concepts to remind us, at minimum, of the need to seek some common ground in intellectual and political discussions, even if we dispute their exact content.

Determinism and Unilateral Realism But if classical realists are not as pessimistic as some modern realists suggest, there is another kind of human nature pessimism that may seem to capture their positions more accurately. Instead of stressing human ‘badness’ or conflict-making qualities, it says that even if human beings happened to be rational peace-loving creatures, they could not always seek peace because the pressures that make for conflict are stronger than human wills. One version of this argument is what political philosophers call value pluralism. It claims that political conflict is inevitable because people have irreducibly diverse and conflicting values and conceptions of the good (Berlin 1991). A more specifically political kind of determinism gained popularity from the early nineteenth century on, particularly in the wake of Napoleon’s incursions into Germany. Deploring his divided country’s military helplessness, the young philosopher G. W. F. Hegel urged Germans to shake off their pacific provincialism and realise that, unless they armed themselves, playing the same power-political games as the greater powers around them, they would soon lose their last scraps of independence (Hegel 1999). Later realists tend to describe the pressures of realpolitik as ‘structural’: the inherently competitive nature of politics or interstate relations makes conflict a constant threat to individual and state security, and makes the pursuit of ideals of the good life a luxury that few can afford. To modern realists looking for a classical thinker who advances something like structural realism, Hobbes seems the most obvious candidate. For one thing, his philosophy of man is mainly determinist: he treats material bodies and their motions as the most evident human realities, and states outright that people have only a narrow margin of freedom in their actions. His political theory too lends itself readily to a structural determinist reading, especially at the international level. Rational people, Hobbes declares, have no choice but to seek peace, and the only way to secure it is by agreeing to submit to an absolute sovereign. Since Hobbes seems to favour plural sovereigns over any form of ‘universal monarchy’, some readers infer that relations among sovereign states must have the same features as relations among individuals in his state of nature: endless mutual suspicion, treaty violations and struggles for advantage, with each party claiming that they have no choice but to act like egoists.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 16

23/10/18 12:44 PM

human nature

17

Yet this kind of rigid determinist account ignores one of Hobbes’s key points: namely, that to escape the state of nature, as reason requires them to do, people have to make several important choices between more and less collaborative political arrangements. First, people who inhabit a state of nature have to take the biggest step of deciding whether to keep up their state of war or to escape it by contracting for peace. If they choose peace, they then have to decide what form of sovereign to create: a monarch who rules them as subjects, or an assembly that governs them as citizens. After that, the sovereign, whether human being or assembly, has to make hard choices – on a daily basis – about whether to legislate and govern in accordance with the laws of nature or to follow his or her own inclinations, passions, desires, aversions. While Hobbes takes no strong sides on the choice between one-person sovereign or sovereign assembly, he could not be clearer in stating that there is only one sensible choice regarding the other two options. Reason commands people to put aside their conflicts and covenant for peace; and it urges sovereigns to take the laws of nature as their own higher law, commanded by reason and God. The laws of nature enjoin individuals and sovereigns constantly to seek peace, put aside demands for a greater share of liberty than they would allow others, honour agreements, strive to accommodate themselves to the rest, avoid showing hatred and contempt to others, and conscientiously seek arbitration to resolve their quarrels (Hobbes 1996: 14–16). These laws strongly discourage the kinds of unilateral, me-first realism that seem unavoidable when people imagine that they have no choice but to put their own advantage ahead of others’ reasonable concerns. The laws view the needs of peace from a non-egoistic standpoint, without allowing individuals or states to abandon concerns about self-preservation. They imply, in fact, that a politics of unilateral self-help is a singularly unrealistic means of securing the basic human goods of life, health and future security. Hobbes calls the laws of nature ‘Immutable and Eternall’ rules, ‘dictates of reason and Theorems . . . delivered in the word of God, that by right commandeth all things’ (Hobbes 1996: 15). Since those laws are not the product of human agreements, they lack the material force of civil laws; there is no political body that can enforce them. But this does not mean they are toothless, for Hobbes says it is patently self-destructive to ignore them. A sovereign’s daily decisions to obey or disregard the laws of nature are momentous, then. The commonwealth’s long-term safety and wellbeing depend on them, far more than on the initial decision to form an absolute sovereign. If sovereigns choose wisely and let the laws of nature guide them, they will do their fallible best to devise civil laws and policies that are clement rather than harsh, and founded on transparent justice and equity rather than tyrannical self-will. In international relations they will practise self-restraint, keep their promises, conscientiously use diplomacy and arbitration before resorting to force, and respect other states’ freedom, aware that these are the most realistic ways to preserve the general benefits of peace. The necessity to choose and take responsibility for one’s choices, then, is at the heart of Hobbes’s theory. This belies the supposedly Hobbesian notion that individuals and states are locked in a vast, mechanical system where units struggling to survive have no choice but to look out for themselves, cooperating only in situations where this helps their own cause. While human beings’ physical make-up and natural inclinations make them act in predictably egoistic ways, they also have a small measure of freedom to choose not to act on all their impulsions. It is another question whether

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 17

23/10/18 12:44 PM

18

erica benner

people are likely to use their modest freedom well. As a close student of Thucydides and observer of his own times, Hobbes was inclined to think that they seldom do. Nevertheless, if cunning orators and religious fanatics do not lead them too far astray, their natural reason gives them the basic resources they need to improve their political conditions.6 Many modern realists have also read Thucydides as a structural determinist.7 Extrapolating from various passages, they think he implies that all political bodies, whether small Greek poleis or large modern states, are forced to be wary of all other states and to calibrate their relative power constantly. If any state grows too powerful, the structural realist Thucydides implies, it poses an existential threat to others, even if they share culture and interests or have no history of conflicts. But interpreters who scour Thucydides’ pages searching for structural causes of war overlook the general, anti-determinist tenor of his history. No writer more vividly describes the unforced choices that led to a war that Athenians were eager to provoke, while the Spartans, ignoring the cautionary counsels of their king, Archidamus, let themselves be provoked. Later attempts to make peace were thwarted not by structural necessities but by collective and individual decisions, often spurred by dazzling speakers like Pericles and his nephew Alcibiades, who persuaded voters to back their ambitious war aims. By taking readers straight into the action, letting them hear leaders’ speeches and witness citizens’ reactions, Thucydides implies that things might have gone differently, had one speaker been a little more (or less) persuasive, or if the fickle fortunes of battle had been other than they were. All this makes Thucydides’ narrative far more sensitive to contingencies and choices than most structural realist arguments. He is outstanding at describing the mentality of people who behave and speak like structural realists but does not suggest that they are right to do so. Athenians and other Greeks frequently declare that they are under a natural necessity to acquire as much empire as they can. Sparta’s Archidamus warns his countrymen not to adopt this deterministic mentality in opposing the Athenians and spells out options that remain open. Move slowly, he tells his hawkish council. Use diplomacy and long-established methods of arbitration, and do not let anger, fear or pride force you into a costly and destructive war (Thucydides 2003: I.80–5). Hobbes’s laws of nature generalise much the same advice. Thucydides’ account of the urgent, escalating competition between Athens and Sparta vividly evokes Athenian ambitions and Spartan fears of falling behind, as well as widespread Greek fears of being ‘enslaved’ by other Greeks or foreigners. With understated empathy, the historian probes the deeper reasons for these fears. Fifty years before the Peloponnesian War, Athenians had been forced to fight the Persians alone after the rest of Greece had been conquered or paralysed with terror (Thucydides 2003: I.89–117). The trauma of the Persian Wars made a policy of unilateral self-help seem reasonable to many Athenians, as did the afterglow of their unexpected victory. And yet, Thucydides’ narrative implies, the unilateral efforts of Athens to build a formidable navy and the city’s sudden outburst of imperial expansionism were neither necessary nor prudent. Of our three classical realists, Machiavelli is most explicit about the role of free choice in human affairs. Like Hobbes, he admits that human beings have, at most, a tiny margin of freedom in politics and other fields of activity. Pondering the uncontrollable

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 18

23/10/18 12:44 PM

human nature

19

powers of fortune and the constant upheavals in political life, he is often inclined, he tells readers of The Prince, to doubt that deliberate action can achieve anything at all.8 But having indulged these gloomy thoughts, Machiavelli says, he decides that human beings have powers of their own that can limit fortune’s worst effects. For ‘it is not as if men, when times are quiet, could not provide’ against fortune’s floods ‘with dykes and dams in such a mode that when they rise later, either they go by a canal or their impetus is neither so harmful nor so licentious’ (Machiavelli 1998: 25). The modest powers of free will enable humans to make order where nature provides none, and to ‘regulate’ fortune without pretending to master her completely (Benner 2013: Ch. 25). Freedom can, of course, be used badly or well, in accordance with virtù or not. Virtuous people do not wait for disaster to strike but think and work ahead, building dykes and dams. People who underestimate their freedom let themselves be carried away by the floods and call them ‘necessity’; people who overestimate their power lash out violently when trouble strikes, though their arrogance helped fuel it. The idea that human beings always have choices, even under harsh necessity, is also the introductory message of Machiavelli’s Discourses. The most realistic way to deal with pressures or obstacles that human beings cannot entirely master is to use one’s small freedom judiciously and impose new, manmade necessities on unruly nature. The best necessities, Machiavelli suggests, are not imposed aggressively on yielding matter. They are orders and laws (ordini e leggi) that work with their raw material to form lasting political arrangements where people enjoy freedom and security (Machiavelli 1996a: I.1 and II.2; see also Benner 2009: Ch. 4). Manmade necessities cannot transform the raw material of a geographic ‘site’, or that of human nature, into something else. Human virtù only regulates; it cannot magically eliminate natural harshness from landscapes or badness from humans. Machiavelli’s most realistic legislators and leaders – Aeneas, Camillus, Fabius Maximus, Hiero – respect the human nature they seek to regulate and know their own limits.9 They seek to draw the best out of difficult terrains, to check bad ‘humours’ without violently repressing them, and to motivate virtuous deeds and dispositions in people they know are only human, like themselves. This anti-determinist position seems to make Machiavelli inhospitable to any kind of structural realism. His works do contain memorable lines that might seem to gesture in that direction. Since human nature has so many bad qualities, he says, ‘a man who wants to make a profession of good in all regards must come to ruin among so many who are not good’ and must therefore learn to be not-good as well (Machiavelli 1998: 15). If we observe that political life tends to have a surfeit of not-good conduct, we might conclude that Machiavelli is hinting at the ‘autonomy of politics’ thesis: the view that the structure of political competition and bargaining forces people to engage in more brutal types of conflict than is necessary outside politics.10 But this goes well beyond what Machiavelli ever says or implies, and runs against the anti-determinist thrust of his thought. He generally says that human nature operates in exactly the same way in domestic politics, international relations and every other walk of life.11 His most thoughtful arguments further say that the surest way to build lasting power is by making ‘partners’ or ‘confederates’ with consenting others to defend common freedoms, and to make laws and institutions that give everyone a fair share of authority, rather than seeking unilaterally to dominate.12

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 19

23/10/18 12:44 PM

20

erica benner

Political Prudence and Morality Following closely on this last point, a common realist claim is that morality and political prudence are two very different things. Some forms of morality concern what is good for one’s own soul, whether in Plato’s sense of psychic health or the religious sense of ‘what pleases God’. But for Plato, most traditional religions and other moral philosophers, moral reasoning is primarily concerned with the correct treatment of others, whether by actively pursuing their good or simply treating them with respect and justice. Many modern realists argue that politics is not, at bottom, about the health of either one’s own or one’s city’s soul, or about treating others well. Its priorities are the safety and welfare of a particular polity and its citizens. Sometimes, these priorities are best served by treating others as moral principles of justice, or by seeking to liberate, enlighten or save the souls of others. But sometimes, such moral imperatives conflict with the needs of security and other distinctly political interests. When this happens, realists argue, hard choices have to be made between doing what is needed for safety or advantage and what morality requires. The more responsible choice for people acting in a political capacity, they say, is to put the safety and welfare of one’s own state or political cause ahead of morality. Some realists are happy to call this rational egoism; others call it the ‘morality of partiality’ or, borrowing from Max Weber, the ‘ethics of responsibility’ (Weber 1992). It is unclear, however, that any of our classical realists sees political prudence as an essentially different kind of practical reasoning from morality. Hobbes might appear to do this when he distinguishes sharply between civil laws established by the sovereign and the moral laws of nature, and acknowledges that they often conflict. Even if subjects judge that the sovereign’s civil laws violate the laws of nature, Hobbes says, civil laws have absolute authority over the outward actions of subjects. This seems to affirm the realist view that political rationality and moral reasoning are separate, and the further view that the latter must give way to the former in politics. But in this potential clash of two basic realities – the moral reality of the laws of nature and the manmade, political reality of civil laws – Hobbes is quite clear about which is more profoundly real, more in accord with ‘Immutable and Eternall’ truths about human existence. ‘For Injustice, Ingratitude, Arrogance, Pride, Iniquity . . . and the rest, can never be made lawfull,’ even when politicians declare them necessary and rename them as virtues; since ‘it can never be that Warre shall preserve life, and Peace destroy it’ (Hobbes 1996: 15). The artificial authority of the sovereign and civil laws is necessary for peace and safety, but that authority is only rational and robust if sovereigns make their civil laws conform to the laws of nature. They fail to do this at their peril, and to the harm of their commonwealth. Clashes between laws of nature and civil laws are not clashes between two equally valid kinds of law that belong to different spheres; nor are they clashes of incommensurable values. One is more fully law-like than the other, more rational, more eternal – and a far better guide for dealing with the most basic political realities. Thucydides and Machiavelli too make readers reflect on the deep connections between morality and political prudence. Unlike more obviously ‘idealistic’ theories, they do not set out timeless moral principles then express hopes that politics everywhere will strive to satisfy them. Starting from historical situations of political stress and moral confusion, they try to view political choices from the standpoint of people

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 20

23/10/18 12:44 PM

human nature

21

desperate to survive or to win. Thucydides shows how political rhetoric can debase tried-and-tested moral standards until they come to look useless or resemble their opposites: ‘reckless audacity came to be regarded as courageous loyalty to party, prudent hesitation as specious cowardice, moderation as a cloak for unmanly weakness’, and the like (Thucydides 2003: III.82). Machiavelli often seems to treat each person’s or state’s advantage as the ultimate touchstone of political prudence. The quickest and easiest way for princes to increase their power, he says in The Prince, is to know when to put aside moral scruples, practise strategic deception, be prepared to break oaths and generally be ‘not good’ (Machiavelli 1998: 15–18). But his colourful examples of princes who followed this easy road – notably, the infamous Cesare Borgia and his father, Pope Alexander VI – present a spectacle of high-flying, hard-crashing political disasters. As Machiavelli says quite clearly, amoral shortcuts may help you acquire power ‘easily’ but cannot help you secure it (Machiavelli 1998: 7; see Benner 2013: Ch. 7). In fact, they make you more vulnerable because no one trusts political leaders who put their own yardsticks of prudence above common standards of conduct. Such people make enemies at home and abroad. If they respond by adopting ever more ruthless measures, they end up ruining their states. Political actors who want to secure their state do better to follow maxims that are suspiciously close to moral standards. ‘Victories are never so clear’, Machiavelli writes in The Prince, ‘that the winner does not have to have some respect, especially for justice’ (Machiavelli 1998: 21). In political thought and practice, of course, morality and prudence can come apart. But politics and human life are far better off when they stick together.

Notes 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8.

9. 10. 11. 12.

For recent discussions, see Williams (2005); Philp (2007); and Geuss (2008). See Ch. 4 (Bew) in this volume. See Benner (2017a: Ch. 6); McQueen (2017: Ch. 3). See Benner (2013: Chs 1 and 6). Here Machiavelli followed Greek and Roman writers, notably Plutarch’s Lives. On orators misleading peoples, see Hobbes (1990; 1996: 7, 17). See Ch. 9 (Morley) in this volume. This is often interpreted as no-structure determinism rather than the structural kind; it seems to suggest a world in constant flux, where human beings are the playthings of larger, arbitrary forces. See Benner (2013). See Philp (2007: Ch. 2). On the international implications of Machiavelli’s arguments about human nature, see Benner (2017b) and Benner (2009: esp. Ch. 12). See Machiavelli (1989) for one of his less well-known arguments about this.

Bibliography Benner, E. (2009), Machiavelli’s Ethics, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Benner, E. (2013), Machiavelli’s Prince: A New Reading, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Benner, E. (2014), ‘Machiavelli’s ironies: The language of praise and blame in the Prince’, Social Research: An International Quarterly, vol. 81, no. 2.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 21

23/10/18 12:44 PM

22

erica benner

Benner, E. (2017a), Be Like the Fox: Machiavelli’s Lifelong Quest for Freedom, London: Penguin/Allen Lane. Benner, E. (2017b), ‘The necessity to be not-good: Rethinking Machiavelli’s Realism’, in Nadia Urbinati, David Johnston and Camila Vergara (eds), Liberty and Conflict: Machiavelli on Politics and Power, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Berlin, I. (1991), The Crooked Timber of Humanity, London: Fontana. Gentz, F. (2010), ‘Über Politische Freiheit und das Verhältnis derselben zur Regierung’, in Hans Jörg Hennecke (ed.), Revolution und Gleichgewicht, Leipzig: Manuscriptum. Geuss, R. (2008), Philosophy and Real Politics, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Hegel, G. W. F. (1999), ‘Die Verfassung Deutschlands’, in G. W. F. Hegel, Werke: Frühe Schriften, vol. 1, Frankfurt: Suhrkamp, pp. 451–620. Hobbes, T. (1990), Behemoth or The Long Parliament, ed. and introduction by Stephen Holmes, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Hobbes, T. (1991), Man and Citizen (De Homine and De Cive), ed. and introduction by Bernard Gert, Indianapolis: Hackett. Hobbes, T. (1994), Human Nature and De Corpore Politico, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Hobbes, T. (1996), Leviathan, ed. by Richard Tuck, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Hobbes, T. (1998), On the Citizen [De Cive], ed. by Richard Tuck and Michael Silverthorne, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Machiavelli, N. (1989), ‘A discourse on remodelling the government of Florence’, in Machiavelli: The Chief Works, ed. by A. Gilbert, vol. 1, pp. 101–15. Machiavelli, N. (1996a), Discourses on Livy, translated by Harvey C. Mansfield and Nathan Tarcov, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Machiavelli, N. (1996b), Machiavelli and his Friends: Their Personal Correspondence, translated and ed. by James B. Atkinson and David Sices, DeKalb: University of Northern Illinois Press. Machiavelli, N. (1998), The Prince, 2nd edn, translated and introduction by Harvey C. Mansfield, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. McQueen, A. (2017), Political Realism in Apocalyptic Times, New York: Cambridge University Press. Philp, M. (2007), Political Conduct, Cambridge, MA, and London: Harvard University Press. Thucydides (2003), History of the Peloponnesian War, vols 1–4, Loeb Classical Library, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Weber, M. (1992), Politik als Beruf, Stuttgart: Reclam. Williams, B. (2005), In the Beginning was the Deed: Realism and Moralism in Political Argument, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 22

23/10/18 12:44 PM

2 Political Realism and the Western Mind Exploring an alternative based upon ‘relational rationality’ and ‘Confucian improvement’ Zhao Tingyang

Chapter Overview

H

ere, Zhao Tingyang develops a meta-political reflection on political realism, arguing, in effect, that political realism does not work well unless it is idealistic, which is the same thing as saying that political idealism cannot work unless it is realistic; this leaves us to conclude that political realism should be better understood methodologically, regardless of its values. Furthermore, he delivers a ‘detective study’ that casts suspicion on the very concepts of ‘rationality’ and the ‘political game’, showing us that individual rationality does not in fact fulfil the possible applications of human reason, and that the making of the rational political game qua ‘game’ logically preceded the taking of any rational strategy in an irrational game of the ‘non-cooperative’ or zero-sum. Finally, Zhao claims, first, that politics should be the art of changing hostility into hospitality; second, that relational rationality, based upon the Confucian conception of circulating relationship, is the more reasonable application of human reason, given that it is more strongly risk-averse in how it puts the minimisation of mutual hostility above the maximisation of self-interests; and third, that relational realism, based upon the use of relational rationality, theoretically anticipates an optimistic ‘Confucian Improvement’, which works to the benefit of each and everyone. And how much better this must be than ‘Pareto’s Improvement’, which can only seek to lessen the reduction in each person’s welfare. *

*

*

A political realism without some measure of idealism would be shortsighted, while a political idealism without any grounds in reality would be useless. The idea of identifying a pure realism, then, would appear to be flawed from the outset. And yet it is in the very meaning and popular understanding of realism that it must be idealism’s opposite. Nothing is quite as it seems, then, and if we are to continue to speak of and apply realism in the world, then we must have good reasons to do so. For example: Does a political realist always rationally sacrifice his or her ideal for a realistic interest? It depends. And it depends on how we understand ‘interest’ and ‘rationality’.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 23

23/10/18 12:44 PM

24

zhao tingyang

The Puzzle of Political Realism Political realism is linked, though not directly so, to the metaphysical realism that believes in a reality independent of subjectivity. It is interesting to note that metaphysical realism can itself only ever really be the subjective conception of the independent reality-in-itself, for it is in the very nature of its conceptual status that it cannot offer objective knowledge of that reality. In the same way, political realism has always had to stand at a distance or remove from the objective comprehension of political reality, for its realpolitik must inevitably tell a much thinner story than the living reality of our experiences, knowledge and possible strategies. Ontologically speaking, and notwithstanding whether it is beyond us or with us, reality is always so much more than simply that which is. Rather, it is the becoming that always implies the not-yet – the implied and uncertain futures, and the possible worlds. And possibilities are the ontological components of reality. Admittedly, political realism might boast of its lucid insight into the problem of power, yet because it will not at the same time offer any effective solutions to power, it tends only to encourage hostilities and deepen disputes and clashes. The point is that the interactive complexity of live political reality means that it is always outstepping the reduction and causal analysis that would pin it down. Instead, it is in the peculiar nature of a political problem that it expects and invites a plurality of solutions rather than only one correct answer. This is the same as saying that the political must be the creative art of making order of the human world rather than the unreliable application of science’s ‘one way’. In fact, the very concept of ‘political science’ has an odd sound to it, when you think about it. Given all of this, we would probably do better to add a question mark straightaway to political realism. What is political realism? Or what is it not? In its usual configuration, the Realist ‘tradition’, as it runs from Thucydides to Machiavelli, and from Hobbes to Morgenthau, indicates that it should be considered apart from – and in opposition to – the ideology-oriented tradition of political idealism, to include most prominently liberalism, Marxism, radicalism and constructivism. Yet who would deny that Karl Marx or Carl Schmitt could be somewhat realistic, although they were essentially idealists in their pursuits? Certainly, Kant would prove an idealist for his unrealistic idea of perpetual peace, which never had much chance of success; and then Habermas, too, for his utopian communicative rationality, which was never going to be much help in reducing any Huntingtonian clashes of civilisations. And it would be even more confusing to try to measure Confucianism by the concepts of realism or idealism, for Confucianism is very realistic in practice yet at the same time decidedly idealistic in its pursuit of the ideal harmony of all peoples in terms of a universal familyship – a best possible world that ever seems too far away to reach. It would be better to say that we keep to the terms of realism and idealism because we have become used to them, even though they may muddle and misdirect the motives of our thinking. Perhaps, then, it would be best of all for us to give up on trying to identify a ‘pure’ political realism and turn instead to a methodological political realism: that is, to a political realism defined in terms of its methodology rather than its values. This methodological political realism would generally suggest that: 1. Political agents or actors are selfish by nature. 2. The world has been an anarchy, which recognises no authority above the sovereignty of a nation.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 24

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the western mind

25

3. Political agents or actors are exemplifying rationality when they seek to maximise their exclusive or privileged self-interest, such that 4. This rationality is displayed in the logical consistency with which these political agents or actors can be seen to rank their preferences, so that 5. They must all ultimately struggle to dominate the means and execution of power in order to ensure their survival and greater interests. At this point it might amuse us to notice that methodological political realism therefore shares its survivalist logic with the animal kingdom at large, except that the human mind is so much more complicated and troublesome than that which we find in a ‘nonrational’ animal. It will so often confuse itself with attachment to conflicting desires or inconsistent but equally dear goals. We might be tempted to say that, from the practical point of view, the human mind is actually a good deal less consistent in its ranking of preferences than the other animals, whose minds are simpler but more realistic and rational. No wonder, then, that political realism has always reminded us of the Hobbesian state of nature! This does not mean, however, that we are accusing political realism of theoretical poverty. On the contrary, political realism is more robust and – one has to admit – more honest (more true to itself) than any other doctrine. Consider American President Trump’s ‘America first’ slogan, which, although apparently vulgar, childish and alienating, is none the less the truthful articulation of the kind of political realism that considers the national interest to be of the first importance. Political realism is not a political fallacy, but it can certainly become the proof of what too close a commitment to the logic of individual rationality will lead to. This kind of radical political realism has always been notorious because, by taking to itself the right to use all and any means to hold power and pursue self-interest, it seems to put itself beyond, and even contrary to, the concept of morality. Machiavelli’s famous – and famously clear – separation of politics from morality might, for all of its cold, hard dispassion, be the explanation of some essential truth of the political. Yet whatever it achieves in this direction must then come at the expense of a final justification of its infamous use of power and strategies, for the plain fact is that Machiavelli’s gleeful abandonment of morality runs counter to what we can surmise about its eonsold relationship to politics. Machiavelli can seem convincing in the moment of reading him, but only because his schemes and suggestions describe the immediate and indisputable advantage to be had from abusing the morality of others around you – as if you were invited to dinner at a friend’s home and made off with the cutlery. Yet the political strategies and discourses with which the world has become familiar very clearly could not have begun and prospered in this way, which is suggested, in any case, in the fact that they had to antedate Machiavelli in order for him to be able to turn on them. No, they could have endured and developed into custom and law only because they were the strategies and discourses that met fewest problems when coinciding with morality in the long run. It is an interesting fact, then, that the universally respected moralities of the world usually do coincide with the rational strategies of best efficiency (of course, there are exceptions but notably few). In other words, most of the widely recognised moralities can also be shown to be Evolutionarily Stable Strategies (ESS)1 because they are based upon the long-established common sense or the repeated experience of gain and loss, reward and revenge, and security and risk across the long history of civilisation. Some very early moralities proved ineffective on these grounds and were abandoned, while others flourished and developed into normative rules.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 25

23/10/18 12:44 PM

26

zhao tingyang

To recap: because the method of methodological political realism is always to give primacy to individual rationality, it can ironically and paradoxically fall foul of the wider, universal moralities of human community and association, and because of the inevitable push-back and resistance that this must then generate, we can say that this kind of realism must actually become unrealistic with regard to how it hopes to operate. Yet, in my opinion, this is still not as disastrous overall as what happens when pure and fundamental idealism struggles militantly for religious or ideological values. In some cases, it becomes rather difficult to tell realism apart from idealism. For instance, if we are to say (following on the above) that a great power like America has been ‘unrealistically’ pursuing its realistic interests, are we then talking about realism at all? Or if a big country like China has been making realistic efforts for its idealistic concept, should it then be called idealism? It is hard to say, mainly due to the vagueness of the key words ‘interest’ or ‘rationality’, which have never been clearly defined. For example, consider how ‘interest’ indicates that we pursue our lives according to either ‘wants’ or ‘needs’. If defined in terms of wants, then interest inflates to become equal to all things (because humans are greedy!), which renders it useless as a term of political analysis. By the same token, if defined in terms of needs, interest comes to refer to the basic goods necessary for survival, which drops it far short of a term that would help us to explain the meaning of life. It seems we have rather to let the concept of interest remain open or flexible. This is not to mention the deeper, epistemological paradox that underlies our knowledge – something like what Plato presented in his dialogue, Meno: that we can never know what we really want since we can never know it a priori. Short of possessing this a priori knowledge of what would truly and finally satisfy us, the human conception of ‘interest’ cannot but become the full list of every conceivable want, past and future. But that is understandable because who does not want everything? If this is not to become an impasse, then, we must say instead that the problem that really matters is the rational ranking of preferences. The vagueness of ‘interest’ rather pales in comparison to the problem of how we should deploy reason in order to arrive at the optimal, political and economic ranking of preferences. We are all humans, so we supposedly share a common reason, yet the question of how best we should use that reason – the question of rationality – is one that may admit of different answers. In light of game theory, to cite one prominent answer, political realism could be defined as the rational–strategic thinking as we find it approved in the theory of ‘the game’.2 Yet, as I see it, some serious problems underlie this theory. Consider, for example, its chief operating premise, to the effect that every player will think and act rationally – if he or she is not insane. The problem here is not its arbitrary exclusion of any irrational actions, as has often been criticised (consider how many of the players will simply act imprudently, and how that will have the same net effect against rationality as outright insanity), but rather the reduction of the possible rationalities to the individual rationality. This makes me greatly suspicious! In my opinion, it would be a failure akin to Russell’s reduction of mathematics to logic: that is to say, to delimit the concept of human rationality to the calculus of individual rationality is to disregard the relational rationality that has been making individual rationality possible all along. This relational rationality is based upon traditional wisdom in its long and rich history. It reminds us that the true meaning and origin of rationality is not the isolated, calculating mind (the computer or the machine) but the fact that we can never know for certain what the other mind is thinking. Thus, we are

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 26

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the western mind

27

forced into hedging; and so are they; and we enter into a game that afterwards (and only afterwards) comes to be the definition of individual rationality. Unfortunately, this signal truth is habitually neglected or even rejected by modern individualism. I can explain this further in the following way. Suppose that we accept the concept of individual rationality as well as Socrates’ proposition that ‘no one errs knowingly’. We would likely then be trapped in a paradoxical situation: our ranking of preferences can be rational ‘if-and-only-if’ we have good knowledge of their weighting, yet to have this knowledge would be tantamount – on David Hume’s argument – of having knowledge of the future, which we patently do not have. Our true situation, and dilemma, is much more like what Jorge Luis Borges described as the ‘forking paths of time’,3 in which we are doomed to discover that our supposedly rational choices were made blindly – that they amount to the sum of what ‘yesterday’ cannot know about ‘tomorrow’; or, to adapt Socrates’ language as stated above, that we can only err ‘knowingly’. And so it proves to be beyond our capacity to decide a consistent or rational ranking of preferences, and we must wonder whether our supposedly realistic understandings of interests and strategies are merely ambiguous or illusive imaginings. Our rational calculation of costs and payoffs seems to be something that works better in mathematics than life, for in mathematics (and mathematics alone) the future is certain. For instance, one may either support Brexit or not but no one can be sure of its payoff in the future. A more serious example concerning our common future is the development of artificial intelligence, in so far as it might bring about unbearable disaster or the most brilliant success, and no one can thus be confident that it is a rational choice. The paradox is that we are forced into making meaningful calculations of the incalculable payoffs of tomorrow’s day. To my knowledge, then, there have been only two philosophers who can be called true realists: Hume and Lao Tzu. Both of them were fully cognisant of the uncertain future that implies unknowable infinity. As yet, neither empirical nor transcendental knowledge has brought us closer to knowing infinity (I am afraid Immanuel Kant has not yet solved Hume’s problem), but what we do have instead are the rational ways or approaches for dealing with the infinite future. As Lao Tzu suggests, the best rational way must be to move on like ‘water’, which always finds its flexible course. I think Hume would appreciate this metaphor. I am saying that to be rational, then, is to be rational to infinity, which is the same thing as to be reminded that it is the other mind – and what we cannot know of it – that becomes the infinite future before us. In this sense, to be rational is to be rational in relationship with others, all of which throws us back upon political realism, and the question of how realistic or unrealistic it must then become.

The Western Mind? Political realism is often thought of as being particularly characteristic of the Western mind. However, I hope that what I am saying here can cause us to question that assumption. Why should political realism not be found in other cultures, too? The British mind does admittedly seem noticeably realistic, partly due to the Scottish tradition of empiricism. But then the Western mind does not always issue in realistic strategies. On the contrary, it can be decidedly idealistic, if we consider how the two sides of the Western mind – namely, science and religion (or in place of religion, modern

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 27

23/10/18 12:44 PM

28

zhao tingyang

ideologies) – are both essentially idealistic. I hope it is not too strange for you to hear me say so of the sciences. Let me explain. What seems to be unique to the Western mind is its pursuit of absolute knowledge, or the pure episteme of the ideal object. Such an epistemological effort is idealistic. And it has become a dominant tradition of the Western mind, in spite of the parallel tradition of scepticism. Of course, sciences are also realistic, in that they strive to be practically verifiable. Yet it should be remembered that the sciences have been developed as such based upon the idealistic epistemological schemata consisting of the conceptions a priori, beyond experience, as well as the transcendental categories valid for experiences, including the ontological presupposition of the perfect Ideas (Platonic eidos as well as Euclidean geometry), formal (read therefore idealistic) logic (Aristotelian term logic as well as modern propositional logic), the general epistemological categories a priori (Kantian arguments), and the axiomatisation of mathematics, as well as algorithm and the computing of everything, etcetera. All these epistemological schemata underlying scientific thinking are, without question, idealistic, even if they work so well as to have an apparently transcendental efficiency. The sciences are thus rational but far from realistic. In other words, our knowledge is true of us, rather than true of reality in itself, since we do not have the omniscience of the infinite, as God does. And in practice, we do actually confine our knowledge to the knowable, seeing that infinite reality is too complicated to be known. The amazing thing, given all of this idealism (or ‘subjectivism’, as it is often called), is that science can work so well. Why? It is because it benefits from a great, but hidden, piece of ‘epistemological luck’. This epistemological luck comes from the fact that the only word available to physical nature in relation to our (self-conscious) search for the truth is ‘yes’, in the sense that the natural world appears to express a silent ‘yes’ whenever a scientific proposition has been proved valid in correspondence with it. No wonder, then, that the metaphysics of reality cannot abandon its questioning of being qua being or the is-ness of everything. Political realism is supposed to be the realistic political science but it cannot be an exception to this idealistic character of the Western mindset. This is something that we see, if we consider that political realism will, on occasion, take the simplified perspective of realpolitik to deal with the complicated reality of the human world in all its political, ethical, economic, religious, cultural, psychological and historical coloration. To make such a sweeping reduction is, at the very least, ambitious, if not downright idealistic. Clearly, it is not so easy to make a definite differentiation between the realistic and the idealistic. I am not playing at dialectics here. The truth is that we care more about what is true of us than of reality, which means that idealism is our first and natural inclination, and realism is something that we move to only if we can see no alternative. What is more, political realism would be found hopelessly idealistic if ‘strictly’ defined as the ‘struggle for power’ by any means (Morgenthau), with its assumption that almost all competitions are zero-sum games. The most interesting thing is that, no matter how ‘rational’ political realism is, it is unlikely to attain a scientific measure of success since it prefers hostile strategies. The secret for its bad luck (re: the epistemological good luck of above) is that the key word of human reality is ‘no!’.4 Think of it like this. There had never been any problems of life before the human mind invented that magic word ‘no!’. With the advent of that word, human life was liberated from its hitherto natural course, for it is this word of negation that produces free will and free

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 28

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the western mind

29

will’s problems. I mean that all political or social problems have come from the initial problem that the other began to say ‘no!’. Metaphysically speaking, it is the word of negation, the ‘no!’, that has ontologically introduced possibilities beyond natural necessity (beyond law and process and instinct) into human life, so that human beings have been able to develop divergent and diverse lives, thereby creating a future that is (to use Borges’s phrase again) ‘forking’ and uncertain, rather than linear and continuous. In fact, we might even say that the future as we know it could not, by definition, have existed before this ontological enlightenment caused by the word ‘no!’, for without it, we could have no concept of a ‘future’ that might at any moment ‘swerve’ from the natural line of natural happenings. Therefore, the ontology of the human world should be focused on the ‘no!’ or the not-ness, for the reason that all manmade problems in the human world – and especially, then, in the political world – can be reduced to the very basic problem that others will disagree with us. It suggests a completely different ontology to the metaphysics of reality, in the sense that, in the latter, Being is less a question to be answered than a reconfirmed tautological answer for the world, whereas the negation, the ‘no!’, is the ontological origin of all the problems of life. Let me say, then, that within political realism as we see it in its traditional form, from Thucydides to Machiavelli, and from Hobbes to Morgenthau, we could see an ontological fallacy in that the political realists have been misled into applying the metaphysics of reality to the human world: that is, fallaciously taking the ‘yes’ for their own theories while ignoring the ‘no!’ coming back at them from their opponents. They say ‘yes’ to all that they want, then, claiming and fighting for their self-interest with unilateralist thinking, all the while ignoring the inevitable, disastrous revenge implied in the others’ disagreement. This typical, unilateral political realism has made for itself an unsolvable problem by its definition of the others as ‘negative externalities’ – a profound terminology for enemies. Its mind is thus correspondingly limited within the scope of hostile strategies to ‘win’, including war, deterrence, sanction and domination, as well as balancing, if no hope to win emerges (which would more likely lead to failures in the end because of the obvious fact that the reacting others are not passive objects, who would copy the realists’ hostile strategies or invent ‘obedient’, ‘copy-cat’ retaliating strategies). (Just consider today’s terrorism, which defeats the traditional rationality of protection and security with the ‘irrationality’ of, for example, the suicide attacker or the ‘unpredictability’ of the lone-wolf operative.) I would rather say that war is simply the failure of the political instead of the misleading statement that ‘war is the continuation of politics by other means’ (Karl von Clausewitz). The political should be an art of ‘changing hostility into hospitality’ (to quote a traditional Chinese saying). This need not imply that war can be dispensed with altogether but rather that war cannot be the solution, since its continuation would lead to more wars. In other words, hostility has little chance to be the solution to the problem of life. Could we none the less find a way to call the rational strategies in pursuit of irrational goals the ‘rational strategies’? That is a serious question. Experts have developed profound analyses of the dominating rational strategies in the non-cooperative games. Should we not say, though, that the non-cooperative games are by definition irrational? At the very least it would seem unlikely for such unilateralism and non-cooperative thinking to be rational. In respect of religion – and let us take Christianity as the example here – we are no doubt talking of high idealism. If my understanding is correct, Christianity has become

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 29

23/10/18 12:44 PM

30

zhao tingyang

the most important gene of Western culture, as strong as science, although this does not imply that every Western mind should be considered religious. Now there would be those to point out that Christianity is fading from modern life, yet I would say that its mindset, or methodological Christianity, still remains in force. In any case, it has clearly had its effect on all the major Western political schools up to now, including liberalism and most definitely including realism, in the more or less idealistic characterisation that I am giving it here. As far as I see it, four political inventions of Christianity have exerted a far-reaching influence on modern politics. The first of these is propaganda (from the injunction to spread and preach), which has developed into modern political discourses, advertisements and the media; the second is the institutionalisation and self-institutionalisation of the mind (from the sermon and from confession); the third is the mass common mind (from the believers); and the fourth, and most distinctive, is the concept of the absolute enemy (from the pagans). Before Christianity, you could talk only of temporary enemies, understood as rivals in occasional competitions. From these four political inventions of Christianity have flowed what afterwards came to be called ideologies, which are all idealistic fictions yet of great practical utility for changing the reality of the human world (take the Cold War, for instance). These political inventions have become, at least partly, the basis of nationalism, universalism, imperialism and the use of soft power in modern politics. Particularly, the nervous recognition of ‘the enemy’ has increased hostilities in the world. To be fair, it seems that liberalism as a sort of idealism has led to more international conflicts or clashes of civilisations than realism. The Europeans have produced even more amazing political inventions in modern times, such as subjectivity, sovereignty, the nation-state, nationalism, individualism and human rights. In all of these, the contribution of Christianity to the overtly ideological and idealistic mindset is clear. It has left almost no room for sheer political realism to be an exception. Compared to the pure political realism of Thucydides or Hobbes, we see now only an impure political realism that takes the cool and neat realist strategies and uses them to deal with ideologically defined enemies as well as unrealistic zero-sum games. For this reason, I repeat again that it is hard to pin down contemporary political realism since its realistic approaches are too often balanced by its unrealistic, ideological goals. Therefore, I find that I hesitate when I try to think of political realism exclusively in relation to the typical Western mind. And I want to insist that modern political realism should be better understood as nothing more than methodological realism.

Relational Rationality and Relational Realism Clearly, we now need to broaden our horizon, if we are to explain and understand political realism better. I want to suggest that a discussion about an alternative concept of rationality, as well as an alternative, non-Western political realism – let us say, the Chinese alternative – would help us to ascertain the theoretical capacity of political thinking better. Do note that what follows is meant to be an investigation into the best possible solutions to political problems instead of comparative analysis. So, I will go straight to the questions of what political rationality should be; which political game is more reasonable; and what are the ontological preconditions for the best political strategies – all of this after a brief introduction to Chinese political conceptions.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 30

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the western mind

31

It is awkward to define Chinese political doctrines or schools, either the traditional or the contemporary, in terms of the strict label of political realism or idealism. Almost all the Chinese political schools share the common pursuit of an idealistic order of the world: namely, the Tianxia Peace – literally, the peace of all-underheaven. It goes back to the unusual fact that Chinese political thinking began in the eleventh century bc with the special problem of world politics – that is, the problem of making a world – instead of the usual starting point we take today of state politics (that is, the polis). It was an extraordinary historical phenomenon, which has brought the Chinese mind to think about the political in the worldwide framework of Tianxia, meaning a politically constituted world. Therefore, Chinese political thinking cannot resist the appeal of the idealistic conception of the world order in terms of the Tianxia system rather than the international system. It means the ideal world (supposed to be good and beneficial to all peoples) should be so made to be the all-inclusive political entity, inclusive of all nations (at least in theory). In other words, the task of the political is to internalise all places of the world to make a world of all peoples, shared by all peoples and good for all peoples. The internalisation of the world, or the eradication of externality, has become the basic principle of the political, leading to strategies that seek to change hostility into hospitality, which is all a far cry from the Western recognition of absolute enemies. In this sense, the general character of Chinese political thinking could be said to be rather idealistic. Yet most of the Chinese political schools are, practically speaking, very realistic in their prudent efforts and rational strategies. They are, in fact, much more risk-averse than is usual for political realism but there were certainly two Chinese political schools that could be considered closer to typical political realism. One was the school of military strategists represented by Sun-Tzu (545 bc to 460 bc): actually, an early proponent of game theory, who was probably the first to have discussed the ‘common knowledge’ aspect of non-cooperative games, as well as the priority of the use of ‘soft power’. Military strategist that he was, Sun-Tzu claimed that war is the worst and the last strategy. Another realist school called Legalism (prevailing from the fourth to the second century bc) was indeed realistic, almost in league with Hobbes. It would develop most interesting studies on political games and social trust. One of its extremely cool doctrines claims that, no matter how immoral the rules of a game may be, it will none the less be played with eagerness and efficiency so long as its rewards and punishments are clearly defined and institutionally guaranteed. This is because the majority of people will blindly and gladly chase the accessible and reliable interests or rewards, regardless of values and ideals. The outstanding figures of the legalist school had served the Qin state as ministers or generals, and one of their policies was defined as stating that every promotion should depend only on battlefield achievements. As a result, the Qin state’s army became unbeatable. As the dominant school in ancient China, Confucianism has been the best example of the mixture of political idealism and realism. Should it be called the example of ‘realistic idealism’ or ‘idealistic realism’? It looks forward to the idealistic political project of a shared world of the familyship of all peoples, yet it works towards this project with very practical and realistic approaches. It might, therefore, be said that it promotes idealism on the condition of reality. I want to add a word more here on the Confucian discussion of the original situation by Xun Tzu (313–238 bc), which, because it so greatly predates Hobbes’s discussion,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 31

23/10/18 12:44 PM

32

zhao tingyang

will be most interesting for Western readers. Xun Tzu believed that the original situation was a societal state (instead of a ‘state of nature’), on the reasoning that the cooperation of people must be a necessary condition for the survival of any individual. His inspiring insight is known as ‘Xun Tzu’s paradox’: in other words, cooperation is necessary for everyone, but on the other hand, it could bring about conflicts. That is, cooperation could spoil itself if the distribution were to become unreasonable. ‘No one could live alone,’ says Xun Tzu, ‘so people have no other choice than to cooperate.’ Unfortunately, insatiable greed comes to spoil cooperation when ‘the unfair and unjust distribution and division have developed to the point where they actually put people to flight [from the state]’. In response, then, he sees the natural development of rites, or social disciplines, which would in effect impose relational rationality by means of a fairer distribution of goods, proportional to citizens’ contributions or status. As a matter of fact, this proportional justice proves more or less idealistic (even if the goal of Xun Tzu’s reasoning is realism). For what follows, I want to suggest that we think of Confucianism, then, as an ‘idealistic realism’, and that we let it represent the mainstream of Chinese political thinking. Now, let me go on to explain its political efficiency. Confucianism has played a significant role in allowing China to be a continuing great power for more than 2,000 years. It does indeed rise to be a political miracle, when you compare it to those once-dominant empires or imperialist systems that have now disappeared or shrunk to be nation-states. And the only superpower that can rival China today – the USA – seems unlikely to stay the world leader for long. Typical political realism, as a mixture of methodological realism and ideological idealism, must be partly responsible for the ups and downs of the Western empires or imperialist systems. These empires and their imperialism, with their aggressive realistic strategies, could be dominant and successful in the game of power only while they enjoyed the advantage in technology and industry (guns versus spears). Afterwards, they were almost bound to suffer failures due to unrest and retaliation. In contrast to these hostile and aggressive strategies, the enlargement of ancient China would take an alternative yet more efficient strategy in the long run. It might be best to preface my analysis of the growth of ancient China by noting that not only is our choice of effective strategies determined structurally, by the form of the games we play, but also by the fact that our strategies themselves also create and define games as such, as well as determining how long a game will last. The point is that it is the starting strategies that constitute the ontological conditions for a game to be this or that. And the original strategy that starts then defines how a game goes on will determine practically the possible subsequent strategies, thereby accounting for all the consequences. For instance, the original strategy of hostility – say, an aggressive war or hegemonic policy – would have launched the non-cooperative game by means of antagonism. In this case, it must then go on to explain the inevitable subsequent counterstrategies. I think, then, that game theory should focus on the original situation – on how the initiating strategies define a game – more than on the smart rational strategies followed out in the game. That is, it should devote more study to how games in themselves become rational, rather than to which strategy will be the dominant and victorious one. The example that now lies before us is that of ancient China, which has started to play a unique political game, in which it succeeds in becoming larger and larger, but not in the manner of imperialist expansion.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 32

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the western mind

33

My theory for interpreting the historicity of China5 is that it ran a game with a ‘vortex pattern’, instead of the usual pattern of imperialism or colonialism. Contrary to the outward spiral of imperialist adventure – the conquering of the seas and the far-reaching domination of the world – the vortex pattern had the effect of drawing inward many nations to join and receive in the Chinese system by means of the inward attraction of interests, power, honour, arts, knowledge and even the altogether greater shared history to be had by all-in-union, as we do indeed see when more water is constantly drawn into a vortex by a centripetal force. The story of the China vortex was just like that. For about 2,500 years, up until the collapse of the last Chinese dynasty after its defeat by the Western powers, many nations had in turn been trying to seize control of China, but all had volunteered to become Chinese in the end, adopting Chinese civilisation when on the throne of China. The obvious reason for most of the nations to do so was that, at that time, Chinese civilisation was the most brilliant one they had ever met, so that they were willing to become part of it, and thereby to share in its profound knowledge and arts, its honourable tradition and history, and of course its well-developed economy. But the deeper reason was that Chinese civilisation possesses an innate generosity of character and a capacity to welcome all foreign cultures, thanks to its ever-lasting political ideal of an all-inclusive world system – the Tianxia conception; so much so that it has never recognised other nations as ‘unacceptable others’ or ‘absolute enemies’. This is not only idealistic, but also truly rational, in that it has produced fewer religious conflicts or clashes of civilisations than other imperialist systems of multi-ethnic societies. It should be mentioned here that the terms ‘empire’ and ‘civilisation’ hardly do justice to ancient China’s true status and achievement. This status remains hard to define – at least according to the popular categories of Western knowledge – but the effort must be made because a true understanding of the uniqueness of China’s past is the key to a true understanding of its present-day approach to politics, both practically and theoretically. As I have been arguing, China has been a ‘world-pattern country’, in the sense that it has been the microcosm of the Tianxia constitution of the world. One of its distinctive institutional commitments has been to the format of multiple systems integrated inside one country, or ‘one country, multiple systems’. This was invented by the Han dynasty (202 bc to ad 220), and creatively reapplied most recently by Deng Xiaoping in Hong Kong in 1997 as a new model to deal with the modern situation of different political ideologies, called ‘one country, two systems’. Deng’s reapplication is new at the point that it involves an ideological divergence that did not appear in ancient times (ideology is a modern invention with roots in Christianity’s political inventions, as I have argued above). By his example, we see, then, that instead of a nation-state, an integrated China of multiple systems becomes the epitome of a world that operates (to borrow an image from propositional logic) as something of a ‘function’, for which the determining variables are left open to be filled by whatever seems best. Before being challenged by British power in 1840, China really had been working effectively as the vortex that I described above, inviting nations to join with it rather than making overseas adventures and conquests. It kept its distance from colonialism and imperialism. In the sense of outright world domination, then, historical China has been less successful than Great Britain (as the largest empire) or the USA (as the most powerful imperialist force in history), but in

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 33

23/10/18 12:44 PM

34

zhao tingyang

its long-continuing duration as an entity-in-itself, China has been more successful. This suggests that Chinese political thinking relates to an alternative concept of rationality or political realism. I want to suggest now that Chinese political thinking should be defined in terms of relational realism6 (as I have often called it). Its main principles would be described as follows: 1. Internalisation of the world, a notion based upon the concept of the all-inclusive world as Tianxia. It hinges on the rational strategy of neutralising all ‘negative externalities’ until only peaceful and tolerable differences remain. By this means, conflicts and clashes of civilisations are reduced and ‘hostility is changed into hospitality’. This then leads to compatible universalism, meaning that only what is compatible between people is universalised. All unilateral ideologies or values are shunned. In other words, universal values come to be defined in terms of reciprocal relationships rather than religion or any such supervening systems. 2. Imperfectionism, a principle from the philosophies of Lao Tzu and I Ching (The Book of Changes). It teaches that ‘the better is better than the best’, so is a decidedly realistic dictum, in that it criticises the pursuit of the perfect, or the ideal, as a risky if not downright unfeasible undertaking. And correspondingly, it suggests that the concept of the ideal should function as changing reality’s constant measure, rather than as the end of history. 3. Relational rationality, the most important principle because it is based upon the ontological realism that places coexistence prior to existence, or existence presupposing coexistence.7 The ontological telos of everything is nothing but to be for good, while to be for good implies to be well. And this wellness has to be if-and-only-if let be (by the other), and let others be, and to be improved if-and-only-if let to be improved by others (and to let others be improved); otherwise it will suffer from unbearable retaliations. This ontological truth has been concentrated as the Confucian concept of Ren: literally, ‘the best relationship of any two persons’. It makes for the foundation of relational rationality, indicating that coexistence is the necessary condition for any existence. We could say that relational rationality is innately far more risk-averse than individual rationality. Briefly, the basic concern of relational rationality is the priority of the minimisation of mutual hostility and its maximisation over self-interests. It is most realistic in its rational expectation that coexistence is the ontological and political guarantee for every existence. Relational rationality could be further defended by what I call the ‘test of imitation’.8 Let us begin the test with the typical game of self-interest, or the Hobbesian original condition. Every player is imagined to be smart enough to learn and imitate any more successful strategies played by the others. As a result, none of the successful strategies can remain dominant for long, since all of them will soon become common knowledge and copied by others. The stable equilibrium of strategies will finally come about when all players have learned all available successful strategies and become equally smart or equally stupid. It is the phenomenon of ‘all donkeys’. Now, the point is that a universally imitated and therefore stable strategy could either be that of hospitality or that of hostility. If a universally imitated strategy were to bring about a circulating negative retaliation, it would be a disaster for all players,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 34

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the western mind

35

so to pursue it would be irrational; that is to say, a strategy leading to self-defeating consequence when universally imitated would be irrational in the game. We should therefore expect instead a never self-defeating strategy – or just such a one as we find in the Confucian Ren, in which the first consideration is coexistence, the only strategy that will not incur any retaliation, and which can therefore successfully stand the challenge of the others’ imitation. In other words, a strategy can prove to be completely rational only so long as it continues to be positively rewarded when copied by other players. Confucius was the first to have studied this kind of strategy, and the first to lay claim to the principle of being improved if-and-only-if let improved. Really, then, we could call it the ‘Confucian improvement’, and we could define it further as the ‘non-exclusive improvement’ and compare it to Pareto’s improvement of everyone. We should, however, bear in mind that Pareto’s improvement only requires at least one to be improved, and how far that is, then, from the Confucian universal improvement of everyone.

Conclusion Many believe: be more powerful, be safer! This is partly true but is not always true, so it cannot be regarded as an unbeatable strategy. Therefore, we should very seriously consider the more rational Confucian strategy. A Confucian follower, Mencius (372–289 bc), has further explained the secret to relational rationality: The great man is undefeatable, not because he has defeated all enemies but because he has made no enemy. I have, then, returned us to where we began: Realism does not work well unless it is idealistic, while idealism will not work unless it is realistic.

Notes 1. Cf. John Maynard Smith (1982). 2. By theory of game, I mean that theory firstly claimed by John von Neumann, and later greatly developed by John Nash and a long list of experts, including many Nobel Prize winners. In this paper, my discussion relates only to the situation of non-cooperative gaming based upon Nash’s theory and the problem of evolutional games based upon John Maynard Smith and Robert Axelrod. In short, I focus on the problem of ‘if’ and ‘how’ cooperation could be possible under the given conditions of non-cooperative gaming. 3. In Borges’s famous fiction work, The Garden of Forking Paths, there is a garden of very complicated forking paths that would make you always confused and lost. The forking paths symbolically represent the forking of time, in its presentation of divergent or even contradictory futures. And what is more, Borges states that the garden has been designed by a Chinese architect to display Chinese philosophy. 4. See Zhao Tingyang (2016a). In this paper, I argue that the word of negation is the first philosophical word, and that one of the primary pieces of evidence for this comes from logic. Briefly, the word of negation, the ‘not’, could be called the basic ‘gene’ of logic, which makes all logical connections meaningful. Logic usually adopts five basic connectives: negation (¬), conjunction (∨), disjunction (∧), implication (→) and bi-implication (↔). If simplified into only two connectives, none of the acceptable combinations of two connections can dispense with negation (¬): that is, the negation should be one of the two. Furthermore, these two connectives can be reduced to just one, the Sheffer connective, which has two forms: the alternative denial (∣, ‘nand’, or not-and) or joint denial (↓, ‘nor’,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 35

23/10/18 12:44 PM

36

5. 6. 7. 8.

zhao tingyang or not-or). It is clear, however, that the negation is always there, for in these two forms we are speaking of either the unification of the negation (¬) and the conjunction (∨), or of the negation (¬) and the disjunction (∧). Cf. Zhao Tingyang (2016b). See Zhao Tingyang (2015). For more details, see Zhao Tingyang (2016c, especially the Introduction and Ch. 3). See also Zhao Tingyang (2012: 27–36). See Zhao Tingyang (2015).

Bibliography Axelrod, Robert (1997), The Complexity of Cooperation: Agent-Based Models of Competition and Collaboration, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Confucius (1998), The Analects [孔子:《论语》], translated by D. C. Lau, Harmondsworth: Penguin. Han Feizi (2003), Basic Writings [韩非子:《韩非子》], translated by Burton Watson, New York: Columbia University Press. Huntington, Samuel P. (1996), The Clash of Civilizations and the Remaking of World Order, New York: Simon & Schuster. Lao Tzu (2006), Tao Te Ching: A New English Version [老子:《道德经》], translated by Stephen Mitchell, New York: Harper. Morgenthau, Hans J. (2005), Politics among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, New York: McGraw-Hill Education. Olson, Mancur (1980), The Logic of Collective Action: Public Goods and the Theory of Groups, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Schelling, Thomas C. (1980), The Strategy of Conflict, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Schmitt, Carl (1996), The Concept of the Political, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Smith, John Maynard (1982), Evolution and the Theory of Games, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Sun Tzu (1994), The Art of War [孙子:《孙子兵法》], translated by Ralph D. Sawyer, New York: Basic Books. Xun Tzu, The Works of Xun Tzu [荀子:《荀子》] (no English editions available). Zhao Tingyang (2009), Studies on the Bad World/Huai-shijie-yanjiu [赵汀阳:《天下的当代性: 世界秩序的实践与想象》], Chinese edn, Beijing: Renmin University Press. Zhao Tingyang (2012), ‘The ontology of coexistence: From cogito to facio’, Diogenes, vol. 57, no. 4, pp. 27–36. Zhao Tingyang (2015), ‘Redefining the concept of politics via Tianxia: The problems, conditions and methodology’, World Economics and Politics, no. 6. Zhao Tingyang (2016a), ‘The first philosophical word’, Philosophical Research (Zhexueyanjiu), Chinese edn, no. 11. Zhao Tingyang (2016b), The Making and Becoming of China: Its Way of Historicity/Hui-cizhong-guo [《惠此中国》], Chinese edn, Beijing: CITIC Publishing Group. Zhao Tingyang (2016c), A Possible World of All-Under-Heaven System: The World Order in the Past and for the Future/Tianxia de dangdaixing [《坏世界研究》], Chinese edn, Beijing: CITIC Publishing Group.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 36

23/10/18 12:44 PM

3 Political Realism and Strategic Theory Operationalising realism’s pursuit of the national interest in an age of terrorism, civil war and proxy war Samir Puri

Chapter Overview

I

f classical realism sees the world as driven by competitive self-interest, then strategic theory considers how to navigate this situation to advance one’s interests. As such, strategic theory can be thought of as ‘operationalising’ some of realism’s tenets. It shares with realism certain assumptions around, for example, the centrality of power, and how the unique moral codes of a particular polity will render fallacious any notion of universal moral laws. As with realism, strategic theory has been derided for its pessimistic reading of human nature. Strategic theory’s association with nuclear deterrence is emblematic of this critique. Since the Cold War’s end, the state-centric study of strategy has also lost favour to the broader ‘security studies’ approach, which is seemingly better attuned to grasping insurgency, terrorism and similar threats that do not necessarily emanate from states. However, all theory must be reinterpreted for contemporary conditions. Insights of enduring relevance must be disentangled from more dated epochal concerns. With adaption, strategic theory can retain explanatory power for modern scenarios that typically mix state and non-state actors. As this chapter explains, realism and strategic theory are far from the same thing, but in how they overcome such critiques as amorality, state-centrism and outright obsolescence, a reinterpretation of each can hold lessons for both. *

*

*

It is sensible to begin with a definition. Strategic theory offers a lens through which to view the interplay of force and diplomacy between actors, and to understand how power is leveraged in pursuit of objectives. Strategic theory does not prescribe what ought to be done – this is dependent on the values, means and goals of an actor. Thus, strategic theory is a conceptual elucidation of strategic behaviour in general, rather than a prescription to follow any particular strategy. It is important therefore to distinguish strategic theory from more general notions of strategy. To do so, and to structure this section, strategic theory’s six precepts are discussed in turn. This draws on M. L. R. Smith and John Stone (2011: 27–30), who define strategic theory as comprising six rules of understanding:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 37

23/10/18 12:44 PM

38 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6.

samir puri the study of ends, ways and means interdependence of decision-making the study of the political actor as the central unit of analysis; the assumption of rationality the understanding of value systems and preferences the observance of moral neutrality.

These propositions constitute an intellectual scaffolding of sorts, and one that is available to frame the study of strategy in particular instances by making sense of the actions and interactions of the protagonists concerned. Each of these six precepts is expanded on with a view to explaining the origins, claims and criticisms surrounding strategic theory, and to tracing areas of overlap with realism. After working through each precept, an interim conclusion will set up the chapter’s second section, which will examine the challenges of adaption facing strategic theory in the twenty-first century.

What is Strategic Theory – and Do its Precepts Overlap with Realism? 1. To study strategy means to examine ends, ways and means. Etymologically, ‘strategy’ originates from the Greek denotation of a general’s plan of action to accomplish a particular goal. As such, it is the realm of military activity with which strategy has tended to be synonymous, and from where such ubiquitous definitions have emerged as ‘the employment of battles to gain the end of war’ (Clausewitz 1832: 177) and ‘the art of distributing and applying military means to fulfil the ends of policy’ (Liddell Hart 1967: 321). Different definitions of strategy have entered the politico-military lexicon at different times, based on their utility in helping express the most pressing strategic dilemmas of the day. Understandably, those quoted above wrote of strategy in terms that made sense of the interstate wars waged between national militaries, with Liddell Hart’s writings touching on the post-1945 nuclear era. Over the decades, and from one century to the next, the nature of interstate war had evolved dramatically. As the notion of the ‘state’ modernised and spread from Europe across the globe, the ideologies that bound states together also diversified, while the war-making technologies that states commanded evolved from musketry to, in some cases, nuclear weapons (Paret, Craig and Gilbert 1986). Thus, there is no such homogenous phenomenon as ‘interstate war’. The form and shape of war always vary. They are idiosyncratically constructed as per the time and the space within which war unfolds. Amongst its only true perennial features is the dynamic interaction between ends, ways and means. When ends (which tend, for states, to be enunciated as policy) become misaligned with ways and means (which refer to the manner in which military and other tools are employed), war becomes purposeless. Misalignments arise when policy ends are too expansive or unrealistic, and when the tools are inadequate, badly chosen or poorly employed. The essence of strategy as practice is therefore relational. That is to say, strategy involves the dynamic relation between the ends sought and the manner of attainment.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 38

23/10/18 12:44 PM

strategic theory

39

Today, the word ‘strategy’ is routinely detached from its military origins and has been appropriated for other areas of human activity. Business and personal life decisions can all merit a ‘strategy’. Strategy has become a generically understood word for linking means and ends when planning for the long term. This has led to a lament for ‘the lost meaning of strategy’ (Strachan 2005: 33–5), and to a contrast between the meanings that strategy has gained in military, political and business realms (Freedman 2013). All strategy is about means and ends, but it is also about opposing forces.

2. Interdependence of decision-making, with potential or actual opponents in mind, sets the practice of strategy firmly apart from the act of planning. An expectation that other actors will attempt to subvert, undermine or attack you – this is the realm of strategic behaviour. The anarchical society that is posited by realism, leading to mutual suspicion and the security dilemma, accords well with this sense of threatbased action. Game theoretic elucidations of interdependence, so fundamental to strategic theory’s development during the Cold War, indicate a divergence with realism. It is here that strategic theory also diverts from more general notions of strategy. Strategic theory, as it developed during the Cold War, was born during what was then the latest phase of successive eras of interstate confrontation. Developed by scholars seeking to inform US Cold War security policy, deterrence and compellence were exposited as ways to link means and ends amidst the strategic concerns of the day. Deterrence explored how the USA could pursue its security interests without provoking nuclear war with the USSR. It encouraged the superpowers to balance their nuclear arsenals by guaranteeing retaliation in the event of a first strike by either party, thus dissuading either from mounting a surprise attack. The logic extended to notions of extended deterrence, and of security guarantees offered to allied states – a crucial feature of the North Atlantic Treaty Organization (NATO) and Warsaw Pact alliances (Kaplan 1991). Compellence was a term coined by Thomas Schelling to convey the inducing of an adversary to concede over a disputed issue by gradually raising the costs of non-compliance, and calibrating the punishment dealt to them in terms proportionate to the concession that was being demanded (Schelling 1960; Schelling 1966). There is friction between classical realism and game theoretical understandings of actor interaction. Hans Morgenthau was of the mindset that in international politics, practitioners more closely resembled gamblers than scientists. As such, ‘he cautioned against the Pentagon’s adaptation of Thomas Schelling’s theories of game-theoretic bargaining to the coercive bombardment of North Vietnam’ (Porter 2016: 256). The key point is that conceptions of interdependence do not hinge on game-theoretic models. ‘Strategy is about choice. . . . It is the interdependence of choice that provides the essence of strategy and diverts it from being mere long-term planning or the mechanical connection of available means to set ends’ (Freedman 2006: 9). This qualitative insight is from where strategic theory derives its influence. The deductive and abstract modelling of interdependence is not essential to strategic theory – rather, this approach reflects a certain US Cold War-era defence planning logic.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 39

23/10/18 12:44 PM

40

samir puri

3. The study of the political actor as the central unit of analysis is a key tenet of strategic theory. It is an ontological claim that brings it in line with realism. Both place predominance on the state as the principal unit of analysis. Whether it was using quantitative or qualitative data, the academic study of strategy based its insights on the range of choices open to, typically, a state actor in light of its expectation of how others would respond. Lawrence Freedman elucidates: The study of strategy . . . requires examining political affairs from the perspective of those involved . . . it requires an interest in the ways in which units shape a system, rather than in how the system shapes the units. . . . It is not bothered about long historical cycles or attempts to discover regularities in political behaviour. Research into these matters can inform the approach, but the key to the effort lies in the attempt to explore the range of choice available to given actors at particular times. (Freedman 1998: 15) Herein exists a contrast with neorealism: it inverts the claim by Kenneth Waltz that relative power distributions in the international system exert an ordering impact on the units of which it is comprised. Systemic imperatives and constraints impose themselves upon states and influence their decisions to balance others (Waltz 1979). This contrast should not distract from the centrality of the state in the evolution of realism. Jonathan Haslam has traced the origins of realist thought since Machiavelli. He writes that, in England, the Elizabethan formulation of ‘statist’ duty conveyed security interests to be of the very highest priority in political life. Realism emerged during the late medieval and early modern period in Italy and reflected an attempt to rationalise statecraft. ‘Reasons of State emerged to articulate the primacy of the state over the medieval vestiges of universal empire, to argue that no value, whether moral or secular, should stand above the security of the state’ (Haslam 2002: 12–15). Strategic theory is a progeny of this line of reasoning. It is the exercise of choice by actors – typically, states – as they arrange their capabilities and plan for action that has commanded the attention of the strategic theorist. This does not negate the study of contextual conditions but emphasises the importance of studying decision-making at crucial moments of choice. This is expounded next.

4. The assumption of rationality is crucial to strategic theory’s understanding of decisionmaking. It implies that strategic theory’s explanatory power will grow if the choices of the actors in question are open to examination. Rationality refers to how actors rank their preferences in pursuit of their goals. Deductive and game-theoretic interpretations of strategic theory duly used simplifying assumptions regarding utility maximisation, akin to those found in economics. States possess a comprehensive grasp of their options, and their leaders methodically select courses of action to maximise advancement of the national interest. Such rigid and unrealistic portrayals of decision-making ought not to distract from what a nuanced understanding of rationality can offer:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 40

23/10/18 12:44 PM

strategic theory

41

The word ‘rational’ here has a technical and fairly limited meaning. It does not mean ‘reasonable’ . . . . . It means only that the choice is in some sense controlled by the actor’s current expectation of the outcomes of his actions, and by his preferences. Those expectations and preferences themselves may seem highly ‘unreasonable’. . . . A good deal of ‘insane’ behaviour, in other words, might be ‘rational’ in this technical sense, whereas habitual or unreflective responses, though perfectly normal and reasonable, might be classified as ‘non-rational’ behaviour. (Ellsberg 1968: 14–15) Assuming an adversary to be rational can help explain how it perceives a given situation – a rational actor chooses actions where potential benefits outweigh potential costs. By assuming rationality, strategy becomes a matter of understanding the interactions between the preferences of different actors, and manipulating these preferences over time by making certain choices preferable to others by attaching to them pain and reward. By portraying politico-military affairs as conducted by rationally calculating states, strategic theory has faced similar criticisms levelled at realism for portraying the international system as made up of ‘billiard balls’. To charges of oversimplification, strategic theory offers a rejoinder.

5. Understanding value systems and preferences is strategic theory’s counter to its critics. Indeed, modern strategic theorists place so much emphasis on this precept as to allude to comparisons with constructivism (Smith and Stone 2011: 27). Strategic theory aims to consider an actor’s worldview as determined by ideology, culture and the degree of importance it places on the issue at hand. This imbues strategic theory with a historicity and context that are firmly at odds with the deductive path it once trod during the Cold War. Ideology and culture are understood to shape how an actor determines its objectives and how it assigns capabilities to accomplishing its goals. To decode the behaviour of an actor, such practical details as organisational structure and material capabilities can be interpreted only with a concomitant grasp of the ideational and the attitudinal, such as value systems, cultures of decision-making, and subjective attitudes towards matters like secrecy, violence and injustice (Bozeman 1992: 88–9). Fathoming the value systems and preferences is especially challenging if it is culturally alien or is organised esoterically, but it is essential to try. Strategic theory has tended to attract criticism for an inadequate grasp of the ideational dimensions of actor identity. Richard Ned Lebow derided strategic theory as ahistorical and monocultural (since it originated largely from the USA), and for lauding a deductive study of cost–benefit calculations over identity and culture. Lebow derided Schelling: ‘his work is emblematic of a more general American approach to the world that seeks, when possible, to substitute a combination of technical force and military muscle for political insight and diplomatic finesse’ (Lebow 2007: 255, 277–91). While it is true that strategic theory was associated with ineffective US actions in Vietnam, this ought not to invalidate the enterprise as a whole. Indeed, while coercive strategies have likely been practised since the dawn of humanity, it would be mistaken to succumb to the impression that US strategic theorists of a certain vintage had monopolised these concepts (Gray 2001: 15). Strategic theory has

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 41

23/10/18 12:44 PM

42

samir puri

moved on: ‘With its focus on understanding value systems and their interaction with other actors in the wider environment, strategic theory might be considered a form of constructivism avant la lettre’ (Smith and Stone 2011: 27). This is a bold claim. Strategic theory asserts that identities and interests are not fixed. However, it does not carry any normative expectation that identities and interests should be manipulated towards moralistic humanitarian values. This matter – the subjectivity of values – is explained next.

6. The observance of moral neutrality means strategic theory does not subscribe to any one worldview. It assesses actors on the basis of how well their chosen means advance their own idiosyncratically constructed goals. Coercion, for example, could be employed for good or for nefarious purposes, and this discussion must be had on a case-by-case basis. There is nothing automatically immoral about coercion: like any other mechanism for exerting power, it can result in suffering that is unwarranted and disproportionate, but in other cases may create order out of chaos and avert even greater suffering. Moral judgement hinges on each actor’s norms and values as to whether ends justify means. The moral neutrality professed by strategic theory separates it from these judgements – unless morality becomes central to the calculations involved in constructing effective strategy. One can envisage how waging war in a manner deemed morally unjustifiable by a key ally, whose objection could call the war to a halt, would be detrimental to advancing war aims, for example. Such apparent amorality leaves strategic theory open to biting critique. By detaching itself from advocating any particular outcome, and in principle being open to countenancing any means that advance a defined set of goals, strategic theory seems to operate in a moral void. Its rationalisation of nuclear deterrence, and the sanctioning of threats of mutual annihilation to hold, in effect, rival populations hostage, reflects this (Lebow 2007: 185–219). Strategic theory rationalises exertions of power and provides an operational handbook to do so without accompanying moral qualification. Realists may be able to relate to this, at least in the criticism they attract for advocating the pursuit of the national interest based on calculations of material gain rather than being guided by an explicit moral compass. To take stock, depending on one’s perspective, to describe strategic theory and realism as flowing from the same intellectual tradition is either curse or compliment. It is a curse if one understands strategic theory to operationalise some of the basest and most self-interested elements of realism. It is complimentary if one sees strategic theory as bringing to life an action-oriented sense of some of realism’s theoretical precepts. There are important differences between these bodies of theory, not least in the focus placed by strategic theory on the mechanics of politico-military affairs, whereas realism exists squarely within international relations theory. Most importantly, one need not be a realist to be a strategic theorist. Strategy ‘is about getting more out of a situation than the starting balance of power would suggest. It is the art of creating power’ (Freedman 2013: xii). This focus on power accords with

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 42

23/10/18 12:44 PM

strategic theory

43

realism. Realism, in its classical formulation, believes politics to be governed by objective laws rooted in human nature, which remain consistent throughout history. Interest is defined in terms of power, and the practice of power rationalises the international system (as opposed to personal or ideological preferences). Realism is cognisant of the moral significance of political action but highlights the tension between abstract moral principles and the requirements of actual policy. At first glance, therefore, realism is a ‘temperament to which strategic theorists have been presumed to be susceptible because of their relentless focus on power and their presumption that self-interest best explains behaviour’ (Freedman 2013: 30). However, ‘In traditional realist views of the international system, power appears as both ends and means, measured in terms of the more blatant indicators of military and economic strength’ (Freedman 2006: 27). Power is certainly a means for strategic theorists but less prescription is placed on ends, given the idiosyncratic manner in which actors formulate their goals. Theory evolves over time. Whereas, once, strategic theory employed simplifying assumptions in pursuit of a parsimonious analytic framework, even then, its influence derived from its qualitative observations. Strategic theory has bequeathed to statecraft a conceptual language for understanding uses and threats of violence. Today, coercive diplomacy and deterrence remain useful concepts for grasping interstate relations. The question in the twenty-first century, however, is whether one should refer to a body of thinking that has such strong associations with the Cold War, and especially when so many threats now involve complex interactions between states and non-state actors that do not appear to fit naturally within its framework.

‘Full-spectrum Strategic Theory’ – Explaining State and Non-state Actor Threats The end of the Cold War, the fragmentation of Balkan and African states during the 1990s, and the post-9/11 era fundamentally challenge state-based threat planning. One of the most pervasive problems faced by strategic theory – and, indeed, by practical statecraft – relates to the complexity of attribution in matters of war and peace today. Unitary actor theories – that is to say, theories that conceptualise states as the principal unit of analysis – struggle to account for the sheer range of protagonists that are likely to populate modern security scenarios. Modern wielders of organised political violence may just as readily be, on one hand, non-state armed groups, and on the other hand, states that back these groups. This is not to suggest any equivalence between scenarios and actors. Every armed group is unique in terms of its genesis, ideology, organisation, size and style of violence employed, and the extent to which it is state-backed. The point here is that contemporary security scenarios tend not to involve confrontations between national militaries of states. Civil wars in collapsing states, and insurgent and terrorist campaigns that pay little heed to sovereign borders, are now the chief realities. It should be noted that the collective term ‘non-state armed group’ circumnavigates debates on the nomenclature of ‘terrorist’, ‘guerrilla’ and ‘insurgent’ that, while important, are less relevant to this argument. With the end of the Cold War, strategic theory fell from favour as a lens through which to explain war and peace (Strachan 2005: 48). It had been developed outside of universities and driven by its policy relevance during the Cold War, and ‘academics

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 43

23/10/18 12:44 PM

44

samir puri

were never able to impose a scholarly framework for [strategic theory] that could survive shifts in the policy framework’ (Freedman 2002: 329). An alternative approach – security studies – was advanced as offering a holistic view of security problems that could range from war to terrorism to pandemics to refugee crises, and hence more encompassing of the diverse sources of insecurity in a globalised world. Strategic theory was derided for its concern with state-centric military affairs (Krause and Williams 1997: 33–61; Barkawi 2011: 29). This criticism is misplaced, however, since strategic theory is not identical to the narrow study of the use of national military force. Contemporary strategic theorists insist that it ‘has universal application across the sphere of human activity as Thomas Schelling, himself a political economist, demonstrated in much of his work’ (Smith and Stone 2011: 29). Moreover, if strategic theory has been accused of being too narrow and dated in the scope of its analysis, then security studies attract the inverse criticism of being too broad. Accordingly, the latter runs the risk of conceptual drift: Strategic studies have been replaced by security studies. At times they embrace almost everything that affects a nation’s foreign and even domestic policy. They require knowledge of regional studies – of culture, religion, diet and language in a possible area of operations; they require knowledge of geography, the environment and economics; they concern themselves with oil supplies, water stocks and commodities; they embrace international law, the laws of war and applied ethics. In short, by being inclusive they end up by being nothing. (Strachan 2005: 48) This is a valid concern. National security thinking has, in some countries, evolved to an ‘everything is relevant’ approach, facing such overlapping phenomena as terrorism, migration, minority rights, fragile states, ungoverned territory and rogue or revisionist states. The overlap of such a plethora of phenomena is certainly not a priori – it is likely to be purely accidental or opportunistic. In a given crisis, a unique blend of phenomena will cohere in hitherto unseen combinations. A multidisciplinary and ‘whole-of-government’ approach may well be eminently sensible in such conditions. The UK, for example, has established a national security strategy and a national security council to allow all relevant departments to contribute to the framing of and response to security crises. This encompasses security institutions like the armed forces, intelligence services and police, plus development aid, border control and domestic ministries (National Security Strategy 2015: 15–22). Ensuring the functionality of interdepartmental cooperation is a bureaucratic matter. It is quite another to grasp, in conceptual terms, the dynamics that underpin matters of war and peace in a given era. In ‘Classical Realism and National Security’, Patrick Porter examines the UK national security strategy’s failure to accommodate what he describes as ‘non-linearity’: Classical realism . . . counsels that governments should go beyond attempts to improve foresight. Those making decisions should insure against the fallibility of their assumptions, marshal their power more conservatively, and prepare for the likelihood of predictive failure by developing the intellectual capability to react to the unknown. (Porter 2016: 239)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 44

23/10/18 12:44 PM

strategic theory

45

Behaviours pertaining to war and peace are characterised by cunning, deception, surprise and the play of chance. Confounding the expectations of rivals and enemies is the essence of strategic behaviour. The actors may change but these dynamics may not. Caution is in order whenever a ‘perennial truth’ is suggested. Theory is useful only while it allows us to interpret and explain reality. Given the complex ecosystem of phenomena involved in modern security threats, strategic theory may be ill suited to understanding the atomised and factionalised nature of such groups as the Taliban, al-Qaeda or the Islamic State. However, strategic theory retains utility in explaining rising or revisionist state threats, such as presented by Russia, China or Iran and their standoffs with the USA and its allies. Even then, problems of attribution arise when Russia and Iran have waged war in superficially deniable fashion through proxies to destabilise neighbours or to tip the scales of civil wars. Pertinent examples are Russia’s backing of east Ukraine’s separatists in a war that began in 2014, and Iran’s backing of Lebanese-based group Hezbollah in Syria’s civil war that began in 2011. In such scenarios, attribution is distributed between state and non-state actors. The state itself operates as a network to obfuscate its associations with its chosen agent of violence. This means that strategy, in its conceptualisation as well as in its practice, must routinely deal with both hierarchies and networks. That is to say, strategy must deal with states that have hierarchical leadership structures and with amorphously arrayed armed groups that may be less centrally ordered. Because of the contrasting nature of these undertakings, understandings of strategy have bifurcated. Classical compositions of strategic theory are appropriate for interpreting a resurgent Russia or a rising China, but ill suited to grasping the Taliban insurgency, which is split between many warlord factions, or al-Qaeda or the Islamic State. Bereft of a leader, committee or politburo to parley with, threaten and influence, strategic theory may well struggle to contend with diffuse actors who coalesce in ad hoc fashion around their cause. Let us begin outside strategic theory’s comfort zone. As the Cold War ended, Martin Van Creveld was an early herald saying that coming wars would be fought amongst the people, a point he made by using the example of Israel, which was adapting after decades of wars with Arab states to facing Palestinian insurgent and terrorist groups as its primary threat (Van Creveld 1991). During the 1990s, complex civil wars involving factions divided along ethno-religious lines became a new norm. Argument was made for ‘bottom-up’ approaches to place less emphasis on states and statesmen, armies and arsenals, and more emphasis on the political economy of violence as waged by gangs and warlords, and on human security (Kaldor 1999). Post 9/11, counterterrorism and counterinsurgency have become predominant frames for dealing with the waves of violence that have ensued. Counterinsurgency literature locates the key axis as being the population over which insurgents and states compete for influence (Kilcullen 2009). Counterterrorism literature focuses on the indoctrination and dispersal relied on by globalised terrorist groups, with ameliorative measures involving the interdiction of terrorists by security forces, as well as counterideology work to erode the sense of alienation from peaceable culture that can leave people vulnerable to terrorist recruitment (Nuemann 2009). This variegated literature, the accumulation of twenty-five years of post-Cold War scholarship on the many modern manifestations of political violence, cannot be spoken of collectively. It can, however, be surmised that notions of decisive victory, as

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 45

23/10/18 12:44 PM

46

samir puri

might have made sense for those attending the Congress of Vienna in 1815, or drafting the Treaty of Versailles in 1919, or dividing Germany in 1945, or proclaiming the end of the USSR in 1991, or expelling Saddam Hussein’s army from Kuwait that same year, have ceded the field to those concerned with living with prolonged risk, and who place much greater focus on the grass roots of violence. And yet, the global system is in the throes of an evolution that may naturally restore to prominence strategic theory’s explanatory power. A slow drift is under way from the unipolar age of US hegemony, towards a more multilateral system in which several influential states jostle for influence (Tessman 2012). Signalling between states to avoid misunderstanding is returning to prominence in statecraft. Three of the biggest interstate crises of the twenty-first century have involved Iran’s nuclear weapons programme, Russia’s destabilisation of Ukraine, and China’s maritime assertiveness. Such moves can be interpreted as straightforward power plays and analysed via a realist lens. Doing so risks decontextualising these gambits from other facets of the foreign policies of these countries. Iran, Russia and China see their present regional roles as in some ways incommensurate with their stature and desire for greater respect. To redress this balance, they face choices. The crises they have stoked have had worrying escalatory potential, leaving these countries at loggerheads with the USA. While seeking to avoid war with the USA, these states have attempted to pull off selective revisionist moves at the regional level. Strategic theory has much to offer in the analysis of how threats and uses of force have been wielded in these scenarios. And, when nuclear weapons feature in these scenarios, whether implicitly or potentially, the precepts of strategic theory apply almost in their orthodoxy (Puri 2017: 307–23). It is at the point of intersection between state-based threats and non-state actor threats that strategic theory can find fertile ground to evolve. States have to engage routinely in cooperative action against non-state actors, pooling their military resource to do so. The unwieldy global coalition against the Islamic State, involving seventy-five countries as of 2018, is a case in point. States also routinely trade in claim and counterclaim over culpability and responsibility for the actions of non-state armed groups. Pakistan is an example, since it has been blamed by states ranging from the USA to India for stoking groups like the Taliban and Lashkar-e-Taiba (culpable for the 2008 attacks in Mumbai). Pakistan’s statecraft has involved a measure of brinkmanship, to appease the USA with selective action against the Islamist militants that also pose a threat to it, while hedging against its regional rival, India. When one set of interactions involve states that threaten and cajole one another, but when the stakes of their interactions hinge on the actions and existence of nonstate armed groups, then a web of interactions arises that encompasses both hierarchical and networked entities. The modern statecraft of war and peace often hinges on these complex, multi-level, multi-actor type of interactions. To expand another example, Russia has been at pains since 2014 to insist that eastern Ukraine’s separatists, who fight under the ‘Donetsk People’s Republic’ and ‘Luhansk People’s Republic’ banners, do so due to a sense of alienation from Kyiv’s sovereign authority. As a cover story for a state-backed intervention, it relies on a narrative of bottom-up local disgruntlement. States continue to find innovative ways in which to wage war, even if they wish to avoid a declared interstate war.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 46

23/10/18 12:44 PM

strategic theory

47

Conclusion War always varies in its shape and form, and in the cast of actors that appear in each new manifestation of it. Where strategic theory retains relevance is in the fact that war, whatever the form it takes, is always inherently political. Changing complexities around actor identity, attribution and other factors cannot be excused away, but too great a focus on the micro-level drivers of war can risk losing the wider political frame. Strategic theory should not seek to supplant the bodies of literature that have come to prominence in more recent years to explain modern political violence from the bottom up. Instead, a reassertion of the political parameters within which ends, ways and means relate, and within which actor interdependence unfolds, is vital. To take one example, during the USA-led wars in Iraq and Afghanistan, ‘COIN’ (counterinsurgency) gained traction as a way of framing the drivers of non-state actor violence, and of guiding a proportionate response. These were laudable goals but, in its articulation, COIN ended up far closer to doctrine than strategy. COIN emphasised a technical evaluation of how efficiently state security forces could break the hold of insurgents over the populace and restore government services and credibility – but the wider national, regional and international political contexts were neglected (Smith and Jones 2015). Moreover, the primary focus of COIN doctrine did not extend to the process of negotiation with former insurgent groups to facilitate their entry to politics, or the consequences of their marginalisation from political processes (Puri 2016: 119–21). Without due consideration to the play of politics, what is tenable in terms of both means and ends is relegated in prominence. Moreover, consequences arise from having discrete bodies of ideas to explain how states deal with armed groups, and other ideas to explain how states tussle with each another. Multiple games are at play in modern conflict scenarios. This demands deftness in conceptualisation so as to retain a holistic conception of strategy. Strategic calculations must account for the behaviours and responses of many kinds of actor, whether governments or armed groups, in all of their varieties. To close, this chapter sees realism and strategic theory as, at most, synonymous but not truly identical. Common to both is that neither can survive simply by asserting a ‘common-sense’ approach that reflects unchanging truths. So-called ‘perennial truths’ must adapt and be justified anew whenever political and technological contexts shift decisively, and when violence is being used or threatened in a radically different setting to past times.

Bibliography Barkawi, Tarak (2011), ‘From war to security: Security studies, the wider agenda and the fate of the study of war’, Millennium, vol. 39, no. 3, pp. 701–16. Bozeman, Adda (1992), Strategic Intelligence and Statecraft: Selected Essays, Washington: Brassey’s Intelligence & National Security Library. Clausewitz, Carl von (1832) [1976], On War, translated by Michael Howard and Peter Paret, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Ellsberg, Daniel (1968), Theory and Practice of Blackmail, Santa Monica: RAND Corporation. Freedman, Lawrence (ed.) (1998), Strategic Coercion: Concepts and Cases, Oxford: Oxford University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 47

23/10/18 12:44 PM

48

samir puri

Freedman, Lawrence (2002), ‘Where next for strategic theory?’, in John Baylis, James Wirtz, Eliot Cohen and Colin S. Gray (eds), Strategy in the Contemporary World: An Introduction to Strategic Studies, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Freedman, Lawrence (2006), The Transformation of Strategic Affairs, International Institute for Strategic Studies Adelphi Series No. 379, London: Routledge. Freedman, Lawrence (2013), Strategy: A History, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Gray, Colin S. (2001), ‘Deterrence and the nature of strategy’, in Max G. Manwaring (ed.), Deterrence in the 21st Century, London: Frank Cass. Haslam, Jonathan (2002), No Virtue like Necessity: Realist Thought in International Relations since Machiavelli, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Kaldor, Mary (1999), New and Old Wars, Cambridge: Polity Press. Kaplan, Fred (1991), The Wizards of Armageddon, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Kilcullen, David (2009), The Accidental Guerrilla: Fighting Small Wars in the Midst of a Big One, Oxford and New York: Hurst. Krause, Keith, and Michael C. Williams (eds) (1997), Critical Security Studies, Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press. Lebow, Richard Ned (2007), Coercion, Cooperation, and Ethics in International Relations, New York: Routledge. Liddell Hart, Basil (1967), Strategy, London: Faber. ‘National Security Strategy and Strategic Defence and Security Review 2015’ (2015), London: TSO. Nuemann, Peter (2009), Old and New Terrorism, Cambridge: Polity Press. Paret, Peter, Gordon A. Craig and Felix Gilbert (eds), (1986), The Makers of Modern Strategy, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Porter, Patrick (2016), ‘Taking uncertainty seriously: Classical Realism and national security’, European Journal of International Security, vol. 1, no. 2, pp. 239–60. Puri, Samir (2016), Fighting and Negotiating with Armed Groups, International Institute for Strategic Studies Adelphi Series No. 459, London: Routledge. Puri, Samir (2017), ‘The strategic hedging of Iran, Russia and China: Juxtaposing participation in the global system with regional revisionism’, Journal of Global Security Studies, vol. 2, no. 4, pp. 307–23. Schelling, Thomas (1960), The Strategy of Conflict, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Schelling, Thomas (1966), Arms and Influence, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Smith, M. L. R., and David Martin Jones (2015), The Political Impossibility of Modern Counterinsurgency, New York: Columbia University Press. Smith, M. L. R., and John Stone (2011), ‘Explaining strategic theory’, Infinity, no. 4, pp. 27–30. Strachan, Hew (2005), ‘The lost meaning of strategy’, Survival, vol. 47, no. 3, pp. 33–5. Tessman, Brock (2012), ‘System structure and state strategy: Adding hedging to the menu’, Security Studies, no. 21, pp. 192–231. Van Creveld, Martin (1991), The Transformation of War, New York: Free Press. Waltz, Kenneth (1979), Theory of International Relations, New York: McGraw-Hill.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 48

23/10/18 12:44 PM

4 Political Realism and Realpolitik German realpolitik and the contingent nature of Anglo-American political realism John Bew

Chapter Overview

T

his chapter examines the origins of the German term ‘Realpolitik’ and traces its influence on the English-speaking ‘realist’ tradition of the twentieth century. It shows that the meaning of such terms has repeatedly changed, depending on historical context, to make the broader point that notions of ‘the real’ in international affairs are highly contingent on time and place. The chapter begins by tracing the emergence of the neologism ‘Realpolitik’ in the mid-nineteenth century at the hands of a liberal writer, August Ludwig von Rochau, in 1853. It then discusses the distortion of the word in Germany as it was purloined by the followers of Bismarck, then damagingly conflated with Machtpolitik and Weltpolitik. The second half of the chapter discusses the arrival of realpolitik into the English language during the Anglo-German antagonism, when it was treated with alarm, as the distinguishing mark of a dangerous new rival and a direct affront to the liberal internationalism of the early twentieth century. Too much has been made of the influence of Germanic realpolitik on the various tributaries that have flowed into American realism. In fact, postwar American realism has mostly been distinguished by its insistence on restraint and a tone of righteous despair that the American nation was fated to ignore its prescriptions. *

*

*

Realpolitik remains one of the most loaded and contested terms in discussions of international affairs. It is frequently used in scholarly literature but resonates far beyond the academy too. As one prominent British newspaper columnist put it in May 2017, ‘For the school of realpolitik, policy is dictated by national interests, strategic and economic.’ In this rendering, it implies a transactional and value-free approach to international affairs, driven by an unsentimental approach to foreign affairs: that is, ‘to buy and sell, make strategic alliances with whoever is up for it and let the chips fall where they may’ (Aaronovitch 2017). At the end of the Cold War, just like at the end of the First World War, many hoped realpolitik would be eradicated from the international system (or, at least, from Western foreign policy). Due to the force of circumstances and the blunting of Western power, it has made

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 49

23/10/18 12:44 PM

50

john bew

a comeback. At the time of writing, the international scene is littered with so-called practitioners of realpolitik, from President Erdogan to President Putin, and the writing of its theorists-in-chief, from Niccolò Machiavelli to Henry Kissinger, are in vogue once again. As something born in the dark heart of Europe and imported from Germany, realpolitik has always had an odd place in Anglo-American political discourse. It began to seep into the English language in the era before the First World War. For that reason, despite the fact that it has been used frequently in foreign policy debates in Britain and America for more than a hundred years, it is still regarded as somewhat exotic. Consequently, even when realpolitik can be said to have been in the ascendancy in the UK or USA, it has caused discomfort. In the 1930s in Britain and the 1970s in America, in very different contexts, the critics of foreign policy often cried foul about the ingestion of realpolitik by their own statesmen and diplomats.1 Over the course of the last decade, realpolitik has been shorn of some of these negative connotations. The return of great power rivalries and the fraying of the international order have evoked comparisons with periods in our past when realpolitik was seen to provide a useful tool of statecraft. Indeed, realpolitik has been presented as a necessary antidote to the perceived excess of idealism in Anglo-American foreign policy of the post-Cold War era – a return to the ‘real’ over the ‘utopian’. Thus, even those on the left of the political spectrum have shown themselves to be more comfortable with the term. ‘Everybody always breaks it down between idealist and realist,’ remarked President Obama’s former chief of staff, Rahm Emanuel, in an April 2010 article in the New York Times. ‘If you had to put him in a category, he’s probably more realpolitik, like Bush 41 . . . you’ve got to be cold-blooded about the self-interests of your nation’ (Baker 2010). In May 2012, the German weekly Der Spiegel ran an article declaring that Obama was the ‘unlikely heir to Kissinger’s realpolitik’, quoting the editor of the National Interest to the effect that he ‘may even start speaking about foreign affairs with a German accent’ (Schmitz 2013). Yet realpolitik is still shrouded in ambiguity. It is one of those words borrowed from another language that is much used but little understood. In modern usage, it has come to denote a posture or a philosophical inclination, rather than anything more substantive (such as an approach to politics or a theory of international relations). The true meaning of realpolitik remains occluded by the partisan way the word has been used in Anglo-American political discourse. ‘The advocates of a realist foreign policy are caricatured with the German term Realpolitik,’ Henry Kissinger once observed, ‘I suppose to facilitate the choosing of sides’ (Kissinger 2012). But in the hands of others, realpolitik is sometimes used in a positive way – as an accoutrement of sophistication, intended to signify worldliness and historical depth, and to distinguish oneself from dunderheaded ideologues. ‘I will leave it to the selfdescribed realists to explain in greater detail the origins and meaning of “realism” and “realpolitik” to our confused journalists and politicos,’ remarked Robert Kagan in 2010. Kagan’s point – the corollary of Kissinger’s – was that such words were used as a way of dismissing one’s opponents as unrealistic, unsophisticated and ill informed (Hounshell 2010). Indeed, the history of realpolitik has been pockmarked with the existence of cultish devotees, overly impressed by the idea that they were the gatekeepers to reality.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 50

23/10/18 12:44 PM

realpolitik

51

If few satisfactory definitions of realpolitik exist, it is mostly because scholars of international relations, with a few notable exceptions, have remained largely uninterested in its historical origins. For the most part, realpolitik has been used interchangeably with ‘realism’, ‘realist’ or raison d’état – all of which, of course, are contested terms themselves (Waltz 1979: 117). Realpolitik is not, as is often assumed, as old as statecraft itself. Nor is it to be confused with ‘realism’ writ large. As Jonathan Haslam makes clear in No Virtue Like Necessity: Realist Thought in International Relations since Machiavelli, it does have a place within the ‘realist’ tradition (Haslam 2002: 184–5). Yet it is something distinct from raison d’état, pursuit of the ‘national interest’, or Machiavellianism – with which it has often been conflated. In fact, realpolitik has a distinctive history of its own. It was created by the German journalist and liberal activist August Ludwig von Rochau in his 1853 treatise Grundsätze der Realpolitik: Angewendet auf die staatlichen Zustände Deutschlands (which translates as Foundations of Realpolitik, applied to the current state of Germany). A second edition of the book was to follow in 1859, in which Rochau added a new preface (von Rochau 1859). In 1868, he produced a second, much longer volume, in which he made more of an effort to define what he meant by his neologism and addressed some of the criticisms he had received (von Rochau 1868). Rochau was a publicist, journalist and radical participant in the Vormärz, the movement for liberal political reform in the German states. The efforts of this liberal movement – like those of its sister movements across Europe – culminated in the rebellions of 1848, which were intended to establish constitutional and representative government. Rochau, who had been forced into exile before the uprising, tried to attain a seat in the liberal Frankfurt Parliament, which was established that year. Although he failed, he became a well-known figure in the National Liberal Party and eventually became a deputy in the German Reichstag in 1871. After 1848, the liberal dream of a united Germany under the rule of law was thwarted. In the multifarious states and principalities of Germany, autocrats, monarchists and the landed classes quickly re-established their control and scattered the revolutionaries into prison or exile. Over the following two decades, Germany was indeed to be united but not by the means that the men of 1848 envisaged. Rather than constitutionalism and representative government, it was the ‘blood and iron’ of the Prussian Chancellor, Otto von Bismarck, that forged the creation of the German Empire in 1871. ‘The castles that they have built in the air have evaporated into blue mist,’ Rochau wrote of his fellow liberals. ‘A work that had begun with aimless enthusiasm and had been carried out with an overestimation of one’s capabilities ended in dishonour and injury.’ Thus, he invoked the need for something called ‘realpolitik’ as an antidote to the ‘idealpolitik’ that had inspired them but failed to yield any political success. As he was to elaborate in his second volume, realpolitik does not move in a foggy future, but in the present’s field of vision, it does not consider its task to consist in the realization of ideals, but in the attainment of concrete ends, and it knows, with reservations, to content itself with partial results, if their complete attainment is not achievable for the time being.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 51

23/10/18 12:44 PM

52

john bew

Ultimately, the thing he called realpolitik was an enemy of all kinds of self-delusion (von Rochau 1868). Moreover, Rochau rejected both Gefühlspolitik (sentimental politics) and Prinzipienpolitik (principled politics) as the basis for a nation’s foreign policy. In essence, Rochau’s original text might be understood as a form of liberal realism. Rather than abandoning the goals of the German liberal nationalism, he urged his colleagues to be willing to make compromises along the way, and to recognise that power was the foundational force in politics. In this respect, Rochau was a critic of utopianism, not idealism – a crucial distinction, often missed by those who claim the mantle of realism today. He understood that ideology played the ‘role of a harbinger and trailblazer of events’. Realpolitik ‘would contradict itself if it were to deny the rights of the intellect, of ideas, of religion or any other of the moral forces to which the human soul renders homage’. Yet what mattered was the political power of an idea, rather than its ‘rationality’. It was commonly said that ‘the most beautiful ideal that enthuses noble souls is a political nullity’. When it came to ‘phantasms’ like ‘eternal peace’, international fraternity and equality, with ‘no will and no force’ behind them, ‘Realpolitik passes by shrugging its shoulders.’ On the other hand, ‘the craziest chimera’ could become the most serious matter. One could not ignore ‘those latent forces of habit, tradition and sluggishness’, such as ‘poverty, lack of knowledge, and prejudice’, and even ‘immorality’.2 Some of these subtleties were lost in the afterlife of realpolitik. Even before Rochau’s death, the neologism was being deployed in ways that its creator would not have recognised. Writing a century later, the Harvard-based historian of Germany, Hajo Holborn, wrote that the term should not be used, except in association with statesmen who entered the scene in the decade after 1848, and even then it needed exact definition. As use of the word proliferated after 1853, however, so its original meaning became simplified. It came to denote either a policy contemptuous of all ideas and ideologies or a policy exclusively employing power for the achievement of its ends (Holborn 1960: 84–98). Gradually, too, an understanding of the liberal context in which Rochau had written was extinguished (Trocini 2009). It was after this period that realpolitik, born on the left of the political spectrum, was to become chiefly associated with those on the right. One figure was more important than any other in keeping alive the notion of realpolitik, and equally responsible for distorting its meaning. This was Rochau’s fellow National Liberal politician and historian, Heinrich von Treitschke, later described as the ‘prophet of national socialism’. After reading Rochau’s work, Treitschke set out to show his fellow Germans ‘how brilliant Realpolitik is’. In truth, he began to pollute its essence by infusing it with racialism, anti-Semitism, chauvinistic nationalism and a cultish devotion to the national ideal. For some, Treitschke was the perfect emblem of the rightward drift of German national liberalism, as it slipped into worship of the Prussian state. It is telling that Bismarck himself never used the word to self-describe his actions. But for Treitschke, who became the official historian of the Bismarckian state, it was the Chancellor who was the most effective practitioner of realpolitik (Sontag 1939: 127–39). As Germany had been united by Prussian force, and by a series of acts of war, the dividing lines became blurred between realpolitik (the art of realistic political analysis) and Machtpolitik (the use of force for political ends). In fairness to Bismarck, he understood this difference better than most. While he had deployed the instruments of force to unify Germany, he had also recognised the dangers

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 52

23/10/18 12:44 PM

realpolitik

53

of a national strategy in which Machtpolitik alone was the driving force. Thus Bismarck’s foreign policy was a self-limiting one. He sought to secure the territorial integrity of the new German state and keep down its greatest enemies (most of all, France). Equally, however, he understood the dangers of diplomatic isolation within Europe, and feared, above all, fighting a future war on both the western and eastern fronts. Yet these self-limiting ordinances were increasingly ignored by Germany’s leaders after Bismarck’s fall from the Chancellorship in 1890. Use of the word realpolitik became ever more ubiquitous among discussants of German foreign policy and statecraft – in Germany and beyond – but ever more unmoored from its original meaning. More specifically, realpolitik was now used interchangeably with another word that increasingly came to distinguish German’s approach to international politics in the quarter-century between 1890 and 1914. Weltpolitik was an aggregate ideology that evoked the prospect of German imperial expansion beyond Europe – to give Germans a ‘place in the sun’ – by the acquisition of colonies and an empire to rival those of Britain or France. In essence, it was the expression of Germany’s desire to be a world power. Like realpolitik, Weltpolitik was, as one scholar later wrote, ‘one of those wellknown but ill-defined catchwords with which the vocabulary of politics abounds’. In the 1890s, in the post-Bismarck era, it began to proliferate among an influential group of journalists and advocates of economic imperialism. Within government, it was those officials who had helped engineer Bismarck’s fall who put forward the most detailed expositions of Weltpolitik. By the First World War, it had become regularly used in the German Foreign Office, Colonial Office and Deutsche Bank – and existed in the links between business interests and various strands of the bureaucracy (Smith 1996: 18–19, 52–63). In making its entry on the world stage with such naked ambition, Germany imposed itself on the consciousness of its new rivals. In trying to make sense of German foreign policy, observers of Germany looked to terms such as Weltpolitik as a possible explanation for, and predictor of, German behaviour in the future. In discovering Weltpolitik in the 1890s, they also encountered realpolitik for the first time, even though a generation had passed since its creation. In the process of discovery, realpolitik not only became conflated with Weltpolitik, but also became associated with a list of other ills that were to play a role in the winding road to the outbreak of European war in 1914. By that time, Ludwig von Rochau was long forgotten and realpolitik had taken on a life of its own. For the British, this bastardised version of realpolitik was a deeply disconcerting discovery. It was the distinguishing mark of a dangerous new rival but also, more broadly, it implied a menacing and uncivilised worldview – a new way of looking at politics and international affairs – that set itself against those views prevalent among the English-speaking peoples. For most in the English-speaking world, in the era before the First World War, realpolitik was to be seen in an almost entirely negative light. It was usually interpreted as an outgrowth of Prussian militarism and German imperialism. It was taken to imply dastardly conduct on the international stage, in diplomacy and war. In this interpretation, Weltpolitik, Machtpolitik and realpolitik all seemed to grow from the same poisoned mind. Not everyone accepted the implication that realpolitik was a uniquely German condition, of course. In 1902, J. A. Hobson, who had reported on the Boer War for

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 53

23/10/18 12:44 PM

54

john bew

the Manchester Guardian, published Imperialism: A Study, in which he argued that Germany’s realpolitik was just one symptom of a general gangrene in international relations. The scramble for Africa and Asia was a battle in which all the major powers were engaged. This had created ‘alliances which cut across all natural lines of sympathy and historical association’, had led to unprecedented spending on military and naval armaments, and had even drawn the USA into the great game. Imperial ambitions fed into ‘a calculated, greedy type of Machiavellianism, entitled “real-politik” in Germany, where it was made, which has remodelled the whole art of diplomacy and has erected national aggrandisement without pity or scruple as the conscious motive force of foreign policy’ (Hobson 1902: 12–13). What Hobson called ‘earth hunger’ – the scramble for markets and resources – had led to the repudiation of treaty obligations and a narrow focus on self-interest. The result was a gradual deterioration of behaviour by all states in the international system. This was reflected in the ‘sliding scale of diplomatic language’ and the prevalence of notions such as ‘hinterland, sphere of interest, sphere of influence, paramountcy, suzerainty, [and] protectorate’. These were used to veil imperial ambitions and to rationalise the forcible seizure or annexation of land and the garrisoning of foreign ports. While Germany and Russia were bolder in their ‘professed adoption of the material gain of their country as the sole criterion of public conduct’, other nations had ‘not been slow to accept the standard’. Hobson warned that there were perils in such behaviour. Although the conduct of states in dealing with one another had always been determined by selfish and short-sighted considerations, things were getting worse. The conscious and deliberate adoption of these standards by all the major powers was ‘a retrograde step fraught with grave perils to the cause of civilisation’ (Hobson 1902: 12–13). The story of the USA and its relationship with realpolitik followed a different course and was not so bound up with Anglo-German rivalry. It was in the period from 1900 to 1914 that America awoke to the realpolitik that was causing such a stir in Europe. Yet America’s discovery of this concept was distinct from Britain’s in a number of ways. Americans saw reason to be suspicious of all the major European powers, and Britain – for all its claims to hold itself to a higher standard – was certainly not exempt from the ways of ‘old world’ diplomacy. At the same time, however, while not abandoning their exceptionalism, a small but increasingly influential portion of Americans argued that their country had to confront uncomfortable realities about the way the world worked. For them, America could no longer escape the machinations of the other powers and would soon be drawn into the game. In arguing that the USA needed to engage with the rest of the world – in a more front-footed and assertive manner – there emerged what might be called an American version of realpolitik, which was distinct from the German. At the most basic level, it was taken to imply a new geopolitical consciousness in which America must shape the world, before the world imposed itself on America. This ‘new realism’, which built on the ideas of Theodore Roosevelt and Admiral Alfred Thayer Mahan, began to develop as the war raged in Europe (Osgood 1953: 130–4). Three of the protagonists behind this robust internationalism made up a group of young editors at the New Republic: Walter Weyl, Herbert Croly and Walter Lippmann. Walter Weyl had travelled in Germany and was well read in German writing about statecraft. From this experience, Weyl concluded that America’s best policy in Europe

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 54

23/10/18 12:44 PM

realpolitik

55

was to present itself as the champion of ‘international law and morality’. America had the advantage that she was comparatively free from the historical enmities that divided Europe. However, as the USA embarked upon a programme of rearmament, she had to be aware that European states watched her moves with interest and suspicion. Despite the fact that America disclaimed any selfish aims in Europe, it was not to be expected that ‘the astute gentlemen who conduct European foreign affairs will construe our motives with excessive charity or interpret our diplomacy in terms of our own history and primers’. Europeans thought of US political leaders as ‘concrete, prescient, and ruthless, if heavy-handed statesmen’. ‘They ascribe to us more foresight than we possess, not realizing how often we have happily blundered into success, how often we have pursued Realpolitik in our sleep,’ Weyl wrote. He recounted a conversation he had had with a German academic about America’s position on a visit to Berlin: “‘We Germans”, a Berlin professor recently assured me, “write fat volumes about Realpolitik but understand it no better than babies in a nursery.” “You Americans”, he added, I thought enviously, “understand it far too well to talk about it”’ (Weyl 1916: 140–6). Although Weyl was the first to use the term, it was his fellow New Republic editor, Walter Lippmann, who might be regarded as the true father of American realpolitik (notwithstanding his role in Woodrow Wilson’s Fourteen Points of 1918). Lippmann, who left Harvard in 1910, later described how it was no longer possible ‘for an American in those days to be totally unconscious of the world he lives in’. In the last week of July 1914, Lippmann travelled to Belgium. He had planned to spend the summer walking across Germany, only for the border to be closed on the eve of Germany’s invasion. Lippmann rushed back to London and was actually in the House of Commons lobby on 4 August 1914 when Britain declared war on Germany (Rosenthal 1991: 21). As early as 1915, Lippmann began to build his case for America’s entry into the theatre of conflict, with the publication of Stakes of Diplomacy. In a chapter called ‘A Little Realpolitik’, he made the argument that peace could be secured if the Great Powers agreed to a humane and stable legal and administrative framework for governing unstable areas of the world. He derided pacifism and ‘peace-at-any-price propaganda’ as entailing not the abandonment of force, but its concentration in the least democratic empires. He also raised the prospect of ‘some coalition of the west’ to secure international order in the future, on the grounds that liberal democracies tended not to go to war with each other (Lippmann 2008: 111–26, 194–5). Seen another way, then, early American realpolitik was a case for robust internationalism, yet while a new era of international cooperation would be the long-term goal, the immediate situation required the USA to get its hands dirty. ‘If we are to grapple with the issues which distract the world, we have got to enter the theaters of trouble,’ Lippmann wrote. Investment and trade creation in backward countries would add weight to American diplomacy, but to be really effective, US foreign policy would ‘have to be weighted with armaments of sufficient power to make it heard by the Great Powers’. Moreover, Americans would have to abandon their traditional dislike of European alliances. More specifically, it would have to work with those powers whose interests, and approach to politics, were closest to its own. The prospect of America embarking on a global policy of its own was not one that Lippmann took lightly. He knew that it was likely to provoke serious opposition. Indeed, he spoke of his own discomfort at the prospect. Ultimately, however, isolationism had become

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 55

23/10/18 12:44 PM

56

john bew

untenable, and America’s only choice was between being the ‘passive victim of international disorder and resolving to be an active leader in ending it’. There were costs in abandoning isolation, of course, but one thing was certain: America would be safer by surrendering it deliberately than by allowing itself to be dragged unprepared and surprised into the melee of the nations (Lippmann 1917: 226–9). Later generations of realist writers have focused on Lippmann’s writing in the Cold War era. Those who have studied these earlier pronouncements are uncomfortable with the implications. According to T. J. Jackson Lears, Croly, Weyl and Lippmann ‘spoke a language pruned of hypermasculine excess, rhetorically pragmatic and tough-minded but as wedded to lofty purpose as ever’. This ‘lofty purpose’ was to use US intervention as a way to accomplish Wilson’s larger goal to remake the world on the American model. Lippmann and the editors of the New Republic were particularly fond of arguing that the USA had yet to reach consciousness about the fact that it had all the traits of an empire. For critics of American interventionism over the next hundred years, it has been argued that this ‘pattern of realistic rhetoric and unrealistic aims continued to characterize arguments for military intervention for decades to come’ (Lears 2012: 82–120). None the less, the importance of their legacy cannot be denied. One begins to see the tangled legacy of American realism in which realpolitik initially implied geopolitical awareness as much as anything else. After 1945, however, realpolitik was again to take on a different meaning in America, this time more laden with controversy. This was in the first decade after the Second World War – and in the early years of the Cold War – when those who described themselves as realists began to become more influential in American academia and diplomacy. For the most part, the self-described realists of the Cold War era eschewed the label. They understood that it carried negative baggage because of its Germanic origins. Those who had emigrated from Germany to the USA – from Hans Morgenthau to Henry Kissinger – were particularly sensitive to being dismissed in this way. None the less, the opponents of the realists – at the academic, diplomatic and public levels – began to cry foul about what they saw as the adoption of un-American political notions in the making of the country’s foreign policy. It is absurd to argue, as some did, that German realpolitik was mischievously inserted into American discourse by these German émigrés and that this somehow subverted the basis of American thought on international affairs. If anything, the opposite is the case; most residues of this concept were thoroughly Americanised. As early as October 1918, a young Protestant theologian called Reinhold Niebuhr – who was to become a key figure in America’s realist tradition – submitted an article to Walter Weyl of the New Republic on the ‘German–American problem’ (Weyl 1918). Rather than criticising his fellow German–Americans for dual loyalty, Niebuhr in fact argued that they did not have sufficient loyalty to the humanist and idealist traditions of German thought – that they had forgotten their heritage, failed to uphold European traditions of liberalism and therefore left the path clear for the aggressive foreign policy of Germany in this era (Merkley 1975: 18–19). The Germanic contribution to American foreign policy was not some sort of alien imposition, then; whatever remained of it only survived in so far as it resonated with existing strains of American political and theological thought. American realism did not entirely rid itself of traits that characterised German realpolitik. It

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 56

23/10/18 12:44 PM

realpolitik

57

was a different creed but one with some commonalities – not least a strong dose of Weberian pessimism. It was also similar in that it was shaped by the outworking of an internal moral and philosophical angst about the health of the nation and the challenges of modernity. This gave realist discourse a rather exasperated, impatient tone – reflected in its belief that the odds were stacked against it, or that the politicians in charge simply did not see what the realists could see. In a bourgeoning academic field of international relations, realist contempt for the illusions of others saw some of its proponents adopt an increasingly theologising or, in some cases, pseudo-scientific stance. Of all the German immigrants to the USA, the man to whom the label ‘realpolitik’ was most often appended was the jurist and international relations theorist Hans Morgenthau. While he was familiar with the word and was an admirer of Bismarck, he barely used it himself. Morgenthau’s English-language work must also be understood in its Anglo-American context. He regarded himself as the latest exponent of a tradition of Anglo-American realism, alongside pioneers of this credo, such as E. H. Carr (Morgenthau 1953). He repeatedly stressed the ethical value of prudential statecraft over any cult of national interest (Russell 1991: 1–9). According to Morgenthau, there were four great evils in American foreign policy thinking, which needed to be confronted: utopianism, sentimentalism, legalism and neo-isolationism. No nation could ‘escape into a realm where action is guided by moral principles rather than by considerations of power’ (Morgenthau 1951b: 13). Morgenthau’s stated concern was that the English-speaking peoples would forget their own realist heritage. Relying heavily on the work of English diplomatic historians of the 1910s and 1920s (such as Charles Webster, Harold Temperley and William Alison Phillips), Morgenthau made an argument that had become commonplace in 1930s Britain, shared by E. H. Carr and Neville Chamberlain – that there was more wisdom to be found in the 1815 Treaty of Vienna than the 1919 Treaty of Versailles. Typically, he praised Lord Castlereagh, in particular, for his ability to understand the ‘distinction and relationship between ideology and power politics’ and his ‘consistent refusal to be swayed by ideological preferences or animosities into embracing policies which can contribute nothing to the national interest of one’s country’. Others in this realist tradition included Alexander Hamilton, George Canning, John Quincy Adams, Benjamin Disraeli, Lord Salisbury and – of more recent vintage – Dean Acheson (Morgenthau 1951b). The lessons for American foreign policy were clear. The USA must avoid ‘well-intentioned folly’ and focus on its national interest rather than vague liberal internationalist fantasies. Despite his best efforts, Morgenthau could not escape the allegation that he was trying to convert America to some form of realpolitik. The criticism that stung Morgenthau most was that offered by a British historian, A. J. P. Taylor, writing in The Nation. Most historians would agree that power is the determining factor in international relations, Taylor began his review by conceding, but it was dangerous to define power too narrowly. Ideas were also a form of power, and the national interest was best secured by having them on one’s side. As the Cold War took shape, Taylor argued that it was the ‘best form of realism to have superior ideals’. Another criticism that Taylor made was that Morgenthau’s reaction broke down at the point of policy. Citing his support for a new deal with the Russians in Europe, Taylor

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 57

23/10/18 12:44 PM

58

john bew

wrote that Morgenthau’s policies, in contrast to his theories, were like everyone else’s: ‘pious wishes’. Morgenthau, like Metternich, was ‘a system-maker’. But foreign policy would not satisfy unless it followed a script or a pattern (Taylor 1951). For Morgenthau, this was no less than a battle for the soul of the American worldview. In an odd way, then, the precise details of foreign policy were of secondary importance to its theological premise. Thus, Morgenthau was eager to cast the postwar debate on American foreign policy as the most significant that had ever taken place in the history of international relations (as a field of study). One might say that American realism set itself an unrealistic task – of flushing Wilsonianism out of the American mind, and the American political system, entirely. In its efforts to do so, it also began to develop something of an identity crisis – stuck between a theology and a putative science. Writing in memory of Hans Morgenthau just after his death in 1980, Robert Osgood (director of research at Johns Hopkins Foreign Policy Institute in Washington, and a mentee) attempted to capture the realist mindset he represented. On the one hand, Osgood wrote, Morgenthau had ‘expounded the gospel of Realpolitik and exorcised the moralistic illusions nurtured during the nation’s isolation from the mainstream of international politics’. He had shown there was a moral dignity in the national interest, which lay in the responsible use of power. On the other hand, in a shrewd observation, Osgood also noted that Morgenthau ‘was more of a critic than a prophet’. Like many other realists, he was a critic inspired by a mission that was never fulfilled (Osgood 1980). As realpolitik experiences a return to fashion in American political discourse, it is ever more important to appreciate the different tributaries that have flowed into the contested versions of American realism, and how much they are shaped by the era in which they have been articulated. An important lesson from this historical record is just how contingent and ambiguous the meanings of such terms can be. The idea that they point to some fundamental truth about the way the world works – let alone a science of politics – is harder to support, the more they are put in context. In the hands of Walter Lippmann in the era of the First World War, realpolitik implied geopolitical readiness – a willingness to enter the great game. In the hands of the self-described ‘realists’ of the Cold War era, such as Morgenthau – whose ranks Lippmann later joined – realpolitik was a label that was consciously eschewed. This was so as to avoid the imputation that this was somehow a European – or, worse still, a German – way of thinking about international affairs, somewhat alien to the Anglo-American tradition. But this sensitivity over language spoke to a deeper truth. However insistent the proponents of postwar realism were that their version of international politics was the correct one and that their theories were the only true guide to policy, they remained conscious of, and deeply frustrated by, their status as outsiders. Thus, realism became primarily about restraint, attempting to put a harness on an untameable horse. In railing against the naivety of those who did not share their credo, many academic realists adopted a tone of righteous despair, even more frustrated by a political world that refused to follow their rules. And so we are confronted by the enduring irony that the torchbearers of realism seem engaged in an idealistic battle that can never be won, frustrated at every turn by some fatal providential flaw in the Anglo-American political mind.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 58

23/10/18 12:44 PM

realpolitik

59

Notes 1. For a history of the concept, see Bew (2016). 2. All quotations from Rochau in these two paragraphs are from Bew (2016: Chs 2 and 3, pp. 31–46, 47, 60).

Bibliography Aaronovitch, David (2017), ‘Fighting for rights is what makes us human’, The Times, 18 May. Baker, Peter (2010), ‘Obama puts his own mark on foreign policy issues’, New York Times, 10 April. Bew, John, (2016), Realpolitik: A History, Oxford University Press: Oxford. Haslam, Jonathan (2002), No Virtue Like Necessity: Realist Thought in International Relations since Machiavelli, New Haven, CT, and London: Yale University Press. Hobson, J. A. (1902), Imperialism: A Study, London: James Nisbet. Holborn, Hajo (1960), ‘Bismarck’s Realpolitik’, Journal of the History of Ideas, vol. 21, no. 1 (January–March 1960), pp. 84–98. Hounshell, Black (2010), ‘George H. W. Obama?’, Foreign Policy, 14 April. Kissinger, Henry (2012), ‘The limits of universalism’, Speech of 26 April, The New Criterion. Lears, T. J. Jackson (2012), ‘Pragmatic realism versus the American century’, in Andrew J. Bacevich (ed.), The Short American Century: A Postmortem, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, pp. 82–120. Lippmann, Walter (2008), The Stakes of Diplomacy, New Brunswick, NJ, and London: Transaction. Lippmann, Walter (2017), A Preface to Politics, New York, Henry Holt. Merkley, Paul (1975), Reinhold Niebuhr: A Political Account, Montreal and Ontario: McGill– Queen’s University Press. Morgenthau, Hans (1951a), In Defense of the National Interest: A Critical Examination of American Foreign Policy, New York: Alfred A. Knopf. Morgenthau, Hans (1951b), article in Saturday Evening Post, 11 August, in Hans J. Morgenthau Papers, Library of Congress, Washington DC, Box 115, Folder 5. Morgenthau, Hans (1953), letter to Kenneth Thompson, 24 December, in Hans J. Morgenthau Papers, Library of Congress, Washington DC, Box 56, Folder 7. Osgood, Robert E. (1953), Ideals and Self-Interest in America’s Foreign Relations, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Osgood, Robert E. (1980), ‘Hans Morgenthau’s foreign policy impact’, Chicago Tribune, 27 July. Rosenthal, Joel H. (1991), Righteous Realists: Political Realism, Responsible Power and American Culture in the Nuclear Age, Baton Rouge: Louisiana State University Press. Russell, Greg (1991), Hans J. Morgenthau and the Ethics of American Statecraft, Baton Rouge and London: Louisiana State University Press. Schmitz, Gregor Peter (2013), ‘Unlikely heir: Obama returns to Kissinger’s Realpolitik’, Der Spiegel, 22 May. Smith, Woodruff (1996), The Ideological Origins of Nazi Imperialism, New York: Oxford University Press. Sontag, Raymond J. (1939), ‘The Germany of Treitschke’, Foreign Affairs, vol. 18, no. 1, October, pp. 127–39. Taylor, A. J. P. (1951), Review of Hans Morgenthau on the National Interest, The Nation, 8 September.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 59

23/10/18 12:44 PM

60

john bew

Trocini, Frederico (2009), L’invenzione della ‘Realpolitik’ e la scoperta della ‘legge del potere’, Bologna: Mulino. von Rochau, Ludwig (1859), Grundsätze der Realpolitik: Angewendet auf die staatlichen Zustände Deutschlands, vol. 1, Stuttgart: Karl Göpel. von Rochau, Ludwig (1868), Grundsätze der Realpolitik, Angewendet auf die staatlichen Zustände Deutschlands, vol. 2, Heidelberg: J. C. B. Mohr. Waltz, Kenneth (1979), Theory of International Politics, New York: McGraw Hill. Weyl, Walter E. (1916), ‘American policy and European opinion’, Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Science, vol. 666, Preparedness and America’s International Program, July, pp. 140–6. Weyl, Walter (1918), letter to Reinhold Niebuhr, 24 October, The Reinhold Niebuhr Papers, Library of Congress, Washington DC, Correspondence, Box 3.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 60

23/10/18 12:44 PM

5 Political Realism and Ideology Scepticism and the politics of faith David Martin Jones

Chapter Overview

I

t is only in international politics that political realism developed as a coherent political doctrine. Realism is not an ideology but a disposition. It distrusts human nature and considers international rules conditional rather than absolute. It considers states with a monopoly of military power the most important actors in international affairs whilst the global society in which these states coexist remains, as it always has, an anarchy. As a consequence, it tends to be sceptical rather than ideological. The realist deals with the world as it is, not as the idealist or abstract ideologist thinks it ought to be. This chapter explores the contingent and prudential character of the realist disposition and contrasts it with the rationalist, abstract and axiomatic understanding that informs the ideological idiom of international thought. *

*

*

1. From the realist perspective, there are only three verities in world politics: diplomacy, treaties and war. Abstract schemes founded on international law, global justice or universal ideological panaceas, realists aver, frequently disappoint. Interestingly, the realist disposition lost both diplomatic appeal and academic traction with the end of the Cold War. This was for two, not entirely related, reasons. Realism assumes that Great Powers do not die in their beds. Great power status is won, as it is lost, by violence. As John Mearsheimer argued, this is their ‘tragedy’ (Mearsheimer 2006). Yet somewhat inconveniently, the Soviet Union imploded, internally dissolving through the body political equivalent of a terminally metastasising cancer. Subsequently, the apparent world historical triumph of a liberal democratic order promoting universally shared norms inspired a wave of optimism across the mainstream left and right of Western democratic politics. The benefits of world trade in an increasingly borderless world seemed to form an almost visible hand, shaping a progressive, interconnected and increasingly integrated world order. No one caught this mood better than Francis Fukuyama, whose ‘End of History’ thesis, that history ended with the fall of the Berlin Wall in 1989, left an indelible trace on post-Cold War diplomatic thinking (Fukuyama 1992). Its influence reached a peak in the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 61

23/10/18 12:44 PM

62

david martin jones

period leading up to the Iraq War of 2003. Fukuyama argued that Western liberal democracy had triumphed over communism and fascism, and thus constituted the final form of human government (Fukuyama 1992: 287–340). In Fukuyama’s account, capitalism and the free market ultimately triumphed over rival economic models and alternative ideologies. Following the collapse of communism in Europe, liberal market democracy appeared to be the ‘only game in town’ (Fukuyama 1992: 340).1 It also afforded the possibility of reforming capitalism’s more unjust and inegalitarian outcomes. History, in this progressive understanding, would witness capitalist democratic states transformed through their participation in cosmopolitan, postnational constellations such as the United Nations and the European Union. These state-transcending organisations and their norm entrepreneurs would facilitate transnational justice, economic redistribution and the observance of human rights throughout the international system. One consequence of this ‘ideological evolution’ was that large-scale conflict between the Great Powers was ‘passing from the scene’ (Giddens 1998: 140).2 The imposition of a liberal, democratic, rule- or norm-based global order appealed across party political lines and found enthusiastic adherents among key US allies. Ultimately, an abstract rationalism informed the ideological style of thought, whether in its Marxist, nationalist, communitarian, feminist or post-Cold War liberal internationalist manifestations. We shall therefore next explore the character of ideological rationalism before explaining how realism, understood as a form of prudential or practical reasoning in politics, differs from it.

2. Rationalism, as the English political philosopher Michael Oakeshott observed, emerged as a distinctive intellectual style in the early modern period of European politics (Oakeshott 1981: 5–6). It emphasised reason, though not as Aristotle or Aquinas understood it – namely, a faculty of the practical understanding – but as Bacon, Descartes and Kant came to view it – as theoretical or scientific. Rationalism promotes the sovereignty of technique with a view to the prospect of certainty. This possibility of certain knowledge, which a scientific method applied to the realm of politics promised, offered a technique that not only ‘ends with certainty but begins with certainty and is certain throughout’ (Oakeshott 1981: 12). From this perspective, traditional or practical knowledge was not really knowledge at all but mere custom and prejudice. As Oakeshott observed, ‘how deeply the rationalist disposition of mind has invaded our political thought and practice is illustrated by the extent to which (particular) traditions of political behaviour have given place to ideologies’ (1981: 21). The rationalist concern with technique implied a politics of perfection, which welcomed the growing bureaucratic power of government to make politics conform to what Friedrich Hayek termed a ‘scientistic’ rational plan (Espada 2016: 67). More particularly, Oakeshott counterposed the experience of a particular, contingent tradition and a local grammar of self-disclosure and self-understanding with the rationalist who ‘reduces the tangle and variety of experience to a set of principles which he will then attack and defend only upon rational grounds’ (1981: 6). Cutting itself off ‘from the traditional knowledge of society’, rationalism combined the politics of perfection with the politics of uniformity. Political activity consequently ‘consists in bringing the social, political, legal and institutional inheritance of society before the tribunal of the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 62

23/10/18 12:44 PM

ideology

63

rationalist’s intellect. “The rest”, as members of the European Union currently find, ‘is rational administration’ (1981: 8). In its twentieth-century, non-liberal forms of nationalism, fascism or Marxism– Leninism, ideology was both historicist and hard-headed in pursuing a revolutionary end. Ideology was, as Kenneth Minogue, contended, intellectually devastating . . . because it spread the illusion that those in possession of ideological wisdom had found the secret of understanding society as a whole. . . . The remarkable illusion shared by both communists, feminists, many nationalists and lots of other advanced thinkers was created by imagining that the contingent world we actually inhabit with all its unpredictability was actually a system. (Minogue 2008: xix) A system acts in a scientifically explicable manner that the ideologist deems oppressive. Ideological parties thus sought power in order to ‘purify’ society in terms of race or class or some other abstraction. The end of history in 1989, however, represented an ideological watershed. The historic failure of totalitarian regimes meant culture and ethics appeared more ideologically interesting for world transformation than economics, and authenticity and alienation more effective for emancipation than exploitation and the labour theory of value. Ethical aspirations in the form of multiculturalism, environmentalism and global justice were advanced with an untoward confidence in their revelatory selfevidence. Ethical transformation brought about by transnational activists and international institutions offered a seductive invitation to join a movement bent on creating the better world to which all reforms must point. The new transnational, progressive ideological drive of the post-Cold War sought to achieve a world characterised by secularism, internationalism and equality. Secularism banished appeals to anything otherworldly; internationalism meant liberation from oppressive nation-states through submission to notionally ethical international bodies; while equality demanded redistribution and the demand that everyone lead the same life as everyone else (Minogue 2008: xxxiii). The rationalist ideological style is thus activist and Oakeshott contrasted its ‘politics of faith’ Oakeshott 1996), or the fanaticism of this secular religion, with that of a contingent political tradition informed by what Leo Strauss identified as the particular and prudential character of classical reason (Espada 2016: 54). The rationalism inherent in all ideological projects, whether liberal, socialist, feminist or identity-driven, is inimical to the politics of scepticism, central, as it is, to the realist disposition, which we shall now explore.

3. The millennial zeitgeist was clearly unsympathetic to realism and to its dourly pessimistic view of the human condition, which stressed the intractability of state interests, the inevitability of conflict and the dangers of life in a world of sovereign states. Consequently, the vice of much current thinking about international politics has been to take an excessively long view of the future and an excessively short view of the past. The contemporary understanding of both international law and international politics

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 63

23/10/18 12:44 PM

64

david martin jones

considers the use of both hard and soft power to be appropriate only for humanitarian ends that fulfil a set of predetermined rationalist axioms laid down either in the United Nations charter or by international courts. Western interventions post 9/11were preoccupied with an abstract rationalist model applied generally. Diplomacy lost sight of the particular. Yet a realist strategy, to be effective, requires a clear political aim, which might deviate from the general, axiomatically determined, rule. In the aftermath of Western interventions in Iraq and Afghanistan, however, the prevailing historicist teleology ran into unanticipated, countervailing forces. Unforeseen but immovable obstacles have appeared in the path of a rationalist and emancipatory transformation of the interstate system. The recrudescence of identity politics, Russian irredentism in the Caucasus, the civil war in Ukraine and China’s emergence on the world stage as a great but authoritarian power, together with the continued turmoil in the Middle East, including the rise of the so-called ‘Islamic State in Iraq and Syria’ (ISIS), intimate not the end of history, but the ‘revenge of the revisionist powers’ and the ‘return of geopolitics’ (Mead 2014: 69–79). History, after a brief nap, has reawakened, requiring states to reassess how they conduct themselves in an uncertain, anarchic, international society. Faced with this changed reality, Western powers and regional institutions have appeared, in the second decade of the twenty-first century, as distracted and weak. They have consistently been outmanœuvred on the international stage by Russia and China, states with an apparent capacity to assert their national interests without inhibition. In the context of the Ukraine crisis of 2013–15, European policymakers clung to the hope that dialogue, law and judicious sanctions could achieve a solution. Yet ‘to be credible strategy requires a full toolbox’; and European ‘diplomacy without arms’, as Frederick the Great observed, ‘is like music without instruments’ (Anon. 2015: 35). Consequently, while the European Union considered the whole notion of geopolitics old-fashioned and unappealing, geopolitics happened on its doorstep. As Charles Powell, former foreign policy adviser to Prime Minister Margaret Thatcher, argued, the ‘false doctrine of soft power’ and ‘creeping legalism’ made it increasingly ‘hard to galvanise democratic societies to meet new threats’ (Powell 2014). While Russia’s violation of the integrity of the Ukraine threatened the regional legal order that governed Europe, the fallout from the Iraq and Syrian civil wars raised the problem of the internal and external security of European democracies in a different but equally acute form, not evidently amenable to internationally mediated legal solutions. Such new, and not so new, threats to the international order suggest a need not for abstract norms, but for a strategy conducted on a casuistic case-by-case evaluation of the merits of intervention, together with a careful assessment of its practical and moral limitations. In the light of the recent dramatic changes in the character and conduct of international affairs, the politically realist contention that ‘the concept of interest defined in terms of power’ might save us ‘from both . . . moral excess and political folly’ has dramatically resurfaced in international politics (Wight 1979: 111). Grand strategy, from this perspective, requires the systematic pursuit of objectives that reconcile economic and military means with a reasoned appreciation of what is feasible in a dangerous world. As Hans Morgenthau claimed,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 64

23/10/18 12:44 PM

ideology

65

There can be no political morality without prudence; that is, without consideration of the political consequences of seemingly moral action. Ethics in the abstract judges action by its conformity with the moral law; political ethics judges action by its political consequences. (Morgenthau 1978: 12) Only in the wake of the failure of the world to transform along ‘end-of-history’ lines and with the rise of the revisionist powers do we realise that, instead of emancipation, liberal international progressivism has abandoned us to an age of anger, stranded on ‘a darkling plain, swept with confused alarms of struggle and flight, where ignorant armies clash by night’ (Arnold 1994: 86). It is in this mood that a return to a realism that recognises the inevitability of conflict, the intractability of interests, and the dangers of life in a world of sovereign states commends itself. The virtues it applauds are not those of global justice or abstract human rights but rather those of prudence, enlightened self-interest and vigilance as the basis of a political action that avoids ‘premature generalizations’ (Toulmin 2001: 117). Of these classical virtues of statecraft, the notion of ‘prudence’ has been one of the most prized in Western political thought and the most often misunderstood. As Aristotle explained in the Nichomachean Ethics, ‘prudence (phronesis) is concerned with particulars as well as universals, and particulars become known from experience’ (Aristotle 1985: 160). More precisely, phronesis referred to the practical political skill of managing city-states. The Latin prudentia is one possible translation of phronesis – the practical skill involved in moral and political agency. For Greek and Roman political thinkers concerned with the res publica (the public thing), it was the virtue most at home among statesmen. Yet, just as realism is a highly contingent notion, so prudence has always been an ambiguous term. This was in part because it not only constituted a virtue but also involved discrimination between incompatible virtues in particular circumstances. As Kenneth Minogue observed, Reflection on prudence reveals that all virtues do not constitute a single coherent system of the moral life, but rather exhibiting some virtues can be incompatible with acting on others. The man of honour, for instance cannot always be prudent. Prudence is a joker in the moral pack and its business, on occasions, is to trump its fellow virtues. (Minogue 2005: 36) This business, as it has applied to international politics, has evolved over the last 500 years and bequeathed us our ambiguous political language. Terms like prudence, honour and justice are neither rational unities nor fortuitous collections, but hybrid ‘historic compounds’ (Oakeshott 1996: 8). As such they are worth unpacking.

4. As the visitor enters Room 6 of the National Gallery in London’s Trafalgar Square, their eye might find itself drawn to one of the more enigmatic paintings of the Venetian Renaissance. It depicts a curious three-faced figure of a mature man facing the viewer,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 65

23/10/18 12:44 PM

66

david martin jones

profiled on one side by a wizened old man and on the other by the callow features of a youth. Beneath the three-faced figure sits a three-faced beast, a lion’s visage facing, profiled by a wolf on one side and a dog on the other. Across the top of the painting runs the maxim EX PRAETERITO PRAESENS PRUDENTER AGIT, NI FUTUREM ACTIONEM DETURPET; in English, roughly translated, it reads ‘From the experience of the past/The present acts prudently/Lest it spoil the future.’ Tiziano Vecelli’s (Titian) The Allegory of Time Governed by Prudence (1565) may be read as a depiction of both the three ages of man and the image of a wolf devouring the memory of the past, the lion demonstrating the fortitude necessary in the present, and lastly a dog bounding into the future. Painting the Counter-Reformation for Philip II, Titian saw allegorical representation as a vehicle for conveying political understanding. Like other Counter-Reformation thinkers and artists influenced by the Renaissance recovery of Roman and Greek political understanding, Titian and his patrons were profoundly aware of the need for what Aristotle had termed political prudence in all actions concerned with the art, not the science, of government. Political prudence and the foresight it offered to choose the correct means to a political end not only had occupied the classical world and returned strongly with the Reformation and the birth of the early modern state, but it had also concerned the greatest medieval philosopher, Thomas Aquinas, whose Secunda Secundae of the Summa Theologiae (II-II 47–50) is in part devoted to a synthesis of classical and Christian thinking on prudence. For Aquinas following Aristotle, prudence is a form of practical reason. It involves memory and shrewdness, and requires command leading to action. It is intimately concerned with euboulia, or ‘deliberating well’, and synesis, or ‘judging well’. Moreover, even a scholastic thinker like Aquinas recognised that political prudence concerned contingent matters of action, ‘where even as the false is found with the true, so is evil mingled with good’. The recognition of the distinctive character of the political realm became more acute at the Reformation as Christendom disintegrated and political elites, whether Protestant or Catholic, searched for a formula to address the devastating consequences of religious enthusiasm. The formula they discovered was that of prudent counsel, adapting practical political reason to contingent circumstances. The doctrine that evolved was raison d’état (reason of state), practised by the more successful rulers of the period, whether Catholic like Philip II, Protestant like Elizabeth or irenic like Henry of Navarre. The sixteenth- and seventeenth-century political thinkers who bequeathed us our ambivalent language of government and defined the modern understanding of sovereignty and the nature of political obedience had much to say about the relationship between the state and the strategic use of force to sustain external and internal peace, yet this aspect of their thought is largely neglected. These realist theorists clarified the identity of the modern state and how it maintained and defended its right to exist, offering a practical counsel that modern Western democracies, in their efforts to maintain internal order or conduct wars of choice, would do well to reassess. The century from the Counter-Reformation to the Peace of Westphalia was almost as bloody as the twentieth in terms of the devastation it wreaked upon Europe. Between 1550 and 1648, Europe suffered divisive internal as well as external war, and witnessed the often brutal severing of traditional political and religious allegiances from Prague to Edinburgh.3

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 66

23/10/18 12:44 PM

ideology

67

It was in the context of confessional division and internecine war that the modern unitary state emerged, unsteadily, from the disintegrating chrysalis of the medieval realm. With it arose a new scepticism about morality, law and order that came to be termed politique. The realist thinkers that outlined this political project, from Niccolò Machiavelli at the start of the century to the Dutch humanist, Justus Lipsius, at its end, were notably wary of abstract moral injunctions when it came to difficult questions of war and governance. Instead, they offered a distinctive counsel of prudence, or practical morality, when considering the use of force. Unlike the contemporary human rights lobby, practical sixteenth-century guides to statecraft offered maxims or aphorisms, not axioms, to address difficult cases like war. This practical advice to princes and republics on policy contrasts dramatically with contemporary international law and its application of an abstract, rational, moral and legal standard to all cases of the use of force. Yet a return to a prudent rhetoric of reasonableness, especially in foreign policy debates, could restore the balance that abstract theoretical rationalism, with its preoccupation with certain rules and systems, has disturbed. In a world of uncertainty and complexity, abstract rationalist rigour is less appropriate than the sixteenthcentury humanism of those like Michel de Montaigne, who exhorted his readers to live with ambiguity and without judgement. Indeed, as Stephen Toulmin has argued, an updated prudential and practical ethics, or casuistry, can still have value in resolving doubtful cases ranging from war to euthanasia in the twenty-first century (Jonsen and Toulmin 1988).

5. What, then, was the character of this practical case analysis, and what implications does it have for modern statecraft and strategy? To recover this prudential view, and what it means for contemporary strategic thought, requires first that we establish how a distinctive approach to difficult cases of obligation emerged in the sixteenth century, as a response to confessional division and political fragmentation. This evolved as humanist philosophers and statesmen adapted from Aristotle’s Rhetoric and Nicomachean Ethics, Cicero’s De Officiis and the histories of Tacitus, Polybius and Livy, a practical case ethics and a set of maxims to address questions of war and peace. In the process of interrogating the classical world for advice on political conduct, they walked eyes backwards into a realist or more accurately prudential understanding of statecraft. Indeed, as Oakeshott again observed, Perhaps the greatest achievement of the period was to elaborate the practices and principles of a modern sceptical manner of diplomacy and the conduct of relations with other states – a manner which had no place for foreign policy as the prosecution of a foreign crusade. (Oakeshott 1996: 82) A prudent political engagement thus required an awareness of providence and necessity, together with a common interest in the pursuit of practical wisdom, rather than passion, religious enthusiasm and opinion. Prudential reasoning about the political and international condition that formed the basis of both early modern and much modern statecraft got lost in the Cold War era of ideological confrontation and the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 67

23/10/18 12:44 PM

68

david martin jones

postwar one, where the ‘end of history’ intimated a condition governed by internationally agreed norms. To the extent that the dominant global power, the USA, considered prudence at all, it existed in a somewhat desiccated form as a concern with caution and restraint. We might finally consider, then, how this late humanist approach to prudent political reason might address contemporary problems in world politics. Ultimately, the sixteenth-century politique humanism that thinkers like Jean Bodin, Giovanni Botero and Justus Lipsius pioneered, evinced a preoccupation with prudence and utilitas at the expense of honestas. It addressed the evolving predicament that the early modern (as well as the modern) politician faced: namely, the problem of deliberating and presenting controversial policies in contingent circumstances of change and uncertainty. This practical philosophic approach to difficult cases differs from axiomatic international legal rationalism in its sensitivity to the difficulty of applying abstract norms to the particular experience of difficult cases. As Jonsen and Toulmin explain in The Abuse of Casuistry, for the rationalist, ‘general ethical rules relate to specific moral cases in a theoretical manner, with universal rules serving as “axioms” from which particular moral rules are deduced as theorems’. By contrast, for a prudent casuist, ‘the relation is frankly practical with general moral rules serving as “maxims” which can be fully understood only in terms of the paradigmatic cases that define their meaning and force’ (Jonsen and Toulmin 1988: 23). Such an approach emphasises practical statements and arguments that are ‘concrete, temporal and presumptive’ (Jonsen and Toulmin 1988: 27). In the practical field of international politics, unlike the exact theoretical or natural sciences, immediate facts and particular and specific situations affect the very different practices of deliberation, presentation and judgement. Contra its modern critics, statecraft and raison d’état, moreover, were not amoral, but evolved a ‘mixed’ prudential form that philosophical counsellors to statesmen and princes developed to address the predicament of sixteenth- and seventeenth-century rule. Following this counsel, we would arrive at a different and perhaps more practical set of maxims for difficult and ambiguous cases, whether it be the international community’s response to Putin’s intervention in Ukraine or the failure of the international community to intervene in Syria. In such cases, a modern-day practitioner of prudent advice would contend that the counsel offered to a prime minister or president would recognise the necessity of a situational ethical practice that directed the prince to that ‘great goal that is the common good’.4 This is particularly the case in global politics, where opinion and passion, both transitory and unstable, influence the masses. Wise counsel must take into account popular credulity and fecklessness. This necessarily affects the conduct of the prince or president who, in order to maintain stability and peace, must, of necessity, have recourse to a mixed prudence that adjusts to a ‘reality that is changeable in every respect’ (Lipsius 2004: 4.1, 383). Such prudence makes use of both simulation and dissimulation to advance the common good. Indeed, while truth is better than falsehood, as the ancients acknowledge, ‘experience shows the dignity and qualities of both’. In difficult cases, prudent conduct might, in other words, ‘depart slightly from human laws, but only in order to preserve [one’s] position never to extend it. For necessity being a great defender of the weakness of man, breaks every law’ (Lipsius 2004: 4.14, 531).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 68

23/10/18 12:44 PM

ideology

69

Hence, mixed prudence and virtue are the two leaders of civil life but prudence ‘is the rudder that guides the virtues’. In particular, it ‘offers insight’ into cases of war or peace and the state’s right in such decisions. Here, history and experience, rather than abstract norms, play a central role in determining a prudent course. History ‘is the fount from which political and prudential choosing flows’ (Lipsius 2004: 4.1, 385). Since the end of the Cold War, such a mixed prudential view of international politics has been honoured only in the breach by both US and European governments, as well as their idealist critics. By contrast, the prudent adviser to early modern monarchs recognised the danger of presenting advice in overly idealistic terms that could lead to a damaging loss of credibility. In the context of the North Atlantic Treaty Organization (NATO)’s eastward expansion and Putin’s reclamation of the Crimea, the prudent counsellor might observe that ‘the pretence’ of idealism often ‘ignites the fires of strife’ across Europe (Lipsius 2004: 3.2, 391). Ultimately, a prince in troubled cases like Syria or the Crimea would recognise, unlike President Obama, that he ‘must do not what is beautiful to say, but what is necessary in practice’ (Lipsius 2004: 4.14, 531). An early modern practical philosopher would be astonished at how little prepared the political class in the USA and Europe are for war. Lacking knowledge of military prudence, they are unlikely to deliberate slowly over the reasons for the use of force or the outcome of using it. Lack of attention to history (memoria) and examples (exemplum) leads to the problems encountered in Afghanistan and Iraq, and a failure to appreciate Russia’s long-term strategic interest in the Crimea or China’s in the South China Sea. More particularly, the West’s conduct of international relations increasingly requires an awareness of the arcana governing all interventions and the need to practise a differential political morality. This would recognise the importance of Tacitean and Stoic advice on the difficulty of political action. It would also recognise, as Machiavelli observed, that ‘all courses of action are risky, so prudence is not in avoiding danger (it’s impossible) but calculating risk and acting decisively’ (Machiavelli 1944: 21). Linking raison d’état to active Roman virtue rather than theoretically abstract rule consequentialism would, a sceptical realist might argue, offer a limited ethical practice more easily adjusted to our ‘troubled condition of confusion and change’.

6. In Democracy in America, Alexis de Tocqueville recognised that foreign politics demand scarcely any of those qualities which a democracy possesses; and they require on the contrary the perfect use of almost all of those faculties in which it is deficient. . . . It cannot combine measures with secrecy, and it will not await their consequences with patience. . . . Democracies obey the impulse of passion rather than the suggestions of prudence and . . . abandon a mature design for the gratification of a momentary caprice. (Tocqueville 2002: 1.13, 262) In the world’s twenty-first-century democracies, Tocqueville’s observation seems particularly apt. There is little patience for the ‘mature design’ needed for success in international affairs. Moreover, the pressures on leaders in Western democracies have only increased. They include a twenty-four-hour news cycle and unprecedented media

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 69

23/10/18 12:44 PM

70

david martin jones

scrutiny, the need to maintain public support for a policy against the backdrop of intensive polling, and the phenomenon of catastrophic breaches of secrecy, as we have seen in the case of Edward Snowden and Wikileaks. Such pressures lead to mistakes. Too often we have seen a rush to the media briefing in a way that negates the shrewdness, circumspection and search for consensus that the traditional practice of realist diplomacy requires. Megaphone diplomacy via social media can do irreparable harm. Cheapening the language of diplomacy to 140 characters renders it nasty, brutish, short and demagogic. Even off-hand or well-intended public statements can take on a life of their own when they enter the public domain. In such circumstances, a prudent counsel would advise the selective application of the material of deliberation about a particular policy to the requirements of media presentation. Too often, however, modern theorists of international relations have failed to appreciate the changing nature of diplomatic practice. The idea that international affairs follow certain historically determined rules fails to appreciate the contingent texture of diplomatic history and practice. Rather than setting the future on digital or high-tech diplomacy, or assuming, as liberal internationalism does, an inexorable global meliorism, it is perhaps time to reassess the traditional virtues of realism and statecraft. Yet, to mention ‘statecraft’ and ‘virtue’ in the same breath is, in certain academic quarters, to court derision or disbelief. We have been taught that politics is a dirty game, and diplomacy between self-interested nations its most perverse manifestation. ‘An ambassador is an honest gentleman sent to lie abroad for the good of his country,’ the English diplomat Sir Henry Wotton is reported to have remarked on a mission to Augsburg in 1604. Yet few would deny the positive aspects of diplomacy – a willingness to compromise and seek compromise and, above all else, seek alternatives to conflict and war. In the modern era, our diplomatic habits might benefit from some readjustment to allow the older realist virtues to flourish. Prudence is a tradition that has been lost to rationalist theories of international relations. It still, however, continues to offer the possibility of a prudential grand strategy, predicated on the foundations of existing political thought, for the anarchic international society of the twenty-first century.

Notes 1. 2. 3. 4.

See also Linz and Stepan (1996); Friedman (2000). See also Held and McGrew (2000); Katzenstein (2005). See Greengrass (2016). Justus Lipsius, Politicorum sive civilis doctrinae libri sex (1589). All references are from Lipsius (2004: 2.6, 309).

Bibliography Anon. (2015), ‘A lurch onto the world stage’, The Economist, 28 February, p. 35. Arnold, Matthew (1994), Dover Beach and Other Poems, New York, Dover Thrift, p. 86. Aristotle (1985), Nicomachean Ethics, Indianapolis: Hackett. Espada, João Carlos (2016), The Anglo-American Tradition of Liberty: A View from Europe, London: Routledge.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 70

23/10/18 12:44 PM

ideology

71

Friedman, Thomas L. (2000), The Lexus and the Olive Tree, London: HarperCollins. Fukuyama, Francis (1992), The End of History and the Last Man, London: Penguin. Giddens, Anthony (1998), The Third Way: The Renewal of Social Democracy, Cambridge: Polity Press. Greengrass, Mark (2016), Christendom Destroyed: Europe 1517–1648, London: Penguin. Held, David, and Anthony McGrew (eds) (2000), The Global Transformations Reader: An Introduction to the Globalization Debate, Cambridge: Polity Press. Jonsen, Albert R., and Stephen Toulmin (1988), The Abuse of Casuistry, Berkeley: University of California Press. Katzenstein, Peter (2005), A World of Regions: Asia and Europe in the American Imperium, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Linz, Juan, and Alfred Stepan (1996), Problems of Democratic Transition and Consolidation: Southern Europe, South America, and Post-Communist Europe, Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press. Lipsius, Justus (2004), Politica: Six Books of Politics or Political Instruction, ed. by Jan Waszink, Assen: Royal Van Gorcum. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1944), The Prince, London: J. M. Dent. Mead, Walter Russell (2014), ‘The return of geopolitics: the revenge of the revisionist powers’, Foreign Affairs, vol. 93, no. 3, pp. 69–79. Mearsheimer, John J. (2006), The Tragedy of Great Power Politics, New York: Norton. Minogue, Kenneth R. (2005), ‘Prudence’, in Digby Anderson (ed.), Decadence, London: Social Affairs Unit. Minogue, Kenneth R. (2008), Alien Powers: The Pure Theory of Ideology, Wilmington, DE: ISI Books. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1978), Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, New York: Knopf. Oakeshott, Michael (1981), ‘Rationalism in politics’, in Rationalism in Politics and Other Essays, London: Methuen. Oakeshott, Michael (1996), The Politics of Faith and the Politics of Scepticism, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Powell, Charles (2014), ‘The West will pay for losing its backbone in Iraq and Ukraine’, Daily Telegraph, 19 June. Tocqueville, Alexis de (2002), Democracy in America, Pennsylvania: Pennsylvania State University Press. Toulmin, Stephen (2001), Return to Reason, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Wight, Martin (1979), Power Politics, London: Penguin.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 71

23/10/18 12:44 PM

6 Political Realism and Civil–Military Relations Clausewitz and the meaning of war Lindsay P. Cohn

Chapter Overview

F

undamentally, Clausewitz believes that the political nature of war makes it an intersubjective rather than an objective phenomenon, and makes it imperative that military logic inform political logic, but give way to political logic when the two are in tension. In short, he challenges both standard political realism and the standard US (Huntingtonian) narrative of appropriate civil–military relations at the top of the policy-making pyramid. Based on his claim on the very first page of On War, that law and morality are ‘self-imposed, imperceptible limitations hardly worth mentioning’, he has traditionally been considered a political realist along the lines of Thucydides and Machiavelli. However, while this attitude of his certainly excludes him from the idealist/ liberal camp, it does not automatically then make him a realist, as I will go on to show. *

*

*

Was Clausewitz a Realist? Colin Elman (2007) has argued that, among the various schools of realist thought, there are some common threads: namely, that the nature of international relations is constant (or, at most, cyclical) rather than progressive, and that human selfishness or lack of trust leads to competitive attempts to accumulate power. Beyond that, realists disagree on a fair amount. (Neo)Classical realism is sceptical about the constraints of law and morality – the classic statement being from Thucydides’ Melian Dialogue, that right is at issue only between those who are equal in power. It is thus focused on the need to maintain relative gains and to focus on security or power as the ultimate value. Anarchy is a permissive element, and wars happen because flawed, powerhungry human beings make the decisions. Neorealism (or structural realism), on the other hand, basically argues that war can be explained without reference to individual leader motivations or the internal characteristics of states because, in an anarchic world of functionally like units, the only thing that matters for explaining their relations is the distribution of power (or capabilities). Waltz (1979) does not assume that state behaviour is actually rational, only that states

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 72

23/10/18 12:44 PM

civil–military relations

73

that get into wars irrationally will be selected out of the system. Both forms of realism, however, privilege rationalist explanations of war. Given that Clausewitz is not trying to explain why wars happen or even why states interact with each other in the way that they do, but rather why war is the way it is and how to win one, assigning him to any school of international relations theory is going to involve extrapolation. Neorealists would have difficulty accepting Clausewitz because of his focus on factors internal to the state and on non-material elements of power (see below). The classical realists tend to claim him because of his stance that law does not constrain state behaviour, but constructivists have a fair shot at him because of his arguments about the critical role played by subjective values and the intersubjective meaning of victory. Clausewitz does fit the classical realist narrative in that he believes that the nature of war is unchanging and that states’ relations with one another will always involve force in some way. He does not comment on the specific causes of war, except to point out that war is a tool of policy and is generally undertaken in order to accomplish something that the political leadership does not think it can accomplish through negotiation devoid of the threat of violence. In fact, Clausewitz’s discussion of war sounds very rationalist and foreshadows the idea of war as bargaining. He notes that the two sides will stop fighting when they feel the costs outweigh the value of the object or the probability of achieving the object. He argues that actual fighting is not necessary if one side is able to evaluate the likely cost and determine beforehand that the fighting is not worth the object.1 Much of his discussion serves as a clear basis for the later theorising of Schelling (1966) on deterrence (see Clausewitz 91–4 on deterrence by punishment and denial)2 and Fearon (1995) on rationalist explanations of war (Reiter 2003).3 Clausewitz is not, however, a pure rationalist.

Clausewitz the Constructivist? The Intersubjectivity of War While Clausewitz is famous for calling law and morality ‘limitations hardly worth mentioning’, his further discussion acknowledges that, if both sides share the same standards of morality, that common morality is likely to limit their behaviour in war. This is where Clausewitz begins to look more like a constructivist: his arguments assume the internal characteristics of the state and the military matter, and frequently allude to the inter-subjective nature of war. All of his descriptions and analogies – the Zweikampf, the wrestling match – are of struggles in which both sides know what victory and defeat look like, and in which both sides know what behaviour follows appropriately upon victory or defeat. In short, while Clausewitz writes as though the nature of war were objective, he describes an intersubjective phenomenon. ‘War is . . . an act of force to compel our enemy to do our will’ (Clausewitz 1976: 75). The ultimate aim is to get the enemy to do/refrain from doing something we want. We cannot physically force that behaviour; all we can do is put the other in a position where he does it under his own will. In Clausewitz’s pure theory, this is supposed to happen because one side wins a fight and the other acknowledges defeat (77, 90–1). Implicit in this is that the winner and loser both agree what constitutes ‘winning’ and ‘losing’, and agree that the price one pays for losing is to do what the victor wants.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 73

23/10/18 12:44 PM

74

lindsay p. cohn

This is clearly intersubjective reasoning. Unless the object of the war is to occupy territory – in which case the ‘military’ and ‘political’ objectives are identical (81) – there is no sense in which the meaning of ‘winning’ or ‘losing’ is objective,4 or in which the fact that you ‘won’ and I ‘lost’ means I have to agree to all of your terms.5 For Clausewitz, the fact that war is quintessentially political makes it quintessentially both subjective and intersubjective. If war were merely a contest of brute strength – of Schelling’s ‘force’ and not of ‘violence’ – then it might be objective, and amenable to objective analysis in the way that structural realists prefer. Because Clausewitz considers state power to consist of both the state’s means (actual and potential) and the ‘strength of his will’ or the ‘moral element’ (77, 97), which is related directly to the value the state places on the political object, the nature of war cannot fail to be both subjective and intersubjective.6

Clausewitz on Civil–Military Relations It is largely because of this political nature, this intersubjectivity, that Clausewitz thinks of civil–military relations as important. It is because the nature of war and the meaning of violence are not objective that the interaction of the military and political logics matters. Many readers of On War have taken the discussion of the ‘logic’ of war as tending to ‘extremes’, and concluded that Clausewitz believed that if a state were going to wage war, the only sensible way to do it would be to engage in total war, mobilising the entire resources of the state and attacking with immediate and overwhelming force. But this is not what Clausewitz is arguing, at all. He is making the point that if war were merely a military activity – merely a contest of strength – then the logic of such a contest would demand such an approach. War, however, is not a merely military activity; it is the employment of violence for the purposes of bargaining for some other objective. He notes, we could . . . proclaim . . . that, since the extreme must always be the goal, the greatest effort must always be exerted. Any such pronouncement . . . would often result in strength being wasted, which is contrary to other principles of statecraft. An effort of will out of all proportion to the object in view would be needed, but would not in fact be realized, since subtleties of logic do not motivate the human will. (78, emphasis mine) In other words, while the logic of force (‘military logic’) always requires maximum effort regardless of the value of the object, this would frequently be a waste of resources, and would require a level of public support that simply would not be forthcoming for limited goals. Thus, it is not only unlikely to work, but also undesirable and wasteful. The state need only use enough force.7 How to calculate ‘enough’? The leader must estimate the will and force the adversary will be willing to engage for his most likely objective. This is where Clausewitz deviates from the Huntingtonian model of civilian control of the military that has long been accepted as common wisdom, and which argues that once the decision for war has been made, military logic should dominate (or risk failure). Below, I briefly discuss the discourse around civil–military relations (particularly in the USA), and then return to the issue of why Clausewitz’s views deserve attention.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 74

23/10/18 12:44 PM

civil–military relations

75

What are ‘Civil–Military Relations’? ‘Civil–military relations’ is the name we give to the complex of relationships among the government, the military and society. The field is inherently both normative and empirical. The original impetus for thinking about this is usually attributed to Plato, as he discusses the awkward relationship between the martial class and the philosopher king in the Republic. As Peter Feaver (2003) explains, this is an issue that arises in societies that have a division of labour in terms of who fights and who does not fight. Once there is one group in the society that has a strong dominance over the tools of coercion, the inherent problem is: how does the society ensure that this group employs coercion only on behalf of the whole society, and not in pursuit of that group’s own goals? In the best-known (English-language) treatment of this issue, Huntington (1957) argues that there are two ways to try to achieve control: subjective control, which involves treating the military as an interest group and a power player, and manipulating its demographic, ideological or religious make-up in order to align it with the ruling class;8 or objective control, which involves professionalising the military, such that it recognises its sphere of competence (fighting) and refrains from participation in politics out of a sense of duty and appropriateness. The idea is that the government – of whatever kind – has the legitimacy (if not the expertise) to run the country, while the military’s expertise is in the extremely circumscribed realm of protecting the country from foreign attack and protecting the government from internal threats. Since the government has the greater competency, the military is supposed to accept, willingly, a subordinate position in the running of the state. The US military officer corps has tended to accept and normalise the Huntingtonian view of objective control (Cohen 2002), not least because it instructs civilians to make their decisions about political objectives and then get out of the military’s way. It elevates the idea of military advice/expertise to something nearly unquestionable; indeed, Huntington argued that the only way a liberal state could survive a longterm contest like the Cold War was for the policy-makers to move closer to the military view of international affairs. Implicitly, Huntington believed not only that the military officer corps was, in fact, expert in the ‘management of violence’, but also that the logic of that expertise had to take precedence over politics, or the polity would lose the war. It is easy to see why this approach has appealed to generations of military officers. They are comfortable with leaving the ‘politics’ to the civilians; all they ask is a clear strategy and a clear set of parameters, and then full autonomy to do exactly as they see fit. Needless to say, politics and policy-making are never that simple or clear-cut. Clausewitz was fully aware of this and argued that the nature of war made the idea of ‘purely military’ expertise, advice or decision-making simply impossible.

Nature of War Clausewitz uses a dialectical sequence to discuss the nature of war, beginning with the essential nature of it, and then explaining the nature of the conflicting forces that move war away from its essence to the reality that we experience. Some have taken this as a normative argument and claimed that Clausewitz thinks war ought to be made to

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 75

23/10/18 12:44 PM

76

lindsay p. cohn

conform as closely as possible to its essential nature, but he never says any such thing. Clausewitz is no more an advocate for total war than Plato would have been an advocate for sitting only in an ideal chair. Clausewitz merely wants us to recognise that the only way to understand war as we experience it is to understand both its internal logic (leading to extremes) and how other factors affect that logic (leading to moderation). He does, however, mix the normative and the empirical together when he discusses the limiting factors. For example, the nature of time and space is an empirical limitation on the extremes of war. As it is nearly impossible for a state to gather all its strength at exactly one time and place, the war will become a series of engagements rather than one enormous, decisive clash. On the other hand, the extent to which political imperatives guide the military planning and execution of the war is something Clausewitz describes as a normative requirement. He makes it clear that it is possible for the people running the war to allow the military logic (that is, the logic of total war) to override the political logic (that is, the logic of matching costs and benefits and neither over- nor undershooting the goal). He claims that this would be ‘absurd’ and ‘can be damaging’ (607), and urges his readers to recognise that the essential nature of war is political. He argues that it is a misunderstanding to think that war is what happens when politics has failed or that war suspends the working of politics in favour of its own brutal logic.9 On the contrary: politics continues during war, and war is merely its instrument. The title of Book 1 Ch. 1.24 is frequently translated as ‘War is merely the continuation of policy by other means’, which is not an inaccurate translation but which has, I believe, led many to a misunderstanding of what Clausewitz was arguing. It is common for people to conceive of war as being the thing that states do when politics (or policy) has failed; the ‘last resort’ of just war theory or the Weinberger–Powell Doctrine; the thing states do when nothing else has worked and now it is okay to kill people and destroy things and operate by a totally different set of rules. This was not Clausewitz’s view. An alternative translation of the first sentence in that subchapter is: ‘So we see that war is not simply a political act, but a true political instrument; a continuation of political intercourse, a carrying out of the same thing by other means.’10 A political act is simply one that has political implications; a political instrument is one that is used intentionally with an objective in mind. This makes it clear that war is not the suspension of normal interaction; it is simply another form of bargaining, now involving violence or the threat of violence as a means of accumulating chips that can be used at a (peace) negotiation (see, for example, 526). One important implication of this is that politically driven limitations on the amount of effort, on when/where/with whom to fight and so on, are absolutely legitimate, so long as they serve the ultimate end of a favourable peace agreement.11 Thus there are many reasons why the purpose of an engagement may not be the destruction of the enemy’s forces. . . . In such a case, total destruction has ceased to be the point; the engagement is nothing but a trial of strength. In itself it is of no value; its significance lies in the outcome of the trial. (96) This is a clear acknowledgement that even fighting a losing action can be useful and intentional if it convinces the enemy that the fight will cost more than they think it is worth. Clausewitz goes on to argue that

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 76

23/10/18 12:44 PM

civil–military relations

77

[o]nce this influence of the political objective on war is admitted, as it must be, there is no stopping it; consequently, we must also be willing to wage such minimal wars, which consist in merely threatening the enemy, with negotiations held in reserve. (604) This is all directly opposed to the logic of the Weinberger–Powell Doctrine, which argues that force should be used only once things have come to the point where total victory is the goal. This being said, Clausewitz does not think that political ends are tyrants (86–7).12 He acknowledges that policy-makers will learn new information through fighting and notes that ‘the original political objects can greatly alter during the course of the war and may finally change entirely since they are influenced by events and their probable consequences’ (92). This is why it becomes important to understand the interaction between military and political logics, which has not been a focus of the war-as-bargaining literature. This requires an investigation into the nature of military expertise.

Military Expertise For Huntington, part of the essence of the military officer’s profession is his or her specialised expertise in the ‘management of violence’.13 The logic of Huntington’s objective control is that there are distinct spheres of real competency, and that military officers do not understand ‘political logic’, and policy-makers (presumably unless they had military careers) do not understand ‘military logic’. This is why their decisions need to be kept separated and why the civilians are not to interfere in the way the military runs things, once the civilians have indicated what their military objectives are (for example, eject Hussein’s forces from Kuwait; defeat the Taliban). For Clausewitz, this would have been an odd way to think about the issue, since he did not separate ‘the military’ and ‘the civilian’ as different people, but rather as different logics that could be followed by the same person, and between which that person could choose. This is probably because, in his reading and experience, military and political leadership was often combined in one person (such as Napoleon, Gustavus Adolphus or Frederick the Great). Even if Clausewitz were used to the current democratic idea that military knowledge and political knowledge reside in two discrete groups of people, he would not be satisfied with Huntington’s arguments. Clausewitz spends a significant amount of time discussing military ‘genius’; he practically never uses any term that might be translated as ‘expertise’. For Clausewitz, what makes a good commanding general is a rare combination of intellect, moral and physical courage, and coup d’œil – or the ability to take in a whole situation at a glance, understand its nature and see the best way to respond to it.14 Incidentally, these are the same characteristics that Clausewitz thinks make great statesmen, with the exception of the need for physical courage. Although he spends much of the book discussing how things ought to be done in war, Clausewitz does not seem to think that it is possible to have such a thing as ‘military expertise’ in any sense higher than the operational. Experience is important, but all experience does is improve one’s chances of good judgement.15 When Clausewitz talks about war as the realm of chance, friction and fog, he is essentially saying that no one can be an expert at it.16

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 77

23/10/18 12:44 PM

78

lindsay p. cohn

What the experienced military leader may have is a better understanding of how the military tool itself works, and therefore how the political logic is likely to interact with the military logic. This is key to successful bargaining but has generally been left out of bargaining models. Therefore, it is important that we understand the relationship between the military leadership and the statesman, when those functions are carried out by different people.

Military Advising The US military has long operated on a Huntingtonian normative model that says they are to give policy-makers their ‘best military advice’ and not try to anticipate the politics of the situation. They are supposed to explain what force can and cannot accomplish in a given situation, how much force would be required for different outcomes, and how much risk would be involved in each. Then the policy-maker is supposed to determine how much he or she values the various outcomes, weigh that against the risk, then pick a course of action for the military to implement.17 To a certain extent, this makes sense, as many policy-makers will have little personal understanding of how militaries function, what they can and cannot do, and how much risk/cost will be associated with various options. Clausewitz does note that political leaders who have little understanding or experience of war can easily make bad decisions, and that they need sound military advice. He says, [i]f war is to be fully consonant with political objectives, and policy suited to the means available for war, then unless statesman and soldier are combined in one person, the only sound expedient is to make the [commanding general] a member of the cabinet, so that the cabinet can share in the major aspects of his activities. (608) It is not quite clear what ‘sharing in major aspects’ of the commanding general’s activities might mean. Feaver (2003: 298; 2011: 117) has described two schools of thought on this: the professional supremacists and the civilian supremacists, the former of whom think that military judgement must dominate and the latter of whom believe in a civilian ‘right to be wrong’. The right to be wrong refers to the idea that, particularly in a democracy, it is the political and not the military leader who has the legitimacy and authority to make such decisions, and if the decision is wrong, it is not the military but the people who must judge and punish the political leader. Clausewitz makes it clear that if the military leader’s objection to a policy is simply that it does not follow military logic, then the objection is invalid. If, on the other hand, the military leader believes the policy is mistaken, in that it will not (by military logic) lead to the outcome that the political leader has stated he or she wants, then the military leader ought to explain this to the political leader. Clausewitz does not give any advice for the situation in which the political leader continues to insist on the objectionable course of action. This certainly leaves the door open for the professional supremacists, who argue that, while the policy-maker should have all the authority to decide when to bring the use of force into a political problem, his or her decision-making authority ends there because that is where his or her expertise ends. In short: the policy-maker makes the decision whether to fight, and the military gets to decide how to fight.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 78

23/10/18 12:44 PM

civil–military relations

79

Clausewitz does not seem to give the statesman the right to be wrong. He says, [i]f policy reads the course of military events correctly, it is wholly and exclusively entitled to decide which events and trends are best for the objectives of the war. . . . This is as it should be. No major proposal required for war can be worked out in ignorance of political factors; and when people talk, as they often do, about harmful political influence on the management of war, they are not really saying what they mean. Their quarrel should be with the policy itself, not with its influence. If the policy is right – that is, successful – any intentional effect it has on the conduct of war can only be to the good. If it has the opposite effect, the policy itself is wrong. Only if statesmen look to certain military moves and actions to produce effects that are foreign to their nature do political decisions influence operations for the worse. In the same way as a man who has not fully mastered a foreign language sometimes fails to express himself correctly, so statesmen often issue orders that defeat the purpose they are meant to serve . . . which demonstrates that a certain grasp of military affairs is vital for those in charge of general policy . . . . (607–8) This might seem to come down squarely on the side of the professional supremacists by indicating that, in order to make good political decisions about the use of force, a statesman must himself have some good understanding of warfare. However, Clausewitz continues: We are far from believing that a minister of war immersed in his files, an erudite engineer, or even an experienced soldier would, simply on the basis of their particular experience, make the best director of policy . . . far from it. What is needed in the post [of policy-maker] is distinguished intellect and strength of character. He can always get the necessary military information somehow or other. The military and political affairs of France were never in worse hands than when the brothers Belle-Isle and the Duc de Choiseul were responsible – good soldiers though they all were. (608) This is a turn of events! Clausewitz certainly acknowledges that ‘policy, of course, will not extend its influence to operational details. Political considerations do not determine the posting of guards or the employment of patrols,’ but fundamentally political considerations ‘are the more influential in the planning of war, of the campaign, and often even of the battle’ (606; cf. 80).18 He finds the idea of ‘pure’ military advice unrealistic: We can now see that the assertion that a major military development, or the plan for one, should be a matter for purely military opinion is unacceptable and can be damaging. Nor indeed is it sensible to summon soldiers, as many governments do when they are planning a war, and ask them for purely military advice. (607) This point derives directly from Clausewitz’s point about the actual defeat of the enemy frequently being unnecessary to the accomplishment of a favourable peace negotiation. He notes:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 79

23/10/18 12:44 PM

80

lindsay p. cohn It is easy to imagine two alternatives: one operation is far more advantageous if the purpose is to defeat the enemy; the other is more profitable if that cannot be done. The first tends to be described as the more military, the second the more political alternative. From the highest point of view, however, one is as military as the other, and neither is appropriate unless it suits the particular conditions. . . . We can see now that in war many roads lead to success, and that they do not all involve the opponent’s outright defeat. They range from the destruction of the enemy’s forces, the conquest of his territory, to a temporary occupation or invasion, to projects with an immediate political purpose, and finally to passively awaiting the enemy’s attacks. Any one of these may be used to overcome the enemy’s will: the choice depends on circumstances. (93–4)

He goes on to clarify his position: The only question, therefore, is whether, when war is being planned, the political point of view should give way to the purely military (if a purely military point of view is conceivable at all): that is, should it disappear completely or subordinate itself, or should the political point of view remain dominant and the military be subordinated to it? . . . Subordinating the political to the military point of view would be absurd, for it is policy that creates war. Policy is the guiding intelligence and war only the instrument . . . no other possibility exists, then, than to subordinate the military point of view to the political. . . . (607)19 This sounds less like Huntington’s separate spheres and more like Eliot Cohen’s (2002) ‘unequal dialogue’, which highlights the interactive nature of the relationship, and the fact that the military advice must always be subject to political judgement.

Why Scholars of International Relations Should Care about Civil–Military Relations Clausewitz recognised a fundamental truth: military victory does not automatically produce political success. Only politicians can do that. Even a recognised military genius like Napoleon – who won so many battles and accomplished so many incredible feats – eventually lost everything because he lacked a realistic political strategy. For Napoleon, victory was the goal. Unfortunately, ‘keep winning’ is a fundamentally apolitical strategy: it says nothing about governance. Most states that start wars do not end up with the peace they wanted, even if they ‘win’. Clausewitz might argue that this is due to a fundamental misunderstanding of the relationship between military victory and political success: if people believe that all they need to achieve is military victory, they will fail to produce a proper political strategy to guide the exploitation of the victory in peace negotiations. Only if both generals and statesmen recognise the role of violence as a bargaining tool can they strategise appropriately.20 This requires far more than the proverbial ‘exit strategy’ that most military members want. Usually, what is meant by ‘exit strategy’ is a description of the circumstances under which the state will remove its fighting forces, whether that be victory or cutting losses. But this is not the same thing as having an idea of how to use violence as part of an overall bargaining process, involving

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 80

23/10/18 12:44 PM

civil–military relations

81

offers, counteroffers and tradeoffs. Such a strategy requires a deep understanding of what the adversary values, and this is something available only through political, not military, logic. Scholars of international relations already know how to think of war as bargaining, but some have treated the actual fighting of war as a lottery rather than an intentional part of the bargaining (Reiter 2003: 29), while others have simply failed to recognise how the bargaining is affected by the interaction of military and political logic. Scholars of international relations ought to care about civil–military relations because that is where the two logics interact and where decisions are made about what kind of activity the state is actually engaging in. Of course, there has been plenty of criticism about the USA lacking a strategy; my critique is that even those making that criticism frequently seem to misunderstand Clausewitz’s lesson about the role of military force in a political bargaining strategy. Fundamentally, there are three ways to get another actor to do something he otherwise would not have done: one can threaten him with harm if he does not do it; one can offer him something he likes if he does do it; or one can persuade him that it is an appropriate thing to do. In all three cases, the only way that such an exercise of power is possible is if one understands what the other fears, values and/or considers legitimate. The problem many states face is that they fail to understand their adversaries and to consider what they want. This contributes to the misapprehension that simply threatening violence will be effective coercion. Threatening violence works only if one threatens something that the adversary values more than what one is trying to get out of him or her. It also works better if accompanied by incentives and/or persuasion. Again, this is made more difficult by a widespread belief that when war starts, military logic must take over. Of course, those in the various Foreign Offices know that diplomacy does not stop, but their jobs are made significantly harder if elected officials make claims about how one does not negotiate with terrorists or how the other side is evil and must go. The realist in Clausewitz recognised that war was an inescapable part of human existence. The constructivist Clausewitz can perhaps teach us that violence without strategy – applying military logic without understanding what the adversary values – is essentially pointless.

Notes 1. ‘If the enemy is to be coerced you must put him in a situation that is even more unpleasant than the sacrifice you call on him to make’ (77); ‘When we attack the enemy, it is one thing if we mean our first operation to be followed by others until all resistance has been broken; it is quite another if our aim is only to obtain a single victory, in order to make the enemy insecure, to impress our greater strength upon him, and to give him doubts about his future. If that is the extent of our aim, we will employ no more strength than is absolutely necessary . . . if we are convinced that the enemy does not seek a brutal decision, but rather fears it, then the seizure of a lightly held or undefended province is an advantage in itself; and should this advantage be enough to make the enemy fear for the final outcome, it can be considered as a short cut on the road to peace’ (92); ‘It is possible to increase the likelihood of success without defeating the enemy’s forces. I refer to operations that have direct political repercussions, that are designed in the first place to disrupt the opposing alliance, or to paralyze it, that gain us new allies, favorably affect the political scene, etc. If such operations are possible

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 81

23/10/18 12:44 PM

82

2.

3.

4. 5.

6.

7. 8. 9.

10. 11.

lindsay p. cohn it is obvious that they can greatly improve our prospects and that they can form a much shorter route to the goal than the destruction of the opposing armies’ (92–3). (All Clausewitz quotations are from the 1976 edition, unless otherwise stated.) ‘Inability to carry on the struggle can, in practice, be replaced by two other grounds for making peace: the first is the improbability of victory; the second its unacceptable cost’ (91). ‘Since war is not an act of senseless passion but is controlled by its political object, the value of this object must determine the sacrifices to be made for it in magnitude and also in duration. Once the expenditure of effort exceeds the value of the political object, the object must be renounced and peace must follow’ (92); ‘engagements do not always aim at the destruction of the opposing forces . . . their objectives can often be attained without any fighting at all but merely by an evaluation of the situation’ (96); ‘Combat is the only effective force in war; its aim is to destroy the enemy’s forces as a means to a further end. That holds good even if no actual fighting occurs, because the outcome rests on the assumption that if it came to fighting, the enemy would be destroyed’ (97). The other exception to this is genocide but Clausewitz does not discuss this. ‘Even the ultimate outcome of a war is not always to be regarded as final. The defeated state often considers the outcome merely as a transitory evil, for which a remedy may still be found in political conditions at some later date’ (80); ‘the war . . . cannot be considered to have ended so long as the enemy’s will has not been broken: in other words, so long as the enemy government and its allies have not been driven to ask for peace, or the population made to submit’ (90). ‘The political object – the original motive for the war – will thus determine both the military objective to be reached and the amount of effort it requires. The political object cannot, however, in itself provide the standard of measurement. . . . The same political object can elicit differing reactions from different peoples, and even from the same people at different times’ (81). Victory (in the engagement) consists of ‘1) The enemy’s greater loss of material strength; 2) his loss of morale; 3) his open admission of the above by giving up his intentions. . . . In lowering one’s colors one acknowledges that one has been at fault and concedes in this instance that both might and right lie with the opponent. This shame and humiliation . . . is an essential part of victory’ (234); ‘A government must never assume that its country’s fate, its whole existence, hangs on the outcome of a single battle, no matter how decisive. Even after a defeat, there is always the possibility that a turn of fortune can be brought about’ (483). See, for example, Clausewitz’s discussion of the approach of Frederick the Great on page 179. This is also achieved by having the political and military leadership united in one person. ‘[I]t is apt to be assumed that war suspends that intercourse [between governments and peoples] and replaces it by a wholly different condition, ruled by no law but its own. We maintain, on the contrary, that war is simply a continuation of political intercourse, with the addition of other means. We deliberately use the phrase ‘with the addition of other means’ because we also want to make it clear that war in itself does not suspend political intercourse or change it into something entirely different. In essentials that intercourse continues, irrespective of the means it employs. . . . Its grammar, indeed, may be its own, but not its logic. If that is so, then war cannot be divorced from political life; and whenever this occurs in our thinking about war . . . we are left with something pointless and devoid of sense’ (605). Author’s translation from page 21 of Clausewitz (2006). ‘[W]ars can have all degrees of importance and intensity, ranging from a war of extermination down to simple armed observation’ (81); ‘First, therefore, it is clear that war should never be thought of as something autonomous but always as an instrument of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 82

23/10/18 12:44 PM

civil–military relations

12.

13.

14. 15.

16. 17. 18.

19.

20.

83

policy. . . . Second, this way of looking at it will show us how wars must vary with the nature of their motives’ (88); ‘But the aim of disarming the enemy . . . is in fact not always encountered in reality, and need not be fully achieved as a condition of peace. On no account should theory raise it to the level of a law. Many treaties have been concluded before one of the antagonists could be called powerless’ (91); ‘War often is nothing more than armed neutrality, a threatening attitude meant to support negotiations’ (218). ‘War in general, and the commander in any specific instance, is entitled to require that the trend and [intentions] of policy shall not be inconsistent with these means. That, of course, is no small demand; but however much it may affect political aims in a given case, it will never do more than modify them. The political object is the goal, war is the means of reaching it, and means can never be considered in isolation from their purpose’ (87). Note that Huntington is not using ‘violence’ in Schelling’s sense; he is distinguishing between knowing how to fight, oneself, and knowing how to plan, organise and direct those who are fighting. The latter is the realm of officer expertise, but in Huntington’s view, it is expertness in achieving military victory, not applying violence in bargaining. Coup d’œil ‘refers to the quick recognition of a truth that the mind would ordinarily miss or would perceive only after long study and reflection’ (102). ‘What one can reasonably ask of an officer is that he should possess a standard of judgment, which he can gain only from knowledge of men and affairs and from common sense’ (117); ‘Thus it is natural that military activity, whose plans . . . are so frequently disrupted by unexpected particular events, should remain largely a matter of talent, and that theoretical directives tend to be less useful here than in any other sphere’ (139–40); ‘A [commanding general] need not be a learned historian nor a political commentator, but he must be familiar with the higher affairs of state and its innate policies; he must know current issues, questions under consideration, the leading personalities, and be able to form sound judgments’ (146). ‘And through the element of chance, guesswork and luck come to play a great part in war’ (85). There has been a fair amount of push-back on the notion of ‘best military advice’ by, inter alia, Peter Feaver, VCNO VADM Bill Moran and Janine Davidson. ‘No one starts a war . . . without first being clear in his mind what he intends to achieve by that war and how he intends to conduct it. The former is its political purpose; the latter its operational objective. This is the governing principle which will set its course, prescribe the scale of means and effort which is required, and make its influence felt throughout down to the smallest operational detail’ (579). ‘To bring a war, or one of its campaigns, to a successful close requires a thorough grasp of national policy. On that level strategy and policy coalesce: the [commanding general] is simultaneously a statesman’ (111). ‘It cannot be the object of defense to protect the country from losses; the object must be a favorable peace. This is the aim for which one strives, and for which no temporary sacrifice should be considered too severe’ (471).

Bibliography Clausewitz, Carl von (1976), On War, translated by Michael Howard and Peter Paret, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Clausewitz, Carl von (2006), Vom Kriege, Erftstadt: Area. Cohen, Eliot (2002), Supreme Command: Soldiers, Statesmen, and Leadership in Wartime, New York: Free Press. Elman, Colin (2007), ‘Realism’, in Martin Griffiths (ed.), International Relations Theory for the 21st Century: An Introduction, New York: Routledge.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 83

23/10/18 12:44 PM

84

lindsay p. cohn

Fearon, James (1995), ‘Rationalist explanations for war’, International Organization, vol. 49, no. 3, pp. 379–414. Feaver, Peter (2003), Armed Servants: Agency, Oversight, and Civil–Military Relations, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Feaver, Peter (2011), ‘The right to be right: Civil–military relations and the Iraq surge decision’, International Security, vol. 35, no. 4, pp. 87–125. Huntington, Samuel (1957), The Soldier and the State: The Theory and Politics of Civil–Military Relations, Cambridge, MA: Belknap Press of Harvard University Press. Reiter, Dan (2003), ‘Exploring the bargaining model of war’, Perspectives on Politics, vol. 1, no. 1, pp. 27–43. Schelling, Thomas (1966), Arms and Influence, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Waltz, Kenneth (1979), Theory of International Politics, Reading, MA: Addison-Wesley.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 84

23/10/18 12:44 PM

7 Political Realism and the English School Is there really no international theory? Martin Wight and Hans Morgenthau on international political theory Jodok Troy1

Chapter Overview

T

he common academic assessment of Hans Morgenthau and Martin Wight is that within their work and over time, they changed the perspective on what we can know and how we can know it in international politics. In other words, their understanding of theory was transformed, eventually influencing the wider academic perception of Classical Realism and the English School – the two theoretical traditions which they represented. However, contextualising the original writings of the two confirms that their theorising on international politics was, in fact, political theory which did not change in principal over time. ‘Is there really no international theory?’ is a question that all theoretical projects in International Relations have to deal with if they want to take political science seriously. This chapter shows that Morgenthau and Wight’s conceptions of theory did not change drastically in the course of their academic career and were, in fact, set at an early stage. What is more, the rereadings in this chapter illustrate that the notion of power, plus the understanding of the profession as ‘practical philosophy’ through the conduct of political theory, is a prevailing one of Realism and the English School. *

*

*

To this day, the work of Hans J. Morgenthau and Martin Wight poses more questions than answers. This is not least because both address the question of why there is or needs to be a difference between international theory and political theory (Hall 2006: 158). The two men never clearly distinguished between the two since they saw no use in such a distinction, and because both remained sceptical of the possibility of an international theory making sense of social life. However, both are symbolic of the theoretical traditions they represent: Classical Realism and the early English School, also known as the ‘international society approach’. This article points out that Realism and the English School’s original scientific conduct is actually political theory and a form of political action (McQueen forthcoming; Levine 2012: 120–5; Oren 2009), which remains a realm of human conduct and open to change. This is not despite but because of Wight’s dictum that international politics ‘is the realm of recurrence and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 85

23/10/18 12:44 PM

86

jodok troy

repetition’ (1966b: 26). This claim was confirmed by Morgenthau in his assumption of ‘objective laws’ (1978: 4) and his belief in the persistence of social and political problems over the common good and violence (Lang 2004: 15). I bolster this argument with a rereading of texts by these two seminal thinkers on political theory in the international realm. This brings theoretical limitations in terms of epistemology and certain simplifications, not to speak of the discussion on the general consistency in their work. Morgenthau and Wight were certainly not what one would consider ‘consistent’,2 but this article argues that they are worthy of being reread under the original assumptions of Realism: the prevailing notion of the importance of power, plus the understanding of their profession as ‘practical philosophy’ through the conduct of political theory (Molloy 2006; Shapcott 2004; Brown 2012).

The Institutionalisation of Realism and the English School For Classical Realism and the English School alike, international politics remain uncertain, contingent and consequential. A bedrock assumption of Realism – and, as it will turn out, for the early English School – is thus that forecasting political events is impossible (Kirshner 2014: 156, 160). Rather, what the discipline can do is to describe, understand and anticipate political events while avoiding falling into the trap of overdetermining events. Wight, criticising international relations’ theoretical conduct, argued for what we would today call a ‘philosophy’ of international relations. Morgenthau was more drawn to ‘theory’. In any case, both thought of theoria in the Greek sense of the term as descriptive and prescriptive (Shapcott 2004: 273; Wight 1991: 1) and explicitly understood international theory as the political philosophy of international relations and therefore as prescriptive. Morgenthau held the same views, although more disguised than Wight’s. ‘His’ Realism circles around practical reason, about what and why people do something, and how to attribute meaning to objects and events. Eventually, Morgenthau replaced the prescriptive theological characterisations of ‘good’ and ‘evil’ with the descriptive ones of ‘interest’ and ‘power’ (Brown 2012: 452). Wight’s (1960) essay ‘Why Is There No International Theory?’ is a cornerstone for what is today known as the English School. A central question the English School aims to tackle is ‘what can we know in international relations?’, rather than ‘how do we theorise?’: that is, scientifically explaining international politics (Wilson 2012). Despite various methodological insights, the latter is a point that research on the English School left unaddressed for a long time. Wight argued that ‘political theory’ – the domestic theory of the state – is a ‘theory of the good life’ due to the relation of the state to its citizens (1966b: 33; Jackson 2008: 355). ‘International theory’, however, is a residual of the ‘theory of survival’. Wight, the philosophical Grotian and Christian pessimist, tended to put away his personal pacifistic convictions. He thought of domestic conditions as a res publica – a community. Hence there cannot be a political theory of international politics because ‘there is no res publica there’. Wight thus defined international theory as the ‘speculation about relations between states, a tradition imagined as the twin of speculations about the state to which the name “political theory” is appropriate’ (1966b: 17). He deduced that if ‘political theory is the tradition of speculation about the state, then international theory may be supposed to be a tradition of speculation about the society of states, or the family of nations, or the international community’ (1966b: 18).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 86

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the english school

87

Wight blamed the intellectual poverty of international theory on the all-embracing concept of the sovereign nation-state and the belief of progress in it (1966b: 20). Indeed, in International Theory, he observed that the concept of the sovereign nation-state is foremost an ‘inward’ one: in other words, concerning the authority of the ruler (1991: 2–3). The juridical expression that ‘every individual requires the protection of a state which represents him in the international community’ consequently leads to the ‘belief in the sovereign state as the consummation of political experience and activity which has marked Western political thought since the Renaissance’ (Wight 1966b: 21). Indeed, international society, as we know it today, came into existence and took shape in the seventeenth century. Surprising for Wight is the fact that various influences since then – Reformation, Counter-Reformation, French Revolution and totalitarian movements – have produced no ‘notable body of international theory; each has written only a chapter of political theory’ (Wight 1966b: 24). Only when Raymond Aron (1966) published his introduction to international relations, Peace and War, was Wight tempted to take back his harsh criticism on the state of the art in international relations theory. For Wight, Aron’s book was ‘philosophical in treatment, sceptical in temper’. It ‘asserts the indeterminacy of politics’ and treats ‘[d]iplomacy as the realm of the contingent and the unforeseen’, emphasising that the ‘statesman’s supreme virtue is prudence’ (Hall 2006: 110). Nevertheless, until this exception and even beyond it, political theory, for Wight, was bound to the sovereign state and the belief in progress within its scope. In the international realm, however, no equal progress can be observed. None the less, political theory always ‘is in a direct relation with political activity’ (Wight 1966b: 29). Wight closed his essay with the equation ‘Politics: International Politics = Political Theory: Historical Interpretation’ (1966b: 33). This is because the only acknowledged counterpart to political philosophers in the international realm is the work of the historian Thucydides. Wight answered his own question by concluding that ‘there is no international theory except the kind of rumination about human destiny to which we give the unsatisfactory name of philosophy of history’ (1966b: 33). In ‘Western Values in International Relations’ (Wight 1966a), published a few years after the first appearance of ‘Why Is There No International Theory?’, Wight sounded more confident about the existence of an international theory. It provided one of the first instances of a more nuanced understanding of international society, a term that would later become synonymous with the English School. What is more, it is an early indicator of Wight’s active participation in shaping not only the academic discussion but also its practice (Hall 2014). Wight put forward a conceptual framework of international society that would become a persistent one. Second, it would become an enduring epistemological haunting since international society, for Wight and the English School, became a theoretical construct and a historically evolved ontological category (Navari 2011: 612). Wight was entertaining a moral dimension in international society because it: assumes that moral standards can be upheld without the heavens falling. And it assumes that the fabric of social and political life will be maintained, without accepting the doctrine that to preserve it any measures are permissible. For it assumes that the upholding of moral standards will in itself tend to strengthen the fabric of political life. (Wight 1966a: 130–1)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 87

23/10/18 12:44 PM

88

jodok troy

After all, then, Wight attempted to construct ‘Western values’ in order for them to guide the practical conduct of international relations (Hall 2014). In 1956, Morgenthau invited Wight to Chicago, to teach classes and replace him during research leave. From the beginning, Morgenthau appreciated Wight’s thinking, opposing, as it did, mainstream behaviourist approaches (Epp 2014: 25–7). In his ‘The Intellectual and Political Functions of Theory’, Morgenthau (1970: 248–61) introduced his thoughts on the issue with a reflection on Wight’s essay. He largely agreed with Wight, although he was hesitant to equate international relations with the philosophy of history. Morgenthau holds that theory is implicit in all great historiography. Both agreed on the historical orientation of international theory. Morgenthau (2011) made corresponding remarks in a meeting sponsored by the Rockefeller Foundation.3 It is this specific historical orientation, according to Morgenthau (1970: 251), which set them apart from other current fashionable theorising in international relations. This theorising is abstract in the extreme and totally ahistoric. It endeavours to reduce international relations to a system of abstract propositions with predictive function. Such a system transforms nations into stereotyped ‘actors’ engaging in equally stereotyped symmetric or asymmetric relations. Morgenthau shares with Wight the assumption that the purpose of international relations should be to shape politics rather than simply to describe or theorise on it. What is common to all great political theory, not only the one that directly influences politics, is the fact that it is always practical political theory too. That is true for Aristotle as well as the prophets of the Old Testament. Acknowledging those assumptions, the social sciences are at best ‘hypothetical possibilities, which of them will actually occur is anybody’s guess’ (Morgenthau 1946: 146). The ‘social sciences’, he proclaimed ‘cannot hope to master the social forces unless they know the laws that govern the social relations of men’ (Morgenthau 1940: 284). Reducing political science to measurable outputs proves to be a misreading of the Realist canon, as it has been widely acknowledged (Behr and Heath 2009; Parent and Baron 2011; Kirshner 2014). Rather, the first lesson Morgenthau has for students of international relations is that ‘the complexities of international affairs make simple solutions and trustworthy prophecies impossible’ (1978: 21). In ‘Common Sense and Theories’, Morgenthau was more forthright on theorising politics (1970: 241–8). He noted that all attempts to capture international politics in terms of theory have been moral and philosophical in essence but not theoretical. That is true from Machiavelli’s Prince to Bismarck’s memoirs. It is the false promise of rationalism, claiming to capture the morally repellent core of the political – the struggle for power. What is more, it is a false promise because power cannot be completely dissolved by a rational scheme. Both elements only exist in a relational social sphere (Morgenthau 1962a; Morgenthau et al. 2012). At this point, Morgenthau’s relational view and Carl Schmitt’s essential view of the political (Pichler 1998; Scheuerman 2007) meet – in the sceptical examination of modernism – in order to see the political in the context of social life as an atavism. Modern international relations are repelled by the course of history, since history is the ‘realm of the accidental, the contingent, the unpredictable’ (Morgenthau 1970: 245). Morgenthau, often framed in historical and epistemological terms as an antipositivist (in other words, Weberian) sociologist (Turner and Mazur 2009; Smith 1986), and Wight, an anti-positivist in terms of a historian (Weber 1998; Bull 1976),

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 88

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the english school

89

meet at the point where they agree on the modern myth of international relations: ‘The cult of inevitability. Just because a particular event occurred does not mean it was fated to do so’ (Byman and Pollack 2001: 145). In this regard, they are united in their respective political theories as a starting point for international theory. This is even more so if we consider the history of Morgenthau’s (2006) Politics Among Nations. Although it later became a textbook – a book approaching theory as scientific enquiry – it was not meant to be of this kind. The famous ‘Six Principles’ have been added only in subsequent editions. Politics Among Nations, Morgenthau’s widely believed ‘theory’ of international politics, was intended as a political theory countering national socialism and fascism (Rösch 2013a: 8–9).

The Realist Research Agenda Now that we have compared these texts of Wight and Morgenthau, it becomes obvious that the main axioms of the English School, represented by Wight, also hold firm for Realism, represented by Morgenthau. These are Wertfreiheit, the rejection of behaviourism and scientism, a methodological (Weberian) approach of Verstehen (‘understanding’, rather than ‘explaining’), and a rejection of utopianism (Suganami 2003: 253; Devlen, James and Özdamar 2005: 179; Bain 2000). From a positivist perspective, it is equally true for Wight and Morgenthau, and consequently the early outlets of the English School and Realism, that both traditions lack a clear research agenda in terms of methodology and a clear distinction between dependent and independent variables and causal propositions (Little 2003: 458). The English School does not frame power as an independent variable – if it sees the analytical value of ‘variables’ at all. Second, the state is still assumed to be a ‘setting structure’ of international relations rather than a simple actor (Navari 2009: 9). Both Realism and the English School correspond with classical humanism, in attempting to understand human conduct rather than mere behaviour: hence the focus on norms as a standard of conduct and the notion of practice. ‘The notion of a “practice” serves, among other things, to point the researcher in the direction of the practitioner’ (Navari 2014: 213). Not least, therefore, Classical Realism, from Morgenthau onwards, holds a fundamental respect for human beings because international relations is dealing with the fundamental issues of life and death (Scheuerman 2011: 100). Consequently, Wight thought of international politics, just like the whole life, as a predicament: ‘one to be intelligently analyzed, where possible to be mitigated, but if necessary to be endured’ (Howard 1977: 364–5). Equally, Morgenthau was sceptical of behavioural social science conduct. The social sciences ‘can, at best, do what is their regular task, that is, present a series of hypothetical possibilities, each of which may occur under certain conditions – and which will actually occur is anybody’s guess’ (Morgenthau 1946: 130). Moreover, both Wight and Morgenthau show a sense of tragedy in politics. It is the content of tragedy that reminds us that, even though everyone might stick to ethical norms, there will be no rigid ‘positive’ outcome (Frost 2003). Yet both hold rationalism as a necessity for their starting point: ‘Politics must be understood through reason, yet it is not in reason that it finds its model. The principles of scientific reason are always simple, consistent, and abstract; the social world is always complicated, incongruous, and concrete’ (Morgenthau 1946: 10).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 89

23/10/18 12:44 PM

90

jodok troy

It seems hard to see why and how Morgenthau can be at the same time against positive theorising and yet argue, against Wight (1966b: 26), that there is an international theory because of the repetitive nature of the international realm. This is even more so since this repetitive nature makes the international system behave in some instances in a regular manner (as in the occurrence of the balance of power). What many scholars take away from this observation of Morgenthau is that it allowed him to build up his theory in a positivist mould. This seems to be even more underpinned by Morgenthau’s ‘objective laws’ of politics (1978: 4). There are at least two caveats to be inserted here. First, the assumedly mechanistic principle of the balance of power for Morgenthau (1982), and probably for Wight as well, is, in fact, a societal one. Second, what Morgenthau meant by the so-called ‘objective laws’ was not that ‘objective’ in a positivist sense after all. Rather, objectivity is understood here in the philosophical tradition of Nietzsche as an analysis based upon explicitly formulated conceptual distinctions in order to identify and analyse features and qualities of an object in question: qualities that form part of the object studied and reveal themselves from the object, becoming cognisable only by clear and elaborated concepts. (Behr and Kirke 2014: 28) In the same vein, the so-called ‘principles’ of Realism, laid out in the second edition of Politics Among Nations, are better understood as maxims rather than empirical applicable principles (Bain 2000: 462).

Political Thought Between Aristotle and Augustine Like his colleague Herbert Butterfield and his thoughts on international politics, Wight was guided by Christian morality. However, Wight’s thoughts were based on more outspoken theological foundations. He assumed the existence of original sin and aggressive instincts: in other words, a pessimistic perception of human nature (Thomas 2001; Nicholson 1981: 17). Like Augustine, Wight distinguished between the perfect city of God and the imperfect city of humans. Still, claiming that Wight was a moralistic thinker goes too far, since such an assumption does not distinguish between his private beliefs and his beliefs on the realistic necessities of international politics. An Anglican pacifist, he condemned Catholic thought on the just war doctrine (1936) and, because of his pacifism, denied that, in theological terms, an actual Christian Realism is possible. He backed up this claim with the horrible historical experience of national socialism (Hall 2006: 148–9). This is also evident in Power Politics (1979: 137): war is inevitable but particular wars can be avoided by means of diplomacy. In the long run, however, there is no doing away with the influence, measurable or not, of personal convictions on theorising, of influencing the conduct of political theory. Wight argued that domestic political theory is a ‘theory of the good life’. This is because of the relation, regulation and interconnectedness of the state and its citizens. International theory, on the other hand (and as we have already observed), is merely a ‘theory of survival’. Turning to Thomas Hobbes as a genuine source of international Realist thinking, one might argue that survival involves the greatest good and right: ‘the goodness of life as such, of being alive and enjoying life’ (Jackson 2008: 356). What is more,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 90

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the english school

91

‘If there were no basis for the good life inside states, there would be no point in their survival.’ It is the ‘goodness of life as such’ that is the basis of what serious conduct of international politics is about. The state, in other words, is ‘an agent, not a principal’, as George Kennan (1984/6: 206) stated regarding the responsibility of governments. Governments must act in the interest of the national society. ‘Violating the assumption of the equal independence of all members of the society of states’, Wight says, in his thoughts on intervention in the international society, ‘is prima facie a hostile act’ (1966a: 111).4 In terms of a historical analogy, Wight and Morgenthau’s view of political theory can be broken down to a comparison between Aristotle and Augustine. Aristotle differs from modern thinkers such as Hobbes, Locke and Rousseau in so far as, for him, humans are political animals by nature (Morgenthau 1946: 168). Rousseau assumed that a constitutional society is what humans need for what they otherwise cannot achieve on their own. This was also a view to which Wight could subscribe. Morgenthau (1958: 239) tended to the view of Aristotle, counterechoing the first lines of Rousseau’s Social Contract: ‘Man lives in chains, but everywhere he wants to be free.’ It is structure that defines humans and, in the words of Rousseau, keeps humans in chains. On the other side of the spectrum, Aristotle emphasised agency, meaning that humans should supply themselves with structure in so far as the central question is how to live a good life. For the sake of the argument, I place Morgenthau in the Aristotelian rather than the Augustinian or Weberian camp where he is regularly put, although he never finally decided on this point for himself. Wight, as we have seen, sided with Augustine. This is regarding the Aristotelian emphasis on prudence as a prime virtue of agency, as acknowledged by Morgenthau (Lang 2007). This is also obvious in Wight’s (1979: 137, 292) description of the major motive for going to war: fear and the view that morality in international politics is a matter not of civilisation but of security. In terms of his fear of a materialist world state that would do away with religion, for Wight, nuclear war was not the worst thing that could happen (Hall 2006: 109). ‘Wight failed to find an adequate ground for international society because he could not escape the thickets of religion and its bearing on natural law’ (Bain 2014: 15). But for Morgenthau, the possibility of a nuclear apocalypse placed theoretical limits on international theory (Craig 2007). In his piece ‘Death in the Nuclear Age’, Morgenthau (1962b: 197–203) expressed his fear that the possibility of nuclear war alters the understanding of death as a meaning for life. The individual aspects of death (for example, sacrificial death), he argued, vanish in the face of the possibility of total destruction. It is the composite conception of human nature, Morgenthau (1956: 12) pointed out, that needs to be taken into theoretical account in social science conduct. The philosophy of rationalism, as he outlined in Scientific Man Vs. Power Politics (1946), fails to address all other conduct that falls out of the category of sober, enlightened rationalism. Equally, it was clear for Wight (Wight 1991: 105; see also Thomas 2001: 929) that there is no escape from the human condition. For Morgenthau (1946: 13), this is most evident in the rationalistic approach of equalising the rationally right and the ethical good. Herbert Butterfield noted that ‘only [the] individual exists’ (McIntyre 2004: 301). The majority of the academic endeavours of the English School, of which Wight was an important cornerstone, focus on intersubjective values of social actors and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 91

23/10/18 12:44 PM

92

jodok troy

values (Reus-Smit 2002: 499). Establishing common rules of conduct (for example, international law), international norms, and institutions (for example, the non-intervention principle) is a foundational and persistent feature of international society. However, how we interpret them and give them meaning in different political contexts is another story, depending on which international political theory we subscribe to (Williams 2015). Facing possible nuclear war and a nuclear apocalypse, Morgenthau called for ‘a radical transformation of the existing international society of sovereign nations into a supranational community of individuals’ (1956: 470). His tragic view of the modern state is a persistent pattern of his thought from an early stage in his career onwards (Kostagiannis 2013). Wight (1991: 1) even called for a world society (Craig 2007). A religious submissive Augustinian, Wight speculated that nuclear war might not be the worst thing that could happen. For Morgenthau, the possibility of a nuclear apocalypse placed epistemological and ontological limits on international theory. Facing nuclear apocalypse, both struggled with a continuation of international theory as it was, thus ever more keenly stressing the political aspect of theory.

Conclusion Wight and Morgenthau’s political theory holds that international politics are the realm of human experience and conduct. Neither principally changed his view on theorising international relations under the auspices of political theory. International politics remain uncertain, contingent, tragic and consequential. Moreover, by framing power as a societal condition, the ‘power of power politics’ (Vasquez 1998) holds the potential to understand not only power politics but also all sorts of politics that emerge when humans interact and a political theory is therefore appropriate. International theory, in terms of Wight, ‘is concerned with Authority – the justification of Power, the moral bases of power, not with Power nakedly, or the description and analysis of the distribution of Power’ (Hall 2006: 135) – a view almost identical to Morgenthau’s (Williams 2004: 637). States, the setting structure of international politics and international society, are, in Realism’s view, assumed to be rational but not hyper-rational (Kirshner 2014: 168–77). However, that is only the starting point. State behaviour and conduct are also shaped by lessons of history, ideas and ideology, eventually forming an international society. That is perhaps the most illustrative advantage point of Realism, focusing more on agency than on structural constraints as their heirs do. Theorising international relations is ultimately about international political theory, since the objects and puzzles consist of human interaction and the interpretation we put on them. This brings with it the assumption that the human condition is a potentially political one, defined in terms of power: when humans pursue their interests, power inevitably comes into play. It is, however, not ‘force’ that is the core of power – it is a complex psychological relationship, as Morgenthau (1956: 26–8) holds. Both Wight and Morgenthau opposed the positivist and behaviourist research agendas. For them, international society (Wight) and politics (Morgenthau) are always the product of intersubjective understanding: hence the emphasis on conduct (and sometimes even ‘nature’) rather than behaviour, and thus still the Weberian focus on unattainable

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 92

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the english school

93

ideal-types. It is not only a question of what phenomena of international politics we analyse, and how. It also is a matter of how we give meaning to the objects and subjects, and that means thinking of theory as both descriptive and prescriptive: in other words, as political theory.

Notes 1. Acknowledgements: FWF project Austrian Science Fund (FWF) project P 25198–G16. This chapter was completed while I was a visiting researcher at Stanford University. I am grateful to the Europe Center for hosting me and to Stanford for providing a stimulating academic environment. 2. But which political thinker actually is consistent? Wight died early, so any claims about consistency in his work remain preliminary. There is also a dynamic discussion circling around the theoretical consistency in Morgenthau’s work. However, without going into detail, if we look only at his first and last books published in the USA, Scientific Man Vs. Power Politics (1946) and Science: Servant or Master (1972), we find more consistency than anything else. 3. Both Wight and Morgenthau put forward some of their most enduring insights at Rockefellersponsored meetings in the 1950s. The proponents there were largely driven by metaphysical and normative matters: ‘Celebrated under the aegis of the Rockefeller Foundation’s committee on theory, which included exponents of both traditions, the ideological merger of political theology and Christian realism set the discipline on a very specific course. In constantly mobilizing the theological premises of their political pronouncements and of their critique of secular liberalism, early realists proved to be legitimate heirs of Schmitt’s political theology’ (Guilhot 2010: 227). 4. That being said, Morgenthau’s conceptualisation of the national interest, one that caused much confusion among his critics, is a ‘fluid’ one (Lebow 2003: 245). Morgenthau considered the national interest as ‘an epistemological tool with which to bring the various potentially divergent interests into a “rational order”’ (Rösch 2013b: 10).

Bibliography Aron, Raymond (1966), Peace and War: A Theory of International Relations, London: Weidenfeld and Nicolson. Bain, William (2000), ‘Deconfusing Morgenthau: Moral inquiry and classical realism reconsidered’, Review of International Studies, vol. 26, no. 3, pp. 445–64. Bain, William (2014), ‘Rival traditions of natural law: Martin Wight and the theory of international society’, The International History Review, vol. 35, no. 5, pp. 1–18. Behr, Hartmut, and Amelia Heath (2009), ‘Misreading in IR theory and ideology critique: Morgenthau, Waltz and neo-realism’, Review of International Studies, vol. 35, pp. 327–49. Behr, Hartmut, and Xander Kirke (2014), ‘People on the move – ideas on the move: Academic cultures and the problematic of translatability’, in Felix Rösch (ed.), Émigré Scholars and the Genesis of International Relations: A European Discipline in America?, Houndmills: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 21–39. Brown, Chris (2012), ‘The “practice turn”, phronesis and classical realism: Towards a phronetic international political theory?’, Millennium – Journal of International Studies, vol. 40, no. 3, pp. 439–56. Bull, Hedley (1976), ‘Martin Wight and the theory of international relations: The second Martin Wight memorial lecture’, British Journal of International Studies, vol. 2, no. 2, pp. 101–16.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 93

23/10/18 12:44 PM

94

jodok troy

Byman, Daniel L., and Kenneth M. Pollack (2001), ‘Let us now praise great men: Bringing the statesman back in’, International Security, vol. 25, no. 4, pp. 107–46. Craig, Campbell (2007), Glimmer of a New Leviathan: Total War in the Realism of Niebuhr, Morgenthau, and Waltz, New York: Columbia University Press. Devlen, Balkan, Patrick James and Özgür Özdamar (2005), ‘The English School, international relations, and progress’, International Studies Review, vol. 7, pp. 171–97. Epp, Rodger (2014), ‘The British Committee on the theory of international politics and its central figures’, in Cornelia Navari and Daniel M. Green (eds), Guide to the English School in International Studies, West Sussex: Wiley-Blackwell, pp. 25–36. Frost, Mervyn (2003), ‘Tragedy, ethics and international relations’, International Relations, vol. 17, no. 4, pp. 477–95. Guilhot, Nicolas (2010), ‘American katechon: When political theology became international relations theory’, Constellations, vol. 17, no. 2, pp. 224–53. Hall, Ian (2006), The International Thought of Martin Wight, New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Hall, Ian (2014), ‘Martin Wight, Western values, and the Whig tradition of international thought’, The International History Review, vol. 36, no. 5, pp. 961–81. Howard, Michael (1977), ‘Ethics and power in international policy: The third Martin Wight memorial lecture’, International Affairs, vol. 53, no. 3, pp. 364–76. Jackson, Robert (2008), ‘From colonialism to theology: Encounters with Martin Wight’s international thought’, International Affairs, vol. 84, no. 2, pp. 351–64. Kennan, George F. (1984/6), ‘Morality and foreign policy’, Foreign Affairs, vol. 64, no. 2, pp. 205–18. Kirshner, Jonathan (2014), ‘The economic sins of modern IR theory and the classical realist alternative’, World Politics, vol. 67, no. 1, pp. 155–83. Kostagiannis, Konstantinos (2013), ‘Hans Morgenthau and the tragedy of the nation-state’, The International History Review, vol. 36, no. 3, pp. 513–29. Lang, Anthony F. (ed.) (2004), Political Theory and International Affairs: Hans J. Morgenthau on Aristotle’s ‘The Politics’, Westport, CT: Praeger. Lang, Anthony F. (2007), ‘Morgenthau, agency, and Aristotle’, in Michael C. Williams (ed.), Realism Reconsidered: The Legacy of Hans Morgenthau in International Relations, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 18–41. Lebow, Richard N. (2003), The Tragic Vision of Politics: Ethics, Interests and Orders, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Levine, Daniel J. (2012), Recovering International Relations: The Promise of Sustainable Critique, New York: Oxford University Press. Little, Richard (2003), ‘The English School vs. American realism’, Review of International Studies, vol. 29, no. 3, pp. 443–60. McIntyre, C. T. (2004), Herbert Butterfield: Historian as Dissenter, New Haven, CT, and London: Yale University Press. McQueen, Alison (forthcoming), ‘The case for kinship, classical realism and political realism’, in Matt Sleat (ed.), Politics Recovered. Molloy, Seán (2006), The Hidden History of Realism: A Genealogy of Power Politics, New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1940), ‘Positivism, functionalism, and international law’, The American Journal of International Law, vol. 34, no. 2, pp. 260–84. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1946), Scientific Man Vs. Power Politics, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1956), Politics among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, New York: Alfred A. Knopf. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1958), Dilemmas of Politics, Chicago: Chicago University Press. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1962a), ‘Love and power’, Commentary, vol. 33, no. 3, pp. 247–51.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 94

23/10/18 12:44 PM

the english school

95

Morgenthau, Hans J. (1962b), Politics in the Twentieth Century, abridged edn, London: University of Chicago Press. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1970), Truth and Power: Essays of a Decade, 1960–1970, New York: Praeger. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1972), Science: Servant or Master?, New York: New American Library. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1978), Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, New York: Alfred A. Knopf. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1982), The Purpose of American Politics, Washington, DC: University Press of America. Morgenthau, Hans J. (2006), Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, Boston: McGraw-Hill Higher Education. Morgenthau, Hans J. (2011), ‘The theoretical and practical importance of a theory of international relations’, Appendix 2, in Nicolas Guilhot (ed.), The Invention of International Relations Theory: Realism, the Rockefeller Foundation, and the 1954 Conference on Theory, New York: Columbia University Press, pp. 263–7. Morgenthau, Hans J., Hartmut Behr, Felix Rösch and Maeva Vidal (2012), The Concept of the Political, Houndmills: Palgrave Macmillan. Navari, Cornelia (2009), ‘Introduction: Methods and methodology in the English School’, in Cornelia Navari (ed.), Theorising International Society: English School Methods, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 1–20. Navari, Cornelia (2011), ‘The concept of practice in the English School’, European Journal of International Relations, vol. 17, no. 4, pp. 611–30. Navari, Cornelia (2014), ‘English School methodology’, in Cornelia Navari and Daniel M. Green (eds), Guide to the English School in International Studies, West Sussex: Wiley–Blackwell, pp. 205–21. Nicholson, Martin (1981), ‘The enigma of Martin Wight’, Review of International Studies, vol. 7, pp. 15–22. Oren, Ido (2009), ‘The unrealism of contemporary realism: The tension between realist theory and realists’ practice’, Perspectives on Politics, vol. 7, no. 2, p. 283. Parent, Joseph M., and Joshua M. Baron (2011), ‘Elder abuse: How the moderns mistreat classical realism’, International Studies Review, vol. 13, pp. 193–213. Pichler, Hans-Karl (1998), ‘The godfathers of “truth”: Max Weber and Carl Schmitt in Morgenthau’s theory of power politics’, Review of International Studies, vol. 24, no. 2, pp. 185–200. Reus-Smit, Christian (2002), ‘Imagining society: Constructivism and the English School’, British Journal of Politics and International Relations, vol. 4, no. 3, pp. 487–509. Rösch, Felix (2013a), ‘Pouvoir, puissance, and politics: Hans Morgenthau’s dualistic concept of power?’, Review of International Studies, published online 23 April, pp. 1–17. Rösch, Felix (2013b), ‘The human condition of politics: Considering the legacy of Hans J. Morgenthau for international relations’, Journal of International Political Theory, vol. 9, no. 1, pp. 1–21. Scheuerman, William E. (2007), ‘Carl Schmitt and Hans Morgenthau: Realism and beyond’, in Michael C. Williams (ed.), Realism Reconsidered: The Legacy of Hans Morgenthau in International Relations, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 62–92. Scheuerman, William E. (2011), The Realist Case for Global Reform, Cambridge: Polity Press. Shapcott, Richard (2004), ‘IR as practical philosophy: Defining a “classical approach”’, British Journal of Politics and International Relations, vol. 6, no. 3, pp. 271–91. Smith, Michael J. (1986), Realist Thought from Weber to Kissinger, Baton Rouge: Louisiana State University Press. Suganami, Hidemi (2003), ‘British institutionalists, or the English School, 20 years on’, International Relations, vol. 17, no. 3, pp. 253–71.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 95

23/10/18 12:44 PM

96

jodok troy

Thomas, Scott M. (2001), ‘Faith, history and Martin Wight: The role of religion in the historical sociology of the English School of international relations’, International Affairs, vol. 77, no. 4, pp. 905–29. Turner, S., and G. Mazur (2009), ‘Morgenthau as a Weberian methodologist’, European Journal of International Relations, vol. 15, no. 3, pp. 477–504. Vasquez, John A. (1998), The Power of Power Politics: From Classical Realism to Neotraditionalism, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Weber, Cynthia (1998), ‘Reading Martin Wight’s “Why is there no international theory?” as history’, Alternatives: Global, Local, Political, vol. 23, no. 4, pp. 451–69. Wight, Martin (1936), ‘Christian pacifism’, Theology, vol. 33, no. 193, pp. 12–21. Wight, Martin (1960), ‘Why is there no international theory?’, International Relations, vol. 2, no. 1, pp. 35–48. Wight, Martin (1966a), ‘Western values in international relations’, in Herbert Butterfield and Martin Wight (eds), Diplomatic Investigations: Essays in the Theory of International Politics, London: Allen & Unwin, pp. 89–131. Wight, Martin (1966b), ‘Why is there no international theory?’, in Herbert Butterfield and Martin Wight (eds), Diplomatic Investigations: Essays in the Theory of International Politics, London: Allen & Unwin, pp. 17–34. Wight, Martin (1979), Power Politics, London: Pelican. Wight, Martin (1991), International Theory: The Three Traditions, Leicester: Leicester University Press. Williams, John (2015), Ethics, Diversity, and World Politics: Saving Pluralism from Itself?, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Williams, Michael C. (2004), ‘Why ideas matter in international relations: Hans Morgenthau, classical realism, and the moral construction of power politics’, International Organization, vol. 58, no. 4, pp. 633–65. Wilson, Peter (2012), ‘The English School meets the Chicago School: The case for a grounded theory of international institutions’, International Studies Review, vol. 14, no. 4, pp. 567–90.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 96

23/10/18 12:44 PM

8 Political Realism and Global Reform How Realists learned to hate ‘the bomb’ – and desire world government William E. Scheuerman

Chapter Overview

T

he standard view of international Realism is that it is congenitally sceptical about attempts to reform, let alone fundamentally restructure, interstate ‘anarchy’. Though the orthodox view accurately describes the positions of important, institutionally conservative representatives of Realism, it does a disservice to a major subsection of mostly mid-twentieth century, reform-minded Realists. In accordance with a growing body of recent scholarship that has tried to cast a fresh look on ‘classical’ Realists, this chapter highlights the surprising overlap between contemporary, reform-minded political cosmopolitanism and some strands within Realism. The nexus between reformist Realism and the ideas of Immanuel Kant, the key intellectual force behind many modern efforts to reorder the international system, proves more complex than the standard view infers. Retrieving Realism’s neglected reformist components is vital if we are to think creatively and productively about the political and intellectual challenges of the twenty-first century. *

*

*

Realism and Reformism: Time for a Second Look? Most international relations scholars today who fashion themselves ‘Realists’ are profound sceptics when it comes to global reform. They even doubt that the European Union, a historically unprecedented experiment in postnational governance, challenges the orthodox Realist tenet that international anarchy makes up a necessary fact of political life (Mearsheimer 1994). Cosmopolitan ideas of a democratic system of global governance, as advocated by Daniele Archibugi, David Held and many others, allegedly represent little more than a stepping stone to aggravated global violence (Zolo 1997). The idea of a world state is a dangerous delusion that simply invites tyranny or global war (Waltz 1979: 112). When present-day international Realists bother to mention reform proposals being debated by colleagues in international law or normative political theory, they usually respond with familiar bromides about the dangers of ‘idealism’, ‘moralism’ and ‘utopianism’. In a closely related vein, jurists who claim inspiration from Realism rail against the ‘perils of global legalism’, selectively building on Realism to undergird their scepticism about anything beyond a narrowly circumscribed role for international law (Posner

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 97

23/10/18 12:44 PM

98

william e. scheuerman

2009: xv). For their part, philosophers and political theorists animated by Realism vent against globalist legal and political models (Geuss 2015; Shapiro 2016: 103–30). Within the messy contours of twentieth-century Realism, to be sure, it is easy to identify precursors to such recent views. Politically and institutionally conservative Realists, such as Herbert Butterfield (1900–79), George Kennan (1904–2005) and Henry Kissinger (1923– ), regularly expressed contempt for proposals to overhaul the international status quo. Even within the writings of Realists of a decidedly less conservative political bent (for example, Hans J. Morgenthau [1904–80]), one encounters frequent polemical remarks about the perils of ‘moralism’ and ‘legalism’. Predictably, not only international Realists and those inspired by them, but also their critics within international law and political theory, have endorsed the orthodox account of Realism as endemically anti-reformist. For Charles Beitz and Michael Walzer, international Realism entails moral scepticism and cynical realpolitik (Beitz 1999: 15, 185–65; Walzer 2000: 3–20). Jürgen Habermas traces its roots to the fascist Carl Schmitt, allegedly an Ur-Realist and the main influence behind Morgenthau (2006: 116–17, 166–9). The cosmopolitan political philosopher Simon Caney (2005) targets Realism as well, as does a US international lawyer who now worries that Morgenthau’s (purported) preference for power politics over law has been installed ‘right in the building that ought to be most hostile to it: The Justice Department’s Robert F. Kennedy Building in Washington, D.C.’ (Ohlin 2015: 14). Even if we politely overlook the striking fact that those who view Realism as hostile to reform rarely provide sufficient textual evidence for their strong claims,1 why bother challenging what so many scholars have asserted? Why counter what apparently represents a well-nigh universal consensus? Finally, what might possibly be gained by doing so? In the last decade or so, a diverse group of scholars – including this author – has none the less tried to do just that.2 Pushing back against the orthodox account, recent scholarship suggests that it rests on a highly selective, and sometimes downright sloppy, intellectual history. The most obvious consequence is that contemporary political Realists often reinvent the wheel, oblivious to the ways in which their reflections reproduce prior Realist views along with their accompanying quandaries (Scheuerman 2013). Recent revisionist efforts, not surprisingly, have focused on telling a richer story about international Realism by highlighting its links to canonical figures (for example, Augustine, Hobbes) within Western political thought (McQueen 2017). Others have tried to offer a more nuanced interpretation of Realism’s ties to competing currents in what is widely dubbed ‘IR Theory’ (Bell 2009; Williams 2005). ‘Getting Realism right’ matters, both politically and theoretically. It matters, most importantly, because foreign policy elites continue, sometimes disingenuously, to justify unappealing and even irresponsible policies by appealing to Realism, even as they make mincemeat of its core tenets. The nexus between Realism and neoconservative foreign policy, for example, turns out to be rather messy (Scheuerman 2009: 193–5; Schmidt and Williams 2008). Getting Realism right counts intellectually and theoretically because many theoretical and programmatic divides within political science, international law and philosophy rest on simplified and sometimes caricatured views of Realism, idées fixes about a variegated theoretical tradition that stubbornly get in the way of productive intellectual exchange and possibly fruitful cross-fertilisation. Too often, this stock reading of Realism occludes vital political and intellectual challenges.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 98

23/10/18 12:44 PM

global reform

99

Spurring much of the recent revisionist scholarship on Realism, the international theorist Campbell Craig (2003) systematically revisited the writings of Morgenthau and Reinhold Niebuhr (1892–1971) on nuclear warfare, showing how their Hobbesian inclinations cautiously undergirded the hope that fear of nuclear destruction might open the door to international institutional change. On Craig’s analysis, Niebuhr and Morgenthau envisaged the possibility that an eminently ‘realistic’ preference for self-preservation could potentially provide a basis for constructing a world state, a ‘new Leviathan’, an erstwhile utopian goal now, in fact, rendered politically imperative following the thermonuclear revolution. Building directly on Morgenthau and Niebuhr, Craig concedes that imposing impediments stand in the way of constructing a world state. None the less, he concludes, it remains an indispensable component of any ‘Realism aiming at long-term human survival’ (2003: 173). An alternative, more careful and supple reading of the Realist tradition, at any rate, proffers a valuable starting point for creative thinking about the exigencies of institutional change in the shadows of ‘the bomb’. In similar spirit, Rens van Munster and Casper Sylvest have tapped a rich vein of what they call postwar nuclear realism, an interdisciplinary political tradition made up of luminaries as diverse as Günther Anders (1902–92), John Herz (1908–2006), Lewis Mumford (1895–1990) and Bertrand Russell (1872–1970). What nuclear realism’s otherwise diverse representatives shared was a commitment to the thesis ‘that liberal modernity could survive collective suicide’ in the nuclear era ‘only by radically rethinking and transforming its foundations’, including existing modes of legal and political organisation (van Munster and Sylvest 2016: 2). Not only did nuclear realists accordingly seek extensive legal and political change, but also they raised fundamental – and still alarmingly timely – critical questions about modern technology and environmental destruction. Meanwhile, Richard Beardsworth and I have highlighted the virtues of trying to move beyond the usual, yet increasingly counterproductive, political and disciplinary divide between Realism and cosmopolitanism (Beardsworth 2011: 227–37; Scheuerman 2011: 98–125; see also Beck 2006). For Beardsworth, the key lesson resulting from the ensuing theoretical Aufhebung (supersession) is that states should be expected to advance minimal cosmopolitan responsibilities: states remain the best existing vehicle for advancing cosmopolitan ideals (2011: 234). Though coming to somewhat different conclusions, my research has similarly explored how and why cosmopolitan-minded global reformers might build constructively on select elements of Realism. Mid-century Realists were right, I argue, to posit that a viable institutional reordering of global affairs will necessarily take the form of postnational and ultimately global stateness, not loose, decentralised, ‘global governance’ along the lines presently fashionable among cosmopolitans. Contemporary cosmopolitan reformers and global-minded progressive Realists, it turns out, represent possible political allies (Scheuerman 2011: 149–68; 2014). The ubiquitous juxtaposition of Realism to cosmopolitanism, at any rate, is badly overstated. Like contemporary cosmopolitans, Morgenthau and Niebuhr, in fact, endorsed a moral cosmopolitanism congruent with what the prominent present-day cosmopolitan philosopher Thomas Pogge calls ‘respect [for] one another’s status as ultimate units of moral concern’ (1994: 90). Morgenthau favoured a political ethics, according to which moral action demands respect for other human beings as ends in themselves, while Niebuhr defended what he openly described as ‘moral universalism’, justifying

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 99

23/10/18 12:44 PM

100

william e. scheuerman

it – in some contrast to the more secular Morgenthau – on theological grounds (Morgenthau 1946: 196; Niebuhr 1944: 153–9). Even more surprisingly, prominent mid-century Realists also subscribed to elements of what cosmopolitans today dub ‘legal (and political) cosmopolitanism’, defined by Pogge as a ‘commitment to a concrete political ideal of a global order under which all persons have equivalent legal status and duties – are fellow citizens of a universal republic’ (Pogge 1994: 90). The mid-century Realist John Herz, along with others like Fredrick Schuman (1904–81) and Georg Schwarzenberger (1908–91), and even sometimes Morgenthau and Niebuhr, endorsed proposals for extensive global-level institutional transformation. Progressive Realists envisioned something like world government as a desirable eventual goal, seeing global reform as ultimately essential to peace and security. Though undeniably opposed to many mid-twentieth-century models of international reform, including what they viewed as premature efforts to establish full-scale world government, they ultimately sought to achieve the supposedly ‘idealistic’ goal of a novel global political order (Scheuerman 2011: 67–97). As Robert Schuett (2011) has argued in a related vein, Morgenthau was a principled advocate of moderate and graduate, albeit forward-looking, international reform. Institutionally reformist aims surface unambiguously in postwar Realist works like Herz’s brilliant International Politics in the Atomic Age (1959) and Schumann’s Commonwealth of Man: An Inquiry into Power Politics and World Government (1952). They emerge in earlier Realist contributions as well, including Georg Schwarzenberger’s Power Politics: An Introduction to the Study of International Relations and Post-War Planning (1941) and E. H. Carr’s (1892–1982) Conditions of Peace (1942) and Nationalism and After (1967 [1945]). They even appear in what arguably constitutes twentieth-century international Realism’s founding text, Morgenthau’s famous Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, a work in which the author bluntly declares that there is ‘no shirking the . . . conclusion that in no period of modern history was civilization more in need of permanent peace and, hence, of a world state’ (1954: 481). For Morgenthau, as for many other postwar Realists, Hiroshima and Nagasaki demonstrated that only a world state could ultimately secure lasting peace and human survival. Sceptical of attempts to use loose federal systems like Switzerland as positive exemplars for international reform, Morgenthau believed that sovereignty would eventually have to be concentrated at the global level, as previously at the national level, to secure global law and order. However, he vigorously opposed the claim that a world state could be realised in the foreseeable future. At present, Morgenthau quite sensibly observed, humankind possessed a ‘society of sovereign nations’, where norms and social practices (including international mores, ethics and customs) offered a social basis for interstate affairs. A prospective world state, however, would require both a more intensive and an extensive supranational society able to support far-reaching global decision-making (1954: 479). Unfortunately, overly ‘idealistic’ visions of world government conveniently downplayed existing political and social divides. Moreover, they suffered from a simplistic statism that overstated the sovereign state’s capacity for autonomously achieving political and social integration. Relying on John Stuart Mill’s classical discussion of the necessary preconditions of workable government, Morgenthau believed that humanity was not yet ready to pass Mill’s tests. Most people remained unwilling to accept world government, seemed unprepared to fulfil its basic purposes and were probably unable to defend it (1954: 478).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 100

23/10/18 12:44 PM

global reform

101

In stable nation-states, Morgenthau pointed out, political and legal institutions typically translated public opinion into policy and sometimes achieved peaceful social change. Unless supported by public opinion and an underlying consensus, even there, well-designed institutional mechanisms might fail when confronted with the supreme test of effective government: ‘to change the distribution of power inside society without jeopardizing the orderly and peaceful processes upon which the welfare of society depends’ (1954: 415). Within existing liberal democracies, the interplay of social and political forces was typically responsible for altering public opinion, with its shifting currents sometimes producing legislative and judicial changes. The process worked only because political players were committed to the rules of the game. Rough agreement at the level of general principles, as well as a shared expectation that some modicum of justice might be realised, with all social groups possessing ‘a chance to make themselves heard’, was crucial (1954: 473). Direct recourse to coercive state power could be minimised because political actors usually heeded even those laws with which they disagreed. Parallels at the level of supranational or world society would some day have to emerge if a world state were to garner a sufficient social basis. Because any world state established at present would still necessarily lack the requisite social foundations, Morgenthau concluded, it could only take the form of ‘a totalitarian monster resting on feet of clay’, requiring ‘complete discipline and loyalty among . . . millions of soldiers and policemen needed to enforce its rule over an unwilling humanity’ (1954: 482). However, Morgenthau’s scepticism about world government’s imminent prospects hardly left him in despair. Responsible political and institutional actors could still actively pursue some steps to build supranational society: world statehood represented more than a vague long-term goal about which one might longingly fantasise, but not in fact do something meaningful to help realise. Though a neglected element of the story, Morgenthau turned to David Mitrany (1888–1975) for guidance. Mitrany – like Morgenthau, a central European Jew with a left-wing background – championed piecemeal international reform, as defended in his fascinating A Working Peace System (1946). Like the Realists, he worried about the tendency in the mainstream liberal discourse of international reform to downplay the salience of national identities. In contrast, he theorised, global reform could draw inspiration from leftleaning social and economic experiments. During an extended stay in the USA, he determined that Franklin D. Roosevelt and the New Dealers had sensibly avoided pursuing unwieldy formal constitutional changes to the US system, instead creatively building new decision-making constellations, inspired by down-to-earth social and economic needs, which ultimately transformed the political system’s basic operations. The institutional pragmatism of the New Deal, Mitrany believed, provided a template for international reform: ‘by linking authority to a specific activity’, international organisations could decisively ‘break away from the traditional link between authority and a definite territory’, the fundamental presupposition not only of the modern state system but also of many proposals for ‘either an association or federation of nations’ (1946: 6). Institutionalised cross-border cooperation on down-to-earth social and economic tasks ‘would help the growth of such positive and constructive common work, of common habits and interests’, ultimately making national borders anachronistic ‘by overlaying them with a natural growth of common activities and common administrative tasks’ (1946: 35).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 101

23/10/18 12:44 PM

102

william e. scheuerman

Morgenthau gave Mitrany’s functionalist toolkit a major role in his own narrative about the social preconditions of world statehood. As Morgenthau noted in a laudatory preface to the 1966 US reissue of Mitrany’s Working Peace System, ‘the future of the civilized world is intimately tied to the future of the functional approach to international organization’ (1966: 11). In a key section of Politics Among Nations, he applied Mitrany’s ideas to the problems of European integration (1954: 492–3). For Morgenthau, international functionalism represented a useful strategy for advancing the cause of social integration at the postnational level. If nation-states worked together to solve concrete (that is, economic and technical) tasks, inventing along the way creative but eminently practical supranational institutions, the building blocks of global order could be laid. Over time, such cooperation might generate supranational social practices, shared norms, and complexes of common interests; the necessary social presuppositions for global government, in the process, might be secured. In a 1964 essay on the European Community that originally appeared in the New York Times Sunday Magazine, Morgenthau praised functionalism for helping to supply ‘the indispensable material foundations for the political unification of Europe’. Functionalists in Europe had already successfully created common economic and technological interests, ‘protected and promoted by common institutions’. However, he tellingly added, [t]hese common interests, to be fully realized and to be protected from the ever present threat of disintegration, require common political institutions. The functionalists have provided the incentive for the creation of such institutions, but they have been unable to provide the institutions. (1970: 337) Functionalism, Morgenthau emphasised, should not be interpreted as mechanically ensuring that ‘the political unification of Europe will somehow take care of itself’, and that qualitative changes in European politics might automatically result from ‘the quantitative accumulation of functional European communities’. If Europeans were, in fact, to exploit the fruits of supranational functional organisation, the ‘jump from national to European sovereignty must be made by an act of will’, an express political decision that alone would make it possible to coordinate the divergent interests generated by functionalism and keep ‘recalcitrant members in check’ (Morgenthau 1970: 337). On Morgenthau’s gradualist model of international reform, functionalism was necessary yet ultimately insufficient, both within Europe and beyond. Though functionalism helped pave the way for new institutional complexes ‘beyond the nation-state’, only conscious political choices in favour of novel political entities would ultimately transcend the interstate system and minimise the nuclear peril. Conscious, institutionally creative political action could alone create continental or regional governments and then – some day, perhaps – world government.

Frenemies? Realists and Immanuel Kant International reformism has long come in different shapes and sizes (Claude 1971). Within international theory, it often draws on the complex political theories of the great Immanuel Kant (1724–1804). Both liberal internationalists and recent cosmopolitans, for example, build on Kant, as have many defenders of a robust system of international law. Not surprisingly, perhaps, Realism is typically categorised as anti-Kantian, in part

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 102

23/10/18 12:44 PM

global reform

103

because present-day Realists vehemently oppose the neo-Kantian idea of a ‘democratic peace’ (Waltz 2008: 198–203). They also tend to rely on a consequentialist political ethics inconsonant with a strict Kantian account of morality (Coady 2008). When we take a closer look, however, the story, here as well, turns out to be both more complicated and surprising. An examination of mid-century Realism’s rendezvous with Kant and his legacy buttresses the more differentiated picture offered by recent revisionist scholarship. To be sure, one encounters only scattered references to Kant’s political writings among mid-century Realists. Occasional comments on Kant’s classic, Toward Perpetual Peace (1991), show, for example, that Realists associated his legacy with two ideas they rejected: first, the commonplace Enlightenment idea that international commerce is conducive to peace; second, Kant’s expectation that republics would typically pursue pacific foreign policies, and thus that the best way to guarantee peace was by means of some sort of loose confederate – or perhaps more demanding federal – republican system (Carr 1964 [1946]: 25; Morgenthau 1954: 365–6; Niebuhr 1959: 186). None the less, Morgenthau’s Scientific Man Vs. Power Politics (1946: 184) praised Kant’s insistence that genuine moral action required treating other persons as ends in themselves. Schuman’s magnum opus, Commonwealth of Man: An Inquiry into Power Politics and World Government (1952), also jettisoned Kant’s claims for the pacific contours of commerce and republican government, not because of their excessively ‘idealistic’ merits, but rather due to their institutional modesty: only a federal union, not a loose confederation, of states, where core governmental functions were exercised by global institutions outfitted with core elements of sovereignty, could preserve lasting peace. A global rule of law required government or statehood; anyone serious about preserving the peace globally would have to think seriously about how effective world government could be built. In fairness to Kant, Schuman conceded, ‘some elements of what we have come to call federalism are implicit in the Kantian formula, but its prime implication . . . is that peace can be kept by arrangements for the waging of war by states upon states’ (for example, collective security, or perhaps a loose system along the lines of the League of Nations) (1952: 350). Schuman interpreted the German Enlightenment thinker’s institutional programme as paradoxical and probably tension-ridden: while emphasising the indispensable role of the sovereign state to legality, and thus inferring the necessity of world government, Kant simultaneously associated world government with ‘lifeless’ despotism. If one were to realise Kant’s cosmopolitan vision successfully, Schuman insisted, reformers would have to discard his inappropriately sceptical assessment of world government. When push came to shove, effective global legislation and adjudication presupposed the construction of a world state outfitted with crucial rudiments of modern executive power. Mid-century Realists also engaged extensively with the ideas of the Austrian legal thinker Hans Kelsen (1881–1973), whose contributions to jurisprudence and international law still represent one of the most audacious recent efforts to reconstruct the Kantian theoretical legacy (von Bernstorff 2010). Morgenthau, Herz and Schwarzenberger, all refugees from Nazism, were trained in Weimar Germany as lawyers with a focus on international law, with the first two having worked closely with Kelsen, interwar Europe’s most important defender of a global legal system. Kelsen was Herz’s dissertation advisor, while Morgenthau’s Geneva Habilitationsschrift (that is, second dissertation, as standardly required in Central Europe for a university career) was approved only because of a timely intervention by Kelsen (Jütersonke 2010: 75–104).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 103

23/10/18 12:44 PM

104

william e. scheuerman

Despite substantial theoretical disagreements between Kelsen and his Realist Schüler, they remained very much indebted to him, as evidenced most obviously by Morgenthau’s eulogistic dedication in Truth and Politics, where he praised Kelsen for having ‘taught us through his example to speak Truth to Power’ (1970: v). Significantly, mid-century Realists in fact endorsed Kelsen’s political aspiration to a universal legal – and eventually political – system. After voicing apt criticisms of Kelsen, Herz, for example, concluded a critical discussion on his former mentor’s writings by declaring that [u]nless our era leads to the final doom of all, it must become a transition from the age of the multiple units called nation-states and their partly regulated, partly unregulated relations into a state of affairs which can no longer be regarded as utopian but must become the realizable objective of a group – mankind – which is one at least in one basic aim: the preservation of peace. Contemporary international law, he concluded, would need to make the ‘transition from jumbled, chaotic patchwork to a true and common law of man’ (1964: 117–18). In this reform-minded vein, Herz hoped for ‘a universalist “groundswell”, from which the feeling for the necessity to act in a common world interest would impose itself with compelling force upon people and people’s minds’ (1959: 331). Kelsen’s problem was not his noble dream of a global rule of law, but instead a tendency to overstate the degree to which the existing international order was capable of being successfully legalised. Kelsen’s court-centred model of international reform downplayed the decisive ways in which contemporary international law remained not only categorically different from most nationally based legal orders, but also still disproportionately subject to the whim of powerful states. Ours was not a unified global (that is, ‘monistic’) legal order, but still in decisive respects a ‘dualistic’ one, in which international law, though in many ways increasingly effective, lacked necessary attributes of legality. Kelsen’s theory masked the fact that appeals to law in the international arena too often served as a superficial cover for power moves that mocked a minimally acceptable model of law. In this vein, Herz and Schwarzenberger criticised Kelsen for offering a misleadingly legalistic interpretation of interstate violence. In Kelsen’s theoretical account, law was a coherent system of universal norms backed by sanctions. In actuality, the Realists responded, war and reprisals rested on unilateral measures directly subject to the discretion of individual states. Legal indeterminacy – that is, the reduction of law to highly particularistic interpretations, chiefly determined by fluctuating power constellations – ran amok in the interstate sphere, in contrast to the usual situation in national communities (Herz 1964: 97–101). For Schwarzenberger, self-help in international law had little in common with its domestic parallel. There, appeals to self-help were legally circumscribed to make sure they remained an exceptional state of affairs, whereas in international affairs a lacuna of basic legal safeguards meant that self-help served as little more than a cover for the ‘rule of force’: namely, political constellations typically favouring those with more de facto power (Schwarzenberger 1941: 130, 145–6, 176). Realists clearly rejected Kelsen’s gradualist, judiciary or court-centred vision of global reform: the judicialisation of international affairs hardly laid out a royal road to global law and order. At first glance, their criticisms of Kelsen’s ideas – a vivid theoretical crystallisation of mid-century liberal dreams for international reform – might

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 104

23/10/18 12:44 PM

global reform

105

be taken as corroborating Realism’s assumed hostility towards a reformed, law-based global order. This commonplace view, however, tends to miss the wood for the trees. Like Kelsen, Realists sometimes endorsed far-reaching reform at the global level as a desirable ultimate goal, towards which anyone suitably sensitised to the manifest irrationalities of the international status quo was obliged to work. Nor did they consistently reject the legalisation of interstate affairs as a long-term goal. Their views, in fact, at times reflected core components of Kant’s own original international theory. For example, Realists might readily have seconded Kant’s claim that ‘the depravity of human nature is displayed without disguise in the unrestricted relations which obtain between the various nations’ (Kant 1991: 103) Like mid-century Realists, Kant offered a hard-headed interpretation of the Westphalian system, adamantly rejecting any claim that it had already taken on sufficiently legal attributes. His ‘idealism’ forthrightly acknowledged the harsh ‘realities’ of an international order in which political leaders periodically carved up independent states (for example, Poland) and regularly engaged in horrific acts of violence. For Kant, international law ‘cannot have the slightest legal force, since states as such are not subject to a common external constraint’ (Kant 1991: 103). Without a shared system of ‘external constraints’, any talk of ‘just’ (that is, legal) versus ‘unjust’ (that is, illegal) wars represented a premature – and potentially misused – anticipation of a prospective yet still unaccomplished legalisation of international affairs. Realist scepticism about the international–legal status quo reproduces Kant’s original views. His apt portrayal of the underdeveloped character of the Westphalian state system not only mirrors much of what mid-century Realists had to say about it; it also anticipates their scepticism about some features of international law in the context of a global order where the Great Powers still exercise disproportionate influence. Like few other political thinkers, Kant was also deeply appreciative of the virtues of the modern state, believing that ‘only an agency vested with the actual monopoly of force has any hope of being able to act in a coordinated fashion’ on anything beyond the smallest of scales in order to guarantee law and order (Waldron 2006: 194). His widely noted ‘statism’ was arguably reproduced by Realists who worried that Kelsen’s assault on the concept of state sovereignty threw the baby out with the bathwater, not only obfuscating the harsh realities of existing political life, but also impeding proper appreciation of the necessary role state institutions would play in achieving global legality. Although mentioning Hobbes, Morgenthau might just as easily have credited Kant with recognising the ‘profound and neglected truth’ that ‘[u]niversal moral principles, such as justice or equality, are capable of guiding political action only to the extent’ that a sovereign state has been established (1951: 34). One reason why Kant rejected a right to disobedience, for example, was his emphasis on the indispensability of effective state institutions not only to legality, but also to the possibility of a rich and flourishing moral existence. As Jeremy Waldron has accurately noted, ‘Kant is interested in the state as an institution that makes a systematic difference to what is morally permissible for ordinary moral agents to do’ (2006: 183). Here we cannot dig any deeper into the perennial – and probably irresolvable – debate among Kant scholars about the precise contours of the global legal order he sought (Eberl and Niesen 2011). Yet it seems worth recalling that one widely shared interpretation views Kant as positing that, ultimately, only a global sovereign state could provide for a binding system of global law able to protect the weak from the strong, and make sure that laws are enforced in a more than ad hoc manner (Easley

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 105

23/10/18 12:44 PM

106

william e. scheuerman

2004). Realists’ advocacy for a world state, and also their insistence that it could be constructed, if at all, only via gradual means, mirror Kant’s reflections. They also shared with him what we might describe as a classically modern view of law, which conceives of modern statehood as a necessary yet insufficient precondition for the rule of law. Stated in the bluntest terms: in the absence of a state apparatus able to enforce general norms effectively against powerful as well as weak social actors, the modern rule of law’s fundamental aspiration to a modicum of legal equality cannot be realised. To the extent that the rule of law entails protecting the weak from the strong and guaranteeing basic protections to every member of the legal community, it necessarily depends on the existence of a ‘sovereign’ state. For this simple yet crucial reason, a viable as well as minimally attractive global legal system, like its national corollary, is likely to presuppose the creation of global statehood. Like Kant, first-generation Realists struggled to figure out how a world state could successfully circumvent many of its widely noted prospective perils. On this crucial matter as well, their reflections echoed Kant. While sympathising with the idea of world government, they worried, as already noted, that misbegotten quests to create it prematurely might culminate in a ‘lifeless’ despotism or a ‘totalitarian monster resting on feet of clay’ (Morgenthau 1954: 482). Such anxieties seem congruent with Kant’s own anxieties about the possible unrealisability of self-government and the rule of law in large and populous states. Yet these concerns encouraged neither Kant nor first-generation Realists to abandon all hope for the possibility of gradual reform able to move humankind closer to a global political community – and perhaps, some day, a full-scale world state.

Conclusion Let me be clear: Realists were hardly ‘closeted’ Kantians with secret affinities with his moral and political theory. However, a fresh look at their complicated relationship to the Kantian legacy helps counter the virtually universal consensus today that Realism necessarily opposes significant global reform. That view badly distorts a more complex and interesting intellectual history. We ignore such history at the cost of hindering an overdue intellectual and political exchange between Realism and recent, more constructive views about global reform among lawyers, philosophers and political theorists. Those hoping to move beyond international anarchy would do well to take a second look at Realism’s neglected reformist strands.

Notes 1. For example, Shapiro (2016: 110–12) simply dismisses my Realist-inspired defence of world government, without apparently having examined any of the classical Realists (for example, Carr, Morgenthau, Niebuhr, Herz) on whom my argument builds. (At any rate, none is referenced in his discussion.) He then rolls out the usual stock arguments against world statehood, without giving even minimal attention to the substantial body of scholarship that has tried to counter them. 2. For some important precursors – and, in some cases, contributors – to this revisionist genre, see Bell (2009), Booth (1991), Jütersonke (2010), Lebow (2003), Schou Tjalve (2008) and Williams (2005, 2007).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 106

23/10/18 12:44 PM

global reform

107

Bibliography Beardsworth, R. (2011), Cosmopolitanism and International Relations Theory, Cambridge: Polity Press. Beck, U. (2006), Power in the Global Age, New York: Columbia University Press. Beitz, C. (1999), Political Theory and International Relations, 2nd. edn, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Bell, D. (ed.) (2009), Political Thought and International Relations: Variations on a Realist Theme, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Booth, K. (1991), ‘Security in anarchy: Utopian realism in theory and practice’, International Affairs, vol. 67, pp. 527–45. Caney, S. (2005), Justice Beyond Borders: A Global Political Theory, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Carr, E. H. (1942), Conditions of Peace, London: Macmillan. Carr, E. H. (1964) [1946], The Twenty Years’ Crisis, 1919–1939, New York: Harper & Row. Carr, E. H. (1967) [1945], Nationalism and After, London: Macmillan. Claude, I. L. (1971), Swords into Plowshares: The Problems and Progress of International Organization, New York: Random House. Coady, C. A. J. (2008), Messy Morality: The Challenge of Politics, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Craig, C. (2003), Glimmer of a New Leviathan: Total War in the Realism of Niebuhr, Morgenthau, and Waltz, New York: Columbia University Press. Easley, E. S. (2004), The War over Perpetual Peace, New York: Palgrave. Eberl, O., and P. Niesen (2011), ‘Kommentar’, in O. Eberl and P. Niesen (eds), Immanuel Kant: Zum ewigen Frieden, Frankfurt: Suhrkamp, pp. 89–357. Geuss, R. (2015), ‘Realism and the relativity of judgement’, International Relations, vol. 29, no. 1, pp. 3–22. Habermas, J. (2006), The Divided West, translated by Ciaran Cronin, Cambridge: Polity Press. Herz, J. (1959), International Politics in the Atomic Age, New York: Columbia University Press. Herz, J. (1964), ‘The Pure Theory of Law revisited: Hans Kelsen’s doctrine of international law in the nuclear age’, in Salo Engel (ed.), Law, State, and International Legal Order: Essays in Honor of Hans Kelsen, Knoxville: University of Tennessee Press, pp. 107–18. Jütersonke, O. (2010), Morgenthau, Law and Realism, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Kant, I. (1991), Kant’s Political Writings, ed. by H. S. Reiss, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Lebow, R. N. (2003), The Tragic Vision of Politics: Ethics, Interests and Orders, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. McQueen, A. (2017), Political Realism in Apocalyptic Times, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Mearsheimer, J. (1994), ‘The false promise of international institutions’, International Security, vol. 19, pp. 5–49. Mitrany, D. (1946), A Working Peace System, London: National Peace Council. Morgenthau, H. J. (1946), Scientific Man Vs. Power Politics, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Morgenthau, H. J. (1951), In Defense of the National Interest, New York: Alfred Knopf. Morgenthau, H. J. (1954), Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, 2nd edn, New York: Alfred Knopf. Morgenthau, H. J. (1966), ‘Introduction’, in D. Mitrany, A Working Peace System, Chicago: Quadrangle Books. Morgenthau, H. J. (1970), Truth and Power: Essays of a Decade, 1960–70, New York: Praeger. Niebuhr, R. (1944), The Children of Light and the Children of Darkness, New York: Charles Scribner’s Sons.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 107

23/10/18 12:44 PM

108

william e. scheuerman

Niebuhr, R. (1959), The Structure of Nations and Empires, New York: Charles Scribner’s Sons. Ohlin, J. D. (2015), The Assault on International Law, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Pogge, T. (1994), ‘Cosmopolitanism and sovereignty’, in C. Brown (ed.), Political Restructuring in Europe: Ethical Perspectives, London: Routledge, pp. 89–122. Posner, E. (2009), The Perils of Global Legalism, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Scheuerman, W. E. (2009), Morgenthau: Realism and Beyond, Cambridge: Polity Press. Scheuerman, W. E. (2011), The Realist Case for Global Reform, Cambridge: Polity Press. Scheuerman, W. E. (2013), ‘The Realist revival in political philosophy, or: Why new is not always improved’, International Politics, vol. 50, no. 6, pp. 798–814. Scheuerman, W. E. (2014), ‘Cosmopolitanism and the world state’, Review of International Studies, vol. 40, no. 3, pp. 419–41. Schmidt, B., and M. C. Williams (2008), ‘The Bush doctrine and the Iraq War: Neoconservatives versus Realists’, Security Studies, vol. 17, no. 2, pp. 191–220. Schou Tjalve, V. (2008), Realist Strategies of Republican Peace: Niebuhr, Morgenthau, and the Politics of Patriotic Defense, New York: Palgrave. Schuett, R. (2011), ‘Peace through transformation? Political Realism and the progressivism of national security’, International Relations, vol. 25, no. 2, pp. 185–203. Schuman, F. (1952), The Commonwealth of Man: An Inquiry into Power Politics and World Government, New York: Alfred Knopf. Schwarzenberger, G. (1941), Power Politics: An Introduction to the Study of International Relations and Post-War Planning, London: Jonathan Cape. Shapiro, I. (2016), Politics Against Domination, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Van Munster, R., and C. Sylvest (2016), Nuclear Realism: Global Political Thought During the Thermonuclear Revolution, London: Routledge. Von Bernstorff, J. (2010), The Public International Law Theory of Hans Kelsen, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Waldron, J. (2006), ‘Kant’s theory of the state’, in I. Kant, Toward Perpetual Peace and Other Writings on Politics, Peace, and History, ed. by P. Kleingeld, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press, pp. 179–200. Waltz, K. (1979), Theory of International Politics, New York: McGraw Hill. Waltz, K. (2008), Realism and International Politics, New York: Routledge. Walzer, M. (2000), Just and Unjust Wars: A Moral Argument with Historical Examples, 3rd edn, New York: Basic Books. Williams, M. C. (2005), The Realist Tradition and the Limits of International Relations, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Williams, M. C. (ed.) (2007), Realism Reconsidered: The Legacy of Hans J. Morgenthau in International Relations, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Zolo, D. (1997), Cosmopolis: Prospects for World Government, Cambridge: Polity Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 108

23/10/18 12:44 PM

9 Thucydides Thucydides: the origins of political realism? Neville Morley

Chapter Overview

I

t is a well-established idea in mainstream International Relations theory that the ancient Greek historian Thucydides was a Realist and the originator of some key Realist ideas. The crude version of this claim, relying on a simplistic reading of the Melian Dialogue as a straightforward statement of Thucydides’ views, is easily refuted but more sophisticated accounts have been put forward, and belief in a close connection between Thucydides and the real world long pre-dates twentieth-century political theory. Interpretations of Thucydides as a Realist take many different forms, depending on how his work is read and in what contexts: we can identify an empirical realism, as has been claimed by generations of historians who take him as model for constructing accounts of the past firmly grounded in critical source analysis; realism as a sensibility, shown by his willingness to observe unflinchingly the harsh truths of the world and of human affairs; and, finally and most controversially, a theoretical or doctrinal realism that argues for the possibility of learning useful lessons from the past and develops ideas about the workings of inter- and intra-state relations. All these aspects can be supported from plausible readings of his work; however, contrary to conventional political science interpretations, Thucydides’ realism does not offer invariable laws or consistent principles of human behaviour, but instead seeks to educate his readers in understanding complexity and uncertainty. *

*

*

to see reason in reality: not in ‘reason’, still less in ‘morality’ (Friedrich Nietzsche)

Thucydides the Realist? The idea that Thucydides was a Realist, and that key passages in his account of the Peloponnesian War represent the first statements of important Realist ideas, is a familiar one. Recently, it has become established in non-academic discourse, especially in the USA, through the success of Graham Allison’s ‘Thucydides Trap’ meme as a model for US–China relations, the habit of senior military figures of quoting

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 111

23/10/18 12:44 PM

112

neville morley

Thucydides on state behaviour, and the ubiquity of the Melian Dialogue as a basis for interpreting the dynamics of any relationship of unequal power (for example, Allison 2017; Varoufakis 2016). This image rests on a longer tradition within international relations, again especially in the USA, of claiming Thucydides as an intellectual ancestor. This is implicit in the assertion of Robert Keohane that ‘even as long ago as the time of Thucydides, political realism . . . contained three key assumptions’, while Robert Gilpin claimed he found it difficult to conceive that anyone would deny Thucydides a place among the three great realist writers (Keohane 1986a: 7; Gilpin 1986: 306). Introductory textbooks on Realist theory present him without hesitation as the first Realist theorist, and the Melian Dialogue as the fundamental exposition of Realist ideas (for example, Boucher 1998: 29; Betts 2008: 53). It is widely assumed that Thucydides’ name can be evoked to legitimise any line of enquiry (‘Ever since the days of Thucydides . . . ’) (Ruback 2015a; Ruback 2015b). The line from the Melian Dialogue that ‘the strong do what they can and the weak suffer what they must’ (Thucydides 5.89) is presented as an encapsulation of realist thought, likewise the claim that states’ motives can be understood in terms of fear, honour and interest (for example, 1.75) – indeed, this may be cited to show the sophistication of Realism, emphasising the role of non-material factors besides the usual focus on rational ‘interest’.1 This crude account of Thucydides as a Realist is easy to refute, and has been regularly refuted (for example, Johnson 1993, 2015; Forde 2012; Crane 1998). It makes questionable assumptions about the nature of his text and his intentions, assimilating these to contemporary social science norms and occluding the ways in which they were radically alien (Ober 2001; Morley 2016). There is a plausible argument that Thucydides sought to identify general principles of human behaviour, rather than offering an account of the past as an end in itself – if we anachronistically associate him with a modern academic discipline, he was as much a social scientist as a humanistic historian – but his methods, assumptions and forms of rhetoric and representation were far removed from modern practices. Further, even if Thucydides was developing a normative theory of interstate relations, the ways in which modern readers have identified the contents of such a theory – since these are not stated explicitly anywhere – are highly dubious. The conventional Realist reading cherry-picks from a very long book, identifying just a few passages (above all the Melian Dialogue) as defining and exemplifying Thucydides’ theoretical ideas, and ignoring the fact that in most cases these claims are put into the mouths of characters, not presented as the author’s own opinions. The Melian Dialogue not only is the key text for Realist readings of Thucydides; it also most clearly problematises such claims. Its attraction is that it offers explicit statements about the anarchic nature of the world and the workings of interstate power relations – the calculation of advantage and interest, the dominance of might over right, and the irrelevance of ethics. Its unmistakably fictive nature (the dialogic form, and the impossibility of Thucydides having had any evidence for what was said) is less of an issue if it is read as a theoretical exposition rather than a conventional history. However, it is a dialogue, offering two different perspectives on the issues; there is no obvious reason for assuming that the Athenians ‘win’ or that we should favour their claims, unless a reader has a predisposition towards ‘might over right’ arguments. Extracting the passage from its wider context is problematic; the Athenians’ confident belief in their own power leads them immediately afterwards into the disastrous decision to attack Syracuse. If

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 112

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thucydides

113

Thucydides believed the ‘Realist’ claims of the Athenians and intended his readers to accept them, his narrative places these ideas in question. It makes more sense to read him as a critic of this pathological worldview, constructing his account to show its dire consequences (cf. Ahrensdorf 1997; Rahe 1996). Within political theory and international relations, such critiques conventionally conclude not by rejecting Thucydides as an authority but by recuperating him for a different theoretical agenda. He may be presented as a different and more sophisticated kind of realist – tragic, classical, theoretical or complex – or as a different kind of theorist such as a constructivist, while Straussians read him as a political philosopher in their own mould (for example, Spegele 1996:14; Lebow 2001; Lebow 2003 Lebow 2012; Ahrensdorf 1997; Doyle 1990; Doyle 1991: 91; Jaffe 2015). The best of these readings draw on research in classical studies, on Thucydides’ intellectual context, cultural assumptions and literary techniques; but, while classicists generally historicise the work and emphasise its radical separation from contemporary approaches, political readings continue to treat Thucydides as a colleague and intellectual progenitor.2 It is striking that an article arguing that international relations theorists should stop reading Thucydides nevertheless concludes that this is unlikely, in part simply because such readers continue to find his work inspirational and relevant to their own concerns (Welch 2003).

The Genealogy of Realism The idea that Thucydides’ work has some special connection with reality long predates the second half of the twentieth century. For the first few centuries after his work was revived in Western Europe, readers focused on the correspondence between his account of events and what had actually happened (Morley 2014: 35–59). Thomas Hobbes, introducing his own translation in 1629, emphasised that, unlike his predecessor Herodotus, Thucydides chose subject matter about which he could inform himself properly, and showed both intelligence and integrity in giving an account of it (1629: 20–1, 24). More explicitly, in his Instructions pour l’histoire of 1677, the French historian René Rapin claimed that ‘nothing is more beautiful in history than that it is real’, and that Thucydides possessed ‘a kind of spirit needed to say things as they are’ (1677: 33, 36). Such claims were grounded in the imagined character of the writer (his integrity and love of truth), his experience and expertise, his biography (especially exile) and, increasingly, ideas about his critical methodology. These arguments converged and reinforced one another in establishing the image of a writer who offered a uniquely reliable account, and whose approach marked him out as a true historian. Many eighteenth- and even nineteenth-century accounts of ancient Greek history were little more than paraphrases of Thucydides, partly because of the lack of alternative sources, but above all because his claim to reliability was accepted with little question. This idea was developed further in Wilhelm Roscher’s 1842 book on Thucydides, which presented him as a model for critical ‘History as Science’ (Morley 2012). In his opening chapters, Roscher sought to establish contemporary historiography as both equal and equivalent to the natural sciences, by distinguishing between three ways in which humans engaged with the world: the philosophical, which takes experience of the world and derives higher truths from it; the poetic, which takes experience and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 113

23/10/18 12:44 PM

114

neville morley

turns it into art; and the scientific, both natural and historical, which makes experience intelligible – interpreting reality, rather than seeking a truth higher than reality (1842: 3–16). Roscher then presented Thucydides as a perfect example of the scientific mind, who grounded his account in the reality of experience. Further, like a true scientist, Thucydides sought not only to gather material about the past but also to analyse and interpret it, developing more general theories that were, unlike philosophical speculations, fully engaged with reality. The main impact of Roscher’s book was on Friedrich Nietzsche, who borrowed it several times from Basel library.3 Roscher’s account of the true scientific historian and the ‘historical artisan’ reappears in Nietzsche’s characterisations of critical and antiquarian history in his essay ‘On the Uses and Disadvantages of History for Life’. More striking is the explicit association of Thucydides with a close engagement with reality, set against the abstractions and illusions of philosophy, in the late essay ‘What I Owe to the Ancients’: My recuperation, my predilection, my cure from all Platonism was Thucydides every time. Thucydides and, perhaps, Machiavelli’s Prince are my close kindred because of their absolute determination to pre-judge nothing and to see reason in reality: not in ‘reason’, still less in ‘morality’ . . . . Nothing cures us more thoroughly of the wretched habit of the Greeks of glossing things over in the ideal, a habit which the ‘classically educated’ youth carries with him into life as the reward for his gymnasium training, than Thucydides. One must turn him over line by line and read his unspoken thoughts as clearly as his words; there is scarcely another thinker with so many hidden thoughts. In him the culture of the Sophists, by which I mean realist culture, attains its perfect expression; this inestimable movement in the midst of the otherwise pervasive moral and intellectual swindle of the Socratic school. Greek philosophy as the décadence of Greek instinct; Thucydides as the great summation, the final manifestation of that strong, severe, hard matter-offactness that was instinctive for the earlier Hellenes. Courage in the face of reality distinguishes such natures as Thucydides and Plato: Plato is a coward before reality, and so he flees into the Ideal; Thucydides has himself under control, and so he also has things under control, (Nietzsche 1988: 156) The association of Thucydides with Machiavelli is interesting, given how modern accounts present them as founding figures of Realism. Most importantly, Nietzsche depicted Thucydides’ temperamental and moral realism, a complete worldview with no time for illusions about reality. Historians like Roscher focused on the attitude and methodology required to uncover the reality of events, since people had misleading and confused beliefs that they failed to question. Nietzsche, however, believed that reality was a terrifying prospect, and therefore people developed misleading beliefs to protect themselves. His Thucydides possesses the awesome courage to face things as they really are. This insistence on stripping away all illusions about human motives and the nature of the world resonates with the claim of modern ‘realism’ to have uncovered the true dynamics of political behaviour, however unpalatable these might appear. This tradition influenced the developing disciplines of international relations and political theory through several routes. Echoes of Nietzsche’s characterisation are recognisable in Leo Strauss’s writings, especially the idea of the esoteric nature of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 114

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thucydides

115

Thucydides’ work and its deliberately hidden and unspoken thoughts (Strauss 1964: 139–241). Thucydides also offered a model for a historically grounded but presentfocused analysis of global politics that was attractive to figures like Alfred Zimmern, Gilbert Murray and Arnold Toynbee.4 However, the specific theory of Realism was apparently articulated without any such influence, since Thucydides is scarcely mentioned by either Hans Morgenthau or E. H. Carr (Keene 2015). Rather, he was identified as a founding figure for the discipline as a whole, and then read through the lens of Realism. He was ‘recognised’ as a kindred spirit and precursor, who established the antiquity and hence credibility of the theory – exactly as nineteenth-century readers had ‘recognised’ Thucydides as a modern scientific historian. This survey of reception is intended to make two points. First, the sense of recognition is, for all the problems with crude Realist readings, not a complete mirage or pure projection. There is something about Thucydides’ work that leads different readers to identify a special relationship to reality. In theory, we could explain this tendency through a tradition of reception, priming readers to look for such elements in his work – as certainly happens today. But such readings recur in quite different contexts, indicating that this is only a partial explanation. The second point is to emphasise the variety of interpretations of Thucydides’ ‘realism’, from a general concern with fact rather than fiction to a full set of explicit theoretical presuppositions. Sometimes these conceptions are deliberately opposed – Peter Ahrensdorf’s idea of Thucydides’ ‘realistic critique of Realism’, for example – but often they reinforce one another, with Thucydides’ reputation for objectivity subtly bolstering his status as insightful political theorist (Ahrensdorf 1997). ‘Realism’ lies at the heart of the construction of Thucydides as an authority, but in multiple ways. This is undoubtedly an important text for engaging with issues and problems under the general remit of ‘realism’, but we must be conscious both of the different ways of understanding that concept – the remainder of this chapter will consider three different aspects – and of the constant temptation to appropriate Thucydides as an authorising figure, to assimilate him to a single perspective.

Realism as Empiricism The first strand of Thucydidean realism, dominant in historiographical reception and central to his reputation for trustworthiness, is the grounding of his account in the reality of what really happened. This reading is based on the opening sections of his work, where he offered a brief but highly critical account of early Greek history and then set out the general principles of his own approach to the past (Greenwood 2006). Thucydides was not the first to recognise that Greek traditions about past events were permeated with mythology and not to be taken at face value; his predecessor Herodotus had expressed scepticism about earlier accounts, often presenting them without committing himself to their credibility, and distinguishing between mythical and historical individuals (Herodotus 2008: 3.122.2; on comparisons, see Hunter 1982; and Foster and Lateiner 2012). Thucydides went further not only in analysing the problems with these inherited stories – ‘In respect of the preceding period and the still remoter past, the length of time that has elapsed made it impossible to ascertain clearly what had happened’ (1.1.3) – but also in attempting to identify a historical kernel in such myths through a process of rationalisation. He reinterpreted the Trojan

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 115

23/10/18 12:44 PM

116

neville morley

War in terms of Agamemnon’s political authority and command of a navy, rather than the myth of Helen’s suitors swearing an oath – but retained Homer as a historical source, arguing that references there to ‘the Achaeans’ rather than to ‘the Greeks’ were evidence that Greece was not yet unified (1.9–10, 1.3.3). Thucydides acknowledged the possibility of significant change over time, imagining how future observers of the ruins of Athens and Sparta would tend to overestimate the power of the one and underestimate the other, and offers the general principle that ‘one should therefore keep an open mind and not judge by appearances rather than actual power’ (1.10.3). These, then, are my findings about early history, though it is difficult to be sure of every detail in the evidence since people accept quite uncritically any reports of the past they get from others, even those related to their own country. . . . So little trouble do people take to search out the truth, and so readily do they accept what first comes to hand. From the evidence I have presented however, one would not go wrong in supposing that events were very much as I have set them out; and no one should prefer rather to believe the songs of the poets, who exaggerate things for artistic purposes, or the writings of the chroniclers, which are composed more to make good listening than to represent the truth, being impossible to check and most of them having won a place over time in the imaginary realm of fable. (1.20.1, 1.21.1) Such methodological statements, emphasising the problematic nature of the sources and the effort required to understand and evaluate them, establish Thucydides as an author who can be trusted. Unlike most people (an implicit dig at Herodotus, as well as his fellow-citizens), he refuses to accept stories at face value, and unlike other writers, he seeks only to discover the truth, not to entertain or flatter. He admits the limits of human knowledge – some things cannot be known in any detail – and claims only that events were ‘very much’ as he describes them, not that his account is complete or absolutely accurate. This insistence on the need for dogged enquiry, and the expressions of caution he utters even about his own account, are hallmarks of his critical sense and wish to ground everything in reality. As to the events of the war, I resolved not to rely in my writing on what I learned from chance sources or even on my own impressions, but [ . . . ] I investigated every detail with the utmost concern for accuracy. This was a laborious process of research, because eyewitnesses at the various events reported the same things differently, depending on which side they favoured and on their powers of memory, (1.22.1–13) Thucydides is unique among classical historians in his willingness to discuss methodology, and especially critical source analysis, as a means of legitimising his account. Later readers, especially from the Renaissance onwards, took these statements not only as grounds for accepting his narrative, but also as precepts that all historians should follow if they wished to serve truth rather than just tell entertaining stories (Morley 2014). Thucydides’ success in putting his stated principles into practice is something that has to be taken on trust; he presents an almost entirely seamless account of events, not citing any of the evidence or eyewitness accounts that, we have to assume, he

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 116

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thucydides

117

collected, evaluated and combined to produce his final version. The problem for historians of ancient Greece is that there is little contemporary evidence to set alongside Thucydides; evaluating his narrative is often a matter of sensing that he is not telling us everything or is presenting things in a tendentious manner. For example, he says little about the Megarian decree of 432 bc (in which the Athenians excluded traders from Megara from their markets), although in the plays of Aristophanes this was presented as a major cause of the war. Acceptance of his account rests on faith in the competence and integrity of the historian. The obvious point is that every history is an interpretation, and so inevitably involves authorial choices in selection, arrangement and representation. Thucydides makes this explicit in his explanation of the set-piece speeches in his account; he could not always be certain of exactly what was said, even when he had been present (again, his honesty in admitting fallibility is taken as a sign of trustworthiness): ‘What I have set down is how I think each of them would have expressed what was most appropriate in the particular circumstances, while staying as close as possible to the overall intention of what was actually said’ (1.22.1). Precisely what these phrases mean has been much debated, but they clearly undermine anachronistic interpretations of Thucydides as a modern historical positivist (Greenwood 2006: 57–82). He sought an appropriate balance between what can be known on the basis of evidence and what can be deduced from the general situation – which naturally involved subjective interpretations of the situation and its dynamics. Modern studies of Thucydides’ rhetorical and narrative techniques – he has been characterised as an ‘artful reporter’ – reach similar conclusions: such techniques are legitimate (not least because unavoidable) means of communicating his understanding of events (Rood 1998; Hunter 1973). This does not contradict the idea that Thucydides’ account is a concerted attempt at establishing the reality of events. However, its rhetorical aspects should not simply be ignored, since they are important means by which Thucydides, with remarkable success, creates his ‘reality effect’, persuading the vast majority of his readers that his account does indeed offer a true and reliable account of the world it describes.

Realism as Sensibility The role of trust in evaluating Thucydides’ account – above all, trust that he carried through his programmatic statements – connects to a second aspect of his ‘realism’: his sensibility. This is based partly on circular reasoning – most readers come to Thucydides with presuppositions about his dedication to truth and willingness to face reality, and then find confirmation of this in the text – and partly on the impression created by the opening sections of the work. However, it is also derived from the strong contrast with most other classical historians and what we might have expected from his biography. Thucydides does appear to treat the different Greek states even-handedly, rather than favouring his home city (as other historians would do) or taking revenge on it for exiling him. His portrayals of the polarising Athenian politicians Pericles and Cleon are nuanced enough that debate continues about his personal opinions, especially whether or not he sought to celebrate Pericles and exonerate him from blame for the defeat of Athens, or on the contrary wished to show Periclean imperialism as the root of the eventual disaster (Foster 2010; Taylor 2010; Jaffe 2017). Thucydides treated his own

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 117

23/10/18 12:44 PM

118

neville morley

actions in general as neutrally as everything else, even referring to himself in the third person (4.104–7); whether or not he had genuinely risen above his failure, he presented himself as someone committed to dispassionate truthfulness. Thucydides comes across as a man who refuses to accept anything at face value, whether the traditions of his own city, the evidence of his own eyes (Mycenae is a ruin today, so how can it ever have been great?) or even his own memories. He seeks to strip away comforting but unverifiable beliefs and explanations; he is a thoroughgoing rationalist, not only with myths and traditions but also with the supernatural, showing how individuals could be swayed by oracles, superstitions and portents without suggesting that divine forces played any role in human affairs.5 He drew complex distinctions between real and apparent causes, pretexts and true motivations (1.23.6), and constantly returns to the theme of the gap between words and deeds, language and reality – not only by showing how orators like Cleon and Alcibiades manipulated people, but also by providing set-piece episodes like the depiction of civil war in Corcyra: Men assumed the right to reverse the usual values in the application of words to actions. Reckless audacity came to be thought of as comradely courage, while farsighted hesitation became well-disguised cowardice; moderation was a front for unmanliness, and to understand everything was to accomplish nothing. (3.82.4) In many Greek cities, even Athens, language was distorted by factionalism, and any idea of a neutral, objective truth was lost. Not for Thucydides; he is someone who cannot be fooled, who sees past the layers of rhetoric and illusion to the world as it really is – and who is prepared to face it, however horrific, and describe it as accurately as possible (cf. Orwin 1994). The Corcyrean episode is one of a number of set pieces where social values and humanity are pushed to breaking point under extreme circumstances; there is also the description of the Athenian plague (which Thucydides himself lived through), the destruction of Plataea by the Thebans while the Spartans cynically washed their hands of responsibility, the moral bankruptcy of Athenian arguments in the Mytilene Debate and the Melian Dialogue, and the misery of the Athenian retreat from Syracuse. Thucydides describes it all in calm, analytical prose, avoiding overt emotional effects and leaving the horror of reality to speak for itself; comparisons are regularly drawn with the clinical precision of ancient medical writers. Thucydides’ character and style – the two become barely distinguishable – become a model for seeing the world as it is, not as we might like it to be.

Realism as Doctrine? In mainstream historical readings of Thucydides, these two aspects of ‘realism’ combine to establish the veracity of his account and its usefulness as a model. From the perspective of political theory, this raises the spectre of historicism. As Michael Doyle remarked, accuracy is a descriptive virtue and a theoretical vice; a focus on the detail of past events, emphasising their time-bound context, works against the possibility of wider understanding, let alone any relevance to the present (Doyle 1997: 46; generally, see Floyd and Stears 2011). Thucydides clearly stated that his account was intended to be useful. Reliability was a means to an end, not the end itself:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 118

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thucydides

119

[My account] will have served its purpose well enough if it is judged useful by those who want to have a clear view of what happened in the past and what – the human condition being what it is – can be expected to happen again some time in the future in similar or much the same ways. It is composed to be a possession for all time and not just a performance-piece for the moment. (1.22.4) The phrase rendered here as ‘the human condition being what it is’ has often been translated as ‘according to human nature’; the most literal rendition would be ‘because of the human thing’. Clearly, this makes a significant difference to our understanding of Thucydides’ claim that future events will tend to resemble past ones – is it because humans have a fixed and predictable nature, or just certain persistent habits and tendencies? – and hence what knowledge we can gain from his account, from normative covering laws to a richer sense of the variety of human experience (see Lee 2016 on ‘human nature’; Johnson 1993: 3071). The standard realist interpretation assumes the former, despite the fact that Thucydides nowhere elaborated the principles that his work supposedly sought to identify (hence the habit of identifying the law-like pronouncements of Thucydidean characters as expressions of his views). More ‘humanistic’ readings, from Hobbes onwards, make fewer impositions on the text but run the risk of falling back into historicism. Did Thucydides believe in the timeless utility of his work because of a deep understanding of the trans-historical dynamics of human politics, or did he assume that the institutions of fifth-century Greece would persist so that detailed knowledge of their politics would remain valid? Proponents of the theoretical Thucydides are sometimes too eager to move straight to the general, but remaining stuck in the particular is equally a misreading of his intentions. A good example is his brief overview of the causes of the war, recently elevated into (or appropriated for) the ‘Thucydides Trap’ model (Allison 2017). To explain why [the Athenians and Spartans broke their truce] I first set out the reasons they gave and the matters of dispute between them so that no one in future ever need enquire how it came about that so great a war arose among the Greeks. I consider the truest cause, though the one least openly stated, to be this: the Athenians were becoming powerful and inspired fear in the Spartans and so forced them into war. As for the reasons that were openly stated by each side for breaking the treaty and going to war, they were as follows. (1.23.5–6) Thucydides’ account is overtly focused on the causes of this war, rather than setting up a timeless model of the rising power confronting the established power; the subsequent narrative makes it clear that this Athens–Sparta dynamic was not the only cause, given the role of other actors, the importance of contingent events and individuals (Pericles urging Athens to pursue an aggressive expansionist policy), and the power of rhetoric and values in shaping decisions. At the same time, Thucydides clearly does intend his readers to reflect on wider themes and principles, rather than focus solely on specific events. The complexity and ambiguity of his language – again, there are significant issues of translation – may be deliberate, compelling readers to work through the ideas and their implications (Hunter 1982: 326–32; Shanske 2006; Jaffe 2017). He does not offer a theory; he pushes us to think theoretically.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 119

23/10/18 12:44 PM

120

neville morley

The same is true of other precepts and assumptions that the realist tradition has ascribed to Thucydides. These themes are not simply projections of modern preoccupations on to his account – but they are problematised there, offered as ways of thinking about the world that may or may not be useful or misleading, rather than clearly established as attributes of reality. We can consider three of the main tenets of mainstream realism (Keohane 1986b). First, the existence of international anarchy, where the only constraints on state behaviour are their power and capacity for action relative to other states; this is certainly the Athenian view of the world, especially but not only in the Melian Dialogue – but, as discussed above, there are serious doubts as to whether we should accept their claims at face value, let along adopt them as foundational principles. Other parts of Thucydides’ account showcase a variety of claims about the importance of treaties, religious beliefs, inherited relationships and ideas of justice as establishing norms of interstate behaviour; these are contested and often ignored, so one could claim that the ultimate constraints on state behaviour are material – but they are not shown to be irrelevant. Second, realism often represents states as the key political actors. Again, this is certainly found in Thucydides’ account; he frequently speaks in terms of the decisions, actions and perceptions of ‘the Athenians’ and ‘the Spartans’, and offers (via the Corinthians) accounts of their collective characters with the implication that these shape their behaviour. On the other hand, especially in the case of Athens, we are shown the processes by which states deliberate and reach decisions, making it clear that there are internal divisions and disagreements, and that individual actors can make a difference to the outcome. Interstate relations are not thereby reduced to internal politics or the decisions of individuals; rather, the interaction and feedback between different levels of decision-making and causation are emphasised. Third, political actors are conceived in realism as rational power-seekers. Once again, this is a view presented by Thucydides – and just as often interrogated. Not every state or individual seeks power, unless this is defined loosely enough to encompass a non-expansionist preference for security (Sparta and many smaller states). In staging the Melians’ dilemma between ‘surrender and survive’ and ‘freedom but death’, Thucydides raises the question of what the goals of a state should be. The notion of rationality is placed under still greater pressure; states and individual actors are shown to be driven by passion as much as calculation, and to have at best only a partial idea of where their interests lie. The Athenian decision to invade Sicily, presented by one speaker in the debate as the epitome of rational power-seeking, is unmistakably based on a deluded view of the world, and on irrational exuberance and overconfidence.

Conclusion In so far as Thucydides offers any sort of realist political theory, it is this: the world is complex, and people are bad at thinking about it. His ‘realism’ lies in recognising human susceptibility to passion, cognitive error, confirmation biases and manipulative rhetoric, and the consequences of this for trying to anticipate events and make decisions. Simply stated, such a theory appears trite; instead, Thucydides shows rather than tells, offering a series of case studies in the unpredictability of events and workings of ‘the human thing’, encouraging his readers to reflect on what happened and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 120

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thucydides

121

how it might have turned out differently. As Thomas Hobbes put it, ‘the narration itself doth secretly instruct the reader, and more effectually than can possibly be done by precept’ (1629: xxii).

Notes 1. This standard version of 5.89 is from the old, largely discredited but still popular 1874 translation by Richard Crawley. Otherwise, translations of Thucydides are taken from the Cambridge edition by J. Mynott (Thucydides 2013). 2. For an extensive selection of recent research, see, for example, Rengakos and Tsakmakis (2006); Rusten (2009); and Tsakmakis and Tamiolaki (2013). On Thucydides as a ‘colleague’, see Loraux (1980). 3. On Nietzsche and Thucydides, see Zumbrunnen (2002, 2015); on Roscher, see Morley (2012: 131–2). 4. On these neglected founding figures, see Keene (2015). 5. On Thucydides’ rationalism and religious beliefs, see Morley (2014: 91–6).

Bibliography Ahrensdorf, P. J. (1997), ‘Thucydides’ realistic critique of realism’, Polity, vol. 30, pp. 231–65. Allison, G. (2017), Destined for War: Can America and China Escape Thucydides’s Trap?, New York: Houghton Mifflin Harcourt. Betts, R. K. (ed.) (2008), Conflict After the Cold War: Arguments on Causes of War and Peace, 3rd edn, Harlow: Longman. Boucher, D. (ed.) (1998), Political Theories of International Relations: From Thucydides to the Present, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Crane, G. (1998), Thucydides and the Ancient Simplicity: The Limits of Political Realism, Berkeley: University of California Press. Doyle, M. W. (1990), ‘Thucydidean realism’, Review of International Studies, vol. 16, pp. 223–37. Doyle, M. W. (1991), ‘Thucydides: A realist?’, in R. N. Lebow and B. S. Strauss (eds), Hegemonic Rivalry: From Thucydides to the Nuclear Age, Boulder, CO: Westview, pp. 169–88. Doyle, M. W. (1997), Ways of War and Peace: Realism, Liberalism, and Socialism, New York: W. W. Norton. Floyd, J., and M. Stears (eds) (2011), Political Philosophy Versus History? Contextualism and Real Politics in Contemporary Political Thought, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Forde, S. (2012), ‘Thucydides and “realism” among the classics of international relations’, in K. Harloe and N. Morley (eds), Thucydides and the Modern World: Reception, Reinterpretation and Influence from the Renaissance to the Present, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 178–96. Foster, E. (2010), Thucydides, Pericles and Periclean Imperialism, Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press. Foster, E., and D. Lateiner (eds) (2012), Thucydides and Herodotus, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Gilpin, R. C. (1986), ‘The richness of the tradition of political realism’, in R. O. Keohane (ed.), Neorealism and its Critics, New York: Columbia University Press, pp. 301–21. Originally published in International Organization, vol. 38 (1984), pp. 287–304. Greenwood, E. (2006), Thucydides and the Shaping of History, London: Duckworth. Gustafson, L. S. (ed.) (2000), Thucydides’ Theory of International Relations: A Lasting Possession, Baton Rouge: Louisiana State University Press. Herodotus (2008), The Histories, translated by R. Waterfield, Oxford: Oxford University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 121

23/10/18 12:44 PM

122

neville morley

Hobbes, T. (1629), ‘To the readers’, in Eight Books of the Peloponnesian Warre Written by Thucydides the Sonne of Olorus, London. Hunter, V. J. (1973), Thucydides: The Artful Reporter, Toronto: Hakkert. Hunter, V. J. (1982), Past and Process in Herodotus and Thucydides, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Jaffe, S. N. (2015), ‘The Straussian Thucydides’, in C. Lee and N. Morley (eds), A Handbook to the Reception of Thucydides, Malden, MA: Wiley–Blackwell, pp. 278–95. Jaffe, S. N. (2017), Thucydides on the Outbreak of War: Character and Context, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Johnson, L. M. (1993), Thucydides, Hobbes, and the Interpretation of Realism, DeKalb: Northern Illinois University Press. Johnson, L. M. (2015), ‘Thucydides the realist?’, in C. Lee and N. Morley (eds), A Handbook to the Reception of Thucydides, Malden, MA: Wiley–Blackwell, pp. 391–405. Keene, E. (2015), ‘The reception of Thucydides in the history of international relations’, in C. Lee and N. Morley (eds), A Handbook to the Reception of Thucydides, Malden, MA: WileyBlackwell, pp. 355–72. Keohane, R. O. (1986a), ‘Neorealism and world politics’, in R. O. Keohane (ed.), Neorealism and its Critics, New York: Columbia University Press, pp. 1–26. Keohane, R. O. (1986b), ‘Theory of world politics’, in R. O. Keohane (ed.), Neorealism and its Critics, New York: Columbia University Press, pp. 158–203. Lebow, R. N. (2001), ‘Thucydides the constructivist’, American Political Science Review, vol. 95, pp. 547–60. Lebow, R. N. (2003), The Tragic Vision of Politics, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Lebow, R. N. (2012), ‘International relations and Thucydides’, in K. Harloe and N. Morley (eds), Thucydides and the Modern World: Reception, Reinterpretation and Influence from the Renaissance to the Present, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 197–211. Lee, C. (2016), ‘The power and politics of ontology’, in C. R. Thauer and C. Wendt (eds), Thucydides and Political Order: Lessons of Governance and the History of the Peloponnesian War, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 95–130. Loraux, N. (1980), ‘Thucydide n’est pas un collègue’, Quaderni di Storia, vol. 12, pp. 55–81. Morley, N. (2012), ‘Thucydides, history and historicism in Wilhelm Roscher’, in K. Harloe and N. Morley (eds), Thucydides and the Modern World: Reception, Reinterpretation and Influence from the Renaissance to the Present, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 115–39. Morley, N. (2014), Thucydides and the Idea of History, London: I. B. Tauris. Morley, N. (2016), ‘Contextualism and universality in Thucydidean thought’, in C. Thauer and C. Wendt (eds), Thucydides and Political Order: Concepts of Order and the History of the Peloponnesian War, Basingstoke and New York: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 23–40. Nietzsche, F. (1988) [1889], Götzen-Dämmerung oder Wie man mit dem Hammer philosophirt, in F. Nietzsche, Sämtliche Werke: Kritischen Studienausgabe VI, ed. by G. Colli and M. Montinari, Berlin: de Gruyter. Ober, J. (2001), ‘Thucydides Theoretikos/Thucydides Histor: Realist theory and the challenge of history’, in D. R. McCann and B. S. Strauss (eds), War and Democracy: A Comparative Study of the Korean War and the Peloponnesian War, Armonk, NY, and London: M. E. Sharpe, pp. 273–306. Orwin, C. (1994), The Humanity of Thucydides, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Rahe, P. A. (1996), ‘Thucydides’ critique of Realpolitik’, in B. Frankel (ed.), Roots of Realism, Portland, OR: Frank Cass, pp. 105–41. Rapin, R. (1677), Instructions pour l’histoire, Paris: Marbre-Cramoisy. Rengakos, A., and A. Tsakmakis (eds) (2006), Brill’s Companion to Thucydides, Leiden: Brill. Rood, T. (1998), Thucydides: Narrative and Explanation, Oxford: Oxford University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 122

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thucydides

123

Roscher, W. (1842), Leben, Werk und Zeitalter des Thukydides, Göttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht. Ruback, T. J. (2015a), ‘Thucydides our father, Thucydides our shibboleth: The History of the Peloponnesian War as a marker of contemporary international relations theory’, in C. Lee and N. Morley (eds), A Handbook to the Reception of Thucydides, Malden, MA: Wiley–Blackwell, pp. 406–24. Ruback, T. J. (2015b), ‘Ever since the days of Thucydides: On the textual origins of IR theory’, in S. G. Nelson and N. Soguk (eds), The Ashgate Research Companion to Modern Theory, Modern Power, World Politics: Critical Investigations, Farnham: Ashgate, pp. 17–34. Rusten, J. (ed.) (2009), Thucydides (Oxford Readings in Classical Studies), Oxford: Oxford University Press. Shanske, D. (2006), Thucydides and the Philosophical Origins of History, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Spegele, R. D. (1996), Political Realism in International Theory, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Strauss, L. (1964), The City and Man, Chicago: Chicago University Press. Taylor, M. (2010), Thucydides, Pericles, and the Idea of Athens in the Peloponnesian War, New York: Cambridge University Press. Thucydides (2013), Thucydides: The War of the Peloponnesians and Athenians, ed. and translated by J. Mynott, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Tsakmakis, A., and M. Tamiolaki (eds) (2013), Thucydides Between History and Literature, Berlin and Boston: De Gruyter. Varoufakis, Y. (2016), And the Weak Suffer What They Must? Europe’s Crisis and America’s Economic Future, London: Bodley Head. Welch, David A. (2003), ‘Why international relations theorists should stop reading Thucydides’, Review of International Studies, vol. 29, pp. 301–19. Zumbrunnen, J. (2002), ‘“Courage in the face of reality”: Nietzsche’s admiration for Thucydides’, Polity, vol. 35, no. 2, pp. 237–64. Zumbrunnen, J. (2015), ‘Realism, constructivism, and democracy in the History’, in C. Lee and N. Morley (eds), A Handbook to the Reception of Thucydides, Malden, MA: Wiley– Blackwell, pp. 296–312.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 123

23/10/18 12:44 PM

10 KauṬilya Centrifugal purism and the expansion of power Stuart Gray

Chapter Overview

K

auṬilya’s realism revolves around two distinct yet connected political goals, which can be attained to the extent that both are efficiently self-regulating: domestic security and foreign expansion. This chapter explores these two dimensions of his realism by tracing an analytical metaphor that pervades the Arthaśāstra: namely, the ‘body’ and its constituent parts, including the proper role that each part plays in securing internal order and external expansion. The chapter explains how the underlying logic of this realist stance is a response to natural ‘auto-tensions’ that follow from individual, political and economic complexities associated with different levels of embodiment. Consequently, Kauṭilya’s aim is not to eradicate this complexity but rather to hone and manage it as efficiently as possible, beginning with a unitary conception of ruling power at the top of the political order. Operating in both a top-down and an inside-out fashion, one can observe how a centrifugal, ascetic conception of ruling over oneself and others relies on a ‘layered purity’ through ritual self-discipline. This discipline requires the following: moral training designed to control a ruler’s potentially erratic emotions and desires; political and administrative pragmatism; and a multifaceted architecture of spying and surveillance. In sum, Kauṭilyan realism amounts to a totalising web of tightly controlled socio-economic and political relations at the macro-level, which aim to mirror perfectly his desired level of control and purity at the micro-level of the ruler and the ruler’s closest advisers. *

*

*

To outline a generally consistent strain of political realism in the Arthaśāstra, I examine the text as a single work, whose author scholars generally refer to as ‘Kauṭilya’. However, it is important to note at the outset that the extant text is a multi-layered, historically composite political treatise compiled and redacted by someone from a brahmanically orthodox background, dating to some time between the first and second centuries of the Common Era. In one sense, political realism will refer to an approach to politics that focuses on the everyday, practical problems a ruler confronts. In another sense, it refers to a conception of political bodies predicated on the assumption that they are ultimately self-interested and regard self-preservation as a basic good, which requires enhancing

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 124

23/10/18 12:44 PM

kauṬilya

125

and effectively deploying power. Kauṭilya expresses a Brahmanical–theological realism that is influenced by and promotes various religious ideas, and it is essential to note that political realism in the sense that I use it does not entirely preclude non-secular ideals, normative beliefs or ideologies. In short, Kauṭilya’s realism displays a hybrid character. He is not a realist or a moralist; he is both. For Kauṭilya, political interest, power and preservation begin with the reality of human embodiment and the physical, emotional and psychological impulses that accompany the condition of embodiment. This includes the impulses and desires that tend to privilege self-interest over broader communal interests, and thus endanger the achievement of a stable, peaceful political community. Hence, the imagery of the body and its control through training and purification provides a useful frame for examining many of the realist elements found in the Arthaśāstra. An underlying logic of Kauṭilya’s position is that the self-destructive tendencies of human nature must be corralled and efficiently managed through statecraft in a centrifugal, ascetic fashion. His normative position operates under the assumption that proper rule is like a moral force or power that begins at the micro-level of the ruler and reverberates outwards to the ruler’s ministers, subjects and, if fully successful, other kingdoms or states. As Kauṭilya suggests, the ruler’s virtue and self-mastery in statecraft are a centre-fleeing force directed outwards from the centre of the kingdom. This outwardly directed force starting at the centre inevitably confronts the centripetal forces being exerted from objects at the outer rim. For example, subjects’ perception of the quality of the king’s rule places a counterforce to a potentially abusive, outwardly directed force. Theorising this push–pull relationship between such ethico-political forces helps clarify an integral component of Kauṭilya’s realism. In the first section of the chapter, I outline the most important concepts and terms for understanding Kauṭilya’s political thought within the conceptual framework of the Arthaśāstra. This section highlights the political significance of ‘purification’ and the cleansing or clearing of obstacles in order to enhance the ruler’s centrifugally oriented capacity to rule, monitor and punish. This logic pervades both the domestic and the foreign components of his realism. The second section surveys Kauṭilya’s domestic realism and explains how embodiment, tension and centrifugal control characterise his efforts to stabilise a peaceful, flourishing domestic sphere. He equates peace with strength, which is crucial for advancing domestic interests in foreign affairs. In many respects, the basic principles of his domestic realism extend to his international or foreign realism, thus forming a systematic approach to enhancing a political body’s interests as it confronts the interests of other political bodies in a natural environment of tension and violence.

Concepts and Terminology The term ‘artha-śāstra’ is composed of two Sanskrit terms. In this context, artha means material wealth and profit but can also refer to the art of managing such wealth, or ruling, which we can translate as ‘statecraft’. This term indicates one of the four major aims of human life, or puruṣārthas, with the other three being dharma (moral or sacred duty), kāma (sensual pleasure, desire) and mokṣa (spiritual liberation from the cycle of death and rebirth). These four aims comprise a rather holistic brahmanical account of human life, and it is essential to note that we do not observe familiar Western conceptions of a

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 125

23/10/18 12:44 PM

126

stuart gray

good human life based on concepts such as individual freedom or a system of negative and positive rights. The term śāstra indicates a genre of text that presents an authoritative treatment of a particular subject. The Sanskrit term means an ‘instrument of knowledge and instruction’ but can more simply be translated as ‘treatise’. The title Arthaśāstra thus means a ‘treatise on ruling or statecraft’ that presents knowledge about the management of material profit and loss. As Mark McClish argues, because it is a śāstra it is ‘not so much a “blueprint for the state”, but a tool for the production of expertise, less a source for practical action as a sign of erudition’ (McClish 2009: 314). While this is true, the text is also intended as a manual for statecraft that poses insights into the practical activity of ruling a state. The knowledge communicated in śāstras is understood as eternal, transcendent and acontextual – even if the instructions of a text such as the arthaśāstra suggest paying careful attention to context. The transcendent nature of the knowledge contained in a śāstra thus indicates a version of ‘metaphysical realism’. That is, concerning the subject-matter of artha, Kauṭilya holds that 1. The kinds of thing (for example, power relationships) described in this śāstra really do exist. 2. Their existence is not an artifact of our minds, language or conceptual schemes. 3. The text’s statements are accurate descriptions of artha and are made true or false by facts in the world. 4. We are able to attain truths about artha, and it is therefore appropriate to believe fully things claimed in the arthaśāstra (Blackburn 1996: 320). This realist aspect of the text connects to a number of additional concepts and terms. The first and perhaps most important is dharma, which refers both to the transcendent moral law and its structure and to the more specific, corresponding duties associated with this law at the individual level. Hence, a king or ruler (rājan, kṣatriya) possesses a specific dharma or set of duties associated with his social group (varṇa) status. The other three varṇas posited in the text include brahmin (priests and sacrificial officiants), kṣatriya (rulers and military functionaries), vaiśya (farmers and merchants) and śūdra (servants). While rule was the provenance of rāj- (ruling) and the rājan or kṣatriya (ruler) as the means by which artha was managed, Kauṭilya further specifies the ruler’s duties in book 1: ‘That [that is, the specific Law] of a Kṣatriya consists of studying, offering sacrifices, giving gifts, obtaining a livelihood through the use of weapons, and protecting creatures’ (AŚ 1.3.6). Such duties refer us to a broader category of rājadharma (royal conduct, duties of rulership), which is a central topic in both Arthaśāstra and Dharmaśāstra genres in the context of classical South Asia. Perhaps the most essential concept for understanding Kauṭilya’s realism is daṇḍanīti, which is a compound noun comprising two distinct terms. The concept refers to the administration (nīti) of ‘the staff’(daṇḍa) that is wielded by the ruler. The latter term, daṇḍa, indicates the ruler’s power to punish and engage in corrective and constructive forms of coercion. In my interpretation of Kauṭilya’s realism, this image of coercion relates to theological notions of cleansing and purification in various contexts. The primary term for political purification is śodhana, deriving from śudh-, ‘to purify’.1 The predominant political application of such purification applies to what Kauṭilya calls the ‘eradication of thorns’ (kaṇṭaka-śodhana) in Book 4, with ‘thorns’ referring

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 126

23/10/18 12:44 PM

kauṬilya

127

to subversive elements in society. For example, he explains that corruption in prisons should be rooted out: ‘In this manner, he should discipline [or eradicate, śodhayet] officials in charge of money by means of fines; and, so disciplined (śuddha), they in turn should discipline (śodhayeyuḥ) the people of the city and countryside by means of punishments’ (AŚ 4.9.28). Here the terms can be translated as ‘eradication’, but elsewhere Kauṭilya uses the verb (śudh-) to denote the regular testing of ministers’ integrity (AŚ 1.10.1) and the purifying of metals such as gold and silver (AŚ 2.13.6/13). Such ‘testing’ is a method of purifying the ruler’s administration of any corrupt elements or vices. In a material sense, śudh- can also refer to the act of clearing away physical obstacles that obstruct proper rule, such as thieves and vicious animals (AŚ 2.1.38, 2.34.7), or to the ‘refreshing’ of material stocks and conditions for profit, such as timber, weapons, shields, fish, meat and produce (AŚ 2.4.28, 2.15.23). I emphasise the significance of purification not only because it has ethico-theological relations to bodily rituals and ascetic practices in brahmanical and early Hindu traditions, but also because it has interesting political implications that extend from the micro-political level of the body to broader ruling relations between the ruler and his subjects. This point brings us back to the centrality of the concept of rule (rāj-), especially since Kauṭilya is primarily concerned with the king as ruler (rājan) and kingdom (rājya). Each of these terms elicits the imagery of embodiment and purification or clearing of obstructions in Kauṭilya’s realism. Because the term rājya denotes both the king and kingdom, one can draw a conceptual parallel between the ‘thorns’ (kaṇṭakas) that represent domestic enemies and threats to the kingdom, and the group of internal enemies or vices (ari-ṣād-varga) that an embodied ruler confronts on the personal level.

The ‘Body Politic’ and Art of Rule: King, Kingdom and Domestic Realism Kauṭilya takes as his ideal model a small, regional kingdom called a janapada, meaning, ‘the territory inhabited by a people’. A kingdom is then composed of seven basic elements or constituents (prakṛtis) that supply the basis for a ‘seven-limb’ (saptāṅga) or ‘seven-constituent’ (prakṛti) theory of state. Each element plays an essential role in contributing to the kingdom’s domestic wellbeing and capacity for expansion: king or ruler (svāmin); ministers (amātyas); countryside (janapada); fort (durga); treasury (kośa); army (daṇḍa); and ally (mitra) (AŚ 6.1.1). Of the seven, the first six are internal while the seventh (ally) remains external. Kauṭilya explains that the svāmin is the most important because he serves as the ‘head’ of the kingdom, which must centrifugally oversee and control the other six elements. Kauṭilya explains that these elements are subordinate to the qualities of the ruler: ‘These constituents have been described as subsidiary elements of the exemplary qualities of the king’ (AŚ 6.1.15). In the context of Book 6, Kauṭilya takes this to mean two things. First, if the king does not possess the requisite qualities, then the importance of the remaining constituents who possess their respective qualities becomes irrelevant (AŚ 6.2.16). This is due to an interconnected ‘ripple effect’ in the various elements’ respective virtues. For example, if the king punishes too harshly, then even if his subjects are virtuous he will end up terrifying them, facilitating distrust and perhaps eventual rebellion (AŚ 1.4.7–16). Second, the king must set an example in exhibiting

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 127

23/10/18 12:44 PM

128

stuart gray

various qualities such as intelligence, generosity, moderation and bravery, which then sets a broader example for the remaining elements to cultivate their specific qualities and duties, including virtues that are common to all: ‘non-injury, truthfulness, purification, lack of malice, compassion, and forbearance’ (AŚ 1.3.13). In the figure and office of the king we also begin to observe an embodied mode of Kauṭilyan realism that operates in a centrifugal manner. As McClish and Olivelle (2012: liv) explain: the government, and its wealth, was not owned by the people: it belonged solely to the king . . . this government did not have as its primary purpose safeguarding the interests of the populace: it served first to increase the power and might of the king. This implies that the ruler and his kingdom comprise a single body, represented in the figure of the ruler, his self-possession and an accompanying centrifugal mode of disciplinary power. The first application of this centrifugal power entails the personal discipline and ritualised overcoming of internal enemies within the ruler. One of the most important concepts in Kauṭilya’s political thought is daṇḍa (punishment), which serves as the foundation for Kauṭilyan rule. Through an elaborate training regimen that begins in his youth, the king must learn how to control the destructive impulses that Kauṭilya explains are anathema to effective rule. One way that the ruler learns control is through training (vinaya, also ‘humility’) in three major knowledge systems that daṇḍanīti protects: 1. critical inquiry (anvīkṣikī), which includes various schools of rational enquiry and logical reasoning 2. economics (vārttā), which entails texts dealing with agriculture, commerce and other associated activities 3. ‘the Triple’ Veda, which includes the Ṛg-, Yajur- and Sāma-Vedas. In turn, Kauṭilya suggests that training in these systems helps the ruler cultivate exemplary qualities within the self: ‘For studying produces a keen intellect, a keen intellect produces disciplined performance, and disciplined performance produces exemplary qualities of the self (ātma-vattā); such is the capacity of the knowledge systems’ (AŚ 1.5.16). This high level of self-discipline aims at mastery over the senses (indriya-jaya) because the senses make human beings vulnerable to the first set of political enemies: passion, anger, greed, pride, conceit and excitement. As Kauṭilya tellingly adds, ‘For this entire treatise boils down to the mastery over the senses [because] a king who . . . has no control over the senses will perish immediately, even though he may rule the four ends of the earth’ (AŚ 1.6.1, 3–4). Here we glimpse a type of ‘political asceticism’. The ascetic aspect of Kauṭilya’s realism begins at the personal level, as we notice the politicised language of having these ‘enemies’ at the micro-political level of the self. Overcoming these vices exhibits the first layer of governance, and defeating enemies at this level is a precondition for overcoming enemies at the next two layers of domestic and foreign political relations. Kauṭilya even goes so far as to suggest that failure to conquer the ruler’s internal enemies will gradually lead to a slippage in governance and subsequent increase in conflict and cosmic chaos throughout the kingdom (AŚ 1.4.13–14). In short, Kauṭilyan political thought and realism literally begin with an individual ‘body politic(s)’.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 128

23/10/18 12:44 PM

kauṬilya

129

As Daud Ali explains, within the Arthaśāstra and Nītiśāstra genres, self-discipline and political policy are closely intertwined: the term vinaya was conceptually (and etymologically) related to concepts of ‘policy’ (nīti) and ‘directed conduct’ (naya) which formed the goal of the prince’s training. . . . As Kāmandaki put it, ‘self-discipline is the root (mūlam) of policy (naya)’. (2007: 13) Here we also note an interesting parallel between the six internal components of a kingdom and six internal enemies or afflictive emotions of a ruler, which must be subdued so that both micro- and macro-political bodies can become purified of enemies. Such parallelism helps capture the internalised, embodied connection between the person of the ruler, the kingdom and art of rulership. This notion of an embodied politics, whereby micro- and macro-level politics map on to one another in certain respects, also entails what I will call an ‘auto-tension’ that pervades Kauṭilya’s political thought. That is, applying daṇḍanīti is necessary because an automatic tension arises within both individual and larger political bodies that contain an internal complexity that naturally leans towards disorder and thus requires constant management (hence daṇḍanīti); and always confronts external forces and bodies that can exacerbate these natural tensions and lead to disorder. The seventh component of Kauṭilya’s ‘seven limbs of state’ theory evokes external forces on the international level in the form of allies and enemies. This centrifugal principle and ascetic application of daṇḍa starting at the microlevel of the ruler entails two additional components of note. The first is strict temporal control through a tight-knit daily schedule (AŚ 1.19). A ritualised schedule would help train and channel a king’s bodily habits, including the emotional and psychological tensions that accompany embodiment, such as lust and anger.2 While some flexibility is permitted, based on the ruler’s individual capacities, the ruler has a specific daily regimen, broken into eight parts, that begins before sunrise and continues after sunset. The schedule of activities includes: receiving reports from officials on revenue and expenditure; receiving public audiences to hear the petitions of subjects and try various cases; appointing various ministers’ respective tasks; consulting with defence counsellors, and inspecting troops and military weapons such as elephants; pondering strategies with military leaders; meeting with various spies and secret agents; meeting with his personal chaplain (purohita); engaging in Vedic recitation after bathing and eating at regular intervals; and ‘retiring to the sound of music’ at day’s end (AŚ 1.19.1–24). The second component of self-control is spatial in nature and relies on architecture. Interestingly, the architecture of the royal residence and its surrounding spaces mirrors Kauṭilyan realist precepts. The residence aims to parse and control the various constituents at the centre, and then to organise and connect subsequent elements of the city and countryside through a finely tuned system of boundary control. To start, the royal residence is partitioned into numerous chambers and living quarters, with Kauṭilya adding: All should reside in their own quarters and not visit the quarters of others; and no one living within should interact with anyone outside. Further, every article coming in or going out should be inspected and its entry and exit recorded. (AŚ 1.20.22–3)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 129

23/10/18 12:44 PM

130

stuart gray

Kauṭilya further distinguishes those residing in a fortified city based on social group, identity and function (AŚ 2.4). Presumably, this division would help make the socioeconomic organisation of the city more efficient by allowing the ruler to survey and police the proper functions of various segments of society. A central idea behind such centrifugal temporal and spatial organisation follows: one must start with the primary source of political authority (the ruler) and purify his body, his mind and the spaces he occupies of any potential threats (AŚ 1.21.1–23), and subsequently extend similar disciplinary mechanisms as efficiently as possible. This method allows the ruler and his system of surveillance to identify deviations from social, political and economic norms better. The body can thus serve as an organisational metaphor, tying the complexities and tensions of rule together in a single, coherent vision of the kingdom. Moral training, temporal organisation and management of space through careful architectural design comprise only the first layers of defence against political disorder and promotion of foreign expansion. An additional layer of pervasive testing and surveillance is a crucial component of Kauṭilya’s realism, beginning with the ruler’s ministers. Kauṭilya explains that the ruler must secretly test the integrity of his ministers after they are appointed in the various departments (AŚ 1.10). A variety of tests must be employed to detect for righteousness, greed, lust and fear because each minister represents a potential weakness or threat to the ruler and must therefore be thoroughly tested and monitored. In one passage, we also see Kauṭilya employing the language of ‘purity’ (śuci) as necessary proof of a minister’s integrity (AŚ 1.10.7–8). Importantly, such testing and surveillance do not end with the ruler’s ministers and extends outwards through a large network of clandestine agents and spies, who operate in as many roles and social identities as exist in a kingdom, including students, householders, ascetics, tax collectors, doctors, merchants, entertainers, wandering nuns and widows. One reason for the variety of spies in a kingdom is the fact that credibility is an essential component of successful espionage. Effective spying and surveillance do not constitute a ‘one size fits all’ sort of activity, and conspicuousness must be avoided at all costs. Thus, Kauṭilya contends that a king must employ spies with ‘credible disguises in terms of region, attire, craft, language, and birth’ to spy on all administrative officials, from the counsellor–chaplain to the frontier commander and tribal chiefs (AŚ 1.12.6). People serving different posts must not be able to pick up on any potential ‘irregularities’ in one’s appearance, behaviour and presentation. A purported śūdra-agriculturalist spy must look and sound like what one comes to expect such a person to look and sound like. An additional detail to note in the above passage is the centrifugal nature of surveillance and espionage. That is, these covert activities start at the top/middle of the kingdom with the ruler and ministers, and spiral outwards towards the edges of the kingdom. As he explains later in Book 1, ‘Once he has deployed spies on high officials, he should deploy spies on the inhabitants of the cities and the countryside’ (AŚ 1.13.1). This network would thus create a web-like effect that could detect and punish anyone who was disturbing, or who might disturb, peace and order in the kingdom. Kauṭilya is also crafty in conceiving how covert agents should communicate with each other without revealing their respective identities. He defends a ‘double-blind’ system that prevents both the information gatherer and its transmitter from knowing each other’s precise identity by using an elaborate system of signs and coded writing: ‘The apprentices of clandestine establishments should communicate the secret

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 130

23/10/18 12:44 PM

kauṬilya

131

information gathered by spies through signs and written messages. Neither they nor the clandestine establishments should know each other’ (AŚ 1.12.11). In cases where direct access for transmission is not possible, communication could entail passing information along through songs or recitations, or hiding it within musical instruments (AŚ 1.12.13–14). Kauṭilya explains the need for double agents (AŚ 1.11.17–25, 4.4.3) and testing them as well. Olivelle (2013: 481) further explains that if a double agent is disguised as a merchant, the ruler must employ another secret agent pretending to be a merchant in order to test his double agent’s integrity. Ideally, every spy’s identity as a spy must be concealed or disguised from all others. Concealing spies’ identities – and exposing the identities of enemy spies – reveals the thoroughgoing lack of trust Kauṭilya has in human nature. Even a ruler’s wife, for example, must be ‘inspected and cleared by elderly women’ before entering the inner chamber to sleep with the king (AŚ 1.20.14–17). Kauṭilya thus gives advice based on what he takes to be a realistic view of human emotion and psychology, and as the king is trained in the Itihāsa tradition (‘Traditional Lore’, such as the Rāmāyaṇa and Mahābhārata), he will necessarily be familiar with numerous examples of sedition in this tradition and expect seditious behaviour to come from every direction. Such surveillance was combined with severe forms of punishment and interrogation, including an elaborate system of ‘devious punishment’. These harsh methods could provide additional deterrents to subversive and criminal behaviour. For example, Kauṭilya outlines eighteen types of capital punishment and torture that can be deployed in a ‘righteous’ (dharmya) fashion because they have been ‘laid down in the śāstras of high-souled authors’ (AŚ 4.11.26; see 4.8.21–3) within the expert dharma tradition (see McClish 2009: 261–2). Regarding devious or secret forms of punishment, Kauṭilya acknowledges that openly executing someone such as a traitorous high official could have dangerous repercussions, particularly if he was popular with the public or had the support of other officials (AŚ 5.1.4). Therefore, Kauṭilya outlines a number of secret strategies for punishing traitors, such as sending ‘an agent working undercover as a physician, after establishing that a traitor has an evil or incurable disease, [and] should trick him by putting poison into the preparations of food and medicine’ (AŚ 5.1.35). Here we see a combination of kingly power (daṇḍa) and dharmic–theological justification that supplies a potent platform for ‘constructive coercion’. Such tactics would be understood as justifiable and even laudatory within a holistic worldview such as the one Kauṭilya expresses, wherein a ruler possesses a duty to engage in any form of daṇḍanīti that secures and maximises artha.

Other Political Bodies: International Tensions and Foreign Policy The Arthaśāstra also exhibits a realist position at the international level, as Kauṭilya views every kingdom as self-interested and primarily concerned with its own advancement, the success of which remains predicated on the effective use of force and subtle forms of coercive power. Military affairs, both covert and overt, are the lifeblood of a polity. Consequently, an essential aspect of the king’s position was to advance the kingdom’s interests and power whenever possible. This expansionism begins with what Kauṭilya calls the ‘Circle Doctrine’, which is a natural, interlocking system of concentric circles

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 131

23/10/18 12:44 PM

132

stuart gray

of political bodies characterised by what I have termed ‘auto-tension’ (AŚ 6.2.13–22). This automatic tension begins in the middle with the home king, whom Kauṭilya calls the ‘seeker of conquest’ (vijigīṣu), with enemy states surrounding the kingdom on all sides in a circular fashion. Immediate boundaries automatically create enemies in so far as these surrounding political bodies place limits on and pose potential threats to the kingdom’s expansion. The idea of a king as a seeker of conquest is essentially an ontological claim, and Kauṭilya’s position assumes something like a natural, normative tendency towards expansion at best, and prevention of being overtaken at worst. Surrounding the enemy was a second circle of allies who, following the above logic, were the enemies of the domestic king’s enemies and therefore considered natural allies. This circle doctrine extends outwards into numerous circles of enemies and allies, in both the front and the rear, thus creating an interlocking system that dictates foreign relations. Kauṭilya adds two additional types of kingdom as well. An ‘intermediate’ kingdom shares borders with the domestic kingdom and enemy, which is able to assist either and overpower them both when they are not united, and a ‘neutral’ kingdom is the strongest kingdom among those within a twelve-circle radius. This typology of foreign political bodies into four general categories supplies the basic spatial framework for Kauṭilya’s international realism. A key component of foreign relations were the home king’s envoys, who gathered information and assessed relations between the home and foreign kingdoms. They discussed strategy with the king beforehand, communicated with frontier commanders, and negotiated with other kings when abroad (for example, AŚ 1.2, 1.16.1–17). It is significant to note that these envoys, at least ideally, would have been brahmins because they were considered to be the most educated and morally pure members of society. Having brahmins as envoys would also serve tactical purposes. First, they would have been effective negotiators due to their learning and self-control. Second, due to their religious status they would probably have been treated with greater respect by rulers in surrounding kingdoms, and thus be in less danger of being harmed or killed. Finally, the moral authority associated with brahmins would supplement the authority of the king’s message (McClish and Olivelle 2012: 124). We might summarise the basic tenets of Kauṭilya’s realist approach to foreign relations in the following way. Any given political body cannot perpetually remain neutral or at peace because: 1. 2. 3. 4.

Political boundaries always exist. These boundaries mark off a kingdom’s identity. Political identities create self-interests. These interests will inevitably conflict with one another because power hierarchies naturally exist and continually emerge between political bodies. 5. Finally, these hierarchies lead to an inevitable push–pull relationship between stronger and weaker bodies.

Because foreign conflicts expose power hierarchies and resulting hostilities between political bodies, the ruler must possess intimate knowledge of both enemies and allies, which we see reflected in Kauṭilya’s six methods of foreign policy. The first two methods entail making a peace pact and initiating hostilities (AŚ 7.2.6–7), which are the most basic strategies. However, because Kauṭilya defends a

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 132

23/10/18 12:44 PM

kauṬilya

133

contextualist position, he elaborates a few more methods based on circumstantial considerations: remaining stationary in a fortress, marching into battle, seeking shelter in another kingdom, and the ‘double stratagem’ of pursuing a peace pact while simultaneously initiating hostilities (AŚ 7.1.8–12). To revisit briefly the concept of purification (śudh-), in Book 10 Kauṭilya explains the necessity of clearing (śodhayitavyaḥ) dangerous routes when marching into battle from a military camp (AŚ 10.2.13), and the important task of the labour corps in clearing (śodhana) military camps. Again, purification and political fortification are conceptually intertwined. When explaining how to entice enemies to sedition, he contends that a seeker after conquest ‘should embolden his own faction and terrify his enemy’s faction by proclaiming omniscience and his intimacy with the gods’, and that backing this proclamation entails ‘discovering people who do what is inimical to the king through spies working for the agency for the eradication of thorns and exposing them’ (AŚ 13.1.1–2). Kauṭilya’s position allows for even greater nuance through the use of what he calls ‘strategic partnerships’. In Book 7, after outlining the sixfold policy, he explains how, after determining that a king should march into battle, he may need to establish a strategic partnership to be successful (AŚ 7.4.19–21). These partnerships display flexible, circumstantial strategies that are available to states, especially weaker ones, which are not available in the basic sixfold set of strategies.3 Such partnerships would be quite complex and involve a state in a number of political partnerships that require constant information gathering, negotiation and supervision, thus sustaining a fluid environment of auto-tensions. In short, these partnerships highlight how Kauṭilyan rulership and foreign affairs are actually more of an art than a science, even though the Arthaśāstra is often read as a rigid manual of predetermined rules and stipulations. Spying and ultimately ‘outwitting’ (atisaṃdhā) one’s enemies is a crucial aspect of eradicating obstructions to a king’s successful expansion. Kauṭilya’s foreign policy is not a sedentary one, as spying methods aim towards conquering other kingdoms. In classical South Asia, political expansion was understood as part of a ruler’s duty (rāja-dharma) and built into the nature of his identity as a kṣatriya. This point further highlights the auto-tension in Kauṭilya’s realism because not only does he posit natural tension between political bodies, but also he moralises a ruler’s role to engage in hostilities. In other words, his position does not merely amount to a claim about the brute reality of self-interest in foreign affairs but further claims that it is morally justified to engage in hostility and succeed in doing so. However, this fact should not lead us to conclude that Kauṭilya has little to no regard for other kingdoms’ or political bodies’ interests because he also defends a realistic degree of tolerance concerning the various customs and traditions confronted during expansion. When a ruler conquers another land, Kauṭilya advises him to extend as much magnanimity to a conquered people as possible (AŚ 7.5). One reason for this advice is the importance of gaining people’s trust and loyalty, and not causing ‘disaffection’ among the ruler’s new subjects: For . . . by discontinuing customary and righteous practices [disaffection is instigated]. . . . When impoverished, subjects become greedy; when they are greedy, they become disloyal; and when they are disloyal, they either go over to the enemy or kill their lords themselves. (AŚ 7.5.20, 27)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 133

23/10/18 12:44 PM

134

stuart gray

In Book 13 he further explains how pacifying a conquered territory requires adopting habits, dress, language and conduct similar to those of the local population and demonstrating devotion at regional religious festivals and during recreational activities (AŚ 13.5.3–4/6–8). Therefore, Kauṭilya is not naive when it comes to the challenges associated with conquering another people, although he maintains that a ruler possesses the prerogative to eradicate whatever customs appear detrimental concerning artha, especially customs concerning the treasury and army (AŚ 13.5.14). The above reference to greed also reminds us of Kauṭilya’s earlier emphasis on overcoming vices at the domestic level, beginning at the micro-level of the ruler and extending outwards to the ruler’s subjects. While centrifugally directed moral purification may be an effective way to fortify oneself against potential enemies, these statements about accommodating conquered subjects sit uneasily with Kauṭilya’s comments elsewhere in the text, where he advises the ruler to extend the varṇāśramadharma system to all four corners of the earth (AŚ 13.4.62). The first and most plausible way of addressing this incongruity in Kauṭilya’s position is to conclude that the more brahmanically conservative and orthodox suggestion about extending the varṇāśramadharma system is an interpolation of a later redactor (McClish 2009: 199). However, one could theoretically reconcile these apparently contradictory positions by positing a more realist-oriented position that accounts for a plurality of customs and traditions, and a more idealistic position that looks to impose an ideal system on to a potentially unreceptive populace. The extant Arthaśāstra could support a minimally pluralist position in so far as a ruler maintains a general division of labour between something resembling the four varṇas: a wise, educated class of people responsible for maintaining sacred customs; a class of warriors/soldiers and rulers responsible for defending a polity, or those who must get their hands dirty by employing coercion and punishment (daṇḍanīti); a productive class of labourers, farmers and merchants responsible for cultivating the material goods and wealth of a polity; and a class of people responsible for serving these other groups and fulfilling any remaining yet necessary social or economic functions, especially menial functions, so that each group could effectively engage in its respective activities and responsibilities. In this sense, the realist and idealist aspects could coexist if allowances were made for local versions and customary applications of something like the varṇāśramadharma system. Historical and authorial issues aside, we can plausibly conclude that Kauṭilya’s political thought exposes a realistic view on the need to accommodate the complexity of human behaviour as it manifests in the form of various customs existing across geographical locales.

Conclusion This chapter has aimed at familiarising the reader with the most significant realist components in Kauṭilya’s Arthaśāstra. I have argued for the centrality of particular metaphors and their underlying logic, especially the significance of embodiment, ascetic purification and centrifugal power. Kauṭilya’s realism begins with the simple reality that a ruler is an embodied being, and as such he is susceptible to a variety of vices that threaten political order and stability. With the proper training, a ruler cultivates a wide variety of virtues and gains mastery over the senses, thus conquering vices that serve as internal, micro-level enemies. This allows the ruler to choose effective

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 134

23/10/18 12:44 PM

kauṬilya

135

ministers and interact with them in deft fashion. Choosing good ministers is crucial because they help the ruler operate the numerous day-to-day operations necessary for running a state. These operations include a pervasive system of surveillance and harsh punishments aimed at combatting the subversive elements of society. The covert nature of these activities exhibits a number of realist assumptions about power and how to apply it effectively in order to enhance a state’s self-interest. Kauṭilya’s international realism exhibits many of the principles we see operating in the domestic sphere. This includes the logic of centrifugal force, which radiates outwards and pits political bodies against one another. The system of surveillance, espionage and assassination must also be applied at the foreign level in order to prevent outside, centripetal forces from gaining potential power over a home state. In turn, any given state or political body is confronted with a number of natural enemies and allies, each of which seeks to advance its self-interests at the cost of others. Therefore, this is not a system based on the possibility of perpetual peace but rather a complex, interlocking system of auto-tensions that entwines each political body in international struggles to stave off domination and expand one’s political boundaries. In sum, Kauṭilya’s realism amounts to a totalising web of tightly controlled socio-economic and political relations at the macro-level, which aim to mirror his desired level of purity and control at the micro-level of the ruler and the ruler’s closest advisors. One implication of Kauṭilya’s position for international relations in the twenty-first century follows. Kauṭilya suggests that auto-tensions pervade international relations partly because political bodies assume self-possessed identities that often manifest a desire for self-mastery, which can trickle into foreign affairs. Political expansionism, including a desire for empire abroad, can centrifugally extend from a desire for domestic mastery by small, powerful groups or single individuals in positions of authority. According to Kauṭilya, this is a natural phenomenon and would hold true, regardless of historical period and geographical locale. Kauṭilyan realism thus suggests that a state become aware of this phenomenon so that it might operate more efficiently and effectively in a competitive, self-interested environment of international relations. A related yet disturbing idea the Arthaśāstra raises is that success in advancing national self-interests at the global level depends on the success of a homegrown realism that purifies and domesticates its would-be citizens, turning them into docile yet loyal subjects. This point highlights a particularly troubling implication of Kauṭilya’s realism: namely, the impossibility of ever achieving international peace in an age of increasingly global interests and predicaments that transcend the interests of any single nation.

Notes 1. Verbal and nominal forms derived from this verb root appear twenty-two times in the text, and most imply efforts to establish greater stability by clearing away obstacles to effective rule. 2. On the relationship between ritual self-discipline and an embodied human condition as it applies in the Vedic tradition, see Lubin (2010: 263–74). 3. For a detailed analysis of non-aggression pacts and strategic partnerships, see McClish (2016).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 135

23/10/18 12:44 PM

136

stuart gray

Bibliography Ali, D. (2007), ‘Courtly manners and lineage formation in early medieval India’, Social Scientist, vol. 35, no. 9/10, pp. 3–21. Blackburn, S. (ed.) (1996), Oxford Dictionary of Philosophy, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Lubin, T. (2010), ‘Ritual self-discipline as a response to the human condition: Towards a semiotics of ritual indices’, in A. Michaels (ed.), Ritual Dynamics and the Science of Ritual, Volume 1: Grammars and Morphologies of Ritual Practices in Asia, Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz, pp. 263–74. McClish, Mark, (2009), Political Brahmanism and the State: A Compositional History of the Arthaśāstra, PhD dissertation, University of Texas at Austin. McClish, M. (2016), ‘Non-aggression pacts and strategic partnerships in Kautilyan foreign policy’, in A. Gupta, P. K. Gautam and S. Mishra (eds), Indigenous Historical Knowledge: Kauṭilya and his Vocabulary, Part 3, New Delhi: Pentagon Press. McClish, Mark, and Patrick Olivelle (2012), The Arthaśāstra: Selections from the Classic Indian Work on Statecraft, Indianapolis: Hackett. Olivelle, Patrick (2013), King, Governance, and Law in Ancient India: Kauṭilya’s Arthaśāstra, New York: Oxford University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 136

23/10/18 12:44 PM

11 Livy Raison d’état? Paradoxes of political realism in Livy’s exemplarity Ayelet Haimson Lushkov

Chapter Overview

T

his chapter explores Livy’s use of exemplarity and literary form as a means of inserting political realist behaviour into the fabric of Livy’s history. In particular, the exempla chosen – the execution of adult sons by consular fathers – show that the conjunction of family and politics in Rome was never a straightforward encounter and was almost always charged by the foundational question of political realism: does the political have its own normativity or does it exist in analogy with other less formal types of power asymmetries? *

*

*

Political Realism is not an intuitive label to assign to the Roman historian Livy, nor, more specifically, to the content or message of the thirty-five books that survive from his history of Rome (Ab Urbe Condita, or AUC). Indeed, it is only recently that Livy has begun to be taken seriously as a political thinker at all, despite the fact that his history is concerned primarily with politics and has explicit didactic aims.1 This move has come hand in hand with a greater recognition that Livy is, in fact, engaged in a systematic attempt to transform the lessons of the Roman past into something both salubrious and relevant for its troubled present, even if the question of what exactly that present constitutes remains fluid and difficult.2 That systematic attempt is best encapsulated under the rubric of ‘exemplarity’, adumbrated early in the preface of the history: This is especially improving and beneficial in the study of history: to contemplate examples of every kind of behaviour (omnis exempli documenta) set out clearly on a monument. From this you can choose for yourself and for your commonwealth which to imitate, and which, being foul from beginning to end, to avoid. (Livy, Praef. 10)3 Scholars continue to debate the precise workings of exemplarity, both in Livy and in Roman society, but there is general consensus both that exemplarity was a dominant cognitive paradigm and that it involved setting models for imitation or avoidance

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 137

23/10/18 12:44 PM

138

ayelet haimson lushkov

– exempla – as a way of inculcating a set of values, behaviours and other learned responses. These included, among other things, political norms: exempla taught Romans to abhor kingship, subject their desires to the greater good of the state, and expect certain kinds of conduct from certain offices – as well as the consequences when such conditions were not met. And because exempla were plural and multiple, the system itself reflected political ideologies and political change: as the republic transitioned into empire, so too did the emperor and his family increasingly become the focus of exemplary discourse. The emperor was the ultimate model for imitation, so the thinking went, because he had learned and embodied the most positive lessons of the glorious Roman past.4 Here too, however, lies the most obvious problem in seeing Livy as a political realist. Although exempla sometimes demonstrate isolated realist principles such as ‘might is right’, they generally fall foul of the principle of the autonomy of the political: because so many exempla in Livy either are political or are done by political people, the question of context and perspective prevents any clear division between what was political and what was not. We might say that, for the Romans (as, indeed, for anyone else), the personal was political, and vice versa, but that would bring us to the second obstacle, which is that, almost by definition, exempla translate abstract issues into a question of an individual’s morality. In a text and society that advocated ethical valuations and moral virtue, can we still find justification and practical uses for a modern political realist reading?5 That is the main question with which this chapter will grapple. Focusing on a small but semantically rich set of exempla, it asks to what extent can we parse out the strands of realism, ethics, and the political and personal that Livy so neatly entwines together. I will argue that this entanglement is, in fact, at the core of Livian political realism, such as it is, and gives the exemplary project in the AUC its explanatory power and efficacy. A word on method. My approach to political realism leans heavily on both paradox and context to explain how Livy’s political thinking works. My analysis in the following pages, however, is predominantly literary, in the sense that I look for the relationships between linguistic usage, rhetorical structures and thematic connections between individual episodes and across larger portions of the work. Ancient historians worked in ways that are, to some degree, still familiar to our own today, but recognising this continuity should not distract from the fact that the ancient project of history was also different in important ways from the academic pursuits of today’s scholars (Pitcher 2010: 5–24). Livy, and other historians like him, wrote to edify and entertain, and deployed in their works all the practices of literary art; their lessons, in other words, were in showing rather than in telling, a phenomenological difference that can run counter to modern academic sensibilities. How the ancient historians presented their material is therefore of paramount importance in understanding the lessons they wished to impart. Form, in this case, cannot be separated from function.6

Exemplarity and Narrative in Livy’s AUC The Ab Urbe Condita narrates the history of Rome from its mythical foundation to Livy’s own death in 17 ce.7 The work originally contained 142 books, of which only thirty-five (1–10, 21–45) survive, along with later (and usually unreliable) summaries of the later books.8 Even this fraction is nevertheless substantial enough to allow us to

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 138

23/10/18 12:44 PM

livy

139

draw some conclusions about how the work was structured. We know, for instance, that Livy devoted more space per year as he came closer to the events of his own time, while the surviving books, all of which are from earlier in the history, cover much longer spans of time. Such vast amounts of time and material required a meticulous architecture to support any themes or messages the work and its author might wish to convey. Livy consequently structures his history on a number of organisational units, some of which, like the book, are more technical, while others, like the consular year, do more to conflate the political realities of Rome with the literary artifice of the AUC. Broadly speaking, the AUC is organised in three concentric levels. At the highest level, the work is divided into single books, pentads and decades – units of five or ten books, respectively – which contain the larger plot elements of Roman history. The regal period, for instance, which preceded the foundation of the republic, takes up the entire first book, with the new political order beginning in Book 2. The Second Punic War takes up a single decade (the third), while the expansionist wars in the east that follow it take up a fifteen-book unit. These divisions work to define sets of events as belonging together and as against other sets of events, to demarcate periods of historical, political or military development, and to illustrate structurally the concomitant expansion of the Roman empire and the Roman history that narrated that expansion.9 Below this macro-scale framework is another layer of organisation, which is the chronological unit of the consular year.10 The top executive officers of the Roman state were the two consuls, who entered office on 15 March until 153 bc, and on 1 January thereafter. The year took its name from the presiding consuls, such that what we call 49 bc was known to the Romans as the ‘year of the consulship of Julius Caesar and Calpurnius Bibulus’.11 The consular year was the bedrock of annalistic historiography, the genre in which Livy is writing, and whose method was the narration of Roman history year by year, as opposed to, say, units of four years (as in the Greek Olympiads), or by war (as in Sallust’s monograph on the war with Jugurtha, itself taking cues from Greek precedents like Thucydides on the Peloponnesian War). Perhaps more important than the consular year itself, however, was the annalistic division of the year into events at home, which were usually political and religious, and events abroad (domi militiaeque), which were usually military or diplomatic. The division was necessarily an artificial one, since Rome’s involvement abroad was not strictly extricable from what happened in the political arena at home, but it did reflect some political habits of the Romans. For example, because of the Roman fear of autocratic rule, the power of any office-holders (imperium) was heavily circumscribed while within the boundaries of Rome (the pomerium) by the citizens’ power of appeal and legal protections. Outside the pomerium, however, the same citizens now stood in a different relationship to the consul; because they were now soldiers and the consul now their general, consular imperium also included the power to execute without trial or appeal.12 Such executions were rare and their judicial status was contested then as it is now; this symbolic freight made them excellent candidates for embellishment and commemoration, and thereby also for becoming exempla. This is the third level of organisation in Livy’s narrative, that of episodic structure. Here, what matters most is content rather than structure, because it is the episodes and exempla of the AUC that furnish the substance of the history: what happened and who did it. It is here, too, that the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 139

23/10/18 12:44 PM

140

ayelet haimson lushkov

majority of the ethical work is done, since it is exempla that teach the reader how to behave so as to embody the values and ethics of Roman society. The problem with the episodic composition, however, is that it is inherently atomising, reducing Roman history to a series of concatenated events, without necessarily situating them in their immediate local context. This approach is powerful in and of itself: it gives such exempla a timeless universality, and allows its application to people and times for whom the events themselves are no longer relevant. Structure, however, cannot be ignored. It matters, for instance, whether an execution is placed on the domi or militiae side of affairs, not only because of the legalistic issue of legitimacy and rights, but also because moving the event from one side to the other underscores the continuity of the political in the multiple spheres of Roman life. In this context, it might be noted, Livy is eating his cake and having it too, since the combination of annual and pentadic structures allows him both to conform to annalistic type and to cluster events within longer temporal or thematic units – an effect that requires the reader to acknowledge the complexity of context in any single event of Roman history. Seeing exempla as episodes within these broader narrative structures is, however, only one way of describing the way exempla can be read and understood.13 In particular, a more narrative-based way of reading keeps the emphasis on immediate context and audience response, but also opens a diachronic reading of the way exempla are received and develop over time. More crucially, narrative can also enable the creation of exempla in the round. It can do so by bringing together sets of similar events separated by time and situation, changing some variables at any one moment to explore the resulting effects; it can also do so within single episodes, where the exemplum is explored from a variety of perspectives and approaches, rather than (as in the atomising case) focusing on description of the single heroic act.14 The complex architecture of the AUC allows Livy ample resources to do just that. As such, exemplarity works to test certain situations in different contexts, posing questions familiar to political thinkers: what is permissible in the name of the state, what the political culture can tolerate, and how best to understand the shared values of the Roman state. How do these literary and formal problems relate to, and help us to think about, political realism in Livy? If we can take political realism to indicate a focus on explaining ‘the distinctive forces that shape real politics’ (Rossi and Sleat 2014: 689), we can immediately see that Livy’s narrative divisions begin by interrogating the question of ‘real politics’ as a category. While there is a legal and technical division between two spheres of Roman life – one that constitutes ‘politics’ in their root sense of the governance of a polis, and another that extends that activity into warfare and diplomacy – that division is highly permeable. Not only do the same actors perform in both arenas, but also the rewards and incentives for their actions flow freely between the two as well. Romans might go to war in self-defence, out of greed or out of an imperialistic drive, but the rewards they gained translated directly into political standing and capital. Further, because there was a considerable and sustained overlap in personnel, and because the Roman military was, anyway, an important engine of Roman cultural expansion, it is impossible to divorce the values, morals and circumstances of home from the way Romans behaved abroad. None of this, of course, is surprising in and of itself, but it does mean that the narrative structure of the AUC underscores the important fact that the political is autonomous only under some very strict definitions: some formal, some physical and some ideological.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 140

23/10/18 12:44 PM

livy

141

With that cultural and literary background in mind, in the next two sections I move to explore two famous exempla, both involving the execution of adult sons by their consular fathers. Faced with the betrayal or disobedience of their sons, Brutus and Manlius Torquatus put the defence of Rome and Roman values ahead of paternal affection. Both instances were listed by Machiavelli in Discorsi 3.1 as salubrious to the state, and in discussing how institutions can be kept alive only by ‘the exceptional ability of a single citizen, who courageously strives to enforce them against the power of those who fail to observe them’ (Machiavelli 1997). Machiavelli’s use of Livy in the Discorsi is idiosyncratic and does not usually equate to Livy’s own presentation of his work. Still, in this case, he hits on some pertinent issues. Both executioners claim to do their work in order to preserve Roman institutions, and in doing so both assimilate to the heroic type of the unus vir (‘one man’), the individual who saves the state.15 But this is only one side of the coin: the idea of coercion exercised by a single individual was a political anathema to the kingship-averse Romans, and unlike the other executions Machiavelli lists, the victims here are not just any criminals, but the executioner’s own sons, with all the legal, affective and ethical relationships that entails. In other words, what begins as an act of hard-nosed political realism turns out to involve genuine decision-making about matters outside the realm of politics proper. Here, again, we can see the fungible boundaries between the political and the non-political in action, determined in part by the topical circumstances of events, and in part by the fluid rhetorical constructions offered by participants. I suggest that this fungibility itself has something important to contribute to any reading of Livy as a political realist, precisely because it so easily shades into, and is expressed in terms of, personal and public morality. Before moving further, I want to underscore the fact that the question of how one orders personal and political ties was very much a live question in Livy’s own time, not least because he was himself writing through an emergent political change. Straddling the line between republic and empire, Livy began work on the AUC probably around the time of the rise of Octavian, the future Emperor Augustus, and would continue until shortly after Augustus’ death. As the imperial family became entrenched at the heart of Roman politics, the separation of personal and political became increasingly untenable, a theme that the later historian Tacitus takes up with gusto. But even in the republic itself dynasticism was a problem, and every elite citizen aimed to ensure the political success of his family, especially that of his sons. The Metelli, one of Rome’s noble families, prided themselves on having a consul in every generation, while families could work in corporate ways to imprint themselves on the republic.16 On the other side of the coin, scholars have asked whether the Romans, like the Russians, loved their children too. Certainly, they sometimes make it difficult to answer in the affirmative: Roman law gave fathers the power of life and death over their children (though there is a question as to whether the practice extended to adult offspring), as well as the power to sell them into slavery up to three times for various infractions.17 How much this reflects real life is dubious, but even in caricature it suffices to show that fathers were not straightforward figures, at least by modern lights – even without the political overtones, fatherhood connoted not only affection but also authoritarian strictness of a particularly extreme kind.18 Concomitant to, but not identical with, the problematic signification of paternity is the question of how one could rank the various obligations in one’s world. Here,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 141

23/10/18 12:44 PM

142

ayelet haimson lushkov

Cicero offers a useful guide (though again the question of historical correspondence is an open one): But if there is any contention and ranking, as to which offices should be attended to especially, first come homeland and parents, to whom we are obligated through the greatest benefits, and then children and the whole household, who look only to us and have no other recourse, then our kinsmen, with whom we live on good terms, who in most respects have the same fortune as us. (De officiis 1.58) Cicero’s formulation neatly orders a Roman man’s view of his world: first those to whom one is obligated, and then those who are obligated to that person, in descending order of magnitude of the obligation. It is worth noting that while this hierarchy goes some way towards explaining why and how Brutus was in the end able to execute his sons – they failed in their obligation towards both homeland and parents – it fails to delineate the type of obligation one incurs relative to either the political entity of the homeland or the personal entity of the family. Rather the opposite, it enmeshes the political realm within the personal obligations of any one person, casting it in its more familial guise of ‘homeland’ (patria) rather than its purely political aspect of ‘republic’ (res publica).

Adult Filicide from Brutus to Manlius Torquatus Roman history knew of two famous Brutuses, separated by seven centuries and related mythographically by blood and historically by compelling a fundamental regime change. For the younger and more famous of the two, the murderer of Caesar, the change was antithetical to his aims: rather than ushering back a resurgent republicanism, he instead enabled the rise of Octavian and of monarchic authoritarianism. For the elder Brutus, the Liberator, a different devastation was in store: although he succeeded in expelling the Tarquins from Rome and bringing an end to the monarchy, he quickly found resistance at home, chiefly at the hands of Rome’s noble youth, who resented being jostled out of their comfortable situations and cast into a brave new world. Resentment grew into conspiracy, and when things came to a head, it was discovered that none other than Brutus’ own sons were among the conspirators: The traitors were convicted and their punishment set, which was the more notable since the consulship assigned the office of exacting the punishment to a father over his own children. And the man who should have been removed [from the proceedings] were he a spectator, him fortune made the executioner. Youth of the noblest families stood tied to the pole; but the children of the consul drew everyone’s eyes, as if the others were of no consequence, and men did not pity them more for their punishment than for the crime by which they had merited it. (AUC, 2.5.5–6) Although Livy paints the scene as a spectacle – note the elaborate language of seeing, noting, spectating, marvelling and so forth – the crucial thing to notice about this description is the paradox at the heart of it: Brutus is not only present at but also presiding over the execution of his own sons. Further, the audience is acutely aware of the dramatic irony of the scene, and of the bad luck (fortuna) that drives someone whose

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 142

23/10/18 12:44 PM

livy

143

public career has rocketed so high into the personal nadir of being betrayed by his own. Brutus had made his political fortune on the back of the suicide of Lucretia, who had been raped by the King’s son.19 Having now expelled the royal family from Rome, the price he pays is the life of his own sons. Indeed, perhaps the most pressing question to ask of this passage is the relationship of Brutus to Roman paradigms of kingship, or more specifically of the tyrannical autocracy he claimed to have overturned. After all, as the foundational figure of the republic, Brutus has significant symbolic weight: he is, whether he means to be or not, an exemplum of the very idea of republicanism, just as the Tarquins are made to stand for the very idea of monarchy. There are important consequences to this idea. A moral reading of the episode, which is encouraged by the audience’s emotive response to the spectacle,20 would now proceed to assign evaluative judgements to the political regime Brutus is meant to represent: is the new republic benevolent or cruel? Is it the kind of regime that demands of its participants the subjugation of all affective bonds in the service of the state, or is it the kind of regime where men and women are free to act without oppression from state agents? Livy does not offer clear answers, which is part and parcel of his procedure throughout. What matters more than any specific answers, however, is the structure of the question: a zero-sum confrontation between the personal and political commitments of the individual. Put in those terms, the question morphs quickly from a purely ethical to a realist one: is there room in the political arena for ethical motivations, and if so, of what kind and to what purpose? Further, Brutus’ execution of his sons engages directly with the four areas Rossi and Sleat have identified as formative for modern political realism: ideology, the relationship of ethics to politics, the priority of legitimacy over justice, and the nature of political judgement (Rossi and Sleat 2014: 689 and passim). The episode even unifies all four areas under a single, richly described action, with important implications for how the audience is to understand their relation to the state – all of this derives from the fundamental tension created by Livy’s exemplary construction. If the scene revolves around a foundational tension between the obligation of family and the obligation of republicanism, it also shows how difficult it is to parse the two out effectively. The difficulty is created in part because both the sons and the audience see family as figuring not only as a set of affective connections between parents and children, but in fact still as a political model. The audience watching the execution feels pity towards the noble youth on display, and although the executions meant a personal loss for all the families whose sons were involved, attention is naturally drawn to the consul’s sons, precisely because in betraying him they were seen to act against their own interest too. Precisely when their father has guaranteed not only freedom for Rome but also glory for their house, the sons choose to cast their lot with a wretched exile, albeit a former king. [I]n that very year they were of a mind to betray their liberated homeland, their father its liberator, the consulship born of the Junian house, the senators, plebs, and whatever belonged to Roman gods and men to a once haughty king, now a hostile exile. (Livy, 2.5.7) The fact that the former king is described in his past and present guise suggests that the audience is aware that the transformation of Rome into a republic is still an ongoing

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 143

23/10/18 12:44 PM

144

ayelet haimson lushkov

process, yet despite that they are already able to list the quintessential institutions and values that would come to define the Roman republic and its political culture: the class and political distinctions between senate and people, the office of the consulship, the importance of religion, aversion to monarchy and the duties of family. Livy thus can play on the verbal similarity of the words ‘homeland’ and ‘father’ (patria and patrem, recalling Cicero’s patria et parentes), as well as the fact that the word patres itself conflated public and private meanings: senators were regularly addressed as patres.21 More telling, however, is the view of the consulship as the product (indeed, almost intellectual property) of a specific family, since it is also the fact of being consul that imposes the role of executioner on the father. Brutus’ sons, too, spring from the domus Iunia (‘the House of Junius’); hence their father, conceived as the progenitor of the consulship, is faced with a choice between offspring. In choosing as he does, Brutus makes several important statements. First, he shows himself to be free of any monarchic or dynastic intent: he will not have sons to whom he might bequeath his new political fortunes. He further shows future generations the stoic reserve that republican men were supposed to display, even in the harshest circumstances, as well as the persistent preference of the interests of the state over the interests of the individual. Republican men in office, then, are supposed to be stern and unrelenting in the fulfilment of their duty, above the temptations of corruption, personal interests or paternal feeling. This is the doctrine of raison d’état in its most skeletal formulation. But Brutus is not alone here. We have already seen the audience’s response, but Livy also narrates the motivations of the sons to betray their father and the new regime. The idea that the good of the community encompasses and surpasses the good of the individual citizen is the underlying principle of the execution, as well as of the audience’s sorrow. This is, further, a uniquely republican notion: in a monarchy, where all power is monopolised by the king, crime and punishment are decided not solely by principles and laws but also by the king’s personal decision. It is therefore not surprising that the conspirators have a different view of the new regime, or that they explain their monarchical allegiance in entirely different terms. They prefer to live under a king than under a rule of law because laws are deaf and relentless (2.3.4, leges rem surdam, inexorabilem esse), whereas a king was a man, with whom his friends could have a complex relationship of grace and favour, as well as error and forgiveness.22 Just as they expected, the conspirators find that the new regime neither forgives nor forgets offences against it (2.3.3, irasci et ignoscere). The conspirators thus see the republican communality of interest between state and citizen as entirely exclusive of compassion and forgiveness: in other words, of any personal ethical considerations. Brutus, therefore, is easily seen as a representative figure of political realism in the AUC: focused entirely on the political, and relying on his own authority as the source of both legitimacy and political judgement. To leave it at that, however, is to ignore the full spectrum of views Livy is engaging here: Brutus is not, in important ways, the fulcrum of the episode. Instead, he is merely the catalyst for thinking, in this dramatic way, about the transition from monarchy to republic and its consequences, and about the choices involved therein, which are matters of political ideology as well as personal morality. That Brutus’ choice is seen as harsh, and that this severity is in turn redeemed

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 144

23/10/18 12:44 PM

livy

145

to some extent by the audience’s pity, itself raises important questions about a society that prided itself (often hypocritically) on its superior moral compass. How much Livy’s own characters learn from the lessons of their past is one of the important themes of the AUC. Not only is the procedure important for inculcating in the reader the importance and efficacy of exemplarity as a didactic tool, but also it is an implicit lesson in Roman character. Romans in the AUC learn, change and adapt, while their enemies do not, and it is the marker of a wise Roman to know when exempla have outlived their usefulness (Chaplin 2000: 77 and passim). The AUC is therefore littered with concatenated sets of exempla, clusters of episodes all referring back, explicitly or implicitly, to the same set of earlier instances. Strikingly, however, the foundational exempla of the early republic, Brutus chief among them, have little explicit resonance in later episodes, despite the fact that adult filicide continues to be an important exemplary motif. Of these later inheritors, perhaps the most famous instance of adult filicide is the imperia Manliana, a case made poignant not only because once again we see a father overseeing the execution of his child, but also because the father had ample opportunity to avoid the execution altogether. Unlike Brutus, whose sons were found guilty of open treason, Manlius executes his son for defying a military order issued by the father himself in the field. As military commander, Manlius Sr had every right to execute any wayward soldier, and in this case his authority was compounded by the power of life and death fathers anyway had over their sons. The case was complicated by the fact that it happened outside Rome, by the fact that the son had broken rank in order to fight and win a duel against an enemy commander, and above all by the fact that the son was doing neither more nor less than what his own father had done a generation before. The Manlii were a duelling family, known for both their impetuous cruelty towards their offspring and their penchant for defeating enemies (specifically Gauls) in single combat. In other words, the situation was delicate and open to any number of interpretations. The father acts on his own accord, without direction or supervision from any external entities, and it is entirely open to him to interpret events in a positive light: his son a hero rather than a disgrace, the duel proof of family mettle rather than harbinger of societal collapse. In other words, while Brutus had little choice but to act under raison d’état, Manlius actively chooses to construct events so as to require it (the father here addresses his son): Since you, as far as you were able, weakened military discipline, on which the Roman state has relied to this day, and have led me to this necessity, that I must be forgetful either of the state or of myself, we should rather incur damages ourselves than have the state pay for our failings with such a great loss to itself. We shall be a grim but salutary example to the youth of future generations. (Livy 8.7.15–17) The crucial element here is that of choice – ‘I must be forgetful either of the state or of myself’ – and a choice that is cast differently than Brutus’ more straightforward choice of affection versus the public interest. Manlius Sr is openly proud of his son, not only because of the inborn love of fathers towards sons (ingenita caritas), but also because of the son’s valour, however misguided (specimen istud uirtutis). What he cannot abide is the abrogation of the consul’s orders, and of making an exception of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 145

23/10/18 12:44 PM

146

ayelet haimson lushkov

his son simply because of their kinship. As such, he is upholding important republican values – military discipline and equality before the law – but in doing so, he is also choosing to ignore other facets of the situation. In other words, he is reading the situation as a political realist would: seeing a divide between what he feels as a father and his obligations as a consul, and asserting that the state’s interest not only supersedes all else but also requires a unique set of criteria, values and decisions. In forgetting himself and his family obligations, he upholds instead a vision of republican political virtue, which he extends to any sphere wherein he and his son interact as public officials rather than private individuals. As in the case of Brutus, the presence of filial affection does important work, not least the fact that it compels the father to make a choice. In Livian terms, the choice is exemplary, not only because of the decision itself, but also because it entails a division of two exemplary chains, one belonging to the traditions of the Manlian family itself, and the other to public codes of conduct and paternal severity, reaching back to Brutus.23 As it happens, the Manlian family is unique in having both – Manlius’ own father was a tyrant towards his children, and the nickname Imperiosus (‘someone who abuses his power’, or simply ‘bossy’) was carried in the family down the generations. Imperium, from which imperiosus derives, is an important word in the Roman political vocabulary, since it is the term for the executive power bestowed on Roman public officials. It is by virtue of his imperium that Manlius can do anything on behalf of the Roman people, including executing his son. In preferring imperium to affection, he is being a realist, but in so doing he becomes also imperiosus, conflating family and state traditions and thereby not nearly as forgetful of himself as he makes out. The political, in the end, is not nearly as autonomous as it seems.

Conclusion What, then, to make of political realism in Livy? Even in modern historiography, the term has a fraught and sometimes contradictory history, and Livy’s AUC goes some way towards explaining why. In as much as political realism explores ‘the sources of normativity appropriate for the political’, it must encounter elements outside the political itself, in relation to which any definition must then be made. More importantly, however, Livy’s exploration of political realism, such as it is, is very much a realism in the world and on the ground, in argument and contact with opposing or conflicting views, and producing tensions that must be resolved. Livy hardly ever shows us how these tensions resolve, and indeed they often proliferate across the history – this is one of the important lessons of the AUC as we have it.

Notes 1. Recent examples include Kapust (2011: 81–110), Haimson Lushkov (2015) and Vasaly (2015), contra, for example, Wiedemann (2005: 523), who recognises that Livy has an important contribution to make, but one insufficient to make him agree that Livy was a political thinker: ‘If political theory is absent from the surviving thirty-five books of Livy’s history . . . it was because creating a coherent narrative structure for his material was more important to Livy than political analysis.’

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 146

23/10/18 12:44 PM

livy

147

2. For his life and relationship to Augustus and the Augustan project, see Syme (1959); Kraus (1994: 1–7), Sailor (2006); and Lowrie (2009: 157–8, 303–4). 3. All translations are my own. 4. The bibliography is large and growing. Good starting points are Chaplin (2000: 168–96); Kraus (2005) and Lowrie (2009). 5. By ‘modern political realism’ I mean the picture emerging from, inter alia, Rossi and Sleat (2014) and McQueen (forthcoming). For examples of classical realism in the classics, see Crane (1998) and Eckstein (2009). 6. For formal readings of historiography, see Woodman (1988); Kraus and Woodman (1997). The current state of affairs is captured by the essays collected in Marincola (2008) and Feldherr (2009); cf. Pitcher (2010). For politico-theoretical approaches, see Hammer (2008) and Kapust (2011). Gowing (2005) and Gallia (2012) analyse the reception of the republic under the empire as a literary and cultural topos, and especially as a centre of memory. 7. For Livy’s dates, see Luce (1965) and Burton (2000). The AUC properly began before the city was founded by Romulus and Remus, with the departure of Aeneas from the ruins of Troy, an event that, for many in antiquity, marked the transition from mythical to historical time (cf. Feeney 2008: 68–107). 8. For a sense of scale, consider that the extant material represents about 500,000 words and is less than a quarter of the whole work. 9. For a survey of the technique, see Kraus and Woodman (1997: 56–62). 10. This was not the only mechanism for civic time-keeping. For a full discussion of Roman time, see Feeney (2008: 138–215), and on its reflection in history-writing, see Rüpke (1990), Rich (2009) and Levene (1993). 11. The year was marked by heavy political turmoil and obstructionism, culminating in Bibulus withdrawing to his house to observe the omens, thereby rendering any political action invalid. In consequence, forum wits started referring to the year as the ‘consulship of Julius and Caesar’, to illustrate the ineffectiveness of Bibulus (Suetonius 2009: 20). 12. This is a simplification. For more on imperium and its limitations, see Staveley (1956: 90–119), Lintott (1999: 96–7), Brennan (2000: 12–20), Masi Doria (2000), Richardson (2008) and especially Beck (2011). 13. I have discussed these ideas in Haimson Lushkov (2015: 9–17). For exemplarity more broadly, see, in Roman political discourse, Hölkeskamp (2003 and 2010); in Livy, Jaeger (1997), Feldherr (1998), Chaplin (2000) and Langlands (2011); in Roman culture, Hölkeskamp (2003), Roller (2004) and Morgan (2007: 122–59); as mode of historical knowledge, Roller (2009) and Vlassopoulos (2009: xiv) on the use of historical narrative as ‘patterns in order to elucidate the present and future of modern communities’. 14. For this more atomising view, see Roller (2009). For a more fluid view, Chaplin (2000) and Haimson Lushkov (2015). Langlands (2011) treads a middle ground. 15. On the topos, see Santoro L’Hoir (1990) and Vasaly (2015). 16. On the Roman family (gens) and its corporate identity, see Smith (2006). 17. On the Roman family and ‘family feeling’, see Saller (1994), Dixon (1997), Roller (2001) and the essays collected in Rawson (2011). Patria potestas as a legal construct has been extensively studied: Crook (1967), Saller (1994) and Cantarella (2003) are good starting points, with Frier and McGinn (2004) and Gaughan (2010: 23–52) for legal cases. 18. On paternity as a political metaphor, specifically for the emperor, see Roller (2001: 233–47). 19. Brutus’ transformation from spectator to revolutionary is in Livy (1.59.3–4). On the story’s afterlife in European republicanism, see Matthes (2000). 20. On internal audiences as guides to the reader’s interpretation, see Feldherr (1998) and Levene (2006).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 147

23/10/18 12:44 PM

148

ayelet haimson lushkov

21. On the Roman senate, see Lintott (1999: 65–84). 22. Livy (2.3.3): ‘Then, as they were seeking license, with the law made equal for all, they complained amongst themselves that the freedom of others was turned into their own slavery; that the king was a man, whom you could petition when there was need of law or of injury; there was place for favor, and for benefaction; he could grow angry and forgive, and he knew how to distinguish friend from foe.’ 23. Cf. the father’s own speech a generation earlier, and note the ritual asking of permission from the consul-general. Livy (7.10.3): ‘if you permit, I wish to show this beast that I am of that family who hurled a troop of Gauls from the Tarpeian rock’. Cf. Kraus (1998: 269–70).

Bibliography Beck, H. (2011), ‘Consular power and the Roman constitution: The case of imperium reconsidered’, in H. Beck, A. Duplá, M. Jehne and F. Pina Polo (eds), Consuls and Res Publica: Holding High Office in the Roman Republic, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 77–96. Brennan, T. C. (2000), The Praetorship in the Roman Republic, 2 vols, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Burton, P. (2000), ‘The last republican historian: A new date for the composition of Livy’s First Pentad’, Historia, vol. 49, no. 4, pp. 429–46. Cantarella, E. (2003), ‘Fathers and sons in Rome’, The Classical World, vol. 96, pp. 281–98. Chaplin, J. (2000), Livy’s Exemplary History, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Chaplin, J., and C. S. Kraus (eds) (2009), Oxford Readings in Classical Studies: Livy, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Crane, G. (1998), Thucydides and the Ancient Simplicity: The Limits of Political Realism, Berkeley: University of California Press. Crook, J. (1967), ‘Patria Potestas’, Classical Quarterly, vol. 17, pp. 113–22. Dixon, S. (1997), ‘Continuity and change in Roman social history: Retrieving “family feeling(s)” from Roman law and literature’, in M. Golden and P. Toohey (eds), Inventing Ancient Culture: Historicism, Periodization, and the Ancient World, London and New York: Routledge, pp. 79–90. Dyck, A. (1996), A Commentary on Cicero’s De Officiis, Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press. Eckstein, A. (2009), Mediterranean Anarchy, Interstate War, and the Rise of Rome, Berkeley: University of California Press. Feeney, D. (2008), Caesar’s Calendar: Ancient Time and the Beginnings of History, Berkeley: University of California Press. Feldherr, A. (1998), Spectacle and Society in Livy’s History, Berkeley: University of California Press. Feldherr, A. (ed.) (2009), The Cambridge Companion to the Roman Historians, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Frier, B. W., and T. A. J. McGinn (2004), A Casebook on Roman Family Law, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Gallia, A. (2012), Remembering the Roman Republic: Culture, Politics, and History under the Principate, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Gaughan, J. (2010), Murder was Not a Crime: Homicide and Power in the Roman Republic, Austin: University of Texas Press. Gowing, A. (2005), Empire and Memory: The Representation of the Roman Republic in Imperial Culture, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Haimson Lushkov, A. (2015), Magistracy and the Historiography of the Roman Republic: Politics in Prose, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 148

23/10/18 12:44 PM

livy

149

Hammer, D. C. (2008), Roman Political Thought and the Modern Theoretical Imagination, Norman: Hammond Press. Hölkeskamp, K.-J. (2003), ‘Ikonen der Virtus: Exemplarische Helden(-taten) im monumentalen Gedächtnis der römischen Republik’, in A. Barzanò (ed.), Modelli eroici dall’antichità alla cultura europea, Rome: L’Erma di Bretschneider, pp. 213–37. Hölkeskamp, K.-J. (2010), Reconstructing the Roman Republic: An Ancient Political Culture and Modern Research, Princeton, NJ, and Oxford: Princeton University Press. Jaeger, M. (1997), Livy’s Written Rome, Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press. Kapust, D. (2011), Republicanism, Rhetoric, and Roman Political Thought: Sallust, Livy, and Tacitus, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Kraus, C. S. (1994), Livy: Ab Urbe Condita Book VI, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Kraus, C. S. (1998), ‘Repetition and empire in the Ab Vrbe Condita’, in C. Foss and P. Knox (eds), Style and Tradition: Studies in Honor of Wendell Clausen, Stuttgart: de Gruyter, pp. 264–83. Kraus, C. S. (2005), ‘From exempla to exemplar? Writing history around the emperor in imperial Rome’, in J. Edmonsen, S. Mason and J. Rives (eds), Flavius Josephus and Flavian Rome, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 181–200. Kraus, C. S., and A. J. Woodman (1997), The Latin Historians, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Langlands, R. (2011), ‘Roman exempla and situation ethics: Valerius Maximus and Cicero de Officiis’, Journal of Roman Studies, vol. 101, pp. 1–23. Levene, D. S. (1993), Religion in Livy, Leiden: Brill. Levene, D. S. (2006), ‘History, metahistory, and audience response in Livy 45’, Classical Antiquity, vol. 25, pp. 73–108. Lintott, A. (1999), The Constitution of the Roman Republic, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Lowrie, M. (2009), Writing, Performance, and Authority in Augustan Rome, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Luce, T. J. (1965), ‘The dating of Livy’s First Pentad’, Transactions and Proceedings of the American Philological Association, vol. 96, pp. 209–40. Macchiavelli, N. (1997), Discourses on Livy, trans. J. Bondanella, Oxford World’s Classics, Oxford: Oxford University Press. McQueen, A. (forthcoming), ‘The case for kinship: Political realism and classical realism’, in Matt Sleat (ed.), Politics Recovered: Essays in Realist Political Thought, New York: Columbia University Press. Marincola, J. (2008), A Companion to Greek and Roman Historiography, Malden, MA, and Oxford: Wiley. Masi Doria, C. (2000), Spretum Imperium, Naples: Editoriale scientifica. Matthes, M. (2000), The Rape of Lucretia and the Founding of Republics: Readings in Livy, Machiavelli, and Rousseau, University Park, PA: Pennsylvania State University Press. Morgan, T. (2007), Popular Morality in the Early Roman Empire, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Pitcher, L. (2010), Writing Ancient History: An Introduction to Classical Historiography, London: I. B. Tauris. Rawson, B. (2011), A Companion to Families in the Greek and Roman Worlds, Oxford: Wiley. Rich, J. (2009), ‘Structuring Roman history: The consular year and the Roman historical tradition’, in J. Chaplin and C. S. Kraus (eds), Oxford Readings in Classical Studies: Livy, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 118–47. Richardson, J. (2008), The Language of Empire: Rome and the Idea of Empire from the Third Century BC to the Second Century AD, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Roller, M. (2001), Constructing Autocracy: Aristocrats and Emperor in Julio-Claudian Rome, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Roller, M. (2004), ‘Exemplarity in Roman culture: The cases of Horatius Cocles and Cloelia’, Classical Philology, vol. 99, pp. 1–56.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 149

23/10/18 12:44 PM

150

ayelet haimson lushkov

Roller, M. (2009), ‘The exemplary past in Roman historiography and culture’, in A. Feldherr (ed.), The Cambridge Companion to the Roman Historians, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 214–30. Rossi, E., and M. Sleat (2014), ‘Realism in normative political theory’, Philosophy Compass, vol. 9, no. 10, pp. 689–701. Rüpke, J. (1990), Domi militiae: Die religiöse Konstruktion des Krieges in Rom, Stuttgart: de Gruyter. Sailor, D. (2006), ‘Dirty linen, fabrication, and the authorities of Livy and Augustus’, Transactions and Proceedings of the American Philological Association, vol. 136, pp. 329–88. Saller, R. (1994), Patriarchy, Property and Death in the Roman Family, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Santoro L’Hoir, F. (1990), ‘Heroic epithets and recurrent themes in Ab Urbe Condita’, Transactions and Proceedings of the American Philological Association, vol. 120, pp. 221–41. Smith, C. J. (2006), The Roman Clan: The Gens from Ancient Ideology to Modern Anthropology, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Staveley, E. S. (1956), ‘The constitution of the Roman Republic (1940–1954)’, Historia, vol. 5, pp. 74–122. Suetonius (2009), Lives of the Caesars (Oxford World’s Classics), translated by Catharine Edwards, New York: Oxford University Press. Syme, R. (1959), ‘Livy and Augustus’, Harvard Studies in Classical Philology, vol. 64, pp. 27–87. Vasaly, A. (2015), Livy’s Political Philosophy: Power and Personality in Early Rome, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Vlassopoulos, K. (2009), Politics: Antiquity and its Legacy, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Wiedemann, T. (2005), ‘Reflections of Roman political thought in Latin historical writing’, in C. Rowe and M. Schofield (eds), The Cambridge History of Greek and Roman Political Thought, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 517–31. Woodman, A. J. (1988), Rhetoric in Classical Historiography: Four Studies, London: Taylor & Francis.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 150

23/10/18 12:44 PM

12 Augustine of Hippo Political realism and the human heart Miles Hollingworth

Chapter Overview

I

n his CITY OF GOD – his most famous realist document – Augustine would contextualise and satirise the romance of Rome’s heroes and statesmen. These men had made Rome great by conquering the human passions of fear and selfishness, and it was said that, in doing so, they had encountered none of the spiritual impediments to virtue that the Christians call ‘sin’. Purebred strength of character had revealed the human soul to contain the resources of its own greatness. Against this certainty, Augustine would bring the hard psychology of homo economicus. He would argue that man is born rational and survivalist in relation to the fact of his banishment from Eden. I want, however, to take the opportunity of this volume to suggest a more expanded role for Augustine within realism and international relations. Realism says that human nature is empirically secure, so that one may choose next to be either realistic or romantic in reaction to its unvarying facts. With regard to peace in our times, I now want to use Augustine to ask: ‘What are these unvarying facts, exactly – and do they not perhaps extend beyond the usual fare of self-interest and maximisation to include also man’s fixation on social perfection and justice – the fixation which Augustine says is inexplicable, apart from our homesickness for Paradise, and which makes for the aspirational aspects of the human psyche?’ *

*

*

1. One of the chief reasons why Augustine is revered by realists today is because a great part of his conception of human nature was developed as an iconoclastic project – specifically to bring defeat on Rome’s vision of herself as the leaven of civilisation. In his City of God – his most famous realist document – he would contextualise and satirise the romance of her heroes and statesmen. These men had made Rome great by conquering the human passions of fear and selfishness, and it was said that, in doing so, they had encountered none of the spiritual impediments to virtue that the Christians called ‘sin’. Purebred strength of character had revealed the human soul to contain the resources of its own greatness, and salvation was a municipal concept, centred on the peace and perpetuation of the commonwealth.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 151

23/10/18 12:44 PM

152

miles hollingworth

Against this certainty, Augustine would bring the hard psychology of homo economicus. He would argue that humans are born rational and survivalist in relation to the fact of their banishment from Eden. In one fell swoop he would dispossess the Romans of the metanarrative that they had so meticulously traced from Troy. This metanarrative had added the veneer of destiny to their project; it had allowed them to think of themselves as in the natural line of Homeric and Hellenic culture, and more, it had encouraged the idea of unfinished business in the East – the idea that they would take on Alexander the Great’s mission to reconcile the old antagonisms of West and East in a new universal citizenship. Against this general momentum, Augustine would strike two decisive blows that would seal his place in realist lore. First, he would stand back and deliver the full force of modernity’s social scientific analysis of religion in politics. Traditional religion, he would effectively say, is whatever the modern anthropologist says it is. It is a forlorn (at worst, a cynical) enterprise made viable by certain weaknesses of human psychology. Individuals may use it personally and collectively to fool themselves into comfort and security, but far more spectacularly politics has historically used it to keep a body of subjects in thrall and control. Under the conditions of the Roman Empire, this political manipulation of religion achieved its shameless height. There is that cutting observation of Alfred North Whitehead’s, that, The cult of the Empire was the sort of religion which might be constructed to-day by the Law School of a University, laudably impressed by the notion that mere penal repression is not the way to avert a crime wave[!]. (Whitehead 1927: 31) Augustine’s words cut deeper still: [I]n most recent times, Caesar believed that Venus was his grandmother no less than Romulus in times gone by believed Mars to be his father. Someone will say: ‘Do you really believe all this?’ Of course I do not believe it. After all, Varro himself, our adversaries’ most learned man, comes close to admitting that these stories are false, even though he does not do so boldly and with confidence. He asserts, however, that it is advantageous for states if brave men believe, albeit falsely, that they are the offspring of the gods. For, in this case, the minds of men, borne up by the assurance that they are of divine stock, boldly undertake enterprises of great magnitude, carry them through all the more forcefully, and by their very confidence fulfil them with greater success. You see what a broad scope is opened up for falsehood by this statement of Varro’s, which I have expressed as well as I can in my own words. When lies even about the very gods are deemed to bring advantage to the citizens, we may infer from this that many beliefs now regarded as sacred and religious have been invented. (Augustine 2002: III, 3–4) Second, Augustine would retaliate on Rome’s imperious exercise of divine right with postmodernity’s understanding of justice. At a decisive moment in his City of God he would suddenly turn to the legend of Alexander the Great and the pirate, and draw (what was for the ancient world) a revolutionary conclusion. He would point out that in the godless conditions of the Earthly City, power is the only pragmatic fact, which makes it that relativism is really what morality looks like after power’s fiat – once the dust has settled and more reasonable explanations become preferable.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 152

23/10/18 12:44 PM

augustine of hippo

153

Augustine’s argument was that no merely earthly politics could ever rise above the conditions of its making and claim the mantle of true justice: for true justice belonged to the Heavenly City of God. Earthly politics was an activity entirely described by the mechanics of human self-interest. What small redemption and peace it offered was to be attributed to the flickering lights of conscience or the laws of nature. To talk about justice in a state was technically, then, to talk about commonly agreed upon standards of behaviour – backed up, always, by corresponding penalties of transgression. And down here in the Earthly City, a people was entirely at liberty to decide upon those standards. Injustice, then, could mean being dealt with arbitrarily: that is, outside the agreed-upon standards for a particular jurisdiction. But what it could never be was a general-case label of reproach placed over one people by another. It could never be this because it had already been used in this way once and for ever by the Heavenly City over the Earthly City. Augustine’s infamous reminder of this – and of the conditions of earthly politics – was his use of the Hangman as the emblem of civic life.1 Here, then, is Augustine’s rendition of the legend of Alexander the Great and the pirate. Notice how he prefaces it with the qualifier ‘Justice removed’. Here he is indicating what I have just described: that for him, any accurate and helpful discussion of politics must begin with this act of calibration, whereby the aspiration to true justice is forbidden to the Earthly City and removed to the reign of the saints in the Heavenly City. Now, says, Augustine we can talk straight: Justice removed, then, what are kingdoms but great bands of robbers? What are bands of robbers themselves but little kingdoms? The band itself is made up of men; it is governed by the authority of a ruler; it is bound together by a pact of association; and the loot is divided according to an agreed law. If, by the constant addition of desperate men, this scourge grows to such a size that it acquires territory, establishes a seat of government, occupies cities and subjugates peoples, it assumes the name of kingdom more openly. For this name is now manifestly conferred upon it not by the removal of greed but by the addition of impunity. It was a pertinent and true answer which was made to Alexander the Great by a pirate whom he had seized. When the king asked him what he meant by infesting the sea, the pirate defiantly replied: ‘The same as you do when you infest the whole world; but because I do it with a little ship I am called a robber, and because you do it with a great fleet, you are an emperor.’ (Augustine 2002: IV, 4) With this, we have the classic double punch that has certified Augustine’s contribution to the realist project. In the first instance: nation-states are not spiritual entities, destined to an appointed end. They do not reach back into history from eternity, to work with cunning in the affairs of men. They are not the private vehicles of impersonal gods – and nor, for that matter, are they the public vehicles of private men – though time and again this has happened. Nation-states cannot produce categorical imperatives to action, and the ethical discourses to which they give rise should rather respect the Newtonian, and consequentialist, restrictions of time and space. Again, we are left to note the discrepancy between Augustine’s strict ontology of the nationstate and the wishful thinking that has time and again tried to stretch and morph it in the directions of ethical monism and utopianism.2 And it takes us into remembering that this discrepancy is, of itself, realism in action. It is realism in action because it all adds up to saying that if nation-states are, in reality, none of the above, then what

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 153

23/10/18 12:44 PM

154

miles hollingworth

they must actually be like is people. If they cannot trace noble genealogies back to the gods, then they must be just like us: that is, mortal. And if they are mortal like us, then they must look out from the present to the unknown future in the same fearful way that we do. And what we know about human psychology tells us that this will correspondingly make the issue of ‘power’ – its ownership and exercise – into the chief strategic gaming piece. Just as in all things which you see done throughout the provinces, whatever the Emperor wills goes forth from the inner part of his palace throughout the whole Roman Empire. How great commotion is caused at one bidding by the Emperor as he sits in his palace! He but has to move his lips, when he speaks: then the whole province is moved, at what he has spoken being executed. (Expositions on the Psalms: CXLVIII, 2) In the second instance, the political language that nation-states habitually make use of cannot be considered to be the disclosure of any prior moral order – any prior moral order in relation to which a nation-state could successfully plot to conform itself. Here Augustine is at his most insistent and belligerent because on this point he is really citing what he takes to be the direction of the flow of moral information between the Heavenly City and the Earthly City, and how he understands this direction of flow to be absolutely irreversible. Classical virtue ethics had assumed that the language patterns of traditional morality could be read off as the real and final guides to the optimal management of earthly affairs. What philosophers had come to call the business of human flourishing was essentially a matter of acknowledging one’s less than optimal starting point and then taking the necessary steps to correct it, for any coherent statement about virtue was understood to be a statement about the real-world foundations of truth. This, in turn, explained why classical, Olympian religion took the form of an exaggerated projection of human affairs on to the canvas of the heavens. The gods could surpass mere humans in terms of their superpowers and their ability to dally in and out of temporality, but ultimately that same lust for meddling was sufficient to betray them as nothing more than fantasy figures – the psychologies and appetites of humans writ large. Augustine had famously been on to this in a flash as a young man,3 then later in the City of God he would give full voice and drama to this satire. Religion, he would write, is ridiculous; it is the timeworn story of men making fools of other men. The world we inhabit goes around in exactly the way that reality teaches us it does, and the facts of life and death really are the school of humankind. Moreover, it is this very universal education that makes it possible for the pirates of the world to make their devastating rejoinders to the emperors of the world. In fact, the only thing that hinders us in seeing it all as clearly as this are those ‘language patterns of traditional morality’. Here is what Augustine would mean: emperors and statesmen have not found it expedient, in the main, to talk as though their campaigns and ambitions were personal crusades of pride and transient glory. They have found it far better to utilise the vocabulary that mysteriously seems to exist, preformed, in the mind of every human. For this vocabulary has nothing whatsoever to do with the grim reality of life in the Earthly City. It seems quite untouched by it, and certainly it could never have been composed as a series of reflections on man’s fallen condition. Augustine says it comes supernaturally

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 154

23/10/18 12:44 PM

augustine of hippo

155

from the Heavenly City, borne into us by a gift of grace, because without it we would not have a hope down here.4 And because this means that it is the language of the Heavenly City’s happiness, or, more precisely, our distant memory of Eden’s happiness, it is very definitely not the language of ‘personal crusades of pride and transient glory’. It is the opposite of that. It is the language of peace eternal, backed up by the corresponding promise that there is a place in which all personal destinies could be coordinated for its end. It turns out, in fact, to be the very language that an enlightened politics has always chosen to cloak itself over with. But it is a borrowed, or stolen, language. If politics had to fall back on a language of its own making – that is to say, a language developed exclusively from within the priorities of the struggle for life – it would have to be something Machiavellian, or Hobbesian, or Darwinian, or worse.5 It would be descriptive of the processes by which men compete for a scarcity of resources. It would not be normative, or caring, or hopeful.

2. I want to be clear about where these reflections on Augustine’s realism have left us for this chapter. I have in effect been saying that Augustine’s classical version of the perspective is an offshoot – or what economists call a ‘free external’ – of his Christian evangelism. It is a negative construction, built by the positive energy of that evangelism. That positive energy was poured by Augustine into a theology of discipleship that depicted a Pilgrim City of predestinated believers, sojourning through this veil of tears, and it was as he sought for new and varied ways to corral and encourage his readers along that journey that he found and honed his realist voice. He found it as he spoke against the chief temptation that the Pilgrim City must face: this (to use Paul’s language) is the temptation to be conformed to the ‘rudiments of the world’.6 This world, to the mature Augustine, would become a corporation – a bedevilling corporation, intent on peddling us false happiness in all its myriad varieties. Realism, to him, became realism about this. But of course the evangelising bishop was not to be Augustine’s only starring role in history. He was also thrust into being the de facto commentator and theorist on his troubled portion of late antiquity. As the barbarians closed in on Africa Proconsularis, and his own city of Hippo Regius, he would get to see at first hand what happens when the old certainties of life collapse and people are made to live within touching distance of their own mortality. It can make even the staunchest symbols of political continuity, the Hangman and his lieutenants, turn existential and perplexed. As his beloved Africa teetered before the barbarians, Augustine would be thrust into his second starring role in history. Not the evangelising bishop, but the Field Commander issuing his thundering, Churchillian reminders of life’s immediate priorities. There is a well-known letter written by Augustine in the midst of these troubles to Count Boniface, General and Governor of Africa. It sums up this second Augustine. Boniface’s pressing duty at the time was to organise and run the defences of the Province against the Vandals, by then licking their lips and peering in from neighbouring Spain. Boniface was a God-fearing and deeply spiritual man, not altogether made up in his mind about the compatibility of his military activities and his Christian faith. When his wife suddenly died, he seemed to lose his nerve altogether. He met with Augustine and Augustine’s close friend and fellow bishop, Alypius, at a place called Tubunae.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 155

23/10/18 12:44 PM

156

miles hollingworth

He had determined to abandon the world and to follow their example and enter into the monastic life. Africa had always bred a fervent Christianity, steeped in the martyrdom of St Cyprian, and now, thanks in large part to Augustine and his pioneering interpretation of monasticism, this same energy had been able to flow into the ‘white martyrdom’ of the consecrated life. Boniface must have fully expected for his idea to meet with joy and congratulations in Augustine and Alypius. But it did not! Instead he met with a bracing précis of what has since been called Augustine’s ‘just war theory’, though we note that to claim that Augustine ever held such a theory is as troublesome as to claim for him an overall theory of society, church and state; we are dealing, here again, with a ‘negative construction’. To say that war occupies a natural place in the cycle of life was only something that came as naturally to Augustine as it had to Aristotle7 and Cicero8 before him. It was what came next that has gone down in history as the Augustinian twist (and has remained subject to so much misunderstanding and machinating). Disbarred by his Christianity from following the ancient convention (perfected by the Stoics) of including the Divine as well as the mortal within that ‘cycle of life’, Augustine placed that whole wheel within another wheel; and then he made that outer wheel turn the inner wheel according to its wishes. That outer wheel and its wishes were, of course, God’s infinite and unfathomable wisdom. Crucially for Augustine, this knowledge of the wheel within the wheel did not reach back and invalidate all the classical ethical wisdom that had preceded it. It did not equip the Christian in the public square with anything extra. Augustine would remain adamant to the end that no man can know the will of God across its eternal span9; and not knowing it, all men must therefore abide by the natural and positive laws of their time and place, and not afflict themselves with predestination’s anxieties. However, what the wheel within the wheel did do was to allow all of that good sense and practice to flow on to a supernatural conclusion. Peace, which had always stood unqualified and unqualifiable as the summit of civic ambition – like the philosopher’s wisdom, a thing to be desired in itself – was now rendered mercenary in relation to the higher purposes of the outer wheel. In language that could now be well adapted to a military man like Boniface, Augustine was able to redepict the longstanding mission objectives of ‘just warfare’ as really the much to be desired preconditions of the Pilgrim City’s life on earth: You were then desirous to abandon all the public business in which you were engaged, and to withdraw into sacred retirement, and live like the servants of God who have embraced a monastic life. And what was it that prevented you from acting according to these desires? Was it not that you were influenced by considering, on our representation of the matter, how much service the work which then occupied you might render to the churches of Christ if you pursued it with this single aim, that they, protected from all disturbance by barbarian hordes, might live ‘a quiet and peaceable life’, as the apostle says, ‘in all godliness and honesty’ [1 Tim. 2: 2]; resolving at the same time for your own part to seek no more from this world than would suffice for the support of yourself and those dependent on you, wearing as your girdle the cincture of a perfectly chaste self-restraint, and having underneath the accoutrements of the soldier the surer and stronger defence of spiritual armour.10

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 156

23/10/18 12:44 PM

augustine of hippo

157

This second Augustine seems so clearly to be speaking political realism’s language of limited objectives that a return to Augustine the evangelising bishop can, by this stage, appear to be a retrograde step. For we cannot fail to notice that Boniface is effectively presenting Augustine with a preview of the kind of international idealism that would kick off in Augustine’s name in the centuries following his death – the socalled ‘political Augustinianism’ of the middle ages – and that Augustine is emphatically rejecting it. Political Augustinianism would end up as a papal theory of world government, or a Christian utopia, profiting from the logical supremacy of spirituals over temporals in the medieval mind; but whilst it is true that Augustine’s ontology of these two spheres made them unequal to an unprecedented degree, and really did supply the papal plenitude of power with the radical distinction it needed, the ontology was only ever designed by him to serve as an awesome admonition to Christians like Boniface, deeply active in the civic life. The danger to Christianity could not come from politics, for like Saints Paul, Ambrose and John Chrysostom before him, Augustine accepted politics’ natural right to exist. No, for Augustine, the danger to Christianity could come only from Christians themselves, insufficiently disillusioned with this world and forgetful, as I put it above, of the direction of the flow of moral information between the Heavenly and Earthly cities. By wanting to lay down his sword and become a monk, Boniface was directly in the line of this supreme danger: a danger constructed out of his good will and sincerity, and sweetened with romance, but a danger none the less. Let us be clear on the sequence of Augustine’s reasoning. He began with the fact that Boniface was one of politics’ chosen and established agents, and from there he moved to the conclusion that, as such, Boniface was not allowed, all of a sudden, to supersede politics’ natural right with a spiritual imperative of his own. He was not because that would be tantamount to preaching moral information back from the Earthly to the Heavenly City – and that, says Augustine, is never allowed. A world of monks gradually replacing a world of soldiers is not the triumph that Christianity must seek. In fact, to seek it incurs the same heresy that Pelagianism was to exhibit. Christianity has already triumphed in this world in Christ. No further triumphs are necessary or possible – and worse, their active pursuit threatens to render Christ superfluous. Here we enter the animating centre of Augustine’s thought. What Christianity really needs, he says, is (the limited objective of) a world of soldiers, the better to maintain the order and security in which the monks can flourish. Let us be clear, too, on the international situation that this second Augustine looked out on – and how far it satisfied conditions found millennia later, in doctrinal realism’s twentieth-century boom. The Christian Roman Empire had created a paradigm of civilisation and international order that was not available to, say, Thucydides, when he was investigating the perspective’s potential. Pagan powers of classical antiquity tended to pursue their enemies to destruction or subjugation, and in Rome’s case at least, ran empires that were politically and economically dependent upon conquest. Carthago delenda est. Athenian idealism in the golden age of the fifth century showed another trait of this mode (one that I alluded to at the start of this chapter): the purpose of civilisation was not to spread redemption to the ends of the earth, but rather to reward the daring and greatness of the best of men with a fitting testimony. ‘The whole earth is the tomb of famous men,’ declared Pericles.11 The rise of Christianity gradually changed

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 157

23/10/18 12:44 PM

158

miles hollingworth

this. Its economy of salvation created a working concept of a globalised and interconnected world, whilst its universalistic psychology of human nature broke down the class distinctions of old, prompted the Machiavellis of the world to seek the common denominators in history’s vivid examples, and ultimately paved the way for secular humanism’s reductionist approach to man. When Augustine looked with Boniface beyond the borders of the civilised world, he still saw anarchy, and anarchy’s imperative to prudent self-defence. But the anarchy of this uncivilised world was no longer ‘dark’ anarchy. Christianity had changed that. Anarchy in world affairs no longer signified unknown lands of barely human monsters.12 It no longer signified a ‘chaos’, from which anything might emerge.13 It signified instead a basic degree of familiarity and predictability, present wherever men might be imagined to live, and it described that familiarity and predictability through the longitudes and latitudes of homo economicus. Christianity helped anarchy to come to mean what it does today: the anarchy of the equal right to compete for life’s prizes. History knows no resting places and no plateaus. All societies of which history informs us went through periods of decline; most of them eventually collapsed. Yet there is a margin between necessity and accident, in which the statesman, by perseverance and intuition, must choose and thereby shape the destiny of his people. The statesman’s responsibility is to struggle against transitoriness and not to insist that he be paid in the coin of eternity. He may know that history is the foe of permanence, but no leader is entitled to resignation. He owes it to his people to strive, to create, and to resist the decay that besets all human institutions. (Kissinger 1979: 55) You could be mistaken for thinking that the above was yet another attempt of Augustine’s to revive Boniface’s flagging spirit, but it was not. It was, of course, a reflection by Henry Kissinger. I include it to demonstrate how seamlessly the second Augustine can be made to interchange with modern political realists on this level of ideas.

3. The question for political realism in our times is not whether the perspective can still offer value or appeal. It has never claimed more for itself than the mantle of common sense, and as such, its value and appeal will be continuing and endless. On the other hand, the world does change, and has undergone dramatic changes in its evolution into the twenty-first century. The question on which to end this chapter is whether Augustine’s realism can speak something pertinent into the world of today, its international relations and its goal of peace. And to be more precise: which Augustine should speak those words – the first Augustine or the more conventional, second Augustine? Realism says that human nature is empirically secure, so that one may choose next to be either realistic or romantic in reaction to its unvarying facts. And I have shown here how Augustine’s special focus on the Christian anthropology of man gave him unusually compelling access to those facts. But in the way that I have walked us through this material, I hope also to have enlarged the scope and meaning of this consensus. I think Augustine’s contribution to the realist canon today is to take us back over the tried and tested ground and to ask of it: ‘What are those unvarying facts, exactly – and do they not perhaps extend beyond the usual fare of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 158

23/10/18 12:44 PM

augustine of hippo

159

self-interest and maximisation to include also man’s fixation on social perfection and justice – the fixation that Augustine says is inexplicable apart from (the borrowed, or stolen, language of14) our homesickness for Paradise?’ I suspect that the future of a more successful realism may require it to broaden its empirical base to accommodate these aspirational facts of the human psyche, and that Augustine and his doctrine of the two cities may be able to show it the way. Let me briefly sketch how. In just the same way that the discourse of international relations has been subject to the basic syntax of the ‘Westphalian presumption’,15 Augustine’s political realism has always been explored state-centrically. This is firmly in keeping with the suppressed premise to Western political thought generally, though it is a premise that I have never shared. This suppressed premise states that all political thinking wishing to be taken seriously must vector its conclusions on an actual – that is, on a worldly – scenario. In the case of Augustine, who never wrote anything remotely like Plato’s Republic or Hobbes’s Leviathan, this is immediately awkward. And naturally enough it was just as awkward for those in his own time who also sought out his wisdom on these matters. They, like most scholars since, tried to overcome this awkwardness by coaxing Augustine to comment on the hypothetical scenario of a just Christian society on earth.16 This was not the kind of Christian society that was already springing into life in late antiquity, but something truly pure and authentic – something physically modelled on the magnificent vision of the City of God that Augustine portrayed in his book of that name, possibly a Christian state under a Christian king or a theocracy under a pope – though in truth, it hasn’t really mattered. What has mattered is that Augustine’s political thought has been studied within this framework of the hypothetical, and to do that is always dangerous and misleading. Within the universe of theory, the hypothetical may have a touch more kudos and staying power than the fantastic, but up against hard reality they both come to the same thing. The hard reality is that there will never be a (perfectly) just Christian society on earth – and more, that this is what Augustine expressly preached, night and day. When I wrote my book The Pilgrim City back in 2010, I tried to make a new start by going back to the first Augustine, Augustine the evangelising bishop. I did this because it occurred to me that Augustine’s celebrated realism was by no means exhausted by his pessimistic pronouncements on human sinfulness – far from it. Considered across their whole, his writings revealed that there was a whole other trove of ‘unvarying facts’ in relation to which it was possible to be realistic. I have intimated what those are here, and in The Pilgrim City I really spelled them out. Man, the thinking, self-conscious animal that he is, is fated to discover, generation upon generation, that he has no natural place in the world. All the rest of the fauna, flora and minerals do. Instinct or geologic law sees to that. But man is stricken from the moment of his age of reason with a freight of intuitions that he has customarily identified with his heart. During the course of this chapter, I have used the term ‘language’ rather than intuitions. Because this language is a moral language, it agitates him and goads him to find a true and safe depository for it. And as Aristotle pointed out, man has only one way to go about this. First, he founds a family, then a tribe, then a city, then an empire and then, finally17 – well, that last has forever been the difficulty, that last step, for it would seem that to return this language to its source – to its true and safe depository – would require the evolution of earthly politics into some perfect, supernatural, Heavenly state of justice.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 159

23/10/18 12:44 PM

160

miles hollingworth

This freighted human heart was always Augustine’s special subject. The term cor inquietum (‘restless heart’) was the central motif of his spiritual autobiography, the Confessions. And consequently, he always felt confident that Christian thought could pick up where Aristotle and secular thought had left off. Man is a political animal: yes, indeed! But now here was Augustine saying that he is a political animal only because he has inside him, already, a pilgrim heart. This was political thought’s final step and missing link, and it came straight from the bishop’s pen. Like Aristotle, Augustine had taught that the naturalism of politics is truly enough teleological – it is a sequence of officia necessitatum (‘offices done to necessities’). However, while it was implicit in Aristotle and the classical tradition that these necessities had generated the language of politics, so that if one day they could be eradicated, that language would have to become meaningless, wither and die, Augustine was able to overcome this problem through his teaching that traditional morality is an unmerited grace. The secret source of all human love turns out to be a God Who is unanticipated in any earthly necessity: You [Lord] reconcile the quarrelling: oh, that it were here at last, that eternal peace of Jerusalem, where none shall disagree! For all these are offices done to necessities. Take away the wretched; there will be an end to works of mercy. The works of mercy will be at an end: shall the ardour of charity then be quenched? I say that it is with a truer touch of love that you love the happy man, to whom there is no good office you can do; purer is that love, and far more unalloyed. For if you have done a kindness to the wretched, perchance you come to desire to lift up yourself over against him, and wish him to be subject to you – you who have done the kindness to him. He was in need, you bestowed; and you might seem to yourself greater because you bestowed, than he who was bestowed upon. No: wish him rather your equal, that you both may be under the One Lord, on whom nothing can be bestowed.18 This idea, that God pipes the moral content of the good life directly into human hearts, was always destined for a leading career in a Christian Europe. But as that context started finally to fade, new secular bases for the good life were sought. C. S. Lewis was fighting against this fade in his book The Abolition of Man in 1943, and in 2011 A. C. Grayling’s The Good Book was meant to have signalled secular humanism’s consummate triumph. But as Augustine would have said, you cannot redeem the Earthly City. Or more disarmingly, perhaps, you cannot improve it because, if all of secular humanism’s romancing of society and the state could win out, then, yes, by its logic we would have a truly good life here on earth, and the Heavenly City would be rendered superfluous. As the novelist Anthony Burgess once put it: We tend to Augustinianism when we are disgusted with our own selfishness, to Pelagianism when we seem to have behaved well. . . . None of us are sure how free we really are. (Burgess 1985: 57)

Conclusion In my opinion, the essence of Augustinianism in relation to political thought and international relations is a profound respect and admiration for the Earthly City’s finely tuned machinery. God has outsourced its daily maintenance to hell’s engineers. They

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 160

23/10/18 12:44 PM

augustine of hippo

161

are professionals and do an outstanding job. God has done this so that the Earthly City will continue to give us compelling reasons not to live for ourselves or for it, but for Him. The proof of the Earthly City’s outstandingly hellish maintenance is the way that it recalibrates itself periodically, whenever the human race has become too uppity. We seem to be going through one of those recalibrations right now. Just the other day it seemed as if we were in the flush of post-Christianity. An international order based on Western values and the intellectual brotherhood of man seemed a real possibility. But now international events seem to be conspiring to remind us that that key political concept of citizenship may never truly have been state-centric, or rights-centric, at all, but something closer to what Augustine originally described on behalf of his Pilgrim City: a wild and unquantifiable attitude of heart. If it was post-Christianity only the other day, then we already seem to be living in post-Secularity now – or post-post-Christianity. Increasingly, international relations theorists are going to have to accommodate themselves to the reality that humanity’s romantic language of selfhood, place, belonging and hope invokes a satisfaction that no politics can provide. And what will Augustine’s political realism be able to contribute to this situation? I think it will be on hand to remind us that the otherworldly provenance of (Western) politics’ lexicon should never be taken as an excuse for excessive, fundamentalist behaviour, post hoc, ergo propter hoc. Generals should not rush to become monks. The sinful origin of politics does not mean that politics needs to be rounded on, purified and reconstructed. Quite the opposite, in fact: the machine of politics needs to be protected, cared for and oiled. But if this is, as I have put it, a negative teaching, what is its payoff? The positive voice of Augustine’s political realism is to remind us that no human being can love a machine. Yes, there is an art to politics, and an excellence; and truly enough, it is said that nation-states are the creations of human hands. But it is idolatry for humankind to worship its own creations – or (if you do not care for the Christian message behind that) think of it as being self-destructive of the human spirit in action. In both cases I want to leave the last words on the irony of it all to Augustine: How much more discriminating than fearful men are mice and serpents, and other animals of such sort, who do not respect the idols of the heathens, when they do not detect in their human forms actual human lives? For this reason, we see them all the time building nests in them; and unless they are deterred by human movements, they can find for themselves no safer habitations! This results in the madness that a man will move himself to frighten off a nesting animal from his god – yes, a service for the selfsame god who cannot perform this basic act of self defence on its own part because it will never move!19

Notes 1. See On Order (II, 4, 12) and City of God (XIX, 6). 2. The fact that Augustine denied the Ciceronian title res publica (commonwealth) to nonChristian nation-states has always begged the question of where he ranked his own, newly Christian, Roman Empire – especially given how fondly he could talk of Christian emperors such as Constantine and Theodosius. In his later years, he was not shy, either, about meeting the Donatist schism with the full force of the imperial laws against heretics. Could the justice required of a true commonwealth ever be found, then, in the polity of a godly

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 161

23/10/18 12:44 PM

162

3. 4.

5.

6. 7. 8. 9. 10. 11. 12.

13. 14. 15. 16. 17. 18. 19.

miles hollingworth people on earth? I have recently answered this question in the negative. The predicate ‘true justice’ belongs to the Heavenly City. The Christian Empire that Augustine benefitted from was – and will always be – a ‘free hit’. For more, see Hollingworth (2015a: 25–32). See Confessiones (I, 16, 25). At Expositions on the Psalms (CXXXIV, 22), Augustine clearly explains the supernatural sense in which this is an unlearned language: ‘How many farms and desert places now come in to us? No one can tell how numerously they come in; and they come in because they would believe. We say to them, “What will you?” They answer, “To know the glory of God.” Believe me when I tell you that we wonder and rejoice at such a claim of these rustic people. They come I know not whither, roused up by I know not whom. But I shouldn’t truly say, “I know not by whom”, because of course I know exactly by whom it is. I know because He says, “No one can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him” [John 6: 44]. They come suddenly from the woods, the desert, the most distant and lofty mountains: all to the Church. And many of them, no, nearly all of them hold this language, so that we see it is true that God teaches them within.’ See, for example, Expositions on the Psalms (LXIV, 6): ‘Every man finds himself born into a place; and he goes on to learn his tongue, and to become habituated to the manners and life of that same land or region or city.’ See Col. 2: 8. See his Politics (1256b). See his De officiis (I, 11–13). His famous formulation was Si cepisti non est Deus ‘If you have understood him, he is not God’ (Sermons, LII, 16). Letters (CCXX, 3). See Thucydides, Pericles’ Funeral Speech (43). Although good historians such as Tacitus were always free to reject this fantasy, and did so. See, for instance, his Germania (46): ‘All our further accounts are intermixed with fable; as, that the Hellusii and Oxionae have human faces, with the bodies and limbs of wild beasts. These unauthenticated reports I shall leave untouched.’ See Hesiod, Theogony (116). I have recently discussed the fugitive status of this language in some detail. See Hollingworth (2015b). See Thomas (2000: 819). A good example of this is the correspondence between Augustine and Macedonius, the imperial Vicar of Africa (Letters, 152 and 153). See Aristotle (Politics, 1252a). Homilies on the First Letter of John, V (author’s translation). Expositions on the Psalms (CXV, 5).

Bibliography Aristotle (1974), The Politics of Aristotle, translated by Ernest Barker, New York: Oxford University Press. Augustine (2002), City of God, ed. and translated by R. W. Dyson, Cambridge Texts in the History of Political Thought series, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [All other English translations of Augustine are from (last accessed 17 May 2018).] Burgess, Anthony (1985), 1985, London: Arrow. Cicero (2008), De officiis, Oxford World’s Classics, translated by P. G. Walsh, New York: Oxford University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 162

23/10/18 12:44 PM

augustine of hippo

163

Grayling, A. C. (2011), The Good Book, London: Bloomsbury. Hesiod (2007), Theogony: Works and Days, Loeb Classical Library No. 57N, translated by Glenn W. Most, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Hollingworth, Miles (2010), The Pilgrim City: St. Augustine of Hippo and his Innovation in Political Thought, London and: New York: Bloomsbury. Hollingworth, Miles (2015a), ‘The peace of Babylon (and what it censors): St. Augustine of Hippo’s City of God’, in Geoff Kemp (ed.), Censorship Moments: Reading Texts in the History of Censorship and Freedom of Expression, London and New York: Bloomsbury, pp. 25–32. Hollingworth, Miles (2015b), ‘Political wisdom and the City of God: St. Augustine of Hippo’, in Kyriakos N. Demetriou and Antis Loizides (eds), Scientific Statesmanship, Governance, and the History of Political Philosophy, London and New York: Routledge, pp. 56–72. Kissinger, Henry (1979), The White House Years, London: Weidenfeld & Nicolson. Lewis, C. S. (2009) [1943], The Abolition of Man, New York: HarperOne. Thomas, Scott M. (2000), ‘Taking religious and cultural pluralism seriously: The global resurgence of religion and the transformation of international society’, Millennium: Journal of International Studies, vol. 29, no. 3, pp. 815–41. Thucydides (1972), History of the Peloponnesian War, translated by M. I. Finley, Harmondsworth, Penguin Classics. Whitehead, A. N. (1927), Religion in the Making, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 163

23/10/18 12:44 PM

13 Niccolò Machiavelli The first realist of modernity Markus Fischer

Chapter Overview

M

achiavelli was the first political realist of modernity. To organise his various ideas about human nature, principalities, republics and foreign affairs into a rigorously deductive order is the purpose of this chapter. Human beings desire selfpreservation, glory, domination and wealth. The mind inflames these desires to form limitless ambition. Ambition and fear of the other generate conflict in the natural condition of licence. To impose political order, men of virtù must commit immoral deeds, which are excused by their good consequences. In republics, citizens govern themselves through laws and institutions, based on good customs that need to be periodically refreshed by fear-inducing punishments. At root, Machiavelli’s republic is an organised licence, whereby citizens pursue their ambitions in foreign wars of aggression, so that they collectively generate a far greater amount of glory, dominion and wealth than they could have attained individually by attacking each other. Since a state cannot avoid war by having just enough power to deter but not so much as to pose a threat to others, who then attack from fear, wars of conquest need to be initiated when one has the advantage. The foreign condition of licence is a struggle for imperial domination. *

*

*

Niccolò Machiavelli is one of the major figures in the history of Western political thought. Born in Renaissance Florence, he ably served the short-lived Florentine republic in diplomacy and military affairs. When the Medici princes returned to power in 1512, Machiavelli retired to private life and began his career as a writer. His works were widely condemned for their immoral advice, but also avidly studied by actual rulers and modern philosophers.

Political Realism Machiavelli was a political realist. Political realism is the tradition of thought that seeks to understand political life as it is rather than as it ought to be. Originating with the Sophists of ancient Greece, it asserts that the reality of politics consists of conflict between actors who pursue their self-interests without regard for morality and whose relations are shaped by power. It contrasts this ‘realistic’ approach with the Western

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 164

23/10/18 12:44 PM

niccolò machiavelli

165

virtue tradition from Socrates onwards, which believes in the possibility of succeeding in politics while consistently acting in an ethical manner. It was this contrast that Machiavelli had in mind when he opposed his realistic pursuit of the ‘effectual truth’ to the ‘imagined republics and principalities’ of others: I depart from the orders of others. But since my intent is to write something useful to whoever understands it, it has appeared to me more fitting to go directly to the effectual truth of the thing than to the imagination of it. And many have imagined republics and principalities that have never been seen or known to exist in truth. (Machiavelli 1998: 61) Machiavelli continues this realist manifesto with infamous advice: It is so far from how one lives to how one should live that he who lets go of what is done for what should be done learns his ruin rather than his preservation. For a man who wants to make a profession of good in all regards must come to ruin among so many who are not good. Hence it is necessary to a prince, if he wants to maintain himself, to learn to be able not to be good, and to use this and not to use it according to necessity. (Machiavelli 1998: 61) The reality of political life is such that rulers cannot act ethically all the time if they are to preserve themselves and maintain order among the ruled. Hence, virtue ethics is largely incompatible with politics.

Human Nature Machiavelli expressed his realism in a political theory that grounds its propositions in a rather complex set of assumptions of human nature. The key to understanding these assumptions is to grasp Machiavelli’s distinction between what is constant and necessary, on the one hand, and what is variable and contingent, on the other. Where Machiavelli makes this distinction explicit, he contrasts what exists by ‘nature’ to what happens by ‘accident’. For instance, princes have their qualities ‘either by nature or by accident’ (Machiavelli 1992: 1155). Human nature thus has two parts: constant and necessary properties that we can call first nature or simply nature, and variable and contingent attributes that we can term second nature. Machiavelli firmly believed in the constancy of first nature across historical periods: ‘Whoever considers present and ancient things easily knows that in all cities and in all peoples there are the same desires and the same humours, and there always have been’ (Machiavelli 1996: 83). The desires that characterise this human nature have selfish aims: self-preservation, glory, honour, domination, wealth and sexual pleasure. While the desires indicate to human beings the ends they pursue, the mind (mente), through its faculties of imagination (imaginazione, fantasia), ingenuity (ingegno) and memory (memoria), suggests the means to attain them, for ‘each man conducts himself according to his ingenuity and imagination’ (Machiavelli 1992: 1083). While mind indicate the means to attain one’s ends, spirit (animo, spirito) gives people the energy to act. For instance, a prince ‘needs to have a spirit disposed to change as the winds of fortune and variations of things command him’ (Machiavelli 1998: 70).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 165

23/10/18 12:44 PM

166

markus fischer

This ability to change, however, is starkly limited by a person’s mix of humours (umori), the four bodily fluids of blood, choler, phlegm and black bile, which, according to traditional medicine, give people the corresponding temperaments of being sanguine, choleric, phlegmatic and melancholic. According to Renaissance astrology – in which Machiavelli was a believer (Parel 1992) – people receive their humours at birth and retain them for life. The resulting fixity of temperament gives people a personal mode of proceeding (modo del procedere), from which they cannot deviate. A preponderantly choleric man, for instance, always acts rashly and violently. People’s success in attaining their ambition thus depends on whether their constant mode of proceeding is in accord with the changing qualities of the times (qualità de’ tempi), which are occultly determined by Fortune (fortuna), the astrological personification of chance. In Machiavelli’s words, ‘the humours that make you act, so far as they conform with [Fortune’s] doings, are the causes of your good and your ill’ (Machiavelli 1992: 978), and ‘the cause of the bad and of the good fortune of men is the matching of the mode of one’s proceeding with the times’ (Machiavelli 1996: 239). Machiavelli also applies the concept of the humours to civic bodies, claiming in particular that in every city there are two humours, the people (il populo) and the great (i grandi). What differentiates these two groups is that ‘the people desire neither to be commanded nor oppressed by the great, and the great desire to command and oppress the people’ (Machiavelli 1998: 39). While real enough in particular situations, this differentiation is at bottom only apparent, for the people readily feel the desire for domination once they are free from oppression: ‘It was not enough for the Roman plebs to secure itself against the nobles . . . for having obtained that, it began at once to engage in combat through ambition’ (Machiavelli 1996: 76). In other words, the common people’s seeming moderation of seeking only security and freedom from oppression results from their situation, not from their nature. With regard to their desires, all human beings have the same nature. In addition to serving the desires, the mind also makes them grow without limit. Imagination recombines memories of past gratifications to novel images of delight, while ingenuity devises schemes to attain them. Imagination also enables people to foresee the possibility that their future needs might not be met; prompted by the resulting anxiety, ingenuity then suggests that, to forestall such an outcome, they should acquire as many means of satisfaction as soon as possible. Machiavelli captures the result of these expansions of the desires with the concept of ambition (ambizione). Ambition is inherently without limit because imagination can always expand the desires further, once a certain level of satisfaction has been attained: ‘men ascend from one ambition to another’ (Machiavelli 1996: 95), for they ‘are never satisfied and, having gotten one thing, do not content themselves with that but desire something else’ (Machiavelli 1988: 159). The variable and contingent attributes of human beings that are theoretically significant in Machiavelli’s thought are habits or customs. Individuals become loyal subjects of princes when they have been accustomed to being ruled by their blood line for several generations. For instance, ‘it is natural for Florentine citizens to honour [the house of Medici] . . . [since they] have followed this habit for sixty years’ (Machiavelli 1992: 25). People become law-abiding citizens of republics when they have been habituated to their laws and orders, for ‘laws have need of good customs so as to be observed’ (Machiavelli

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 166

23/10/18 12:44 PM

niccolò machiavelli

167

1996: 49). Good customs are formed by coercion at the hands of an autocratic ruler. At first, people perform a behaviour because their minds calculate that it is preferable to punishment. As these calculations are repeated, they gradually become unconscious and turn into unthinking imitation of previous behaviour, thereby forming a habit. In Machiavelli’s words, individuals become ‘accustomed to the blood line of their prince’ when ‘in the antiquity and continuity of the dominion the memories and causes of innovations’ – that is, the acts of violence committed by a new prince – ‘are extinguished’ (Machiavelli 1998: 6).

Licence, Fortune and Virtù Human beings who are not restrained by political order exist in a condition of licence: ‘No ordered government was there, but rather a certain ambitious license’ (Machiavelli 1996: 98), for ‘where choice abounds and one can make use of license, at once everything is full of confusion and disorder’ (Machiavelli 1996: 15). Since this licence arises from ambitious nature, it may be considered a natural condition, akin to and foreshadowing the state of nature conceived by Thomas Hobbes (Hobbes 1994: 74–8). The natural condition of licence is replete with violent conflict that arises from two causes. First, human beings use violence to attain goods that others possess or seek as well. In other words, conflict arises from the pursuit of the selfish ends of security, glory, wealth and sexual pleasure. Second, fearing that their lives and possessions may be taken by others, individuals find it rational to strike first to secure themselves and their things. ‘When men seek not to fear, they begin to make others fear; and the injury that they dispel from themselves, they put upon another, as if it were necessary to offend or to be offended’ (Machiavelli 1996: 95). This pre-emptive logic would later reappear in Hobbes’s thought under the concept of ‘anticipation’ (Hobbes 1994: 75). This natural condition of licence is grounded in the assumption that the world lacks an inherent ethical order and is ruled, instead, by Fortune, the occult, female personification of chance. ‘She disposes of time in her mode, she exalts us, she wrecks us, without piety, without law or reason,’ so that ‘nothing will or can ever be firm under the sun’ (Machiavelli 1992: 976–7, 967). Fortune creates accidents, which can either offer opportunities for successful action or disrupt people’s plans. To cope with Fortune’s contingency, human beings need to possess the quality of virtù, a combination of spirit and prudence, with the latter consisting of the mind’s ability ‘to recognize the qualities of inconveniences, and in picking the less bad as good’ (Machiavelli 1992: 91). As often suggested, the relationship between virtù and Fortune is central to Machiavelli’s thought because it represents the effort of men to impose order on a contingent world. Having likened Fortune to violent rivers, Machiavelli claims that she can be tamed by men of virtù: And although [the rivers] are like this, it is not as if men, when times are quiet, could not provide for them with dikes and dams so that when they rise later, either they go by a canal or their impetus is neither so wanton nor so damaging. It happens similar with fortune, which shows her power where virtue [virtù] has not been put in order to resist her. (Machiavelli 1998: 98)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 167

23/10/18 12:44 PM

168

markus fischer

The order that needs to be created by human virtù to dam the rivers of Fortune is political order. Hence, virtù is the paramount quality that founders of cities must possess. ‘Moses, Cyrus, Romulus, Theseus and the like’ succeeded at imposing principalities because ‘their excellent virtue [virtù] enabled the opportunity [provided by Fortune] to be recognized’ and ‘new modes and orders’ to be introduced (Machiavelli 1998: 23).

The Generation of Political Order When a prince imposes political order on a licentious multitude, he creates a new principality. Since individuals living in licence act violently and deceitfully from their first natures, the new prince must be ruthless, for there is a ‘natural and ordinary necessity which requires that one must always offend those over whom he becomes a new prince, both with men-at-arms and with infinite other injuries’ (Machiavelli 1998: 8). Cesare Borgia’s pacification of the Romagna illustrates this necessity well: Once the duke had taken over Romagna, he found it had been commanded by impotent lords, who had been readier to despoil their subjects than to correct them. . . . Since that province was quite full of robberies, quarrels, and every other kind of insolence, he judged it necessary to give it good government, if he wanted to reduce it to peace and a kingly arm. So he put there Messer Remirro de Orco, a cruel and ready man, to whom he gave the fullest power. In a short time Remirro reduced it to peace and unity. (Machiavelli 1998: 29) For a republic to come into being, the prince needs to be driven out by freedom-loving subjects, who thereafter rule themselves in a civil way of life, pursuing their ambitions through laws rather than violence and creating institutions that determine where political authority resides and how it is to be exercised. In the Roman republic, for instance, there was the order of the government, or truly of the state, and afterwards the laws, which together with the magistrates checked the citizens. The order of the state was the authority of the people, of the Senate, of the tribunes, of the consuls; the mode of soliciting and creating the magistrates; and the mode of making the laws. (Machiavelli 1996: 49) In other words, authority in a civil way of life is institutionalised. Obedience is not owed to concrete persons but to holders of public office, who carry out laws that have been ratified by an assembly of citizens. Third, the laws and institutions of a civil way of life must be designed and carried out in such a way that every humour has a share in political authority, for ‘institutions . . . will always stand firm when everyone has a hand in them . . . and no rank of citizen, either through fear for itself or through ambition, has to desire innovation’ (Machiavelli 1992: 31).

The Reason of State The cruelties that princes need to inflict to create and maintain order among a licentious multitude imply that they must violate the common morality:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 168

23/10/18 12:44 PM

niccolò machiavelli

169

This has to be understood: that a prince, and especially a new prince, cannot observe all those things for which men are held good [that is, the virtues], since he is often under a necessity, to maintain his state, of acting against faith, against charity, against humanity, against religion. And so he needs . . . not [to] depart from the good, when possible, but know how to enter into evil, when forced by necessity. (Machiavelli 1998: 70) The same necessity not to practise the virtues holds for republics: Where one deliberates entirely on the safety of his fatherland, there ought not to enter any consideration of either just or unjust, merciful or cruel, praiseworthy or ignominious; indeed every other concern put aside, one ought to follow entirely the policy that saves its life and maintains its liberty. (Machiavelli 1996: 301) Pronouncements like these made Machiavelli’s name synonymous with that of the devil, for whom evil is the end. In reality, however, Machiavelli advises rulers to enter into evil neither for the sake of evil nor for the sake of personal aggrandisement, but for the imposition and maintenance of political order, which naturally benefits the subjects by keeping them and their possessions secure. Thus, cruelties ‘can be called well used (if it is permissible to speak well of evil) that are done at a stroke, out of the necessity to secure oneself, and then are not persisted in but are turned to as much utility for the subjects as one can’ (Machiavelli 1998: 37–8). Moreover, Machiavelli did not take this end to justify the means, as so often attributed to him, but merely to excuse them (Walzer 1973: 170, 175–6), for as he writes in a key passage, ‘when the deed accuses him, the effect excuses him’ (Machiavelli 1996: 29). This distinction matters because to justify a seemingly evil deed is to deny its evilness and declare it good, whereas merely to excuse it maintain its evilness while finding a reason to permit it none the less. In other words, Machiavelli embraced a consequentialist ethic, whereby the doing of immoral deeds is warranted by the beneficial consequences of political order. This kind of thinking is also known as the doctrine of the reason of state, which can be considered the ethical core of political realism: to create order and to maintain it for the common benefit, the state is permitted to violate the rules of morality. Medieval thought considered the need for entering into necessary evil to be exceptional (casualiter) and, somehow, reconcilable with the idea that the world was a cosmos consistently ordered for the good; Machiavelli, however, claimed in so many words that this need was natural and normal (normaliter) (Post 1964: 251, 306). This claim shocked Christendom because it held that no ruler could abstain from immoral deeds and therewith implied that the world was not the coherent whole that men had wanted to believe in since Plato. Since the good of political order rests in fundamental ways on the commission of evil deeds, human reality is deeply contradictory (Berlin 1972: 191–7). One can either be a good man or an effective ruler, but not both.

Domestic Conflict The imposition of political order alleviates the state of licence to a point where people can satisfy their desires to a significant extent. The prince who follows Machiavelli’s

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 169

23/10/18 12:44 PM

170

markus fischer

advice gains security, domination and glory, and allows his subjects to enjoy security, honour, wealth and women. The well-habituated citizens of a republic secure themselves through obeying its laws and the holders of public office. At the same time, however, the political order that provides these goods remains shot through with conflict because of the necessity by which human ambition asserts itself. To a political realist, the natural condition of licence seeps through the interstices of political order. This seepage is most evident in republics when ambition corrupts good customs, for customs exist only contingently as second nature, whereas ambition exists necessarily as first nature. For instance, the tyrannical rule of the Ten in ancient Rome shows how easily men are corrupted and make themselves assume a contrary [second] nature, however good and well brought up, considering how much the youths that Appius [the leader of the Ten] had chosen around him began to be friendly to the tyranny for the little utility that came to them from it, and how Quintus Fabius . . . though a very good man, blinded by a little ambition and persuaded by the malignity of Appius, changed his good customs to the worst, and became like him. (Machiavelli 1996: 90–1) To maintain good customs that sustain republics for any length of time, they must be periodically renewed by a ‘return toward the beginning’ (Machiavelli 1996: 209): that is, a return to the dread of punishment that initially made people obey the laws to which they subsequently became habituated. More precisely, habit-renewing fear needs to be instilled in regular intervals by the ‘excessive and notable’ executions of citizens who disobeyed the laws or conspired against the republic (Machiavelli 1996: 210). However, punitive returns to the beginning can forestall corruption only for so long, for, every so often, licentious deeds will go unpunished, and a few more citizens will lose their law-abiding habits. Hence, ‘because one cannot give a certain remedy for such disorders that arise in republics, it follows that it is impossible to order a perpetual republic, because its ruin is caused through a thousand unexpected ways’ (Machiavelli 1996: 257). Another inevitable source of domestic conflict is the perpetual strife between the humour of the great and the humour of the people: The grave and natural enmities that exist between the men of the people and the nobles, caused by the wish of the latter to command and the former not to obey, are the cause of all evils that arise in cities. For from this diversity of humours all other things that agitate republics take their nourishment. (Machiavelli 1988: 105) The conflict between the great and the people also occurs in principalities, giving the prince an opportunity to enhance his power by aligning himself with one humour against the other. According to Machiavelli, a prince should align himself with the people against the great, for the great, who are the prince’s natural rivals, are few and thus more easily controlled, and the people are more easily satisfied, for ‘whenever one does not take away either the property or honour from the generality of men, they live content and one has only to contend with the ambition of the few’ (Machiavelli 1998: 72). Finally, rulers have always to reckon with conspiracies to kill and overthrow them. The causes of conspiracies, and therewith of the conflict they bring about, are

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 170

23/10/18 12:44 PM

niccolò machiavelli

171

fourfold: the desire for vengeance for an injury received at the hand of the prince, such as injuries in ‘property, in blood, or in honour’; a ‘necessity [that] constrains you to do to the prince that which you see the prince would like to do to you’ – that is, strike pre-emptively in the face of imminent threat; ‘the desire to free the fatherland that has been seized by [a prince]’; and a sheer ‘greed for dominating’ – that is, for becoming prince oneself (Machiavelli 1996: 219, 226, 220, 222).

The Outward Deflection of Ambition There is a limit to how much human ambition can be satisfied inside a political order. In a principality, domination and glory are mostly enjoyed by princes. In republics, citizens can gain glory or, at least, a good reputation for proposing a good law, advising the assembly well, ably serving in public office or defending the civil way of life against usurpers. They can enjoy a limited amount of domination by serving in ruling positions and they can gain a measure of wealth. However, too much inequality in wealth, glory or domination undermines a civil way of life; thus, ‘those republics in which a political and uncorrupt way of life is maintained do not endure that any citizen of theirs either be or live in the usage of a gentleman; indeed, they maintain among themselves an even equality’ (Machiavelli 1996: 111). To satisfy ambitions that go beyond these limits, princes, subjects and citizens need to turn toward the foreign realm, which offers nearly endless opportunities for acquiring glory by excelling in battle or conquering empire, for savouring domination by subduing and ruling other peoples, and for amassing wealth by plundering rich cities and extracting tribute. This outward deflection of ambition finds an allegorical expression in Machiavelli’s poem ‘Of Ambition’: When a region lives unbridled by its nature, and then, by accident, is instructed and ordered by good laws, ambition uses against outside people that fury which to use inside neither the law nor the king consent; wherefore one’s own evil almost always ceases; but [ambition] is sure to keep disturbing the home of others, wherever her fury puts down the banner. (Machiavelli 1992: 985) Conversely, it is the ability to vent their ambition abroad that enables people to keep order at home by sparing their fellow subjects and citizens. This need to vent ambition abroad holds especially true for republics because they lack the coercive hand of a prince to keep people in line. As a result, republics are more aggressive in foreign affairs than principalities: ‘of all hard servitudes, that is hardest that submits you to a republic’ because the ‘end of the republic is to enervate and to weaken all other bodies so as to increase its own body’ (Machiavelli 1996: 133). Hence, the deeper purpose of republican institutions is to organise the natural efforts of people at satisfying their ambition in such a way that they collectively generate a far greater amount of glory, dominion and wealth than they could have attained by proceeding individually. Instead of cancelling their efforts by fighting each other in a natural condition of licence, individuals are aggregated into a political order that enables them to combine their energies and jointly exploit those who have remained outside. It is in this sense that Machiavelli’s republic, which is his best regime, can be called a ‘well-ordered licence’: that is, a political order that organises people’s licentious impulses so that they can be gratified more effectively by a collective effort (Fischer

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 171

23/10/18 12:44 PM

172

markus fischer

2000: 145–7). Accordingly, when Machiavelli praises liberty and defines it as selfgovernment under laws, he really speaks of an institutionalised kind of licence that places its exploitative burden on foreigners. ‘It is an easy thing to know whence arises among peoples this affection for the free way of life, for it is seen through experience that cities have never expanded either in dominion or in riches if they have not been in freedom’ (Machiavelli 1996: 129).

The Foreign Condition of Licence By nature, human beings live in a condition of licence. As princes impose order on groups of individuals, they enter into political orders wherein licence is suppressed to a large extent. Between these orders, licence continues unabated. Hence, the foreign realm is in a state of licence, akin to the anarchy of the realist theory of international relations. In the state of licence among individuals, the latter enter into conflict from two fundamental reasons: ambition and striking first from fear of others. In the foreign state of licence, these two causes of conflict reappear: ‘war is made on a republic for two reasons: one, to become master of it; the other, for fear lest it seize you’ (Machiavelli 1996: 22). Machiavelli’s explanation of war from ambition is straightforward: Cities use force against each other in order to satisfy the desires of princes and citizens for glory, domination and wealth. ‘The intention of whoever makes war through choice – or, in truth, ambition – is to acquire and to maintain the acquisition, and to proceed with so that it enriches . . . the country’ (Machiavelli 1996: 140). Machiavelli’s explanation of war from fear is innovative and involved. It begins with the assumption that the capabilities of states that are close enough to cause harm are threatening in themselves, regardless of the professed or surmised intentions of those who possess them; for, in the absence of central protection, we can never be certain that the others will not use their capabilities to our detriment, either presently or in the future. Thus, when the commercially minded magistrates of Florence wanted to cut military expenditures, arguing that ‘we are under the [French] king’s protection, and our enemies are extinguished, [Cesare Borgia] has no reason to attack us’, Machiavelli advised them that ‘such an opinion cannot be more temerarious, because every city, every state must consider as enemies all those who can hope to be able to occupy what is hers, and against whom she cannot defend herself’ (Machiavelli 1992: 12). When faced with such a threat from the capabilities of others, ingenuity and imagination suggest, at a minimum, acquiring military forces of such strength that would-be aggressors will think that the risks and costs of attacking outweigh the possible gains. In other words, the readiest way to secure oneself in the absence of central protection is a strategy of deterrence. In a piece of advice to the Florentine magistrate, Machiavelli makes the following case for deterrence: The remedy is to make the forces be in such order that [the French king] has to have respect for you in each of his decisions, as [he does] for the others of Italy, and not – by remaining disarmed – give spirit to someone powerful to demand you from the king as booty . . . but to act in a mode that he has to esteem you, and that others will not think of subjugating you. (Machiavelli 1992: 12)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 172

23/10/18 12:44 PM

niccolò machiavelli

173

But deterrence is not quite enough. The reason lies with the fact that weapons acquired for deterrence can usually be used for aggression as well. Since one state can never be certain that the deterrence capability of another will not be used offensively, capabilities acquired for the sake of mere deterrence inherently create a threat to other states as well. In addition, since the latter states are likely to respond to this threat by strengthening their own capabilities in turn, there arises a spiral of arms build-up and perception of threat, which erupts into war as soon as one state believes that the likely cost of suffering an attack exceeds that of carrying out a pre-emptive strike. In Machiavelli’s words, ‘the fear of one power brought the growth of someone weak, and when that one had grown, he was to be feared, and being feared they sought to bring him down’ (Machiavelli 1988: 63). In short, the effort to gain security by deterrence generates insecurity as an unintended consequence. To cope with this problem, Machiavelli first enquires whether a state could avoid war by acquiring enough power to deter but not so much power as to pose a threat: I would well believe that to make a republic that would last for a long time, the mode would be to order it within like Sparta or like Venice; to settle it in a strong place of such power that nobody would believe he could crush it at once. On the other hand, it would not be so great as to be formidable to its neighbors; and so it could enjoy its state at length. (Machiavelli 1996: 22) Machiavelli’s mention of a ‘strong place’ suggests in particular that the best way to prevent one’s capabilities from provoking war is to make it physically impossible to use them offensively: for instance, by relying mostly on natural defences, such as mountains, rivers or oceans. However, having made this suggestion, Machiavelli immediately rejects it as a practical impossibility. The sheer contingency of politics makes it impossible to strike an exact balance between inviting aggression through weakness and provoking war through strength: If the thing could be held balanced in this mode, it would be the true political life and the true quiet of a city . . . [But] since one cannot, as I believe, balance this thing, nor maintain this middle way exactly, in ordering a republic there is need to think of the more honorable part and to order it so that if indeed necessity brings it to expand, it can conserve what it has seized. [Hence,] it is necessary to follow the Roman order [of acquiring empire]. (Machiavelli 1996: 23) Further, standing on the defensive only cannot truly secure a city. Given the contingency of warfare, a city needs to possess at least a margin of superiority to be reasonably secure; and such a margin requires the holding of territory that the enemy could otherwise use to extract resources or to stage its troops. And to acquire such a security belt is to acquire empire because there will always be another territory from which aggression could be launched against one. Hence, the empire advances until it is checked by a formidable foe. In addition, argues Machiavelli, if a city were fortunate enough to keep the peace by a strategy of deterrence, it would lose its military prowess or lapse into civil strife from want of external adversity:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 173

23/10/18 12:44 PM

174

markus fischer

On the other hand, if heaven were so kind that [a republic] did not have to make war, from that would arise the idleness to make it either effeminate or divided; these two things together, or each by itself, would be the cause of its ruin. (Machiavelli 1996: 23) Finally, cities cannot avoid being drawn into the wars of others by staying neutral because neutrals make enemies of the losers, who could have needed their help, and appear easy prey to the winners: ‘he who stays neutral comes to be hated by him who loses, and depreciated by him who wins, like one who needs not be taken into account and is estimated to be a useless friend and a non-formidable enemy’ (Machiavelli 1992: 1184). The concrete inference that Machiavelli draws from his discussion is uncompromising: since wars of imperial expansion cannot be avoided, the advantage must be gained by beginning them on one’s own terms: The Romans, seeing inconveniences from afar, always found remedies for them and never allowed them to continue so as to escape a war, because they knew war may not be avoided but is deferred to the advantage of others. So they decided to make war with Philip and Antiochus in Greece in order not to have to do so in Italy. (Machiavelli 1998: 12–13) Overall, fear for preservation thus leads to the same outcome as ambition: the aggressive quest for empire. The foreign condition of licence is fundamentally a struggle for domination.

Conclusion As a man of the Renaissance, Machiavelli sought to recover the political life of antiquity. However, his realist commitment to the effectual truth of political order – as opposed to the imagination of it – turned him away from the virtue tradition of Plato, Aristotle and Cicero. Instead, he looked to ancient historians, such as Livy, Sallust and Polybius, to find out what really happened. In addition, he looked through a glass darkly because of what he had witnessed in Italian politics. As a result, he derived his political theory from two pessimistic premises. First, human beings are insatiably ambitious due to the inflammation of their desires by the mind, and they readily aggress against one another from ambition and mutual fear. In other words, Machiavelli replaced the ancient idea of human beings as they ought and could be if they developed their natural capacities for the virtues with an assumption of human beings as they really are. Gone also is the ancient, as well as Christian, idea that the world is a beneficial order that gives support to the human striving for the good. Rather, and this is the second premise, there is a fickle entity called Fortune who occultly makes contingency prevail in human affairs. But rather than despair over this unfortunate situation, Machiavelli called on men of virtù, those of prudence and spirit who know how to seize opportunities, to impose order on the natural condition of licence by entering into the necessary evils of violence and deceit, and excused their evil deeds by the good consequences that political order has for its subjects. The resulting principalities and republics fall far short of the ancient ideal of communities that realise justice and the other virtues.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 174

23/10/18 12:44 PM

niccolò machiavelli

175

The reason for this shortfall is not only that princes as well as republican leaders continue to find it necessary to make use of the reason of state but also, more fundamentally, that Machiavelli’s political order aims at nothing more than satisfying the human desires for security, glory, domination and wealth. Indeed, his republic essentially institutionalises the ambitious strivings of human beings, so that they pursue them jointly by attacking, despoiling and lording it over foreigners rather than exhausting themselves in internecine strife. Machiavelli’s republic does not suppress licence; it organises it. This organisation of licence through laws and institutions is never fully effective because ambition tempts people to take advantage not only of foreigners but of fellow citizens as well. Further, Machiavelli’s idea of organised licence suffers from the flaw that ambition is insatiable, as he readily admits, and yet he teaches people to satisfy their ambitions as much as possible, thereby condemning them to everlasting discontent. To his credit, Machiavelli recognised this problem: Nature has created men so that they are able to desire everything and are unable to attain everything. So, since the desire is always greater than the power of acquiring, the result is discontent with what one possesses and a lack of satisfaction with it. (Machiavelli 1996: 78) But he could not find an enduring solution because his stunted assumptions about human nature do not allow for what the virtue tradition calls the goods of the soul – virtuous traits of character such as wisdom, justice, courage, moderation, generosity and the like. The difference between pursuing the goods of the soul and pursuing glory, power and wealth, which could also be called the goods of Fortune, is twofold. First, as we just heard from Machiavelli himself, people who have reached a certain level of power, glory and wealth are never satisfied because these things are merely means to the attainment of pleasures that pass. In contrast, one who has attained wisdom or courage rests content because these virtues are ends in themselves. Second, people who reach for the goods of the soul find that their possession by others enhances rather than diminishes their own enjoyment. For instance, people who seek justice and moderation enjoy the justice and moderation they find in others, and they become friends. In contrast, people who seek power, glory and wealth feel diminished by the power, glory and wealth of others, and they become rivals.

Bibliography Berlin, Isaiah (1972), ‘The originality of Machiavelli’, in Myron P. Gilmore (ed.), Studies on Machiavelli, Florence: Sansoni, pp. 147–206. Fischer, Markus (2000), Well-Ordered Licence: On the Unity of Machiavelli’s Thought, Lanham, MD: Lexington. Hobbes, Thomas (1994) [1651], Leviathan, Indianapolis: Hackett. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1988) [1525], Florentine Histories, translated by Laura F. Banfield and Harvey C. Mansfield, Jr, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1992), Tutte le opere, Florence: Sansoni. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1996) [ca. 1517], Discourses on Livy, translated by Harvey C. Mansfield and Nathan Tarcov, Chicago: University of Chicago Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 175

23/10/18 12:44 PM

176

markus fischer

Machiavelli, Niccolò (1998) [1513], The Prince, 2nd edn, translated by Harvey C. Mansfield, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Machiavelli, Niccolò (2003) [1521], Art of War, translated by Christopher Lynch, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Parel, Anthony J. (1992), The Machiavellian Cosmos, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Post, Gaines (1964), Studies in Medieval Legal Thought: Public Law and the State, 1100–1322, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Walzer, Michael (1973), ‘Political action: The problem of dirty hands’, Philosophy and Public Affairs, vol. 2, no. 2, pp. 160–80.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 176

23/10/18 12:44 PM

14 William Shakespeare Shakespeare’s Machiavellian universe Tim Spiekerman

Chapter Overview

M

any of Shakespeare’s plays are dominated by the violent struggles of ambitious men for power. War, assassination, deception and moral licence are so common that Machiavelli, who wrote The Prince about fifty years before Shakespeare was born, proves a useful guide when thinking about his plays. Like Machiavelli, Shakespeare offers a forbiddingly realistic picture of how politics is likely to be practised, whether in England, Scotland or ancient Rome. Alongside the clash of interests, Shakespeare also depicts the moral and religious ideas that move both political actors and ordinary citizens or subjects. Politics, for Shakespeare, is rarely conducted in a moral way but that does not seem to affect our desire that it should be. *

*

*

Modern literature tends to concentrate on private life, on matters of the heart and conscience. Shakespeare, like Homer and Virgil before him and Tolstoy after, belongs to an older literary tradition where public life is of central concern. The characters in his plays will thus often be political and military actors – kings and generals, diplomats and soldiers – and the settings battlefields and courts. This is not to say that Shakespeare ignores the private and domestic but the connection to politics is never far away: King Lear’s struggles with his family’s love and loyalty are sparked by his decision to relinquish the throne, Romeo and Juliet’s love is doomed because their families belong to rival Italian political factions, and Duke Prospero watches his daughter fall in love and marry on a magical island because his brother seized power from him in Milan. While the plots of Shakespeare’s plays are often either directly political or framed by political concerns, it is hard to say what his personal views are, mostly because he never speaks in his own voice. It might even be the case that Shakespeare is less interested in promoting a particular agenda or cause than he is in describing things the way they are. But in describing political matters the way they are, Shakespeare might be said to embrace a kind of realism. I mean this in a couple of different ways. First, his most overtly political plays are historically realistic, as he bases them on historical accounts. The English history plays, as well as Macbeth, are based on Holinshed’s Chronicles, the Roman plays on Plutarch’s Lives. Second, Shakespeare’s depiction of politics is realistic in the most obvious or basic way – politics, on his account, is a rough business. This seems to be true, no matter when and where a given play is set.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 177

23/10/18 12:44 PM

178

tim spiekerman

Machiavelli, who wrote The Prince at the beginning of the same century in which Shakespeare wrote most of his plays, seems everywhere evident in the Shakespearean corpus. This need not mean that Shakespeare was himself a Machiavellian, but many of his characters certainly are,1 and the general political outlook is rather pessimistic. ‘The recurrent political tragedy portrayed in Shakespeare’s plays’, one critic observes, ‘is that somehow the evil characters push their way to the top of the political order, while the morally good and humane characters either fail to achieve rule, or, if they do, cannot maintain it properly’ (Cantor 1993: 37). As Weber put it hundreds of years later, politics is a unique sphere with its own special rules; it operates according to its own logic rather than our hopes (Weber 1977). Shakespeare seems to agree. In his dramas, morality usually takes a back seat to ambition, war is the rule rather than the exception, and idealistic hopes often prove to be utopian dreams. In what follows, I will discuss Shakespeare’s kinship with Machiavelli, who claimed to have a more realistic understanding of politics than pre-modern thinkers. The ‘effectual truth’ about politics, Machiavelli contends, is the skilful use of force and fraud in the service of ambition (Machiavelli 1985: Ch. 15). One might arrive at the same view, I will argue, by reading Shakespeare. In conclusion, I will offer some cautionary remarks about how Shakespeare’s political realism differs from more modern and optimistic varieties. While it would be going too far to suggest that Shakespeare has anything like a doctrine, he paints a fairly consistent picture of what we can hope and expect from politics, and what we cannot. While it is not certain that Shakespeare read Machiavelli, translations of his major political works were available and read by educated English people at the time he was writing, and Shakespeare refers directly to Machiavelli three times in his plays.2 He may even have borrowed the plot of Measure for Measure from the famous Cesare Borgia/Remirro de Orca story recounted in The Prince.3 But as I noted above, Shakespeare writes about politics in a recognisably Machiavellian way, as if he were exploring Machiavellian themes on the stage. Machiavelli is most famous for the bold and subversive way he talks about morality. He claims he is simply being realistic, noting that ‘he who lets go of what is done for what should be done learns his ruin rather than his preservation’. Princes, he concludes, must ‘learn to be able not to be good’: that is, they must ‘know how to enter into evil, when forced by necessity’ (Machiavelli 1985: Chs 15 and 18). Most of the politicians Shakespeare portrays are realistic in just this way – they are somehow morally challenged – so the vexed relationship between politics and morality is regularly on Shakespeare’s mind. Since both Machiavelli and Shakespeare were writing at a time when the Church was extraordinarily powerful and Christian moral teaching respectable and pervasive, treating politics ‘realistically’ inevitably risked offending traditional moral sensibilities. If Machiavelli revels in this, Shakespeare is more circumspect, but both are aware of the stakes. As Weber puts it, ‘The genius or demon of politics lives in an inner tension with the god of love . . . .’ Machiavelli, Weber approvingly notes, knew politics might require the kind of moral compromise that would bar one from heaven, and praised those courageous and resolute enough to pursue such a course: ‘Machiavelli in a beautiful passage . . . of the History of Florence, has one of his heroes praise those citizens who deemed the greatness of their native city higher than the salvation of their souls’ (Weber 1977: 126). Machiavelli is famously blunt in explaining the nature of ‘moral compromise’. Should a prince acquire a new territory, for example, he ‘must have

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 178

23/10/18 12:44 PM

william shakespeare

179

two concerns: one, that the blood line of their ancient prince be eliminated; the other, not to alter either their laws or their taxes’ (Machiavelli 1985: Ch. 3). Low taxes and thorough assassinations! Shakespeare’s dramatisation of such advice lacks the coolness of Machiavelli’s presentation, but among other things we learn in the intense play Macbeth is that Macbeth killed the King but was vanquished by his blood line. In the less read but more brutally direct King John, the illegitimate King decides he can retain power only by assassinating his twelve-year-old rival, Arthur: Good Hubert, Hubert, Hubert, throw thine eye On yon young boy: I’ll tell thee what, my friend, He is a very serpent in my way; And wheresoe’r this foot of mine doth tread He lies before me: dost thou understand me? (King John: III, ii, 69–73)4 In fact, assassination is rife in Shakespeare’s plays, and he often seems to support it (Julius Caesar) or at least to understand its necessity in particular situations (‘That John may stand, then, Arthur needs must fall’: III, 3, 139).5 In Richard II, Henry Bolingbroke deposes and executes the legitimate king, and Shakespeare seems to side with Henry over Richard.6 Once he becomes king, Henry IV finds himself at war with the Percys, who helped him seize the throne. Machiavelli explains the dilemma: ‘you cannot keep as friends those who have put you there because you cannot satisfy them in the mode they had presumed’ (Machiavelli 1985: Ch. 3). Those dissatisfied enough to revolt and expecting more than is possible as thanks will be a thorn in a new ruler’s side. The nobles who put Henry IV in power thus recognise that it is them or him. After two wars, it turns out to be him. Henry’s son and heir, Henry V, will fight a war with France in order to divert his family’s remaining noble opponents. If Machiavelli is perhaps best known for celebrating the necessity and effectiveness of brute force in politics, he puts equal or perhaps even greater emphasis on fraud. ‘Force alone’, he says, may not ever ‘be enough, but fraud alone will be found to be quite enough’ (Machiavelli 1996: II.13.1). One of the most shocking examples of the successful use of fraud in Shakespeare comes in Henry IV, Part Two. In the second war against the illegitimate usurper Henry IV, alluded to above, Prince John meets with the rebel army and promises, ‘by the honor of [his] blood’, that the King will address their grievances so long as both armies retreat and disband. When the rebels comply, John double-crosses them, pursuing the ‘scatt’red stray’ and capturing and executing their leaders (Henry IV, Part Two: IV, 2, 55; IV, 3, 120). Interestingly, Shakespeare provides no commentary on this scene; when news of John’s victory is relayed to the King, no mention is made of John’s treachery.7 In Antony and Cleopatra, the leaders of the Roman Empire (Octavius, Antony and Lepidas) are all on the rebel Pompey’s boat, negotiating their collective futures, when Pompey’s aide Menas takes him aside and asks, ‘Wilt thou be lord of the whole world?’ When Pompey responds, ‘How should that be?’ Menas explains his plan: These three world-sharers, these competitors, Are in thy vessel. Let me cut the cable; And when we are put off, fall to their throats. All there is thine. (The Tragedy of Antony and Cleopatra: II, 7, 60, 64, 72–4)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 179

23/10/18 12:44 PM

180

tim spiekerman

Pompey wishes Menas had acted without asking him – ‘this thou should have done,/ And not have spoke on’t’ (II, 7, 75) – but is unable to order the assassinations himself. Octavius Caesar will eventually prevail over Pompey,8 as well as Lepidus and Antony. As these examples show, Shakespeare not only dramatises the same moral dilemmas that preoccupy Machiavelli, but also seems sympathetic to the ugly political necessities that Machiavelli stresses. He does not, it is true, celebrate John’s treachery or condemn Pompey’s honourable restraint,9 but he lets us know who wins and who loses, and why. Machiavelli tries to redefine virtue as political skill, which partly means re-evaluating particular virtues,10 but mostly means knowing when it is necessary to depart from traditional morality – and, equally crucially, when it is not – and how to cover one’s tracks and conceal one’s perfidy from the people.11 This a difficult skill to acquire and exercise consistently, as moral forces are stubbornly powerful; even bad guys suffer the pangs of conscience, often at exactly the wrong time.12 We must ‘learn how not to be good’ and that is not easy (Machiavelli 1985: Ch. 15, emphasis mine). Most generally, virtue is a kind of supreme control, which Machiavelli contrasts with fortune: that is, powers outside of our control. He likens fortune to a violent river overflowing its banks and notes that, it is not as if men, when times are quiet, could not provide for them with dikes and dams so that when they rise later, either they go by a canal or their impetus is neither so wanton or damaging. Among those powers outside of our control, Machiavelli is surely thinking of God, or belief in God. Fortune, he says, ‘shows her power where virtue has not been put in order to resist her’, which suggests not only that fortune can be resisted but also that it is best understood as a lack of virtue (Machiavelli 1985: Ch. 25). In Macbeth and Julius Caesar, Shakespeare explores fortune’s power, in both cases suggesting that our belief in superhuman forces is more powerful – and more damaging – than those forces themselves. Macbeth’s ambition to rule Scotland is ignited by an odd meeting with three witches who predict his success. Encouraged by his wife, Macbeth murders the sitting King, Duncan, but fails to move against his son, who escapes to England and eventually returns to claim the kingship for himself. Macbeth’s plans for taking and keeping power are inadequate because he thinks he is assured of success. When the witches prophesy that he will retain power unless some seemingly impossible conditions are met, Macbeth is satisfied that he is invulnerable. Still, he acts to defend himself, attempting to kill the family of a potential opponent (the son escapes) and raising an army to resist Malcolm and his English troops. Even though he appears to fall apart after the murder of Duncan and is later haunted by the ghost of a man he murdered, Macbeth, unlike his wife, does recover and attempts to provide for his own security. In showing us how powerful fortune can be – it can lead us to think things that are not true and do things we would not otherwise do – Shakespeare also shows us that we have no choice but to act on our own behalf. Macbeth is caught in between, believing that a happy future is foreordained, but realising too that he must act to bring it about and preserve it. This is not, to be sure, the lesson a viewer of Macbeth is most likely to

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 180

23/10/18 12:44 PM

william shakespeare

181

take from the play, which seems more obviously about the dangers of supreme ambition and the power of conscience. But Shakespeare’s Macbeth overcomes his moral misgivings and the historical Macbeth, as Shakespeare well knew, ruled for nearly twenty years. Brutus and Cassius, who assassinate Julius Caesar in order to preserve the Roman republic, do not overcome their moral misgivings. Cassius is haunted by ominous bird signs and Brutus by what he thinks is Caesar’s ghost, both portending their ruin. Machiavelli suggests that such ‘false imaginations’ arise from a ‘stained conscience’ that ‘perturbs [one’s] spirit’ (1996: III.6.16).13 Each eventually commits suicide, convinced that superhuman forces – what Machiavelli calls fortune – are aligned against them. Their superstitious belief that they are doomed, rather than any military necessity, is what finally defeats them. As Montaigne says of the historical actors, ‘Cassius and Brutus demolished the last remnants of Roman liberty, of which they were the protectors, by the rash haste with which they killed themselves before the proper time and occasion’ (Montaigne 2003: 310).14 A third fundamental Machiavellian distinction, between the people and the great, also proves useful when thinking about Shakespeare’s political vision. Machiavelli holds that there is a permanent gulf between the people and the great, almost as if they belonged to different species: ‘[I]n every city these two diverse humors are found, which arises from this: that the people neither desire to be commanded nor oppressed by the great, and the great desire to command and oppress the people’ (1985: Ch. 9, emphasis mine). The people just want to be left alone, but the great (or ambitious) want not only to rule but also to oppress them. The two classes or types of human beings thus have different interests: they want fundamentally different things. In addition to security, the people desire and expect their rulers to be more moral than they typically are or often can be. This may be due to the fact that the people, who are uninterested in ruling, do not have to think much about political necessity and so assume that politics can be practised with more delicacy and rectitude than is always possible. Whatever the cause, the people are less tolerant of departures from morality than the ambitious are,15 which means they will always be subject to the moral appeals of those vying to rule them. This is a prescription for constant instability, as those who lack power can always claim to be morally superior to those in charge. Because it lacks its own army, the Church is more reliant on moral appeals than others, and Shakespeare often depicts the political meddling of religious officials in just this manner. In King John, for example, the Pope’s emissary persuades the people of England that God wants their ruler replaced by convincing them that events in the sky he knows to be natural are the ‘tongues of heaven,/Plainly denouncing vengeance upon John’ (III, 3, 58–9). In Henry V, the leaders of the Church endorse Henry’s crooked claim to the French throne in exchange for land, lending moral authority to a cause they know to be suspect and so generating popular enthusiasm for war. The most optimistic reading of The Prince, to which I largely subscribe, holds that the interests of the people and their rulers are, or at least can be, compatible. Thus Machiavelli repeatedly emphasises that a ruler who benefits the people is most secure.16 Since the people just want to be left alone, and since there are a lot more of them, Machiavelli tries to persuade the ambitious to moderate their desires in order to stay in power. Mostly, this means departing from morality or offending the people only when

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 181

23/10/18 12:44 PM

182

tim spiekerman

it is strictly necessary, versus simply desirable.17 Rather shockingly, Machiavelli suggests that the people will be more offended by the confiscation of their property than by political killings, as ‘men forget the death of a father more quickly than the loss of a patrimony’ (1985: Ch. 17). While Richard II murdered Henry Bolingbroke’s uncle, Bolingbroke makes Richard’s theft of his father’s estate the centrepiece of his campaign to depose him. Machiavelli’s optimism about the compatibility of popular and elite interests also arises out of his confidence that the ambitious can usually conceal their departures from morality, or explain them as necessary for the public good. ‘[M]en are so simple’, he says, ‘and so obedient to present necessities that he who deceives will always find someone who will let himself be deceived’ (1985: Ch. 18).18 Shakespeare, in my view, is more pessimistic about any serious accommodation between the people and the ambitious, and more suspicious of the rational politics toward which Machiavelli points. Perhaps this is a matter of tone, as Machiavelli writes cheerfully about everything, even the most dreadful matters, while Shakespeare is more sombre. This is especially true in the English history plays, which catalogue an unremitting and violent struggle for power. But that is the case, in those plays and others, because Shakespeare consistently identifies the people and the great with contrary qualities that are deep-seated and persistent. He portrays the people as fickle, superstitious and easy to manipulate. Shakespeare seems especially critical of the mob, as is evident in the famous (for other reasons) line from Henry VI: ‘the first thing we do, let’s kill all the lawyers’ (Henry VI, Part II: IV, 2). Julius Caesar opens with the Tribunes attempting, with little success, to dissuade the people from celebrating Caesar’s military victory over a fellow Roman, an unprecedented betrayal of Roman tradition. Later, the people surround a man they think helped kill Caesar. ‘I am Cinna the poet!’ he says. ‘I am not Cinna the conspirator.’ ‘It is no matter,’ comes a voice from the crowd. ‘Tear him to pieces,’ says another (The Tragedy of Julius Caesar: III, 3, 28–33). Only a few minutes earlier, after listening to Brutus’ explanation that Caesar had to die in order to preserve republican freedom, people in the crowd had suggested making Brutus king. Machiavelli’s hope that the ambitious can moderate their behaviour also seems, on the evidence of Shakespeare’s plays, to be wishful thinking. Shakespeare dramatises the scene in which Julius Caesar, with Marc Antony’s help, tries to get the people to ask him to become king. Caesar already had sole power in Rome (the republic was never officially disbanded) and the love of the people, the senate and army, but vanity compelled him to seek an official title. Playing coy and pretending to be uninterested in the crown, Caesar is stunned (he actually faints) to find that the people do not want him to be king, preferring the illusion that he served at their pleasure. Later, he has the senate make him emperor, but according to Plutarch, ‘the most open and deadly hatred towards [Caesar] was produced by his passion for royal power’ (Plutarch 1919: 60). Brutus, he further suggests, might have prevailed over Caesar with simple patience, ‘suffering his power to wane and the fame of his successes to wither’ (Plutarch 1918: 8).19 Richard II seems unable to restrain himself from lavish spending on court favourites – ‘more hath he spent in peace’, a nobleman says, ‘than . . . [his predecessors] . . . in war’ – and is referred to by a gardener as ‘the wasteful king’ (The Tragedy of King Richard the Second: II, 1, 255; III, 4, 55). Henry V, as noted earlier, wages war with France in order to detract attention from his lack of a legitimate claim to the throne. Both Richard II and Henry V, in Shakespeare’s view, behave this way because they think they deserve to

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 182

23/10/18 12:44 PM

william shakespeare

183

rule. Henry is a far better politician than Richard is, but he is no less humble and can match Richard in moralising sermons about his deservedness. As has been evident, in his depiction of politics Shakespeare always has ambition on his mind. For modern audiences, this is probably more foreign than familiar. In a democratic age, we reflexively assume that politicians are supposed to pursue our interests rather than their own. Of course, we often complain that ‘they’re all in it for themselves’ or ‘they only think of re-election’, which might indicate a kind of grudging acceptance of their nature or at least their common tendencies, but we still think of ourselves as ultimately in charge and expect politicians to acknowledge that they are our servants. That world has not yet arrived in Shakespeare’s time, though Machiavelli, as we saw above, instructs the ambitious to think of their own benefit in concert with the benefit of the people. The ‘ruler-centric’ view expressed in Shakespeare’s plays can be seen most readily in their titles: of his thirty-eight plays, more than half are named after rulers. The point of view is announced at the outset and the struggle to get or keep power forms the plot of many of Shakespeare’s play. That is to say, the question of who will rule – John or Arthur, Richard or Bolingbroke, Macbeth or Malcolm – often seems to be Shakespeare’s primary concern. When trying to explain the meaning and importance of non-elite actors in many of Shakespeare’s more political plays, critics often speak of ‘comic relief’, as if we need a break from the serious tension of the real plot. Machiavelli famously observes that ‘truly it is a very natural and ordinary thing to desire to acquire, and always, when men do it who can, they will be praised or not blamed’ (1985: Ch. 3). Shakespeare seems to agree with at least the first part of this statement, that ambition is natural and so ineradicable. Readers of his plays thus become accustomed to the ambitious contest for power, so much so that one is likely to think that that is what politics mostly is for Shakespeare. Shakespeare thus describes politics in a recognisably Machiavellian way, though he does not cheerfully recommend such behaviour, as Machiavelli does, but simply describes things as he and his sources see them. We can assume (or hope) that Shakespeare finds this all appalling, but such a reaction at least implies that things could be otherwise, and Shakespeare gives us little reason to think that is so. Perhaps, then, he just finds it depressing, as readers, at least, often do. In Julius Caesar, however, Shakespeare at least hints that things could be otherwise. In that play, he celebrates Marcus Brutus, a moral politician (‘the noblest Roman of them all’, V, 5, 68) who tries to preserve the Roman republic from descending into tyranny. Brutus fails, but Shakespeare suggests that the cause for which he fought, republican liberty, might have a future: ‘I shall have glory by this losing day/More than Octavius and Marc Antony/By this vile conquest shall attain unto’ (V, 5, 36–8). Earlier in the play, just after the republicans have killed Julius Caesar, Brutus asks, ‘How many times shall Caesar bleed in sport,/That now on Pompey’s basis lies along/ No worthier than the dust?’ ‘So oft as shall be,’ Cassius responds, ‘So often shall the knot of us be called/The men that gave their country liberty’ (III, 1, 114–17). Nothing like these lines are to be found in Plutarch, and Shakespeare seems to be suggesting that the production of his play, where Caesar shall ‘bleed in sport’, can help keep the republican cause alive – even in a modern Europe dominated by monarchies. Thus it may not be the case that Shakespeare never reveals any political preferences, that he stands above the political fray but does not take sides. And if an idea that is defeated

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 183

23/10/18 12:44 PM

184

tim spiekerman

in one time can rise in another, politics is not simply a matter of ambitious men vying for power, but about principles and causes. Thought can move men to action. As the grandfather of realism, Machiavelli is mostly identified with the view that politics is the arena where force rules. And yet he gives as much, if not more, attention to the political power of thought, particularly moral and religious thought, which affects both rulers and ruled. Even the most savvy and worldly politicians can find themselves stricken by conscience, or given to trust, or worried about what a priest – or God himself – might think of their actions. And because the people are typically more moral and religious than their rulers, Machiavelli advises princes to conceal their departures from morality by pretending to be religious. In an infamous passage in The Prince, he even seems to recommend the persecution of religious minorities in order to satisfy the partisan fervour of the majority. King Ferdinand’s practice of ‘pious cruelty’ toward Muslims and Jews, Machiavelli notes, catapulted him from being a ‘weak king’ to ‘the first king among the Christians’ (1985: Ch. 21). While catering to the religious prejudice of one’s subjects can be very effective, Machiavelli at least hints that it is unnecessarily cruel. Earlier in The Prince, he recommends that harsh or cruel behaviour be swift and limited, and used only when strictly necessary.20 Persecution of heretics, to the contrary, can go on forever, like the tortures of Hell that Machiavelli is surely also thinking of. He ends the chapter on pious cruelty with a striking contrast, counselling a prince to, inspire his citizens to follow their pursuits quietly, in trade and in agriculture and in every other pursuit of men, so that one person does not fear to adorn his possessions for fear that they will be taken away from him, and another to open up a trade for fear of taxes. (1985: Ch. 21) Rulers can appeal to our religious zeal or they can appeal to our desire for calm and material wellbeing. Both can move us, and both can be effective, but the success of the latter and comparatively more decent appeal will probably depend on our view of priests and the God they serve. Peace and prosperity are easier to seek and enjoy when we are not being constantly reminded of eternal damnation. In an effort to turn the political temperature down, Machiavelli initiates the Enlightenment critique of religion that will dominate modern thought for the next several centuries.21 Shakespeare also seems interested in turning the temperature down. In King John and Henry V, as noted earlier, he exposes clerics as pious frauds who use their authority to advance their temporal political aims. Richard II tells the story of a king who learns too late that he is not divine: ‘For you have mistook me all this while./I live with bread like you, feel want,/Taste grief, need friends – subjected thus,/ How can you say to me, I am king?’ (III, 2, 171–7). Macbeth learns that he cannot depend on the prophecies of supernatural beings, and Prospero’s supposedly magic powers cannot prevent his exile. Julius Caesar ‘is superstitious grown of late’ (II, 1, 195), and on the eve of his assassination, one of the conspirators is terrified by a meteor shower, which he thinks a ‘portentous’ sign (I, 3, 31).22 After the killing, Brutus is haunted by Caesar’s ghost and Cassius becomes obsessed with bird signs. Like Machiavelli, Shakespeare seems to treat religion in political terms, showing us how it can be useful, and how harmful, to those seeking power. But in exposing the unbelief of ambitious priests and the superstition of political failures, it is

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 184

23/10/18 12:44 PM

william shakespeare

185

not clear who exactly Shakespeare expects will notice. Not, it seems, the ordinary people the ambitious aspire to rule, and not, for that matter, many of the ambitious themselves. Machiavelli tries to teach rulers to cleanse themselves of moral and religious scruples, and to obey their interests by promoting the interests of the people. Shakespeare seems less sanguine about this project, which might be why he writes plays rather than how-to manuals for aspiring politicians.

Conclusion I have tried to show throughout that Shakespeare shares much of Machiavelli’s political worldview. Politics, on Shakespeare’s account, is a rather nasty business, filled with violence, intrigue, murder and betrayal. It is ‘a perpetual and restlesse desire for Power after power, that ceaseth onely in Death’, to borrow a famous phrase from Hobbes. Hobbes attributes this restless desire to all human beings, though, like Machiavelli, he distinguishes those who take ‘pleasure in contemplating their own power in . . . acts of conquest’ from those who are ‘glad to be at ease in modest bounds’ (Hobbes 1985: Chs 11 and 13). Hobbes hopes to satisfy the modest, who want peace and security, by taming the ambitious. He does so by trying to deflate the moral and religious ideas that allow the ambitious to manipulate the people and which invariably make politics a dangerous and unstable arena. Only if enough of us become convinced that we live in a material world, that the satisfaction of bodily desires is all there is, can a stable, peaceful and rational politics emerge. In advising the ambitious to pretend to be religious, Machiavelli seems dubious about the prospects of Hobbes’s scientific project: dubious, that is, about the ability to disenchant the world so thoroughly.23 Like ambition, the power and allure of moral and religious ideas seem to both Machiavelli and Shakespeare to be permanent features of political life. We cannot wish or explain them away, for they are far more compelling and interesting to most than the material interests with which some modern thinkers hope we can replace them. The political realism of the American Founding Fathers is nicely captured in a line by James Madison: ‘if men were angels, no government would be necessary’ (Madison 2003: 319). That we are not reliably good or able to control ourselves seems a depressing, if realistic, assessment. But the Founders’ pessimism about human nature is accompanied by a great optimism that we can temper and counter our defective tendencies through the prudent management of self-interest. Ambition can counteract ambition by dividing governmental power, and conflicting moral and religious ideas can be tempered by multiplying and so diluting their strength. Interests, in other words, can be asserted without harm, much as the pursuit of economic gain for oneself can benefit others. But the prudent management of interest, whether in politics or economics, or on the world stage, ultimately depends on our thinking of ourselves primarily as beings with material interests. Shakespeare just does not see things that way. I noted earlier that he would agree with Machiavelli’s contention that ‘it is a very natural and ordinary thing to desire to acquire’, though I wondered about the rest of the sentence: ‘and always, when men do it who can, they will be praised or not blamed’ (1985: Ch. 3). Bolingbroke, John, Macbeth, Caesar and Brutus, to name some of the Shakespearean political figures I have mentioned, are all blamed for their desire to acquire power. Politics, for Shakespeare, is always about making moral judgements; leaving that out of the picture would not be realistic.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 185

23/10/18 12:44 PM

186

tim spiekerman

Notes 1. The Machiavelli scholar Harvey Mansfield, for example, refers to ‘Shakespeare’s Machiavellian Prince Hal’ (1966: 318). Harold Bloom says Ulysses (Troilus and Cressida) is ‘frankly a Machiavel’ (1998: 340). Aaron, Iago, Octavius, Richard III, Henry IV and Macbeth, to name a few others, are often called Machiavellian. 2. In Henry VI, Part 1; Henry VI, Part 3; and The Merry Wives of Windsor. 3. Like Cesare Borgia in the Romagna, Duke Vincentio relies on a brutal hatchet-man to restore order to a lawless Vienna. Instead of executing him to please the people, however, he marries him off to a woman he had scorned. 4. All quotations from Shakespeare’s plays will follow the Signet Classics editions. Line references will subsequently appear immediately after the quotations. 5. Arthur is supported by the Pope and the French, and so threatens England’s independence. 6. Queen Elizabeth refused to allow the deposition scene to be staged, convinced it was really about her: ‘I am Richard II, know thee not that?’ Quoted in Peter Ure’s introduction to the Arden edition of King Richard II (Ure 1989). 7. John’s elder brother Hal, who will inherit his father’s throne as Henry V, is not present at this battle. One wonders if he would have resisted such an act for fear it would taint his reputation. 8. As Julius Caesar prevailed over Pompey’s father. At the beginning of Shakespeare’s Julius Caesar, Caesar uses a religious holiday to celebrate his recent victory in Spain over Pompey the Great’s sons. 9. Honour, Falstaff says in his most famous speech, is likely to get you killed: ‘What is honor? A word. What is in that word honor? What is that honor? Air – a trim reckoning! Who hath it? He that died a Wednesday’ (The History of Henry IV, Part One V, 1, 135–6). 10. Liberality or generosity, for example, is usually a vice, as it eventually requires taxing the people to fund lavish royal gifts. Stinginess, since it spares the public purse, can be seen as a virtue. See Machiavelli (1985: Ch. 16). 11. Shakespeare’s Henry V is especially adept at this. See my treatment in Spiekerman (2001: Ch. 5). 12. After murdering their political rivals, King John and the Macbeths fall apart. On the eve of his battle with the French at Agincourt, the outnumbered Henry V worries that God might punish him for his father’s murder of King Richard II: ‘Not today, O Lord,/O, not today, think not upon the fault/My father made in compassing the crown!’ (The Life of Henry V IV, 1, 297–9). 13. Machiavelli is referring specifically here to the conspirators’ fear that Caesar has discovered their assassination plot, but the more general point – guilty people imagine all sorts of false things – is relevant to Brutus’ and Cassius’ behaviour after they kill Caesar. 14. See Spiekerman (2013a) for a longer discussion of the play. 15. As I have noted, the ambitious too are often subject to moral claims – they suffer the pangs of conscience – but less consistently. 16. See especially Machiavelli (1985: Ch. 9). 17. It is always desirable to punish one’s enemies and enrich oneself at others’ expense. It is rarely necessary, Machiavelli maintains (see 1985: Ch. 17). 18. Machiavelli advises imitating Pope Alexander, the best moral imposter he knows. 19. At Discourses I.33.4–5, Machiavelli recommends the same course. One should ‘temporize’ with powerful forces (like Julius Caesar) rather than confronting them head on when their strength is overwhelming. 20. Cruelties ‘can be called well used (if it is permissible to speak well of evil) that are done at a stroke, out of the necessity to secure oneself, and then are not persisted in but are turned to as much utility for the subjects as one can’ (1985: Ch. 8).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 186

23/10/18 12:44 PM

william shakespeare

187

21. Machiavelli criticises Christianity more deeply and directly in The Discourses (see, for example, I.12, II.2.2 and III.1.4) than he does in The Prince, though in both books Christianity is treated as an obstacle to sober and stable politics. 22. Cicero, who is not involved in the plot against Caesar, is delighted by the bright display: ‘Why, saw you anything more wonderful?’ In response to Casca’s fear, he says ‘men may construe things after their fashion,/Clean from the purpose of the things themselves’ (I, 3, 14; 34–5). 23. ‘And truly there was never any orderer of extraordinary laws for a people who did not have recourse to God, because otherwise they would not have been accepted’ (1996: I.11.3). Rousseau quotes this sentence approvingly in his Social Contract (1978: II.7) and later says ‘a State has never been founded without religion serving as its base’ (IV.8).

Bibliography Bloom, Harold (1998), Shakespeare: The Invention of the Human, New York: Riverhead. Cantor, Paul (1993), ‘Shakespeare – “For all time”?’, Public Interest, Winter. Hobbes, Thomas (1985), Leviathan, ed. by C. B. Macpherson, London: Penguin. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1985), The Prince, translated by Harvey C. Mansfield, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1996), Discourses on Livy, translated by Harvey C. Mansfield and Nathan Tarcov, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Madison, James (2003), The Federalist Papers, ed. by Clinton Rossiter, New York: Signet Classics, no. 51, p. 319. Mansfield, Harvey C. (1966), Machiavelli’s Virtue, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Montaigne, Michel de (2003), ‘Custom of the Isle of Cea’, in Complete Works, translated by Donald M. Frame, New York: Everyman’s Library. Plutarch (1918), ‘The life of Brutus’, in Parallel Lives, translated by Bernadotte Perrin, Loeb Classical Library, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Plutarch (1919), ‘The life of Julius Caesar’, in Parallel Lives, translated by Bernadotte Perrin, Loeb Classical Library, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (1978), On the Social Contract, ed. by Roger D. Masters, translated by Judith R. Masters, New York: St Martin’s Press. Shakespeare, William (1998a), The History of Henry IV, Part One, ed. by Maynard Mack, New York: Signet Classics. Shakespeare, William (1998b), The Life of Henry V, ed. by John Russel Brown, New York: Signet Classics. Shakespeare, William (1998c), The Tragedy of Antony and Cleopatra, ed. by Barbara Everett, New York: Signet Classics. Shakespeare, William (1998d), The Tragedy of Julius Caesar, ed. by William and Barbara Rosen, New York: Signet Classics. Shakespeare, William (1999), The Tragedy of King Richard the Second, ed. by Kenneth Muir, New York: Signet Classics. Shakespeare, William (2002), Henry IV, Part Two, ed. by Norman N. Holland, New York: Signet Classics. Shakespeare, William (2004), The Life and Death of King John, ed. by S. Schoenbaum, New York: Signet Classics. Spiekerman, Tim (2001), Shakespeare’s Political Realism, Albany, NY: SUNY. Spiekerman, Tim (2013a), ‘The inevitable monarchy: Shakespeare’s Julius Caesar’, in Ann and Lee Ward (eds), Natural Right and Political Philosophy, Notre Dame, IN: Notre Dame University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 187

23/10/18 12:44 PM

188

tim spiekerman

Spiekerman, Tim (2013a), ‘Hotspur and Falstaff v. the politicians: Shakespeare’s view of honor’, in Bernard J. Dobski and Dustin Gish (eds), Shakespeare and the Body Politic, Lanham, MD: Lexington. Ure, Peter (1989), ‘Introduction’, in W. Shakespeare, King Richard II, ed. by P. Ure, Arden edition, London: Routledge. Weber, Max (1977), ‘Politics as a vocation’, in From Max Weber: Essays in Sociology, ed. and translated by H. H. Berth and C. Wright Mills, New York: Oxford University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 188

23/10/18 12:44 PM

15 Thomas Hobbes Lupine gods: Hobbes’s honourable political realism about global politics Kody W. Cooper

Chapter Overview

T

homas Hobbes is widely regarded as a quintessential figure in the realist tradition. Many commentators understand Hobbes’s realism as coeval with a moral scepticism and legal positivism. This chapter offers an alternative interpretation: namely, that Hobbes espouses an honourable realism in global politics grounded in natural law. The chapter begins with an analysis of Hobbes’s adages that human beings are both godlike and wolflike to one another, and reconsiders Hobbes’s theory of international relations in light of this theme. Hobbes’s realism in international relations is shown to rest on the basis of a realistic philosophy, including a particular conception of human nature and God’s causal relation to the world. Hobbes’s natural law theory provides an independent source of moral principles for distinguishing between honourable and dishonourable power politics. Hobbes’s theory is illustrated by contrasting an ancient and a modern case of power politics. *

*

*

Introduction It is well known that Hobbes is considered one of the major early modern progenitors of realism in international relations, and that the principal twentieth-century realists consider Hobbes as an influence. As Raymond Aron notes, Hobbesian realism about international relations is thought to flow from the logic of the global arena conceived of as a state of nature: Each political unit aspires to survive. Leaders and led are interested and eager to maintain the collectivity they constitute by virtue of history, race, or fortune. . . . We may say that in the state of nature, every entity, whether individual or political unit, makes security a primary objective. (Aron 2003: 72) Since no commonwealth has transferred its sovereignty to a global sovereign, the security of a people is always the charge of a particular commonwealth. From this, Aron contends, ‘national egoism’ logically follows (Aron 2003: 580). Political actors in the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 189

23/10/18 12:44 PM

190

kody w. cooper

global arena always act from national self-interest. Hans Morgenthau would add, echoing a Hobbesian theme, that national self-interest is defined in terms of power (Morgenthau 1960: 5). Charles Beitz, who is critical of realism, also traces Hobbes’s influence in the realist tradition and understands these principles to be coeval with a moral scepticism in the global arena (Beitz 1979: 27). Does this mean that sovereigns cannot act from a sense of honour? Aron does not seem to deny this possibility but is quick to point out that each state remains the sole judge of what honour requires (Aron 2003: 580). Meanwhile, a number of alternative readings of Hobbes’s theory of international relations have arisen. Of particular interest is that some of Hobbes’s commentators have been critical of standard interpretations of Hobbes as a sceptical realist and have argued that moral principles can be independent reasons for action in the global arena.1 In what follows, I argue that Hobbes offers a philosophically–theologically realistic and honourable political realism about global politics, in which there are objective moral standards to judge the actions of states. Commentators have largely failed to give due weight to the realistic foundations of Hobbes’s realism as grounded in a particular, theologically rich conception of human nature and God’s causal relation to the world. Hobbes understands the latter to be an essential ground of the binding force of morality, including any moral principles that may bind in the global arena. Moreover, Hobbes offers us a politically realist conception of global politics, but one in which contending sovereigns have the capacity to act honourably, with respect to other peoples, not only their own. In this way, Hobbes checks a powerful strain of contemporary international relations theory, which tends to de-emphasise or eliminate ‘intangible’ considerations like honour and connected moralistic reasons for action.2

Two Adages Hobbes’s realism about global politics is, in the first pages of De Cive, presented as an interpretation of two adages: homo homini deus and homo homini lupus (Hobbes 1839a: 135). Hobbes agreed with Erasmus that these two sayings are true. Man to man is a god and man to man is a wolf. How could both of these apparently antithetical adages be true? Erasmus had explained that, for the ancients, the former adage derives from an understanding of the gods as benefactors of men. Thus, the ancients deified things that enriched human life, including grain, wine, heavenly bodies and helpful animals. But Erasmus notes that in the course of events, it is human persons more than inanimate objects and non-rational animals who act as great benefactors to other persons, especially in sudden, unexpected ways, to provide ‘unlooked-for salvation’ (Barker 2001: 38). Meanwhile, the latter adage, Erasmus suggests, is derived from the former. It warns against entrusting ourselves to unknown persons, to placing our fate in the hands of persons of unknown character. One might object to Erasmus’s explanation that sometimes salvation, even the most profound instances of salvation, comes from persons unknown. But Erasmus does not say anything more to reconcile these explanations. The story of the Good Samaritan is an obvious illustration of the paradox. Not only the robbers who assaulted the traveller, but also the priest and Levite who ignore his suffering and pass on the other side of the road act as wolves. On the part of the priest and Levite, the duty to love

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 190

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thomas hobbes

191

one’s neighbour was understood to extend to fellow countrymen and some aliens who had settled in Israel. This should have been sufficient to generate the major premise in a practical syllogism that would issue in action on the part of the priest and Levite. Yet, if the traveller appeared dead, the priest and Levite may have believed they had a countervailing duty not to touch a dead body, under Mosaic Law.3 Meanwhile, centuries of animosity between Samaritans and Jews following the Assyrian sack of Samaria in 721 bc – and subsequent assimilation by Northern Kingdom Israelites of various pagan peoples and beliefs to become the ‘Samaritans’ – meant that a Samaritan would hardly be expected to have any interaction with a Jew, much less act charitably toward a Jewish robbery victim (and vice versa).4 Here is ‘unlooked-for salvation’ in perhaps the least expected way, since it comes from a foreigner whose character the Jews would have reason to doubt: hence the apparent paradox. The ones who are ‘known’ to the victim as countrymen–neighbours in the story act the wolf, while the ‘unknown’ foreigner acts the god. Or, to put it in the terms of orthodox Christian doctrine, the Samaritan imitates God in his communication of good to the Other, in his act of giftlove. To act the wolf is the same as to fail in love, to fail to imitate God’s love. It would seem, moreover, that Christ’s teaching indicates the obligation to love one’s neighbour and transcends nations, borders, creed, ethnicity – indeed, all accidental features of human persons. Hobbes’s realism is apparent in how he interprets the two adages. Hobbes tells us that Homo homini deus is true of relationships among fellow citizens, while homo homini lupus is true of relationships between commonwealths. In other words, within the bounds of peace and fellow-feeling enjoyed by the citizens of a polity, persons do good to one another. Notably, Hobbes offers an explanation of homo homini deus in line with the Christian understanding. As he puts it: ‘In justice and charity, the virtues of peace, citizens show some likeness to God’ (De Cive: 4, emphasis mine). Yet, between commonwealths, also known as ‘artificial persons’ in Hobbesian parlance, it is otherwise, for ‘the wickedness of bad men compels the good too to have recourse, for their own protection, to the virtues of war, which are violence and fraud, i.e. to the predatory nature of beasts’ (De Cive: Epistle Dedicatory, 4). Does Hobbes’s explanation of homo homini lupus subvert Christian orthodoxy? Did Christ not clearly teach that the obligation to love transcends the boundaries of polity? Is Hobbes harkening back to the normative provincialism of the ancient Israelites and heralding a new era of powerful, mutually distrustful nation-states, struggling for their national interests in an arena shorn of the bonds of justice, charity and honour? Or can Hobbes be read to be making a factive claim about the brutal reality of international politics as a version of the state of nature, an arena in which evildoers abound, whom the classical Christian just war theorists from Augustine to Aquinas and his successors believed must be resisted by the virtuous with violent force and deception (albeit within the limitations of just war principles)? If Hobbes’s position is closer to the latter, then Hobbes’s realism need not rule out in principle the possibility of supranational cooperation and abiding by just war principles, of acting honourably in the global arena. And yet, the condition of human nature, when combined with the urgency of the common good of the realm, would recommend a defensive posture of sovereigns in the global arena, including the capacity to act aggressively when necessary, since excellent statesmen understand that sometimes the best defence is a good offence.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 191

23/10/18 12:44 PM

192

kody w. cooper

Hobbes and the Realistic Foundations of Political Realism In order to understand Hobbes’s teaching, we need to grasp the foundations of his understanding of politics. Hobbes’s natural law theory of morality and politics should be understood in continuity with ‘realistic’ political philosophy. Not to be confused with ‘realism’ about international relations, ‘realistic’ political philosophy is the idea that a sound theory of politics is built upon truths about the exterior world and human nature that one does not construct but which one discovers. The ‘classical’ tradition of political thought – from Plato and Aristotle to Augustine and Thomas Aquinas – is exemplary of the realistic tradition so defined. While there is a kind of autonomy proper to political philosophy in Hobbes, his political teaching is not severable from (a) a particular moral conception of human nature as existing and knowable, and (b) a conception of God as existing and as causally related to the world in a specific way.5 It is therefore Hobbes’s ‘realistic’ approach that provides the ground for his ‘realism’ about the limits of domestic and global politics. Let us turn to considering Hobbes’s substantive teaching about human nature. Hobbes unabashedly affirms his realistic approach to politics: ‘The true and perspicuous explication of the elements of laws natural and politic . . . dependeth upon knowledge of what is humane nature.’6 Hobbes claimed to have discovered – and by introspection on our own inner lives, he invites us to discover – two most certain postulates of human nature: first, the postulate cupiditatis naturalis, whereby man demands private use of common things, and, second, the postulate rationis naturalis, which teaches man to avoid violent death or ‘flee contra-natural dissolution’ as the greatest natural evil.7 From these two postulates, Hobbes claims to demonstrate ‘by most evident connection’ his moral and civil doctrines. How is that? Human beings find that their fundamental powers are at cross-purposes. This is because cupidity is an insatiable impetus towards potentially infinite gain. As Hobbes puts it, by nature, human beings ‘scramble for every thing they covet, and would have all the world, if they could, to fear and obey them’ (EW, VII, 73). Meanwhile, reason grasps life as a desirable good, and violent death as an undesirable evil to be avoided. But cupidity unleashed on a massive scale generates deadly competition over scarce goods, which presents a direct threat to the goal of preservation. Thus, Hobbes’s famous portrayal of the state of nature as a condition that is ‘solitary, poor, nasty, brutish, and short’ is said to be an ‘inference made from the passions’ – by which he means cupidity untamed by reason8: that is, the passions in so far as they do not cooperate with reason. This condition, Hobbes tells us, obtains in at least three situations that were empirically verifiable in his time: among the American Indians, in the condition of civil war, and in the global arena between sovereigns. In order to exit this condition, it is necessary for reason to tame the passions in line with the goal of preservation, which means performing acts required by, and framing one’s character according to, the dictates of reason: in other words, the laws of nature. Homo hominis deus, through incorporation into commonwealth. Practically reasonable persons judge that peace, in contradistinction to war, is constitutive of the good of life. They therefore agree to erect a commonwealth and authorise a sovereign with the four features necessary to deliver temporal salvation: the escape from the hell of anarchy. These features track the Aristotelian quartet of causes. First, the ‘matter’ or material cause of the commonwealth – the people – must be fit to incorporate, which

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 192

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thomas hobbes

193

means it must be sufficiently large. Second, the formal cause is a properly formulated covenantal formula. Covenanters must agree to authorise the sovereign to do whatever is necessary to secure the peace, and transfer their right of private judgement about the best means to secure the peace. Third, the ‘power’ of the commonwealth is undivided, which is the concomitant of the efficient cause, inasmuch as the sovereign’s power is coeval with the continued commitment of the citizenry to their authorisation through law-abidingness. Finally, the sovereign is empowered for the sake of securing the peace – the final cause – where peace is understood as security and endures so long as the sovereign acts for this end. The sovereign who procures the safety will legislate and enforce laws based on the natural law and will refrain from enactments and judgments contrary to it.9 Still, even under the best conditions, one where the laws of nature are practised by citizens under the head of a virtuous sovereign, human nature remains in a broken condition, with an irrefragable potential for evil – that is, breach of law – necessitating the sovereign to have all means at its disposal. Hobbes urges people to aver this teaching by observing the human potency for evil in their own empirical experience and honest introspection. Moreover, Hobbes would contend that the actual history of international conflict is powerful support for his understanding of human nature. But it might be charged that the passions Hobbes identifies in the state of nature are not really proper to natural man, but to civilised man, and that therefore Hobbes has not really identified the truth about human nature (Rousseau 1964: 102, 107). In other words, the manifestations of cupidity in competitiveness, aggressiveness, envy, vainglory and the like all presuppose a particular sort of social milieu. To this, Hobbes would reply that the state of nature is not to be identified with the condition of primitive man in the mists of time, but rather is a potential condition of actual persons here and now, in conditions void of law and order backed by an undivided sovereign. But, again, it might be replied: fine, perhaps human beings are as you say they are, here and now. But why are they destined always to be so? Can human beings not fundamentally change for the better? Are human beings not perfectible (Rousseau 1964: 114–15)? Moreover, are human suffering and evil not just accidents of history, which might be overcome by framing the right sorts of manmade institutions and/or sufficient technological prowess? I have articulated elsewhere how, properly understood, Hobbes channels the Augustinian teaching that postlapsarian man has the potentiality for evil sown into him, which is ineradicable apart from ‘salvation absolute’10 This is unavailable this side of heaven, even with the aid of a well-ordered state. It comes only after the Second Coming, the Resurrection and final judgement, ‘by the power and favor of Jesus Christ, who for that cause is called our Savior’ (L, 38.15, 310). Jesus’s favour is the ultimate expression of homo homini deus. This is Hobbes’s answer to the objection from perfectibility: man is not perfectible by human power alone. This, in short, is the philosophical–theological basis of Hobbes’s realism about human nature and the limits of politics.

Of Lupine Gods I have already suggested that it is a mistake to read Hobbes to affirm that the sovereign is absolute, willy-nilly, in its capacity to bind citizens to act or forbear. Rather, sovereign power is ordered to the common good of peace. Accordingly, covenanters reserve the inalienable right of self-defence, since securing the good of life is the raison

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 193

23/10/18 12:44 PM

194

kody w. cooper

d’être of commonwealth. Hence, there is a set of potential ordinances (legislative acts, judgements and so on) that are inconsistent with sovereignty.11 Another way to put this is that the sovereign is bound by the laws of nature. This is why Hobbes affirms homo homini deus as true of fellow citizens of commonwealth, and why he refers to the commonwealth as a Mortal God: it is a civil person of a particular sort – a truly representative artificial person – that brings salvation from the horrors of the state of nature.12 ‘In this way, the commonwealth the Mortal God displays a likeness to God by enforcing justice and the other virtues, just as covenanters imitate God’s fiat in his creation man in their creation of the Artificial Man’ (L, Introduction). But it is precisely in so far as the sovereign is bound by the natural law to protect the realm from external aggression that it also displays the characteristics of a wolf: in other words, ‘the predatory nature of a beast’. The Hobbesian sovereign would thus appear to be Janus-faced, a lupine god. Still, Hobbes complicates the picture in his discussion of natural law and the law of nations. Recall that in the state of nature, Hobbes tells us, violence and fraud are virtues. This claim fits with the eternal, immutable and universal force of the laws of nature because the precepts of natural law bind always in foro interno, but not always in foro externo. This is because the good that is basic to Hobbes’s axiology, the good of life and death-avoidance, is the object to be secured by the practical necessities requisite to secure that good, as identified in the laws of nature. This means that practically reasonable action (which is always law-abiding) can never require self-destructive acts. But the inerasable reality of cupidity entails that there is always a potential for persons to renege on promises and seek to prey upon on promisees. Thus, the laws of nature cannot bind always in foro externo, to the putting them into action, even though they always bind in conscience, to the intention to act upon them. They bind in foro externo precisely when a sovereign comes into being that can credibly threaten their breach with sanctions, a threat that alters the potential payoff of injustice. On my interpretation, the basic duty that always binds in foro interno and in foro externo in and out of the state of nature is that of self-preservation. In the anarchic condition, in which the horizontal ties among natural persons are dissolved, the vertical ties of man to God remain. God created and ordered man toward his proper good, assigning to him the ‘special motion he thought good’, which constitutes the ‘common laws of his creation’ and which man grasps by reason (EW, VII, 133; II, 209). I argue elsewhere how this can be understood as the expression of God’s irresistible power to bind, in the mode of God’s ordained power (Cooper forthcoming). Recall also that the state of nature empirically obtains among commonwealths in the global arena, where: Persons of sovereign authority, because of their independency, are in continual jealousies and in the state and posture of gladiators, having their weapons pointing and their eyes fixed on one another, that is, their forts, garrisons, and guns upon the frontiers of their kingdoms, and continual spies upon their neighbours, which is a posture of war. (L, 13.12, 78) The situation of natural persons in the state of nature – in which they are immutably and eternally bound in foro interno to the precepts of self-preservation – is parallel to that of sovereign persons in the arena of global politics. The duty of the sovereign that

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 194

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thomas hobbes

195

always binds both in foro interno and in foro externo vis-à-vis other commonwealths is the duty to preserve the realm. In this light, consider the following passage about the law of nations: Concerning the offices of one sovereign to another, which are comprehended in that law which is commonly called the law of nations, I need not say any thing in this place, because the law of nations and the law of nature is the same thing. And every sovereign hath the same right, in procuring the safety of his people, that any particular man can have, in procuring the safety of his own body. And the same law that dictateth to men that have no civil government, what they ought to do, and what to avoid in regard of one another, dictateth the same to commonwealths, that is, to the consciences of sovereign princes and sovereign assemblies, there being no court of natural justice but in the conscience only, where not man, but God reigneth, whose laws (such of them as oblige all mankind) in respect of God, as he is the author of nature, are natural, and in respect of the same God, as he is King of kings, are laws. (L, 30.30, 233) As in states of nature made of natural persons lacking the ties of commonwealth, the global arena is a space where the laws of nature bind in foro interno always, but not always in foro externo. What does this entail, practically speaking, for global politics? Does this mean that it is an amoral condition void of all moral obligation and honourable behaviour? Or, to put it in the words of Charles Beitz, has Hobbes produced ‘the strongest argument available for skepticism about international normative principles’ (Beitz 1979: 27)? This is a mistaken reading of Hobbes, for it turns out that, by agreement, some laws of nature can obtain in foro externo validity, since the ties of reciprocity can obtain in international agreements. But it is not merely agreement because there is a binding principle underlying promissory obligations. Hobbes’s catalogue of the laws of nature has an ‘easy sum’ in the golden rule (in both its positive and its negative formulations): do (not) unto others as you would (not) have them do unto you. From this precept can be derived a range of precepts, including the fifteenth law of nature: That all men that mediate peace be allowed safe conduct. For the law that commandeth peace, as the end, commandeth intercession, as the means; and to intercession the means is safe conduct. (L, 15.29, 98) This law of nature would ground diplomatic immunity and such diplomatic conventions as would be fitting to give this practical effect. As in the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, diplomatic relations between states, including permanent diplomatic missions, obtains force ‘by mutual consent’.13 The idea is that states can advance their interests through diplomatic missions and they mutually agree to respect the immunity of diplomats. In the barest sense, each state enforces the provision by a kind of Mexican standoff, where the sending state threatens breach of immunity by the receiving state with the potential sanction of revoking immunity for those it has received from the partner state. Some sort of Mexican standoff is necessary to generate in foro externo obligations to comply with transnational agreements because it is necessary to protect states from

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 195

23/10/18 12:44 PM

196

kody w. cooper

making themselves easy prey to other states. It could be objected that this is not really acting from moral principle, but only from national self-interest or national egoism. As Beitz puts the objection, something does not count as a moral system of rules unless it includes the possibility that acting on them does not promote self-interest (Beitz 1979: 23). Hobbes would not frame the issue this way, which is suggestive of a post-Kantian outlook. He does not see an ethics of duty and a eudaimonist ethic as a strict either/ or. In Hobbes’s view – a view shared by the classical tradition of Plato, Aristotle and Aquinas – all persons necessarily act under the aspect of the good. Hobbes formulates the principle this way: ‘[A] necessity of nature maketh men to will and desire bonum sibi, that which is good for themselves, and to avoid that which is harmful’ (EW, IV, 83). And, like Aquinas, he believes that exceptionless moral norms and habits of character are both aspects of the moral life, and constitutive of happiness. Hobbes’s break from the tradition is in his thin theory of the good. Hobbes’s novelty is deriving traditional moral rules and virtues from the goods of preservation and peace, where peace is understood ‘thinly’ as security. The need for the Mexican standoff is due to cupidity, the inerasable potentiality for evil in man, in combination with the urgency and basicality of the good of life. Hobbes is not saying that all persons (natural and artificial) are, necessarily, incapable of acting from moral norms and virtues, from acting honourably. Consider the possibility of forging defence cooperatives in the focal cases of the state of nature. These groups fall short of the large size necessary for commonwealth but do provide a higher measure of security than flying solo. Since it takes only a couple of weak but guileful individuals to kill a strong individual, even strong individuals are attracted to joining defence cooperatives. In a cooperative made up of strong and weak members, the success of the cooperative seems to depend on the performance of the strong promisors, such that the security of the weak promisees stands in a dependency relationship to the strong promisors. But such an order of giving and receiving intrinsically depends upon trust amongst its members. Therefore, practically reasonable agents in the state of nature have a strong incentive to forge alliance only with people who have good reputations. ‘Good’ in this context is in the mode of what Hobbes calls the pulchrum, as in the ‘fair’ or ‘honourable’ person or object that promises some good. Honour in this sense is that which is ‘made honourable by nature’, as the effects of good qualities: ‘courage, magnanimity, strength, wisdom, and other abilities of body and mind’ (L, 28.19, 206–7). The honourable by nature, Hobbes suggests, is a ‘possession, action, or quality’ that is a sign of power, where power is understood as a present means toward some good (L, 10.37, 53). So far as is possible, one ought to form habits and perform actions that are honourable by nature because these are conducive to a good reputation in the state of nature. Analogously, commonwealths ought to perform acts conducive to an honourable reputation, for such a reputation conduces to the security of the realm. The criterion of honourableness in this sense will be the moral principles and virtues picked out by the laws of nature. In short, on my natural law interpretation of Hobbes’s theory of morality and politics, Hobbes’s view of honour is not as sharp a turning point as some scholars have argued.14 For Hobbes, it is the Foole who deems ‘successful wickedness’ to be virtuous. One cannot help but think of Machiavellian virtù, which celebrates cruelty and treachery

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 196

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thomas hobbes

197

‘well used’. But Hobbes denies that the Foole’s vision is either reasonable or just. The Foole relies upon accidental causality – including the ignorance of his allies – for the success of his double-cross. Of course, in Hobbes’s view, the victims of a Machiavellian double-crossing conqueror might ‘by plurality of voices, for fear of death, or bonds’ choose to authorise the actions of their new prince, thereby granting him a commonwealth by acquisition and all the rights of sovereignty (L, 20.1, 127). But this does not mean that all conquests are honourable. For example, Hobbes condemns the conquests of the Roman republic: But what a beast of prey was the Roman people; whilst with its conquering eagles it erected its proud trophies so far and wide over the world, bringing the Africans, the Asiatics, the Macedonians, and the Achaeans, with many other despoiled nations, into a specious bondage, with the pretence of preferring them to be denizens of Rome! (EW, II, i) Hence, Hobbes’s point about sovereigns being ultimately subject only to God in conscience does not rule out informed judgements about sovereigns’ acts in history. Moreover, Hobbes affirms a few sentences later that ‘good men’ act as wolves with right when they defend themselves from evil in the global arena. Thus, it seems that there is honourable and dishonourable lupinity. A prime example of dishonourable lupinity is acting from a desire for empire, the ultimate object of political gloryseekers, which Hobbes sees as rooted in untamed cupidity.

Honourable and Dishonourable Lupinity The discussion so far has suggested that on Hobbesian principles, the criterion of just war is chiefly a matter of intention. Those in the global arena act from a desire for glory and empire. According to classical just war theory there are a set of moral principles that must guide leaders in war, which are often divided into ius ad bellum and ius in bello. The desiderata of ius ad bellum, the justice of going to war, included just cause, legitimate authority, right intention, probability of success and last resort. Once these conditions were met, there were two principles that guided ius in bello, justice in war: discrimination and proportionality. Discrimination requires that leaders distinguish between combatants and non-combatants, and proportionality requires that the good to be achieved in an action outweigh the foreseen evil consequences. There is not space here to explore in detail how a Hobbesian war doctrine may and may not align with each of the just war principles.15 Roughly speaking, inasmuch as the principles of just war are derivable from the easy sum, sovereigns animated by honourable lupinity will strive to abide by just war principles as much as possible, while taking the ultimate lodestar of moral action to be the security (common good) of the realm. Sovereigns animated with dishonourable lupinity are not concerned with these principles as bridles of cupidity. Still, even honourable lupinity will not consider itself as strictly bound by the just cause criterion as the classical just war theorists arguably did: namely, that war is justified only by a prior direct act of war against the state.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 197

23/10/18 12:44 PM

198

kody w. cooper

Hobbes avers that in history ‘actions of honour and dishonour do appear plainly and distinctly, which are which’ (EW, VIII, vi). To conclude our discussion of Hobbes’s honourable realism, consider two cases of lupine aggression against a neutral state in history, one honourable and one not. The first example is an ancient one, recounted by Thucydides, whose work Hobbes translated and whom Hobbes praised as the greatest historian (EW, VIII, vii). As Thucydides recounts, in the sixteenth year of the Peloponnesian War, an Athenian expedition embarked against the island of Melos to flex its naval might and extend the Athenian empire. According to Thucydides, the Melians had refused to join Athens, but had maintained a policy of neutrality prior to Athenian hostility. The Athenian argument begins by claiming that justice between actors is just a matter of power: ‘the strong do what they can and the weak suffer what they must’ (Thucydides 1993: 5.89). To this, the Melians offer various arguments. They plead for a right to appeal to equity and justice in the argument, as a standard that binds strong and weak. On this basis they argue for the right of neutrality. They appeal to the Athenians’ interest, suggesting that the violation of their neutrality will incite declarations of war from them, out of fear of a similar fate. The Melians also argue they will have the favour of the gods because they are just people fighting injustice, and place hope in the help of the Spartans. To all of this, the Athenians reply that no landed neutral cities will be a threat, that the gods actually favour the Athenians, and that the Spartans will place expediency above honour. Of particular interest is the Athenian counterargument to the Melians’ invocation of divine aid. They argue that they have at least equal hope of divine favour, for they are imitating the gods, who ‘by a necessary law of their nature . . . rule wherever they can’ (5.105). In other words, the spark of cupidity, the covetous desire to rule the whole world – what Augustine called the libido dominandi – is praised by the Athenians as divinely sanctioned: we found it existing before us, and shall leave it to exist forever after us; all we have to do is to make use of it, knowing that you and everybody else, having the same power as we have, would do the same as we do. (5.105) Eventually, the Athenians would siege and sack the city, killing all the men and selling the women and children into slavery. In Hobbes’s view, the Athenian arguments and actions count as vicious lupinity. It is an aggressiveness in which desire has given in to the lust for empire and vainglory, unbound by the basic requirement of the natural law to seek peace when it can be had, and the requirement to use aggressive tactics in war only to defend the peace and security of one’s realm from evil. Contrast a modern example of state aggression against a neutral state. The years following 1789 shook Europe to the core, as the French Revolution radiated from Paris. As Winston Churchill recounts, ‘it gave rise to a generation of warfare’ – the principal contenders being Britain and Napoleonic France (Churchill 1957: 217). The rise of Napoleon was meteoric – from Corsican, to Jacobin, to general – but these were just stepping stones for the Emperor, whose heart was ‘insatiable of power’ and was set on ‘nothing less than a conquest of the Orient after the fashion of Alexander the Great’ (Churchill 1957: 235, 256). Britain, ‘the nation of shopkeepers’, and its constitutional

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 198

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thomas hobbes

199

monarchy were on an existential collision course with this empire-seeker, who by 1802 had intentions to invade Britain. After the signing of the Treaty of Tilsit in 1807 with the Russian Tsar Alexander I, Napoleon had reached the apex of his power and dominated all of Europe, with Russia as his ally (Churchill 1957: 254). Churchill vividly describes Britain’s situation: Only Brittania remained, unreconciled, unconquered, implacable. There she lay in her island, mistress of the seas and oceans, ruled by her proud aristocracy, facing this immense combination alone, sullen, fierce, and almost unperturbed. (Churchill 1957: 254) Britain’s rule of the sea was effectively noosing the continent, cutting off trade and transportation through a massive blockade. Seeking to break Britain’s maritime hegemony, Napoleon devised a scheme to seize the Danish fleet to break open passage into the Baltic Sea, which would pave the way for a joint French–Russian invasion of the British Isles. Churchill recounts the details of how the British government acted when they learned of this plan, and the fallout: The Cabinet acted with praiseworthy decision. Admiral Gambier was immediately ordered to enter the Baltic with twenty ships of the line and procure, by force if necessary, the surrender of the Danish Fleet. After a heavy action in the harbour of Copenhagen the Danes yielded to this humiliation. This act of aggression against a neutral state aroused a storm against the Government in Whig political and literary circles. (Churchill 1957: 255) Both Athens and Britain were sea powers who attacked neutral states – and the similarities end there. Athens did not need to sack Melos for its survival. Britannia faced extinction or annexation by an insatiable emperor and needed to stop Napoleon’s seizure of the Danish fleet. Moreover, the British offered generous terms of alliance, mutual defence and return of the navy after the war. It is true that the Danes had not directly attacked the British or allied themselves with her enemies (although it could be asked whether ‘neutrality’ was really morally indifferent in this contest). But, before the attack took place, Napoleon was already threatening the Danish minister, and if the Cabinet had not acted as it did, ‘the French would have been in possession of the Danish Navy within a few weeks’. Thus Churchill concludes that ‘events vindicated the promptitude and excused the violence of their action’ (Churchill 1957: 255). Notably, William Wilberforce, who was the conscientious Christian gadfly of British politics at the time, came to approve of the action.16 On Hobbesian principles, the action was an exercise in honourable lupinity because the British acted to thwart an evil aggressor with force and fraud, but with a paramount intention of a just peace, and with no intention to destroy and enslave the Danes. And indeed, since this was a crucial event that facilitated eventual British victory, it had the effect of preserving Danish autonomy in the long run from Napoleonic domination. In this way, a commonwealth might use lupine means ultimately to act as a god to others in the global arena, to effect justice and charity. On Hobbes’s terms, this was an example of political realism with honour and is vindicated by history.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 199

23/10/18 12:44 PM

200

kody w. cooper

Notes 1. For two of the most powerful arguments in this vein, see Malcolm (2002) and Lloyd (2013). For a helpful summary of some important literature in this area, including a realist reply to Malcolm’s case, see Newey (2011). 2. For a discussion of this issue and the relevant international relations literature, see Ofek (2013). 3. Leviticus 21: 1–4, 10–11. 4. Cf. 2 Kings 17: 5–12; John 4: 9. 5. See Cooper (forthcoming). 6. Hobbes (1839b: 1) (hereinafter EW). 7. Dedicatory Epistle, in De Cive: The Latin Version, 75 and EW II, viii. 8. Leviathan (1994: 13.9–10, 76–7) (hereinafter, L). 9. My account of the conditions of the social contract is similar to that of Thomas L. Pangle and Peter J. Ahrensdorf (1999: 149–52). However, my version differs in that I emphasise Hobbes’s use of the Aristotelian quartet of causes and reject positivist interpretations of Hobbes’s conception of civil law. 10. See Cooper (2013: 107–29). 11. Cf. L: 22.3, 156. 12. For an argument that the state’s salvific function is a sort of secular apocalypse that ushers in a secular version of the millennial kingdom, see McQueen (forthcoming). 13. Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, Article 2, available at (last accessed 23 April 2017). 14. See Johnson (2009). 15. For a recent argument that Hobbes affirms non-combatant immunity, and therefore discrimination, see Lloyd (2013: 288–303). 16. ‘For my own part, after much (I trust impartial), reflection, I am convinced that under all the circumstances of the case, the Danish expedition was just’ (Robert Isaac Wilberforce 2013: 345).

Bibliography Aron, Raymond (2003), Peace and War: A Theory of International Relations, introduction Daniel J. Mahoney and Brian C. Anderson, Piscataway, NJ: Transaction. Barker, William (ed.) (2001), The Adages of Erasmus, Toronto: University of Toronto Press. Beitz, Charles (1979), Political Theory and International Relations, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Churchill, Winston (1957), History of the English-Speaking Peoples, vol. 3: The Age of Revolution, London: Cassell. Cooper, Kody W. (2013), ‘Reason and desire after the fall of man: A rereading of Hobbes’s Two Postulates of Human Nature’, Hobbes Studies, vol. 26, no. 2, pp. 107–29. Cooper, Kody W. (forthcoming), Thomas Hobbes and the Natural Law, Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press. Hobbes, Thomas (1839a), Elementorum Philosophiae Sectio Tertia De Cive, in Opera Philosophica, ed. by William Molesworth, vol. II, London: John Bohn. Hobbes, Thomas (1839b), English Works, ed. by W. Molesworth, vol. IV, London: John Bohn. Hobbes, Thomas (1994), Leviathan, ed. by Edwin Curley, Indianapolis: Hackett. Johnson, Laurie M. (2009), Thomas Hobbes: Turning Point for Honor, Lanham, MD: Lexington.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 200

23/10/18 12:44 PM

thomas hobbes

201

Lloyd, S. A. (2013), ‘International relations, world government, and the ethics of war: A Hobbesian perspective’, in S. A. Lloyd (ed.), Hobbes Today, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 288–304. McQueen, Alison (forthcoming), Political Realism in Apocalyptic Times, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Malcolm, Noel (2002), ‘Hobbes’s theory of international relations’, in N. Malcolm, Aspects of Hobbes, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 432–57. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1960), Politics Among Nations, 3rd edn, New York: Alfred A. Knopf. Newey, Glen (2011), ‘Leviathan and liberal moralism in international theory’, in R. Prokhovnik and G. Slomp (eds), International Theory After Hobbes: Analysis, Interpretation, and Orientation, London: Palgrave Macmillan. Ofek, Hillel (2013), ‘The honor motive in international relations’, Master’s Report, University of Texas at Austin. Pangle, Thomas L., and Peter J. Ahrensdorf (1999), Justice Among Nations: On the Moral Basis of Power and Peace, Lawrence: University of Kansas Press. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (1964), First and Second Discourses, ed. by Roger D. Masters, New York: St Martins. Thucydides (1993), History of the Peloponnesian War, in The Landmark Thucydides, ed. by Robert B. Strassler, New York: Free Press, 5.89. Wilberforce, Robert Isaac (2013), The Life of William Wilberforce, vol. 3, London: Forgotten Books.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 201

23/10/18 12:44 PM

16 Jean-Jacques Rousseau From human innocence to the state of war: Rousseau’s theory of international relations Grace G. Roosevelt

Chapter Overview

U

nlike Hobbes, who depicted human beings as motivated by one primary, powerseeking instinct, Rousseau throughout his writings described human beings as motivated by two very different instincts, which he termed amour de soi and amourpropre. Amour de soi originates as an innocent instinct for self-preservation, while amour-propre arises as a socially stimulated instinct of competition and greed. Whether Rousseau is referring to an individual’s self-development, a sovereign state’s evolution or the dynamics of a whole system of independent states, the moral aim of strengthening amour de soi and forestalling or redirecting amour-propre is a consistent and coherent theme. After a brief overview of the ways that Rousseau’s psychological assumptions undergird his principles of political right within states, the following discussion turns to Rousseau’s writings on international relations. Crucial to Rousseau’s realism is his argument that enmity is more ‘natural’ in the international realm than it is among human beings because of the unlimited expansiveness of a state’s amourpropre. Rousseau’s psychological dualism points to two possible ways to get beyond the war system. In today’s ‘postmodern’ international context, however, where the sources of belligerence are more likely to be factions than states, Rousseau’s proposed prospects for peace may no longer be relevant. *

*

*

Rousseau begins the First Part of his 1755 Discourse on the Origins of Inequality with a description of human nature in its most basic form. If human beings were stripped of all the customs and conventions imposed on them by centuries of civilised life, Rousseau tells us, what would remain are primitive beings that are strong and adaptable, self-sufficient and solitary, and – most important – motivated solely by the harmless instinct of amour de soi, or innocent self-love. This primary instinct of amour de soi, Rousseau explains in an endnote, ‘is a natural sentiment which inclines every animal to watch over its own preservation, and which, directed in man by reason and modified by pity, produces humanity and virtue’ (Rousseau 1992: 91). Without artificial objects or social comparisons to arouse his imagination, without competition or jealousy, primitive man would have few ideas, few passions, few fears;

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 202

23/10/18 12:44 PM

jean-jacques rousseau

203

he would live in relative peace, for in this isolated state ‘his desires do not exceed his Physical needs’ (Rousseau 1992: 27). By the end of the Discourse, however, a very different image of human life has come to the fore. Having gradually come together by chance and accident to form families, then tribes, then whole nations; having developed new needs and new forms of aggression as a result of social competition and the division of labour; and finally, having contracted to form political bodies that merely reproduce de facto inequities of power and wealth, humankind is no longer free and at peace. Instead, what we are left with in the closing pages of the Discourse is the vision of a restless, insecure modern being, whose amour de soi has been almost entirely stifled by the competing instinct of amour-propre, or competitive self-love – ‘a relative sentiment, artificial and born in Society, which inclines each individual to have a greater esteem for himself than for anyone else, [and] inspires in men all the harm they do to one another’ (Rousseau 1992: 91). At this point, greed, pride and a craving for domination have so taken over human beings that the natural self is hardly recognisable. Nor, Rousseau suggests at the end of the Discourse, have civilised peoples gained any real security in their political life, for the Bodies Politic, thus remaining in the state of Nature with relation to each other, soon experienced the inconveniences that had forced individuals to leave it; and among these great Bodies that state became even more fatal than it had previously been among the individuals of whom they were composed (Rousseau 1992: 55) While a nation-state may provide some semblance of internal law and order, in the international realm the relations among states come to resemble a Hobbesian anarchy. Anticipating his later assertion in On the Social Contract that war is not a relationship between human beings but a relationship between states, Rousseau proceeds to describe modern international relations as an ongoing state of war: Hence arose the National Wars, Battles, murders, and reprisals which make Nature tremble and shock reason, and all those horrible prejudices which rank the honor of shedding human blood among the virtues. The most decent men learned to consider it one of their duties to murder their fellows; at length men were seen to massacre each other by the thousands without knowing why. . . . Such are the first effects one glimpses of the division of the human Race into different Societies (Rousseau 1992: 55) Much of Rousseau’s writing over the next twenty years can be seen as advice on ways to prevent or at least delay the psychological triumph of amour-propre and the related political triumph of the state of war. The study of political theory often demonstrates that ideas about politics are based on assumptions concerning human nature; in Rousseau’s work, his basic psychological paradigm extends even to his writings on international relations. And his solutions to the problem of war are very similar to his prescriptions for individual wellbeing. In the final analysis, however, one must ask whether the solutions to the problem of war that Rousseau offers us are still viable in the twenty-first century, for in examining the relationship between Rousseau’s psychological and geopolitical principles, one can see that his hopes for peace ultimately

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 203

23/10/18 12:44 PM

204

grace g. roosevelt

rest on the possibility of limiting amour-propre and preserving and protecting amour de soi – a fragile form of human innocence that our postmodern world may have rendered obsolete. ‘Everything is good as it leaves the hands of the Author of things; everything degenerates in the hands of man,’ Rousseau famously asserts in the opening paragraph of his great educational treatise, Émile (Rousseau 1979: 37). He proceeds to advise mothers that they ‘[f]orm an enclosure around [their] child’s soul at an early date’ and he counsels them to ‘build [a] fence’ to protect their offspring from the busy highway nearby (Rousseau 1979: 38). What specifically is it in the child that ‘the fence’ is meant to protect? Clearly, it is Émile’s amour de soi – the original instinct of self-preservation that enables a human being to survive without hostility or aggression. Re-emphasising principles already laid out in his Discourse on Inequality, Rousseau states that The source of our passions, the origin and the principle of all the others, the only one born with man and which never leaves him so long as he lives is [amour de soi] – a primitive, innate passion, which is anterior to every other, and of which all others are in a sense only modifications. Amour de soi, he asserts, ‘is always good and always in conformity with order’ (Rousseau 1979: 212–13). As a primary form of self-love, however, amour de soi inevitably comes under threat from amour-propre, the secondary, more egotistical form of self-love, as soon as the developing child becomes aware of his effects on others. As Rousseau states in Book IV, amour de soi is contented when our true needs are satisfied. ‘But amourpropre, which makes comparisons, is never content and never could be,’ since it prompts everyone to feel superior to everyone else, which is impossible. Thus what makes man essentially good is to have few needs and to compare himself little to others; what makes him essentially wicked is to have many needs and to depend very much on opinion. On the basis of this principle it is easy to see how all the passions of children and men can be directed to good or bad. (Rousseau 1979: 213–14) The aim of Émile’s early education, therefore, is to nurture the innocent instincts of amour de soi and to delay and sublimate the harmful instincts of amour-propre. Since amour-propre is activated by external stimuli, controlling the kinds of stimuli that confront the child becomes crucial. An early precaution will be to keep all items of luxury away from Émile’s protected sphere. Luxuries soften us; they prevent us from exercising and extending our own strengths and thereby make us relatively weak, dependent and envious of others. It is this envy and resentment that foster aggressiveness in the child, for, as Rousseau states with profound psychological acuity, ‘All wickedness comes from weakness’ (Rousseau 1979: 67). In order for him to develop his own strengths and integrity, Émile will also be sheltered from public opinion. Indeed, perhaps the most striking aspect of Émile’s education is his relative isolation. Removed from the inequities of city life, ignorant of conventional mores and commercial greed, never encouraged to compete with others and prevented from being tempted to dominate them, Émile’s natural amour de soi is allowed to develop and flourish.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 204

23/10/18 12:44 PM

jean-jacques rousseau

205

In his later life, Rousseau judged Émile to be his best book (Rousseau 1990: 210–11). Nevertheless, he recognised that childhood does not last, that most children are not given an education that nurtures their amour de soi, and that for modern humanity in general, adult life involves inevitable dependencies and resentments, rivalries and desires. ‘Man was born free, and everywhere he is in chains’ is the opening assumption of Rousseau’s other great work, On the Social Contract: Principles of Political Right (Rousseau 1994: 131). Here Rousseau recognises that it is too late to choose to be a natural man; we can no longer live in primitive isolation and freedom. The ties that bind us have become habitual; our needs have already made us weak. Rousseau’s proposals for a new kind of social contract thus take ‘men as they are’: that is, as they are inevitably motivated by amour-propre (Rousseau 1994: 131). ‘I assume that men have reached the point where obstacles to their self-preservation in the state of nature prevail by their resistance over the forces each individual can use to maintain himself in that state’ (Rousseau 1994: 138). Given the inevitability of amour-propre that is aroused by social life, the question becomes: how to limit its effects, how to make the ‘chains’ legitimate (Rousseau 1994: 131). As a preface to his discussion of what true political legitimacy would look like, Rousseau includes in Book I, Chapter IV a brief discussion of the use of force as a source of political legitimacy. Pushing off against both Hobbes and Grotius, who had located defeat in war as a source of political right, Rousseau reiterates the argument anticipated in his Discourse on Inequality that war is a relationship among states, not something natural to human beings, and thus that the ‘rights’ of war are very limited. In terms that were later seen as sources of international law (Lassudrie-Duchène 1906: 330–92; Hofer 1916; Vaughan 1917; Patterson 1920), Rousseau asserts that, to be legitimate, war requires a formal declaration. Moreover, The end of war being the destruction of the enemy State, one has the right to kill its defenders as long as they are armed. But as soon as they lay down their arms and surrender, since they cease to be enemies or instruments of the enemy, they become simply men once again, and one no longer has a right to their lives. (Rousseau 1994: 135–6) Having refuted previous theorists’ claims, Rousseau proceeds to argue that the only logical foundation for a legitimate political order is equality. In the Second Part of the Discourse on Inequality, Rousseau had drawn compelling pictures of the intimate connections between the origin of amour-propre and the origin of inequality. Inequality appeared with the first tribal competitions that put talent, beauty or eloquence on display; it became invidious with the development of the division of labour, private property, and a sophisticated society in which ‘to be and to seem to be became two altogether different things’ (Rousseau 1992: 51). One way, then, to limit the ravages of amour-propre would be to limit the jealousies and resentments aroused by inequality. This aim is evident in the opening chapters of the Social Contract. Describing the pact that gives legal identity to an associated people, Rousseau states, ‘first of all, since each one gives his entire self, the condition is equal for everyone, and since the condition is equal for everyone, no one has an interest in making it burdensome for the others’ (Rousseau 1994: 138). Later on, he insists more clearly on the importance of not only legal but also social equality:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 205

23/10/18 12:44 PM

206

grace g. roosevelt

Rather than destroying natural equality, the fundamental compact on the contrary substitutes a moral and legitimate equality for whatever physical inequality nature may have placed between men . . . [a]lthough they may be unequal in force or in genius, they all become equal through convention and by right. (Rousseau 1994: 144) Equal dependence on the body politic as a whole, Rousseau is suggesting, can limit egoistic pride, brutal domination and the master/slave relationships that corrupt both slave and master. At the core of Rousseau’s political and educational writings, then, is a consistent moral agenda. In Émile, the overarching aim is to nurture and protect the young person’s amour de soi – the innocent self-love that every child is born with. In the Social Contract, where Rousseau is focusing on the adults whose amour-propre is already developed, he analyses the legal, geographic, historical and moral conditions that would foster equality and thereby enable human beings to live a more secure and balanced life. I have reviewed the underlying psychological principles of Rousseau’s Émile and Social Contract in order now to demonstrate that the same distinction between amour de soi and amour-propre that appears explicitly in his writings on education and on politics can be found implicitly in his writings on ‘The State of War’ and in his responses to the Abbé de Saint-Pierre’s Project for Perpetual Peace. As in his more celebrated writings, Rousseau’s underlying aim in his international relations theory is to find ways to nurture the harmless instincts of amour de soi and to limit or redirect the destructive instincts of amour-propre. I will also suggest, however, that Rousseau’s proposals for strengthening amour de soi and limiting amour-propre in the international realm may no longer be applicable to the global conditions that have pertained since the end of the Cold War. In his early drafts of a manuscript that was probably intended to be entitled ‘Principles of the Rights of War’ but which until recently has been referred to as fragments on ‘The State of War’ (Roosevelt 1987: 225–32; Roosevelt 1990: 9–17; Bachofen et al. 2008: 21–9), Rousseau explains the origins of war in terms of the state’s natural propensity for power and domination. In the first section of the manuscript, Rousseau reiterates his anti-Hobbesian conviction that human nature itself is not the source of war. Addressing Hobbes’s assumptions directly, Rousseau asserts that primitive man is naturally peaceful and fearful; . . . all the passions that might make him brave perils and death are far from him in the state of nature. It is only after having made a society with some men that he decides to attack another one, and he does not become a soldier until after having become a citizen. (Rousseau 2005: 64) Once states are established, however, Rousseau argues that war between them becomes nearly inevitable. Pushing off from a description of the historical proliferation of state systems, Rousseau rhetorically asks why, if each one of these political bodies has a stable base, would they ever come into conflict? Should their own constitutions not keep them in peace? In answering these questions, Rousseau compares the constitution of a human being to a state. If one examines closely the way that political bodies are constituted, he says, while it may be true that theoretically each

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 206

23/10/18 12:44 PM

jean-jacques rousseau

207

state could be self-sufficient, in fact, in their relations with each other, states are much more ‘intimate’ than individuals are, and this intimacy, or interdependency, makes them more naturally prone to war (Rousseau 2005: 67). In explaining such surprising claims, Rousseau uses terms that recall the distinction between amour de soi and amour-propre. Human beings, after all, have no necessary ties to their fellow beings; natural man can ‘exist in all possible vigor without their cooperation’ (Rousseau 2005: 67). In addition, the human organism has built-in limits that keep a human being’s amour-propre within certain bounds: a man’s faculties are limited, his lifespan is short, and even his stomach has certain constraints on its ability to expand. But a state, in contrast, is an artificial body and, as such, Rousseau argues, ‘has no fixed extent. . . . It can always expand, and yet it always feels itself to be weak as long as there are any other [states] stronger than it.’ Thus, even more than is true for the envious and insecure modern man who dominates the final pages of the Discourse on the Origins of Inequality, a state’s very identity is dependent upon its relations with others: ‘Its safety, its preservation, require it to make itself more powerful than all its neighbors’ (Rousseau 2005: 67). The inequality between human beings ‘has limits set down by nature’s hands, but the inequalities of societies can endlessly increase’. Moreover, the geographical fact that most states are contiguous with other states (except in the case of states like Corsica that happen to be islands) leads them ‘naturally’ to compare themselves with each other, and this very comparison engenders competition and the ever-present possibility of aggression and attack: Thus, since the size of the body politic is purely relative, it is forced constantly to compare itself in order to know itself; it depends on everything that surrounds it, and must take an interest in everything that happens there. . . . It becomes small or large, weak or strong, according to whether its neighbor extends or contracts and becomes stronger or weaker. Finally, by making its relationships more constant, its very solidarity gives a more certain effect to all its actions and makes all its quarrels more dangerous. (Rousseau 2005: 67) The mere fact of nation-states being in proximity with one another, Rousseau is suggesting here, makes international conflict inevitable, and even well-governed states tend naturally towards war. Rousseau’s analysis of the causes of armed conflict as lying within the whole ‘system’ of independent states has prompted Kenneth Waltz and others to see Rousseau as one of the sources of realism in international relations (Waltz 1959: 165–86; Hinsley 1963: 46–61; Hoffman 1963: 317–53). As Christine Jane Carter has argued, Rousseau can be said to have a realist view of international relations in that he assumes that there can be no essential harmony of interest among nations, and that war or the threat of war will inevitable remain indispensable to rulers . . . [and] even to well-governed states which still have their own particular interest. (Carter 1987: 210) Given the ‘natural’ state of war that persists among political bodies dominated by amour-propre, does Rousseau offer any hopes for getting beyond the war system?

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 207

23/10/18 12:44 PM

208

grace g. roosevelt

Although he makes it clear that peace between nations is even harder to achieve than security among individuals, Rousseau offers the modern world two possible paths to peace – each of which applies to a very different political context and both of which are analogous to his proposals for individual security and wellbeing. In the 1980s, both of Rousseau’s paths for getting beyond the war system seemed to provide viable alternatives to the frightening nuclear arms race that forty years of Cold War had brought upon us. In a post-Cold War world, however, Rousseau’s alternative routes to peace may have become wish-lists from another age. In his Constitutional Project for Corsica and in his Considerations on the Government of Poland, Rousseau argues that small, newly constituted states might remain at peace by deliberately cultivating their autonomy and independence, and by isolating themselves from their more corrupt and competitive neighbours. Just as Émile must develop his individual amour de soi in order to resist being corrupted by the competitiveness and materialism within his own society, so Corsica and the new Poland must develop a national amour de soi in order to resist being corrupted by the competitiveness of imperialism and international trade within Europe as a whole. Using a vocabulary of images and exhortations that is closely reminiscent of the psychological theories at the core of the Discourse on Inequality and Émile, Rousseau stresses that Corsica’s distance from the mainland is her greatest resource, and he counsels the Corsicans that ‘No one who depends on others, and lacks resources of his own, can ever be free. . . . Leave negotiations . . . to the [great] powers, and depend on yourselves only’ (Rousseau 1953: 280). Accordingly, he advises the Corsicans to devote their energies to agriculture, avoid international trade, and minimise their need for luxuries and money. Rousseau’s advice to the Poles is even more explicit. In Considerations on the Government of Poland, a book of recommendations that Rousseau wrote in 1772 at the request of Polish nationalists hoping to free their homeland from Russian rule, he again makes a case for civic autonomy. [E]stablish the Republic so firmly in the hearts of the Poles that she will maintain her existence there in spite of all the efforts of her oppressors. . . . [G]ive their souls a national physiognomy which will distinguish them from other peoples, which will prevent them from mixing, from feeling at ease with those peoples, from allying themselves with them. (Rousseau 1953: 167, 169) By nurturing a kind of collective amour de soi that is strong but non-aggressive, selfcentred but also self-reliant, the Poles could avoid becoming embroiled in the international rivalries that had victimised their nation for so long. Analogous to the luxury items that Rousseau fears would make Émile dependent, and therefore weak and needy, would be Polish academies, banks and mercenaries that would make Poland weak and needy. By resisting such temptations, he says, ‘I admit that, in following this path, you will not fill the news-sheets with the noise of your celebrations, negotiations, and exploits . . . and you will not be much talked about in Europe,’ but, he continues, ‘you will live in true prosperity, justice and liberty; no one will try to pick a quarrel with you’ (Rousseau 1953: 225). Rousseau’s advice is clear. In solitude it is easy for states, as well as individuals, to be strong and good, but once people develop needs

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 208

23/10/18 12:44 PM

jean-jacques rousseau

209

and tastes that draw them into relations with others and that make them envious or dependent, innocence disappears. Thus one solution to the problem of war would be a kind of stoic isolationism, which would enable small, independent states to avoid contact with each other as much as possible, turn inward, and focus their energies on their own civic health and autarkic economic survival. Similar to Switzerland’s tradition of armed neutrality, such a system would contribute to peace by developing a ‘defense without threat’ (Fischer 1984: 30) that would avoid the dependencies and jealousies that provoke aggression: ‘Anyone who wants to be free ought not to want to be a conqueror,’ Rousseau asserts (Rousseau 1953: 237), repeating a principle that is at the core of his political and psychological theory. Seeing the vigorous strokes with which Rousseau paints a picture of small, independent republics like Poland and Corsica, it may at first seem puzzling to see him also eloquently suggesting a completely different path to peace in his ‘Summary’ (Extrait) and ‘Critique’ (Jugement) of a Project for Perpetual Peace, written by the Abbé de Saint-Pierre. The Abbé de Saint Pierre was an idealistic but ineffectual reformer of the late seventeenth century, whose unpublished papers Rousseau’s friend and benefactor, Mme Dupin, gave to Rousseau to edit and revise. Among the papers was a lengthy and repetitious ‘Project for Perpetual Peace’. Most recent commentators on Rousseau’s responses to the Project have argued either that the ‘Summary’ was disingenuous (that is, that Rousseau took up the Project only to please Mme Dupin); or that the praise for the plan in the ‘Summary’ is completely negated by the more pessimistic evaluation of the plan in his posthumously published ‘Critique’ of the Project; or that the idea for a confederation for peace contradicts the stress on national sovereignty apparent in his other writings (Carter 1987: 121–41; Riley 1973: 5–17; Bachofen et al. 2008: 229–94; Kelly 2015: 331–45). In contrast to these critics, whose work I deeply respect, I continue to believe that although the vision of small, independent and self-sufficient states was dear to Rousseau’s heart, at some level he envisioned that the politics of the future would require a system of global security analogous to the one proposed by the Abbé de Saint-Pierre. In both the Project and in Émile, Rousseau states unequivocally that the prevalence of anarchy in the international realm must cause one to ask ‘whether the establishment of society accomplished too much or too little’ (Rousseau 2005: 28; Rousseau 1979: 466) – thus implying that we have gone either too far or not far enough in the development of our political institutions. Given that the amour-propre of states cannot be eliminated, how can it be curtailed? How might the effects of national amourpropre be limited? It is in response to this challenge, I would argue, that Rousseau agreed painstakingly to read, reread and edit for posterity the Abbé de Saint-Pierre’s voluminous drafts of a Project for a Perpetual Peace in Europe. Why would Rousseau have taken on such an arduous task unless he saw the project’s long-term possibilities? Whether or not such a system can today still be considered a viable path to peace is another question. One important indication of the seriousness with which Rousseau took the Abbé’s proposal is the similarity between the conceptual vocabulary of the ‘Summary’ and that of Rousseau’s own Social Contract. Indeed, Rousseau himself hints at the similarity between the two works when he states at the beginning of his summary that the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 209

23/10/18 12:44 PM

210

grace g. roosevelt

only way of getting beyond the continual conflicts that exist between sovereign states would be by means of ‘a form of confederative government, which, by uniting Peoples by bonds similar to those which unite individuals, equally subject both of them to the authority of Laws’ (Rousseau 2005: 28). Rousseau used the term ‘confederation’ in his article on Political Economy in the same sense that he later used ‘social pact’ or ‘association’ in the Social Contract; hence there is a conceptual kinship between the two works. Both the ‘Summary’ of the Project for Perpetual Peace and the final version of the Social Contract represent forms of political association that are instituted by deliberate acts of human will, that are maintained by equality and mutual dependence, and that are finally justified in terms of their ability to ensure human security. I have developed these parallels in full elsewhere (Roosevelt 1989: 130–4; Roosevelt 1990: 96–107). Here I will simply note the emphasis that both forms of association put on legal equality as the foundation of political legitimacy. In the ‘Summary’, Rousseau states that in order to form a confederation that would be durable, it would be necessary to put all its Members into such a mutual dependence that none might be in a position to resist all the others by itself, and that particular associations which could harm the great one would encounter sufficient obstacles to impede their execution. (Rousseau 2005: 36) Later on, where he is arguing that the sovereignty of the contracting princes would not be jeopardised by such a confederation, he develops this idea of equal dependence even further. By submitting themselves to the judgement of the assembly and by depriving themselves of ‘the dangerous power of seizing the property of someone else’, Rousseau argues, political leaders would only assure themselves of their real rights and renounce those that they do not have: ‘[One’s freedom] would be alienated in the hands of a master but it is strengthened in [the hands] of Associates’ (Rousseau 2005: 44). In the Social Contract, Rousseau makes an almost identical point: Finally, as each gives himself to all, he gives himself to no one; and since there is no associate over whom one does not acquire the same right one grants him over oneself, one gains the equivalent of everything one loses, and more force to preserve what one has. (Rousseau 1994: 139) In the international realm, as in the realm of domestic politics, legal equality is proposed as the most effective means of limiting amour-propre. Often, Rousseau has been criticised for the apparent contradictions, inconsistencies and paradoxes in his writings. Most of these inconsistencies disappear once one acknowledges Rousseau’s acute sensitivity to the historical and developmental contexts of the environment that he is addressing in his writings. To protect the amour de soi and freedom of the innocent child Émile, Rousseau recommends isolation, independence and stoic simplicity. For a freely associated group of well-intended citizens (or any self-conscious group of people) whose amour-propre has already been aroused, he recommends a carefully constituted social contract that will foster equality and enforce the general will. Parallel sets of aims inform Rousseau’s writings on interstate relations. A new or small nation-state like Poland or Corsica can remain ‘good’ so

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 210

23/10/18 12:44 PM

jean-jacques rousseau

211

long as it is isolated and self-sufficient. But if geographical proximity, economic trade or military alliances have made interdependence inevitable, then, as Rousseau states convincingly in his ‘Summary’, Everyone sees that every society is formed by common interests; that every division is born from opposed interests; that since a thousand fortuitous events can change and modify both of them, [then] as soon as there is a society, a compulsory force is necessary which orders and concerts its members’ movements in order to give the common interests and reciprocal engagements the solidity they cannot have by themselves. (Rousseau 2005: 33) Given the prevalence of amour-propre in international life, Rousseau suggests in his ‘Summary’ of Saint-Pierre’s Project that to end the state of war that prevails among nation-states would require a form of collective security – a ‘compulsory force’ – that could enforce peace. Rousseau’s ‘Summary’ of Saint-Pierre’s Project for Perpetual Peace supports the Abbé’s whole-hearted endorsement of a European confederation. In his ‘Critique’ of the Project, however, Rousseau acknowledged that Europe’s ‘princes’ would never agree to it. This is not because a confederation for peace would threaten their rational self-interest. Indeed, as Christopher Kelly has pointed out in a recent article (Kelly 2015: 331–45), Rousseau emphasises that if they were to follow their rational selfinterest, political leaders would see that a confederation would protect their strength within their own states, as well as their self-interests abroad. A statesman following a policy of true realpolitik, Rousseau suggests, would wholeheartedly support the Abbé’s plan. The problem, however, is that most political leaders are not rational. Instead, they are guided by their passions, particularly the passion of amour-propre. Because of excessive amour-propre, Rousseau asserts, ‘the whole preoccupation of kings, or of those to whom they delegate their duties, centers on two sole objectives – extending their dominion abroad and rendering it more absolute at home’ (Rousseau 2005: 54). Rousseau ends his ‘Critique’ implying that the only way to unite Europe would be through some sort of forceful takeover or revolution, ‘and, on this principle, who among us would dare to state whether this European League is to be desired or to be feared?’ (Rousseau 2005: 60). Having examined Rousseau’s alternative paths to peace, let me now examine what relevance his vision has for the geopolitical situation that we find ourselves in now. As I have hinted above, it may be harder to draw useful lessons from Rousseau’s writings today than it was in the past two centuries. Rousseau’s analysis of the war system and his tentative proposals for getting beyond it rely on the possibility either of nurturing amour de soi or of limiting amour-propre. In today’s world, however, both of these possibilities seem to have vanished. As Torbjørn Knutsen has observed, the failure of the once non-aligned ‘Third World’ countries to resist the exploitation and domination of Western powers with their seductive consumer goods and double-edged trading practices makes clear the difficulty of remaining isolated in today’s interdependent economy (Knutsen 1994: 258). In the post-Cold War context, there are few areas of the globe that can remain walled off from the electronically propagated imagery of Western capitalist luxuries or from the capricious and unchecked forces of a

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 211

23/10/18 12:44 PM

212

grace g. roosevelt

global market. Dependency and envy now rule the planet; building a ‘fence’ to shelter national (or even personal) amour de soi seems to have become an impossibility. Nor is it possible to see much hope for limiting amour-propre. Here too, inexorable market forces, trade wars and weapons of unprecedented destructiveness have exacerbated the rivalries and interdependencies of peoples and nation-states. The division of labour within an increasingly interdependent world has caused a growing gap in the standard of living between the rich North and the poorer South; as Rousseau’s Discourse on the Origins of Inequality and ‘Summary’ of the Project for Perpetual Peace might have enabled one to predict, recent efforts to ‘free up’ international trade have resulted only in an increase in inequality among states. Since 1989 especially, political aims for peace have continually been submerged in the economic drive for freedom. Meanwhile, the mid-twentieth-century hopes that an effective United Nations might succeed in curtailing the amour-propre of both ‘princes’ and democratically elected leaders have been dashed to the ground by the failure of the superpowers to give such a body any coercive power or to make the structure of the organisation more egalitarian and democratic. Not only have recent developments in global communications and global capitalism called into question Rousseau’s assumptions about promoting peace, but also the explosive energies released by the end of the Cold War may call into question Rousseau’s principles concerning the nature of war. A glimpse of what the twenty-first century would bring appeared in a 21 May 1995 New York Times article entitled ‘Victims of a “Postmodern” War’ by Roger Cohen. Cohen described a surrealistic scene of a Sarajevan man, who has been made a paraplegic by a sniper’s shot, watching, from a hospital bed, a videotape of the shooting that maimed him. In the video, the victim is seen walking briskly across a street, crumpling into a fetal position as the shot is heard, and then being dragged away by a screaming bystander. Meanwhile, a United Nations peace-keeping soldier looks on, motionless. The article proceeds to state that the elements of this troubling collage (TV cameras waiting for action; ‘peace-keepers’ immobilised; civilians being maimed in a ‘safe area’) are elements of what some military analysts are now calling ‘postmodern’ or ‘future’ war. In this analysis, the ‘modern’ wars that dominated history for several centuries and culminated in the explosion of the atomic bomb at Hiroshima are disappearing. ‘They are being replaced by a new kind of conflict’, Cohen noted, ‘like that in Sarajevo, in which armies and peoples become indistinguishable,’ in which states are replaced by militias or other informal – often tribal – groupings, and which then become intractable because of the absence of ending the war through negotiation (Cohen 1995: A12; Moskos, Williams and Segal 2000). Since 9/11, the concept of war as a formal relationship between sovereign states has been blurred even further. Factionalism, not statism, now seems to be the most potent force at work in the world.

Conclusion Such an analysis confronts us with the possibility that the assumptions about the nature of war that Rousseau and others provided as a frame of reference since the dawn of modernity – that ‘war is not, therefore, a relation between man and man, but between State and State’ (Rousseau 1994: 135) – may no longer apply to postmodern

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 212

23/10/18 12:44 PM

jean-jacques rousseau

213

wars. It may be that today’s conflicts resemble those of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries more than they do those of the more recent past, and that we are now moving closer to a world that would be more familiar to Hobbes than to Rousseau. Such a possibility suggests that the assumptions about human innocence that are at the heart of Rousseau’s worldview may gradually lose their meaning in the twenty-first century. Whether new standards of morality and legitimacy will come to take their place remains to be seen.

Bibliography Bachofen, Blaise and Celine Spector (dir.), and Bruno Bernardi and Gabriella Silvestrini (eds) (2008), Jean-Jacques Rousseau, Principes du droit de la guerre: Ecrits sur la paix perpetuelle, Paris: Vrin. Carter, Christine Jane (1987), Rousseau and the Problem of War, New York: Garland. Cohen, Roger (1995), ‘Victims of a “Postmodern” War’, The New York Times, 21 May, p. A12. Fischer, Dietrich (1984), Preventing War in the Nuclear Age, London: Rowman & Allanheld. Hinsley, F. H. (1963), Power and the Pursuit of Peace: Theory and Practice in the History of Relations between States, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Hofer, Cuno (1916), L’Influence de J.-J. Rousseau sur le droit de la guerre, Geneva: Georg. Hoffmann, Stanley (1963), ‘Rousseau on war and peace’, American Political Science Review, vol. 17, no. 2, June, pp. 317–53. Kelly, Christopher (2015), ‘Rousseau and the case for and against cosmopolitan humanitarianism’, in Andrea Radasanu (ed.), In Search of Humanity: Essays in Honor of Clifford Orwin, Lanham, MA: Lexington, pp. 331–45. Knutsen, Torbjørn L. (1994), ‘Re-reading Rousseau in the post-Cold War world’, Journal of Peace Research, vol. 31, no. 3, August, p. 258. Lassudrie-Duchène, Georges (1906), Jean-Jacques Rousseau et le droit des gens, Paris: Imprimerie Henri Jouve. Moskos, Charles C., John Allen Williams and David R. Segal (2000), The Postmodern Military: Armed Forces after the Cold War, New York: Oxford University Press. Patterson, Shirley (1920), L’État de guerre and projet de paix perpétuelle, New York: G. P. Putnam’s. Riley, Patrick (1973), ‘Rousseau as a theorist of national and international federalism’, Publius: The Journal of Federalism, vol. 3, no. 1, Spring, pp. 5–17. Roosevelt, Grace G. (1987), ‘A reconstruction of Rousseau’s Fragments on the State of War’, History of Political Thought, vol. 8, no. 2, pp. 225–232. Roosevelt, Grace G. (1989), ‘The role of Rousseau’s writings on war and peace in the evolution of the Social Contract’, in Guy Lafrance (ed.), Études sur le Contrat Social: Actes du colloque de Columbia, Pensée libre, no. 2, Ottawa: Association Nord-américaine des Études Jean-Jacques Rousseau, pp. 130–4. Roosevelt, Grace G. (1990), Reading Rousseau in the Nuclear Age, Philadelphia: Temple University Press. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (1953) [1825 and 1782], Political Writings, ed. and translated by Frederick Watkins, Edinburgh: Nelson. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (1979) [1762], Émile or On Education, ed. and translated by Allan Bloom, New York: Basic. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (1990) [1776], Rousseau, Judge of Jean-Jacques, The Collected Writings of Rousseau, ed. by Roger D. Masters and Christopher Kelly, vol. 1, Hanover, NH: University Press of New England.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 213

23/10/18 12:44 PM

214

grace g. roosevelt

Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (1992) [1755], Discourse on the Origins of Inequality (Second Discourse), The Collected Writings of Rousseau, ed. by Roger D. Masters and Christopher Kelly, vol. 3, Hanover, NH: University Press of New England. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (1994) [1762]), On the Social Contract: The Collected Writings of Rousseau, ed. by Roger D. Masters and Christopher Kelly, vol. 4, Hanover, NH: University Press of New England. Rousseau, Jean-Jacques (2005) [1761], ‘The state of war’ and ‘On the writings of the Abbé de Saint-Pierre’, The Collected Writings of Rousseau, translated by Christopher Kelly and Judith Bush, ed. by Christopher Kelly, vol. 11, Hanover, NH: University Press of New England. Vaughan, C. E. (1917), A Lasting Peace through the Federation of Europe and the State of War, London: Constable. Waltz, Kenneth N. (1959), Man, The State, and War: A Theoretical Analysis, New York: Columbia University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 214

23/10/18 12:44 PM

17 Friedrich Nietzsche Nietzsche’s Dionysian political realism Paul E. Kirkland

Chapter Overview

T

his chapter treats Nietzsche as a political realist whose realism includes a complex rather than reductionist account of political life and human aims. Nietzsche’s view of the multiplicity of drives animating human action shapes an agonistic vision of politics. He treats war as a fundamental condition and offers an analysis of the relationship between thought and practice that points to limits of theoretical regime design. Nietzsche’s view can be characterised as a Dionysian realism, as his view of politics, like that of tragic art, links the orderly and the unruly in their very opposition. Any degree of order within a political body emerges only in opposition to what it resists and this sense of resistance is vital to Nietzsche’s understanding of any sort of freedom. Accordingly, Nietzsche resists all efforts at supplying universal principles for politics and describes the impulse to do so among philosophers, political thinkers and political actors as unhealthy and tyrannical. His expectation of enduring plurality and contest yields both anti-revolutionary politics and an expectation of continued conflict. This chapter shows the link between Nietzsche’s claims about grand politics and limited politics, and their roots in his Dionysian view of impermanent forms and fundamental conflict. *

*

*

Introduction Nietzsche’s realism is not based in the calculation of interests, nor is it oriented toward bringing a peaceful order. Indeed, Nietzsche sees conflict and war as an inevitable result of the complexity of humanity and the source of valuable human possibilities. While roughly Hobbesian and roughly Kantian positions are sometimes set as the opposing poles of theoretical possibilities for considering international relations, both are ultimately oriented by the goal of peace (Hobbes 1994: 96; Kant 1970: 104). Nietzsche rejects the notion that peace is either the interest or the duty of humanity. He embraces war as a condition of political and philosophical life. The inevitability and desirability of war as a generalised condition becomes quite subtle in his thought and it does not amount to a valorisation of perpetual bloody conflict. Indeed, Nietzsche’s thoughts on war, conflict and warlike qualities open a path to considering

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 215

23/10/18 12:44 PM

216

paul e. kirkland

the complexity of human motives and aims, the place of political values other than peace, and thereby the conditions for ensuring genuine plurality. Political philosophy oriented by the goal of peace from Augustine to Kant remains, in Nietzsche’s view, rooted in ideals contrary to the nature of human life. For Nietzsche, the rejection of enmity involves the rejection of the reality of human conditions and must be viewed as the effort to establish exclusive universal domination. Nietzsche’s view on political matters is informed by his deeply tragic view of human affairs and the self-destructive tendencies involved in human aspirations. Rather than aligning his view with hopes to fulfil such aspirations or to eliminate them, Nietzsche shows us their tragic inevitability, providing a realism that does not leave a pessimistic view. As his view of tragedy does not simply yield sorrow but rather an affirmation of life, he presents a tragic view as one that would incorporate conflicts and embrace the reality and multiplicity of the conditions of human life. Nietzsche’s political realism, informed by his tragic sense, allows him to offer insights on the inevitability of conflict, the value of war, the advantages of agonistic politics, the enduring tension between thought and political action and the limits of regime design.

War and Resistance Nietzsche views conflict and war not only as enduring features of political life, but also as the source of virtues he attributes to his own work. While surely counselling against hopes to eliminate war and the possibility of war, Nietzsche clearly has more than the violent actions of armies at war in mind when he writes of a warlike nature and praises warlike virtues. He describes himself as ‘warlike by nature’ (EH, Wise 7).1 His warlike qualities find expression in the way in which he engages thoughts, claims and values, and he does so in a way that exhibits the advantages of the spirit of conflict. Not only does Nietzsche write that ‘attacking is one of my instincts’ (EH, Wise 7), but also he describes the character of genuine enmity in a way that shows a priority to contest over consensus: ‘Being able to be an enemy, being an enemy – perhaps that presupposes a strong nature; in any case, it belongs to every strong nature’ (EH, Wise 7). This capacity for enmity involves seeking genuine conflict rather than the comforts of victory. As it would embrace the conflict itself as a perpetual condition of strength, it acknowledges and even values the endurance of an external opponent. Continuing to describe the capacity for enmity, he writes, ‘It needs objects of resistance; hence it looks for what resists’ (EH, Wise 7), and contrasts such quests with those of vengeance. The desire for genuine resistance is directly opposed to hopes for final victory, and it is for Nietzsche a sign of strength because it is a source of continued strength. This respect for one’s enemy and hope for the continued existence of opponents entails a kind of embrace of genuine plurality, for adequate resistance is found only in ‘opponents that are our equals’ (EH, Wise 7). Genuine equality in enmity implies the impossibility of final victory, leaving instead the enduring contest and resistance of those who hold each other’s limited positions in place. More than the warrior’s respect for the warlike virtues of other warriors, it would yield acknowledgement of the limitations of each particular position and value alternatives that emerge in resistance to it. This preference for plurality born of resistance would require a politics that was warlike and agonistic rather than peace-seeking and consensus-building.2

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 216

23/10/18 12:44 PM

friedrich nietzsche

217

Nietzsche’s critique of liberalism follows this preference for agonistic politics and brings the contribution of a tragic sense to light. By using his view of resistance to analyse freedom, Nietzsche depicts liberalism as a threat to freedom: ‘Liberal institutions cease to be liberal as soon as they are attained: Later on, there are no worse and no more thorough injurers of freedom than liberal institutions’ (TI, Skirmishes 38). The elimination of obstacles characteristic of liberalism, Nietzsche argues, makes citizens weaker, cowardly and hedonistic. By eliminating political virtues, they limit the capacity to fight for freedom and thereby the capacity for any sort of meaningful freedom.3 By contrast, ‘Those same institutions produce quite different effects while they are still being fought for; then they really promote freedom in a powerful way’ (TI, Skirmishes 38). Because freedom requires the capacity to sacrifice for freedom and resistance is the source of all strength, Nietzsche declares, ‘The highest type of free man should be sought where the highest resistance is constantly overcome’ (TI, Skirmishes 38). By showing political victories to undermine their own attainments, Nietzsche exhibits a political realism rooted in the impossibility of complete success. As is the case for liberal freedom, any one-sided success will entail its own demise as it eliminates the resistance it requires. This tragic insight informs a realism that denies the possibility of institutional solutions and rejects a progressive understanding of political history. In Twilight of the Idols, he replaces the question of return and progress with that of ascent and descent. He mocks Rousseau’s inspiration of the French Revolution and declares Napoleon to be the exemplar of a ‘return to nature’ (TI, Skirmishes 48). Napoleon, one who plays with great tasks, is the true meaning of the French Revolution and the more complete return to nature than the egalitarian doctrines of the revolution. As he demonstrates in the tragic structure of liberalism, Nietzsche finds the commander and his warlike tasks to be the deepest meaning of a revolution that declares egalitarian goals. Yet, this does not leave Nietzsche to embrace a Napoleonic politics, as some have argued (Glenn 2001; Dombowsky 2014), for Nietzsche finds in Goethe the more complete example of realism and ascending nature. Goethe becomes Nietzsche’s towering case of both naturalness and genuine freedom. Rather than a modernity defined by its idealism (whether in doctrines culled from Rousseau, the spirit of the French Revolution, or Kantian morality), Nietzsche sees in Goethe one who ‘surrounded himself by limited horizons’ (TI, Skirmishes 49) and sought ‘totality’ not by flight into an ideal, but by fighting ‘the mutual extraneousness of reason, senses, feeling, and will’ (TI, Skirmishes 49). The wholeness Nietzsche finds in Goethe appears through his manifold life and pursuits. Goethe provides Nietzsche with an example of self-creation by bringing the conflicting elements of human life into himself.4 It is worth noting that Goethe earns this high praise from Nietzsche because he does not remain one-sided but strives for totality by incorporating conflict into his own life. Declaring that ‘Goethe was a convinced realist, he said Yes to everything that was related to him in this respect’ (TI, Skirmishes 49), Nietzsche links realism with the affirmation of life (Reginster 2006; Kirkland 2009). Rather than a flight from perspective into the ideal, Goethe stands as an example of one who builds into himself the multiplicity of conflicting perspectives and possibilities for human life. For Nietzsche, Goethe’s marks a greater human possibility than even Napoleon because he embodies the realism of saying ‘yes’ to life and embodies the warring totality of a tragic spirit. Nietzsche characterises the spirit and the realism he finds in Goethe as ‘Dionysian’ (TI, Skirmishes 49), referring to his use of that name. He uses the designation of the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 217

23/10/18 12:44 PM

218

paul e. kirkland

Dionysian from his first book about tragedy (The Birth of Tragedy) and later claims it be one of that work’s great innovations. Where, in The Birth of Tragedy, Nietzsche uses Dionysus as the embodiment of the drive toward the dissolution of individuation (BT, 2), in later works he comes to use Dionysus to stand for the whole tragic sense of life affirmation (TI, Ancients 5), which he attributes to Goethe. Such yes-saying realism embraces a world of becoming, the emergence and decay of all forms. The larger sense of the Dionysian insists on viewing temporary forms in tension with their dissolution. Rather than leaving either nothingness or a primordial chaos as the alternative to order, opposition takes the place of the Dionysian wellspring from which all things come to be and into which all things pass away. Claims to completeness are necessarily misguided. Nietzsche accordingly points to the value of agonistic relations within regimes, and war (either open or implicit) as the fundamental relationship among regimes. Because of this priority, Nietzsche sets himself against all expectations of final peace, political or metaphysical. Nietzsche establishes his position as an opponent of peace, painting the goal of peace as rooted in the drive to domination and tyranny. Positioning himself in such a skirmish, Nietzsche writes, ‘Another triumph is our spiritualization of enmity (Fiendschaft)’ (TI, Morality 3). He contrasts his view of enmity with that of ‘the Church’, which would destroy all enemies and his own ability to find the value of enemies, and writes, ‘we, we immoralists and antiChristians, find our advantage in this, that the Church exists’ (TI, Morality 3). Nietzsche makes clear that the very condition of plurality is an embrace of enmity, rather than the hegemony of a single source of value. Competing cultures, political regimes and values maintain themselves in contest with one another rather than in the mere toleration that becomes its own hegemonic valuing. In his presentation of the two models of enmity, Nietzsche stakes out a position that would preserve the contest of opponents and thus the conditions of plurality. Rather than seeking the elimination of what he opposes, even as he describes it as antithetical to life, a persisting place for the institutions and values he opposes remains advantageous and perhaps necessary. He goes on to praise the ‘internal enemy’ along with external and political opposition, declaring ‘Nothing has become more alien to us than that desideratum of former times, “peace of soul”, the Christian desideratum’ (TI, Morality 3). He presents the ideal of ‘peace of soul’ as a misunderstanding that could have many explanations, ranging from exhaustion to laziness or the ‘emergence of certainty’ (TI, Morality 3). By connecting the aim of ‘peace of soul’ and hope for a ‘kingdom of God’ with the Church’s desire to destroy all enemies, Nietzsche reveals the aim of peace to be bound to tyrannical and destructive aims (Augustine 2004: 865–94). He frames the aim of peace as equivalent to the destruction of all human possibilities but one, and one hostile to life at that. The desire for peace comes to light as a desire for domination, what he earlier called ‘spiritual tyranny’ (HH, 237), and what we might now call ideological hegemony. Openness to human possibility and to genuine plurality requires, Nietzsche argues, the embrace of enmity, the expectation of the endurance of opponents, the recognition of the partiality of one’s own mode of valuing, and the willingness to assert that partiality in an appropriate and contesting manner. Nietzsche’s embrace of war and enmity are part of his opposition to tyrannical domination and ideological hegemony, and an effort to reveal the conditions of genuine plurality.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 218

23/10/18 12:44 PM

friedrich nietzsche

219

The Limits of Political Design By praising enmity and revealing its alternative as tyranny, Nietzsche offers a political realism rooted in inevitable conflict and the inherent limitations of singular political positions, regimes or values. This realism also appears in his opposition to all hopes for the theoretical construction of political orders, and he combats the expectation that the realm of ideas is the place for the solution to political conflicts. By pointing to the cultural costs of the strong state, Nietzsche demonstrates the inevitable conflicts that prevent an entirely successful regime or order among states. His realism points toward a political moderation that eschews the expectation of theoretical solutions to political problems. Nietzsche’s thought resists the dominant mode of political theory that has sought to offer prescriptive designs for political orders and regulative ideals at which they might aim. Like the desire to eliminate all enemies, he portrays the desire for a single philosophical lawgiver as tyrannical, declaring the end of the time of such tyrants (HH, 261). Nietzsche argues that the most radically new departures in thinking are inconsistent with hopes for radical political change. Contrasting the ‘political and social visionaries’ who, as a result of ‘dangerous dreams’, demand the overthrow of all orders (HH, 463) with the ‘free-thinking’ who are ‘moderate in behavior’ (HH, 464), he rejects revolutionary politics while bringing to light tensions between thought and political action. By contrasting Voltaire’s moderation and Rousseau’s ‘passionate idiocies’ on this point, Nietzsche shows the problem of the attempt of philosophy to order political regimes. The ambition to construct states from ideas, yielding coordinated progress between political and cultural development, is a delusion, springing from the false hope that conflicting human goods can coincide. Along with this general tension between cultural flourishing and state strength, Nietzsche makes quite clear that ideas should not be expected to translate in any immediate way to new institutions or new political orders. He writes of this disjunction: New beliefs in an old house. The overthrow of beliefs is not immediately followed by the overthrow of institutions; rather, the new beliefs live for a long time in the now desolate and eerie house of their predecessors, which they themselves preserve, because of the housing shortage. (HH, 466) He reminds us that the political and institutional situation in which new ideas and beliefs emerge is a condition for their growth, but these conditions are not necessarily identical to the beliefs or even consistent with them. Radical thinking need not yield revolutionary politics, and new ideas do not produce a new state. In fact, the needs of politics and those of culture are at such variance that the effort to translate one into the other is harmful to both. He suggests that the most radical thinking would have a political effect, one clearly opposed to revolutionary politics and state construction. Nietzsche argues that ‘free-thinking, when it has become a quality of character – makes men moderate in behavior’ (HH, 464). Because revolutionary action is unwise, truly free thought will discourage revolutionary hopes; it is also dangerous, not only because it will have the opposite of intended effects or produce bloodshed, but also because the passions and upheaval of revolution threaten the freedom of the cultural realm where development is really possible. Through the tension between cultural

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 219

23/10/18 12:44 PM

220

paul e. kirkland

flourishing and political strength, Nietzsche indicates inevitable obstacles to the construction of a wholly satisfactory political order. The analysis Nietzsche provides of the state’s dangerous tendency to subsume other realms owes its categories in part to the work of Jacob Burckhardt, Nietzsche’s colleague at Basel and long-term friend. Burckhardt’s presentation of the power of the state identifies it with force.5 The state’s ‘lust for power’ sets it in conflict with the realm of culture understood as an independent realm of freedom. Burckhardt’s treatment of the three powers presents the modern state as qualitatively different from other forms of political order. He explains that the ‘supremacy of the polis is . . . fundamentally different from the supreme power of the modern state’ (Burckhardt 1979: 127). Burckhardt identifies as a key to the conception of the distinctly modern state the idea that politics can conform to ‘completely theoretical political programs’ (Burckhardt 1979: 182). Both the Hobbesian desideratum of security against the chaos of war of all and the Rousseauian notion of the general will, in Burckhardt’s reading, serve to expand state power, centralise its authority and foster unattainable hopes. As political ideas have changed, ‘Then, step by step, there came into being the modern centralized state, dominating and determining culture, worshipped as a god and ruling like a sultan’ (Burckhardt 1979: 179). Burckhardt expects this process to continue, and he sees the idea of the modern state as a threat to all social freedom and all flourishing culture. The idea of the modern state, Burckhardt shows, is born in Renaissance Florence. From ‘the most modern state in the world’ (Burckhardt 1990: 65) comes the distinguishing feature of modern political thought: ‘The great modern fallacy that a constitution can be made, can be manufactured by a combination of existing forces and tendencies, was constantly cropping up in stormy times; even Machiavelli was not free from it’ (Burckhardt 1990: 71). The notion that a regime can be constructed, that a state can be a work of art, the idea that later fuels revolutionary politics and the effort to implement theoretical political programmes, and the centralisation of state power that accompanies it, constitute the great fallacy of modern political thought. Machiavelli becomes the central figure responsible for the false hope of constitutional design, ‘the greatest beyond all comparison’ of the ‘constitutional artists’ who ‘thought it possible to construct a state’ (Burckhardt 1990: 71). When he treats of the papacy, he sees in Borgia the possibility of one who ‘could have secularized the States of the Church’ and that possibility as ‘the real reason of the secret sympathy with which Machiavelli treats the great criminal’ (Burckhardt 1990: 88; Machiavelli 1998: 46–7; Guicciardini 1969: 165–9). A new mode of thinking prepares the way for the modern condition of dominant centralised state power. Burckhardt argues that the state will, step by step, increase its power and become more centralised, taking a form such that ‘no other mentality will have power over it for a very long time’ (Burckhardt 1990: 186). The prescriptions of modern political thought and the centralisation of state power will overwhelm the realm of culture so completely that it will not retain independence. Nietzsche assaults the dominance of the modern state and the ‘great modern fallacy’ that Burckhardt identifies. Using evidence from Thucydides and Plato, he looks to ancient examples to diagnose particularly acute modern problems. He claims of the Athenian polis that culture developed ‘despite the state’ in order to demonstrate that

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 220

23/10/18 12:44 PM

friedrich nietzsche

221

the antagonism between cultural flourishing and political strength has always been present. Associating Pericles’ Funeral Oration with the optimistic theories of his time, Nietzsche reminds his readers that Thucydides reveals Pericles’ optimism as a delusion in the ensuing plague (Thucydides 1989: 2.34–65). Nietzsche describes Thucydides’ account of Athens as a fiery sunset immediately preceding the nightfall of Athenian civilisation. He thereby rejects the claim of a necessary connection between Athenian politics and Athenian civilisation asserted by Thucydides’ Pericles, but also points out that the Athenian polis served culture indirectly ‘because in it an individual’s ambition was stimulated greatly, so that once he had come to the path of intellectual development, he pursued that, too, as far as it would go’ (HH, 474). The political situation was not irrelevant, nor was it successful. The permanent tension between the greatest intellectual ambitions and political ambitions comes fully to light in Athens and in the work of Thucydides. While rejecting the optimism that would expect to bring an intellectually guided political project to completion, Nietzsche also distances himself from the view of a radical opposition between the realm of thought and that of life. His anti-modernism is not best understood as nostalgic (Conway 2002), anti-political (Bergmann 1987) or uncritically retrograde (Warren 1991), but rather as rejection of modern politics and the understanding of ‘the state as a work art’ (Burckhardt 1990: 69–73). As the constructed state threatens to overrun all other goals, Nietzsche recognises the mutual threats between philosophy and politics. Where the state is so dominantly successful that it subsumes all realms, there is little room for independent thought. When philosophy tries to take the role of state-builder, it threatens the moderation that would limit the power of the state and thereby the future independence of thought. By contrast, Nietzsche offers a realism that would abandon hopes for theoretical political design and take counsel from authors like Thucydides.

Dionysian Realism In the closing section of Twilight of the Idols, Nietzsche holds up Thucydides as a great model of realism, one he contrasts with Platonism and links with tragic affirmation. Describing Thucydides as ‘my recreation, my preference, my cure from all Platonism’, Nietzsche lauds his ‘unconditional will not to gull oneself and to see reason in reality’ (EH, Ancients 2). Thucydides emerges as the great realist, by contrast with Plato, because he recognises a larger reality than what is subject to reason. We might say of him that, like Goethe, he incorporates into himself, and surely into his work, the conflicting elements of human life. Thucydides’ work involves war, of course, presenting actual Greek regimes in conflict with one another, and his material allows for a full presentation of the fundamental place of strife in human affairs. Nietzsche counsels that we ‘follow him line by line and read no less clearly between the lines’ (TI, Ancients 2). While a more complete analysis of Thucydides is beyond the scope of this chapter, a few words about Thucydides’ lauded place in the history of political realism are in order.6 Rather than simply attributing to Thucydides the Athenian thesis that ‘the strong do what they can and the weak do what they must’, Nietzsche finds Thucydides’ realism in the subtle relationship between the account of actions and speeches.7 The Athenian effort also includes elements of hopes that far

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 221

23/10/18 12:44 PM

222

paul e. kirkland

surpass any narrow realist reading of the incident (Thucydides 1998: 5.105; Orwin 1997). As they insist that the Melians accept their view of political right, compare themselves to gods and display their own hubris, Thucydides sets the stage for their self-contradictory ambitions, embodied in Alcibiades (Thucydides 1998: 6.16–18, 2.65; Forde 1989). Their simultaneous hopes to believe in their own goodness and to transcend all limitations may be said to lead to a tragic conclusion. The hopes for immortality through their actions, together with their identification with constant motion, emerge as early as Pericles’ speeches (Thucydides 1998: 2.43). Between the lines, Thucydides shows the tragic character of the Athenian regime and perhaps of politics more generally. Nietzsche rejects the optimistic claims for the convergence of cultural flourishing and political strength seen in Pericles’ funeral oration, finding the reality of this conflict in Thucydides’ own presentation of the matter. By revealing these fundamental contradictions and displaying them as a source of self-destruction, Thucydides’ work takes on the character of tragedy, and thereby attains the ranks of those Nietzsche gives the highest praise for affirming life (see, for example, TI, Skirmishes 49; TI, Ancients 5). Celebrating Thucydides for his ‘factuality’, Nietzsche distinguishes him from those who would flee the world of the contingent and particular for a realm of pure thought, or those who would try to make politics a matter of pure principle. Thucydides gives an account of what he characterises as the greatest war, one he sees as exemplary; rather than sacrificing particularity to reveal universal lessons, he maintains a connection to factual particulars, offering a book ‘for all mankind’ that keeps its general lessons fully grounded in particular examples (Thucydides 1998: 1.22). Thucydides’ courage and realism emerge for Nietzsche in opposition to the Greek philosophers who are ‘decadents of Greek culture’ (TI, Ancients 3). Nietzsche ascribes to the ascendant Greeks an ‘audacious realism’ and an ‘agonistic instinct’ (TI, Ancients 3). As he praises the agonistic character of ancient Greek politics, Nietzsche continues to embrace the political suggestions of his early essay ‘Homer’s Contest’ (Acampora 1996; Hatab 1995).8 In treating the philosophers as decadents, Nietzsche portrays the philosophical enumeration of virtues as a function of their loss not a spring for their cultivation. Yet, Nietzsche’s analysis of the decadence of the philosophers provides a way for us to incorporate decadence and aspirations to transcendence into the broadest sort of realism. Contrasting decadent philosophy and agonistic politics, Nietzsche brings them into an agonistic relationship. He addresses the impulse of decadence in his own case, attributing both ascendant and decadent qualities to himself – ‘Apart from the fact that I am decadent, I am also the opposite’ – and claiming ‘a subtler sense of smell for ascent and decline’ because ‘I know both. I am both’ (EH, Wise 1, 2). Incorporating both the Socratic decadence and the affirmative spirit of Thucydides and the tragic poets, Nietzsche points to a possibility more comprehensive than Thucydides or Socrates: one that includes both affirmation and decadence. The hopes for flight into an ideal or the negative drive to stay out of political strife are as much a part of his comprehensive political realism as the embrace of the virtues of the warlike. Because Nietzsche does not think any of the drives that animate human life can simply be eliminated, his opposition to decadent drives takes the form of the warlike appreciation of enmity. Nietzsche ‘wages war’ against what he calls ‘the theologian’s

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 222

23/10/18 12:44 PM

friedrich nietzsche

223

instinct’ (A, 9), which he identifies with the effort to find something at odds with life in which to take respite, treating it as nihilism and contrary to life, and yet rooted in a form of life, an exhausted and decadent form of life. Christianity is the expression of this, but Nietzsche is as likely to find the ‘Christian’ approach in modern politics and morality. He attributes it to ‘Leibniz, Kant, and so-called German philosophy’ (A, 61), as well as ‘Savonarola, Luther, Rousseau, Robespierre, and Saint-Simon’ (A, 54). Revolutionary politics and universal morality are clearly in the crosshairs of the war Nietzsche wages against the ‘theologian’s instinct’. Nietzsche proclaims that he has ‘dug up the theologian’s instinct everywhere’ and he characterises it as finding true ‘whatever is harmful to life’ (A, 9). None the less, like all drives, it wants power: ‘we need never doubt that what really happens at bottom: the will to the end, the nihilistic will, wants power’ (A, 9). The possibility of such a drive, one among the forces animating human beings, would eliminate the possibility of any analysis of power based on self-preservation from any narrow conception of self-interest. The quest for power among drives is complex, and as Nietzsche declares war on the instinct contrary to life, he none the less preserves its role in this combat, for none of the drives can be simply eliminated. They must be contested. In this spirit, he describes himself as a ‘tragic philosopher’, which he presents as ‘the most extreme opposite and antipode of a pessimistic philosopher’ (EH, BT, 3). Embracing a tragic spirit is neither the opposition that expects final reconciliation, nor pessimism. Yet, more than simply contrasting a realist or tragic position with a despairing or pessimistic one, Nietzsche establishes the tragic as the ‘extreme opposite’ of the pessimistic philosopher. A tragic stance is one of affirmation of life, along with all of its conflicts, and accordingly stands in opposition to the pessimistic spirit that would seek withdrawal from the world, as Nietzsche presents the core of pessimism, whether in its explicit Schopenhauerian version or the hidden form of Christianity and its derivative idealisms. Yet, Nietzsche is not simply a tragedian; he is a tragic philosopher who incorporates the decadence of the Greek philosophers and the affirmation of the tragic poets, seeking to eliminate neither the pessimism it opposes nor the affirmative spirit. In this enlarged sense, Nietzsche’s realism participates in what he calls Dionysian, ‘the affirmation of passing away and destroying, which is the decisive feature of Dionysian philosophy: saying Yes to opposition and war’ (EH, BT, 3). In this Dionysian, tragic, affirmative mode, Nietzsche brings his embrace of war and conflict into the clearest light. He offers a realism that embraces ‘becoming’ and thus characterises itself as Dionysian: not mere destruction, but the embrace of what is temporary and exists only in its opposition.

Conclusion As a ‘tragic philosopher’, Nietzsche offers a Dionysian realism, which, instead of an effort to escape the tragic and agonistic world of the political into a pure and permanent realm, as do decadent philosophers, embraces the contest inherent in bringing tragedy and philosophy together. He thereby provides the deepest sort of realism because the very drive to escape, the drive to ideals, the drive to replace lost virtues with ideals, is part of the human condition. The reality of life’s conditions and the ideals of our highest aspirations clash, generating conflicts of their own. Instead of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 223

23/10/18 12:44 PM

224

paul e. kirkland

expecting a politics that operates more rationally once we are enlightened about interests, Nietzsche proffers a realism that would keep this great tension ever in view. Nietzsche’s Dionysian realism accordingly finds its highest exemplars not in any of the political figures that draw his fascination, but in those who can incorporate the sources of conflict into themselves, as do Goethe, Thucydides and the tragic poets. While those like Aeschylus, Thucydides, Goethe and Nietzsche’s narrative persona embody a full tragic affirmation encompassing conflict, such possibilities are rare. They represent for Nietzsche the fullest type of realism but, as he makes clear in treating the state, he does not expect such realism or incorporation to translate into a political synthesis or to resolve conflict on a political plane. Instead, he envisions political life as the continuing contest and conflict of oppositions. Regimes will be dedicated to different principles, and sometimes ideals, and the relations among them will not always include common grounds from which resolution of conflicts can be derived. In Nietzsche’s view, political orders are better conceived on an agonistic model wherein the play of competing forces, rather than any final ordering principle, gives them shape. Instead of political resolution, Nietzsche’s realism would counsel recognition of the inevitability of ongoing conflicts, the limitations of any ordering principle, and the contest of incommensurable aims characteristic of the human condition.

Notes 1. I have used the following standard abbreviations for citations of Nietzsche’s work (all citations refer to section number): A: The Antichrist; BT: The Birth of Tragedy; EH: Ecce Homo; HH: Human, All Too Human; and TI: Twilight of the Idols. For sections from EH, I have used the title abbreviation to indicate the sections of the book 2. See Acampora (2013) on the general role of contest in Nietzsche’s thought, the distinction between productive and destructive contest, and Nietzsche’s relation to the thought of productive opponents. Recent literature in political theory has seen a series of efforts to work out the parameters of agonistic democracy in contrast to models of consensus. See, for example, Connolly (1988), Connolly (2005), Connolly (2008), Honig (1993), Rancière (2004), Rancière (2010), Mouffe (2006) and Mouffe (2013). 3. Lawrence Hatab (1995) argues that an agonistic Nietzschean politics could operate within a liberal framework. Jeffrey Church (2015) has argued that Nietzsche’s early work provides the basis for a meritocratic understanding of Nietzsche’s cultural concern with exemplary individuals consistent with an alternative liberalism. 4. An extremely influential interpretation of Nietzsche offered by Nehamas (1985) presents self-creation as a core aim of Nietzsche’s thought. Rather than the demand to adopt a style, this passage on Goethe suggests that the incorporation of elements is crucial to genuine self-creation and that the creative task remains in an important relationship to nature. 5. Well before Max Weber uses force as the distinguishing character of the state (Weber 2004), Buckhardt writes, ‘force always comes first’, even if the human state is ‘in some way free’ and ‘based on conscious reciprocity’ (Burckhardt 1979: 63). 6. See also Kirkland (2010), Polansky (2015) and Bedford and Workman (2001). 7. See Doyle (1990) and Forde (1995). 8. On the possible contributions of Nietzschean agonistic politics to democracy, see Connolly (1991), Connolly (2005), Connolly (2008), Hatab (1995), Hatab (2014), Honig (1993), Owen (1995), Owen (2008), Siemens (2008) and Villa (2000).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 224

23/10/18 12:44 PM

friedrich nietzsche

225

Bibliography Acampora, Christa Davis (1996), ‘Re/Introducing “Homer’s Contest”: A new translation with notes and commentary’, Nietzscheana, vol. 5. Acampora, Christa Davis (2013), Contesting Nietzsche, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Augustine (2004), City of God, Penguin Classics, translated by Henry Bettenson, Harmondsworth: Penguin. Bedford, David, and Thom Workman (2001), ‘The tragic reading of the Thucydidean tragedy’, Review of International Studies, vol. 27, no. 1, pp. 51–67. Bergmann, Peter (1987), Nietzsche: The Last Anti-Political German, Indianapolis: Indiana University Press. Burckhardt, Jacob (1979), Reflections on History, translated by M. D. Hottinger, Indianapolis: Liberty Classics. Burckhardt, Jacob (1990) [1860], The Civilization of the Renaissance in Italy, translated by S. G. C. Middlemore, New York: Penguin. Church, Jeffrey (2015), Nietzsche’s Culture of Humanity, New York: Cambridge University Press. Connolly, William (1988), Political Theory and Modernity, New York: Oxford University Press. Connolly, William (1991), Identity/Difference, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Connolly, William (1995), The Ethos of Pluralization, Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press. Connolly, William (2005), Pluralism, Durham, NC: Duke University Press. Connolly, William (2008), ‘Nietzsche, democracy, and time’, in Herman Siemens and Vasti Roodt (eds), Nietzsche, Power, and Politics, Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Connolly, William (2011), A World of Becoming, Durham, NC: Duke University Press. Connolly, William (2013), The Fragility of Things, Durham, NC: Duke University Press. Conway, Daniel (2002), ‘Ecce Caesar: Nietzsche’s imperial ambitions’, in J. Golomb and R. Wistrich (eds), Nietzsche, Godfather of Fascism, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Detwiler, Bruce (1990), Nietzsche and the Politics of Aristocratic Radicalism, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Dombowsky, Don (2014), Nietzsche and Napoleon: The Dionysian Conspiracy, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Doyle, Michael W. (1990), ‘Thucydidean realism’, Review of International Studies, vol. 16, no. 3, pp. 223–37. Forde, Steven (1989), The Ambition to Rule: Alcibiades and the Politics of Ambition in Thucydides, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Forde, Steven (1995), ‘International realism and the science of politics: Thucydides, Machiavelli, and Neorealism’, International Studies Quarterly, vol. 39, pp. 141–60. Glenn, Paul F. (2001), ‘Nietzsche’s Napoleon: The higher man as political actor’, The Review of Politics, vol. 63, no. 1, pp. 129–58. Guicciardini, Francesco (1969), The History of Italy, translated by Sidney Alexander, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Hatab, Lawrence (1995), A Nietzschean Defense of Democracy, Chicago: Open Court. Hatab, Lawrence (2008), ‘Breaking the social contract’, in Herman Siemens and Vasti Roodt (eds), Nietzsche, Power, and Politics, Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Hatab, Lawrence (2014), ‘Nietzsche’s will to power and politics’, in Manuel Knolla and Barry Stocker (eds), Nietzsche as Political Philosopher, Berlin: de Gruyter. Hobbes, Thomas (1994) [1790], Leviathan, ed. by Edwin Curley, Indianapolis: Hackett. Honig, Bonnie (1993), Political Theory and the Displacement of Politics, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 225

23/10/18 12:44 PM

226

paul e. kirkland

Kant, Immanuel (1970), ‘Perpetual peace: A philosophical sketch’, in Hans Reiss (ed.), Kant’s Political Writings, New York: Cambridge University Press. Kirkland, Paul (2009), Nietzsche’s Noble Aims, New York: Lexington. Kirkland, Paul (2010), ‘Nietzsche’s tragic realism’, The Review of Politics, vol. 72, no. 1. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1998), The Prince, translated by Harvey Mansfield, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Mouffe, Chantal (2006), The Return of the Political, New York: Verso. Mouffe, Chantal (2013), Agonistics: Thinking the World Politically, New York: Verso. Nehamas, Alexander (1985), Nietzsche: Life as Literature, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1967) [1872], The Birth of Tragedy, translated by Walter Kaufmann, in The Birth of Tragedy and the Case of Wagner, New York: Vintage. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1967ff.), Kritische Gesamtausgabe, ed. by Giorgio Colli and Mazzino Montinari, Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1977a) [1888], The Antichrist, translated by Walter Kaufmann, in The Portable Nietzsche, New York: Penguin. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1977b) [1888], Twilight of the Idols, translated by Walter Kaufmann, in The Portable Nietzsche, New York: Penguin. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1989a) [1908], Ecce Homo, translated by Walter Kaufmann in On the Genealogy of Morals and Ecce Homo, New York: Vintage. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1989b [1887]), On the Genealogy of Morals, translated by Walter Kaufmann, in On the Genealogy of Morals and Ecce Homo, New York: Vintage. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1996) [1876], Human, All Too Human, translated by Marion Faber, Lincoln, NB: Bison. Orwin, Cliff (1997), The Humanity of Thucydides, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Owen, David (1995), Nietzsche, Politics, Modernity, New York: Sage. Owen, David (2008), ‘Nietzsche, ethical agency, and the problem of democracy’, in Herman Siemens and Vasti Roodt (eds), Nietzsche, Power, and Politics, Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Polansky, David (2015), ‘Nietzsche and Thucydidean realism’, The Review of Politics, vol. 77, pp. 425–48. Rancière, Jacques (2004), Disagreement: Politics and Philosophy, translated by Julie Rose, Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press. Rancière, Jacques (2010), Dissensus: Politics and Aesthetics, translated by Steven Corcoran, New York: Continuum. Reginster, Bernard (2006), The Affirmation of Life, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Siemens, Herman (2008), ‘Yes, No, Maybe So . . . Nietzsche’s Equivocations on the Relation between Democracy and “Grosse Politik”’, in Nietzsche, Power, and Politics, ed. by Herman W. Siemens and Vasti Roodt, Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, pp. 231–68. Siemens, Herman (2009), ‘Nietzsche’s Critique of Democracy (1870–1886)’, Journal of Nietzsche Studies, vol. 38, pp. 20–37. Thucydides (1998), The Peloponnesian War, translated by Steven Lattimore, Indianapolis: Hackett. Villa, Dana (2000), ‘Democratizing the agon: Nietzsche, Arendt, and the agonistic tendency in recent political theory’, in Why Nietzsche Still, Berkeley: University of California Press. Warren, Mark (1991), Nietzsche and Political Thought, Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Weber, Max (2004) [1919], ‘Politics as a Vocation’, in David Owen and Tracy B. Strong (eds), The Vocation Lectures, Indianapolis: Hackett.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 226

23/10/18 12:44 PM

18 Max Weber Max Weber’s concept of political realism Christopher Adair-Toteff

Chapter Overview

T

hroughout his life, Max Weber was strongly committed to a particular type of political realism. From his early student years until shortly before his death, he thought and wrote about the nature and purpose of politics. Weber never wrote a comprehensive doctrine of political realism; however, one can be constructed by examining a number of Weber’s major speeches. These include his early ‘Inaugural Lecture’, which he delivered at the university in Freiburg, as well as the two lectures that he later gave at the university in Munich. This ‘doctrine’ was fundamentally human and realistic, rather than otherworldly and idealistic. It was based upon an accurate assessment of the political issues and was intended to encompass most of the foreseeable consequences. And it was based upon three guiding principles regarding politics: true clarity, real responsibility and genuine passion. The first two ensured that politics was conducted seriously and soberly, while the third guaranteed that it was pursued forcefully and vigorously. Taken together, ‘Der Nationalstaat und die Volkswirtschaftspolitik (The Nation-State and Economic Policy)’, ‘Wissenschaft als Beruf (Science as a Vocation)’ and ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’ reveal Weber as a first-rate thinker and political realist who was passionately committed to ensuring that Germany had its rightful place upon the world stage. *

*

*

Introduction Max Weber never considered himself to be a professional political philosopher; however, he possessed a conception of political thinking that was fundamentally realistic. This conception is revealed by his responses to two significant series of events in Germany: the political and economic problems that occurred during the last decades of the nineteenth century and the political and economic upheaval that came with Germany’s humiliating loss in the war. These events provided Weber with the empirical foundations for his conception of political realism. Weber never developed this conception into a complete political theory, but one can be reconstructed from his early Inaugural Lecture and his later ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’ speech.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 227

23/10/18 12:44 PM

228

christopher adair-toteff

Weber rejected the notion of ‘human nature’ but he clearly understood human interaction. As a result, Weber’s reconstructed political theory is based upon a number of realistic principles: first, do not be fooled by the illusions of universal peace and human happiness but recognise that struggle is unavoidable. Second, do not focus on the wants of a single class but consider the needs of all citizens. Third, do not be myopic and childish but be farsighted and mature. The mature politician will accept that politics is hard work and success cannot be decided by immediate factors. Instead, the mature politician will act responsibly and will base decisions on the role that his country will play in history. Weber was not a trained political theorist and the discipline of international relations did not yet exist, and what he calls political maturity is really his name for what is now referred to as political realism. Whether one chooses to call it political maturity as Weber did then or political realism as we do now, it is relevant for us today and will be for those who will confront the international problems of tomorrow.

Weber’s Early Political Thinking We know that Max Weber was interested in political issues from an early age. Not only was his father involved in German politics but also the Weber home was frequently a place where leading political thinkers gathered. More relevant, Weber investigated political issues in history while quite young – at thirteen he wrote a work on mass migration in Roman times (Kaube 2014: 53). At seventeen he was reading Heinrich von Treitschke’s multi-volume work on the history of Germany in the nineteenth century, and he wrote to his cousin Fritz Baumgarten it was pure enjoyment (Weber 1926: 29). It was only a few years later that Weber heard Treitschke’s lectures on politics. While he admired much of Treitschke’s political realism, he was concerned that he mixed his political commentary with his scientific investigations; even at this young age Weber believed that values and scholarship should be kept separate (Weber 1926: 175). Weber also objected to Treitschke’s inclination to make anti-Semitic remarks and although he also found fault with Treitschke’s tendency to promote virulent German nationalism, he tended to agree with Treitschke’s overall approach to politics. First, Weber would have agreed with Treitschke’s appropriation of Aristotle’s claim that all men are political animals (Treitschke 1897: 18–19, 23). Second, Weber would have concurred with Treitschke that ‘power is the principle of the state’, just as ‘faith is the principle of the Church’ and ‘love is the principle of the family’ (Treitschke 1897: 33, 37). Third, Weber would agree that the larger and more powerful the state is, the more responsibility it has to its people and to history (Treitschke 1897: 43). Fourth, Weber would have no difficulty endorsing Treitschke’s claim that humans are naturally inclined to struggle with each other (Treitschke 1897: 54, 60). Finally, Weber would naturally accede to Treitschke’s insistence that the state is not only concerned with the highest good but also with the furtherance of its citizens, thus the nature of the state is not only concerned with the ethical but also with power (63). What Weber learned from Treitschke helped form his responses to one of the greatest problems to confront Germany in the second half of the nineteenth century – the political and economic problems caused by Prussian landowners east of the Elbe. Weber was trained in jurisprudence and he viewed many problems through the lens of the law. However, Weber recognised early on that the law was not the only factor

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 228

23/10/18 12:44 PM

max weber

229

that determined both problems and their potential solutions. This is largely because Weber believed that many different values were often, if not always, in conflict (Turner and Factor 1984: 25, 70–1). A good case in point was Weber’s response to the conflict of values that was related to the agrarian questions in the east. The history of this problem can be briefly traced: from the mid-nineteenth century the Prussian landowning class, the Junker, were increasingly finding that they were losing money. This was caused by a number of different factors.1 One of these factors was economics: there was increasing agricultural competition from Russia to the east and the USA, whose lower grain prices forced down the price that the Junker could charge. Politically, Germany was undergoing rapid industrialisation and the Junker class was losing political power. Socially, because of these two forces, the Junker estates were compelled to increase the number of immigrant workers, especially from Poland. These replaced the German workers who were leaving the land in the east for work in the factories in the west. They were cheaper for the landowners to pay, but the increasing ‘Polonisation’ caused political, economic and cultural problems (Weber 1984a: 5–10; Weber 1984b: 1–8; see also Kaube 2014: 100–4). Weber became involved in this partially because he knew about this situation first-hand, having been stationed in and around Posen, but mostly because he was asked by the Verein für Socialpolitik (German Economic Association) to conduct the investigations into the rural labourers in the lands east of the Elbe river (Weber 1984b: 18, 23–8; Baumgarten 1964: 691; Kaube 2014: 119; Müller 2007: 43). It is evident from Weber’s writings that he drew political consequences from his empirical research. These are revealed in his work from 1892 entitled ‘“Privatenquȇte” über die Lage der Landarbeiter (Private Enquiry on the Situation of Rural Labourers)’, in which he warned against idealisation of the workers and asked whether the state would take the situation seriously enough. Questions of who is guilty or not are completely irrelevant; instead, what matters is the need to confront the problem directly (Weber 1984a: 77, 83, 85, 96, 99, 100–5). These are also indicated in a speech from the following years, ‘Die ländliche Arbeitsverfassung (The Rural Labour Constitution)’. He notes that the problem of the worker is not just an economic issue but also a major political one. That is why he was convinced that the increasing number of Polish workers was the ‘most dangerous enemy of our nationality’. He was concerned that people were underestimating the threat and said that Germany should be dealing with the problem with the same degree of strength as if an actual foreign army were threatening the eastern border. The issue was nothing less than Germany’s future (Weber 1993: 166, 174, 177, 184, 190–1, 196–7). Finally, many of these same political warnings are present in both versions of Weber’s 1894 essay, ‘Entwicklungstendenzen in der Lage der ostelbischen Landarbeiter (Developmental Tendencies in the Situation of East Elbian Rural Labourers)’. Once again, Weber insists that this problem is not merely about the changing situation of the German landowners and workers; it is about Germany’s entire future (Weber 1984a: 370, 378, 394, 416, 421, 425, 457, 460–2). These interrelated themes of economics, politics and socialculture are themes that will recur throughout much of Weber’s life. The results of Weber’s investigations into the agrarian workers’ situation in Prussia helped him tremendously; not only did they raise his profile in the Verein, but also they helped Weber secure a full professorship at Freiburg (Weber 2008: 1–3). Weber was offered the chair of Nationalökonomie und Finanzwissenschaft (Political Economy

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 229

23/10/18 12:44 PM

230

christopher adair-toteff

and Finance) in the spring of 1894 and moved to Freiburg in the autumn. He gave his famous ‘Inaugural Lecture’ in May the following year (Weber 1984a: 536). Although the speech is often referred to as his ‘Freiburg Speech’ or as his ‘Inaugural Lecture’, it is important to keep its official title in mind because it reflects many of Weber’s key points. In ‘Der Nationalstaat und die Volkswirtschaftspolitik (The Nation-State and Economic Policy)’ Weber touches on important issues in politics, economics and culture. The speech is, without doubt, critically important to understanding Weber’s conception of political realism. Wolfgang Mommsen insists that this speech was the most important document of Weber’s political thinking prior to the war. Mommsen first made this claim in 1959 and has consistently maintained it since then (Mommsen 1959: 40–1; Mommsen 2004: 38). Weber’s lecture caused a considerable stir when he gave it. And, when he published it, he added that it was not the agreement with what he said, but rather the disagreement it had provoked that prompted him to put it into print. Weber’s speech remains controversial for a number of reasons. It is controversial because it was clearly nationalistic and slightly racist. And it is controversial because critics and apologists alike suggested that in it Weber did not adhere to his major principle and that he mixed value judgements with scholarly analysis.2 Two points need to be made regarding this issue. First, Weber never said that one should avoid making value judgements; in fact, he always admitted that one could hardly avoid doing so. What he objected to was the intentional blurring of the thin line between them when one should make it clear when one has moved from the sphere of objective scholarship to the sphere of subjective values. Second, Weber explicitly states in the ‘Vorbemerkung’ to the speech that an inaugural lecture provides the opportunity for someone to give the ‘open representation and the justification of the personal’ and of one’s ‘“subjective” standpoints’ (Weber 1993: 543). Weber takes advantage of this opportunity and takes steps to ensure that his audience recognises when he moves from analysis to prescription. The speech can be divided into two sections: the first is a rather dry discussion of the economic conditions in the east while the second is, as Arnold Bergstraesser suggested, ‘eminently political’ (Bergstraesser 1957: 211).3 Weber says that the theme promises more than he could deliver and asks that his audience ‘follow him to the flat land of the Prussian Province of Westpreußen’ (Weber 1993: 545). He then proceeds to provide an overview of the social and economic situations in the region. He also discusses the various uses of the land and the different types of labourer (Weber 1993: 548–54). However, he also indicates at the outset that this choice of topic is not about some minor scholarly dispute; rather, it is about the ‘economic struggle for existence’. This theme of struggle is found throughout the lecture and it remains one of Weber’s most basic beliefs: that there is always the issue of ‘the rule (Herrschaft) of man over man’ (Lassman 2000: 83–4). The notion of ‘rule’, ‘domination’ or ‘authority’ is not particularly a concern for us here; what is important is that it is connected to Weber’s fundamental conviction that life is a struggle. Weber uses the word ‘struggle’ (‘Kampf’) and variations of it throughout the Inaugural Lecture.4 Since this is an economic struggle to the death, what is important is power (‘Macht’). Weber invokes it on almost every page (Weber 1993: 560, 560, 562, 563, 564, 565, 566, 570, 571, 572). Not to realise this is to fall for an illusion. Those who are inclined to believe in ‘primitive idealism’ are often to be found in the ‘stillness of the study’ (Weber 1993: 552). There is no peace in the eternal economic struggle; there

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 230

23/10/18 12:44 PM

max weber

231

can only be the ‘illusion of peace’, and anyone who believes in the ‘dream of peace and human happiness’ actually stands before the gates to Dante’s Hell: ‘lasciate ogni speranza’ (Weber 1993: 558–9, 572–3). It would, however, be a mistake to conclude from this that Weber held a view of power similar to that offered by Polemarchus and embraced by Thrasymachus: that ‘might makes right’ (Plato 1992: 10, 14). Instead, Weber follows Socrates to some extent in insisting that ‘might does not make right’ and that power cannot and must not be used indiscriminately. This is why Weber insists that what Germany needs is a class that is politically mature. In Weber’s view, political maturity is shown by the ability to avoid idealistic illusions and to confront political realities; it is a sense of ‘conscious self-control’ and the recognition of the need for ‘sober work’ (Weber 1993: 563, 674). And it must be not restricted to the needs of a single class or group but must recognise the needs of all of the people (Weber 1993: 563–6, 569). Finally, it is the recognition that the mature political leader understands that he has an obligation to history (Weber 1993: 571, 573). Weber was concerned that Germany lacked such mature politicians and he laid much of the blame on Bismarck and his policies. The result of these was that no class was trained to lead: not the nobles, not the proletariat and not the bourgeoisie. As Weber’s later speeches revealed, he was concerned that there was no one on Germany’s political horizon who might possess the necessary political maturity.

Weber’s War Experience and its Consequences Weber continued to teach at Freiburg and then he accepted the call to Heidelberg. Unfortunately, his mental and physical collapse made it impossible for him to continue his university functions. After years of recuperation he still did not feel that it was possible for him to resume his position, so after several attempts he was finally successful in persuading the government to permit him to resign his chair. He was finally well enough to resume writing and spent the time from 1904 to 1914 working on various studies, including the Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism, the Russian Revolution of 1905, labour conditions in German factories, and the research for what would become known as Wirtschaft und Gesellschaft (Economics and Society). Like many other Germans, Weber initially greeted the outbreak of the war with enthusiasm. He was convinced that Germany was justified in fighting and hoped for a speedy end to the hostilities. However, his lengthy stint in a Heidelberg hospital during the autumn of 1914 made him acutely aware of the number and severity of the casualties and caused him to appreciate the huge costs for Germany and for the world. As the war moved into its second and third years, it became even more obvious to Weber that Germany was not going to win. As a result, he grew even more sober-minded about Germany’s political future in the world (Weber 1926: 525–43; Kaube 2014: 350–9; Weber 1984a: 153). In February 1916, Weber published a brief but rich piece entitled ‘Zwischen zwei Gesetzen (Between Two Laws)’. In the volume from the Max Weber Gesamtausgabe it takes up less than five pages, but in it he spells out clearly and fully the differences between two types of country and two political approaches (Weber 1984a: 95–9). As with many previous writings, as well as many later ones, Weber takes up the issue of Germany’s responsibility towards history (Weber 1984a: 95). Weber differentiates between smaller countries and larger ones, and makes it very clear that he is not just

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 231

23/10/18 12:44 PM

232

christopher adair-toteff

speaking about geographical size or population numbers. Instead, he distinguishes between countries that have less power and those who have more power. Again, he insists that the smaller countries are no less important but maintains that they have different responsibilities. As examples of the smaller countries Weber lists Denmark, Holland, Norway and Switzerland (Weber 1984a: 95). These countries do not have much power and as a consequence they do not have as many responsibilities. But Germany is fundamentally different: because it is a ‘world power’ it has many responsibilities, not just to its own citizens but also to the world. Weber allows that little states do not have much weight on the scales of history but insists that Germany does and with that comes more responsibility. Weber warns that one should not blithely poke something in the wheels of history and then try to walk away. Nor does he believe that one can sit around the tea table and pretend neutrality is the only answer. Regarding the second of these, Weber has in mind the Americans and the fact that, if they really were pacifists, then the matter would be different. But they are not real pacifists because they do not draw the consequences of their pacifism. However, there is no such middle ground; it is a simple either/or. Either one completely follows the dicta from the Sermon on the Mount, like Tolstoy, or one accepts that power is ‘diabolical’, as Jakob Burckhardt described it (Weber 1984a: 95). If a country takes up power, then it has the obligation to act responsibly, and for Weber that means recognising that it has an obligation to history. In other words, the ‘Weltmacht (world power)’ must face up to the ‘Forderung des Tages (demands of the day)’ (Weber 1984a: 98).5 The choice is simple: either one embraces the otherworldly ethics of the ‘God of Christianity’, or one accepts this world’s warring gods and values. Since a great country accepts that it has power, then it must act maturely on the world’s stage. Weber’s concern about America was well founded, for he was convinced that if Germany decided to engage in unlimited submarine warfare, then the USA would no longer stay out of the war. Wolfgang Mommsen details Weber’s concern in his Max Weber und die Deutsche Politik, as well as in the editorial comments to Weber’s article ‘Der verschärfte U-Boot-Krieg (Unrestricted Submarine Warfare)’ (Mommsen 1959: 241–51; Weber 1984a: 99–110). This article is obviously focused on a serious problem that occurred during the war but, as with many such writings, one can learn a great deal about Weber’s sense of political responsibility. First, there is Weber’s concern that too many people involved in this discussion were not being realistic; they were too quick to dismiss the claim that unlimited submarine warfare would induce the Americans to enter the war (Weber 1984a: 116, 121). Second, Weber believed that too many people were so focused on the specific problem that they were either unwilling or unable to consider other possible ramifications stemming from increased submarine warfare. These possible ramifications had little to do with the issue of warfare itself, but they did relate to Germany’s ability to bring in raw materials by ship. If Germany were to escalate the marine conflicts, then it was reasonable to expect its opponents would be far more inclined to attack German commercial ships (Weber 1984a: 120–1). Third, Weber was angered by the quick change of political opinion because it indicated a lack of seriousness and he was just as annoyed by facile claims about finding the ‘way to peace’, as if it were just some minor issue of what path to take (Weber 1984a: 122). What was needed was a ‘totally sober assessment’, a healthy regard for all possible consequences, and a real sense of responsibility (Weber 1984a: 118, 124).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 232

23/10/18 12:44 PM

max weber

233

The final article that is important for understanding Weber’s political realism is the one he published at the end of 1916. Once again, he warns against the same attitudes and feelings that lead to a politics of vanity and a culture of hate (Weber 1984a: 164–5, 171, 181). He also warns about heated speeches (Weber 1984a: 170, 182–3). Weber admits that he has nothing against ‘hate and anger as such’ but insists that they have no place in ‘real politics’ (‘sachliche Politik’).6 What ‘real politics’ is, is a politics guided by reason and proportion; it is the politics of serious deeds and not foolish talk. It is ‘a politics of silent commerce’ (Weber 1984a: 165). It is also the realisation of who the real enemy is: one not based upon some historical myth or some contemporary prejudice (Weber 1984a: 171, 177). For Weber, Germany’s real enemy does not lie in the West, but rather in the East; it is not Germany or France, but Russia and Poland. He grants that he is regarded as an ‘enemy of Poland’ and admits that he has warned for years against the Polish practice of working for low wages, but he has never engaged in the ‘Pan German, crazily aggressive and inconsequential vocal politics against the Poles’ (Weber 1984a: 187). But he is warning against the Slavic danger, one that threatens not only German’s physical existence but also ‘our entire culture’ – and by that Weber means ‘world culture’ (Weber 1984a: 180). It is Germany’s responsibility as a world power to stop this threat, and as a ‘“Realpolitiker”’ a German must do so. It is Germany’s duty and destiny, and Germans must do so out of a sense of honour and responsibility to world history (Weber 1984a: 181, 190, 192–4). The war continued for almost two more years and each successive year provided Weber with further examples of the failure of vanity politics and ‘illusionary optimism’. Just as the Prussian situation in the 1890s helped Weber formulate his mature politics, the horrendous losses of the war prompted him to work harder to develop a more reasonable (and more successful) theory of political leadership.

Weber’s Later Political Realism Weber’s final and fullest discussion of what politics is and how it should be conducted is found in the speech that he gave in Munich on 28 January 1919. Entitled ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’, it should be regarded as the companion piece to his earlier speech ‘Wissenschaft als Beruf (Science as a Vocation)’. Both speeches belonged to the four given in a lecture series called ‘Geistige Arbeit als Beruf (Mental Works as a Vocation)’ (Weber 1992: 59, 114). He was concerned that ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’ might not be well received and complained that he was unable to formulate the theme properly (Weber 2012: 403, 411). This helps explain why Weber began by warning that his audience was bound to find his speech disappointing. It is also because he often began speeches by claiming that what he will say will probably not meet the expectations of his audience (Weber 1992: 71). Weber begins by speaking of the state: he does not talk about it as an abstract entity or about its constitutional genesis; rather, he describes it simply in terms of force. Weber’s blunt realism must have shocked some of his audience, and what must have shocked them even more was his invocation of Trotsky’s dictum that ‘Every state is founded on force’ (Weber 1992: 158). Nor is Weber interested in beginning with any discussion of party politics; instead, he states as a matter of fact that ‘He who strives for politics, strives for power’ (Weber 1992: 159). Weber distinguishes between the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 233

23/10/18 12:44 PM

234

christopher adair-toteff

non-political bureaucrat who follows his own ‘calling’ and the political person who is driven by party considerations (Weber 1992: 189). Weber then takes up the question of the real relationship between politics and ethics. Weber answers this question in a roundabout way, contrasting those who are totally uninterested in politics with those who are. To help clarify this, Weber provides his famous distinction between two types of ethics: ‘Gesinnungsethik’ (‘ethics of conviction’) and ‘Verantwortungsethik’ (‘ethics of responsibility’). The former bases all decisions on the ‘Sermon on the Mount’ with the recognition that one is never, ever, justified in returning violence with violence. Weber is adamant about the unconditionality of the ‘Sermon on the Mount’ and the absolute ethics of the Gospels. If one is subject to an evil attack, one must not return it with evil. If one is struck on the cheek, there is absolutely no other course but to turn the other cheek. Its absoluteness of principle means that there can be no concern about consequences. To underscore this, Weber quotes from Martin Luther: ‘the Christian does what is right and leaves the consequence to God’, and the more famous insistence, ‘ich kann nicht anders, hier stehe ich’ (‘I can do no other, here I stand’) (Weber 1992: 237, 250). Weber recognises that this type of ethical command is so stringent and so otherworldly that only a few are able to practise it. He lists Jesus, the Apostles and Saint Francis: in other words, one must be a holy person and as such ‘not from this world’ (Weber 1992: 234–5, 247).7 Weber respects these saintly, otherworldly types with their refusal to enter politics and their absolute rejection of force. Weber then moves on to discuss those who believe in politics and separates them into two groups. The first group contains people who, for various reasons, are not suited to politics but believe that they are entitled to be involved. Keep in mind the fact that Weber gave this speech just after war’s end and during the revolutionary events that occurred in Berlin, Munich and a few other cities. Weber made it abundantly clear in various letters that he thought the ‘revolution’ was a farce; he referred to it several times as a ‘carnival’ and accused the participants of ‘playing’ at it (Weber 2012: 294, 296, 307–8, 329, 356). Here, in ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’, Weber refers to it again as a ‘carnival’, led by ‘a pair of dictators of the street’. For many of these ‘revolutionaries’ this is a ‘frivolous intellectual game’ engaged in by political dilettantes (Weber 1992: 223, 227–8). These dilettantes believe that they are entitled to use force because they are guided by a ‘noble intention’ (‘edle Absicht’) (Weber 1992: 234). Instead, these are irresponsible political idealists, misguided journalists and crazy ‘warriors of faith’ (Weber 1992: 172, 192–6, 246).8 ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’ may be a critique of many political types, but it also contains Weber’s prescription for a real political leader. This prescription applies to the leader of the state but applies equally well to the political leader on the international stage. The real political leader has three characteristics: ‘Leidenschaft’, ‘Augenmaß’ and ‘Verantwortungsgefühl’. None of these three characteristics is easy to define and so Weber makes some effort to explain them. In ‘Wissenschaft als Beruf (Science as a Vocation)’, Weber insists that the scholar must have a sense of ‘passion’ (‘Leidenschaft’) for his work; without a sense of enthusiasm, it is unlikely that the scholar will accomplish anything. Weber readily admits that scholarship is often a slow and tedious effort, but it still needs both dedication and that ‘manic’ something. Indeed, Weber insists that anything worth doing is worth doing only with ‘passion’.9 In ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’, Weber stresses the importance

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 234

23/10/18 12:44 PM

max weber

235

of ‘Leidenschaft’ but distinguishes this ‘true passion’ from what he refers to as ‘sterile excitement’ (Weber 1992: 249). Weber borrows the term from his friend Georg Simmel and they both use it to describe the worthless agitation that certain Russian intellectuals and most of the German ‘revolutionaries’ engage in (Weber 1992: 227). One gets the sense that Weber and Simmel would liken this to the noisy yapping of an easily excitable little dog. The second characteristic is ‘Augenmaß’: that is, ‘eye measurement’. What this implies is the ability to eye things correctly; Weber defines it as ‘the distance to things and people’ (Weber 1992: 227). What he means is the ability to stand back and gain the proper perspective. It is the complement to the first characteristic: whereas ‘Leidenschaft’ is ‘hot’, ‘Augenmaß’ is ‘cool’. Weber recognises the difficulty in having both but insists that the lack of distance is one of the ‘deadly sins’ of every politician (Weber 1992: 227–8). The lack of distance to one’s self is especially dangerous because it is ever present. This ‘deadly enemy’ is ‘vanity’ and it disrupts dedication to the matter at hand. This is the selfish desire to place oneself in the foreground, and it almost invariably leads to ‘lack of responsibility’ (Weber 1992: 228–9). With this, Weber comes to the final and perhaps most important of the three characteristics. ‘Verantwortungsgefühl’ is the feeling or sense of responsibility. Weber always links the possession of power with the notion of responsibility; those who lack power have no responsibility, but those who do possess power must accept it (Weber 1992: 218–20, 226). By responsibility, Weber means not only forecasting the possible results but also accepting them as well. Weber is under no illusion that a human can predict the future, but he does insist that people do have the capacity to figure out the possible (‘foreseeable’) consequences of an action. And, he insists that, unlike the ‘Gesinnungsethiker’, the ‘Verantwortungsethiker’ must honestly accept the results. Weber insists that the two different ethics are based upon two fundamentally different approaches: ‘Gesinnungsethisch’ is based upon the absolute principle of non-violence while the ‘Verantwortungsethisch’ is based upon power. While Weber insists that the two are based upon two completely different maxims, he admits that they do occasionally overlap (Weber 1992: 237). Those who are driven by power often have principles, and those with the absolute principle sometimes do take responsibility. What he objects to is those who claim to believe in the highest principle but are willingly to employ force to achieve their aims. Specifically, Weber has in mind those revolutionary socialists who, when faced with the choice between one more year of war and then revolution, or peace immediately but no revolution, do not hesitate to choose the former, even if they have no real assurance that this revolution will be good for anyone (Weber 1992: 239). For Weber, this world is the ‘world of realities’ and that means seeing things as they really are and not how one would like them to be (Weber 1992: 240). It is nice to think that good can come only from good and bad can come only from bad, but in reality, one often comes from the other. Weber insists that anyone ‘who does not see this is in fact politically a child’ (Weber 1992: 242). Those who seek salvation for their souls or for others should choose a path other than politics; politics means force and is one of the ‘diabolical powers’ (Weber 1992: 249). Those who cannot tolerate stupidity or baseness have no place in politics; only those who are certain that, when faced with these things, they can still say ‘Dennoch’ (‘nevertheless’) – only they have the ‘calling’ for politics.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 235

23/10/18 12:44 PM

236

christopher adair-toteff

Conclusion Weber never believed that man had a special nature but he did always believe that conflict between people was natural. His recognition of the inevitability of conflict meant that he also realised that there could be no such thing as eternal peace. He saw conflict throughout his life but two long-term conflicts had a major impact on his thinking: the east Elbian agrarian conflict and the world war. He recognised that vanity, self-interest and even hubris played major roles in both; these historical conflicts prompted Weber to consider the issue of what could be done to minimise the tragic consequences of these conflicts. His answers, first formulated in his early Freiburg speech and then developed more fully in his later Munich lecture ‘Politik als Beruf (Politics as a Vocation)’, provide a theoretical framework for the political realist. Like the local politician, the person engaged in the international arena must have three fundamental qualities: passion, cool distance and, above all, a sense of responsibility. Conflict can never be eliminated but the damage does not have to be so massive – if one adheres to what Weber thought of as political maturity or what we might refer to as political realism.

Notes 1. For a nuanced account of Weber’s preoccupation with the economic, political and social– cultural problems arising from the Junkers, see Torp (1998: especially 7–13, 100–1, 108). For a recent examination of the complex issues arising from the agrarian problems, see Adair-Toteff (2016). 2. See Mommsen (1959: 41). 3. In his scholarly works, Weber invariably begins with concepts but with his more political writings he often begins with dry facts. For examples of the former, see Weber (2008: 71–6, 163, 197–202); Weber (2009a: 72–6); Weber (2009b: 66–75). For examples of the latter, see Weber (1994: 71–4, 157–8). 4. Weber uses variations on this phrase, which signals how important he thinks this is: ‘economic death struggle’, ‘struggle for existence’, ‘struggle for power’ (Weber 1993: 545, 553, 558, 560, 565, 567, 573). 5. Weber will use this phrase again at the end of ‘Wissenschaft als Beruf (Science as a Vocation)’. While he is speaking about the dedication that the scholar has to his work, his comments apply equally to the political leader. So too does his assertion that this is easy to do when he finds his ‘Daimon’ and holds on to the ‘threads of his life’ (Weber 1992: 111). 6. ‘Sachliche’ can mean ‘serious’, ‘objective’ or ‘practical’ and Weber often employs this term to contrast the mature type of politics with the childish type and its crazy talk and demagogic speeches. He says he has had enough of ‘the demagogy of these politicians of vanity’ (Weber 1984a: 168, 165). Weber reminds us that the first person to be called a demagogue was Pericles and not Cleon (see Adair-Toteff 2008). 7. In a letter from 13 November 1918, Weber made the same point about the unconditionality of this type of ethics. Either one follows the command never to do evil and one lives like Saint Francis or Saint Clara, or an Indian monk or certain Russians – in ‘Politik als Beruf’ he identifies certain characters from Tolstoy and Dostoevsky. Alternatively, one resists evil with force, in which case one is responsible for the outcomes (Weber 2012: 301; Weber 1992: 247). 8. Weber respected principled revolutionaries, such as August Bebel and Ernst Toller, but had nothing but disgust for revolutionary charlatans like Karl Liebknecht and Rosa Luxemburg

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 236

23/10/18 12:44 PM

max weber

237

(Weber 2012: 221, 300, 304, 310, 698–9). When Weber wrote about the ‘pair of dictators of the street’, he ostensibly meant Liebknecht and Luxemburg (Weber 1992: 223, note 104). For a discussion of Weber’s relation to Toller, see Adair-Toteff (2007). 9. ‘Denn nichts ist für den Menschen als Menschen etwas Wert, was er nicht mit Leidenschaft tun kann’ (Weber 1992: 81–3).

Bibliography Adair-Toteff, Christopher (2007), ‘Max Weber and Ernst Toller: Realists or idealists?’, History of the Human Sciences, vol. 20, no. 1, pp. 1–17. Adair-Toteff, Christopher (2008), ‘Max Weber’s Pericles: The political demagogue’, Max Weber Studies, vol. 7, no. 2, pp. 147–62. Adair-Toteff, Christopher (2015), ‘Max Weber and the agrarian questions’, in Alan Sica (ed.), The Anthem Companion to Max Weber, London: Anthem. Adair-Toteff, Christopher (2016), Max Weber’s Sociology of Religion, Tübingen: Mohr Siebeck. Baumgarten, Hermann (1964), Max Weber: Werk und Person, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Bergstraesser, Arnold (1957), ‘Max Webers Antrittsvorlesung in Zeitgeschichtlicher Perspektive’, Vierteljahrshefte für Zeitgeschichte, vol. 5, no. 3, July, pp. 209–19. Kaube, Jürgen (2014), Max Weber: Ein Leben zwischen den Epochen, Berlin: Rowolt. Lassmann, Peter (2000), ‘The rule of man over man: Politics, power and legitimation’, in The Cambridge Companion to Max Weber, ed. by Stephen Turner, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 83–98. Mommsen, Wolfgang (1959), Max Weber und die Deutsche Politik: 1890–1920, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Mommsen, Wolfgang (2004), Max Weber und die Deutsche Politik, 3rd edn, Tübingen: Mohr Siebeck. Müller, H.-P. (2007), Max Weber: Eine Einführung in sein Werk, Cologne and Vienna: Böhlau. Nipperdey, Thomas (1998), Deutsche Geschichte: 1866–1918, vol. II. Machtstaat vor der Demokratie, Munich: C. H. Beck. Plato (1992), The Republic, translated by G. M. A. Grube, revised by C. D. C. Reeve, Indianapolis and Cambridge: Hackett. Scaff, Lawrence (1989) [1984], ‘Weber before Weberian sociology’, in Reading Weber, ed. by Keith Tribe, London and New York: Routledge, pp. 15–41. Torp, Cornelius (1998), Max Weber und die preußischen Junker, Tübingen: Mohr Siebeck. Treitschke, Heinrich von (1897), Politik: Vorlesungen gehalten an der Universität zur Berlin, vol. I, ed. by Max Cornelius, Leipzig: G. Hirzel. Treitschke, Heinrich von (1898), Politik: Vorlesungen gehalten an der Universität zur Berlin, vol. II, ed. by Max Cornelius, Leipzig: G. Hirzel. Turner, Stephen P., and Regis A. Factor (1984), Max Weber and the Dispute over Reason and Value: A Study of Philosophy, Ethics, and Politics, London: Routledge and Kegan Paul. Turner, Stephen P., and Regis A. Factor (1994), Max Weber: Lawyer as Social Thinker, London: Routledge. Weber, Marianne (1926), Max Weber: Ein Lebensbild, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Weber, Max (1984a), Zur Politik im Weltkrieg: Schriften und Reden 1914–1918, ed. by Wolfgang J. Mommsen with Gangolf Hübinger, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. I, section 15. Weber, Max (1984b), Die Lage der Landarbeiter im ostelbischen Deutschland: 1892, ed. by Martin Riesebrodt, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. I, section 3.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 237

23/10/18 12:44 PM

238

christopher adair-toteff

Weber, Max (1988), Zur Neuordnung Deutschlands: Schriften und Reden 1918–1920, ed. by Wolfgang J. Mommsen with Wolfgang Schwentker, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. I, section 16. Weber, Max (1992), Wissenschaft als Beruf/Politik als Beruf, ed. by Wolfgang J. Mommsen and Wolfgang Schluchter with Birgitt Morgenbrod, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. I, section 17. Weber, Max (1993), Landarbeiterfrage, Nationalstaat und Volkswirtschaftspolitik: Schriften und Reden 1892–1899, ed. by Wolfgang J. Mommsen with Rita Aldenhoff, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. I, section 4. Weber, Max (1994), Briefe 1909–1910, ed. by M. R. Lepsius and W. J. Mommsen, Tübingen: Mohr Siebeck. Weber, Max (2008), Agrarrecht, Agrargeschichte, Agrarpolitik: Vorlesungen 1894–1899, ed. by Rita Aldenhoff-Hübinger, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. III, section 5. Weber, Max (2009a), Arbeiterfrage und Arbeiterbewegung: Vorlesungen 1895–1898, ed. by Rita Aldenhoff-Hübinger with Silke Fehlemann, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. III, section 4. Weber, Max (2009b), Allgemeine Staatslehre und Politik (Staatssoziologie) (Unvollendet. Mit- und Nachschriften 1920), ed. by Gangolf Hübinger with Andreas Terwey, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. III, section 7. Weber, Max (2011), Abriß der universalen Sozial- und Wirtschaftsgeschichte: Mit- und Nachschriften 1919/1920, ed. by Wolfgang Schluchter with Joachim Schröder, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. III, section 6. Weber, Max (2012), Briefe 1918–1920, ed. by Gerd Krumeich and M. Rainer Lepsius with Uta Hinz, Sybille Oßwald-Bargende and Manfred Schön, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Max Weber Gesamtausgabe, vol. II, section 10.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 238

23/10/18 12:44 PM

19 Walter Lippmann A ‘society realist’ reconciling humanity and power Alan Chong

Chapter Overview

W

alter Lippmann’s particular brand of realism is grounded in the quest to steer human survival through the jungle of power politics in spite of the basic flaws of human nature. As such, Lippmann is a ‘realist’ to the extent that he acknowledges the overriding political impulses to attain power for self-aggrandisement but he is doing so in order to persuade statesmen to pursue sustainable foreign policies. In this regard, Lippmann’s prognoses always end up recommending states to embed their national interests in some form of due regard for their fellow nation-states and wider humanity. This tension between power politics and the preservation of humanity can be discerned by analysing his treatment of human nature, its religious fixation and its relationship with nationalism; the tensions between national interest and peaceful coexistence; and the difficulties of equipping public opinion for making an impact in foreign affairs. In short, Lippmann may well have served as America’s version of the ‘English School’ Realism. Through Lippmann’s pen, Realism has a conscience. *

*

*

‘Lippmannist’ realism exhibits chameleonic traits. It straddles a concern for kindling the human spirit in a positive manner while also calling for a rational and reflective governmental discipline. When this tension is projected on to the plane of international relations, Walter Lippmann espouses the balance of power in tandem with a liberal international order to secure the national interest. In stretching Realist horizons, Lippmann is visibly concerned with the welfare and aspirations of the human being. Politics, following Aristotle and Plato – and, some might argue, Confucius and Mencius from Asia as well – should ultimately serve the human being. In this regard, Lippmann deserves the label of a ‘society realist’ for a number of reasons. First, his interpretation of human nature takes its reference from the relationship between the human being and God. The problem of the atomised, morally unmoored and potentially unhinged individual living in a web of modernity is represented as a condition that demands redemption. Second, power in all realms of politics must be clarified towards specified ends that are coherently argued and defensible across time. Third, nation-states, like individuals, are best assured of their sustainability and their delivery of the good life for their constituents if they are prepared to coexist peacefully

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 239

23/10/18 12:44 PM

240

alan chong

with diversity in ideology. Finally, Lippmann espouses an eternal need to educate both political leaders and their followers for making good decisions and living with them afterwards. One can contrast these characteristics with the standard interpretations of contemporary Realists of the likes of Hans Morgenthau and Kenneth Waltz to sense a difference in approach. In Kenneth Waltz’s so-called first image analysis, the question of human nature is fudged in this pithy summary: ‘the evilness of men, or their improper behaviour, leads to war; individual goodness, if it could be universalized, would mean peace’ (Waltz 1959: 39). Based on this static reading of the nature of man, Waltz goes on to argue that: To control rapacious men requires more force than exhortation. Socio-political institutions, especially if the writer in question is this-world oriented, tend to move to the centre of the stage. The assumption of a fixed human nature, in terms of which all else must be understood, itself helps to shift attention away from human nature – because human nature, by the terms of the assumption, cannot be changed, whereas social–political institutions can be. (Waltz 1959: 41) This is precisely why one must study Lippmannist realism as an antidote to the Waltzian structural determinism that assigns ultimate causation to institutions qua states arrayed in terms of their power and interests. Waltz is not the philosopher of Realism in the fullest sense that Lippmann is. The latter articulates his realism from the potential of a malleable human nature. Lippmann’s writings suggest that to be a realist is not tantamount to embracing an ideology of instrumental callousness and pessimism towards world politics. This chapter, along with Lippmann’s entire corpus of works and his interpreters, is not meant to be a quick and easy guide to operationalising Realism for political leaders and bureaucrats. It is instead an invitation to reflect on the nature of ‘power politics’ and to reach Lippmann’s intended conclusion for his readers that man is trapped in systems of modernity that distort his full capacities for thinking of alternatives to war and acting on those alternatives. Realism is emphatically not to be measured merely by the yardstick of building political shock absorbers against hostile outsiders and thence reciprocating their hostility with war and other forms of violence. To distil Lippmannist realism, this chapter proposes to treat his contribution through four themes: human nature; nationalism; building international society for a pragmatic peace amongst ideologically diverse states; and the equipping of public opinion as a force in foreign policy. Finally, the conclusion will argue that Lippmannist realism will be invaluable in addressing twenty-first-century controversies involving relations between states as well as, more broadly, questions of global governance involving both sovereign, supra-sovereign and sub-sovereign actors, especially individuals. In these ways, Lippmann showcases a side of socially concerned realism few in the twentieth century have fully appreciated in the shadow of the two World Wars and the Cold War.

Human Nature As a Masters student in Philosophy at Harvard University between 1906 and 1910, and a reporter after that, seasoned with stints in between as a student leader and charity worker for the poor and homeless, Lippmann acquired multiple avenues of insights

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 240

23/10/18 12:44 PM

walter lippmann

241

into human nature. As a result, the secondary literature that had grown up around Lippmann attributed to him assorted labels such as Progressivism, Pragmatism, Socialism and Platonism (Morrissette 1984; Steel 1980: Chs 2–5). One of his early biographers, Larry Adams, even attributed to him the trait of ideological adaptability to the burning issues of the day (Adams 1977). At various points in his career, he was an intellectual friend of American presidents Theodore Roosevelt, Woodrow Wilson, Franklin Roosevelt and John Kennedy. At other points, he turned against the administration of the day in admonition of their unsustainable policies. This variegated intellectual trajectory, along with his obsession with Freudian psychoanalytics, has, in all probability, coloured and deepened his philosophical inquiry into the motivations of human nature (Soderlund 2005; Schuett 2010: 38–43; Imhoff 2012). Yet others are critical of his literary and intellectual capriciousness (Eulau 1956). This chapter chooses, however, to treat Lippmann as a more coherent thinker than others have believed it possible. The very opening statement of his first important book, published fresh out of Harvard while he was working as a journalist, testifies to some unchanging foundations of Lippmann’s beliefs: Politics does not exist for the sake of demonstrating the superior righteousness of anybody. . . . In fact, before you can begin to think about politics at all you have to abandon the notion that there is a war between good men and bad men. That is one of the great American superstitions. (Lippmann 2006: 1) Instead, to navigate politics, one must fundamentally appraise the nature of man inductively and objectively. The human being is driven by impulses to desire or want all of the time. Lippmann chose, for instance, the illustration of how a man may be motivated to consume alcohol for a variety of reasons ranging from thirst, to depression, to the need for distraction from domestic troubles or joblessness (Lippmann 2006: 20). Historically, government has sought to cure the wayward impulses with laws that prohibit and put in place the institution of the police to administer those laws. Man’s negative impulses are kept in line by punishment or the threat of it. This is a very negative definition of existence. Over time, an extreme and unnatural condition arises from the climate of restriction. Man is lulled into a mechanical-like existence devoid of initiative and creative leadership. Problems are routinely solved within the matrix of the threat and the curb. This is not an admirable state of affairs. Neither is it sustainable for a government that desires to marginalise the mafia and other private forms of governance that operate above and below the law to pander directly to human cravings. Within the history of New York’s evolution as a city of settled migrants and naturalised Americans, Lippmann praised an unlikely source of alternative government within the impersonal jurisdiction of constitutional government – Tammany Hall, in all its underground brilliance in catering to people’s wants without the trappings of law, formality and constitutional strictures. Tammany Hall’s informal social networks1 both provided and supported candidates in New York’s local and statewide elections from the late 1700s up till the Second World War. Notwithstanding its ingrained practices of patrimonial politics, kickbacks and other corrupt exchanges between the needy and the politically entrepreneurial, Tammany Hall formed the basis of a Democratic political machine that no ambitious politician in the state could do without. In today’s

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 241

23/10/18 12:44 PM

242

alan chong

political science parlance, this is termed variously as ‘society’, ‘grassroots politics’, ‘the 99%’, ‘sanctuary city’ or the alternative globalisation of the masses (Medina and Bidgood 2016). Lippmann’s purpose in graphically invoking Tammany Hall is to call attention to the need for government/politics to be pragmatically engaged with the impulses of the people they are supposed to be concerned about (Morrissette 1984: 42–3). Otherwise, the people will embrace alternative politics that respond to their needs, including pandering to their vices. Corrupt social and political circles constitute society for the marginalised, dispossessed and disillusioned. A true leader cum intellectual must therefore always be wary of the man in government who follows the habit of routine and contrives to mould the citizens under his oversight into the same. The frequent reference to precedents and the wisdom of past righteousness is a symptom of this face of governmental misreading of human nature. The habit of following precedent may lead down the path of blind alleys, making one the slave of repeating wrongs perpetrated in the past. This livelier ‘other face’ of human nature is the capacity to think afresh every time a problem occurs. This explains why Lippmann drew upon his philosophical acquaintance with Plato’s cave analogy. The ordinary citizens, qua followers of the routinised leadership of bureaucrats, mistake for reality the ‘shadows of the imagination’, since they are metaphorically chained by the prohibitions of constitutional government to look straight ahead at the proverbial walls of the cave, and at one another’s routinised lives, without being able to enjoy the freedom to turn their contemplative gaze toward the entrance of the cave where the true light emanates from (Diggins 2009: xxiii). In his second major work, A Preface to Morals (1929), Lippmann calls attention to the need to restore a new religiosity to counter the trappings of the modern absolute state. The whole notion of the modern state is both theoretically and actually absolute since it defines itself as a legitimate monopoly of force, and by extension of the administration of law and justice, the right to tax, punish, organise families and interfere with personal opinion (Lippmann 2009: 80). One might even label the state liberal and democratic, but it is so only in name. The modern man appears to have his impulses tamed and directed towards healthy pursuits compatible with stability. There is nothing wrong with the tame, routine-following man except that he has become less of a human being. He has no contemplation space within a universe of meanings, nor a universal moral reference point, except for the political authority of a mechanical state. Here Lippmann’s own colourful panegyric to a lost world of ideal liberal citizenship deserves quoting at length: For the modern man who has ceased to believe, without ceasing to be credulous, hangs, as it were, between heaven and earth, and is at rest nowhere. There is no theory of the meaning and value of events which he is compelled to accept, but he is none the less compelled to accept the events. There is no moral authority to which he must turn now, but there is coercion in opinions, fashions and fads. . . . They compel his body and his senses as ruthlessly as ever did king or priest. They do not compel his mind. (Lippmann 2009: 9) The arrival of the modern absolute state was conversely the story of the erosion of the Catholic Church’s civil power that was once vested in the blended political and religious institution of the Papacy. Secular political revolutions (that is, in

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 242

23/10/18 12:44 PM

walter lippmann

243

1648, 1776, 1789, 1830, 1848, 1871 and 1917) produced a popular sovereignty that vested the rights of the peoples in their worldly sovereigns purportedly representing their best interests. In response, the Papacy could proclaim its sovereignty only over the Word of God and other matters ecclesiastical. The modern absolute state had to fill its populations’ minds with a new creed – nationalism. This was to prove fissiparous for world politics. Not surprisingly, Lippmann offers us this familiar sketch of the birth of modern international relations as the relationship between nation-states acknowledging no authority higher than themselves: the dethronement of a universal Catholic Providence in favour, or through the default, of an absent universal religion, a series of contesting, jealous nationalisms prone to getting their way through combat.

Nationalism In Lippmann’s imagination, nationality or nationalism is at best a necessary ideological fiction for navigating the modern society of mankind that is comprised of innumerable ‘interdependent and interacting’ elements that do not take reference from Providence. In his polemic The Good Society, published in 1938 and reprinted twice in the middle of World War Two, Lippmann treated nationalism as a substitute for the God that both contemporary liberalism and fascist totalitarianism had banished. Nationalism was intended to be the social adhesive that solved the problem of social intimacy within the era of scientific, machine-like, bureaucratic logic. In Lippmann’s mind, a hypothetical family starting with the marital union of one couple, will produce children who will marry outside their lineage and produce grandchildren, and the latter will likewise produce further offspring in their marital turn. When society procreates on this scale, nationality forges a higher, transcendental plan of emotional connection across the multiplied lives. The latter are united by something propagandised to be more tangible than mere blood ties: The house, the street, the meadow and hill upon which he first opened his eyes, the reactions to family and strangers which remain as the types of his loves and hates, the earliest sounds which brought fear and pleasure – these are the stuff out of which nationality is made. . . . We huddle to the people with whom we played as children. . . . The alleys and the rookeries where we first met the world are transfigured in memory. They are us, more poignant than recent attachments, deeper than all later theories. Whatever conflicts with them breaks down. We cannot imagine anything to be right or worthy which these dumb affections do not sanction (Lippmann 1915: 60–1, emphasis mine) Through these down-to-earth phrases, Lippmann approves of the positive aspects of nationalism as a response to the alienation of modern life. But he emphatically notes that these are indeed dumb affections in the sense that nationalism often calls upon its adherents to suspend rational, critical thinking. As Lippmann interpreter Anwar Hussain Syed has observed, Lippmann had consistently treated nationalism as a mortal God and a sleeping giant not to be awoken lightly. Once aroused, it can douse the spirit of reason and induce mass psychosis for war (Syed 1963: 37). Lippmann distinguished two phases of nationalism in reference to European history. Pre-1870 nationalisms

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 243

23/10/18 12:44 PM

244

alan chong

acted to unite the disparate warring peoples of Europe into nation-states satiated with their borders and newly embraced fraternities. The ‘tradition of Washington, Hamilton, Cavour and Bismarck’ was praiseworthy. After 1870, nationalism had been transformed into ‘the justifying principle of particularism’ (Lippmann 1944a: 133). Moreover, fascist totalitarianisms have honed their response to the problematique of modern social complexity into a fine art of melding nationalism with freedom. These regimes take nationalism to an extreme by ‘train[ing] their peoples to desire only what the state desires, to have no purposes but the official purposes, to feel free because they have become habituated to conform’ (Lippmann 1944a: 55). The individual becomes acculturated to life within regimentation. The soldier loses his sense of natural freedoms, half by training for obedience, half by induced acclimatisation to regimental culture, to live with ‘the strategy of the generals or the tactics of the officers’ (Lippmann 1944a: 55). In the hyper-energised nationalism that is fascism, the violence of the secret police, censorship and concentration camp is a necessary transition to a harmonious collective – the good society. The Second World War manifested this extreme under Mussolini and Hitler. Before these two, Lippmann was already appalled by the imperialism of Kaiser Wilhelm’s Germany in 1917. In that year, Syed noted that Lippmann had been driven to the verge of denouncing all nationalism as an ideology of debased modernity, returning the world to an anarchy of petty rivalries and ancient hatreds (Syed 1963: 38–9). Mass populations and their equally deluded leaders were infected with the illusion that nationalism, yoked to a strong, exclusionary statehood, could solve all social, economic and political problems. Lippmann’s rumination under the clouds of the Second World War identified the problem to be the illusion of supremacy precipitated by the jingoism inherent in extreme nationalism. The pursuit of supremacy cannot be tempered by either international law or diplomatic compromise. In language reminiscent of Thomas Hobbes and Niccolò Machiavelli, Lippmann warned that when peace is attained between states vying for supremacy, it is no more than ‘an armed truce during which the warriors prepare for the next battle . . . [thus] there is a condition of continuing war with intervals in which there is no fighting’(Lippmann 1944a: 155). Amidst this gloom, Lippmann reminds his readers that the liberals in the nineteenth century had offered a solution to the nationalist thirst for supremacy: [T]he threat of total wars for supremacy was to be ended by liquidating the privileges that made supremacy valuable to those who possessed it and onerous to those who did not. The liberals had said, in effect, that men would cease to fight for political power when they became indifferent to it, and that they would become indifferent when its influence on their lives was negligible. This was how the religious wars had ended when men no longer believed that eternal salvation could be determined by the force of the secular arm. But in matters of income, of trade, property, and wages, the post-war generation believes fervently that earthly salvation can be determined by the secular arm. (Lippmann 1944a: 154–5) Clearly, by taking a leaf from the liberal playbook joined to his characteristic pragmatism, Lippmann begins to burnish his credentials as a ‘society realist’.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 244

23/10/18 12:44 PM

walter lippmann

245

International Society for a Pragmatic Peace: Advocating Expedient Toleration Lippmann’s ideas for securing a peace amongst nation-states acknowledging no world government is centred upon his appreciation of the problem of tolerating the sheer diversity of contending ideologies and values that guide governments. Like his contemporaries E. H. Carr and Alfred Zimmern across the Atlantic, the failure of the League of Nations experiment in the interwar years weighed on his intellect. Initially, in working with officials of the Woodrow Wilson administration, he sought to foster a culture of cooperative nationalism whereby governments practised peaceful international intercourse on the basis that diverse national interests acknowledged that their freedom of pursuit and manœuvre could be secured only by upholding some measure of unity in international relations (Syed 1963: 39). His indictment of the outcome of the Peace of Versailles was synonymous with his views on why the first experiment in producing a world parliament of sovereign states failed: [T]he policies of the great powers did not correspond with the postulates of the international system they had designed. This was revealed at once in the terms imposed upon the vanquished nations. The military and economic clauses of the treaties, and certain of the territorial provisions as well, were designed to keep them for at least a generation weak and disorganized, and in a status of moral inferiority. . . . But in imposing a Punic Peace, the Allied and associated powers demonstrated that they were no longer acting on the nineteenth-century principle of supremacy restricted in its exercise by the tenets of liberalism. (Lippmann 1944a: 153) In this regard, Lippmann acknowledged the relevance of Thomas Hobbes’s analogy of anarchy – ‘war of every man against every man’ – leaving states faced with value conflicts amongst one another no choice but to provide a negative peace through the balance of power (Lippmann 1955: 157). In the balancing of power, whether in domestic or international contexts, the ‘general rule’ was to avail oneself of the rivalry of others by manœuvring in such a way that one’s rivals oppose and deter one another. In such a situation, when the power of rivals ‘neutralises’ their hostility towards themselves and towards oneself, one can then ‘govern’ them as the holder of the balance. If a balance of power is achieved, there is an opening for a more civilised and stable condition of political life among states: In the measure that power is checked by power, that opposing powers are in balance, neither can prevail. Both are constrained within a common situation. In this condition, when the ponderable forces are in balance, neither being able or willing to exert decisive force, the imponderable means of reason become efficacious. Inter armis silent leges. In the clash of arms the laws are silent. We may add that in the truce of arms the laws are heard. (Lippmann 1955: 158) At this point, Lippmann advocates stabilising international relations on the basis of acknowledging differences among states while acknowledging that competition needs to be regulated amongst them, and where possible, states practise principles of peaceful coexistence through the piecemeal implementation of international law. Hence,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 245

23/10/18 12:44 PM

246

alan chong

this is where Versailles and the League failed: neither practised peaceful coexistence but instead codified the inequality of power. The League discriminated against the vanquished and small states. The victorious powers ‘distributed’ the colonial territories of the Central Alliance in balance-of-power fashion under the noble label of ‘trusteeship’ administered through the League of Nations. Despite his despair at the outcomes of the Great War (1914–18), Lippmann had, in fact, proposed in 1915 that institutions of ‘local internationalism’2 be created, whereby permanently convened and autonomous multinational civil service apparatuses oversee the necessary programmes of democratic schooling and administrative guidance in the territories that were to be brought up to the level of self-determining nation-states (Lippmann 1915: 133–5). The point is to depoliticise these liberated territories and their populations from great power machinations. This was, of course, the precursor of what, in the late twentieth century, the United Nations would conceptualise as peace-building missions in subSaharan Africa, former Yugoslavia and Cambodia. Interestingly, Lippmann sought his inspiration for local internationalism from a number of international conferences that have often been categorised as vehicles for balancing power amongst the reigning European empires: the Berlin Conference of 1885 on West Africa, the London Conference after the Balkan Wars of 1911–12, and the 1905 Algeciras conference on the fate of Morocco (Adams 1977: 92; Lippmann 1915: 130–49). It is quite clear that Lippmann was motivated by the need to forge a minimalist notion of society amongst sovereign nationalistic states. International relations will not allow the untrammelled pursuit of national interests amidst conditions of permanent war and preparation for it. The ‘armed truce’ may be tolerable, provided states learned practical habits of coexistence. These thoughts were crystallised in his opinions on American Cold War policy that originated at the close of the Second World War. Standing apart from the mainstream of policy thinking, Lippmann counselled Washington to repair the political breach with General Charles de Gaulle, notwithstanding the latter’s independence in attitude towards world affairs. Lippmann courted more controversy when he admonished Churchill for attempting to bargain with Stalin to allow pro-Western governments to surface in Warsaw and Athens, while conceding Romania, Bulgaria and large parts of Hungary and Yugoslavia to the USSR’s sphere of influence. Lippmann argued that, given Poland’s proximity to the USSR and the history of its borders since Versailles 1919, the Poles had to come to terms with Moscow and accept the latter’s more viable guarantee of their territorial integrity (Steel 1980: 414–15). Even during the first two decades of the Cold War, Lippmann steadfastly opposed containment against the Soviet Union, pitting him squarely against George Kennan’s dominance of American Cold War doctrines. In October 1958, Lippmann interviewed Premier Nikita Khrushchev in Moscow and reported his encounter in this vein, clearly putting a Lippmannist imprint on his impressions: Communism, he [Khruschchev] said, is indeed a great danger to you as an ideology and as a doctrine, but it is not a danger to you as a military policy of the Soviet Government. The Communists do not want to shed their blood or the blood of others to extend their frontiers. And each country should defend itself against Communism within its borders, if it sees fit to do so. (This I took to be an echo of the talks he had had in the preceding days with the Egyptian Field Marshal about Nasser’s treatment of his local Communists.) . . .

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 246

23/10/18 12:44 PM

walter lippmann

247

[On the question of disarmament and arms control,] why, he asked, do you begin with inspection and controls? Why do you not begin by taking seriously our offer of a treaty of friendship and nonaggression? I said we wanted some tangible evidence that an agreement would be carried out. He replied that the Soviet Union could not agree to inspection and control until confidence, which is now lacking, has been established. You want control first, he said, we want confidence first. Suppose, he argued, that you and another man start to make friends, and the first thing your new friend says to you is: give me the key to your house. You would think it impudent of him, and when the United States asks for keys to our [Soviet] house, we say ‘go to the devil’. Here he looked at my wife and apologized for using such language. Your demand for the keys to our house is the way you might talk to a weak and dependent country, not to the Soviet Union. It makes us suspicious that you want the keys of our house before you will sign a treaty of friendship. This, he continued, is ‘elementary’, that a treaty of friendship must come before inspection and control. (Lippmann 1959: 22, 29–30) One might argue that Lippmann was taken in by Soviet propaganda, but the purpose of setting out this long quotation is to reveal Lippmann’s thinking on pacifying violence in international politics. Evidently, Lippmann nurtures a thin version of international society as desirable for peace amongst states: a mutual respect for differences in values, honouring Westphalian premises of insulating domestic political turbulence from international relationships, and dealing with others of different governing systems on the basis of live and let live. Getting one’s national interest and international peace achieved through war is redundant and reckless if the gap with the Other is merely one of value relativity. In his rumination on US War Aims in 1944, Lippmann even boldly suggested that the peaceful coexistence amongst macro-communities of nation-states should ideally be based on ‘the historic civilized communities’ distinguished by race, language, ideology and religion (Lippmann 1944b: 52–7). In this regard, there could be a Russian Orbit, a Chinese Orbit and an Atlantic Community. Through the concrete form of the Atlantic Community, Lippmann also envisioned the ideal scheme of thick international society, where liberalism triumphed everywhere as a national standard of governance. The Atlantic Community that was forged through World War Two’s Anglo-American alliance, sired by Franklin Roosevelt and Winston Churchill, ought to serve as a bedrock of a new world order (Lippmann 1952: 36–8). In this version of thick international society, Washington and London ought to have consolidated their alliance as an ideological platform with which to attract the rest of Europe, freshly liberated from Hitler’s Festung Europa, along with newly decolonised states in the non-West to build a peaceful world order. Lippmann lamented the fact that Secretary of State Cordell Hull imposed his neo-Wilsonian influence on the direction of postwar policy to the detriment of the Atlantic Community serving as the primary fount of soft power to challenge Stalin’s ambitions across the globe. Instead, the onset of the Cold War through a series of confrontational events in Iran, Greece, Indochina, Germany and Korea forced the Americans to revive the Atlantic Community in the form of the Marshall Plan and the North Atlantic Treaty Organization (NATO) (Lippmann 1952: 39–43). Throughout the rest of the Cold War, Lippmann was constantly insinuating that the contest with the USSR would be won on non-material grounds: that is, on the battlefield of ideological provenance. He noted as

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 247

23/10/18 12:44 PM

248

alan chong

early as 1952 that the advent of the Soviet atomic bomb and its rapid military build-up in long-range weaponry would inexorably erode US superiority in strategic bombers and missiles. Even massive US foreign aid to its non-Western allies and neutrals failed to stem pro-communist sentiments and anti-Americanism from taking root. Lippmann was bitterly critical of the ultimately abortive Bay of Pigs invasion, since it fanned even more anti-Americanism and cemented the Castro regime’s heroic defiance of American imperialism. These ‘gifts’ to communist propaganda could be undone only by an American government behaving in a fashion that showed that American attempts to build the good society at home were exactly what they wished to proselytise to the rest of the uncommitted nation-states (Syed 1963: 67–8). In today’s foreign policy parlance, this becomes the soft power of communitarian attraction. It is all derived from good governance at home being demonstrated to the rest of the world for their emulation. On that basis, Lippmann believed that war would become unthinkable within the Atlantic Community, but the members of this thick liberal community might have to coordinate their defensive military policies against the possibility of armed overthrow by its active opponents such as the USSR. In this sense, the other rational Lippmannist prognosis is to revert to a thinner conception of international society to coexist with radically incommensurate ideologies insulated by the institutions of national sovereignty (Lippmann 1944b: 42–57). To remedy the frequent failure of liberal democracies to educate their citizens for the capricious tides of world affairs, Lippmann called for the practice and inculcation of empathy.

Public Opinion and its Education for Life in International Society Long before Lippmann was regarded as a philosopher of international politics, he had already been respected as a profound critic of public opinion as a force for guiding the national interest within international society. The standard reading of Lippmann argues that he was deeply ambivalent about public opinion: it was necessary to consult public opinion and thence to endeavour to exclude it from the making of foreign policy (Eulau 1956: 439–51). The public must be intimately involved in the democratic method of government in the domestic realm but it ought not to be treated as a diligent and astute part of managing foreign affairs (Syed 1963: 274). An important key to understanding this irony in Lippmann’s thought lies in his ‘geometry’ of interpreting reality in his classic work Public Opinion: The analyst of public opinion must begin then, by recognizing the triangular relationship between the scene of action, the human picture of that scene, and the human response to that picture working itself out upon the scene of action. It is like a play suggested to the actors by their own experience, in which the plot is transacted in the real lives of the actors, and not merely in their stage parts. (Lippmann 1960: 16–17) Within this triangular socio-psychological trap, the citizen – let’s label him ‘Average Joe’, as a shorthand – has to be equipped to make significant exertions to relate the basic fundamentals of pre-existing international order, as well as his socially grounded

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 248

23/10/18 12:44 PM

walter lippmann

249

principles, to observable reality. There ought to be no rush to condemn or exonerate on the basis of whim. In order to elucidate this point, Lippmann peppered his book Public Opinion with many examples from the 1910s and 1920s, whereby the American public and its representatives in Congress misread foreign affairs either by superimposing their prejudiced reflexes upon the event or by recommending decisions in haste. Foreign affairs, qua international relations among states of diverse ideologies, qua international society, requires nimbleness in explanation, intellectual perspicacity in reflection, a practised scepticism in appraising ‘facts’, and an appreciation for the consequences of policy for the long term. The media, dubbed ‘the press’ in Lippmann’s writings, are not entirely to blame for the difficulties faced by public opinion in apprehending international politics. It is more of a structural problem. Lippmann illustrates it in a writing style reminiscent of what most graduate students of political science would term discourse analysis and structural critique through process tracing: A few words must often stand for a whole succession of acts, thoughts, feelings and consequences. We read: Washington, Dec. 23 [1921/1922?] – A statement charging Japanese military authorities with deeds more ‘frightful and barbarous’ than anything ever alleged to have occurred in Belgium during the [First World] war was issued here today by the Korean Commission, based, the Commission said, on authentic reports received by it from Manchuria. Here eyewitnesses, their accuracy unknown, report to the makers of ‘authentic reports’; they in turn transmit these to a commission five thousand miles away. It prepares a statement, probably much too long for publication, from which a correspondent culls an item of print three and a half inches long. The meaning has to be telescoped in such a way as to permit the reader to judge how much weight to give to the news. (Lippmann 1960: 65–6) In this regard, the only way for Average Joe to act as an intelligent player in foreign policy is to pick up the tools of the social scientist. As the outsider to the policy-making process, Average Joe can capitalise on two things. First, he can trade his political voice for this or that policy by taking the politician and bureaucrat to task by scrutinising their adherence to procedure. And this is the second skill he can avail himself of: The outsider can perhaps judge whether the groups interested in the decision were properly heard, whether the ballot, if there was one, was honestly taken, and perhaps whether the result was honestly accepted. He can watch the procedure when the news indicates that there is something to watch. He can raise a question as to whether the procedure itself is right, if its normal results conflict with his idea of a good life. (Lippmann 1960: 400–1) Lippmann, however, cautioned that Average Joe should never allow foreign policy decisions to pass without scrutiny. The training of Average Joe lay within the discipline of political science. The latter ought to school its students cum citizens in the habit of scrutinising both the news and the professional journalists who claim to supply the truths as they see it. Therein lies the true meaning of exerting a conscientious and informed public opinion on foreign affairs.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 249

23/10/18 12:44 PM

250

alan chong

Reading Lippmann for the Twenty-First Century: Ideology/ Religion Returns to International Relations Lippmannist realism is clearly not as accessible as a party manifesto. It is a philosophical realism that reveals its wisdom only after one ponders the bases of human nature, nationalism, and the meaning of acting responsibly within an earthly society of sovereign nation-states. Lippmann exhibited deep scepticism towards the foreign policy public towards his sunset years, but he has left us with his thoughts on what an International Relations-savvy public should be and can be. Politicians will always want the moral majority on their side – whether in democracies or dictatorships – and this is where Lippmann’s ‘society realist’ assumes the shape of Average Joe’s Public Opinion. These disparate elements will almost certainly drift in and out of syllabi in universities, military colleges and think-tanks as random accessories to the contemporary ‘giants of realism’ of the likes of Morgenthau, Waltz and possibly Mearsheimer, unless one reappraises Lippmannist realism as a provocative call for returning the consideration of ideology/religion to the study of International Relations as we know it. The bequeathed principles of Westphalia should not mean that the rest of the world has turned its back decisively on the need for mankind to fill its political belief systems with a substitute Providence. Lippmann points out that nationalism has its finite limits as a secular replacement of God. The emergence of rabid anti-modern and anti-Western ideologies, in the form of Taliban Afghanistan, al-Qaeda and its ilk, DAESH/ISIS and other millenarian state-subverting movements, testifies to the need to address International Relations by tackling the place of human yearning for a spiritual anchor (Schuett 2010). The liberal and humanist in Lippmann will certainly condemn the apocalyptic strategies of violence pursued by fundamentalist religious terrorism. Yet Lippmannist realism will also call on the intellectual to examine why and how nation-states need to promise some version of spiritual fulfilment to their citizens. The principal worry should be focused on why the younger generations are tuning in to radical preaching in sound bites on YouTube and blogs. Lippmannist international society therefore premises its stability on integrating human nature at all levels from interpersonal relations, to nationalism, and on to relations between states and their constituted citizens.

Notes 1. The political invasiveness of Tammany Hall’s grassroots social services was partially but vividly portrayed in the 2002 Hollywood film Gangs of New York, starring Daniel DayLewis and Leonardo DiCaprio. 2. This pithy phrase was coined by Adams in his interpretation of Lippmann’s Stakes of Diplomacy in his biography of the man (Adams 1977: 92). See also Syed’s parallel explanation of this point (Syed 1963: 90–2).

Bibliography Adams, L. L. (1977), Walter Lippmann, Boston: Twayne. Eulau, H. (1956), ‘From public opinion to public philosophy: Walter Lippmann’s classic reexamined’, American Journal of Economics and Sociology, vol. 15, pp. 439–51. Diggins, J. P. (2009) [1929], ‘Introduction’, in W. Lippmann, Preface to Morals, New Brunswick: Transaction, pp. ix–liii.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 250

23/10/18 12:44 PM

walter lippmann

251

Imhoff, S. (2012), ‘My sons have defeated me: Walter Lippmann, Felix Adler, and secular moral authority’, The Journal of Religion, vol. 92, pp. 536–50. Lippmann, W. (1915), The Stakes of Diplomacy, New York: Henry Holt. Lippmann, W. (1944a), The Good Society, London: George Allen and Unwin. Lippmann, W. (1944b), US War Aims, London: Hamish Hamilton. Lippmann, W. (1952), Isolation and Alliances: An American Speaks to the British, Boston: Little, Brown. Lippmann, W. (1955), Essays in the Public Philosophy, Boston: Little, Brown. Lippmann, W. (1959), The Communist World and Ours, Boston: Little, Brown. Lippmann, W. (1960) [1922], Public Opinion, New York: Macmillan. Lippmann, W. (2006) [1913], A Preface to Politics, New York: Mitchell Kennerley. Reprinted as the Gutenberg Project eBook #20125. Lippmann, W. (2009) [1929], A Preface to Morals, 6th edn, New Brunswick: Transaction. Medina, J., and J. Bidgood (2016), ‘Cities vow to fight Trump on immigration, even if they lose millions’, The New York Times, 27 November, available at (last accessed 8 December 2016). Morrissette, A. L. (1984), Walter Lippmann: Architect of Crisis, PhD dissertation, Claremont Graduate School, USA, Ann Arbor: University Microfilms International. Schuett, R. (2010), Political Realism, Freud and Human Nature in International Relations: The Resurrection of Realist Man, New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Soderlund, G. (2005), ‘Rethinking a curricular icon: The institutional and ideological foundations of Walter Lippmann’, The Communication Review, vol. 8, pp. 307–27. Steel, R. (1980), Walter Lippmann and the American Century, London: Bodley Head. Syed, A. H. (1963), Walter Lippmann’s Philosophy of International Politics, Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press. Waltz, K. N. (1959), Man, the State and War: A Theoretical Analysis, New York: Columbia University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 251

23/10/18 12:44 PM

20 Reinhold Niebuhr The continuing relevance of his Christian realism Menno R. Kamminga

Chapter Overview

T

wentieth-century American theologian–philosopher Reinhold Niebuhr is a key figure within the realist tradition. Niebuhr has had a great impact on realist thinkers such as Hans Morgenthau, George Kennan, E. H. Carr and Kenneth Waltz, and on political leaders such as Martin Luther King, Jimmy Carter and Barack Obama. Drawing on a view of human nature as characterised by sin as well as love and justice, Niebuhr argued that order, security and justice require balanced power and humbly responsible action. The present chapter suggests that Niebuhr’s ‘Christian realism’ is uniquely relevant for twenty-first-century international relations. Firstly, Niebuhr’s interrelated view of human nature, society and international relations is broadly reconstructed as one of ‘not so moral man’, ‘less moral communities’ and ‘still less moral international relations’. Next, the implications of Niebuhr’s perspective for war and peace as classic-realist security issues are discussed by highlighting his ‘ethical realism’ and ‘irony-sensible’ view of American history. Finally, it is argued that Niebuhr’s realism can make a critical contribution to the understanding and addressing not only of contemporary classic security issues, but also of ‘newer’ security-related issues such as humanitarian intervention, climate change and energy security. Thus, Niebuhr’s anti-utopianism, anti-materialism and notions such as irony, hope and fear signify that political realism is at least as relevant to our times as it has ever been. *

*

*

Introduction The importance of American Protestant theologian–philosopher Reinhold Niebuhr (1892–1971) for political realism is profound. Put briefly, Niebuhr’s sober view of human nature made him argue that order, security and justice require balanced rather than concentrated power and humbly responsible instead of utopianist political action (Waltz 1986: 341; Amstutz 2007). Well recognised is Niebuhr’s influence on ‘classical’ realists such as Hans Morgenthau, George Kennan and E. H. Carr (Thompson 1955; Rice 2013). Less appreciated is Niebuhr’s significance for the work

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 252

23/10/18 12:44 PM

reinhold niebuhr

253

of renowned ‘structural’ realist Kenneth Waltz (Kamminga 2012). The early Waltz praised Niebuhr for his ‘many words of wisdom on problems of international politics’ and for ‘[criticising] utopians . . . with frequency and telling effect’ (1959: 20). But even as a ‘scientific’ neorealist that stressed the causal importance of anarchy for international politics, Waltz acknowledged Niebuhr’s influence behind his own antihegemonic position, explaining: ‘I distrust hegemonic power, whoever may wield it, because it is so easily misused’ (1986: 341). Arguably, Niebuhr’s key contribution to the realist tradition concerns ‘the presuppositions of the whole frame of reference that underlies [it]’ (Veldhuis 1975: 3). Significantly, political leaders such as Martin Luther King, Jimmy Carter and Barack Obama have called Niebuhr a major intellectual influence. Interviewed as a candidate for US President, Obama called Niebuhr ‘one of my favorite philosophers’, learning from him that ‘there’s serious evil in the world, and hardship and pain. And we should be humble and modest in our belief we can eliminate those things. But we shouldn’t use that as an excuse for cynicism and inaction’ (Brooks 2007). Boosted by Obama’s acknowledgement, a ‘Niebuhr revival’ has occurred since the early 2000s (Crouter 2010; Horwitz 2016). Niebuhr’s ‘Christian’ realism maintains that the diagnosis of the human predicament is to be found in Christian doctrine rather than other worldviews (Veldhuis 1975: 106). For Niebuhr, it is because of the reality of ‘original sin’ that the world cannot be utopian (before God’s love has finally triumphed in history). ‘[T]he Christian faith holds that human nature contains both self-regarding and social impulses and that the former is stronger than the latter. This assumption is the basis of Christian realism’ (Niebuhr 1965: 39). Acknowledging man as created in God’s image, Niebuhr did underline the normative significance of those ‘social impulses’: humans should humbly obey ‘the moral imperative to do good’ (Crouter 2010: 49). Thus, Niebuhr’s modestly optimistic faith in reconciliation, charity and political morality kept him from overstressing power and violence (Elshtain 2010: 52, 56–7; Fox 1985: 202; Cherniss 2016: 75). Politics cannot create full justice due to the strong ‘self-regarding impulses’, but differences between more and less social justice, between more and less egoism, may still mean ‘differences between sickness and health, between misery and happiness’ (Niebuhr 1941: 234). Although his political thought was theology-rooted (Merkley 1975; Gilkey 2001; Crouter 2010; Erwin 2013), Niebuhr aimed to reach a wide audience by advocating moral prudence rather than Christian purity (Coll 1999; Crouter 2010: 110; Patterson 2015: 30; Cherniss 2016) and by utilising the empirical value of ‘original sin’ (cf. Niebuhr 1965: 24). Niebuhr believed that ‘[t]his doctrine asserts the obvious fact that all men are persistently inclined to regard themselves more highly and are [unwarrantedly] assiduously concerned with their own interests’ (1952: 17, emphasis mine). Indeed, Niebuhr’s views of human nature and politics have been appreciated by religious and secular thinkers alike (cf. Crouter 2010: 115). As Langdon Gilkey explains, Niebuhr ‘may not persuade a young mind that there is a God who gives meaning to our history’, yet ‘will persuade that mind that history so understood is very close to the history we all continue to experience each day’ (2001: xii). Arguably, Niebuhr has given the realist a compelling lens through which to consider the possibilities and limits of political action meaningfully.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 253

23/10/18 12:44 PM

254

menno r. kamminga

The present chapter aims to show the relevance of Niebuhr’s realism for addressing the dynamics of twenty-first-century international relations. I will start by reconstructing his Christian realism along a classic, relevant three-level model that includes human nature, society and international relations (Waltz 1959; Patterson 2015: 31) as one of: 1. ‘not so moral man’, 2. ‘less moral communities’ (Niebuhr 1965: 22; Crouter 2010: 48) 3. ‘still less moral international relations’. Next, I outline the implications of Niebuhr’s realism for war and peace, the classic security issues with which realists have been most concerned.1 Finally, I argue that Niebuhr’s realism can make a critical contribution to the understanding and addressing of contemporary classic security issues, but also of ‘newer’ security-related issues such as humanitarian intervention, climate change and energy security. Thus, Niebuhr remains practically valuable for his analysis of ‘reality’ from a human nature view that is not purely bio-psychological and as dark as that of other realists, but stresses man’s capacity to take responsibility in all humility, while avoiding liberal theory’s optimism about the political action-guiding force of ethical principles. While offering no independent defence of Niebuhr’s realism, I submit that it still ‘works’, even though modern secular discourse omits the notion of sin.

Man: Not So Moral Against the utopian optimism about human nature as expressed by liberals and Marxists in mid-century debates about a conflict-free world, Niebuhr highlighted greediness and lust for power as expressions of man’s sinfulness (Craig 2003: 33). But his Christianbased view of human nature is richer than this. The ‘Christian view of man’, Niebuhr observes, includes three features: a ‘monist’ body–soul unity as biblically based on the goodness of creation; man as made in the image of God, thus to be understood primarily from his capacity to love others rather than from his rational faculties or relation to nature; and man as sinner, rebel against God. While the Christian faith sees the good in man first, it locates evil at the human core: in the will. Evil, Niebuhr stresses, is not the inevitable consequence of man’s finiteness or the outcome of his involvement in nature. Sin occurs because man rejects his ‘creatureliness’, pretending to be more than he is. Also, man cannot dismiss sin as merely a matter of physical necessity. As man’s true essence is free self-determination, and love the ultimate law man should meet, his sin is self-chosen as the wrong, selfdestructive use of his freedom. Since the law of love is violated when man seeks to make not God but himself the basis of his life, his sin is spiritual, not carnal. For Niebuhr, without the presuppositions of the Christian faith the root of sin cannot be found in man himself. Paradoxically, the Christian view claims a higher stature for man and takes his evil more seriously than other anthropologies do. It questions evil’s specific causes, but also how these could have arisen (Niebuhr 1941: 12–18, cf. 161–220). Following Augustine, ‘the first great [Western] “realist”’ (Niebuhr 1954: 115), Niebuhr stresses the reality of man’s sin heavily. Broadly, the evil of sin is the dominant concern for one’s self-interest, self-pride and search for power out of a basic sense of fear,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 254

23/10/18 12:44 PM

reinhold niebuhr

255

insecurity, vulnerability and anxiety (Niebuhr 1941: 190–255; Niebuhr 1932). That sin is non-deterministic has serious behavioural implications: since the Christian doctrine of original sin accepts ‘that man’s self-love and self-centredness are inevitable [but in a non-natural way]’, it can, and should, insist on ‘man’s responsibility for sin’ (Niebuhr 1941: 279). Also, sin is universal: it is present in the evil ‘out there’ but also in all our initiatives, no matter how well meant, to deal with evil. Niebuhr, then, criticised ‘liberal Christians’ who ‘know that love is the final norm for man’ but ‘fall into sentimentality because they fail to measure the power and persistence of self-love’ (1954: 138). For Niebuhr, sin has basic meaning, explanatory power and normative relevance. But Niebuhr, as a realist, was critical of Augustine, and of other realists too, concerning the implications of man’s sinful nature for political rule. Believing that it is unjust for some men to rule over other men as co-rational creatures, Augustine ‘[avoided] the later error of the absolute sanctification of government’ but ‘[failed] to recognize the difference between legitimate and illegitimate . . . subordination of man to man’, Niebuhr noted (1954: 123, cf. 120). Augustine’s realism is ‘excessive’ for being unable to ‘distinguish between government and slavery, both of which were supposedly . . . a consequence of, and remedy for, sin’, and to ‘do justice to the sense of justice in the constitution of the Roman Empire’ or other political systems (Niebuhr 1954: 121). And Hobbes and Luther, whose ‘pessimism’ made them endorse state power unreservedly, ‘were not realistic enough’, Niebuhr felt; they saw ‘the dangers of anarchy in the egotism of the citizens’ but overlooked ‘the dangers of tyranny in the selfishness of the ruler’ and ‘the consequent necessity of placing checks upon the ruler’s self-will’ (1954: 121). Niebuhr’s view of man made him value democracy highly, more so than co-realist Morgenthau. Seeing all men biologically as equally lustful for power and therefore all politics as equally dominated by irrational urges, Morgenthau could not regard any form of politics as superior. By contrast, Niebuhr (1944) saw all humans as sinful yet believed that some, the higher law-seeking ‘children of light’, could overcome sin partially by responsibly carrying politics towards a higher state of justice (Craig 2003: 56). As Niebuhr put it in what became his trademark line, ‘Man’s capacity for justice makes democracy possible; but man’s inclination to injustice makes democracy necessary’ (1944: xi). Importantly, democracy puts ‘checks upon the power of the ruler and administrator and thus prevent[s] it from becoming vexatious’ (Niebuhr 1944: xiv).

Society: Less Moral The Christian faith, Niebuhr maintained, applies to individuals but also to societies. He offered two different arguments for this. First, theologically, the Christian gospel foresees an ideal universal community (Niebuhr 1959: 91). The Hebrew prophets already challenged the bond between God and nation, and Jesus himself rejected nationalistic particularism (Niebuhr 1941: 227–8; Niebuhr 1943: 43–4). The apostle ‘Paul, the champion of Christian universalism . . . proclaimed that “there is neither Jew nor Greek, neither bond nor free . . . in Christ”’ (Niebuhr 1959: 91). This universal eschatological vision is negatively relevant as ‘a source of criticism for all the kingdoms of the world’ (Niebuhr 1959: 92). Second, historically, it is a ‘fact’ that Christianity became ‘relevant to the empire of the Caesars . . . as a support of its

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 255

23/10/18 12:44 PM

256

menno r. kamminga

authority’ (Niebuhr 1959: 92). The empire ‘equated Christian universalism with its own quasi-universalism, and it quieted the [early] Christian fear of idolatry . . . by presenting the Christian emperor as a servant of the true God’ (Niebuhr 1959: 93). Having been employed in the service of power, the Christian faith cannot credibly avoid involvement with human communities as they exist. In reality, a human cannot but live in a political community. Deliberating the societal implications of his view of man, Niebuhr discovered that, compared to individuals, groups – especially nations – are considerably less susceptible to human nature’s positive aspects and much more vulnerable to its negative ones. Collective egoism is even harder to overcome than individual egoism. Niebuhr offered a threefold explanation for this ‘relative immorality of collectivities’ (Veldhuis 1975: 49). First, ‘group pride’ possesses the coercive power to make individuals ‘bow to its pretensions and . . . acquiesce in its claims of authority’ (Niebuhr 1941: 221). Second, a group’s pretensions and claims are more excessive than those of individuals: ‘The group is more arrogant, hypocritical, self-centred and more ruthless’ (Niebuhr 1941: 221–2). Third, the national state expresses collective egoism most consistently, as smaller groups lack the size and larger units the concreteness and durability to command man’s highest loyalty (Niebuhr 1932: 48; Niebuhr 1941: 222). The national state has the authority to generate fear and respect: ‘the state gives the collective impulses of the nation such instruments of power, and presents the imagination of individuals with such obvious symbols of its discrete collective identity’ (Niebuhr 1941: 222). Niebuhr’s valuation of the national state was deeply negative: ‘Sinful pride and idolatrous pretension are . . . an inevitable concomitant of the cohesion of large political groups’ (Niebuhr 1941: 223). The sin of ‘collective pride’, Niebuhr noted, is ‘most fruitful of . . . objective social and historical evil’ and ‘a more pregnant source of injustice and conflict than purely individual pride’ (1941: 226). But this evil is most clearly exemplified in the national state with its particularly strong unity, well-defined membership and stable central authority (Veldhuis 1975: 47). National life goes beyond the individual’s striving for survival by culminating in ‘the “spiritual” character of national pride’ (Niebuhr 1941: 224). ‘The nation pretends to be God,’ and therefore demands unconditional loyalty (Niebuhr 1941: 225). Even the morality of individuals with exceptionally Christian goodwill will be supportive of the egoistic national state, as pure universal benevolence is impossible in a sinful world (Niebuhr 1932: 75). Sadly, since ‘[t]he unqualified character of [national loyalty] is the very basis of the nation’s power and of the freedom to use the power without moral restraint’, ‘the unselfishness of individuals makes for the selfishness of nations’ (Niebuhr 1932: 91). Niebuhr’s Christian-rooted, consistent disapprobation of the national state made his realism morally different from that of his younger contemporaries Morgenthau and Kennan. Holding that national self-interest is repulsive as a moral ideal (Thompson 1955; Fox 1985: 297), Niebuhr could not accept Morgenthau’s ‘moral principle of national survival’ (Morgenthau 1973: 10). Niebuhr’s realism accepted that ‘the force of collective self-interest is so great, that national policy must be based upon it’, but also maintained that, since ‘the moral obligation of the individual transcends his particular community’, ‘[l]oyalty to the community is . . . tolerable only if it includes values wider than those of the community’ (Niebuhr 1952: 36–7). And although Niebuhr endorsed Kennan’s postwar critique of American ‘legalistic–moralistic’ foreign policy as having undesirable consequences, he rejected Kennan’s solution of making ‘national

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 256

23/10/18 12:44 PM

reinhold niebuhr

257

interest’ the yardstick of American diplomacy (Kennan 1951). Regarding such a fixation on American interests as an unjustified indifference toward others’ interests, Niebuhr advocated ‘a concern for both the self and the other in which the self, whether individual or collective, preserves a “decent respect for the opinions of mankind”’ (1952: 148). Acknowledging the relative qualities of human institutions under imperfect historical conditions, Niebuhr doubly relativised his condemnation of the national state. First, national states should not simply be deemed equally bad. ‘While all . . . nations . . . [are] involved in the sin of pride’, we should ‘recognize differences in the degree of pride and self-will expressed by . . . nations’ (Niebuhr 1941: 233). Second, we should differentiate between good and bad ways of governing nations. For Niebuhr, in the public domain of groups and conflicting interests under conditions of sin, justice, as derived from and motivated by the ultimate norm of love, is the main norm. Democracy is superior to totalitarianism because it offers the best way to restrain the egoism and will-to-power of groups as well as individuals. If these exploit fellow citizens in weaker positions because their sin urges them somehow to prefer the fulfilment of their own interests, the solution is to minimise power inequalities within the state (Niebuhr 1954: 94–101; Niebuhr 1941: 233–4; Niebuhr 1944).

International Relations: Still Less Moral Niebuhr saw international relations as different from domestic politics, viewing interactions between states under anarchy as inevitably more conflictual and even less moral than interactions between intrastate groups (Niebuhr 1932: 16, 85, 110–11; Craig 2003: 36). Being concerned with theology and morality as well as empirical reality, Niebuhr left the systematic study of (national) interest and power to his followers (Thompson 1955: 187). Yet his Christian realist understanding of international relations offered an upbeat for more theoretically oriented realists. Niebuhr argued that the sin-based egoism of nations has seriously negative implications for international relations. Although the norms of love and justice apply internationally as well as domestically (cf. Thompson 1955: 182–3), ‘[t]he will-to-power of competing national groups is the cause of the international anarchy which the moral sense of mankind has thus far vainly striven to overcome’ (Niebuhr 1932: 18–19). Because the scope of applying moral norms to international relations is narrow due to national self-interest being the primary guide for governments, crucial internationally is how much power a national state has (Veldhuis 1975: 50, 123–4). As Niebuhr explains: ‘Only a forgiving love . . . is adequate to heal the animosities between nations. But that degree of love is an impossibility for nations’ (Niebuhr 1948: 139; cf. Niebuhr 1954: 127–30). Even justice, albeit involving the compromise of love with politics’ darker elements (Thompson 1955: 183), is hardly attainable, if at all, in international relations. A key problem for international justice is the absence of central government. Without a global authority that could compel nations to modify their self-seeking, conflict regulation is much more difficult internationally than it already is between groups within the state. In so far as international order and justice do exist, it is due to a balance of power, which, however, may always slide into conflict and anarchy (Veldhuis 1975: 50). Now Niebuhr saw balance of power as the prerequisite

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 257

23/10/18 12:44 PM

258

menno r. kamminga

for at least some justice: ‘All political justice is achieved by coercing the anarchy of collective self-interest into some kind of decent order by the most attainable balance of power’ (1940: 104). However, ‘the principle of government . . . stands upon a higher plane’ because government prevents balance of power from lapsing into anarchy and is ‘a more conscious effort to arrive at justice’, despite its moral ambiguity for being tempted to restrict freedom and community for order (Niebuhr 1943: 276–8; quotations 276). Moreover, in an anarchic domain characterised by interstate relations, there can be no democratic governance. In Niebuhrian terminology: while states’ inclination to injustice makes democracy necessary, their egoistic lack of capacity for justice makes democracy impossible. Presumably, Niebuhr would have been sceptical about the modern political–philosophical attempt to develop ethically adequate standards of global justice. In international relations, power and passion dominate reason. Niebuhr did not propagate the creation of a democratic world government as the key route towards international justice. He saw world government, certainly a democratic one, as illusory because the shared standards necessary for effective global institutions were lacking. A world government is unattainable because governments are not created by constitutional fiat and, even more seriously, have only limited efficacy in integrating a community rooted in ‘organic’ factors such as common ethnicity, history (of joint struggle against a common enemy), language, culture and religion. Importantly, the shared convictions on issues of justice that political cohesion requires are lacking globally (Niebuhr 1954: 24–38, 119; Niebuhr 1952: 136; Niebuhr 1959: 266). Most basically, since sin distorts all human enterprises, political action immodestly directed at grand projects is bound to fail (Niebuhr 1952: 72; Niebuhr 1959: 287–99; Amstutz 2007: 26, 30; Patterson 2015: 32). With national egoism as unjust and without the prospect of world government, a key question for Niebuhr was if the global involvement of the USA as major power could be justified. Again, Niebuhr could not articulate a ‘national interest’: making the American nation, or any nation, the ultimate end of politics would be sinful. His answer, then, referred to America’s instrumental, non-basic, significance: the American state is to be valued for its power to secure the moral good of democratic civilisation against the Soviet Union’s expansionism (Craig 2003: 75–6). However, Niebuhr qualified his defence of US engagement by warning Americans about the hubristic faith that their values and ideas are universal and their nation serves providential goals (Bacevich 2008: 7; Lieven 2010: 174–5; cf. Niebuhr 1952). As power corrupts, the danger of misused American power is serious (cf. Horwitz 2016: 121–2). Remarkably, Niebuhr added: ‘The economic interdependence of the world places us under the obligation, and gives us the possibility, of enlarging the human community so that the principle of order and justice will govern the international as well as the national community’ (1943: 295). Not only ‘the incitement of hope’ but also ‘the lash of fear’ trigger this ‘new and compelling task’ of overcoming anarchy and organising balanced power-based leadership towards a better future for the globe (Niebuhr 1943: 295). As Robin Lovin observes, ‘Niebuhr . . . recognized the historical contingency of the [existing] system itself [as God’s order can never be identified with any specific form of social organization]’ (2005: 468). Considering his strong emphasis on the role of sin in all human endeavours, one should not think, however, that Niebuhr (1943: 295–6) was idealistic about creating new, more just ways of organising global politics.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 258

23/10/18 12:44 PM

reinhold niebuhr

259

War and Peace In line with his realism as reconstructed hitherto, Niebuhr’s approach to war and peace was more practical than theoretical, concerned with political responsibility rather than philosophical–ethical rigour. Niebuhr felt that we should not be unduly optimistic about man’s rational faculties, which cannot really explain why we actually lack a permanently peaceful world. In Niebuhr’s view, man’s original sin is the basic cause of war (Waltz 1959: 20–41). Thus, the sin-rooted egoism of nations in an international environment without democratic government breeds war, especially when no balance of power exists. For Niebuhr, the question then became how to deal with the injustice of war, so that more peace, a goal of great importance, could occur. Any moral answer, he believed, should resist ‘the . . . error of the moral relativists who deny every validity of general norms’; war, after all, concerns ‘the very life and death of civilizations and cultures’ (Niebuhr 1941: 301). However, he did not seek a complete theory that included final principles of justice. All historical norms will be too corrupt to be definitive, albeit equality, liberty and order are useful regulative principles (Niebuhr 1943: 256–66; Niebuhr 1941: 301). And since reason itself may be tainted by sin, reliance on moral principles can provide only a proximate guide to action (Amstutz 2007: 25). Nevertheless, Niebuhr, while pragmatic, was no pragmatist: he appreciated pragmatists’ understanding of ‘the irrelevance of fixed and detailed norms’ but criticised them for not understanding ‘that love must take the place as the final norm for these inadequate norms’ (1954: 138). Pacifist ethics could not offer an adequate answer for Niebuhr, as he came to believe that the politically active, responsible Christian cannot always exclude the use of violence in a sinful world (Niebuhr 1932; Fox 1985: 137). Niebuhr acknowledged the enduring relevance of Jesus’s own ethics of non-violence: resorting to violence inevitably burdens us with guilt. Nevertheless, he maintained that pacifism was inapplicable to real political situations. After all, Jesus’s non-resistance failed historically by ending on the Cross. Pacifism is utopianist for assuming that men are as perfect as God intended them to be; but, imbued with sin, they cannot be so regarded in reality. Pacifism, then, cannot offer moral guidance to leaders who must protect the lives of an entire group of citizens and preserve the (relative) good (Merkley 1975: 121–2; Craig 2003: 40–1; cf. Obama 2009). Indeed, those who advocate political non-violence at all times ‘are vulnerable to giving sanctuary to evil’ (Carlson 2010: 193). Niebuhr found just war theory problematic too because its reliance on rational reflection and systematic–ethical standards collides with a world dominated by power and collective egoism (Veldhuis 1975: 109–25). Niebuhr appreciated Catholic just war theory for not leaving ‘the Christian without any standards by which he might judge the relative justice of his nation’s cause’; surely ‘[n]ot all wars are equally just and not all contestants are equally right. Distinctions must be made’ (1941: 300). But it is false to assume the possibility of ‘obvious distinctions between “justice” and “injustice”, between “defence” and “aggression”’ (Niebuhr 1941: 300, emphasis mine). Indeed, ‘passions and interests’ affect our judgements when making distinctions, ‘so that even the most obvious case of aggression can be made to appear a necessity of defence’; and even a war judged ‘wholly defensive’ from an impartial perspective ‘cannot be waged with completely good conscience’ due to memories of earlier aggression by current defenders (Niebuhr 1941: 300). Niebuhr,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 259

23/10/18 12:44 PM

260

menno r. kamminga

then, acknowledged just war theory’s contribution to making relative distinctions in politics, yet maintained that it put ‘[u]ndue confidence in human reason’ (1941: 298) and ignored the depth of human evil. His scepticism concerned the just war ‘checklist’, particularly its notions of just cause, legitimate authority, right intention and just wartime conduct (Patterson 2015: 35–7; Carlson 2010: 188). What Niebuhr himself proposed was an ‘ethos’ (Cherniss 2016) of ‘ethical realism’ that, as John Carlson puts it, aims to enlighten ‘the coterminous yet sometimes conflicting claims of justice and order and how their relationship might guide and inform the use of military force. . . . [It] appreciates how military force highlights connections (or exacerbates tensions) between justice and order’ (2010: 187). Also in war and peace, Niebuhr insisted on treating justice as provisional, partial, historical, contingent and secondary to the standard of love (Carlson 2010: 188–90). Niebuhr’s ethical realism, then, embodied his pragmatically rather than dogmatically Christian outlook. As Mark Amstutz (2007: 26) specifies, typical of Niebuhr’s political and war ethics are the priority of power, the moral limits of political action, the need for public humility, and the call for responsible (albeit imperfect) action. Finally, from his Christian angle, Niebuhr (1952) selected the concept of ‘irony’ to interpret postwar US foreign policy as a contribution to peace and justice. Irony occurs when virtue becomes vice through some hidden defect in the virtue . . . strength becomes weakness because of the vanity to which strength may prompt the mighty man or nation . . . security is transmuted into insecurity because too much reliance is placed upon it . . . wisdom becomes folly because it does not know its own limits. (Niebuhr 1952: viii) An ironic situation differs from a ‘pathetic’ one in that ‘the person involved in it bears some responsibility for it’; it differs from ‘tragedy’ in that ‘the responsibility is related to an unconscious weakness rather than to a conscious resolution’ (Niebuhr 1952: viii). ‘Our age’, Niebuhr subsequently argued, is involved in irony because so many dreams of our nation have been so cruelly refuted by history. Our dreams of a pure virtue are dissolved in a situation in which it is possible to exercise the virtue of [international] responsibility . . . only by courting the prospective guilt of the atomic bomb. (Niebuhr 1952: 2) This irony is amplified by an influential idealism, with its extremes of power-renouncing non-interventionism and power-celebrating imperialism, which could only result in still less security. Proper dissolution of this situation requires that America realises its hidden vanities and pretensions, and shows sincere remorse (Niebuhr 1952: viii).

Niebuhr’s Realism in the Twenty-First Century Were he alive, Niebuhr would presumably have felt his Christian realism to be as relevant to twenty-first-century developments as to earlier ones. His realism entailed ‘[paying] attention to what was really happening’ (Lovin 2005: 470; cf. Bacevich 2008: 7; Veldhuis 1975: 4–5). Niebuhr himself encountered two World Wars and the subsequent bipolar

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 260

23/10/18 12:44 PM

reinhold niebuhr

261

nuclear stability; Niebuhrians today have reason to reflect on security-relevant realities such as aggression, military intervention, climate change and energy. Their deliberations will obviously be moral, yet avoid preoccupation with theoretically precise but practically inert principles as in modern, post-Rawlsian political liberalism (cf. Cherniss 2016). Rather, Niebuhrians will adopt a consistently sin-based, anti-utopianist viewpoint that highlights a realistic awareness of the predominance of collective self-interest and power, displays irony–sensibility and stresses the need for humbly responsible action. Beyond this basic attitude, they will tolerate a diversity of non-cynical and non-moralistic opinions about concrete measures. Policy consensus among Niebuhrians cannot always be guaranteed (cf. Elshtain 2010: 55). Thus, Niebuhrian realism will maintain maxims such as ‘do not expect too much’ (Waltz 1959: 33), ‘do not aim for too much’, ‘scrutinise your motives’ and ‘allow reasonable plurality’. The distinct relevance of a Niebuhrian approach to war and peace is suggested by the 2003 Iraq War debate. First, Niebuhrian realism would analyse this war differently from just war theory. As Carlson argues, the Iraq War raised doubts about assuming obvious distinctions: between the justice of overthrowing a brutal tyranny and the injustice of sectarian violence that followed, or between the aggression Saddam’s Iraq made against other countries and the ‘preemptive self-defense’ of the US, which . . . was perceived widely as aggression. (Carlson 2010: 196) Second, a Niebuhrian assessment of the Bush administration’s case for war would differ from that of those critics whose arguments were intolerantly ‘steeped in a form of moralist perfectionism’ (Carlson 2010: 198). Third, Niebuhrian realism would disagree with the rationalist, amoral positions of neorealists such as Stephen Walt, John Mearsheimer and Kenneth Waltz, who rejected the war for not being in the American national interest. A Niebuhrian might have supported the war if democratic civilisation were at stake or international stability endangered. Nevertheless, she would have found insufficient reason to believe that such was actually the case – also because of the administration’s false claims, overstated non-political moral causes, and lack of patience and modesty (cf. Carlson 2010: 198). Thus, although Niebuhrian realism rejects ‘demonization of the Bush Administration’ (Elshtain 2010: 55), it would criticise the war as overambitious and blinded by moralism: a utopianist misuse of hegemonic power. Niebuhr’s thought may also illuminate our understanding of humanitarian intervention as an issue of broad security interest. In his, often dubbed ‘Niebuhrian’, 2009 Nobel Prize speech, President Obama declared: ‘I believe that force can be justified on humanitarian grounds, as it was in the Balkans, or in other places that have been scarred by war. Inaction tears at our conscience and can lead to more costly intervention later’ (2009). Yet we may doubt whether such an endorsement of humanitarian intervention is consistent with Niebuhrian anti-utopianism, which foresees unintended, undesirable consequences of even well-meant interventions in foreign societies. Indeed, Obama’s plea was more typical of the just war theory he also defended than of Niebuhrian ethical realism. From a Niebuhrian perspective, even when humanitarian interventions have just causes, they will have immodest aims (even tending to pursue regime change rather than protection of civilians); encourage the violent, sinful action of rebels or terrorists; and be susceptible to self-sin, with cases selected on the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 261

23/10/18 12:44 PM

262

menno r. kamminga

basis of self-interest as well as humanitarian necessity. Thus, it seems unlikely that, for example, the North Atlantic Treaty Organization’s (NATO’s) 2011 Libya intervention could stand up to Niebuhrian scrutiny (against Brooks 2011). Since Niebuhr’s realism, through its defence of humility and modesty, intended to address ‘materialism’ besides ‘imperialism’ (Niebuhr 1952: 7, 112–15, 120), it is also relevant to the ‘current’, related realities of climate change and energy insecurity. Niebuhr could never have heard of ‘climate change’, which became known during the 1980s. Today, we know with virtual certainty that it is caused primarily by carbon dioxide emissions resulting from burning fossil fuels, with the USA as the leading polluter historically (Kamminga 2011). Still, Niebuhr showed critical awareness about the human inclination to exploit nature beyond the requirements of subsistence and the fulfilment of ‘human needs’ towards the satisfaction of ‘human wants’ (1932: 1). He complained about America’s ever-growing economy, which stimulated Americans to consume as much as they might desire. He criticised ‘a culture which makes “living standards” the final norm of the good life’ (Niebuhr 1952: 57). And he disliked the American ‘culture soft and vulgar, equating joy with happiness and happiness with comfort’ (quoted in Bacevich 2008: 9). This, Niebuhr felt, could not continue forever: there are limits to be humbly accepted (1952: 43–64). As Anatol Lieven, who also notes the climate relevance of Niebuhr’s thought, writes, Niebuhr ‘was austerely hostile to the American – or modern – idea that wealth and material development equates with spiritual merit’ (2010: 174). Whereas liberal political theory has reacted to the climate issue by elaborating theories of ‘climate (in)justice’, a more practical, Niebuhrian response could invoke concepts such as sin, responsibility, humility, modesty and irony (cf. Kamminga 2011). Niebuhr’s thought helps to diagnose climate change – a huge threat to American, as well as global, security – by regarding it as a quintessential example of irony, if not sin. Climate change is rooted in a well-intentioned American inventive effort to exploit fossil fuels for American and global welfare achievement. However, this effort, with its hope and ideals, has also resulted in bad national and global consequences for nature and humanity. Crucially, it has done so in a way that should not be regarded as pathetic or tragic but as within the limits of responsibility related to a rather blind pride about the American way of life. Indeed, climate change, embedded in an American (and Western) materialism criticised by Niebuhr, might symbolise the ultimate ‘irony of American history’, in which China and other developing countries have come to figure as enormous polluters due to a global spread of American-like oil dependence and consumerism. Concerning overcoming the American (and Western) blindness and dissolving the irony involved, Obama’s acknowledgement of the need for action, the historical responsibility of the developed countries to take the lead, and the unsustainability of the American way of fossil energy use was arguably more rhetorical than practical overall. Interestingly, former President Carter may serve as a Niebuhrian example for his attitude of moral renewal and critical self-awareness during the 1979 energy crisis, as Andrew Bacevich (2008: 15–66) has suggested. Jeopardising his 1980 re-election, Carter claimed that the risky American dependence on energy resulted from a deeper problem: its idea of freedom as grounded in the infinite quest for more while exalting narrow self-interest. For Carter as Niebuhr enthusiast, true freedom meant living according to permanent, non-materialist, values. Treating dependence on energy and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 262

23/10/18 12:44 PM

reinhold niebuhr

263

foreign oil as test-case, he called upon Americans to conserve: avoid unnecessary trips (and aircraft use), use carpools or public transport whenever possible, park your car one extra day per week, obey the speed limit and lower your thermostat. ‘Sacrifices’ like these would help to purify the environmental ‘sinner’. Thus, from a Niebuhrian perspective, Carter-like moral calls may make people see themselves in full light. Such appeals cannot guarantee success but do address the ‘relative morality of individuals’ and stay realistically within the maxims formulated earlier. While a Niebuhrian ‘obligation’ and ‘possibility’ of transnational climate action also exist, it is easy to be naive about what such action could accomplish. Over two decades of frustrating attempts by ‘egoistic’ states have produced an Obama-supported 2015 Paris Agreement that, albeit hailed as ‘historic’, features non-binding commitments and lack of enforcement mechanisms, and faces current US President Donald Trump’s resistance. Internationally, ‘hope’ and ‘fear’, stressed by Niebuhr, remain our drives for the ‘compelling task’ of fighting climate change.

Note 1. My streamlined–systematic reconstruction of Niebuhr’s thought omits historical developments and intricacies. For more historical approaches, see Craig (2003); Fox (1985); Erwin (2013).

Bibliography Amstutz, M. R. (2007), ‘The Bush Doctrine: A Niebuhrian assessment’, The Review of Faith & International Affairs, vol. 5, no. 4, pp. 25–33. Bacevich, A. (2008), The Limits of Power, New York: Metropolitan. Brooks, D. (2007), ‘Obama, gospel and verse’, The New York Times, 26 April, available at (last accessed 15 September 2016). Brooks, D. (2011), ‘The defection track’, The New York Times, 31 March, available at (last accessed 15 September 2016). Carlson, J. D. (2010), ‘Reinhold Niebuhr and the use of force’, in R. Harries and S. Platten (eds), Reinhold Niebuhr and Contemporary Politics, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 183–201. Cherniss, J. L. (2016), ‘A tempered liberalism: Political ethics and ethos in Reinhold Niebuhr’s thought’, The Review of Politics, vol. 78, no. 1, pp. 59–90. Coll, A. R. (1999), ‘Normative prudence as a tradition of statecraft’, in J. H. Rosenthal (ed.), Ethics and International Affairs, Washington: Georgetown University Press, pp. 75–100. Craig, C. (2003), Glimmer of a New Leviathan, New York: Columbia University Press. Crouter, R. (2010), Reinhold Niebuhr: On Politics, Religion, and Christian Faith, New York: Oxford University Press. Elshtain, J. B. (2010), ‘Niebuhr’s “nature of man” and Christian realism’, in R. Harries and S. Platten (eds), Reinhold Niebuhr and Contemporary Politics, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 42–57. Erwin, S. R. (2013), The Theological Vision of Reinhold Niebuhr’s ‘The Irony of American History’, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Fox, R. W. (1985), Reinhold Niebuhr: A Biography, New York: Pantheon. Gilkey, L. (2001), On Niebuhr: A Theological Study, Chicago: University of Chicago Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 263

23/10/18 12:44 PM

264

menno r. kamminga

Horwitz, R. B. (2016), ‘The revival of Reinhold Niebuhr: A foreign policy fable’, Public Culture, vol. 28, no. 1, pp. 113–38. Kamminga, M. R. (2011), ‘Standing in the shadows of Niebuhr: U.S. President Barack Obama and Reinhold Niebuhr’s Christian realism’, Philica.com, article 243. Kamminga, M. R. (2012), ‘Structure and sin: The Niebuhrian roots of Waltz’s neorealist theory of international politics’, Philica.com, article 335. Kennan, G. F. (1951), American Diplomacy, 1900–1950, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Lieven, A. (2010), ‘Realism and progress: Niebuhr’s thought and contemporary challenges’, in R. Harries and S. Platten (eds), Reinhold Niebuhr and Contemporary Politics, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 169–82. Lovin, R. W. (2005), ‘Reinhold Niebuhr: Impact and implications’, Political Theology, vol. 6, no. 4, pp. 459–71. Merkley, P. (1975), Reinhold Niebuhr: A Political Account, Montreal: McGill–Queen’s University Press. Morgenthau, H. J. (1973) [1948], Politics among Nations, New York: Knopf. Niebuhr, R. (1932), Moral Man and Immoral Society: A Study in Ethics and Politics, New York: Scribner’s. Niebuhr, R. (1940), Christianity and Power Politics, New York: Scribner’s. Niebuhr, R. (1941, 1943), The Nature and Destiny of Man: A Christian Interpretation, 2 vols, London: Nisbet. Niebuhr, R. (1944), The Children of Light and the Children of Darkness: A Vindication of Democracy and a Critique of its Traditional Defense, New York: Scribner’s. Niebuhr, R. (1948) [1935], An Interpretation of Christian Ethics, London: SCM Press. Niebuhr, R. (1952), The Irony of American History, New York: Scribner’s. Niebuhr, R. (1954), Christian Realism and Political Problems, London: Faber & Faber. Niebuhr, R. (1959), The Structure of Nations and Empires, New York: Scribner’s. Niebuhr, R. (1965), Man’s Nature and his Communities, New York: Scribner’s. Obama, B. (2009), ‘Remarks by the President at the acceptance of the Nobel Peace Prize’, available at (last accessed 15 September 2016). Patterson, E. (2015), ‘The enduring value of Christian realism’, Philosophia Reformata, vol. 80, no. 1, pp. 27–39. Rice, D. F. (2013), Reinhold Niebuhr and his Circle of Influence, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Thompson, K. W. (1955), ‘Beyond national interest: A critical evaluation of Reinhold Niebuhr’s theory of international politics’, The Review of Politics, vol. 17, no. 2, pp. 167–88. Veldhuis, R. (1975), Realism versus Utopianism?, Assen: Van Gorcum. Waltz, K. N. (1959), Man, the State and War, New York: Columbia University Press. Waltz, K. N. (1986), ‘Reflections on Theory of International Politics: A response to my critics’, in R. O. Keohane (ed.), Neorealism and its Critics, New York: Columbia University Press, pp. 322–45.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 264

23/10/18 12:44 PM

21 E. H. Carr A dialectics of utopia and reality Konstantinos Kostagiannis

Chapter Overview

E

. H. Carr is often considered as one of the founding fathers of modern realism. Carr’s brand of realism, unlike that of other classical realists, is not based on specific anthropological assumptions. As such, the key foundation of Carr’s realism does not lie with pre-determined conceptions of human nature or societal structures. It is rather his dialectics of power and morality that form the basis for a theory of international relations that is both flexible and progressive. This dialectical scheme also lay at the heart of Carr’s efforts to identify paths through which peaceful change could be achieved. Carr placed great emphasis on the balance between power and morality as the foundation of any stable international order. At the same time, he emphasised the need for a compromise between the interests of the ‘haves’ and those of the ‘have nots’. Carr often got his prescriptions wrong. At the same time, however, his dialectical scheme offered a way to engage with problems of modern international politics that was distinctively forward-looking. It is this progressive element of his theory of international relations that underpins the continued relevance of Carr’s approach to international relations into the twenty-first century. *

*

*

Introduction By the time E. H. Carr was appointed to the Woodrow Wilson Chair at Aberystwyth in 1936, he was no stranger to international politics, since he had already been working for the Foreign Office for two decades (Porter 2000: 36). It was from this newly assumed position that he launched his broadside against utopianism, starting with his inaugural lecture (Carr 1936) and culminating in the writing of his most influential work on international politics, The Twenty Years’ Crisis. The impact of the book was such, according to Booth, that to be labelled ‘utopian’ thereafter came to amount to a ‘professional kiss of death’ (Booth 1991: 531). For a long period, thus, Carr was best known for his decisive contribution in winning the ‘first great debate’ for realism. This grand narrative, however, has been recently challenged by revisionist accounts which exposed it as a rather simplistic representation of the debates that occurred during the interwar period. Such accounts have established that there was no such a thing as a

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 265

23/10/18 12:44 PM

266

konstantinos kostagiannis

sustained exchange between clearly defined ‘realist’ and ‘utopian/idealist’ schools in the 1930s and early 1940s which was decisively won by the former (Wilson 1998; Ashworth 2002). This challenge of traditional interpretations of Carr’s impact on the discipline, however, did not diminish interest in his work. As Cox notes in his preface to the latest edition of The Twenty Years’ Crisis, there has been sustained interest in Carr for the past few years (Cox 2016: ix–xxi). The fact that Carr came to occupy such a central place in the realist canon becomes even more noteworthy if one considers that his interest in international relations as a field of enquiry was not sustained for much longer than a decade. After 1945 Carr was already shifting his attention to the history of the Soviet Union as well as to ‘the nature of history and the relation of the past to the present’ (Carr 2000: xx–xxi). In the years that followed, Carr became increasingly sceptical of whether international relations even qualified as a separate discipline. Of his role in ‘starting this business’, he would confess in a letter to Stanley Hoffmann, he did not know whether he was ‘particularly proud’ (Haslam 1999: 251–3). Cox is thus correct to observe that Carr, ‘having made his mark, took no further direct part in the debate he had ignited’ (Cox 2000: 2). This is not to suggest that his mode of thought changed significantly. His work as a historian of the Soviet Union was no less attentive to the realities of power than his previous engagement with international politics (Duke 1993; Smith 2017a, 2017b). Indeed, several critics complained about what they saw as an endeavour in historiography which failed to condemn the moral shortcomings of the Soviet system, and which sided too readily with the ‘big battalions’ (Haslam 1999: 201–4). The present chapter explores Carr’s theory of international politics, its foundations and its continuing relevance in the twenty-first century. In the first part, I make some preliminary remarks about Carr’s approach and identify key characteristics that underpin his understanding of international relations. Those characteristics are central to his theoretical dialectics of power and morality, the identification of morality as the weaker part of the dialectics, and the fact that Carr’s realism represented a blend of power and morality that was geared towards achieving progressive change. Based on this dialectical background I then proceed to discuss Carr’s views about human beings and political societies. The following section discusses Carr’s efforts to address the question of peace, initially through moderate adjustment and then through the radical transformation of the international system. Finally, I discuss the continuing relevance of Carr’s realism in the twenty-first century.

The Dialectical Foundations of Carr’s Theory of International Relations The analysis that follows in this chapter is based on some important preliminary observations about Carr’s approach. The first observation is that Carr’s theory is founded upon a dialectical scheme which he employed consistently. The argument in The Twenty Years’ Crisis unfolds in such a way that politics emerges as the meeting point of the irreconcilable forces of utopia and reality, or morality and power. Carr uses realism to dismantle the utopian edifice but then turns his attention to exposing the sterility of realism itself. For Carr, then, political life is inseparable from the dialectics of utopia and reality, and sound political thought must strive to attain an uneasy

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 266

23/10/18 12:44 PM

e. h. carr

267

compromise between the two (Carr 2001: 84–96). This dialectical element of Carr’s thought is often overlooked by subsequent authors, usually realists themselves, who tend to identify him as an unqualified realist (Booth 1991: 531; Dunne 2000: 225–8) but has hardly gone unnoticed. Some of the most perceptive early commentators of Carr paid ample attention to his dialectics, whether they approached his work critically (Morgenthau 1948; Johnston 1967; Bull 1969) or under a more favourable light (Evans 1975). Recent scholarship has also displayed a keen interest in Carr’s dialectics (Howe 1994; Jones 1998; Dunne 2000; Molloy 2003, 2006). The dialectical scheme that Carr employed to approach international politics has two main characteristics. First, it is a rather eclectic construct which borrowed from, but operated differently to, the progressive Hegelian or Marxian dialectics. In Carr’s dialectics, synthesis is to be found in the balance between realism and utopianism, and such a balance is always going to be precarious. The relationship between the two opposing poles is therefore in constant flux, making his dialectical scheme a nonteleological one (Molloy 2006: 56–7; Kenealy and Kostagiannis 2013: 231). Second, it must be noted that the relationship between the two dialectical opposites of power and morality is not an equal one. Power, for Carr, is inseparable from politics. Whilst it would be unsatisfactory, he claimed, to try to define politics ‘exclusively in terms of power, it is safe to say that power is always an essential element of politics’ (Carr 2001: 97). Morality, the other pole of his dialectics, also has an important role to play in politics and Carr is dismissive of the crude realism which tends to disregard this role. To ignore the role of morality, he claimed, is as dangerous as ignoring power (Carr 2001: 91–6, 135–55). And yet, morality emerges as the weakest part of Carr’s dialectics as it remains conditioned by power. ‘Any international moral order’, he maintained, ‘must rest on some hegemony of power’ (Carr 2001: 151). Morality, thus, is inseparable from politics and moderates power but remains, ultimately, the weak part of the equation (Rich 2000: 212; Molloy 2006: 57; Kenealy and Kostagiannis 2013: 231; Molloy 2014: 459–63). What follows from this brief exposition of his dialectical scheme is that Carr, in so far as his own usage of the term ‘realism’ is concerned, was not a realist. Consistent realism is, as Carr made sure to state repeatedly, as certain to fail as unqualified utopianism. The weapons of realism are at a stage necessary to dismantle the utopian edifice and reveal its foundations, but realism’s sterility leads to a dead-end since it precludes purposeful political action (Carr 2001: 10, 12–21, 84–96). Sound political thought is to be found in the meeting point of reality and utopia. As soon, then, as a utopian construct lies in ruins, a new utopia needs to be built in its place: a utopia which will also eventually collapse through the same tools of realism (Carr 2001: 87). Carr thus introduces a second type of realism, one that is diluted with a healthy dose of utopianism, which he sees in a much more positive light (Jones 1998: 53–4; Molloy 2013: 261–3). It is in the company of great realists of the past or ‘those realists with an ideal’ (Jones 1998: 54), like Machiavelli and Marx, that Carr seeks to place his own realism. His, consequently, unlike the undiluted realism he castigated in his Twenty Years’ Crisis, can rather more fittingly be described as a ‘utopian realism’ (Howe 1994). This blend of utopianism and realism, with an eye always fixed to the future, is what makes Carr’s realism a distinctively progressive theory of international politics. The belief in progress is palpable in Carr’s writings that delved into the nature of history (Carr 1962, 1987). Critics have claimed that Carr’s confident belief in progress

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 267

23/10/18 12:44 PM

268

konstantinos kostagiannis

represented an effort to escape from the relativistic implications of the realist side of his theory (Johnston 1967; Jenkins 2000: 312). ‘Having discovered his God in history,’ Johnston claimed, ‘he must now show that God to be benevolent . . . he must show history to be progressive’ (Johnston 1967: 879). Regardless of his motivations for doing so, Carr indeed never renounced the optimism with which he concluded What is History? (Carr 2000: xxi). Whilst considering the situation of Western societies in 1980 to be one of ‘decline and decay’, he refused to resign himself to pessimism. The belief that ‘new forces and movements, whose shape we cannot yet guess’ and which ‘are germinating beneath the surface’, he admitted to be his own ‘unverifiable Utopia’ (Carr 2000: xxi). This notion of progress is open-ended and non-teleological, defined as movement ‘towards purposes which are felt to be worthy’ (Carr 1962: 117). Carr’s dialectics of power and morality, and the emphasis on the purposeful character of political thought, are geared towards achieving, always precariously and tentatively, such progress. Carr was not alone in employing a realism that embraced an agenda of progressive reform both domestically and internationally. As Scheuerman has demonstrated, he can be included in a broader category of intellectuals who were left-leaning and influenced by German political thought and who can be collectively described as ‘progressive realists’ (Scheuerman 2011: 1–13).

Human Beings and Political Society Carr’s views about the nature of human beings and societies are closely interlinked with this dialectical framework and as such display remarkable flexibility. Classical realism is usually associated with assumptions about the rooting of a lust for power in human nature. Starting, however, with Herz’s formulation of the security dilemma as a sociological rather than anthropological condition, the focus of realists shifted away from human nature. The transition to structural realism, with its emphasis on international anarchy, led to what Schuett aptly describes as the ‘death of human nature’ in contemporary realism (Schuett 2010: 23–6). Given this apparently clear-cut transition, it would be expected that Carr, as one of the first twentieth-century realists, could fit comfortably in the same camp as Morgenthau or Niebuhr. Carr’s case, however, presents some difficulties that defy easy classification. The problem with Carr is that he never offered an extensive exposition of his assumptions about human nature in the same way that other classical realists did. He did not seem particularly interested in approaching human nature as an analytical concept (Johnson 2013: 233). Consequently, such assumptions must be inferred from the few traces that are present in various parts of his work. It is no surprise, then, that Carr’s brand of realism is sometimes considered to be devoid of any assumptions about human nature (Schuett 2010: 35). Jones for example, claims that Carr, owing to his similarities with Mannheim and his sociology of knowledge, ought to be ‘sharply distinguished’ from other classical realists and their emphasis on the continuity of the human condition (Jones 1997: 240). As I will show subsequently, this claim is, in the main, correct but needs to be qualified somewhat. Carr employs a conception of human nature, albeit one that is more flexible than that of other classical realists. Probably the most systematic discussion of Carr’s views on human nature is to be found in the few pages of The Twenty Years’ Crisis that are dedicated to the nature of politics. There, he identifies self-assertion and altruism as the two ‘conflicting aspects

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 268

23/10/18 12:44 PM

e. h. carr

269

of human nature’ that are the essential building blocks of ‘every political society’ (Carr 2001: 92). Those two aspects of human nature are clearly presented in a manner consistent with the broader scheme of dialectics between power and morality that Carr employed (Molloy 2006: 57; Chong 2007: 620–1; Schuett 2010: 38) and are repeated in his later New Society (Carr 1962). It would be fallacious, Carr maintained, to try to separate politics from either self-assertion or altruism. As such, any effort to understand politics as the exclusive domain of power is as misguided as any effort to understand it as entirely divorced from it. The abstraction of homo politicus as someone ‘who pursues nothing but power’ is therefore rather misleading for Carr (Carr 2001: 92). This intimate relation between the dialectics of power and morality, and his conception of human nature is discussed at length by Johnson in his attentive reading of this aspect of Carr’s work. It is in the realist part of the equation, Johnson argues, that the ‘deterministic, causal elements in politics’ are to be found (Johnson 2013: 235). Given that, for realism, all politics is always going to be power politics, and since Carr did not attribute the quest for power to either divine agency or anarchy, there must be ‘a relatively invariant human nature’ which is held responsible for this outcome (Johnson 2013: 236). Carr might be employing a notion of human nature in his dialectics, but such a notion is not one that leads necessarily to pessimistic conclusions. He certainly was not persuaded by approaches which tended to exaggerate the evil facets of human nature. ‘It has become fashionable among some writers’, he complained, ‘to dwell with almost sadistic pleasure on the fact of original sin,’ before going on to insist that this was only a partial truth which neglected the capacity of human beings for great achievements (Carr 1962: 111). He furthermore allowed for a conception of human nature that is flexible. It ought to be understood, he claimed, as ‘a historical phenomenon’ which varies in time and space and is shaped in different fashion by different social conditions (Carr 1987: 32–3). To summarise, Carr offers an account of human nature which, whilst encapsulating the ‘bare minimum of empirical observation about how societies operate diachronically’, is unfixed and allows for considerable flexibility (Kostagiannis 2013: 833). Carr’s understanding of the nature of human societies is similarly characterised by considerable flexibility and follows closely his conception of human nature. ‘Man’, he proclaimed following Aristotle, ‘has always lived in groups’ (Carr 2001: 91). For Carr, it is meaningless to study the individual as an abstraction in clear separation from society, as such an individual never existed. From the moment of birth, ‘the world gets to work on us and transforms us from merely biological into social units’ (Carr 1987: 31). As mentioned already, all political societies are a blend of the two essential traits of human social behaviour namely self-assertion and altruism. What distinguishes political societies from other types is that participation in them is not voluntary and as such coercion is exercised regularly (Carr 2001: 91–2). But apart from that general observation, little else is fixed in Carr’s conception of political society. For example, both the state and the nation are, for Carr, historically contingent forms of political society (Carr 2001: 91; Carr 1945: 39). One thing that seemed to remain constant for Carr, however, at least for the foreseeable future, was the fragmentation of the world into a multitude of such societies or ‘group units’. He cautioned, for example, that ‘there is some evidence’ that there are some limits to the size political units can reach before they trigger ‘disintegrating tendencies’ (Carr 2001: 212). Even when

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 269

23/10/18 12:44 PM

270

konstantinos kostagiannis

contemplating ways to transcend the nation-state, Carr thought that regional units were a more realistic alternative to the world-state in a world that ‘gravitates towards several competing centres of power’ (Carr 1945: 45).

‘Conditions of Peace’: From Appeasement to a Functional Blueprint for European Integration Carr’s efforts to address the question of peace also grew naturally out of the dialectical scheme he employed. The common denominator of his advocacy of appeasement in the 1930s and his proposals for a radical transformation of the international system through functionalism in the 1940s was his attempt to identify the workable balance between power and morality in any given situation. Throughout the 1930s, Carr focused on prescribing policies that would lead to what he considered as the necessary revision of the punitive Treaty of Versailles. As a young diplomat participating in the British delegation to the peace conference, Carr was ‘outraged by French intransigence and by unfairness to the Germans’, as he later recalled (Carr 2000: xvi). He would later recall this initial indignation with the terms of the treaty, which was by no means peculiar to Carr, when encountering the increasingly assertive Germany of the 1930s (Carr 2000: xix). Even before leaving the Foreign Office for Aberystwyth, then, Carr was quite vocal about accommodating Germany. Carr criticised the postwar settlement whilst writing under a pseudonym in January 1933, and his resolve to publicise his support of appeasement further might have contributed to his decision to resign from the Foreign Office (Haslam 1999: 58–60). It is in such a context that he set out to write The Twenty Years’ Crisis, a book which, at least to some of his commentators, was written not so much to contemplate the nature of international relations but rather to persuade his audience about his preferred policies (Jones 1998: 46–65). After exposing the inadequacy of both utopianism and consistent realism, Carr moved on to present his prescription for attaining a balance between the two in achieving peaceful change. Carr’s discussion is founded upon the belief that change in the international system occurs, regardless of the wishes of the satiated powers. Drawing a parallel with domestic politics, he claimed that trying to cling desperately to the status quo is bound to ‘end in war as surely as rigid conservatism will end in revolution’ (Carr 2001: 201). What is needed, he claimed, is a keen awareness on behalf of the ‘haves’ of the changing realities of power and an ensuing willingness to make concessions to the ‘have-nots’. This, the realist element of peaceful change, represents the almost mechanical adjustments to the changing equilibrium of power (Carr 2001: 192–9). This unavoidable consideration of power needs to be complemented by the element of morality. The latter is based on a ‘certain measure of common feeling as to what is just and reasonable in their mutual relations, a spirit of give and take’ that can form the basis of a minimum set of values shared by both sides (Carr 2001: 199–202). In terms of the debates of the 1930s, the policy implications vis-à-vis the revisionist power of the period par excellence, Germany, were quite straightforward. In a much-discussed passage that he controversially removed from the second edition of the book, Carr heralded the Munich agreement as a successful example of peaceful

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 270

23/10/18 12:44 PM

e. h. carr

271

change (Cox 2001: lxxii–lxxxii). Carr’s advocacy of appeasement was consistent with his ethics of adjustment and based upon a ‘clinically detached analysis of power within the system’ (Molloy 2013: 267, 265–8). The problem with such a policy was, however, that its success was predicated on the assumption that Hitler was indeed appeaseable. This is not to suggest that those behind the policy were as naive as is often assumed. At the time of the Munich agreement, Chamberlain had to face not only the hostility of the dominions and of public opinion to another European war, but also the fact that the rearmament of France and Britain was expected to reach war readiness only in 1939 (Ashworth 2014: 184–97). Carr alluded to a similar logic when claiming, in a second book that he published in 1939, that British unpreparedness up to 1938 made appeasement the only practical option (Carr 1939: 176; Molloy 2013: 270). There was, none the less, certainly an element of underestimation in Carr’s thought regarding the magnitude of the threat posed by Hitler (Molloy 2014: 471). As he would later admit, Carr’s reflexes on the matter were rather blunted by his preoccupation with the horrors of the purges in the Soviet Union, which led him to neglect the situation in Germany (Carr 2001: xviii–xix).1 Appeasement failed to produce the peaceful change that Carr hoped for and the Second World War broke out. During the war Carr produced two further works on international relations: Conditions of Peace, which he had already begun in 1940, appeared in early 1942, and Nationalism and After in 1945 (Haslam 1999: 95–118; Carr 1942; Carr 1945). The publication of Conditions of Peace signalled a crucial transition in Carr’s ideas about achieving peace. Carr shifted his focus away from the previously advocated ethics of adjustment, designed to preserve the prewar order, towards the radical ethics of transformation once this order had collapsed (Molloy 2014: 472–8).2 The first task Carr set out to complete was to comprehend the nature of the – still ongoing – war. He insisted that the war should be understood not merely as a conflict between European nationstates, but also as part of a revolutionary process which stemmed from a crisis so serious that it reached the ‘deepest roots of our civilization’ (Carr 1942: 3–5). This crisis, which, for Carr, was essentially a moral crisis, was multi-faceted and was brought about by the bankruptcy of the moral edifice of the nineteenth century. Carr identified three main manifestations of this moral crisis: a crisis of liberal democracy, a crisis of self-determination, and finally a crisis of laissez-faire economics (Carr 1942: 14–101). The problem was not that those principles were wrong per se. In fact, they served the societies that had given rise to them relatively well. The problem rose from the failure to realise that societies had since moved on, and that those principles needed to be redefined to match the changed underlying realities better. The important issue, thus, for Carr was how to construct a new moral order or – as his brand of realism would have it – how to achieve a new compromise between power and morality (Kenealy and Kostagiannis 2013: 233–5). Unsurprisingly, for someone who repeatedly emphasised the purposeful character of political thought, Carr’s attention then turned to offering ‘a vision of systemic transformation’, which would be ‘brought about through the operation of power, towards some newly defined moral end’ (Kenealy and Kostagiannis 2013: 235). The new moral ends which Carr tried to identify were in large part focused on domestic politics (Molloy 2014: 477). The ‘new faith’, he proclaimed, should appeal to the ‘little man’, address the economic crisis and especially unemployment and inequality, and reverse the nineteenth-century tendency to prioritise rights over obligations to achieve

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 271

23/10/18 12:44 PM

272

konstantinos kostagiannis

social cohesion (Carr 1942: 117–22). At the international level, what Carr deemed essential was the readjustment of the hitherto held belief that self-determination was inseparable from nationalism, and as such could be reserved only for nations (Carr 1942: 38–47). For Carr, this conflation between self-determination and nationalism was the result of the universalisation of Western European experience and had negative implications when applied outside of this original context. The assumption that nations – like individuals – should enjoy natural rights such as freedom and equality was morally dubious, as it led to the violation of said rights for individuals, especially within several of the newly independent states in the wake of World War I (Carr 1945: 38–43). The problem with nationalism was further exacerbated due to what Carr saw as the decreasing capacity of the nation-state to address the needs of its population for economic welfare and security (Carr 1942: 53–60; Carr 1945: 37). Consequently, like other realists of the same period, Carr saw the nation-state as experiencing an acute moral crisis as well as political and economic decline, and sought to contemplate ways to transcend it (Scheuerman 2011: 4066). Carr’s blueprint for postwar reconstruction was one that focused on challenging the notion that the nation-state is somehow ‘the sole rightful sovereign repository of political power and the ultimate constituent unit of world organization’ (Carr 1945: 39). The needs of modern societies could be effectively addressed only by larger units of military and economic organisation. Those multinational units would, in such a project, coexist with nations, the latter surviving as ‘administrative and cultural units’ (Carr 1945: 59). This is not to imply that the newly established units would receive the same type of authorities and enjoy the same loyalties that used to define nation-states. This would merely lead to a replication of the problems of nationalism on a larger, and potentially even more destructive scale (Carr 1945: 53). The aim would rather be to create a set of authorities which would address different practical issues based on the principles of functional organisation (Carr 1945: 46–8). Based on such principles, Carr offered a detailed blueprint of postwar European reconstruction, which comprised a set of functional agencies under the supervision of an envisaged European Planning Authority (Carr 1942: 236–75).3 Carr’s ideas about functional integration as a way of transcending the nation-state bear a remarkable resemblance to David Mitrany’s functionalism and were probably influenced to some extent by the latter (Scheuerman 2011: 76–81; Kenealy and Kostagiannis 2013: 238–9). At the same time, however, Carr’s functionalism had a strong territorial element, as he was more concerned with regional integration, which he considered more realistic (Kenealy and Kostagiannis 2013: 238–9).

Carr’s Contemporary Relevance In this final part, I discuss what insights for the twenty-first century we can possibly draw from Carr’s work, almost a century after his worldview started to form (Cox 2010: 525) and several decades since his last engagement with international politics. The question I seek to answer is essentially the same one that Jones posed in 1998: at the present juncture, which debates and ideas, he asked, are ‘of more than antiquarian interest’ (Jones 1998: 15)? Such a question is all the more important if one takes into account the fact that Carr ‘turned out to be such a poor prophet in his own day’ (Jones 1998: 18). Indeed, Carr was always ‘willing to diagnose’ and probably a bit ‘too eager

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 272

23/10/18 12:44 PM

e. h. carr

273

to prescribe’ (Haslam 2000: 26). The result was that he often got his prescriptions as well as his predictions wrong. The policy of appeasement, which he advocated in the 1930s, was already bankrupt by the time The Twenty Years’ Crisis was in print. Liberalism and nationalism proved way more resilient than Carr had thought, and the Soviet Union, which he spent so much time studying, collapsed only a few years after his death (Cox 2010: 532). Carr’s continuing relevance, however, is not to be found in the policies he supported or his specific predictions. What still resonates with our world, as Jones aptly put it, are the questions that Carr asked, as well as his proposed method (Jones 1998: 21). The sociology of knowledge, which Carr employed as the realist extreme of his dialectics, can still be relied on to unmask the conditionality of purported absolutes. This is the first step in creating self-awareness with the satisfied powers who benefit more from any given international order. Any such order will always, for Carr, be founded upon some hegemony of power but must also involve some amount of ‘give and take’ to be rendered tolerable ‘to the other members of the world community’ (Carr 2001: 151–2). This tension between the ‘haves’ and the ‘have-nots’, which was so prominent in Carr’s attempts to prescribe peaceful change through accommodation in the 1930s, retreated backstage for the duration of the Cold War. When Bull critically revisited Carr’s classic work in the late 1960s and tried to evaluate which of its aspects were of continuing relevance, he noted that this tension was still present but qualitatively different in the context of the Cold War. Unlike Europe during the interbellum, he claimed, the main conflict of the time was not one between the ‘haves’ and ‘have-nots’ but one between ‘haves’. The two superpowers, as the leading ‘haves’ in their respective camps, faced no potential combination of dissatisfied powers which could possibly challenge their supremacy (Bull 1969: 634–6). With the end of the Cold War and the advent of what some scholars described as the ‘unipolar moment’, it seemed, at least for a while, that the distance between the ‘haves’ and ‘have-nots’ would remain too big for the latter seriously to contemplate challenging the international order.4 The same claim, however, cannot be made with the same amount of certainty for the twenty-first century. There has been a vivid debate in the past few years about the potential decline of the USA and the rise of other powers, especially China, that might challenge the predominant position of the West in the distant or not-so-distant future (Cox 2012). My aim here is not to resolve this debate, but to examine what insights from Carr can be of potential usefulness if such a power shift materialises. For some prominent contemporary realists, the rise of China can lead only to security competition, as it will inevitably reach out for regional hegemony (Mearsheimer 2010). In such a scenario, Carr’s ideas about peaceful change and an accommodation between ‘haves’ and ‘have-nots’ might provide fruitful ground for approaching the problem in a less fatalistic way. Any compromise will be uneasy and precarious but the effort to contemplate it is, I believe, preferable to the resigned anticipation of an unavoidable conflict. Such an anticipation might as well become a self-fulfilling prophecy and thus aggravate the situation, as Cox correctly cautioned (Cox 2012: 381). Another benefit of turning to Carr is his intriguing analysis of crisis and of potential ways out of it once the previous order can no longer be merely managed and collapses. Carr’s pragmatism allowed him to approach a crisis as a moment of opportunity for the exploration of hitherto unthinkable options in a progressive direction

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 273

23/10/18 12:45 PM

274

konstantinos kostagiannis

(Molloy 2014: 477). The wave of liberal triumphalism which followed the end of the Cold War has now receded, and we currently find ourselves amidst a crisis in the liberal world order which has some similarities to the one Carr experienced in the wake of the First World War (Cox 2010: 525). This is not of course to suggest that the crisis of liberalism today is as acute as that of the interbellum or that we should turn to Carr’s own prescriptions for solutions. We can, however, be inspired by his willingness to challenge certainties and to reveal their conditional character, and by his attempt to identify workable compromises between morality and utopia.

Conclusion Carr often got his predictions and his prescriptions wrong and his answers ‘might not be fashionable any longer’ (Cox 2010: 533). The point of engaging with his work is, however, not to identify ready-made solutions for contemporary issues. Carr never believed that the past can hold such solutions. What it can – and does – hold are ‘those critical insights’ which can illuminate the emergence of present conditions (Carr 1962: 18). Carr’s mode of thought and his way of dissecting problems and looking for the ideal balance between power and morality to solve them are, I believe, part of its enduring legacy rather than a weakness. The dialectics of power and morality he espoused offer the distinct possibility for an analysis of international politics that is progressively minded and forward-looking.

Notes 1. The intimate connection between realism and appeasement was already in place before Carr set out to write The Twenty Years’ Crisis. The two were so closely interlinked, in the eyes of British scholars and public alike, that in the first two decades after the war, identification with ‘realism’ was avoided, even by thinkers who would otherwise have matched the label (Hall 2012: 29–47). 2. The difference between his later works and The Twenty Years’ Crisis was such that it led Whittle Johnston to claim that Carr was, in fact, employing two distinct theories of international relations which he failed to reconcile (Johnston 1967). See also the excellent response to Johnston’s claim by Evans (1975). 3. This aspect of Carr’s thought is discussed more extensively in Kenealy and Kostagiannis (2013: 235–40). 4. It is beyond the scope of this chapter to offer a comprehensive account of whether the USA is indeed enjoying a unipolar moment. The term was popularised in the immediate aftermath of the Cold War by Krauthammer (1990) and challenged by Layne soon thereafter (1993). Smith offers an overview of the first years of the debate (Smith 2002: 171–3).

Bibliography Ashworth, L. M. (2002). ‘Did the realist–idealist great debate really happen? A revisionist history of international relations’, International Relations, vol. 16, no. 1, pp. 33–51. Ashworth, L. M. (2014), A History of International Thought: From the Origins of the Modern State to Academic International Relations, New York: Routledge. Booth, K. (1991), ‘Security in anarchy: Utopian realism in theory and practice’, International Affairs (Royal Institute of International Affairs 1944– ), pp. 527–45.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 274

23/10/18 12:45 PM

e. h. carr

275

Bull, H. (1969), ‘The Twenty Years’ Crisis thirty years on’, International Journal, vol. 24, no. 4, pp. 625–38. Carr, E. H. (1936), ‘Public opinion as a safeguard of peace’, International Affairs (Royal Institute of International Affairs 1931–9), vol. 15, no. 6, pp. 846–62. Carr, E. H. (1939), Britain: A Study of Foreign Policy from the Versailles Treaty to the Outbreak of War, London: Longmans, Green. Carr, E. H. (1942), Conditions of Peace, London: Macmillan. Carr, E. H. (1945), Nationalism and After, London: Macmillan. Carr, E. H. (1962), The New Society, Boston: Beacon Press. Carr, E. H. (1987), What is History?, Harmondsworth: Penguin. Carr, E. H. (2000), ‘An autobiography’, in M. Cox (ed.), E. H. Carr: A Critical Appraisal, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. xiii–xxii. Carr, E. H. (2001), The Twenty Years’ Crisis: An Introduction to the Study of International Relations, ed. by Michael Cox, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Chong, A. (2007), ‘Lessons in international communication: Carr, Angell and Lippmann on human nature, public opinion and leadership’, Review of International Studies, vol. 33, no. 4, pp. 615–35. Cox, M. (2000), ‘Introduction: E. H. Carr – a critical appraisal’, in M. Cox (ed.), E. H. Carr: A Critical Appraisal, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 1–18. Cox, M. (ed.) (2001), ‘From the first to the second editions of The Twenty Years’ Crisis: A case of self-censorship?’, in E. H. Carr, The Twenty Years’ Crisis: An Introduction to the Study of International Relations, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Cox, M. (2010), ‘E H Carr and the crisis of twentieth-century liberalism: Reflections and lessons’, Millennium: Journal of International Studies, vol. 38, no. 3, pp. 523–33. Cox, M. (2012), ‘Power shifts, economic change and the decline of the West?’, International Relations, vol. 26, no. 4, pp. 369–88. Cox, M. (2016), ‘A new preface from Michael Cox’, in E. H. Carr, The Twenty Years’ Crisis, 1919–1939: Reissued with a New Preface From Michael Cox, London: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. ix–xxi. Duke, D. F. (1993), ‘Edward Hallett Carr: Historical realism and the liberal tradition’, Past Imperfect, vol. 2, pp. 123–36. Dunne, T. (2000), ‘Theories as weapons: E. H. Carr and international relations’, in M. Cox (ed.), E. H. Carr: A Critical Appraisal, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 217–33. Evans, G. (1975), ‘E H Carr and international relations’, British Journal of International Studies, vol. 1, no. 2, pp. 77–97. Hall, I. (2012), Dilemmas of Decline: British Intellectuals and World Politics, 1945–1975, Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press. Haslam, J. (1999), The Vices of Integrity: E H Carr, 1892–1982, London: Verso. Haslam, J. (2000), ‘E H Carr’s search for meaning, 1892–1982’, in M. Cox (ed.), E. H. Carr: A Critical Appraisal, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 21–35. Howe, P. (1994), ‘The utopian realism of E H Carr’, Review of International Studies, vol. 20, no. 3, pp. 277–97. Jenkins, K. (2000), ‘An English myth? Rethinking the contemporary value of E H Carr’s What is History?’, in M. Cox (ed.), E. H. Carr: A Critical Appraisal, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 304–21. Johnson, T. J. (2013), ‘The idea of power politics: The sophistic foundations of realism’, in B. Frankel (ed.), Roots of Realism, New York: Routledge, pp. 194–247. Johnston, W. (1967), ‘E H Carr’s theory of international relations: A critique’, The Journal of Politics, vol. 29, no. 4, pp. 861–84. Jones, C. (1997), ‘Carr, Mannheim, and a post-positivist science of international relations’, Political Studies, vol. 45, no. 2, pp. 232–46.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 275

23/10/18 12:45 PM

276

konstantinos kostagiannis

Jones, C. (1998), E. H. Carr and International Relations: A Duty to Lie, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Kenealy, D., and K. Kostagiannis (2013), ‘Realist visions of European Union: E H Carr and integration’, Millennium, vol. 41, no. 2, pp. 221–46. Kostagiannis, K. (2013), ‘Mind the gap between nationalism and international relations: Power and the nation-state in E H Carr’s realism’, International Politics, vol. 50, no. 6, pp. 830–45. Krauthammer, C. (1990), ‘The unipolar moment’, Foreign Affairs, vol. 70, no. 1, pp. 23–33. Layne, C. (1993), ‘The unipolar illusion: Why new great powers will rise’, International Security, vol. 17, no. 4, pp. 5–51. Mearsheimer, J. J. (2010), The gathering storm: China’s challenge to US power in Asia’, The Chinese Journal of International Politics, vol. 3, no. 4, pp. 381–96. Molloy, S. (2003), ‘Dialectics and transformation: Exploring the international theory of E H Carr’, International Journal of Politics, Culture, and Society, vol. 17, no. 2, pp. 279–306. Molloy, S. (2006), The Hidden History of Realism: A Genealogy of Power Politics, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Molloy, S. (2013), ‘Spinoza, Carr, and the ethics of The Twenty Years’ Crisis’, Review of International Studies, vol. 39, no. 2, pp. 251–71. Molloy, S. (2014), ‘Pragmatism, realism and the ethics of crisis and transformation in international relations’, International Theory, vol. 6, no. 3, pp. 454–89. Morgenthau, H. (1948), ‘The political science of E H Carr’, World Politics, vol. 1, no. 1, pp. 127–34. Porter, B. (2000), ‘E. H. Carr – The Aberystwyth years, 1936–47’, in M. Cox (ed.), E. H. Carr: A Critical Appraisal, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 36–67. Rich, P. (2000), ‘E H Carr and the quest for moral revolution in international relations’, in M. Cox (ed.), E. H. Carr: A Critical Appraisal, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 198–216. Scheuerman, W. E. (2011), The Realist Case for Global Reform, Cambridge: Polity Press. Schuett, R. (2010), ‘Classical realism, Freud and human nature in international relations’, History of the Human Sciences, vol. 23, no. 2, pp. 21–46. Smith, K. (2017a), ‘A reassessment of E H Carr and the realist tradition: Britain, German–Soviet Relations and neoclassical realism’, International Politics, vol. 54, no. 1, pp. 89–103. Smith, K. (2017b), ‘The realism that did not speak its name: E. H. Carr’s diplomatic histories of The Twenty Years’ Crisis’, Review of International Studies (advance online publication), pp. 1–19, available at (last accessed 31 May 2018). Smith, S. (2002), ‘The end of the unipolar moment? September 11 and the future of world order’, International Relations, vol. 16, no. 2, pp. 171–83. Wilson, P. (1998), ‘The myth of the “first great debate”’, Review of International Studies, vol. 24, no. 5, pp. 1–16.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 276

23/10/18 12:45 PM

22 Leo Strauss Humanity and political realism Robert Howse

Chapter Overview

A

round the time of the Iraq War, a number of books and articles emerged attributing the foreign policy outlook of the George W. Bush Administration to neoconservatives inspired by the émigré German–Jewish political philosopher Leo Strauss. Strauss was thought to be the intellectual source for a foreign policy vision animated by a moralistic quest to impose US values on the rest of the world, if necessary by military force; Strauss, and his neocon disciples, such as William Kristol were seen as arch-enemies of constraints on US unilateralism through law or multilateral institutions. A different and contrary view of Strauss has emerged in the work of a range of scholars, some of whom can be placed on the ‘isolationist right’1; Strauss is seen as a realist rather than a moralist in foreign policy, and perhaps an adherent to political realism as such.2 *

*

*

Introduction Thomas West, a third-generation Straussian, has claimed, on the basis of a number of statements by Strauss about the attitude of classical political philosophy toward foreign policy, that Strauss’s foreign policy doctrine was: ‘leave other nations alone, except where one’s security is at risk’ (West 2012: 262). Applying this doctrine to the Iraq War, West has suggested that it would not have been justifiable in Strauss’s eyes. According to West, Strauss endorses the classical philosophers’ view (as Strauss understands it) that survival and independence are the only goals of foreign policy. Such a view is clearly compatible with the classic realism of, for example, Hans Morgenthau. Andras Lánczi claims that Strauss was a ‘political realist’, citing as evidence the fact that he wrote extensively on thinkers strongly associated with realism, including Xenophon, Thucydides, Machiavelli, Hobbes and Spinoza, his opposition to ideological politics, and his endorsement of ‘the conflictual character of man’s life’ (Lánczi 2015: 176–9). Eno Trimcev refers to Strauss’s ‘realist’ view of political regimes as characterised by the predominant powers in the regime rather than the formal law of the constitution. Trimcev suggests: [Strauss’s] concept of regime is a supremely realist one, rather than a legalistic ideal; it is the network of social forces and power relations holding a community together. It implies that legal institutions may not reflect the power dynamics in the community. (Trimcev 2017: 52)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 277

23/10/18 12:45 PM

278

robert howse

Jerry Muller sees the young Strauss as arguing that the Zionist movement should take a realist rather than moralist approach to politics: For Zionism to succeed as a political movement, . . . it needed to develop a sober, realistic view of politics. That meant avoiding multiple snares: an irrational faith in Orthodox Judaism, an unwarranted faith in liberal humanitarianism, and the unholy combination of the two that he saw as characteristic of ‘cultural Zionism’. And it meant eschewing the propensity of so many Jews to substitute moralistic judgment for realistic analysis of human motivation and behavior. (Muller 2010: 99) Finally, Peter Ahrensdorf, a fourth-generation Straussian, suggests that realism may express the theoretical truth about human conduct and international relations but that it does not take account fully of how powerful the illusion or hope for morality in international politics is among non-rational ordinary people; a hyper-realistic form of realism will give moral illusions and hopes their due in influencing actual policy outcomes, even if fully rational actors would operate strictly according to realist premises in a world where all the relevant actors are rational (Ahrensdorf 1997). While Ahrensdorf stops short of attributing this kind of ‘esoteric’ realism to Strauss himself (he states it instead in the name of Thucydides as read by Straussians), Ahrensdorf’s position does suggest a way of reconciling the apparent realist and idealist strands in Strauss’s treatment of politics and international relations. My own view of Strauss’s relation to realism is different from all these positions and has been elaborated in, especially, the chapters on Machiavelli and Thucydides in my 2014 book Leo Strauss Man of Peace (Howse 2014).

Man of Peace (But Not Pacifist) Strauss viewed it as desirable that, where possible, international relations be governed by morality and law, and oriented toward peace and the avoidance of conflict. At the same time, he saw conflict and the possibility of war as inherent in human nature, and eschewed the ideal that international law and institutions or a world state could ever simply overcome or subdue those aspects of human nature that lead to power struggles and even war (see, generally, Howse 2014). Strauss observed in his seminar on the great Dutch international jurist Hugo Grotius, ‘it is a great question . . . whether there is something deeper in man which leads to [war]’, something deeper such as ‘the element of danger . . . and sacrifice, and the kind of enthusiasm which men have more for this kind of thing than for others’ – in other words, as Strauss colourfully puts it, ‘the war against poverty does not arouse the kind of enthusiasm as a war against Japan does’ (Strauss 1964: lecture XIV, 22) Yet Strauss does not endorse this outlook as a normative stance, à la Carl Schmitt; indeed, in a clear swipe at Schmitt he speaks of the ‘delusions’ of ‘critics of modern democracy’ based on nostalgia for aristocratic wars that are merely imagined to have been noble and gentlemanly in their conduct. Writing during the Cold War, Strauss tended to emphasise that the margin of opportunity for morality and law to order international relations was very narrow, but, in the present context, that was because of the communists’ refusal to submit the means they used to achieve the project of a world communist society to any moral or legal constraints (Strauss 1978: 4–6). Earlier, in a lecture delivered in New York

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 278

23/10/18 12:45 PM

leo strauss

279

in the midst of World War Two, Strauss articulated the mission of Churchill and the Anglo-Saxon nations as the defence of human freedom, not the protection of national sovereignty: ‘The existence of civil liberties all over the world depends on Anglo-Saxon preponderance’ (Strauss 2007a: 518); ‘the cause which Churchill’s policy is meant to defend’ is that of a civilisation that would not exist without the tradition of political philosophy as founded by Socrates, Plato and Aristotle (Strauss 2007a: 527). In the 1950s, Strauss presented the struggle against Soviet communism not only as a struggle for survival and independence against a powerful enemy but also as a moral struggle against a degraded and degrading ideology, a civilisational battle and not just a traditional great power contest for dominance (Strauss 1953: 1–3). Indeed, Strauss was willing to countenance an increased risk of nuclear war in order to stand up to Soviet communism for the sake of freedom and civilisation, even going so far as to state: ‘the American people as a strong, virile, and free people will prefer to perish rather than to surrender [to Soviet Communism]’.3 In his seminar on Hugo Grotius, Strauss is clearly open to humanitarian intervention, the use of force on grounds of moral and legal justice to respond to atrocities by foreign governments on their own territory (even though he expresses awareness that this justification for the use of force carries a high risk of abuse) (Strauss 1964: lecture IX, 16); here again we see that Strauss’s actual stance is at odds with the national-interest realism attributed to him by Thomas West.

Realism and Moralism At the same time, defining realism is a complex semantic and contextual exercise. As Legro and Moravcsik explain, contemporary versions of realism seem to allow for what classic realists most wanted to eschew: the idea that not just power relations or material resources but also ideas, ideologies, rhetoric, law and institutions all shape in various ways state interests, and therefore actual outcomes in international politics. Legro and Moravcsik suggest, the malleable realist rubric now encompasses nearly the entire universe of international relations theory (including current liberal, epistemic, and institutionalist theories) and excludes only a few intellectual scarecrows (such as outright irrationality, widespread self-abnegating altruism, slavish commitment to ideology, complete harmony of state interests or a world state). (Legro and Moravcsik 1999) One could view Strauss’s understanding of international relations as a kind of what Legro and Moravcsik call ‘minimal realism’, a position that gives a considerable weight to power political necessities and eschews utopian projects such as the world state, but nevertheless sees an important role for ideas and moral and legal principles in determining outcomes in international relations. As Strauss puts it in his seminar on Thucydides, ‘There is a conflict between justice and necessity, and if this conflict is really clear necessity will always win’ (Strauss 1962: 65). Yet, Strauss will often emphasise, one should not simply assume that there is always such a conflict (as a Machiavellian perspective might naturally incline one to do). Strauss suggests in another lecture on Thucydides: ‘There exist alternatives. There is room for choice between sensible and mad courses, between moderate and immoderate courses; there is room, even, within limits, for choice between just and unjust courses’ (Strauss 1989: 90). Speaking during

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 279

23/10/18 12:45 PM

280

robert howse

World War Two (in 1942), Strauss writes, ‘the task . . . is to lay the foundations for a long peace period; it is not, and it cannot be, to abolish war for all times’ (Strauss 2007a: 528) – in other words, one can seek peace through law and institutions, but human nature and human experience teach that these cannot guarantee peace for all time, or eliminate that which, in human nature, inclines to conflict and war. Yet there is an important complication in identifying Strauss in terms of contemporary realist theories of international politics; these theories are avowedly descriptive, aiming to elucidate actual state behaviour, and while some realist thinkers draw policy implications from analyses of actual state behaviour, the overall intellectual or scientific ambition of realist theory is positive not normative; this contrasts with, for example, Morgenthau, whose realism is very much about how the USA should conduct itself in international politics (Morgenthau 1949). The distinctive relationship of Strauss to realism is in many ways framed by his famous – or notorious – view that valuefree social science is impossible, and that all purportedly objective or morally neutral accounts of political or social reality are in fact fraught with normative assumptions and judgements, often hidden or implicit (Strauss 1953: Ch. 2). This does not mean for Strauss that relativism prevails, since he also holds that rational dialogue and critique are possible of normative assumptions and judgements. Strauss accepts the existence of some of the realities that realists assert as a positive theory of political behaviour, but he is very critical of what he sees as the moral intent or normative objective of stressing these realities or even identifying them with the truth of political life. Strauss adheres to the view that he attributes to classical political philosophy: that the real and the ideal ought not to be collapsed into one another. He suggests modern realism and utopianism are two sides of the same coin: modern realism seeks to limit political goals and aspirations in light of certain selected low or harsh realities of politics, in order to achieve these lower or more limited goals fully (peace and prosperity rather than excellence or full human flourishing); modern utopianism tends toward a wish to project moral ideals and aspirations (however tempered or filtered by modern realism) as an inevitable future, in such a way as to be forgetful of the limits human nature places on their fulfilment in real life. This latter utopianism is, in practice, ‘bound to lead to disaster because it makes us underestimate the dangers to which the cause of decency and humanity is exposed and always will be exposed’ (Strauss 2007a: 527). The distinctive move of observing the utopian element in modern realism – lower the goals, the better to guarantee complete fulfilment – has deep roots in Strauss’s thought, including the influence of Nietzsche. Unmasking or bringing to light the moral intent behind apparently scientific amoral, or even immoral, theories of politics is an important trope of Strauss’s writing in the 1930s and continues through his masterwork on Machiavelli decades later. In Spinoza’s Critique of Religion, in a section entitled ‘The “Realism” of Spinoza’s Political Doctrine’, Strauss stresses the difference between Machiavelli’s political realism and Spinoza’s realism, which is fundamentally apolitical, though, secondarily, it does lead to a political teaching. The unpolitical realism of Spinoza is based on a particular form of intellectual probity – its moral orientation is amor fati: not just resignation but acceptance of the hard realities of human nature – prejudices, vices, passions – as an integral part of the whole. To wish these away is to betray the morality of philosophy, which, in Spinoza’s view, is beyond good and evil.4 According to Strauss, Spinoza ‘constructs the political world from the distance of contemplation, affirming the powers which form it, loving them after the manner of “amor fati”, but expelling them from the sphere of his own life’ (228).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 280

23/10/18 12:45 PM

leo strauss

281

For Machiavelli, however, it is above all as part of the ‘virtue’ of the legislator and founder of the state that he understands the acceptance and judicious adoption of ‘wickedness’ in politics, in order to achieve a new political project of general benefit to humankind (the meaning of the latter notion will be explained below in the section of this chapter on Strauss’s Thoughts on Machiavelli). In the case of Hobbes also, writing in the 1930s around the time of his confrontation with Carl Schmitt, Strauss looks behind the apparently scientific or morally neutral realism of the understanding of human nature and society to the view of the right way of life implied by that particular articulation of realism. Contrary to a common view, Strauss argued in his Political Philosophy of Hobbes: Its Basis and Its Genesis that Hobbes had formed his political outlook before adopting the scientific method characteristic of his mature writing; this outlook was determined not by a scientific study of human nature but by a moral interpretation of human experience (Strauss 1952). This interpretation exonerates and indeed elevates self-preservation while disparaging pride, vanity and ambition: ‘the definition of man’s natural appetite in terms of vanity is intended as a moral judgment’ (Strauss 1952: 14); ‘Hobbes’s political philosophy rests not on the illusion of an amoral morality but on a new morality’ (Strauss 1952: 15), which establishes the state as the means by which human competition for glory or superior power is put down, for the sake of human self-preservation and security. Strauss’s moral interpretation of Hobbes’s realism bears the traces of his unmasking of the political morality of Carl Schmitt, who insists on a concept of the political that is beyond moral categories. While Schmitt to some extent hides behind an apparently objective, ‘realist’ analysis of human nature and the political, reading him closely, ‘it becomes clear why Schmitt rejects the ideal of pacifism, not because it is impractical or misunderstands man’s “dangerousness”, but because a pacifist world would be one of amusement, without seriousness’ (Strauss 2007b: 116). Thus, Schmitt avowedly ‘affirms the political because he sees in the threatened status of the political a threat to the seriousness of human life. The affirmation of the political is ultimately nothing other than the affirmation of the moral’ (Strauss 2007b: 117). Schmitt seeks moral seriousness but without the core of morality, which is the notion of moral obligation, the idea that man is bound by higher or transcendent duties that are not derivative from ‘real’ or amoral passions or desires. For Schmitt, ‘the affirmation of the political as such is the affirmation of fighting as such, wholly irrespective of what is being fought for’ (Strauss 2007b: 120, emphasis in original). Empty of content, the ideal of fighting is just another moral preference, which has no greater or lesser status than the opposite equally sincere or honest liberal preference for peace and lawfulness. For Strauss, Schmitt’s preference for fighting, for conflict, for warrior-morality is one of the distinctive features of what, in his 1942 lecture of the same name, Strauss would label ‘German Nihilism’ (Strauss 1999). Strauss expresses a strongly negative view of the preference for fighting and conflict over peace. Thinkers like Schmitt try to translate the implausibility of a liberal cosmopolitan objective of a pacified world ever being securely achieved into a normative orientation toward conflict and war. As Strauss puts it in ‘German Nihilism’: To believe that eternal peace is a dream, is not militarism, but perhaps plain commonsense; it is at any rate not bound up with a particular moral taste. But to believe that eternal peace is not a beautiful dream, is tantamount to believing that

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 281

23/10/18 12:45 PM

282

robert howse

war is something desirable in itself and to believe that war is something desirable in itself, implies the rejection of the distinction between just and unjust wars, between wars of defence and wars of aggression. It is ultimately irreconcilable with the very idea of the law of nations. (Strauss 1999: 369) In the case of Max Weber, a decade later Strauss would attribute Weber’s quest for a value-neutral or value-free social science not to scientific realism or objectivity, but to a tragic sense of the conflict between ultimate values, which cannot be resolved through reason. Such a stance was itself, obviously, highly laden with moral or spiritual values. Strauss writes: [Weber] had to combine the anguish bred from atheism (the absence of any redemption, any solace), with the anguish bred by revealed religion (the oppressive sense of guilt). Without that combination life would cease to be tragic and thus lose its depth. (Strauss 1953: 66; see, generally, Behnegar 2005)

Moralism and Realism in Machiavelli In Strauss’s interpretation of Machiavelli, the relationship between moralism and realism is a central theme.5 Strauss begins by stating he is inclined to the ‘old-fashioned’ view of Machiavelli as a teacher of evil (Strauss 1958). From this opening stance (which has alienated many readers of Machiavelli, leading them not to read further with an open mind), there is then the revised view of Machiavelli as a ‘fallen angel’. In other words, Machiavelli began from highmindedness or purity of intent: therefore, the puzzle is what produced his fall into apparent immorality. According to Strauss’s Machiavelli, the God of the Bible puts man in a terrible, really impossible situation – a situation that leads to fanaticism, ‘pious cruelty’, truly inhuman punishment. Man has been created such that the demands of his (bestial) nature are not compatible with the demands of morality. There is a ‘disproportion between the command and man’s original nature or constitution’ (Strauss 1958: 188): ‘Man is by nature compelled to sin’ (Strauss 1958: 190). The key illustration (which shows the true centrality of war to Machiavelli’s thinking about man, and indeed nature or the whole) is the ‘just war’ fought for physical survival: Thanks to Heaven’s deficient kindness, nations sometimes wage war because the alternative is to perish through famine. This kind of war is much crueler than the one caused by love of honor and glory because in wars the survival of every member is at stake [footnote omitted]. The warriors fight for the very life of their neighbors, their fathers, their children and their womenfolk. In this case, the fulfillment of the divine command to multiply reduces large multitudes to the necessity of massacring large multitudes or else of committing the sin of suicide. Since the attacked nation is in the same danger as the attacking one, the war is just on both sides. One cannot say that this difficulty is limited to states; it suffices to think of the two shipwrecked men on a raft. (Strauss 1958: 192) But a far greater cruelty than that inherent in the necessity of the situation itself results from the failure to relieve man of the demands of morality that conflict with nature,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 282

23/10/18 12:45 PM

leo strauss

283

including his own nature, or from the conflicting demands of morality itself (to the extent that there is also a natural root to morality). This is the fanatical cruelty entailed in trying to make man good against his nature, of punishing him with torture, and indeed eternal damnation, for failing to meet moral standards that the world and man’s own nature make it impossible to achieve. From this, the worst kind of cruelty, Machiavelli has a strategy to liberate man: Once one realizes the power of that necessity which is the natural necessity to sin, and therewith the inseparable connection between sinning and everything noble and high, one will cease to deplore that necessity or to wish it away. . . . [The most excellent men] may have regrets but they will feel no need for repentance or redemption, unless it be the redemption of their fatherland from foreign or tyrannical domination. Imitating nature, they will be filled with both gravity and levity but they will be free from fanaticism. (Strauss 1958: 192–3) There is something of Schmitt in this recap by Strauss of the essential character of Machiavellianism: [M]en cannot be secure of their security without having acquired superiority to their potential enemies. Besides they are necessarily dissatisfied with their security as soon as they possess it; they no longer appreciate it; they subordinate it to superiority to others in wealth and honor. Constant vigilance and periodic return to the beginnings, i.e. periodic terror does not suffice. Society cannot be kept united if it is not threatened by war, and this threat will lose its salutary character if it is not followed from time to time by war itself. War at any rate leads to oppression of the vanquished, even if oppression should not have occurred within society on account of the desire of some of its members to lord it over their fellows [footnote omitted]. Oppression, or injustice, is then coeval with political society. Criminal tyranny is the state which is characterized by extreme oppression. There is then in the decisive respect only a difference of degree between the best republic and the worst tyranny. This difference of degree is of the utmost practical importance, as no one knew better than Machiavelli. But a difference of degree is not a difference in kind. (Strauss 1958: 278) Furthermore, Machiavelli’s emancipation or straightforward legitimation of acquisitiveness (Strauss 1958: 291, 293) corrupts, distorts and obfuscates the meaningful and important notion that certain kinds of necessity or compulsion justify or excuse men from following ordinary moral and legal standards, at least to some degree. The idea of it being ordinary or natural, or a fundamental human need, to ‘acquire’ tends to erase the moral distinction between taking from others or harming others in order for one’s city or oneself to survive, and acquisitiveness as expansion, aggression, competition. ‘Desire to acquire’ can equally mean the drive to gain or glory as the necessity of self-preservation. But are these really equally legitimate or exculpatory? According to Strauss, the necessary latitude to deviate from just or humane methods when absolutely essential for society can be found without going so far as to deny or obscure the intrinsic superiority of just and humane methods to unjust and brutal ones. This is the difference between the Machiavellian principle of using justice and injustice in whatever combination is effective and what Strauss describes in his seminar

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 283

23/10/18 12:45 PM

284

robert howse

on Thucydides as the principle of ‘no repressive action that is not really indispensable’ (Strauss 1964: 174). As Strauss puts it in Thoughts on Machiavelli, ‘[Thucydides can be seen to have] the same sensitivity to harsh necessity and elusive chance [as Machiavelli] yet Thucydides never calls into question the intrinsic superiority of nobility to baseness’ (Strauss 1958: 292). Further, admitting the variability of all human things and the impermanence of all political orders, Machiavelli cannot guarantee that we can save lives or cities from those who are bad by surrendering to them part of our souls in this way. We almost see [Machiavelli] as he hears the saying ‘all they that take the sword shall perish by the sword’ and answers ‘but they who do not take the sword shall also perish by the sword’; he does not stop to consider that only the first, by appealing to the sword, submit entirely to the judgment of the sword and are therefore self-condemned, seeing that no mixed body is perpetual. (Strauss 1958: 197)

Strauss’s Anti-Realist Reading of Thucydides As can be seen from Strauss’s repeated invocation of Thucydides whenever he wants to make the point that Machiavellian realism is not the necessary implication of accepting the harsh realities of political life, especially international politics, Strauss emphatically rejects the realists’ reading of Thucydides as one of their own. This is most evident in the monograph-length essay that Strauss published on Thucydides in The City and Man at the height of the Cold War (Strauss 1953). In the introduction to The City and Man, which we have already cited above, Strauss emphasised that the fundamental division and conflict between East and West expressed the basic truth of international politics for the foreseeable future, if not also an eternal truth regarding the ineradicable nature of ‘evil’: that is, aggression and malice in man. These truths, Strauss suggested, were at odds with the hopes for peace and unity reflected in the project of the United Nations. This makes Strauss’s anti-realist reading of Thucydides in The City and Man even more remarkable or noticeable. According to Strauss, ‘The contemporary interpreters of Thucydides who are perceptive note the presence in his thought of that which transcends “power politics”’ (Strauss 1953: 145). This could be read as a dig at Strauss’s then University of Chicago colleague Hans Morgenthau, who saw Thucydides as the father of realism (Klusmeyer 2011) and thus, according to Strauss’s formulation, would have to be regarded as a non-perceptive interpreter. William Scheuerman suggests in his intellectual biography of Morgenthau: ‘Strauss [in works such as Natural Right and History] could easily be read as undertaking to respond to Morgenthau’s 1950s resuscitation of Realism’ (Scheuerman 2009: 215).6 According to Morgenthau, ‘the balance of power is the essence and stabilizing factor of international relations’ (1946: 103). Further, ‘the choice is not between legality and illegality but between political wisdom and political stupidity’ (1946: 120). Contra Morgenthau’s anti-legalist realism, Strauss’s Thucydides gives considerable attention and affords considerable significance to international law in his explanation and evaluation of the events of the war. In what seems a head-on challenge to Morgenthau’s view, Strauss maintains that it is essentially impossible to imagine a durable balance of power between erstwhile competing or agonistic powers without

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 284

23/10/18 12:45 PM

leo strauss

285

the stabilisation provided through treaty law and accordingly a commitment to legality, at least in the sense of fidelity to covenants (pacta sunt servanda). He writes: Neither rest nor Greekness nor even war is possible without treaties among cities, and treaties would not be worth keeping in mind if the partners could not be presumed to keep them; this presumption must at least partly be based on past performance, i.e. on the justice of the parties. To that extent fidelity to covenants may be said to be by nature right. (Strauss 1978: 178–9) At the height of Athenian civilisation, the Athenians took fidelity to covenants, and the appearance of legality, very seriously (Strauss 1964: 31, 65). This attitude changed in the later part of the war as Athenian internal political morality began to break down. But, unlike Sparta, Athens did not seek to justify its imperial practice as a response to the alleged technically illegal acts of other cities. Rather, Athens resorted to broader moral–political arguments about the ‘compulsions’ of empire (fear, wealth, glory) and the relative decency or gentleness with which Athens responded to those ‘compulsions’ in its imperial practice. In other words, while taking seriously legality, the Athenians distinguished between legality (conformity to positive law – in other words, treaties) and legitimacy, not simply between legal obligation and national interest. Thucydides’ treatment of the relationship between legality and these broader moral–political arguments is central to Strauss’s overall engagement with Thucydides. He suggests that ‘the tension between right and compulsion [is] the point of view from which Thucydides looks at the Peloponnesian War’ (Strauss 1978: 174). Realist readers of Thucydides often cite his statement that, while the breaches of the treaty were the most avowed causes of the war, the truest cause was the rise of Athenian power. Strauss challenges the realist interpretation that Thucydides is saying that legal arguments are mere pretexts for conduct determined by power-political necessities; instead, and brilliantly, Strauss tells us that, for Thucydides, the avowed and truest causes are inseparably linked and, indeed, the avowed causes ‘are as “true” as the truest cause, and in fact apart, even the decisive part of the latter’ (Strauss 1978: 174). In his seminar on Thucydides, Strauss makes it clear that Athenian expansion of power, when conducted legally, did not automatically give rise under the treaty to any entitlement of Sparta to suspend its own obligations to keep the peace. But this conduct, exemplified by making new alliances with powers previously not engaged with one side or the other, even if not clearly contrary to the letter of the treaty, could, in light of the growth of Athenian power, be seen as destabilising the kind of balance that the treaty was intended to protect. Thus, Strauss broaches the issue of how changed circumstances might affect Sparta’s obligation to honour the treaty fully: Well, let us raise one of the most famous questions of international law. Are not all covenants between sovereign states made rebus sic stantibus – the situation remaining as it is? But who is going to interpret that – that the situation has materially changed? You know this great difficulty. (Strauss 1964: 40–1) Clearly, as Strauss suggests, too broad a view of material change in circumstances, which may be self-judged by the party seeking to avoid its obligations, would undermine the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 285

23/10/18 12:45 PM

286

robert howse

fundamental norm of pacta sunt servanda. Yet taking no account of changed circumstances would, in some instances, leave one or more of the parties with a pact that has become fundamentally threatening or harmful to their essential interests. Thus, at bottom, the issue raised by the ‘truest’ cause of the war, the compulsion felt by Sparta in the face of the build-up of Athenian power, is a question of right: the tension between ‘right’ and ‘necessity’ is not about whether pure law or pure power politics will prevail, but rather the relationship between the justice of pacta sunt servanda and the normative significance of the fear apprehended by Sparta in the growth of Athenian power. The compulsion to act, even at the cost of violating the treaty that is felt by the greater part of Sparta, points to the limits of conventional right-of-treaty law. But this compulsion is not beyond normative evaluation within the moral–political horizon of which international law is one integral part: it is not beyond good and evil, or good and bad in the Schmittean sense, and certainly not beyond moral–political judgement altogether. As Orwin puts it, in his treatment of Strauss’s Thucydides, ‘The question of the “truest cause” is inseparable from that of the combatants’ opposing claims of right’ (Orwin 2015: 62).

The Melian Dialogue Realist readers of Thucydides often associate the teaching of Thucydides himself with the stance of the Athenian generals in the Melian Dialogue, implying that there is no justice between the weak and the strong: the strong take what they can and the weak suffer what they must. Strauss’s anti-realist approach comes into particularly sharp relief when he tackles the Melian Dialogue. Strauss suggests that the natural right of the stronger – arguably the ‘most forcefully’ stated principle of the Athenian generals – need not imply limitless expansionism. A strong power’s ‘natural’ impulse to rule can know some limits or bounds, legal and moral ones, not just those imposed by realities of power (Strauss 1978: 191). It is not the natural right of the stronger, but the assertion of the right to take more without limit that constitutes the real radicalism of the Athenian generals on Melos (Strauss 1978: 193) and which is fundamentally antithetical to the moral–political horizon that provides through international law for the effectiveness of right in international politics. Strauss observes that the Athenian generals on Melos assert that the strong take whatever they can, but Strauss also notes that earlier on in the war, the Athenian ambassadors at Sparta make a claim for the superior justice, or at least humanity, of the Athenian empire, given Athens’ compulsion to rule. While Athens is compelled to rule, ‘she exercises her imperial rule in a juster (sic), more restrained, less greedy manner than her power would permit her to do and the same power will lead others in her place in fact to do’ (Strauss 1978: 211). The offer that the Melians can save themselves from being massacred through a relatively mild form of fealty or allegiance to Athens – rule ‘without trouble’ – while presented as in Athens’ self-interest, evokes, for Strauss, moderation or ‘humanity’. In the seminar, Strauss goes so far as to say that the Athenian offer ‘was amazingly humane in the circumstances’: that is, given the power-political realities that Athens faces (Strauss 1964: 250). The spirit in which Strauss approaches the Melian Dialogue in the context of Thucydides’ entire work has affinities with that of Michael Walzer in Just and Unjust Wars. As Walzer notes, the fact that the generals appear convinced by the necessities

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 286

23/10/18 12:45 PM

leo strauss

287

bearing on both sides does not mean that these necessities are beyond debate. ‘Would the destruction of Melos really reduce Athenian risks? Are there alternative policies? What are the likely costs of this one? Would it be right? What would other people think of Athens if it were carried out?’ (Walzer 1977: 8; see also Howse 2013). As Walzer points out, the ultimate decision of Athens to destroy the Melians was one that was extensively debated in the assembly. There was a vote and no inevitability to the hawks winning the day. This lack of inevitability is underscored, as Walzer notes, by a different episode in Thucydides: the debate over the fate of Mytilene. Then, at an earlier point in the war when the Athenians perhaps felt less strongly its necessities, they repented of their decision to destroy the entire people of one their colonies as punishment for attempted rebellion against Athenian rule, a rebellion that was in breach of the treaty that bound Athens and Mytilene. The matter was reheard in the assembly, and the position of the doves – that only the leadership should be destroyed, not the common people – won the day. While Walzer starts by arguing with or engaging with Thucydides’ realism, assuming that Thucydides’ perspective is that of the Athenian generals, in raising the case of Mytilene, also presented with great vividness and drama by Thucydides, Walzer opens up the possibility that it is a mistake to identify Thucydides’ views with those of the Athenian generals, rather than the dove Diodotus, for example, who makes a remarkable speech in the Athenian assembly to argue that sparing the common people in Melos is entirely consonant with the Athenians’ interest in their own security; Athens should incentivise those who have second thoughts about revolting against Athens to stop the revolt. For Strauss, Diodotus’ overt appeal to Athenian self-interest is also a covert appeal to justice, or at least gentleness or moderation. Strauss goes so far as to claim: ‘Diodotus’ speech reveals more of Thucydides himself than does any other speech’ (231), a direct challenge to the realist thesis about the centrality of the Melian Dialogue. According to Strauss, in suggesting that the impulse of the subjugated to rebel against their masters is as natural and persuasive a human drive as that of masters to conquer and expand, Diodotus implies that the Mytileneans are under a kind of necessity that is just as understandable and exculpatory as that which the Athenians claim for themselves – in the Athenians’ case, the compulsion of the strong to dominate.

Conclusion One frame in which to view the interweaving of realism and idealism in Strauss’s thought is that of Cold War liberalism. Cold War liberals saw the battle with Sovietism as a battle of ideas, in which the superior justice and humanity of the West to Soviet communism was a crucial element (Mueller 2016). Yet Cold War liberals recognised that this was also a battle that had to be fought at the level of power politics and military strength. As Strauss put it to Senator Percy in 1961, There cannot be a modus vivendi until Russia abandons Communism, in the sense that it cease to act on the premises of Communism; . . . [the Russians must be convinced that] the Free World is here to stay, and they act on this conviction. To bring about this change in mind, the West must be as tough, and, if need be, as brutal as the Communists are to the West.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 287

23/10/18 12:45 PM

288

robert howse

For Cold War liberals, the West could succeed in the battle against Communism only if it were prepared to be Machiavellian in practice, while remaining humane, decent and moderate in spirit: that is, not betraying its own ideals. Whether this balancing act could really work was tested sorely by Vietnam. Many liberals started to question, understandably, the basic goodness or decency, not to say the practical wisdom, of America’s intransigence and indeed brutality in the struggle against communism globally. Different groups of Straussian epigones adopted opposite simplifications of Strauss’s complex mix of realism and idealism – the very simplifications that Strauss had turned to the classics in order to challenge. Thomas West, and other ‘West Coast’ or Claremont Straussians, embraced America-first national-interest realism, while Irving Kristol and other East Coast Straussians maintained the imperative of projecting American power in the defence of freedom and civilisation around the world – even in the face of the grandiose failure of the Iraq intervention. Strauss himself would not, I think, have ever abandoned the hope that freedom and civilisation would matter in American foreign policy, but I suspect he would have tempered that hope with a considerable sobriety drawn from the wisdom of the ancients, and the practical lessons from adventures like Iraq.

Notes 1. On the divide between Kristol and his associates and the ‘isolationist right’, represented by certain West Coast (that is, Claremont College, California-associated) Straussians, see Jacob Heilbrunn’s recent fine essay in the New York Review of Books (Heilbrunn 2017). 2. On the latter, see Galston (2010). 3. Letter to Senator Charles Percy, 24 October 1961, PDF on file with the author. Strauss begins with the realist proposition that ‘The major premise of American foreign policy must be no strengthening of the USSR at the expense of the USA.’ However, he goes on to say the objective cannot be simply to create a modus vivendi with Soviet power, but to prevent the creation of a world communist society. 4. There is some common ground here between Strauss’s mature thought and Spinoza. See Strauss (1968: 8). For Strauss, though, the political stance that follows from philosophy as the contemplation of what is, regardless of whether good or evil, and the satisfaction from that contemplation, is not the same as with Spinoza; political philosophy has a critical and humanising role in the confrontation of modern totalitarianism (Strauss 2007a). 5. The following pages on Machiavelli and Thucydides are drawn from Chapters 4 and 5 of Howse (2014). 6. As Scheuerman explains, Morgenthau’s realism existed in uneasy relation to his search for a moral perspective for the reform of international institutions in the post-World War Two world. Like Strauss but in a different way, Morgenthau remained haunted by the complexity of his reaction to Schmitt in the Weimar Republic.

Bibliography Ahrensdorf, Peter (1997), ‘Thucydides’ realistic critique of realism’, Polity, vol. 30, no. 2 (Winter), pp. 231–65. Galston, William (2010), ‘Realism in political theory’, European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 9, no. 4, pp. 385–411. Heilbrunn, Jacob (2017), ‘Trump’s brains’, New York Review of Books, 21 December, vol. 64, no. 20.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 288

23/10/18 12:45 PM

leo strauss

289

Howse, Robert (2013), ‘Thucydides and just war: How to begin to read Walzer’s Just and Unjust Wars’, European Journal of International Law, vol. 24, no. 1, pp. 17–24. Howse, Robert (2014), Leo Strauss: Man of Peace, Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press. Klusmeyer, Douglas B. (2011), ‘Contesting Thucydides’ legacy: Comparing Hannah Arendt and Hans Morgenthau on imperialism, history and theory’, The International History Review, vol. 33, no. 1, pp. 1–25. Lánczi, András (2015), ‘Leo Strauss: A political realist’, in András Lánczi, Political Realism and Wisdom, New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Legro, Jeffrey W., and Andrew Moravcsik (1999), ‘Is anybody still a realist?’, International Security, vol. 24, no. 2, Fall, pp. 5–55, 7. Morgenthau, Hans (1946), Scientific Man vs. Power Politics, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Morgenthau, Hans (1949), ‘National interest and moral principles in foreign policy: The primacy of the national interest’, American Scholar, vol. XVIII, Spring. Mueller, Jan-Werner (2016), What is Populism?, Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press. Muller, Jerry (2010), ‘Leo Strauss: The political philosopher as a young Zionist’, Jewish Social Studies, vol. 17, no. 1, Fall, pp. 88–115. Orwin, Clifford (2015), ‘Reading Thucydides with Leo Strauss’, in Timothy W. Burns (ed.), Brill’s Companion to Leo Strauss’s Writings on Classical Political Philosophy, Leiden: Brill. Scheuerman,William (2009), Hans Morgenthau: Realism and Beyond, Cambridge: Polity Press. Strauss, Leo (1952), Political Philosophy of Hobbes: Its Basis and its Genesis, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Strauss, Leo (1953), Natural Right and History, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Strauss, Leo (1958), Thoughts on Machiavelli, Phoenix edn, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Strauss, Leo (1962), Seminar on Thucydides’ Political Philosophy, University of Chicago. Strauss, Leo (1964), Seminar on Hugo Grotius, Rights of War and Peace, University of Chicago, transcript available at (last accessed 31 May 2018). Strauss, Leo (1968), ‘What is liberal education?’, in Leo Strauss, Liberalism, Ancient and Modern, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Strauss, Leo (1978), The City and Man, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Strauss, Leo (1989), ‘Thucydides: The meaning of political history’, in Leo Strauss, The Rebirth of Classical Political Rationalism, Selected and Introduced by Thomas L. Pangle, Chicago: University of Chicago Press, pp. 72–102. Strauss, Leo (1997), Spinoza’s Critique of Religion, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Strauss, Leo (1999), ‘German nihilism’, Interpretation, vol. 26, no. 3, 1, pp. 361–2. Strauss, Leo (2007a), ‘What can we learn from political theory?’, The Review of Politics, vol. 69, no. 4, Fall, pp. 515–29. Strauss, Leo (2007b), ‘Notes on the concept of the political’, in Carl Schmitt, The Concept of the Political, translated by George Schwab and notes by Leo Strauss, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Trimcev, Eno (2017), Thinking Founding Moments with Leo Strauss, Hannah Arendt, and Eric Vogelin, Munich, Nomos. Walzer, Michael (1977), Just and Unjust Wars: A Moral Argument with Historical Illustrations, New York: Basic Books. West, Thomas (2012), ‘Leo Strauss and American foreign policy’, in Charles R. Kesler and John B. Kienker (eds), Life, Liberty and the Pursuit of Happiness: Ten Years of the Claremont Review of Books (Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littlefield), p. 162.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 289

23/10/18 12:45 PM

23 Herbert Butterfield Ideology, order and the predicament of international relations Kenneth B. McIntyre

Chapter Overview

T

hough Herbert Butterfield was best known as an historiographer, he was also one of the founders of the English School of international relations, which historicised many of the traditional principles of international realism. Butterfield paid particular attention to the historical particularities of different international systems. He claimed that, while these systems generally manifested the significance that realists noted about international anarchy, they have also displayed a variety of degrees of anarchy which undermine dogmatic claims about the uniformity of international systems. Butterfield also offered a critique of the ideological international policies that he associated with the quasi-religious wars of the twentieth century. This rejection was prescient when he initially wrote his essays and is still relevant today. *

*

*

Herbert Butterfield was best known as a historian and historiographer, and published one of the most influential works of historiography in the twentieth century, The Whig Interpretation of History (1931). However, Butterfield was also an extraordinarily versatile scholar who was one of the two primary founders, along with Martin Wight, of the English School of international relations, which historicised many of the traditional principles of international realism. One of Butterfield’s primary contributions was his attention to the particularities of international systems. He claimed that, while these systems generally manifested the importance of the lack of any single legitimate international authority, they also displayed a variety of degrees of anarchy which undermined dogmatic claims about the uniformity of international systems. Butterfield’s international realism combined his Augustinian scepticism about the possibilities of human perfectibility with a conception of society as a fragile but natural construction liable to decay and fragmentation if the interconnections between the moral life and the political life are not intimately understood. He applied his ideas about human nature and historical particularity to the international world, and believed that, though the anarchic character of the international system was the central predicament of international relations, its malign effects could be ameliorated through the rejection of highly ideological crusades and through different sorts of bilateral and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 290

23/10/18 12:45 PM

herbert butterfield

291

multilateral agreements based upon the long-term shared interests of states within a particular system. Thus, the second of Butterfield’s contributions to the tradition of realism was his critique of the ideological international policies that he associated with the quasi-religious wars of the twentieth century. This rejection, though unpopular during the Cold War, was prescient when he initially wrote his essays, and is still relevant today in an age when Western countries neglect their own national interests and ignore questions of international stability in order to pursue unending war on abstractions like terrorism and radical Islam, while justifying such actions in the name of further abstractions like liberalism and democracy.

Butterfield and International Relations Theory Throughout his career, Butterfield maintained an interest in topics concerning the relations between sovereign states, writing book-length examinations of diplomatic history, offering lectures and essays on the relationship between Christianity and international relations and on international relations theory, and co-founding with Martin Wight what has become known as the English School of international relations.1 Butterfield’s thought on international relations is notable for its rejection of both the more nihilistic implications of Hobbesian or Machiavellian realism and the utopian antinomianism of ideological radicalism. Butterfield offers as a via media a theory which recognises the ultimate insolubility of the predicament of anarchy while insisting that the consequences of such a predicament can be mitigated through institutions, customs and traditions which are best described as the international order. However, his affinity for and foundational involvement with the English School does not diminish the singularity of Butterfield’s work on international relations, which began prior to the existence of the English School. Butterfield’s work on international relations can be read as a further expression of his sceptical liberalism, and his writings on international relations manifest a similar structure to his general political ideas. Butterfield’s sceptical Augustinian anthropology informs his conception of international anarchy, or what he calls the predicament of international relations. This predicament, which involves the inevitable clash of wills and national interests in a situation in which each state is the judge in its own case, is the result of the ubiquitous character of human sin and it is thus ineradicable. However, in an analogous, if imperfect, parallel to the situation in domestic politics, an international order can mitigate this predicament by appealing to the long-term interests of states who share certain minimum common beliefs, ideas and customs. Further, Butterfield appeals to a practical past in making his argument about the ameliorative possibilities of international order. He produces a narrative of the eighteenth- and nineteenth-century development of the European states system, in which a kind of liberty was preserved for individual states through a series of common institutions, including the professionalisation of diplomacy, the balance of power and limited warfare. Unfortunately, since World War One and the breakdown of the old international order, these ideas and institutions have been ignored, and replaced by a series of ideological dualisms of a Manichean nature, each demanding a total war of annihilation against an allegedly unearthly sort of wickedness. In his essays on international relations, Butterfield seeks to reanimate the older tradition of international order as an alternative to the ideological crusading which passes for the contemporary theory and practice of international relations.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 291

23/10/18 12:45 PM

292

kenneth b. mcintyre

As noted, Butterfield observes that the relationships that exist between states are marked by a fundamental predicament which results from the ubiquitous character of human pride, selfishness and cupidity. This predicament is often identified as international anarchy, and it is often described as a Hobbesian state of nature in which war is the only constant. Indeed, Butterfield invokes Hobbes’s name to describe the tragic element in international conflict because he wants to lessen the centrality of individual maliciousness or conscious evil as a cause of conflict (HHR, 15). The predicament exists, not because some states are led by incorrigibly iniquitous people who are opposed by equally virtuous ones, but because each state is led by wilful and self-interested individuals who tend to confuse their own interests and the interests of their states with justice and righteousness, and because there is no final arbiter of any dispute other than the contestants themselves. As Butterfield writes, ‘in the intercourse between states the problems which arise are not the result of mere differences of opinion on speculative matters, but are rather the consequences of diverging interests’ (CDW, 67). These differences of opinion about interests, purposes, international obligations and international justice cannot be settled in the same manner as domestic disputes because, as Butterfield notes, ‘justice is important, but it is a dubious affair when administered by men, and dubious most of all in international politics, where each party is judging his own cause’ (IC, 119). Thus, international anarchy precludes the type of authoritative judgement concerning the actions of individuals which is produced in domestic politics by the submission of disputes to an impartial arbitrator or judge. Further, Butterfield claims that because ‘the predicament . . . [is] the result of universal sin . . . [and] exists absolutely, irrespective of any differences in ideology’, it cannot be resolved (HHR, 22, 25). It is not merely ignorance or lack of human understanding that creates such a situation, but instead the predicament exists in the very structure of fallen humanity when it is divided into separate political units. The rejection of the doctrine of universal sin and its replacement by an optimistic conception of human nature as both infinitely malleable and capable of absolute goodness are characteristic of modern secular politics, but the conception of international politics derived from this Panglossian view of human nature is much more violent and chaotic than Butterfield’s Augustinian alternative. As Butterfield observes, modern secularists ‘tend to be cruelly, grimly, appallingly, and even hideously moral, in a way that is calculated to be ruinous to the world’ (CDW, 41). The problem with such contemporary neo-Pelagians is that their rejection of the inevitable and ineradicable nature of the international predicament leads to Manichean politics and wars of selfrighteousness. The contemporary ideological state has no capacity and no desire to understand the enemy or even the ally because the state itself has already rendered judgement as to the purity and goodness of its own intentions. Butterfield, describing the situation of the Cold War in terms that would not be inappropriate in our time, states that ‘the greatest menace to our civilization today is the conflict between giant organized systems of self-righteousness’ (CDW, 43). This type of self-righteousness leads states to reject the possibility of mitigating the difficulties associated with international relations. Butterfield asserts that ‘all sanity depends on our keeping, deep at the bottom of everything, some remembrance of that humanity which we share with our bitterest enemies’ (IC, 28). Thus, he rejects as hopelessly misguided any ideologically inspired emancipatory foreign policy of the kind associated with aggressively

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 292

23/10/18 12:45 PM

herbert butterfield

293

messianic politics, whether the originators call themselves Jacobins, Soviets, progressives or neoconservatives. Nevertheless, Butterfield recognises that, while the international predicament cannot be solved by ideological crusades, states cannot make the problem disappear by merely ignoring its existence, either. Unilateral disarmament based upon optimistic assumptions of human goodness and rationality is as likely to lead to violence and chaos as the self-righteous blindness of the ideologues. As Butterfield notes, power does not disappear merely because we wish it away or because we cry out that it ought not to be there . . . [and] those who disarm when a colossus like Russia maintains its forces are handing the world over to power, and may be permitting the extension of the area of conquest, violence, and suffering. (CDW, 12, 11) Indeed, disarming may encourage otherwise defensive or peaceful states to take advantage of the situation. Butterfield insists that ‘it is the function of foreign policy to create situations in which virtue does not depend on a great Power’s good intentions, but is ensured on the whole by the general disposition of forces’ (HHR, 220). It is in his consideration of the predicament of international relations that Butterfield most resembles conventional realists like Hans Morgenthau, Reinhold Niebuhr and George Kennan. Further, he argues that a delicate balance must be struck between deterring aggression and appearing aggressive. Although the predicament of international relations cannot be ultimately resolved, its effects can be mitigated through various forms of international order. Indeed, the primary distinction between the English School theorists and traditional realists concerns the issue of international order, with those like Butterfield insisting that, though it is always a matter of degree, an international order can in fact significantly diminish the problems of anarchy, while traditional realists deny that there can be such an effective order. For Butterfield in particular, the question of order is central both to a theoretical account of international relations and to the construction of a usable past which can offer appropriate intimations for current practices. Order is a prerequisite for any sort of political or social life and is, thus, not to be contrasted with liberty or justice. However, unlike domestic political communities in which order is manifested in authoritative governments, order among the international community of states arises only through a set of common institutions, customs and interests not ultimately authoritative in their own right. Further, unlike domestic liberty, which consists of the freedom of individuals to follow their own plans and purposes within the domestic order, Butterfield argues that liberty in the international community is best conceived as the freedom of independent and sovereign states to follow their own desires and inclinations as to the forms of their internal domestic arrangements within the context of a specific international order. Butterfield observes that, in terms of the predicament of international relations, what needs to be explained is not why wars ever take place but why they do not happen all of the time. The explanation is that certain types of institution prevent international relations from resembling a state of constant war. Butterfield claims that ‘the essential nature of man may not be altered, but human behavior in general is sometimes improved, by the establishment of an order of things which has the effect of reducing . . . temptation’ (IC, 25). An international order has the effect of minimising

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 293

23/10/18 12:45 PM

294

kenneth b. mcintyre

the centrality of force in international relations by reducing the number of temptations to potential aggressors. The emergence of this order is not merely adventitious, however. It is the result of a mixture of conscious effort and shared history. He writes that an international order is not a thing bestowed upon by nature, but is a matter of refined thought, careful contrivance and elaborate artifice . . . it is a precarious thing, and . . . it requires the same kind of loyalty, the same constant attention, that people give to their country. (DI, 147) Thus, the international order is understood as something that is intrinsically valuable to the members of the international community. Butterfield often characterises it as a kind of club where members jostle with each other for the best seats at dinner, while respecting the legitimacy of each of the other member’s manœuvrings. The effectiveness of this analogy depends upon the members of the international community sharing certain minimal commitments, beliefs and customs concerning their relations. As Butterfield writes of the European states system, it ‘could not have existed if there had not been the single culture and the more “unitary” ideas of medieval Christendom behind it’ (IT, 183). However, the kind of solidarity which characterised the old European states system is not a necessary prerequisite for any order at all. Instead, what is required is a general acceptance on the part of all parties of the legitimacy of the others. As Butterfield observes, if we exclude any [states] from the club we are at least giving them the license to behave as they like; and, if we say we will have no truck with them, we exempt them from the obligation to play the game according to the rules. (IC, 78) Thus, the primary factor in destroying order is revolutionary or ideological politics. Butterfield notes that, during the Cold War, ‘the obstruction to an international order [was] the existence of two ideological systems which regard[ed] themselves as mutually exclusive’ (CDW, 103). Butterfield always believed that, given enough time, revolutionary and ideological states could eventually become partners in defending an international order because the exigencies of the international predicament would encourage such normalisation of relations. Whether he was proven correct about the Soviet Union or not, the experience of the relationship of Western liberal democracies with the People’s Republic of China has certainly supported Butterfield’s general notions. In order to be effective, any particular order will manifest itself in a series of common institutions which reflect the shared beliefs and customs of the international community. These institutions, among which Butterfield includes the balance of power, modern diplomacy and limited war, exist to provide the international order with a means by which disputes and conflicts of interest can be resolved and adjustments to the status quo arranged. Further, since these institutions constitute the international order, they are or ought to be seen as intrinsically valuable and, thus, as objects of conscious cultivation by the international community. For Butterfield, the central institution constituting the international order is the balance of power. Butterfield usually conceives of the balance of power as a normative principle which manifests a keen recognition of Acton’s dictum that power corrupts

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 294

23/10/18 12:45 PM

herbert butterfield

295

even the virtuous and that absolute power is absolutely corrupting. The concept of balancing power is a modern innovation and was created in order to lessen the dangers of pure power politics. After all, as Butterfield notes, ‘the problem of power is a fundamental one [and] predominant power is unanswerable at least in mundane terms. The man who has the guns has a good chance of getting the butter too’ (IT, 19). The institution of the balance of power entails the recognition of the legitimacy of all of the states within the international order, and the fundamental premise of the balance is that no single state should be allowed to have such a predominance of power that it can threaten either the international order or the independence of the member states. Butterfield writes that balancing entails that ‘you should check the aggressor before he actually emerge[s]; in fact what you ought to attack are the conditions that make for aggression’ (DI, 145). Hegemonic power will lead to aggression, whatever the domestic arrangements of a particular state look like. Thus, any accumulation of power on the part of a single state ought to be opposed by the rest of the states in the international community, regardless of the past behaviour of the rising state. Butterfield asserts that, ‘even if a state has been virtuous hitherto, a certain position of power – a position in which the state knows that it can act with impunity – will in fact produce a corrupting effect’ (CDW, 56). Being in a unipolar situation encourages recklessness and moral blindness in the hegemon. An obvious example was and remains the American misadventure in Iraq, which resulted precisely from the type of hubris which Butterfield associates with the disappearance of balancing power. Like the balance of power, modern diplomacy develops as a means of taming power and rationalising its use. Diplomacy, like limited war, is, or ought to be, a tool used by states in order to balance others effectively. Thus, diplomacy is not to be compared to a university seminar discussion but involves states with conflicting interests and purposes. Butterfield writes that ‘diplomacy . . . functions in cases where wills are in conflict and power is involved – cases where, if there were no such method of negotiation, the parties concerned would be making a direct appeal to force’ (CDW, 68). A country’s military power is a significant asset in a diplomatic standoff, but it is not the only asset and a country’s arms can be used as negotiating chips as well as veiled threats. Of course, diplomats also make appeals to the historic friendship or the self-interest of other states. They flatter and cajole their fellow diplomats. And weakness itself can sometimes be parlayed into a certain kind of diplomatic strength. For example, the government of South Vietnam successfully translated its weakness into substantial control over American foreign policy in Southeast Asia for several decades, and the weak governments of Afghanistan and Iraq have succeeded in doing the same over the past several years. Butterfield suggests that the diplomat’s ‘real job [is] to keep perpetual contact with a foreign government, to maintain the reputation of his country abroad and above all, to generate confidence’ (IT, 220). Diplomacy consists of building permanent relationships between states in order to bolster the stability of the international order. Butterfield describes the process of civilising international relationships in the following way: power gives way to diplomacy, diplomacy becomes more urbane, the diplomatic profession develops into an international society, and morality itself comes to have its place amongst the recognized conditions of the intercourse between states. (CDW, 76)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 295

23/10/18 12:45 PM

296

kenneth b. mcintyre

Thus, diplomacy has the capacity to moralise power politics. It represents, as Butterfield observes, ‘the encroachment of human reason upon what would otherwise be a jungle’ (IT, 22). The institution of diplomacy serves both to stabilise the order and to provide a means by which the status quo can be peacefully altered. However, diplomacy can never completely eliminate the resort to force, and thus the attempt to place limits on the purpose for which wars are waged and the ways in which force is used also plays a central role in any stable international order. Limitations on warfare are directly related to the recognition of both the legitimacy of opposition and an appreciation of the very limited ends which can be accomplished by violence. Since the elimination of war is an impossibility, Butterfield suggests that it is ‘wiser and more virtuous to recognize a moderate role for force in international relations’ (IT, 202). The primary function of force consists in defending the territorial integrity of one’s state, but force also plays an important role in maintaining the balance of power. Limiting wars to these two specific functions implicitly involves the recognition of the legitimacy of other states, while also limiting the self-righteous moralism that tends to exacerbate war. As Butterfield notes, once it is possible to regard warfare as a thing which is undertaken for limited purposes, it becomes easier to do justice to the plain truth that men are in fact prepared to fight for their countries and their homes. (CDW, 35) Limiting wars also involves recognition of the severely restricted purposes that war can accomplish. War can obviously effect a redistribution of power and property, but it does so in exceedingly unpredictable and often unjustifiable ways. Butterfield argues that ‘war decides nothing save the possession of controverted territory; and it decides this by the operation of force, not by virtue of any right’ (CDW, 35). Finally, limiting war enables compromises to occur between the warring parties. There is less to lose when defeated and less to gain when victorious. Thus, like diplomacy, limits on warfare serve to reduce the effective range in which force is the final arbiter of conflict, while also reinforcing the balance of power between states in the international community. As Butterfield understands it, the international order and its various institutions are ultimately intended to maintain the liberty of the individual units comprising it. Although the states are not to be considered as ultimate ends in themselves, they are the representatives of such individuals and deserve to be recognised as such, even when the internal domestic situations of particular states do not match the self-idealisations of other political communities. Butterfield observes that ‘international affairs are happier when they are conducted from many free and autonomous centers, happiest of all when the small states are able to have an independent role’ (IC, 112). A multipolar world is inherently valuable because it allows states a great deal more flexibility and it preserves their independence. The bipolar Cold War and the unipolar American hegemony which followed have rendered states much more susceptible to manipulation by the primary powers or power. Butterfield claims that ‘one would regard a state as a satellite if it had not the right to change its alliances, to remain neutral in time of war, or to transform its internal regime without any interference from outsiders’ (CDW, 88). Obviously, respect for the sovereignty of individual states, which is

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 296

23/10/18 12:45 PM

herbert butterfield

297

entailed in any international order, involves a rejection of interference in the domestic politics of other states. Butterfield vigorously opposes armed interventions based upon ideological grounds. He insists that: the resort to war for the purpose of rectifying the internal government of another country would be calculated to multiply the pretexts for war in every part of the globe; for there are few countries that would not provide a reason for intervention in one respect or another. . . . Among the possible evils of intervention by force in another country’s internal affairs would be the fact that the principle would become generalized and is particularly liable to be abused. (IT, 149–50) In fact, Butterfield explicitly condemns any attempt to use force in order to install Western democratic institutions on sovereign states. Writing decades before the most recent American failure in exporting democracy, he maintains that there is no escaping the fact that over a great portion of the globe at present day . . . it would be impossible to establish the Anglo-Saxon type of democracy and to work it in the authentic Anglo-Saxon way. An Anglo-American doctrine that only this genuine kind of democracy is conducive to peace, or a parallel decision that only this kind of polity can be tolerated in the world – in other words, a crusade to make our kind of government universal – would not only be based on an untruth, but would be indistinguishable from a project of Anglo-American domination. (CDW, 117) Tutelary democracy enforced by arms is not only undemocratic, but also it is a direct repudiation of the possibility of an international order. Such an international policy involves the denial of the freedom of states to choose their own forms of government and appeals to force as both the ultimate arbiter of conflict and the ultimate arbiter of justice. Butterfield’s version of sceptical liberalism in the international sphere explicitly rules out such hubristic fantasies of control. As suggested, Butterfield’s understanding of international relations entails a rejection of ideological politics, primarily because he views ideologies as ersatz religions and ideological diplomacy as an invitation to return to the devastating era of the wars of religion. As an alternative, Butterfield recalls the practices of those in Europe who had actually experienced the destruction of the wars of religion and had constructed the European states system specifically to avoid such wars. His invocation of the practical experience of eighteenth- and nineteenth-century Europe is meant to serve in the same capacity in the international arena as his reference to the emergence of English liberty in the domestic one. Butterfield creates a usable past to remind his contemporary audience of a less sanguinary set of international policies than those in favour since World War One. Butterfield also offers a critique of contemporary international relations based upon his understanding of international order, and contrasts the failure of the modern international system with that of the European states system in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries. He attributes the lack of an effective international order in the post-World War One era to the rejection of those institutions (the balance of power, diplomacy and limited war) which supported and secured the earlier order.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 297

23/10/18 12:45 PM

298

kenneth b. mcintyre

According to Butterfield, the European international order which emerged in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries was a conscious response to the devastation caused by the proto-ideological wars of religion in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries. He notes that ‘in the background of eighteenth-century thought there was the repeated remembrance of a past, still fairly recent, but darker than anything else – the cruel Wars of Religion’ (DI, 141). The wars of religion were especially virulent because each side was equally certain that its conduct was sanctioned by God, and that the other side was not only recalcitrant but also the embodiment of evil on earth. Thus, these wars, like contemporary ideological ones, were not amenable to compromise, negotiation, limitation or diplomacy of any sort. Butterfield claims that thinkers like Grotius, Pufendorf and Fenelon, and statesmen as varied as Cardinal Richelieu and Frederick the Great recognised the futility and immorality of this type of warfare and, making a virtue out of necessity, suggested that a great diversity of states with an equally diverse set of cultural and religious institutions in Europe was a positive good and something to be defended as intrinsically worthy. Butterfield suggests that, against the notion of a uniform Empire with a uniform culture, they promoted the idea of a civilization fundamentally one but broken into panes of many-colored glass – achieving greater richness through the variety of its local manifestations. (DI, 142) The creation of the balance of power, the development of diplomacy, and the establishment of limitations on both war-making and war-fighting were all directly intended to the support this new European states-system. Further, the experience of living and working under these new conditions encouraged the emergence of a series of general maxims which guided the foreign policy of statesmen during the period. These maxims did not appear as the result of inductive law-like generalisations about an unchanging international political system but as prudential conclusions about the general nature of interstate relations in an orderly but still anarchical society. Butterfield offers a list of some of the maxims, which include the following: 1. ‘In a world of armed powers you must not expect your word or your will to carry the same weight if you are disarmed as if you are armed.’ 2. If war occurs, ‘make it a war for limited objects – prevent it from becoming anything like a war for religion’. 3. ‘It is wrong to wait until an aggressor has actually emerged in full power before you try to check him.’ 4. ‘It is unwise to let a power become so desperate that it will pay any price to secure escape or revenge.’ 5. ‘It is wrong when fighting an enemy to forget entirely that at the next stage in the story you may need that enemy as an ally.’ 6. ‘It is wrong even to wipe out a state, to destroy a great power – since the power vacuum that you thereby create will conjure into existence another bogey worse than the first.’ 7. ‘You cannot have real peace until you have devised . . . a peaceful way of revising the status quo.’ (IT, 23)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 298

23/10/18 12:45 PM

herbert butterfield

299

These maxims were directed toward the maintenance of the international order both as an end in itself and as a means to preserve the independence of the member states. However, since these maxims are drawn from experience and not the conclusions of some quasi-scientific effort to reduce that experience to a set of mere abstractions, diplomacy still relies on the judgements of connoisseurs, not on the technical application of rules. Therefore, it is also usually the case that maintaining equilibrium in the international order is dependent upon wisdom more than knowledge. The value placed upon experience explains why so many thinkers and statesmen in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries were not sanguine about democratising foreign policy. Butterfield observes that they thought that the masses would give way to passions, moral indignations and short-cut forms of reasoning, lacking the patience for the understanding of ‘the other party’ . . . , lacking the foresight for the pursuit of long-term objects, and failing to realize the things that might be achieved by diplomatic methods. (IT, 65–6) However, the errors of modern democracies were not solely responsible for the end of the old European states-system. Butterfield argues that the French Revolution heralds Armageddon, the giant conflict for justice and right between angered populations each of which thinks it is the righteous one. So a new kind of warfare is born – the modern counterpart to the old conflicts of religion. (N, 18) The French Revolutionary and Napoleonic Wars of the early nineteenth century reintroduced the concept of religious war into Europe and, though the victorious powers treated France with great magnanimity, the rise of modern ideological and revolutionary politics can be traced to this episode. None the less, the European powers reconstituted the international order after the defeat of Napoleon, and it was not until one hundred years later that the old system was finally destroyed. Butterfield points to World War One as the greatest tragedy of the twentieth century because it shattered the old order, replacing it with a series of wishful but vacuous platitudes and creating the conditions in which the rise of totalitarian ideologies became possible. He writes that in 1919 men had no feeling that an international order had been destroyed through a war that had broken all rules for the maintenance of such a system. They felt on the contrary that, in a ‘war for righteousness’, the last seat of evil had been eliminated and now, for the first time in history, an international order had been installed. (IT, 227) A facile and chiliastic vision of international relations which substituted moralistic judgements about blame or guilt for prudential considerations about the stability and sustainability of a relatively peaceful international order replaced the earlier version of international relations which recognised the limitations of human reason and the destabilising and devastating character of total war. Butterfield observes that the international ‘situation was bound to become much more serious when, in the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 299

23/10/18 12:45 PM

300

kenneth b. mcintyre

Utopia that war was to produce, there was included the notion of perpetual peace, so that, besides the “war for democracy”, you had “the war to end war”’ (IT, 204). In destroying the old order, the First World War also undermined the credibility of those institutions which had supported it. The rejection of balancing, the denigration of diplomacy, and the insistence on the benign character of total warfare made the twentieth century the most virulent and violent in Europe since the wars of religion, in large part because, far from decreasing the likelihood of war, the destruction of the old order and its institutions augmented the role of force in international relations. Indeed, as Butterfield notes: the policy of ridding the world of aggression by the method of total war – of the war for righteousness – is like using the devil to cast out the devil: it does not even have the merit of being practical politics. . . . We . . . are nowadays confronted with the possibility of having to wage war against the very monsters which we conjured into existence through our previous war. (CH, 142, 139) It would be difficult to find a more prescient observation about the failure of American foreign policy in the twenty-first century than Butterfield’s remark about the general breakdown of international order in the twentieth century. Butterfield’s most controversial statements concerning foreign policy all related to what might be called the long European war, which lasted from 1914 to 1989. Butterfield opposed neither a vigorous engagement with the Soviets on the part of Western liberal democracies, nor British and American involvement in World War Two. However, he believed that both conflicts arose primarily because of the failure on the part of all the participants in World War One to heed the lessons of the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries. The great failure in both world wars, according to Butterfield, was the Western allies’ decision to ignore the realities of the balance of power and, instead, to insist that they were fighting wars of righteousness. Butterfield writes that we may wonder sometimes whether Russia was so much more virtuous than Germany as to make it worth the lives of tens of millions of people in two wars to ensure that she . . . should gain such an unchallenged and exclusive hold over that line of Central European States as Germany never had in all her history. (HHR, 30) The problem in Central and Eastern Europe was the balance of power between Russian and Germany, and the destruction of either state was foolhardy precisely because it inevitably created the conditions in which one power could dominate the whole region. The destruction of the international order in the First World War and subsequent disarmament and disengagement on the part of both Britain and America created the conditions for the rise of both communism in Russia and national socialism in Germany. The destruction of Germany in World War Two created a vacuum in Central and Eastern Europe which the Soviet army and the Soviet government soon filled. The American destruction of Iraq in the Middle East effected a similar situation, which ironically benefited Iran more than any other state, and paved the way for the rise to power of the Islamic State in Iraq and Syria.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 300

23/10/18 12:45 PM

herbert butterfield

301

Further, despite the supposed purity of our ideological justifications, neither war was free from the taint of both self-interest and inconsistency. As Butterfield observes, the two world wars were embarrassing in certain respects for Great Britain [and the USA], for though we claimed that we were fighting for democracy we were allied in the former case with Tsarist Russia, where the Jews had been oppressed, and the Poles were in subjection, and the Baltic nations were prevented from achieving statehood; while in the case of the Second World War we were allies of the Soviet system. (HHR, 29) In fact, Britain entered the Second World War specifically to defend the sovereignty of Poland, but, when the war ended, Poland, like most of Central and Eastern Europe, was subjected to a tyranny which was more devastating and more durable than that of the Nazis. However, the onset of the Cold War did nothing to minimise the sort of self-righteous messianism which characterised the diplomacy of Western democracies in the twentieth century. The Nazis were defeated but immediately replaced by another singular source of wickedness in the world. None the less, according to Butterfield, the change in the Western attitude toward the Soviets was as much the result of considerations about power politics as about ideology. He writes that ‘we did not have our present fears and panics on the subject of Communism till Communism had come to be identified with the formidable European position of Russia as it has existed since 1945’ (HHR, 26). With the fall of the Soviet Union, Butterfield’s minimisation of the centrality of ideology appears justified because, despite the continued existence of communist China, Vietnam, Cuba and North Korea, the Cold War ended when Russian power diminished.

Conclusion Butterfield’s critique of the practice of foreign policy in Britain and America during the twentieth century suggests that wars against abstract nouns, like the War on Terror, will inevitably lead to further disorder, and that concrete purposes should replace ideological nostrums. Further, a recognition of the limits of the use of force and the limits of human reason ought to lead us to a humbler foreign policy which recognises the legitimacy of other ways of living and which promotes stability and order, and the freedom of political communities to pursue their own chosen paths.

Note 1. Herbert Butterfield, The Peace Tactics of Napoleon: 1806–1808 (1929); Butterfield, History and Human Relations (1952), henceforth referred to as HHR; Butterfield, The Statecraft of Machiavelli (1962); Butterfield, Napoleon (1962), henceforth referred to as N; Butterfield, Christianity and History (1950), henceforth referred to as CH; Butterfield, Christianity, Diplomacy and War (1953), henceforth referred to as CDW; Butterfield, International Conflict in the Twentieth Century (1960), henceforth referred to as IC; Herbert Butterfield and Martin Wight (eds), Diplomatic Investigations: Essays in the Theory of International Politics (1966), henceforth referred to as DI; and Butterfield, The International Thought of Herbert Butterfield, ed. by Karl W. Schweizer and Paul Sharp (2007), henceforth referred to as IT.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 301

23/10/18 12:45 PM

302

kenneth b. mcintyre

Bibliography Butterfield, Herbert (1950), Christianity and History, New York: Charles Scribner’s Sons. Butterfield, Herbert (1952), History and Human Relations, New York: MacMillan. Butterfield, Herbert (1953), Christianity, Diplomacy and War, New York: Abingdon-Cokesbury Press. Butterfield, Herbert (1960), International Conflict in the Twentieth Century, New York: Harper and Brothers. Butterfield, Herbert (1962), Napoleon, New York: Collier. Butterfield, Herbert, and Martin Wight (eds), (1966), Diplomatic Investigations: Essays in the Theory of International Politics, London: Allen and Unwin. Butterfield, Herbert (2007), The International Thought of Herbert Butterfield, ed. by Karl W. Schweizer and Paul Sharp, New York: Palgrave Macmillan.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 302

23/10/18 12:45 PM

24 Hans Kelsen A political realist? Robert Schuett

Chapter Overview

H

ans Kelsen is one of the iconic jurists of the twentieth century. His pure theory of law stirred up jurisprudence, as well as legal positivism, constitutional law and public international law. Yet Kelsen is also a major, though neglected, political philosopher, a champion of pluralism and democracy, and the very antidote to a Schmittian sovereignty and authoritarianism. This chapter explores the roots of Kelsen’s political philosophy from a classical realist perspective. It shows him to be a liberal thinker who feared political naivety and who attacked optimistic assumptions about human nature, who was scathing of utopianism but who none the less yearned for progress and peace. Kelsen is useful. The post-World War Two liberal international order is cracking up and foreign policy realism is in a crisis. In the midst of this, Kelsen can now be a rich resource for a progressive political realism – for how to balance realism and idealism in the theory and practice of international politics. *

*

*

Introduction It was in the middle of the Cold War, in the autumn of 1971. Countless intellectuals around the world honoured one illustrious ‘idealist’. The ‘realist’ Hans Morgenthau was one of them. It was Hans Kelsen’s ninetieth birthday. Kelsen had dramatically influenced legal thought for several generations and was retiring, now, on the West Coast of the USA. He had served as professor of political science at Berkeley, where he ran a successful international law programme. He was also a brilliant political philosopher. Kelsen’s 1952 Bernard Moses Memorial Lecture ‘What is Justice?’ is a seminal statement of political liberalism. Morgenthau, in turn, was the leading foreign policy realist in post-World War Two America. He was perhaps rivalled only by Reinhold Niebuhr and George F. Kennan. Morgenthau had retired from the University of Chicago and moved to New York, teaching at both City University and the New School for Social Research. From the East Coast, he continued his scathing criticism of the Vietnam War. Morgenthau’s birthday letter to Kelsen says a lot about both men. Morgenthau admired Kelsen. He always had, and had always spoken highly of him. Yet the letter

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 303

23/10/18 12:45 PM

304

robert schuett

goes deeper than courtesy. It is emotional. Biographical. Historical. Look at how the realist Morgenthau writes (1971) to the idealist Kelsen: Your life has meant one thing for me: the consistent fearless pursuit of truth regardless of where it may lead to. Your example has taught me what it means to be a scholar. For that lesson I owe you a debt of gratitude which can only be discharged by following your example. Kelsen taught his students well. The two realists Morgenthau and John Herz were impressed by him. A strong scientific ethos characterised Kelsen, as well as objectivity and integrity. Morgenthau (1970) said that it was ‘Kelsen, who has taught us through his example how to speak Truth to Power’. It all makes for a fascinating constellation, for although there are occasional hints that Kelsen influenced Morgenthau, much is still hazy. The story of Kelsen and Morgenthau is a largely untold one. What is known, though, is where it all began. In different times. In a different place, if not a different world. It was not Cold War America. It all goes back to Europe’s darkening 1930s. For this is where they first met, and where Kelsen would prove to be the very scholar that Morgenthau would always respect. What if Kelsen is no idealist? What if Kelsen is a political realist? What would that mean for contemporary Kelsen scholarship? And what would it say about political realism in twenty-first-century politics? To ask such big questions means making sketches. An exhaustive analysis is impossible here. What follows instead are the preliminaries to the hitherto untold story of Kelsen and Morgenthau. The conventional account has them as two contestants of two different political philosophies. Kelsen against Morgenthau. Idealism against realism. On the one side, the clear legal theorist, the meticulous technician of law, the Kantian seeking peace through international law. Then, on the other side, the bold political theorist, the fierce ‘intellectual streetfighter’ (as Morgenthau called himself), the realist pursuing peace through international politics. One way to understand Kelsen is indeed through Morgenthau. The method here will be similar. But not the perspective. That will be radically different. Kelsen will be approached not in terms of law, but politics. Not idealism, but realism. And it will be shown that from the classical realist perspective, Kelsen appears to belong to it himself. His political philosophy is progressive, yet its assumptions and principles are not naive. His view of human nature is as hardnosed as that of any classical realist. It sets limits to what is possible. And therefore the way that Kelsen confronts ‘man’, society and politics is as timely in our hyperbolic age as it was during the Cold War and well before. Kelsen lived through times of great upheaval, yet his politics is calm and clear. Politics is a struggle for power, but the idea of achieving progress through force is destined to fail.

The Idealist and the Realist The ‘idealist’ Kelsen met the ‘realist’ Morgenthau under earnest circumstances. Kelsen (1881–1973) was a Prague-born Austrian. He was raised by a family of assimilated Jews in the Austrian–Hungarian monarchy. The Kelsens moved to Vienna in 1883. There, Kelsen grew up, studied, and taught and practised law. He had a distinguished career: law professor at the University of Vienna; member of the Austrian

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 304

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans kelsen

305

Constitutional Court, which he helped create; and co-drafter of the Austrian Constitution of 1920. To this day, Kelsen is a seminal figure in Austria’s intellectual and political history. Yet he had to flee. Kelsen left Vienna in 1930 for Cologne. He then had to flee anti-Semitic Germany. Morgenthau (1904–80), born in Coburg into a German– Jewish family, was in similar distress. But fortunately, both could escape. They headed to Geneva’s Institut Universitaire des Hautes Études Internationales. Morgenthau arrived in 1932. He hoped to complete his Habilitation there. Kelsen reached Geneva in the autumn of 1933 and taught there for seven years. Then he fled to America. At that point, Kelsen had left Austria and Europe for good.

Kelsen, Morgenthau and Herz Their encounter in Geneva was a contingent one. It was driven by the unfolding events in Nazi Germany. In Switzerland, they soon forged a lifelong relationship. The reason for that is profound. And it was almost providential from the young Morgenthau’s perspective, for he would only later become a seminal figure. As Henry Kissinger (1980) would later be able to say, ‘nobody could ignore him’. Kelsen played a significant role in Morgenthau’s intellectual biography. He rescued the young Morgenthau when he was struggling to get his postdoctoral thesis accepted, which was in fact a quite critical engagement with Kelsen’s theory of norms. Morgenthau had to endure anti-Semitic humiliation and misconduct by senior colleagues. In that respect, the situation was similar to that in Germany. Enter Professor Kelsen. He had already been an authority in jurisprudence. Now it was his objectivity and integrity that would save Morgenthau. It would be Kelsen’s positive evaluation of Morgenthau’s work which would convince the examination board at Geneva to award Morgenthau his Habilitation. This paved the way for Morgenthau’s future path, and he never forgot it. ‘If it had not been for Kelsen’, Morgenthau (1984a: 354) would recall, ‘my academic career would probably have come to a very premature end.’ The rest is history. Intellectual history. Kelsen and Morgenthau would go on to become leading legal and political theorists – leading idealists and realists, respectively. Or so it seems. The conventional view is that this early encounter of theirs does not mean much in terms of political philosophy. To have a shared personal biography is one thing, but to have a common political philosophy is quite another. And it could well appear that Kelsen and Morgenthau are no exception to this rule: that is to say, while they may have been bound together by historical circumstance, their political philosophies have followed apparently different paths – idealism versus realism. And it is true that political theory and intellectual history have typically focused on the differences between Kelsen and Morgenthau. Something very similar goes for Herz. Herz was as close to Kelsen as Morgenthau was. Their story also dates back to their shared European experience. Herz earned his law doctorate under Kelsen. It was in Cologne in 1931. Herz was Jewish. Kelsen took him and they both fled for Geneva. Herz would also hold Kelsen in high regard, as a man of charisma with an impeccable logic – a ‘great mind’ (Herz 1964: 117). The conventional focus is on why and how these realists parted ways with Kelsen. Not that this is wrong. If the question is whether public law curbs national power aspirations, whether international law restrains great power politics, the answer must tend towards the negative. For Realists have always been sceptical towards the idea of peace through law.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 305

23/10/18 12:45 PM

306

robert schuett

The conventional view, then, is not entirely false. But crucially, it is also not entirely correct, for it ignores the other half of the picture which I am introducing here. That is, if the question at the intersection of law and politics is framed only in idealist–realist terms, the answer will always be clear. Yes, there have been close personal ties between Kelsen and some important realists. But no, in terms of political philosophy, the differences between the idealist Kelsen and these realists must surely be too profound to pursue. If we are to go further, then, and gain a richer view of Kelsen and realism, assumptions and principles must be readdressed. The debate about the ‘idealist’ Kelsen and his ‘realist’ students must be turned on its head. An initial assumption will be a dramatic one: that Kelsen’s political philosophy really is, in its fundamentals, ‘realist’. One initial question could also be what Kelsen and these realists may actually have in common. Working from these premises in what follows will reveal as much to us about Kelsen as it will about realism. But first: Why Kelsen? Why now? How to go about him methodologically?

Reconsidering Kelsen as Political Philosopher The last two decades have seen a stream of renewed interest in Kelsen. The analytical focus tends to be on Kelsen’s core writings and on how they apply to today’s domestic and international legal challenges. Much of Kelsen’s resurgence concerns fundamental questions of jurisprudence: positive law versus natural law, monism versus dualism in international law (Paulson and Litschewski Paulson 1999; Bernstorff 2010; Vinx 2015; Langford 2017). Over the same period, Kelsen’s works at the intersection of constitutional law and democratic theory have resurfaced (Baume 2012). One reason is the renaissance of Carl Schmitt, the infamous Kronjurist (crown jurist) of the Third Reich. A dubious figure, as Morgenthau and Kelsen experienced. Morgenthau visited Schmitt in 1929. He wanted to discuss political theory with him. In the end, he was shocked. As Morgenthau (1984b: 16) would later recall in his autobiographical reflections, he ‘met the most evil man alive’. When, in 1933, Kelsen had to leave Cologne, the city where Schmitt had also taught, the faculty protested against Kelsen’s dismissal but Schmitt did not. Interest in Schmitt is unbroken. That goes particularly for American jurists who tend to be highly critical towards legal positivism. This resurgence of interest in Schmitt has also meant a resurgence of interest in Kelsen. Where Schmitt is, there, too, is Kelsen. Where the political is understood as the distinction between friend and foe, where sovereignty is seen as represented by the one who decides on the state of exception, the debate will involve Schmitt. It will also involve Kelsen. For he certainly used to be the most important antidote to Schmitt’s legal theory and political theology. And he still is today (Vinx 2015). Yet gaps remain. Recent Kelsen scholarship has pushed the understanding of the Weimar-era Kelsen/Schmitt debate on constitutional guardianship to a new level of sophistication. This has proven to be critical and timely. The last decade has seen democracy in global decline. The idea of liberal democracy is threatened, even from within the European Union, notably by Hungarian Prime Minister Viktor Orbán’s concept of illiberal democracy. Today, the value of Kelsen is exactly what it was in the troubled times he witnessed. The dissolution of the Austro-Hungarian Empire. The First Austrian Republic. Ständestaat. Anschluss. Nazi Germany. Later the Cold War.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 306

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans kelsen

307

The nuclear age. The value of Kelsen to us now lies in his passionate yet clear defence of political liberalism. It also lies in his powerful yet considered critique of political absolutism. Kelsen scholarship is moving in the right direction. His entire work of more than six decades is being published in a seminal multi-volume effort (Jestaedt 2018). His peculiar neglect in the USA is being addressed (Scheuerman 2014; Telman 2016). The jurist Kelsen now at last receives greater recognition for his political writings (Baume 2012; Scheuerman 2014; Schuett 2015). But it needs to go further, for ‘Kelsen’ seems to be too fragmented across the disciplines, carved up as he is between jurisprudence, political science and international theory. Kelsen scholarship needs to integrate Kelsen’s legal and political writings, as well as his philosophical and ethicomoral works into one – into a political philosophy. To understand the analytical and normative power of Kelsen, it is necessary to work out a systematic exposition of his thought at the very intersection of law, politics and philosophy. To show Kelsen’s true meaning for twenty-first-century politics, he needs to be taken for what he was: a genuine political philosopher. More than that, a realist political philosopher.

Interlude: The Crisis of Realism To see Kelsen as a political philosopher rather than merely as an important jurist would earn him a well-deserved place in the canon of twentieth-century philosophy – a long-overdue place. To see him as a ‘realist’ political philosopher would be a significant step for Kelsen scholarship as it would be for today’s political realism, for the latter is crisis-ridden and must be rescued from the confusion into which it has sunk. Yes, realism is in crisis. It may be a peculiar crisis but it is a crisis none the less. As strange as it may sound, revisiting the ‘idealist’ Kelsen through the ‘realist’ Morgenthau is one possible way to resuscitate foreign policy realism. Let me be clear: political realism continues to instil respect. It really and truly is the most venerable tradition of thought in the theory and practice of international politics. It is progressing theoretically. It is performing its important public role. Policy advice – truth to power. It does what realism is known for. Scholars and analysts from different theoretical backgrounds are reconsidering foreign policy realism, as is indicated by the contributions to this volume. The US-led Iraq War of 2003 was one important driver. With the exception of Kissinger, virtually all realists in America opposed that war. Some did so quite publicly. John Mearsheimer, for example, co-drafted the prominent 2002 New York Times advertisement ‘War with Iraq is Not in America’s National Interest’. It cost $38,000. It was signed by over thirty university professors of politics and international relations. It made no difference, of course. President G. W. Bush informed America and the world, on 19 March 2003, of the start of Operation Iraqi Freedom with US and coalition forces. It is all too well known how it ‘ended’. But the opposition to Iraq re-energised political realism. It got back on its feet. It had been knocked off them at the end of the Cold War. It eventually re-established its place, though, in the emerging debates about the course of American foreign policy. It has also given political realism a more pronounced public visibility. The established bi-monthly National Interest of 1985 is as instructive for realist analysis as the newer web-based platform War on the Rocks of 2013.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 307

23/10/18 12:45 PM

308

robert schuett

Yet, while the realist research tradition is thriving, there are problems. Classical realism is returning to the forefront of strategic analysis (Jones and Smith 2015). Neorealism has become much richer with the publication of Mearsheimer’s The Tragedy of Great Power Politics in 2001. And neoclassical realism has made neorealist theory still richer. Integrating systemic, domestic and cognitive variables into one explanatory framework has been a ground-breaking endeavour. Political realism may be one tradition but it certainly has many different theories. And here comes the problem. Does it possibly possess too many theories by now? Scientific proliferation is, of course, invaluable. At one and the same time, however, it seems no longer clear, for all of this diversity, what political realism is. Or where it belongs. Or what it stands for. Some see it as conservative political philosophy. Others argue it is reform-minded. Some see its political home on the right. Others argue it is on the left. Some see at its core a troubled human nature writ large. Others argue it is all about structural conditions of anarchy. Some see in it a statecraft of power and security. Others argue it is sensitive to values and ideas. Some see it as a positivistic social science. Others argue it shares important tenets with critical theory. Some see it as an ideology. Others argue it is a form of ideology critique. Some see it as one coherent tradition. Others argue it is not. All of this is fascinating, when eyeing the theory. But when eyeing the practice, it is frustrating. Perhaps the proliferation of ever more nuanced ‘realisms’ should end. Perhaps realists should start to ask instead what they all share. Assumptions. Beliefs. Principles. A further challenge is the current wave of critically inspired interpretations of realism. They have their own merits and are intellectually powerful. Yet they tend to be almost unrecognisable to most realists. And they tend to be so nuanced or über-critical that they can have only little value for realworld politics. Altogether, then, the debate is fierce. The question of what constitutes true political realism is, of course, an intricate one and an open one. Perhaps it cannot be answered. Yet realist scholars, analysts and pundits must take a look at themselves. What binds them together? What do they have in common? Not because these questions are of interest in themselves but for the sake of the very survival of political realism. Meanwhile, the ‘battle’ between idealism and realism ‘rages on’ (Mearsheimer 2005). American foreign policy idealism is particularly strong. Liberal hawks, neoconservatives and Jacksonian populists vilify political realism as morally bankrupt and essentially un-American. In Kissinger’s words (2005): ‘In fact, the United States is probably the only country in which the term “realist” can be used as a pejorative epithet.’ Or Mearsheimer’s (2001: 23): ‘it’s a “hard sell”’. In relation to this, foreign policy realism should therefore be bold and articulate. It should say clearly what its philosophical principles are. It must also give candid policy advice. Otherwise, it risks marginalisation, if not outright irrelevance, both in the intellectual and in the political domain. If the tradition can no longer be sure whether it even is one, its impact will diminish. If the canon is no longer sure whether it can legitimately draw on some of history’s finest thinkers, trust in it will erode. If realism is unrecognisable from the inside, it will be so from the outside. As Jeffrey Legro and Andrew Moravcsik (1999: 5) noted almost two decades ago: realism ‘is in trouble’. Self-criticism within realism, by realists, is therefore healthy. John Mearsheimer and Stephen Walt (2013: 448) confront the challenge head on. The problem is that

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 308

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans kelsen

309

the hypothesis-testing culture has produced little reliable or useful knowledge, and its esoteric jargon and arcane methods have made IR scholarship less accessible to policymakers, informed elites, and the public at large. Moreover, the emergence of an extensive think-tank community in Washington, London, and other world capitals has made policymakers less dependent on IR scholars at precisely the moment when these same scholars have less to contribute. Taken together, these trends run the risk of making IR largely irrelevant to understanding and solving important real-world problems. The problem they describe for the discipline of international relations (IR) at large pertains particularly to contemporary realist political theory. Pure theory in the ivory tower is diametrically opposed to what political realism has wanted to contribute throughout the history of political philosophy. Since its inception in ancient Greece, India and China, it has stood for a practical ethics of politics, for understanding other polities as they understand themselves, for a calm and clear strategic guidance through the struggle for power and peace. Moreover, realism has stood for ‘taking men as they are’, as Rousseau proclaimed in the Contrat Social. Or, as the first post-World War Two chancellor of then West Germany, Konrad Adenauer, put it: ‘Take people as they are, there are no other ones.’

The Idealist and Human Nature Re-enter Kelsen. One way to search for what realism is or might mean is – ironically or not – through Kelsen. It is to reconsider Kelsen’s ‘idealism’ vis-à-vis realism’s human nature. To hold Kelsen up to the mirror of realism in this way makes it possible to test both, to reassess the conceptual structure of realism – its nature, where its edges and boundaries are. It makes it possible, moreover, to test if, and how, and where realism and idealism can possibly meet. Kissinger (2015: 12) has repeatedly argued that ‘much of the debate about realism as against idealism is artificial. . . . The real debate is over relative priority and balance.’ These are important questions. They cannot be answered here. It would require a lengthier treatment. It is possible, though, to proceed one step at a time, while never losing sight of the larger question. One such step is a comparative conceptual analysis of human nature in Kelsen’s ‘idealism’ and realism. The methodological notion of a Rawlsian veil of ignorance is useful here, to the effect that, if one knew nothing about Kelsen, nothing biographical or historical, nothing theoretical or intellectual, if one knew only about Kelsen’s concept of human nature, then one could quite naturally and readily conclude that Kelsen is a realist. Few concepts are as controversial yet also as enduring as the concept of human nature. Some potential objections should therefore be discussed. For example, it could be criticised that toying with human nature is meaningless because it no longer plays any role in contemporary foreign policy realism. Neorealism has taken over, arguing that where once there were human drives there are now systemic variables. It has imagined consigning human nature’s ‘first image’ to history. It argues that the struggle for power in international politics is rooted in structural anarchy – in the sociological condition of the security dilemma. It is irrelevant whether ‘man’ is driven by a Nietzschean will to power or not. However, I believe this to be false. First, politicians

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 309

23/10/18 12:45 PM

310

robert schuett

and bureaucrats do matter. Powerful leaders such as Bismarck or Churchill have dramatically shaped history. Second, virtually all IR theory makes important assumptions about human nature, overtly or implicitly, and neorealism is no exception to this. Third, the core and universal logic of caution in realist political thought is rooted in gloomy human nature assumptions. This logic says that there can be no transforming of international relations, so, on this analysis, we could say that human nature is not dead. Yet, it could still be argued back at this that even though human nature may not be dead, it is none the less irrelevant as an analytical category. That is, it could be argued that, even if human nature was important, that even if Kelsen’s view of human nature was indeed as gloomy as that of realism, what would it mean? Would it not merely have shown only this one facet of Kelsen’s thinking to be realist? Yet, this is also a misperception. True, human nature is only one of many philosophical principles of realism, as well as being a potentially dangerous one. Yet it is the most important one.

The Idealist and Human Nature Realism A clear-eyed conception of human nature has always been at the very core of what constitutes political realism. If that is the defining principle, Kelsen is a realist. The very first of Morgenthau’s six principles is a clear statement about the powerful role of human nature in realist political thought. It has two functions. One is analytical, while the other is normative. Kelsen thinks similarly. The realist understanding of politics is that it is vying for power (Morgenthau 1967). Power struggles are universal, such that they are a fact of political life. To understand the laws of politics means to understand the ambition for power. To understand the ambition for power in turn means to understand the dynamics of human nature. The political has its roots in ‘the nature of man’ (Morgenthau 1930). The nature of man drives politics. It also sets the limits as to what is possible in politics, or in international politics. Power is the currency. Great Powers or states strive for power. They strive to keep it and increase it, to demonstrate it, to assert themselves. Through a policy of the status quo, a policy of imperialism, or a policy of prestige. Attend carefully to these laws! Attend carefully to the dynamics of human nature that inform them! For in the end, ‘men will challenge them only at the risk of failure’ (Morgenthau 1967: 4). This marks an important and fundamental distinction between realism and idealism. The former accepts human imperfectability. The latter does not. It sees no such thing. As Morgenthau (1967: 3) puts it, idealism believes that a rational and moral political order, derived from universally valid abstract principles, can be achieved here and now. It assumes the essential goodness and infinite malleability of human nature. There is clearly, then, a profound human nature rift between what constitutes realism on the one hand and what makes idealism on the other (also Herz 1951). And I want to say here that if this is accepted, and applied to Kelsen, then he comes out on the realist side. I want to say that Kelsen’s view of human nature is as realist as that of virtually any other classical realist. And I want to say that there are three reasons for why this is: first, Kelsen sees little good in human nature; second, he sees even less malleability; and third, he is a Freudian.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 310

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans kelsen

311

Kelsen and Other Illusions First, Kelsen does not assume the essential goodness of human nature. Quite the contrary. Kelsen appears to be even more candid than Morgenthau. In Politics among Nations, Morgenthau (1967: 31) speaks of three ‘elemental bio-psychological drives’. These create society, as well as the political, and they fuel the struggle for power. ‘The drives to live, to propagate, and to dominate are common to all men.’ Morgenthau never fully laid bare his philosophical anthropology but he appears to have been under some Freudian influence (Schuett 2007). Kelsen, on the other hand, did engage directly with Freud (Jabloner 1998). He reflected on malleability and he adamantly refused utopian philosophies. Kelsen’s whole critique of natural law philosophy was, in fact, rooted in his realist conception of human nature. The political philosophy of anarchism, for example, is to Kelsen (1941: 83) nothing but ‘an illusion, the product of wishful thinking’. History knows no natural social orders, only coercive ones. Kelsen (1941: 84) sees clearly that This idea proceeds from the notion that man is ‘by nature’ good. It ignores the innate urge to aggression in men. It ignores the fact that the happiness of one man is often incompatible with the happiness of another, and that therefore a natural just order that guarantees happiness to all, and so does not have to react against disturbances with measures of coercion, is not compatible with the ‘nature’ of men as far as our knowledge of it goes. For him, as long as human nature is what it is, this cannot be otherwise. Second, Kelsen does not assume the infinite malleability of human nature. Now, this did not entail him saying that human nature is fixed once and for all, for he believed in progress. But over and above progress, he recognised reality. Morgenthau has it that politics is a struggle for power. Governments may have many goals: security, prosperity, freedom, recognition, prestige, justice, decency and so on. To pursue strategic objectives successfully, however, requires having the means to do so. One needs power. It is a law of politics that ‘power is always the immediate aim’ (Morgenthau 1967: 25). It must be so. It is politics. It is what makes the political. It is rooted in human nature as human nature has presented itself through history. And on that point, Kelsen is just as realistic. Politics is a striving for power and nothing else. There is nothing necessarily noble about it. It is what it is. Never assume a fanciful human nature, he warns. For that would be very dangerous (Kelsen 1941: 84): To count on a human nature different from that known to us is Utopia. This is not to say that human nature is unchangeable, but only that we cannot foresee how it will change under changing circumstances This is a frontal attack on the political philosophy of Marxian socialism. Like Morgenthau, Kelsen appears to be a progressively inspired political philosopher (Schuett 2015) but by no means a naive idealist or utopian. Kelsen takes Marxian socialist positions seriously yet rejects them as totally unrealistic. The communist principle of justice is a ‘utopian illusion’ (Kelsen 1952: 16). He detects in it a very fundamental philosophical and empirical mistake: namely, that it is false of the communists to say

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 311

23/10/18 12:45 PM

312

robert schuett

that capitalism corrupts ‘man’. For if they do, then they only confuse what is cause and what are effects. The truth is rather that capitalism is a mirror-image of human nature in action. That is to say, while a capitalist social order may be problematic in its own right, it appears at the same time to be the order most conducive to the actual dynamics of human nature – most conducive to the actual dynamics of the bundle of conflictual drives that seek gratification, the gratification that comes with rulership, domination and power (Kelsen 1920). Reality is but a reflection of human nature. Philosophy cannot wish that away, no matter how hard it tries.

Kelsen as Freudian Realist Third, Kelsen is a Freudian. This is important for two reasons. Kelsen engaged with Freud and Freudian psychoanalysis in many ways. It was personal. They were friends. And it was also intellectual. This says a lot about how important a careful concept of human nature was to Kelsen, and about how important a realistic conception of human nature was. The jurist absorbed much from the neurologist, Freud, from the uncompromising observer of human nature, from the Viennese who was ‘possibly the most thoroughgoing realist in western thought’ (Kaplan 1957: 224). The Kelsen/Freud relationship is rich (see Jabloner 1998). And it is telling in its own right. What follows can be only a snapshot. But even as that, it clearly indicates the bigger picture that sketches Kelsen as a realist. One crucial point where Freudian psychology is particularly important is with regard to Kelsen’s strong insistence on methodological individualism. The whole must be studied through its parts. Kelsen was close to Freud. He attended Freud’s Wednesday evening meetings. A select group discussed psychology and neuropathology in Freud’s Berggasse 19 apartment and practice. Kelsen joined the Vienna Psychoanalytic Society in 1911. Years later, Kelsen gave an important lecture there on psychoanalysis and the state. The English version, ‘The conception of the state and social psychology, with special reference to Freud’s group theory’, appeared in 1924. It was a radical critique of conservative or organicist theories of the state. Kelsen was particularly impressed with Freud’s Group Psychology and the Analysis of the Ego (1921). Freud had explained group dynamics on the basis of changes in the psychology of individual minds. That made Freud a ground-breaking ally in Kelsen’s attempt to free ‘the state’ from the pre-modern tutelage of nature or causality. Kelsen’s progressive political philosophy at large was rooted in the idea that there is no sociological or psychological concept of the state, only a juristic concept of the state – the state as a centralised legal order (Kelsen 1943; Kelsen 1945; Kelsen 1967). The state is the law. The law is the state. The state wills what the law prescribes it ought to will. The law in turn is a system of legal norms that are created by human acts of will. There is no hidden residue. There is no dark or impermeable or ‘sovereign’ corner of the state operating independently of positivised norms. In terms of ontology, then, there exists no state. Kelsen’s impetus was revolutionary, as up to then it had been common to think of the state as an organic reality. He challenged the anti-democratic idea that there was a law created by political processes and a state created by natural laws of sociology. Kelsen therefore lauded Freud. He was attracted to psychoanalysis exactly because Freud lambasted the idea of a group mind. Some such conceptions had been widespread

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 312

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans kelsen

313

at the time. Gustave Le Bon was one such prominent structuralist psychologist against whom Freud argued. Kelsen (1924) believed that psychoanalysis was the most effective means of resolving what appeared to be reified social wholes into their real root parts, all the way to the conflictual drives as they manifest themselves in the individual mind. It is almost pure methodological individualism. Kelsen similarly applied the human nature insights of Freud’s Totem and Taboo (1913) to his Pure Theory of Law and the state. Freud had confronted animistic modes of thought, and Kelsen now did the same in his own ideology-critical way. He would criticise the idea that to think of the state in terms of a person must be rooted in a primitive worldview – in a primitive understanding of society and of Nature. These had been the popular remains of an essentially pre-modern mode of thought. Freud helped Kelsen to deconstruct their notion of the mythical state, and he ‘replaced that idea with the recognition of the state as a legal function’ (Jabloner 2016: 333). This is important because Morgenthau had also argued from first principles and reached similar conclusions. Morgenthau (1930: 4), in fact, would come straight to the point: ‘We have no other access to knowledge of social structures than through individual beings.’ Freud, Kelsen and also Morgenthau, then, wanted nothing to do with the pre-modern idea of reifying the state. It scared them – precisely because it was pre-modern, because it was pre-democratic and because it was anti-democratic. In his Politics among Nations, Morgenthau (1967) does not present a proper theory of the state. But it is all clear for him: A state is ‘obviously not an empirical thing’ (97). In the chapter on the world state, he makes his Kelsenian understanding of the state even clearer (489): ‘State’ is but another name for the compulsory organization of society – for the legal order that determines the condition under which society may employ its monopoly of organized violence for the preservation of order and peace. When we have spoken in the preceding pages of the compulsory organization and of the legal order of society we have really spoken of the State. What led Kelsen to Freud also steered Morgenthau towards psychoanalysis: namely, the philosophical commitment to a strong methodological individualism. Reality mirrors ‘man’, yes. And the state is the law, yes again. But it none the less mirrors ‘man’ because the political through which law is created has its roots in human nature. We can say, then, that to describe and prescribe what really is possible in politics, or what is not, is available to us only through a clear-eyed view of human nature – with the philosophical principle of a pronounced human nature realism. In this regard, the ‘idealist’ Kelsen really does appear to be as realist as the ‘realist’ Morgenthau.

Conclusion The question was whether Hans Kelsen is a political realist. The answer is twofold. Yes, he appears to be a realist. He confronts human nature as acutely as the established realists. And he sees clearly what it consists of – drives, aggression, an urge for power – none of which is pessimism, but a recognition of what is there. Human nature will not go away. There is no radically transforming society. That is realism, true. To conclude, however, that Kelsen is a canonical realist is none the less premature. What has taken

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 313

23/10/18 12:45 PM

314

robert schuett

place here was in the order of a thought experiment, under a sort of veil of ignorance. We ignored everything but human nature, and compared Kelsen with Morgenthau and realism in general on that basis. The result clearly produced for us an authentic Kelsenian human nature realism, and showed it to be his philosophical basis for rejecting utopianism. For human nature requires coercive orders, which means that the ‘state’ will not wither away. Still, that is not enough. What now? To what new programme do these new insights point? First, they point to the reconsideration of Kelsen from the point of view of political realism. If the Freudian origins of Kelsen’s human nature realism highlight the possibility that he is a realist, political theorists and intellectual historians should now take another look at Kelsen. From a different perspective: not a Kantian one, but classical realism. From the perspective of Morgenthau. Or Herz. Or both. Human nature is a start. What is required, now, though, is a comprehensive account: an account of all the assumptions and principles that the ‘idealist’ and these ‘realists’ have in common. That may include core concepts, such as politics, the state and sovereignty. And may include fundamental beliefs, such as justice, ethics and truth. And may also include political principles, such as democracy, progress and peace. This could be done in two different ways: one by one, or by means of a comparative intellectual biography, particularly of Kelsen vis-à-vis Morgenthau. All signs point to the result being a radical challenge to the received wisdom on the matter. Where Kelsen is a realist, the narrative of IR theory as a battle between ‘idealism’ and ‘realism’ would develop yet another large crack. Who would be on whose side then? It would be an important step. It would also fill a substantial gap in Kelsen scholarship. The ‘jurist’ Kelsen as a genuine political philosopher? As an early classical realist? As one prior to Morgenthau? Prior to Herz? Kelsen taught them, after all. These questions need to be explored and then discussed, for our time. Second, they point to the reconsideration of political realism from the point of view of Kelsen – again, for our time. World politics is arguably in its severest crisis since the end of the Cold War. America is retreating. Russia is back. China is coming. Europe is divided. The Middle East is burning. Africa is forgotten. South America is neglected. The Asia–Pacific region is waiting. What now restores world order? Some thought President Obama could with his strategic patience: in itself, a progressive kind of realism. Others scorned him. The former managing editor of the National Interest, John Allen Gay (2014), was fierce: ‘The claim that Obama is a realist is an insult to realists.’ Too harsh. Perhaps the answer lies in the middle. Historians will judge soon enough. Today, it is all about President Trump. Some see an isolationist. Others spot a nationalist. Others in turn perceive him to be a closet neocon. To Trump’s White House, its 2017 National Security Strategy is principled realism. It is too soon to tell. A strategy is one thing but a policy is quite another, so these are important debates. Foreign policy is, in the end, the choosing of life or death, diplomacy or war. What to do when and how is primarily a function of personal and political philosophy – possibly a realist one. These debates expose on a daily basis how realism means many different things to many different people. There is a conservative realism. A liberal realism. And perhaps there may even be something like a realism of radical critique. All of which is fine. What is important, though, is what ‘realism’ in all these variations really means, what its core is. If that is unclear or unspecified, it will mean either too little or nothing at all. It will mean that realism becomes an

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 314

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans kelsen

315

empty phrase, a boilerplate for whichever intellectual or political purpose. And by all means, all too vulnerable in the war of ideas. Kelsen is a useful resource for addressing the ‘battle’ between realism and idealism. His political philosophy has a hard core: human nature, the struggle for power. And it also has a gentle and progressive face: justice and peace. It does not pit realism versus idealism. It is an invaluable intellectual source for a calm and balanced realism with a progressive impetus. Politics is always about realism and idealism. Kissinger (2009) put it aptly: ‘There is no realism without an element of idealism. The idea of abstract power only exists for academics, not in real life.’ Kelsen would have agreed. A theory requires conceptual purity. A philosophy is different. It is a dynamic longing for truth and it is a relentless confrontation with reality, at one and the same time: taking men as they are, and peace as it might be.

Bibliography Baume, Sandrine (2012), Hans Kelsen and the Case for Democracy, Colchester: ECPR Press. Bernstorff, Jochen von (2010), The Public International Law Theory of Hans Kelsen: Believing in Universal Law, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Gay, John Allen (2014), ‘Is realism’s home on the right?’, The National Interest, 1 October. Herz, John (1951), Political Realism and Political Idealism, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Herz, John (1964), ‘The Pure Theory of Law revisited: Hans Kelsen’s doctrine of international law in the nuclear age’, in Salo Engel and Rudolf Métall (eds), Law, State, and International Legal Order: Essays in Honor of Hans Kelsen, Knoxville: University of Tennessee Press, pp. 107–18. Jabloner, Clemens (1998), ‘Kelsen and his circle: The Viennese years, European Journal of International Law, vol. 9, no. 21, pp. 368–85. Jabloner, Clemens (2016), ‘In defense of modern times: A keynote address’, in D. A. Jeremy Telman (ed.), Hans Kelsen in America, Berlin: Springer, pp. 331–42. Jestaedt, Matthias (ed.) (2018), Hans Kelsen Werke (Hans Kelsen’s Collected Works), vol. 6, Tübingen: Mohr Siebeck. Jones, David Martin and M. L. R. Smith (2015), ‘Return to reason: Reviving political realism in Western foreign policy’, International Affairs, vol. 91, no. 5, pp. 933–52. Kaplan, Abraham (1957), ‘Freud and modern philosophy’, in Benjamin Nelson (ed.), Freud and the 20th Century, London: Allen & Unwin, pp. 205–25. Kelsen, Hans (1920), Sozialismus und Staat (Socialism and the State), Leipzig: Hirschfeld. Kelsen, Hans (1924), ‘The conception of the state and social psychology, with special reference to Freud’s group theory’, International Journal of Psycho-Analysis, vol. 5, pp. 1–38. Kelsen, Hans (1941), ‘The law as a specific social technique’, The University of Chicago Law Review, vol. 9, no. 1, pp. 75–97. Kelsen, Hans (1943), Society and Nature: A Sociological Inquiry, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Kelsen, Hans (1945), General Theory of Law and State, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Kelsen, Hans (1952), ‘What is justice?’, in Hans Kelsen (ed.) (2000), What is Justice? Justice, Law, and Politics in the Mirror of Science: Collected Essays, Clark, NJ: Lawbook, pp. 1–24. Kelsen, Hans (1967), Pure Theory of Law, translated from the 2nd German edn by Max Knight, Berkeley: University of California Press. Kissinger, Henry (1980), ‘Memorial remarks for Hans Morgenthau’, available at (last accessed 31 May 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 315

23/10/18 12:45 PM

316

robert schuett

Kissinger, Henry (2005), ‘Realists vs. idealists’, New York Times, 12 May. Kissinger, Henry (2009), ‘Obama is like a chess player’, Interview with Der Spiegel, 6 July, available at (last accessed 31 May 2018). Kissinger, Henry (2015), ‘A conversation with Henry Kissinger’, The National Interest, vol. 139, pp. 12–17. Langford, Peter et al. (eds) (2017), Kelsenian Legal Science and the Nature of Law, Berlin: Springer. Legro, Jeffrey W. and Andrew Moravcsik (1999), ‘Is anybody still a realist’, International Security, vol. 24, no. 2, pp. 5–55. Mearsheimer, John J. (2001), The Tragedy of Great Power Politics, New York: Norton. Mearsheimer, John J. (2005), ‘E. H. Carr vs. idealism: The battle rages on’, International Relations, vol. 19, no. 2, June, pp. 139–52. Mearsheimer, John J. and Stephen M. Walt (2013), ‘Leaving theory behind: Why simplistic hypothesis testing is bad for International Relations’, European Journal of International Relations, vol. 19, no. 3, pp. 427–57. Morgenthau, Hans (1930), ‘Über die Herkunft des Politischen aus dem Wesen des Menschen (On the Derivation of the Political from the Nature of Man)’, unpublished manuscript, Washington, DC: Library of Congress, Morgenthau papers, Box 151. Morgenthau, Hans (1967), Politics among Nations, 4th edn, New York: Knopf. Morgenthau, Hans (1970), ‘Truth and power: Essays of a decade, 1960–1970’, New York: Praeger. Morgenthau, Hans (1971), ‘Letter to Hans Kelsen, October 4, 1971’, copy on file with the author, courtesy of the Hans Kelsen-Institut, Vienna. Morgenthau, Hans (1984a), ‘Interview with Bernhard Johnson’, in Kenneth W. Thompson and Robert J. Meyers (eds), Truth and Tragedy: A Tribute to Hans J. Morgenthau, New Brunswick, NJ: Transaction, pp. 333–86. Morgenthau, Hans (1984b), ‘Fragment of an intellectual biography: 1904–1932’, in Kenneth W. Thompson and Robert J. Meyers (eds), Truth and Tragedy: A Tribute to Hans J. Morgenthau, New Brunswick, NJ: Transaction, pp. 1–17. Paulson, Stanley L. and Bonnie Litschewski Paulson (eds) (1999), Normativity and Norms: Critical Perspectives on Kelsenian Themes, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Scheuerman, William E. (2014), ‘Professor Kelsen’s amazing disappearing act’, in Felix Rösch (ed.), Émigré Scholars and the Genesis of International Relations, London: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 81–102. Schuett, Robert (2007), ‘Freudian roots of political realism: The importance of Sigmund Freud to Hans J. Morgenthau’s theory of international power politics’, History of the Human Sciences, vol. 20, no. 4, pp. 53–78. Schuett, Robert (2015), ‘Open societies, cosmopolitanism and the Kelsenian state as a safeguard against nationalism’, in Robert Schuett and Peter M. R. Stirk (eds), The Concept of the State in International Relations, Edinburgh: Edinburgh University Press, pp. 221–43. Telman, D. A. Jeremy (ed.) (2016), Hans Kelsen in America, Berlin: Springer. Vinx, Lars (2015), The Guardian of the Constitution: Hans Kelsen and Carl Schmitt on the Limits of Constitutional Law, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 316

23/10/18 12:45 PM

25 Raymond Aron Raymond Aron on ideology, politics and war Christopher Adair-Toteff

Chapter Overview

R

aymond Aron was a major contributor to many disciplines, including philosophy, sociology and history, as well as journalism. What is of concern here is his role as one of the most significant contributors to the promotion of political realism in general and International Relations in particular. One does not need to agree with the claim that Aron himself was responsible for developing the French version of International Relations in order to recognise his importance to this discipline; however, one does need to agree with the assertion that Aron’s writings have had a significant and lasting impact on various areas of political thinking. This chapter cannot do justice to the full range of Aron’s work, and will omit any discussions of his critical comments on French politics and his important essays on contemporary issues. The chapter will be primarily focused on his writings on ideology, on politics and especially on war because, in Aron’s considered opinion, these three topics are frequently, and necessarily, interconnected. *

*

*

War and Clausewitz Raymond Aron was a twentieth-century Frenchman who was trained as a neo-Kantian philosopher, but he soon discovered sociology, primarily by studying the works of Max Weber. Aron started reading Weber’s writings while he was in Germany during the early 1930s and it is from Weber that he learned the importance of having both ‘detached thought and resolute action’ (Aron 1978: 65).1 These words are from Aron’s inaugural lecture, ‘On the Historical Condition of the Sociologists’, and while he spoke them in Paris in 1970, his thoughts went back to the postwar years and to the many political problems which continued to plague Europe. From his study of Weber, Aron learned that one needed both sociology and politics; Aron believed that most of his French contemporaries in sociology seemed indifferent to politics in general and tended to ignore international relations in particular (Aron 1978: 72, 79). In contrast, Aron held that the study of international relations was important and he maintained that it was not just the ‘direct experience of our times’ which encouraged him to explore this ‘poorly exploited field’. In addition, there were two major works

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 317

23/10/18 12:45 PM

318

christopher adair-toteff

that contributed to this impulse. The first was Carl von Clausewitz’s Vom Kriege and the second was Hans Delbrück’s Die Geschichte der Kriegskunst im Rahmen der politischen Geschichte. The second title is a massive four-volume work about the art of war from the ancient Greeks to the time of Scharnhorst, Gneisenau and Clausewitz. Delbrück regarded all three as important reformers of the Prussian army but he contended that Clausewitz was the greatest theorist of war – a view which Aron also shared (Aron 1985b: 41). However, Delbrück noted that there was a gap in Clausewitz’s account which was due to Clausewitz’s early death. In light of this, Delbrück closed the final chapter of his work with the observation that his Geschichte was intended to fill that gap (Delbrück 2006 IV: 600). Given this connection, it is readily understandable that Aron drew inspiration to write on war and international relations from two of the greatest historians and theoreticians of war and politics (see Aron 1985a: 226–7). As much as Delbrück exerted considerable influence on Aron, Aron never wrote much about him. In contrast, Aron wrote extensively about Clausewitz, and his preoccupation with Clausewitz is reflected in almost all of his writings on war. The first chapter in On War begins with a citation from Clausewitz (Aron 1959: 1) and one of his last lectures was on Clausewitz (Aron 1985b). In ‘Clausewitz – Stratege und Patriot’, Aron noted how difficult it was to try to condense the hundreds of pages from the book that he had written about Clausewitz into just under thirty, but he insisted that Clausewitz’s importance was fundamentally based upon his theories regarding war. Unlike many theorists, Clausewitz closely combined theory with experience and this combination helped him to appreciate the relationship between war and politics (Aron 1985b: 55).2 Aron praised Delbrück for emphasising Clausewitz’s recognition of the cause of the French Revolution, which was the diminishing role of the nobles coupled with the increasing power of the monarchy (Aron 1980: 64–5; Aron 1985b: 50). This recognition was important because it reflected Clausewitz’s emphasis on reality and his hatred for the notion of utopia and for unrealistic expectations (Aron 1985b: 51). Aron published his book on Clausewitz some thirty years after he began to seriously read Vom Kriege and his preoccupation with Clausewitz’ thinking is evident in Aron’s three major works on war.3 Aron’s The Century of Total War was not written about one entire century; rather, the first part covers the period roughly from 1914 to 1945, spanning Sarajevo to Hiroshima. Aron wrote it in the early 1950s; thus it reflected the end of the war and its immediate aftermath, yet it also reflects the rise of the Soviet Union and the Cold War. During this entire period, Aron noted at least two major changes: first, that the amount of damage was increasing because of technical advances in munitions; and second, that the distinction between combatants and non-combatants was growing increasingly irrelevant, and more civilians were thus being killed (Aron 1954: 39, 41, 77).4 As a historian, Aron had argued that wars are generally unpredictable and that understanding the immediate causes and the remote origins often comes only with hindsight, if then (Aron 1954: 10).5 However, as a sociologist he was able to discern a number of universal traits which lead to war. These include ‘vanity, arrogance and blundering’ and ‘mutual misunderstanding, resentment, and irritation’, as well as ‘interests, grievances, and ambitions’ (Aron 1954: 93, 24, 30, 74). He also noted that Europe had been relatively peaceful between 1815 and 1914, but after that, there had been a century of war. Historians and sociologists can, and often do, learn much from

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 318

23/10/18 12:45 PM

raymond aron

319

war, but for Aron, it appeared that statesmen frequently do not; thus, it is not a question of if, as much as of when, war will come again. The essay On War was written in 1956 and reflects a number of the international crises which were occurring at that time.6 Yet, it also contains a number of comments about war that are still very much applicable, regarding both the nature of war and human nature. He insisted that the evolution of military technique is irreversible and that it is destined to continue (Aron 1959: 16, 37). He also insisted that during the last decade, the world had fundamentally changed, not only geographically but also politically (Aron 1959: 57). None the less, there have been a number of constants: war can be waged in order to conquer or it can be waged in order to destroy; one type of war is limited whereas the other is without boundaries. The question for the twentieth century is what type of war will be waged? He reminds the reader that ‘war does not consist in killing as many men as possible at the smallest cost’ (Aron 1959: 87). Instead, Aron looks to history to tell us why wars are waged, and he concludes that sometimes they are begun because of genuine threats but often they are started because of real or even perceived slights. History is replete with examples and he advises us to learn from the past (Aron 1959: 110–11). He thinks, however, that today’s statesmen are more conscious of their decisions, but that is not because he thinks that they are wiser than statesmen from older generations. Rather, they have a fuller sense of the deadly ramifications of erroneous interpretations (Aron 1959: 72). This makes Aron slightly more optimistic about the future. However, this is not based upon some type of ‘naïve optimism’, but upon the ‘return to the real world’ (Aron 1959: 74, 41). In the preface to the American edition of The Great Debate: Theories of Nuclear Strategy, Aron recalls two ‘bons mots’ from famous Frenchmen: Clemenceau insisted that ‘war is too serious a matter to be left to the generals’, while de Gaulle believed that ‘politics is too serious a matter to be left to politicians’ (Aron 1965b: vii). Aron maintained that both claims are incontestable and the way to reconcile them is ‘to give military men a political training’ and to insist that policy-makers be acquainted ‘with the practical aspects of the art of war’ (Aron 1965b: viii.). The need for this has only increased since World War Two because of the increasing scale of destruction. Aron pointed out that, in 1944, the Allies dropped 600,000 tons of bombs on Germany ‘or the equivalent of 300 A-bombs’. However, he noted that a single thermonuclear bomb would exceed the power and devastation of the total number of all of the bombs which had been dropped on Germany during the entire war (Aron 1965b: 2–3). When Aron wrote this, it was in the early 1960s and there was an increasingly dangerous arms race between the USA and the Soviet Union. America was dominant until the very early 1950s, when the Soviet Union began to catch up (Aron 1965b: 6–13). The Great Debate may not be Aron’s greatest book because it is more connected to contemporary events than most of his others. None the less, he takes great pains to emphasise the importance of understanding the political situation and of developing the appropriate military strategy (Aron 1965: 194–9, 255–64). It was this need to join both which prompted Aron to write his careful study of Clausewitz. Aron’s study of Clausewitz is enlightening for several reasons: first, we gain a careful and considered view of one of the greatest theorists on war; second, we have a fuller picture of Aron’s own ideas on the causes and effects of war; and third, we can see where Aron’s earlier enthusiasm for Weber’s theories is replaced by his later appreciation of Clausewitz’s ideas. It

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 319

23/10/18 12:45 PM

320

christopher adair-toteff

was probably his reading of Clausewitz that prompted Aron to reject Weber’s ardent nationalism for a balanced sense of power among states.7 As Aron noted in the preface to Penser la guerre: Clausewitz, Vom Kriege was primarily a book of political philosophy and Clausewitz did not intend to provide a doctrine regarding war but had tried to offer a theory about it (Aron 1976 I: 12, 343; Aron 1980: 19, 306). Aron further recognised that Vom Kriege was open to many different interpretations and that each reader is forced to solve the final secret for themself. Aron admired Clausewitz; this was not adoration, however, but deserved respect for a great thinker. Clausewitz did not want to glorify war but he did want to understand it.8 As a Frenchman living in the 1940s, Aron noted that he could be quite justified in hating Hitler, but he also pointed out that Clausewitz had good grounds to despise Napoleon. Aron qualified this by saying that he was not equating Napoleon with Hitler, but insisted that we must be honest about our feelings because they colour our personal opinions, as well as scholarly investigations (Aron 1976 I: 12–14). Aron ended the preface to his Clausewitz book by observing that ‘one need not be a German, a Prussian, or an officer in order to recognize the adventurer of the split soul’.9 Clausewitz wrote, ‘war is the continuation of politics by other means’ (Aron 1959: 30, n1; Aron 1980: 18, 99; Aron 1985a: 329; see Aron 1985b: 59), but Aron recognised that Clausewitz had much more to offer the study of international relations than just this rather famous quotation. In Clausewitz: Soldat – Politiker – Denker, Werner Hahlweg had asked rhetorically whether Clausewitz was still relevant and had answered in the affirmative (Hahlweg 1969: 6, 82). Aron not only praised Hahlweg for his dedication to understanding Clausewitz, but also echoed this affirmation. Clausewitz. Philosopher of War is a massive two-volume work of almost 800 pages. The first book is more than 300 pages long, the second is more than 250 pages, and the ‘explanatory remarks’ and ‘appendix’ add another 200 plus pages.10 The first book is devoted to Clausewitz and his Vom Kriege, and the second is Aron’s examination of other people’s interpretation of Clausewitz and Aron’s attempt to apply Clausewitz’s concept of war to the modern age.11 There are a number of overarching themes found in both books and one of the most important is Aron’s insistence that Clausewitz always rejected philosophical abstractions and theoretical generalities in favour of explaining things by experience and history (Aron 1980: 84–5).12 Despite Clausewitz’s emphasis on experience, his writings are not always clear. Aron suggests that an answer regarding Clausewitz’s method may not be found (Aron 1980: 321). In an important sense, Clausewitz’s comment that ‘In war everything is very simple, but the simplest is difficult’ also applies to Vom Kriege, as well as to Aron’s own interpretation of it: what is simple is often the most difficult.13 Clausewitz’s Vom Kriege is correctly regarded as one of the ‘world books’, but like many of them, it is not often read. Instead, it is used by many as simply a ‘treasure chest of quotations’.14 Not only did Aron read it and did so carefully, but also this careful reading is evident in his own book. The first volume of his book on Clausewitz is one of the most significant and comprehensive commentaries on Clausewitz. One cannot do justice to Clausewitz’s book in just a few pages, just as one cannot do justice to Aron’s book on Clausewitz. Some points warrant emphasis, including the three antitheses: means–ends, moral–physical and defence–attack. This is because, like Clausewitz, Aron regarded these as closely related (Aron 1976 I: 151–3; Aron 1980: 139–41). Aron focused on both strategy and tactic, in part because he was concerned

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 320

23/10/18 12:45 PM

raymond aron

321

that Clausewitz’s insistence that war was a means in politics was either misunderstood or trivialised (Aron 1976 I: 169–70; Aron 1980: 154–5). Aron was similarly anxious about the misunderstanding of what Clausewitz meant by morality in war. Aron noted that the machine gun has no bearing on the moral constitution of a soldier and that bullets kill the most upstanding man (Aron 1976 I: 195; Aron 1980: 177). He also remarked that the chapter on defence and attack was not easy to understand and contained a riddle about the transition between defence and attack. Aron attempted to explain how Clausewitz often viewed war as a zero-sum game – when one side wins, the other loses – but Aron never claimed to have explained this satisfactorily or that he had solved the riddle (Aron 1976 I: 239; Aron 1980: 215). What Aron did succeed in doing was providing a carefully documented investigation on a very contentious book. Aron’s book was generally well received but there were several things to which people objected. One was Aron’s discussion of the ‘virtues’ of the army, the complaint being that something dedicated to such massive destruction should not be regarded as having virtues (Aron 1976 I: 200–4; Aron 1980: 182–6). Another was Aron’s support for Clausewitz’s observations that every war differed from all others and that the notion of chance and accident (‘Zufall’) plays a critical role in every war. The complaint was joined with the objection that Clausewitz tended to discuss war in terms of a card game and that these approaches appeared to minimise the terribleness of war (Aron 1976 I: 295–303; Aron 1980: 264–71). However, Aron did not intend to judge Clausewitz any more than Clausewitz intended to judge war, and that is because war is a part of human life. Clausewitz wrote, ‘In war more than elsewhere criticism exists only to recognize the truth, not to act as judge.’15 Aron stresses that, in war, Clausewitz’s highest truth is the imperative to destroy the enemy’s forces (Aron 1976 I: 177–8, 180–4; Aron 1980: 161, 164–6, 169; Clausewitz 1973: 215, 221–3). The second volume of Aron’s book on Clausewitz contains two different parts. In one part, he has a section on what politicians have learned from Clausewitz; these included Bismarck and Moltke but also Lenin and Mao Tse-tung. In another section, he expands upon a number of comments that he had made in both volumes. Here he discussed a number of people who had influenced Clausewitz, and these included his mentor Scharnhorst and his friend Gneisenau. Both generals not only influenced Clausewitz’s thinking about war, but also helped him in terms of his work and his life. Unfortunately, Aron indicated that neither general was completely successful in aiding Clausewitz in his career and that they did not always understand him as a friend. If Aron was objective about Clausewitz, he was less so regarding other scholars who wrote about him. Aron took issue with a number of other scholars who interpreted Clausewitz, and among these were Eric Weil and Walter Malmsten Schering. Aron acknowledged that he had learned much from these scholars, but he objected to some of their interpretations. He took issue especially with those regarding the use by Clausewitz of the pairs ‘means and ends’ and ‘totality and polarity’. He claimed that the problem with Weil was that he projected his own philosophy on to Clausewitz’s thinking, and the problem with Schering was that he allowed his sympathy for the Nazis to colour his understanding of Clausewitz (Aron 1976 I: 186–94; Aron 1980: 169–76). The other part of the second book also contains one of the most extended and important discussions of modern warfare. In another work, Aron had noted that during the thirty years between 1914 and 1944, humanity had gone from waging wars with rifles to waging them with atom bombs (Aron 1959: 27). Considering what

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 321

23/10/18 12:45 PM

322

christopher adair-toteff

massive slaughter had occurred with just the use of rifles during the First World War, he speculated about what massive casualties would arise with the use of more than a few atomic weapons. Aron acknowledged that much of his thinking about war prompted him to write this book. Accordingly, he readily admitted that his book on Clausewitz was not focused just on an important historical figure; rather, it was a work devoted to the origins of modern strategy, as well as the implications for the near future (Aron 1976 II: 137; Aron 1980: 453; Aron 1985a: 412). Again, Aron put this into a world historical perspective – the First World War began with terrorist bombs which claimed a number of lives; the Second World War ended with the atom bombs which claimed hundreds of thousands of lives (Aron 1985a: 412). Because of these massive causalities, Aron devoted the second part of the Clausewitz book to applying his strategies to the twentieth century. Aron knew that his book would not appeal to the wider public but he hoped that it would be read by historians, philosophers and specialists in international relations (Aron 1985a: 418).16 In this, he believed that he had succeeded. Aron argued that both political optimists and political pessimists are focused on the future; it is only the political realists who are fundamentally concerned with the present. He said this not so much out of conviction but because of his particular temperament (Aron 1959: 5). This is, perhaps, the basis for his criticism of ideology, as well as for his politics.

Ideology or Reality Like his friend Edward Shils, Aron studied ideology and thought about its impact, as well as its possible demise (Aron 1985a: 399). It became clearer to both scholars that ideologies were more powerful than they had recognised and that they were not likely to disappear after all. Like Shils, Aron understood the attraction of ideology because it provided an easy and convenient way to justify political actions. Even more than Shils, Aron regarded ideology as a type of secular religion; indeed, he held that communist ideology was an ‘opium for intellectuals’, which was the title of his most famous book (Aron 1985a: 232; see Stark 1986: 134–5). Aron contended that ideology was often a faulty means to an erroneous goal and he insisted that it was a frequently misguided attempt to reduce the world to a set of guiding principles. He defined ideology as ‘a pseudo-systematic formulation of a total vision of the historical world’ (quoted in Colquhoun 1986b: 269). However, ideology was also the means by which the world could be both explained and mastered, and it often provided the foundation for authority and order (Stark 1986: 146). Aron offered a brief but important discussion of the main tenets of ideology in his Deutsche Soziologie and he did so in conjunction with his comments on Karl Mannheim’s Ideologie und Utopie. Aron defined ideology as the ideas which help determine one’s conception of reality and he paid close attention to its role in Marxism. He asked whether ideology was a general phenomenon, whether it was a total phenomenon, and whether it was a type of value judgement (Aron 1953: 71). Aron’s answers are based upon Mannheim’s interpretation; accordingly, ideology is both a general and a total phenomenon, and it is neither true nor false, but indicative of our social perspectives. Aron acknowledged that this seems correct but he pointed out that Mannheim’s account is neither clear nor straightforward (Aron 1953: 75–6). Mannheim was writing about ideology in Germany and mostly in the abstract. In contrast, Aron’s interest in ideology was focused on France

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 322

23/10/18 12:45 PM

raymond aron

323

and was concrete. Joachim Stark maintained that one could fully understand Aron’s preoccupation with ideology only if one understood the postwar situation in France and the role that the French intellectuals played during that period. He also suggested that this was the cause both of Aron’s early optimism about the demise of ideology and of his later pessimistic, but more realistic, assessment (Stark 1986: 138–9, 141). Aron himself suggested that his criticism of ideology was based upon the confrontation with reality and he insisted that his definition of it was both precise and wide-ranging. He furthermore maintained that his response was not being ‘non-ideological’; rather, it was in the correct use of ideology (Aron 1985a: 376, 399, 402). Aron recognised that ideologies are often comforting but also realised that they are just as often misleading. He recounts a remarkable story about being in Berlin in 1932 and discussing the future with a young German social democrat. The young man announced that they could afford to wait because ‘the dialectic of history is on our side’. Aron wrote, ‘A few weeks later, Hitler was in power and in spite of the dialectic of history, the speaker found himself in a concentration camp’ (Aron 1970: 181). Aron recognised that ideologists often acted on the basis of what they believed to be pure motives; however, he also realised that the results of their actions were often contrary to these pure motives. In ‘History and Politics’, he wrote, ‘Often the prophets of the perfect society are precisely those who construct the most oppressive ones’ (Aron 1978: 245).

Peace and Politics Aron’s work Peace and War is devoted to two main types of question: the ‘politicostrategic’ and the ‘politico-ideological’. The first deal mostly with the various approaches of war, while the second focus mostly on the political relations of states – both internal and external (see Colquhoun 1986b: 164–5). As can be expected, this work is a departure from Aron’s earlier and more historical essays, as it is regarded as being rather abstract and mostly theoretical. That may help explain why Aron’s ‘magnum opus’ is ‘more quoted than read’ (Colquhoun 1986b: 164–5). It is less read perhaps not so much because of its abstract theories but because of its considerable length.17 As is the case with almost all of Aron’s writings, Peace and War is neither wholly abstract nor completely theoretical, despite its subtitle A Theory of International Relations.18 Rather, Aron began his work by recalling Clausewitz’s definition of war: ‘War . . . is an act of violence intended to compel our opponent to fulfill our will’ (Aron 1973: 19).19 He then shifted his focus to contemporary events and discussed the rivalry between the two superpowers – the USA and the Soviet Union. For Aron, both strategy and diplomacy were necessary for the unity of foreign relations – the first for war and the second for peace.20 In the first section, Aron discussed the means and ends of foreign policy; power and force were the means while power, glory and ideas were its goals. Aron invoked the claim by Clausewitz that states seek to impose their wills on other states, and he asked: why does this happen? His answer was that the different states have different goals, and that some regarded power as the goal and others had glory as their goal. Then there were others who saw a specific idea or ideology as the ultimate goal of foreign interactions (Aron 1966: 61–2, 64–5, 73–4). Aron concluded the first section with the observation that ‘war is found throughout all history and in all civilizations’, but he added that there are different types of war, just as there are different types of peace. There are three types of peace: equilibrium, empire and hegemony (Aron 1966: 133–7). He added that there is

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 323

23/10/18 12:45 PM

324

christopher adair-toteff

also a fourth type: peace through terror, which is when both sides in a conflict have the capacity to annihilate the other but are reluctant to do so. Aron suggested that the USA and the Soviet Union were engaged in a type of terror by peace. Because both sides have atomic bombs, neither side can win this war. He also noted that this process of peace by terror has not yet been perfected and that it may not ever achieve perfection. Finally, he thought that ‘peace by terror’ is a type of ‘peace by impotence’ (Aron 1966: 142–3). Despite the differences in types of peace, it can be defined roughly as the more or less temporary suspension of violent actions. Part Two dealt with sociological factors such as territory and institutional numbers and strengths, as well as with people and their regimes. He concludes by asking whether man is ‘by nature’ peaceful or warlike, and he insists that man is naturally inclined to be combative and that war is an expression of that inclination. However, he insists that it is not a necessary expression of the desire for confrontation (Aron 1963: 396, 428). Part Three is specifically focused on the Cold War between the USA and the Soviet Union, and because it was a specific analysis of that time it is not so crucial here (see Colquhoun 1986b: 185). Part Four is a return to the more theoretical emphasis and here Aron discusses the antinomies in international relations. These include the ‘opposition’ between idealism and realism, and between conviction and responsibility (Aron 1966: 300–2, 338, 359).21 He determines that these antinomies are not as strict as they may seem, and that international law and the notions of sovereignty are not as rigorous as they might appear (Aron 1966: 404–8). Aron wonders whether humans will be reasonable and avoid thermonuclear war. He suggests that the answer will be found in how humans will respond – like the wolf that will spare its kind, or like the dove that is ‘merciless to the vanquished’ (Aron 1966: 436)? It should be evident that Aron’s preoccupation with war was connected to his hope for peace, and that strategy and diplomacy were the two important components of foreign policy. It will also be evident that Aron believed that both infused his political thinking. Aron’s political thinking is not set out in a single volume but can be found in numerous essays that he wrote throughout his life. Some of the most important of his ideas are found in the essays collected under the title Politics and History. As is evident from this title, as well as from most of his works, Aron was convinced that history helps explain politics but he was also adverse to the claim that history determines politics. That is part of the reason that freedom is so important to his political writings. In ‘The Liberal Definition of Freedom’, Aron juxtaposes de Tocqueville and Marx; while both were concerned with promoting freedom, they differed in what freedom meant. For Marx, it meant escaping the tyranny of the entrepreneur and the market; for de Tocqueville, it meant being free to be ‘right and good’. In other words, Marx’s concept of freedom was ‘freedom from’, in contrast to de Tocqueville’s, which was ‘freedom to’ (Aron 1978: 141, 145, 151, 154). What this means also differs between different times and different governments, but he helps to clarify it by writing about the ‘dialectic of formal and real freedoms’. This phrase is mentioned in ‘The Liberal Definition of Freedom’ (Aron 1978: 161), but Aron devoted an entire lecture to it in ‘On Freedom’. These were the ‘Jefferson Lectures’, which Aron gave at the University of California at Berkeley in 1963, and they reflect his continuing concern with freedom and liberty in the modern world. ‘Formal freedom’ was primarily Marxist and could be found in two parts: freedom from arbitrary police action and freedom from state orthodoxy. ‘Real freedom’ is the liberal belief

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 324

23/10/18 12:45 PM

raymond aron

325

in the freedom to choose, including whom to vote for. However, Aron noted that the modern industrial nation has traces of despotism and the Marxist nation has hints of liberalism. As much as Marxist ideology was a threat to freedom, modern technology poses its own threat (Aron 1984: 64–5; see Colquhoun 1986b: 245). Aron warned us about simple binaries and easy solutions: when he wrote ‘Let us take care, however, not to be carried away by an interpretation that is both easy and seductive’, he wrote about freedom (Aron 1978: 157). Most likely, he would offer the same warning about ideology, politics and especially war.

Conclusion In the introduction to his Democracy and Totalitarianism, Aron wrote that ‘History has its own strange logic’ (Aron 1965c: xiv). While he was referring specifically to the newly formed Fifth Republic under Charles de Gaulle and to the relatively solidified Soviet Union, Aron was speaking generally about the strangeness of history. Aron was not so much disagreeing with Hegel about the ‘cunning of reason’ as much as he was suggesting that history is not always easy to understand. However, Aron also insisted that we are doomed to suffer if we do not even make the attempt to learn from it. Aron himself learned from it and tried to show others how important learning from history was. Whether it was Thucydides, Machiavelli or Clausewitz, Aron believed that we can, and must, learn from historical figures. While they cannot provide answers to all of our current questions, they can show us the path that we should follow in order to find our own answers. Raymond Aron is without question a historical product (of both time and place), but his thoughts on ideology, politics and war will undoubtedly continue to be timeless.

Notes 1. In 1949, Aron had insisted that ‘raw observation is hardly instructive and utopia of little use in practice’ (Aron 1978: 237). 2. Matthias Oppermann may be correct to maintain that it was not until Aron wrote his book on Clausewitz that he joined the ranks of the ‘Clausewitz-Experts’, but Oppermann is certainly right to regard Aron’s interpretation of Clausewitz as that of a committed political liberal (Oppermann 2008: 281–2). 3. In his biography of Aron, Colquhoun noted that Aron began to be interested in Clausewitz during the early 1930s but that he did not read Clausewitz’s masterpiece until it appeared in French translation in 1955. See also Aron (1976 I: 10); Aron (1980: 17–18). When he decided to write a ‘second dissertation’, it was the early 1970s and he was in his middle sixties (Colquhoun 1986b: 447–8). 4. In a very Weberian manner, Aron added, ‘Sociologists, neither admiring nor rejecting force, have asked themselves whether the wars of the twentieth century have still anything to their credit, alongside the crushing debit of millions of dead and miles of ruins’ (Aron 1954: 75). Aron was always interested in Weber’s thinking and frequently wrote about him. ‘Max Weber und die Machtpolitik’ was the paper that Aron presented at the centenary of Weber’s birth. His defence of Weber’s reputation remains a masterpiece in terms of substance and style (Aron 1965a). 5. Aron wrote, ‘Mysterious is the evidence of history’ (Aron 1954: 97). 6. Aron indicated in his memoirs that his interest in writing a ‘sociology of war’ dated from the years that he had spent in wartime London (Aron 1985a: 311).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 325

23/10/18 12:45 PM

326

christopher adair-toteff

7. Aron noted that Clausewitz never seemed to tire of insisting what was needed was a ‘healthy human understanding’ (‘Gesunder Menschenverstand’) and not the desire for something new. Aron also noted that this ‘healthy human understanding’ was what would free people from ‘metaphysical fog’ (Aron 1976 I: 161; Aron 1980: 147). Aron certainly seemed to endorse Clausewitz and his insistence on the need for a ‘healthy human understanding’. 8. Similarly, Aron could never be a member of any ‘Clausewitz-Kult’ because he did not want to glorify the man but rather sought to understand him. See Aron (1976 II: 346); Aron (1980: 758). 9. ‘Man muß nicht Deutscher, Preuße, oder Offizier sein, um das Abendteuer dieser gespaltenen Seele nachvollziehen zu können’ (Aron 1976 I: 15; Aron 1980: 19, 22). 10. Sadly, the ‘explanatory remarks’ and ‘appendix’ are omitted in the English translation but fortunately are found in the German version (Aron 1983; Aron 1980). Colquhoun and others regarded the English translation as a ‘disaster’ and they insisted that it ‘was full of mistakes and misunderstandings’ (Colquhoun 1986b: 465). The first volume of the original French version has 472 pages while the second volume has 365. 11. Joël Mouric maintained that many experts regarded Clausewitz as being obsolete and had no relevance for the Atomic Age, but he cites only one French scholar. Mouric’s essay may have some worth in discussing Aron’s overall approach to Clausewitz; unfortunately, there is no real discussion of Aron’s thesis on Clausewitz himself (Mouric 2015: 80). 12. This is why Clausewitz insisted that ‘The issue must decide’ (‘Die Sache muß entscheiden’) and that one must not base any decision on hopes or illusions. Unlike many of his fellow Germans, Clausewitz rejected the ‘metaphysical fog’ for a ‘healthy human understanding’ (Aron 1980: 78–80, 94, 102, 137, 147, 321–34). This is also why Aron believed that Clausewitz was conceptually closer to Montesquieu than to either Kant or Hegel. 13. ‘Es ist alles im Kriege sehr einfach, aber das Einfachste ist schwierig’ (Clausewitz 1973: 261). 14. ‘[T]résor de citations’. Aron himself confessed to having regarded Clausewitz this way for some time (Aron 1976 I: 11; Aron 1980: 18). Hahlweg’s comment that Clausewitz is often cited but seldom read and very little understood is echoed by Aron (Hahlweg 1969: 6–7; Aron 1976 II: 339–47; Aron 1980: 751–8). 15. Quoted in Paret (19: 341, 354). Like Aron, Paret emphasises Clausewitz’s sense of objectivity and his dispassionate approach to war. 16. Aron acknowledged that Clausewitz’s writings could be read in many different ways and he admitted that he was very partial to him. Aron suggested that part of the reason for the ambiguity is because the book was never completed and he also hinted that the reason that he liked him was because ‘Clausewitz wrote for himself’ (Aron 1980: 24, 33). 17. In ‘What is a Theory of International Relations?’, Aron insisted that few words are used as often by economists, sociologists and political scientists as the word ‘theory’ but that ‘Few words are as ambiguous’ (Aron 1978: 166). 18. The abridged English translation is just under 500 pages while the unabridged German version is just over 900. See Aron (1973); Aron (1963). The German version follows the original French and is composed of four sections: ‘Theorie’, ‘Soziologie’, ‘Geschichte’ and ‘Praxeologie’, where as the English version omits the second section on ‘Sociology’. While the abridged version mostly retains the theory, it loses much of its ‘action’. See the ‘Editorial Note’ (Aron 1973: vii). In the German version, the ‘Soziologie’ section runs from page 213 to page 428. 19. ‘Der Krieg ist ein Akt der Gewalt, um den Gegner zur Erfüllung unseres Willens zu zwingen’ (Aron 1963: 33; Clausewitz 1973: 191–2). 20. The title of the first section is ‘Strategy and Diplomacy or On the Unity of Foreign Policy’ (Aron 1973: 19; Aron 1963: 33; Aron 1966: 21; Aron 1985a: 312–13). 21. The contrast between the ethics of responsibility and conviction is derived from Weber.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 326

23/10/18 12:45 PM

raymond aron

327

Bibliography Aron, Raymond (1953), Die deutsche Soziologie der Gegenwart, Stuttgart: Krötner. Aron, Raymond (1954), The Century of Total War, translated by E. W. Dickes and O. S. Griffiths, London: Derek Verschoyle. Aron, Raymond (1959), On War, translated by Terence Kilmartin, Garden City, NY: Doubleday Anchor. Aron, Raymond (1963), Frieden und Krieg: Eine Theorie der Staatenwelt, translated by Siegfried von Massenbach, Frankfurt am Main: S. Fischer. Aron, Raymond (1965a), ‘Max Weber und die Machtpolitik’, in Max Weber und die Soziologie heute, Tübingen: J. C. B. Mohr (Paul Siebeck). Aron, Raymond (1965b), The Great Debate: Theories of Nuclear Strategy, translated by Ernst Pawel, Garden City, NY: Doubleday/Anchor. Aron, Raymond (1965c), Democracy and Totalitarianism, translated by Valence Ionescu, London: Weidenfeld and Nicolson. Aron, Raymond (1966), Peace and War: A Theory of International Relations, Garden City, NY: Doubleday. Aron, Raymond (1973), Peace and War: A Theory of International Relations. An Abridged Version, translated by Richard Howard and Annette Baker Fox, abridged by Rémy Inglis Hall, Garden City, NY: Anchor/Doubleday. Aron, Raymond (1976), Penser la guerre: Clausewitz. I. L’Ȃge européen. II. L’Ȃge planétaire, Paris: Gallimard. Aron, Raymond (1978), Politics and History: Selected Essays by Raymond Aron, collected, translated and edited by Miriam Bernheim Conant, New York: Free Press. Aron, Raymond (1980), Clausewitz: Den Krieg Denken, Berlin: Propyläen. Aron, Raymond (1983), Clausewitz: Philosopher of War, translated by Christine Booker and Norman Stone, London: Routledge & Kegan Paul. Aron, Raymond (1984), Über die Freiheit: Essay, Frankfurt: Klett-Cotta im Ullstein. Aron, Raymond (1985a), Erkenntnis und Verantwortung: Lebenserinnerungen, translated by Kurt Sontheimer, Munich: Piper. Aron, Raymond (1985b) [1982], ‘Clausewitz – Stratege und Patriot’, in Preußen: Seine Wirkung auf die deutsche Geschichte, Stuttgart: Klett-Cotta, pp. 41–64. Clausewitz, Carl von (1973), Vom Kriege: Hinterlassenes Werk, Bonn: Ferd. Dümmlers. Colquhoun, Robert (1986a), Raymond Aron. Vol. 1: The Philosopher in History: 1905–1955, London: Sage. Colquhoun, Robert (1986b), Raymond Aron. Vol. 2: The Sociologist in Society: 1955–1983, London: Sage. Delbrück, Hans (2006) [1901], Geschichte der Kriegskunst, 4 vols, Hamburg: Nikol. Hahlweg, Werner (1969), Clausewitz: Soldat – Politiker – Denker, 2nd revised edn, Göttingen: Musterschmidt. Mouric, Joël (2015), ‘“Citizen Clausewitz”: Aron’s Clausewitz in Defense of Political Freedom’, in José Colen and Elisabeth Dutartre-Michaut (eds), The Companion to Raymond Aron, New York: Palgrave-Macmillan, pp. 77–90. Oppermann, Matthias (2008), Raymond Aron und Deutschland: Die Verteidigung der Freiheit und das Problem des Totalitarianismus, Ostfildern: Jan Thorbecke. Paret, Peter (1976), Clausewitz and the State, Oxford: Clarendon. Stark, Joachim (1986), Das unvollendete Abenteuer: Geschichte, Geseschaft und Politik im Werk Raymond Arons, Würzburg: Könighausen + Neumann.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 327

23/10/18 12:45 PM

26 George F. Kennan Kennan agonistes David A. Mayers

Chapter Overview

G

eorge Kennan pursued a varied career during his long life. At one time or another, he assumed these roles: diplomat, policy-maker, historian, memoirist, dissenter. Not only in times of adversity but also throughout, he struggled to maintain his emotional equilibrium. As a practitioner–scholar, he sought to make a useful contribution, in which cause he sometimes succeeded. Alternately celebrated or rebuked, and otherwise the subject of much comment, he engaged in an intense quarrel with the twentieth century. Too erratic to be taken wholly as an oracle, Kennan remained too discerning to be dismissed. His struggles with self and the politics of his day can be read as versions of a cautionary tale and durable wisdom. At his best, he begs comparison with such theorists contemporaneous with him as Hans Morgenthau and Reinhold Niebuhr. In its essence, the intellectual career of George Kennan represented the submerged European conservative tradition in American political thought. Its strengths and its penetration, its weaknesses and embarrassments, were equally his. This current of thought never really commended itself to the jaunty US outlook, based on irrepressible optimism, materialistic success, and the legend of the rugged individual who triumphs over all odds. Yet Americans, no less than other peoples, can usefully repair to Kennan. At the heart of his theoretical conceptions was a preoccupation with the continuity and intrinsic value of human life and cultures. As the supreme aim of statecraft must be the preservation of civilisation, and as the overriding challenge to leadership in the post-Cold War moment is to avoid outbreaks of vast warfare, this orientation of his needs to prevail. *

*

*

Career In his capacity as diplomat, Kennan belonged to a small cadre of highly trained Soviet experts. He was among a handful of Foreign Service officers who accompanied Ambassador William Bullitt to Moscow in December 1933, soon after Soviet–US relations were normalised. During the crucial years of 1944–6, Kennan served in Embassy Moscow as the principal advisor to Ambassador W. Averell Harriman. While in that position, Kennan sent (22 February 1946) his ‘long telegram’ to the State Department. Intended

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 328

23/10/18 12:45 PM

george f. kennan

329

by him to arouse Washington to the challenges posed by Soviet power to the West, the ‘long telegram’ impressed Washington officialdom and helped give shape to evolving US policy, conveyed in the term ‘containment’. Kennan twice held ambassadorships – briefly in 1952 to Moscow, then in 1961–3 to Josip Broz Tito’s Belgrade. Neither of these ambassadorships was successful, the first being monumentally disappointing. Kennan was declared persona non grata by the Soviet government in September 1952, after delivering impolitic remarks to journalists, likening life in the USSR to what he experienced while posted to Nazi Germany during 1939–41. In the 1960s, anti-communist fundamentalists in Congress, who failed to appreciate the independent line that Tito was pursuing – away from Moscow dictate – and the concomitant advantages to the West, undercut Kennan’s Belgrade mission. An architect of early Cold War strategy, Kennan and his reputation became closely linked to the Truman administration’s Soviet policy. While director of the State Department’s Policy Planning Staff (PPS) in 1947–9, he helped devise the Marshall Plan, a creative and effective Cold War project. He was also a forceful proponent of the political–economic rehabilitation of postwar Japan. During his tenure as PPS director, he published, under the pseudonym of X, ‘The Sources of Soviet Conduct’ in the July 1947 edition of Foreign Affairs. The most oft-quoted phrase from the X-article was, for many years, an object of scrutiny by pundits: Soviet pressure against the free institutions of the Western world is something that can be contained by the adroit and vigilant application of counter-force at a series of constantly shifting geographical and political points, corresponding to the shifts and maneuvers of Soviet policy. (Kennan 1951: 120) The preponderance of evidence, traceable to sources contemporaneous with the X-article, indicates that Kennan’s conception of containment was anchored in economic–political methods and only secondarily in military ones, notwithstanding the ambiguous language of the Foreign Affairs piece. Kennan tried in his PPS years to emphasise the primacy of diplomacy and trusted that the Cold War could be successfully waged by measures short of outright warfare. From the early 1950s onward, Kennan was connected to the Institute for Advanced Study in Princeton, New Jersey. He devoted much time there to historical researches centred on the deep origins of World War One, international relations and Soviet politics. Several of his resultant scholarly publications won critical acclaim. He also delivered high-profile lectures on public questions, usually those touching on Cold War matters. Moreover, he published two volumes of memoirs, plus a number of meditations that stemmed from his ruminations – stretching from private yearnings to the elusive meaning of history. Portions of his voluminous diary, whose first entries dated to childhood, were published posthumously (Costigliola 2014). Long unhappy with the main thrust of US foreign policy, Kennan’s dissenting voice was most clearly heard in the 1960s, when he denounced America’s Indochina war. Later, in the 1980s, as Soviet–US rivalry reintensified, he warned against the dangers posed by the nuclear arms race. He advised – on the occasion of accepting the Albert Einstein Peace Prize – that the two superpowers should reduce by fifty per cent their stockpiles of nuclear weapons. After the Cold War, he condemned the eastward expansion of the North Atlantic Treaty Organization (NATO) as likely to provoke Russian

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 329

23/10/18 12:45 PM

330

david a. mayers

anxiety and truculence. He thought too that US policies in the stirred Middle East were likely to lead to quagmire and perpetual frustration. And he was energetic in sounding the alarm against the perils flowing from global environmental degradation.

Intellectual Temperament As the above indicates, Kennan was a dedicated diplomat, an able policy-maker, a productive historian and a respected commentator on the issues of his day. But he was not, and never aspired to be, a systematic political theorist. He did not compose any primer for the politically perplexed. Still, on the basis of his writings, scattered about in publications and archival holdings, it is possible to reconstruct his theoretical orientation and – while not forcing him into recondite debates for which he had neither taste nor vocation – to assess it. Kennan’s most sustained writing was lavished on his remarkable diary. It sheds light not so much on his underlying assumptions as upon his intellectual temperament. This, in turn, hints broadly at his political–philosophical preferences. The overall tone of the diary is elegiac, especially in regard to family, nation and era. Kennan lamented not knowing his mother, who died only a couple of months after his birth. He regretted not having made more determined efforts to ease the existential loneliness of his father. As a husband and father to four children, Kennan reproached himself for not being attentive or sensitive enough, problems compounded by his numerous marital infidelities: ‘My older children do not love me’ (8 July 1954, in Costigliola 2014: 342). Like Henry James, whom he admired, he appreciated in Europe – Great Britain specifically – that texture of civility, taste and deportment that his allegedly sybaritic and commercially obsessed compatriots had casually renounced. American by birth, assuredly not by choice, he regretted not having been born in the early nineteenth century, when, he imagined, the public’s aesthetic sense was, in comparison with his own time, more pronounced; courtesy more refined; the rhythm of daily life less frantic or encumbered by the intrusions of manic technology; and the quality of human interactions profounder. Echoes of H. L. Mencken’s rants against Homo Americanus and flecks of Mugwump distaste for raucous party politics abound in the diary, as does Kennan’s regret for the decline of an earlier Protestant Anglo-Saxon ascendancy, doomed by rising numbers of immigrants from outside of northwestern Europe. Their habits of mind and behaviour, he feared, must eventually overwhelm the sturdier ones originally emplaced by English colonists and his own forebears: America is hardly a national conception anymore. It is a sort of international entity. The overflow from the entire world has seeped into a great territory and has drowned out the heritage of my fathers. There it lies now, this human overflow, sprawling out over the continent in all its ignorance and all its sordidness. . . . (n.d. January 1933, in Costigliola 2014: 83) Except for the occasional inclusion of doggerel, Kennan’s diary is little leavened by humour or warm feeling. Kennan’s diary can make readers wince. The whining and resentment of political entitlement denied exceed that of even Henry Adams in his Education. The satisfaction

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 330

23/10/18 12:45 PM

george f. kennan

331

that Kennan took in his own literary attainments and mental acuity, and the corresponding irritation that he felt for purportedly lesser minds, cut against that admonition of the theologian Reinhold Niebuhr, one of the few mortals contemporary with Kennan who he thought possessed a mind equal to his own: intellectual pride is the original sin. No less than Secretary of State Dean Acheson, stung at least once by Kennan’s barbs, complained to a mutual friend: ‘George always engenders more solicitude in others than he shows for others’ (Acheson 1958). More disturbing still, Kennan expressed in his diary varieties of racial, ethnic and religious bigotry. He gravitated toward the supposed virtues of benevolent dictatorship, professed to see merit in eugenics as a way to check lamentably fecund lower orders, and traduced vast reaches of the USA (Texas, Florida, California) where the natives apparently spoke unintelligible patois, indulged every physical craving, and embraced flimsy creeds of either the chauvinistic right or heedless left. In reading the diary, it is easy to forget the other Kennan. He was not just a crank but also a person who can repay attention and reflection. He got a number of important things right. Against the grain of excitable people in Truman’s Washington, he held that the USSR, albeit incurably power-minded, did not constitute an immediate military menace to the West, a point underscored in numerous diary passages. These also testify to his confidence that the steady application of diplomacy could break the Cold War impasse and avert cataclysmic world war. As the diary reminds readers, too, he deplored the carnage of the twentieth century and the spawning of Nazi and Stalinist totalitarianism, which swept from Europe much of what had been humane, civilised or otherwise affirmative. He prayed, upon examining a World War Two memorial in Vienna, ‘May those who sent all these men to their death, on whatever side, some day be compelled to account for their action to the God who had caused these victims once to come into this world as sweet, innocent children’ (20 March 1982, in Costigliola 2014: 541). To read Kennan’s diary is to immerse one’s self in the mind of an agitated man. Kennan was susceptible to brooding, egocentrism and misanthropic imaginings. But he managed to soften these – plus protect his carefully cultivated public image – by wrapping them in the gauze of romantic conservatism, premised on the notion, and it is a dubious one, that the befuddling present and uncharted future are inferior to the past. Yet, as the diary makes clear, he strived mightily to overcome his personal failings. He sought redemption through public service and the publication of eloquent and learned treatises. Also, importantly, in his mind, he tried to instruct his countrymen on the centrality in foreign policy of prudence and the imperative of devising peaceful resolutions to ostensibly intractable disputes: ‘No one can bring back the lives, the hopes, the cultural values, which a great war destroys’ (19 April 1981, in Costigliola 2014: 535).

Theory The involvement of Kennan in his country’s foreign policy, his historical researches, his bouts of searing anxiety and even his lapses into bigotry framed what might passably be called his theory. Fragmentary and nowhere drawn in more than outline, this nevertheless amounted to a plausible approach to understanding international politics and the dilemmas faced by Americans.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 331

23/10/18 12:45 PM

332

david a. mayers

His outlook on foreign relations rested upon a deep suspicion of utopian schemes and hinged on the presumed verities of balance of power. His view of human nature and life, derived from a Presbyterian variant, was saturated in pessimism, with an emphasis on sin and sorrow. He never lost sight of the fleetingness of human experience, the occurrences of injustice, the liabilities of the physical body, the loneliness of bereavement, and – echoing Freud – the conflict that arises in civilisation between the emotional needs and physical instincts of the individual person and society’s requirements of order and discipline. These phenomena are built into every human life, Kennan believed, and impart to it what he called ‘an ineradicable tragic dimension that nothing can change’ (Kennan 1963b). Nor did he doubt the partiality of human knowledge and perception, aggravated by inexpungible corruption embedded in human personality. Having witnessed at close quarters the effects produced by poverty, totalitarianism and war, he came to this conclusion about the incapacity of people to withstand weakness and cruelty: ‘Panicky, violent, chaotic behavior is always closer to the surface of man’s nature than many of us suppose’ (Kennan 1953a). Kennan held that the wilfulness and vanity of men and women limit all their enterprises without exception, no matter how selflessly phrased or altruistically conceived these might appear to their authors. The fact is that human vision and judgement are circumscribed from the outset by brimming self-regard, which takes multiple forms in political life, often in ways more subtle than just the familiar shapes of self-glory or self-vindication. Kennan wrote in a 1969 essay, with the experience of himself and former colleagues in mind, The mere experience of participation in government is an unsettling thing. . . . It arouses and stimulates a whole series of human qualities that have nothing to do with Christian purposes: ambition . . . greed, envy, competitiveness, the love of public attention, the appetite for flattery. These motivations enter at a thousand points into the final product of any political effort. (Kennan 1969: 43) In view of this consideration, Kennan said that governments and citizens must adopt humility about their most morally ambitious enterprises. Certainly, he thought that no scientific breakthrough (such as President Reagan’s Strategic Defense Initiative) or application of a clever philosophical–political formula (such as Marxism) could ensure safety or happiness, or eliminate misfortune from life. To Kennan, civilisation was a fragile thing and could not withstand violent shocks, as caused by modern war or swift change. Vigorous diplomacy must pre-empt largescale violence; social and technological changes should be introduced gradually. Like Edmund Burke, Kennan consistently held that abruptness and a super-velocity of change will disrupt the fabric of society and of people’s lives. All utopian undertakings – the history of Russian Marxism being illustrative – demonstrated that not only are people unable to create paradise on earth, but also their efforts to do so invariably cause mayhem. Similarly, in Kennan’s view, the accomplishment of American technology and the conveniences it spawned cannot compensate for the myriad injuries inflicted on the environment or humanity’s relations with the natural order. He tied the failure of political utopian schemes not only to the fact that they are impossible to achieve but also to the blindness of their sponsors in recognising that methods – witness the Bolsheviks’ war communism – will determine the practical outcome. Worthy

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 332

23/10/18 12:45 PM

george f. kennan

333

results cannot follow from unworthy means; rather, the means determine, and usually become, the end. The politically responsible person for Kennan, therefore, recognised that all choice exists along a spectrum of evil; one must distinguish gradations and choose the least wicked from a mix of flawed ones: In a less than perfect world, where the ideal so obviously lies beyond human reach, it is natural that the avoidance of the worst should be a more practical undertaking than the achievement of the best, and that some of the strongest imperatives of moral conduct should be ones of a negative rather than a positive nature. The strictures of the Ten Commandments are perhaps the best [example] of this state of affairs. (Kennan 1962 and 1963a; Kennan 1953b; Kennan 1952) Kennan’s notion of international relations stemmed partly from Thomas Hobbes’s depiction of the state of nature: a conflict of all against all. In this flinty situation, in which a brittle species of law and international organisation does not substitute for a universally accepted moral–political authority, Americans cannot expect that overweening states will lightly allow regimes of order, justice and peace to develop. He deplored as naive American attempts to outlaw war (the 1928 Kellogg–Briand pact), to establish an embryonic world government (the United Nations) and to rescue foreigners from themselves (Vietnam). He expressed hope that one day his countrymen would, as a mark of their own maturity, come to accept the inherent limits of foreign policy: We are not going to change the nature of man, nor to solve the dilemmas of political society. We are not going to find means to overcome the great irrational, emotional currents that seep through nations and races and entire world areas. . . . We are not going to be understood, as a nation. In many instances, we are not going to understand. All that Americans should do, he opined, apart from trying to make their own country a more satisfying place in which to live, was to abide by the precepts of moderation in foreign affairs. (Kennan 1951: 95–103) Adherence to these principles led Kennan to object to fighting total wars and the aim of unconditional surrender, to reject the demonisation of US adversaries and the idealisation of associates, and to urge dogged diplomacy over resort to arms. His preference along these lines accounted for his campaign against varieties of American political–moral evangelism. Some critics charged him, as did Father Edmund Walsh of Georgetown University in the early 1950s, with saying that the USA should not become a slave to international law or morality, and that concepts of right and wrong had no place in judging the actions of sovereign nations – except in making Machiavellian determinations about expediency. Walsh scolded Kennan, adding that any such ethic as he seemed to defend was appropriate for the jungle alone, logically leading to the exoneration of totalitarian aggression and atrocity. Critics in subsequent decades faulted Kennan for not excoriating South African apartheid or Soviet persecution of Jews and dissidents. His response, really a discourse on the role of morality in foreign affairs, reflected – in the spirit of Reinhold Niebuhr – a concern about the wilfulness of national pride, oblivious to the dangers of hegemonial purpose and conceit.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 333

23/10/18 12:45 PM

334

david a. mayers

Kennan distinguished between the moral obligations and ethical code of the individual person living in domestic society and those of states existing in an anarchical system. People living in civil society can be measured by a rigorous standard of personal conduct, he felt, which in the case of martyrs or saints might even entail self-sacrifice. A government, however, operating in the foreign field, is charged with protecting the lives and property of its subjects and beyond that is not properly concerned with anything else. The historian Arthur Schlesinger, Jr, an acquaintance of Kennan’s, once described this position succinctly: ‘Saints can be pure, but statesmen must be responsible. As trustees for others, they must defend interests and compromise principles. In consequence politics is a field where practical and prudential judgment must have priority over simple moral verdicts’ (Schlesinger 1986: 72). Still, as Kennan once tried to assure James Shotwell (an internationalist enthusiast), an ethic of responsibility should be no more confused with an effort to promote cynicism in foreign policy than an ethic of ultimate ends. Kennan also told Shotwell that he loathed the hypocrisy and the exploitation of moral sentiment by partisan US leaders to gain domestic political advantage or curry favour with one ethnic group or another. Besides, as he once wrote for another audience, ‘Morality is such a thing which, like dignity of character generally, loses its meaning and ceases to exist the moment one claims it or refers to it one’s self’ (Kennan 1957; Kennan 1967a). True as this observation is in reference to the individual person, it was even more apparent to Kennan in the case of countries: a people’s self-perception is primitive, usually complacent or overdrawn, and the demon of collective self is hard to tame. Finally, as he often commented, the moral issue in any given international conflict is not always plain to see – even for a community based on shared values – and easy ascriptions of blame or praise are unhelpful. In the case of the Arab–Israeli dispute, for example, neither side was wholly pure or evil. This being so, the USA should seek solutions in a dispassionate manner, with the aim of containing the worst types of violence. In other words, Kennan taught, nothing like a perfect solution is likely to arise for any international dilemma; Americans hobble their cause and that of others by incessantly invoking allegedly universal principles (Kennan 1956). Too often, then, the American propensity to moralise appeared to Kennan as a substitute for authentic decency and intelligence in diplomacy. Only constant reference to its own national interest could safely guide the USA through the maze of conflicts between itself and others, and between third parties. Still, in contrast to the theorist Hans Morgenthau, the national interest for Kennan did not possess anything so majestic as its own ‘moral dignity’ and could not be defined concisely ‘in terms of power’. Instead, Kennan was relaxed about precise definitions of national interest, thus inspiring security aficionado Eugene Rostow to observe that Kennan’s mind did not move along mathematical lines but was like that of an impressionist painter or poet. To Kennan, the US government, like that in any every country, had to foster external conditions conducive to national security and prosperity, but however much Americans enjoyed talking about an ethically elevated national purpose manifest in foreign policy, they were deluding themselves. Like people everywhere, they remained ensnared in the struggle for economic wellbeing and living without undue hindrance from the outside. These purposes are not reprehensible in themselves, said Kennan, but neither do they constitute high morality. They are fundamentally neutral from an ethical standpoint, representing a necessity created by inexorable historical processes that have culminated in an international system dominated by rival nation-states. Kennan did agree

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 334

23/10/18 12:45 PM

george f. kennan

335

that Americans do and should let their moral values play a dominate role in domestic matters, and it would be folly for the USA to adopt internal policies that represent a degradation of national tradition – for example, the 1947 Loyalty Order and boards of interrogation. Kennan, indeed, was at his best when, in the ‘long telegram’, he advised: We must have courage and self-confidence to cling to our own methods and conceptions of human society. After all, the greatest danger that can befall us . . . is that we shall allow ourselves to become like those with whom we are coping. (Kennan 1967b: 559) In light of this admonition, one can only imagine how Kennan might have responded to such twenty-first-century recklessness as the Patriot Act or the spectacle of his countrymen debating the purported virtues of ‘rendition’ and ‘enhanced interrogation’ techniques. Regarding other nations, Americans should not judge, lest they themselves be judged, urged Kennan. The USA should not only exercise restraint but also admit to itself that it has not been appointed guardian of the world’s virtue: let Americans practise their version of morality at home and, by cleaving to it, impress the world with their earnestness. At the same time, his compatriots had to understand that nothing is more dangerous than moral feeling divorced from responsibility. He once recorded: ‘In the eyes of many Americans it is enough for us to indicate the changes that ought, as we see it, to be made. We assume, of course, that the consequences will be benign and happy ones. But this is not always assured.’ The offending government and peoples must live with the consequences, not those Americans who enjoy measuring the moral deficiencies of others against the presumed superiority of their own qualities (Kennan 1985/6: 210). The fact that Kennan never detected any genuine genius in the US political system reinforced his objection to the claims of American moral universalism. It was obvious to him that a country that was wasteful of its natural resources, was spiritually weakened by bad living habits, and confused the longevity of its constitution and governmental institutions with wisdom had little, except by way of negative example, to teach others. And yet, at precisely this point, Kennan the American diplomat did interpose: irrespective of its multiple defects, the USA could, without apology, expect that other countries would, on the basis of reciprocity, respect US interests abroad. According to him, whatever failings they embodied, Americans were not a warlike or aggressive people, and there was no reason that other nations could not accommodate the USA on the basis of mutually tolerable arrangements. To obtain these ends, the USA had ceaselessly to encourage its professional diplomacy. Kennan likened the conduct of a state’s diplomacy to that of good manners in personal life. In each case, the principle of obligation is primarily to one’s self. As dignity of behaviour has its origins in the needs of the person who practises it – rather than in ‘external compulsion’ – so do such qualities as integrity and courtesy in international life spring from the inner dynamics of a country. These qualities enable a state to coexist with others and, more important, they allow a nation to live with itself; the USA must preserve and nourish a certain image on which are dependent self-respect and, ultimately, the continuation of national vitality. Therefore, Kennan told audiences over the years, the USA was well served when practising honesty, decency and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 335

23/10/18 12:45 PM

336

david a. mayers

helpfulness in small things. Alternatively, pettiness, petulance or insensitivity to others hindered the advancement of US interests. As for the actual vocation of diplomatists, it demanded, according to Kennan, persistence and equanimity. To be effective, the ambassador or negotiator must also renounce self-righteousness and realise that, as the best solution is rarely obtainable, one must concentrate on achieving the acceptable. This implies that mechanical instruments – multilateral treaties, international law, transnational organisations – are inferior in ensuring peace to diplomatically inclined governments. Kennan’s preference was always for flexibility and freedom to act unimpeded by mass domestic constituencies. Although he readily acknowledged that those techniques and art, as practised in previous centuries of cabinet diplomacy, could not be resurrected, he nevertheless hoped that Washington would not wholly renounce them. Two important implications of Kennan’s views on diplomacy were that the USA was not obliged to curtail violence between third parties or practise charity on a large scale (for example, in trying to ‘modernise’ the global South). Although it might sometimes be in the US interest to perform one or both of these chores, neither should be automatic. Just as the USA cannot serve as the international conscience, so, too, it should reject any impulse to police the world. Except in those instances that infringe directly upon the security or economic interests of the USA and its allies, the undertakings or predicaments of hordes of people abroad should not be a cause to American policy-makers for moral or military excitement. The serious tasks of US diplomacy, Kennan taught, are to find modalities and strike compromises with other states that will allow them all to continue as national entities and to develop, however they can, their particular talents. To ensure their international success, Americans must not only deploy a skilful diplomacy, but also attend to the conditions of social health in their own polity. On this subject, more than any other, Kennan was adamant. Sensitive to the point of anguish about his country’s real – and imagined – shortcomings, he publicly chided it for lacking a sense of history, high culture and refinement. The automobile, he grumbled, had destroyed neighbourhoods; rootlessness and an ethos of the peripatetic had killed any sense of community. These problems, combined with the country’s low level of politics, meant, for Kennan, that the USA was devoid of texture, was dull and flat. While he discovered solace in a species of antiquarianism, his (wife’s) Norwegian summer home, sailing and other private pursuits, he periodically recommended a ‘dramatic stiffening of public authority’ for the USA. On the eve of the 200th anniversary of the American Constitution, he suggested that it should be examined by a body of distinguished people to determine its suitability as a future basis for government. On other occasions, he admitted that his desire for a more disciplinary regime could not be realised until a new public philosophy – on the nature of which Kennan was coy – had gained popular approval. In any case, however idiosyncratic or vague he was on the subject, he clearly belonged to that political tradition (exemplified by John Quincy Adams) that had defined national greatness in terms of domestic cohesion and emphasised the power of American example in international affairs. In 1985, at the National War College, he told an audience that the primary task of the USA for the foreseeable future was one of self-containment: the country had to master its fantastically high budgetary and trade deficits, cure its addiction to exorbitant defence spending and halt further violations against the environment. If the USA continued to live beyond

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 336

23/10/18 12:45 PM

george f. kennan

337

its means and ignored its formidable domestic problems, he averred, then it should not aspire to play a constructive role in world affairs (Kennan 1955: 127–37; Kennan 1968; Kennan 1986: 6). Central to Kennan’s thinking was the concept of custodianship. Unabashed in expressing appreciation for natural beauty, the sturdiness of Christian faith, and the aesthetic and intellectual achievement of great civilisations, Kennan derived from these a sense of the obligation to be discharged by the present generation: to pass the planet to succeeding generations in a condition compatible with ‘the wonder of life’. This duty also stretches backward in time and entails a responsibility to humanity’s progression through the ages. In the 1959 words of Kennan the Christian moralist: We of this generation are only the custodians, not the owners, of the earth on which we live. There were others who lived here before, and we hope there will be others who are going to live here afterward. . . . We have an obligation to both of them, to past generations and to future ones, no less than our obligation to ourselves. I fail to see that we are in any way justified in making, for the safety or convenience of our own generation, alterations in our natural environment which may importantly change the conditions of life for those who come afterward. The moral laws which we acknowledge predicated the existence of a certain sort of world – a certain sort of natural environment – in which the human predicament had its setting. This presumably reflected God’s purpose. We didn’t create it; we do not have the right to destroy it. . . . When we permit this environment to be altered quite basically by things we do today, and altered in ways the effects of which we cannot even predict, we are taking upon ourselves a responsibility for which I find no authority in Christian faith. (Kennan 1959) From this standpoint sprang Kennan’s refrain, running from the 1950s onward, against the testing of thermonuclear weapons and stockpiling of them, and his exhortations that everything be done to avert Soviet–US war. In similar vein, he advised Americans to tailor their diplomacy so that it did not rub against the complex organic processes of international life: surging nationalism, rapid social change, technological advances. These could never be decisively affected by American will or power. Rather, for Kennan, the USA had to approach international life with the patience of the gardener and work to bend world politics in a direction that would contain or prevent catastrophic explosions (Kennan 1959; Kennan 1966). This sensibility, in turn, required Americans to grasp that one’s adversaries do not have a monopoly on evil but have an ordained role to play within a vast scheme of history and purpose that surpasses human understanding.

Conclusion In its essence, Kennan’s intellectual career represented the submerged European conservative tradition in American political thought. Its strengths and its penetration, its weaknesses and embarrassments, were equally Kennan’s. This current of thought never really commended itself to the jaunty American outlook, based on irrepressible optimism, materialistic success, and the legend of the rugged individual who triumphs over all odds.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 337

23/10/18 12:45 PM

338

david a. mayers

Kennan’s religiosity, increasingly pronounced after he retired from government service, punctuated by tart remarks about ‘sickly secularism’ and his conviction that all reliable ethics resided in religious doctrine, ran counter to the prevailing American consensus, tolerant of competing viewpoints and ways of living. Kennan had to be a source of incomprehension to militant Cold Warriors and subsequent hardliners when he said that evil was not an external problem located in America’s adversaries – be they global communism, the USSR, the Ayatollah’s Iran or Saddam Hussein’s Iraq. Against this simplemindedness, he brought to bear the insight of those seventeenthcentury New England divines, whom he admired, and who were not deceived about the pervasiveness and ingeniousness of evil; its stain attaches equally to American and non-American alike. Speaking of anti-communism in 1964, he declared, I must reject it . . . and not just as a matter of critical logic, but rather out of a sense of Christian duty, because it implies a certain externalization of evil – a tendency to look for evil only outside ourselves – which is wholly incompatible with Christian teaching. Evil is an omnipresent substance of human life: around us and within us as well as without us. . . . When we struggle against it we must always regard that struggle as in part an overcoming of self. We cannot, for this reason, identify ourselves self-righteously with all that is good and clothe whatever opposes us in the colors of unmitigated evil. (Kennan 1964) Kennan recognised too that, in assuming the assignments of diplomat and policymaker, he had of necessity to contract with ‘diabolical forces’ (Max Weber’s words). This realisation, perhaps little more than an intuition at the critical moments, could account for Kennan’s willingness to live on the fringes of power. Except for such an inhibition, might he have pursued office beyond the rank of ambassador or head of the PPS? Elements within the Democratic Party were prepared at times to support his standing for Congress, in either the House or the Senate, but after toying with the idea – which flattered his vanity – he declined. Greater taciturnity and a willingness to go along with the dominant line might have won him a secure position within Acheson’s State Department, saved his career under John Foster Dulles’s subsequent foreign ministry, or won him a position more significant than envoy to Belgrade during Kennedy’s presidency. But Kennan was ambivalent about government work and often on the verge of offering his resignation from one or another post. The administration of executive responsibility seems not to have come naturally to him. Did the prospect of exercising wider power in a larger arena so unsettle him that he chose not to seek it? From a purely philosophical standpoint, he did not share Niebuhr’s hope (and expectation) that justice could be implicated in the manipulation of US power abroad. Apart from the complications that surrounded Kennan’s attitude to exercising power or increased responsibility, his career possibilities were hampered by his aversion to America’s boisterous democratic politics. While PPS director, he was too impatient to bother much with rallying popular support – either in the government apparatus or among the broad public – for policies that he thought were obviously worthwhile. Very likely, had he ever come to occupy elevated office – say, Secretary of State, he would have failed even more than Acheson to retain public support behind national policy. Later, as a private citizen, had he been able to overlook the more exotic aspects of some anti-Vietnam protestors, he could have helped improve their

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 338

23/10/18 12:45 PM

george f. kennan

339

political education. And their movement might have served as a vehicle to spread his sober objections against the war to the nation at large. Only in the 1980s, in a qualified way, did Kennan permit his name to be associated with a mass movement – that against nuclear testing and arms build-up. It was as a diagnostician of America’s international problems and as a prescriber of remedies, rather than as an implementer, that Kennan must finally be evaluated. Here, overall, the record is strong. However near he might have come to it, Kennan in the end never entirely despaired of the USA. Consequently, he once entertained hopes for a third political party, oriented toward environmental questions; he tried to teach his countrymen to distinguish between the appearance of morality and its real substance in foreign policy; and he reminded them that ultimate international success, for an affluent, diverse, continental-sized state, will be decided in the domestic sphere. This last point was especially important to drive home, as many Americans, he felt, had a depressingly narrow understanding of what constitutes authentic national power and prestige. Military might, after all, is only one component of strength; by emphasising it and neglecting other aspects of power, the USA threatened to subvert its security and world standing. Although Kennan never phrased the matter this bluntly, it was nevertheless consistent with his viewpoint that neglect of social programmes – from Reagan onward – would eventually leave the USA less well nourished, less well tutored and more divided by class and race than it could afford. Plainly evident in the twenty-first century, unless a strenuous campaign against poverty, urban blight and environmental damage is aggressively waged, the USA as a power in the ordinary sense and an exemplar of enlightened wealth and liberty will fade, just as Kennan warned. As for the weaknesses in his assessment of the USA, the chief one – apart from lapses into varieties of bigotry – was his inability to grant that representative democracy and its institutions have virtues that should recommend them, even to a conservative mind. Admittedly, American political institutions were not, in his day – or since, particularly efficient or run by the high-minded. But they were, and are still, more responsive and appropriate as a corrective to a national leadership’s misjudgement or waywardness than any realistic application of Kennan’s elite principle. Respecting foreign policy, Kennan’s type of conservatism held little that was helpful in managing relations between the global South and the West. The structural problems of the international economic order were lost on him, as was a strong sense of the need to alleviate harsh conditions in ‘developing’ nations to promote stability in a world that, for good or ill, has become increasingly interdependent. Yet Kennan’s other contributions to a comprehension of US foreign policy were astute. He wisely counselled that the USA had to recognise the limits of power, acknowledge a hierarchy of interests abroad, play nationalist differences in the communist world against each other, and pursue balance-of-power policies in Europe and the Far East. As for the promotion of human rights, he recognised that the US government was more effective when it used discreet means than when it publicly bludgeoned another regime – for example, the USSR and Jackson–Vanik legislation. Kennan’s most significant lesson for America was to be patient with history and its processes, sound advice for a nation that traditionally assigned positive values to historical forgetfulness. While it might have made sense – for purposes of integrating and forming a society from people of diverse cultural and racial backgrounds – that Americans not dwell on their respective heritages, their eagerness

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 339

23/10/18 12:45 PM

340

david a. mayers

(and pressure) to assimilate came at psychological costs to the US collectivity. One of these was to place a low premium on history. Against this reflexive indifference, Kennan counselled that international problems could be understood only when viewed in historical context and that adroit diplomacy requires taking the long view of both hazards and solutions. His emphasis on patience and allowing reformist forces adequate time to operate in society was vindicated in the Soviet instance – manifest in the mellowing of Soviet paranoia and police power, from Stalin to Gorbachev, which Kennan had predicted. The character of world politics was incompatible with ‘progressivist theory’, Kennan felt, and international history is, first and foremost, a story of evanescent triumph and unremitting sorrow. He certainly accepted the severe truth of Thucydides’ Athenian at Melos: ‘They that have odds of power exact as much as they can, and the weak yield to such conditions as they can get’ (Schlatter 1975: 379). Yet while Kennan warned against forms of internationalism that promised more than they could deliver, he never gave up on a world in which diplomacy and self-restraint could still be employed. His was a testament of faith in diplomacy and the politics of amelioration: The best humanity can hope for . . . is an even and undramatic muddling along on its mysterious and unknowable paths, avoiding all that is abrupt, avoiding the great orgies of violence that acquire their own momentum and get out of hand – continuing, to be sure, to live by competition between political entities, but being sophisticated and wise about the relationships of power: recognizing and discounting superiority of strength . . . rather than putting it suicidally to the test of the sword – imagining the great battles rather than fighting them; seeing to it that armies, if they must be employed at all, are exercised . . . ‘by temperate and indecisive contests’; remembering at all times that civilization has become a fragile thing that must be kept right-side up and will not stand too much jolting and abuse. In this sort of world, there is no margin for that form of self-indulgence which is called moral indignation, unless it be indignation with ourselves for failing to be what we know we could and should have been. (Kennan 1952) At the heart of Kennan’s conception of diplomacy was a preoccupation with the continuity and intrinsic value of human life and cultures. As the supreme aim of statecraft must be the preservation of civilisation, and as the overriding challenge to leadership in the post-Cold War moment is to avoid outbreaks of vast warfare, this caution of Kennan’s needs to prevail.

Bibliography Acheson, Dean (1958), to Philip Jessup, 25 March, Series II, Box 3, Philip Jessup Papers, Washington, DC: Library of Congress. Costigliola, Frank (ed.) (2014), The Kennan Diaries, New York: Norton. Kennan, George (1951), American Diplomacy 1900–1950, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Kennan, George (1952), ‘Kennan to Arnold Toynbee’, 7 April, Box 29, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 340

23/10/18 12:45 PM

george f. kennan

341

Kennan, George (1953a), ‘Princeton Alumni Day speech’, 21 February, Box 2, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1953b), ‘Christianity reexamined’, 6 December, Box 3, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1955), ‘Commencement, 1955’, Social Research, Summer, pp. 127–37. Kennan, George (1956), ‘Kennan to Ralph Flanders’, 30 November, Box 28, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1957), ‘Kennan to James Shotwell’, 11 January , George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1959), ‘Certain world problems in Christian perspective’, 27 January, Box 7, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1962), ‘Kennan’s sermons’, 15 April, Box 20 , George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1963a), ‘Kennan’s sermons’, 17 March, Box 20, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1963b), ‘Remarks for Mount Kisco conference’, Summer, Box 21. Kennan, George (1964), ‘The ethics of anti-communism’, 28 October, Box 10, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1966), ‘Why do I hope?’, 13 February, Box 12, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1967a), ‘Kennan to George Kateb’, 15 December, Box 28, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1967b), Memoirs: 1925–1950, Boston: Little, Brown. Kennan, George (1968), ‘The U.S., its problems, impact and image in the world’, 2 December, Box 15, George Kennan Papers, Mudd Library, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University. Kennan, George (1969), ‘The relation of religion to government’, Princeton Seminary Review, Winter. Kennan, George (1985/6), ‘Morality and foreign policy’, Foreign Affairs, Winter. Kennan, George (1986), ‘In the American mirror’, The New York Review of Books, November. Schlatter, Richard (ed.) (1975), Hobbes’s Thucydides, New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press. Schlesinger, Arthur, Jr (1986), The Cycles of American History, Boston: Houghton Mifflin.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 341

23/10/18 12:45 PM

27 Hans J. Morgenthau The possibility of peace: Finding solace in a belligerent worldview? Felix Rösch

Chapter Overview

H

ans J. Morgenthau is one of the most iconic classical realists of the twentieth century. His Politics Among Nations remains one of the most used textbooks in the field of International Relations. And yet, despite his popularity, many students and scholars of International Relations still consider him to have been a positivistic scientist that in essence perpetuated a belligerent worldview in which people live in an anarchic world riddled by conflict among nation-states. By contrast, this chapter argues that Morgenthau’s work was normatively guided by a desire to transcend the Westphalian system of nation-states. Although Morgenthau knew that his aim to create a world state was unattainable in the foreseeable future, his work still can open intellectual spaces to imagine more peaceful political orders. To provide evidence for this argument, it is first demonstrated that, for Morgenthau, human nature was tragic because people aspire to perfection but they are never able to achieve it. This is the case because people cannot live in the solitariness that Morgenthau sees as a requirement for achieving perfection. However, in aspiring to perfection, people have the ability to realise and eventually to transcend human nihilism. This enables them to criticise the current political status quo and to imagine different political realities. *

*

*

Introduction It seems that the efforts since 2008 of reconsidering classical realist contributions to international relations (IR) have hardly happened. Attending conferences of major associations in the field and going through some widely accepted textbooks, students and scholars of IR are still presented with a caricature of realism as an exclusively Eurocentric and belligerent worldview.1 In these accounts, we read that realism promotes war, operates on the ontological a priori of anarchy, and only accepts the nation-state as an actor in international affairs. This shows that many scholars still confound classical realism with neorealism, not realising that both have nothing to do with each other. Neither epistemologically nor ontologically have the often Central European classical realists shared any assumption with American neorealist scholars

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 342

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans j. morgenthau

343

(cf. Behr and Heath 2009). Equally, recent insights that explore epistemological and normative overlaps between realism and critical theories are not taken up by the wider discipline (cf. Scheuermann 2008; Scheuermann 2009b; Scheuermann 2011; Molloy 2010; Rösch 2014a; Behr and Kirke 2014; Troy 2015; Behr and Williams 2016; Levine 2013; Stullerova 2016).2 This chapter is challenging this commonly accepted view of realism as a belligerent worldview and it aims to achieve this by discussing the work of the one realist scholar who today – even almost forty years after his death – is, for many critical theorists, still their archetypical nemesis: Hans Morgenthau. To this end, I dig deep into the philosophical fundament of Morgenthau’s work, which he mainly elaborated in unpublished manuscripts at the beginning of his career in Europe (see also Rösch 2015; Rösch 2016b). Traces of these underpinnings are to be found throughout his career in some of his best-known works but, paraphrasing Nigel Thrift (2000: 380), it is in ‘the little things’ that we find the most insightful clues. It is argued that, for Morgenthau, human nature was tragic because people aspire to perfection but they are never able to achieve it. This is the case because people cannot live in solitariness, which Morgenthau sees as a requirement for achieving perfection. However, in aspiring to perfection, people have the ability to realise and eventually transcend human nihilism. This enables them to criticise the current political status quo and to imagine more peaceful political orders beyond the still-dominant Westphalian system of nation-states. This argument is unravelled in four steps. First, I discuss the relation between loneliness and tragedy before focusing on the one human drive that can find satisfaction by humans living together: the drive to prove oneself. Then, I explore the human ability to give meaning to their social life-worlds (autopoiesis) and, finally, the findings are related to Morgenthau’s critique of the nation-state.

Human Tragedy: The Inability to Be Alone Arguing that tragedy is an important element in Morgenthau’s thought is hardly a new discovery. There is a wide body of literature that explores the importance that tragedy held for Morgenthau and indeed other realist scholars (cf. Gismondi 2004; Klusmeyer 2009; Chou 2011; Lebow and Erskine 2012). Ned Lebow (2003), in particular, has demonstrated that realists employed human tragedy as an analytical category by returning to Greek antiquity. This is well evidenced for Morgenthau (2004), as he frequently made references to Aristotle and gave lectures on The Politics throughout his career. Recently, Konstantinos Kostagiannis (2014) even argued that reading tragedy as a metaphor helps to understand Morgenthau’s criticism of the nation-state. This chapter builds upon these insights and it shores them up by stressing that, for Morgenthau, the inability to be alone is at the core of the tragedy that characterises the human condition. In an unpublished manuscript titled ‘The Significance of Being Alone’, Morgenthau (n.d.) expounded the relation between tragedy and loneliness. Referring to the Old Testament, Morgenthau (n.d.: 2) started by characterising humans as an imago dei. Being created in the image of God, however, puts humans into a position from which they cannot escape. They have the ability to envision perfection but they are never able to achieve it. The opening lines of Morgenthau’s (1972: 2) Science: Servant or Master? helps us understand this point further. In this first part, which is based on an early manuscript from 1934, he argued that ‘science . . . elates man with the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 343

23/10/18 12:45 PM

344

felix rösch

promise to transform homo faber, the maker of tools, into homo deus, the maker of worlds, [but] it also depresses him’. Believing in the promise of science to furnish perfection, as Morgenthau experienced it with the rise of positivism, and the subsequent attempt to create life-worlds through social planning, however, leads to scenarios in which human creativeness atrophies. Rather than being enabled to turn from a homo faber as the ideal typification of self-determined work into a homo deus, people are reduced to the constraints of an animal laborans. Living in such a world, ‘its members [are compelled] to live below their capabilities rather than exhausting them. It misdirects their energies and wastes the best of their talents’ (Morgenthau 1960: 79) and, consequently, people are ‘suspended between heaven and earth: [they] are an ambitious beast and frustrated god’ (Morgenthau 1963: 420). For Morgenthau (n.d.: 3), however, it is less that tragedy is caused by the fact that humans cannot achieve perfection than that it is part of the human condition. In agreement with Aristotle, Morgenthau (2004) conceived of humans as zoa politika; in other words, people cannot live as solitaires but it is in their nature to establish, engage in and commit themselves to various socio-political and cultural communities. In order to achieve perfection, people, however, would have to endure solitariness, like God. Morgenthau explains this connection between numinous loneliness and perfection through the effects of monotheism. Sharing their lives with others, by contrast, people subdue the human striving for perfection only by living in an ‘illusion of being perfect’ (Morgenthau n.d.: 2). As Hans-Jörg Sigwart (2013: 413) puts it, The main objection of the realist critiques against the liberal zeitgeist is that it is based on particular forms of ‘wishful thinking’ and on (mostly pseudo-religious) moral and political ‘illusions’ that systematically eclipse the actual realities of social and political, and also of intellectual, life. Morgenthau (1960) saw this evidenced in modern societies in particular. He argued that mediocrity is perpetuated in modernity because humans are not encouraged to make use of all their abilities. Rather, a mediocre effort is sufficient to fulfil the tasks that a bureaucratised and technologised everyday demands. Any further effort would make no difference. However, through ‘cultural blinders’ (Morgenthau 2004: 36), modernity creates an assumption among people that they have reached socio-political, economic or cultural perfection (for more, see Rösch 2016a). It was against these cultural blinders that students were protesting during the 1960s: What the students revolt against . . . is what they are revolting against in the world at large. That world, thoroughly secularized and dedicated to the production of consumer goods and weapons of mass destruction, has lost its meaning. . . . That world is also thoroughly mechanized and bureaucratized. Thus it diminishes the individual who must rely on others rather than himself for the satisfaction of his wants, from the necessities of life to his spiritual and philosophical longings (Morgenthau 1968: 9) Consequently, Morgenthau (n.d.: 4) argued that human life ‘can be understood as one great enterprise to escape from being alone, to make complete the incompleteness of . . . existence, to fill the void in . . . being’. Following Morgenthau, four strategies are

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 344

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans j. morgenthau

345

being employed by people to stage this escape successfully. Two of these strategies are spatially vertical. The first vertical strategy is upward, in which people aim to transform loneliness into solitude (cf. Rösch 2013), while the second vertical one is a downward strategy. In this latter strategy, people aim to exert influence over others, with the intention of dominating them. People might also employ a philanthropic horizontal strategy, such as volunteering, in order to escape from loneliness by putting themselves into the service of others. Finally, Morgenthau also envisaged a temporal strategy, as he argued that people strive for secular and religious forms of immortality. However, Morgenthau left no doubt that all these ambitions are in vain. ‘Instead of the linear movement in time and space . . . one might think of their combinations in the image of a sphere which combines the different lines of movement and in which man himself moves without escape’ (Morgenthau n.d.: 5).

The Drive to Prove Oneself To understand that human tragedy rests on the inability to be alone, we have to take a closer look at Morgenthau’s argument that social life provides an escape from loneliness, as people can maintain an illusionary image of perfection. This illusion is sustained by the possibility of satisfying one of two human drives through engagement with others. In an early unpublished manuscript, Morgenthau (1930: 5; author’s translation) argued that human action is determined by ‘the impulse of life striving to keep alive, to prove oneself, and to interact with others’. Hence, there are two fundamental drives for Morgenthau: the drive for self-preservation (Selbsterhaltungstrieb) and the drive to prove oneself (Bewährungstrieb). Robert Schuett (Schuett 2007: 59; also Schuett 2010) rightfully demonstrates that Morgenthau relied heavily on Sigmund Freud’s ego and sexual instinct (hunger and love) in his elaboration of these two human drives, even though Morgenthau (1984: 14) tried to negate Freud’s influence on him in later years. For Morgenthau, the drive for self-preservation (hunger) was more fundamental because the preservation of one’s life is the central concern for humans. This drive focuses on human survival and is manifested in the pursuit of food and shelter. In modern times, it also contains the aspiration to money as a substitute for acquiring food (Morgenthau 1930: 5, 15). Also, other vital interests, such as security, are represented in this drive, along with the means of achieving them, like marriage or a secure workplace (Morgenthau 1947: 165). In agreement with Freud, Morgenthau (1929: 119–30) also used both drives to analyse international affairs, initially identifying them as questions of honour (Ehrfragen). Shortly thereafter, however, Morgenthau (1933: 33–4; also Morgenthau 2012) referred to them as ‘questions politiques de première classe’ and ‘questions politiques de deuxième classe’. The drive for selfpreservation (political questions of the first order) was already present in his doctoral thesis, in which he introduced them as interests of existence (Lebensinteressen). For Morgenthau (1929: 98), this interest helped to preserve all of the constitutive elements of nation-states, such as sovereignty and their legal order, and it helped to satisfy the position of a state among other states. Central for understanding Morgenthau’s conceptualisation of human nature, however, is the drive to prove oneself (love) (Solomon 2012) because ‘[t]he desire for power . . . concerns itself not with the individual’s survival, but with his position among his

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 345

23/10/18 12:45 PM

346

felix rösch

fellows once his survival has been secured’ (Morgenthau 1947: 165). The drive to prove oneself was important for Morgenthau because it fostered his criticism of the nation-state and affected his views about the potential of establishing peace globally. For Morgenthau, the intention of this drive was to make oneself aware of one’s own life and gain awareness of one’s strengths and capabilities. The self manifests itself only through the other, which is why this drive finds its expression in games, arts, science and even relationships. ‘[E]verywhere the human being strives to show “what he [and she] can”’ is the drive to prove oneself at its origin (Morgenthau 1930: 6; author’s translation). Its purpose is to gain and increase pleasure. Particularly challenging situations promise its highest surplus because they require the overcoming of obstacles by mastering non-routine situations (Morgenthau 1930: 26–7). Such situations assure one’s identity because they promise the appraisal of others (Morgenthau 1930: 31–2). However – and this is where the tragedy lies, given that this drive is limitless, such aspirations can never be fully realised (Morgenthau 1929: 71; Morgenthau 1945: 13; Morgenthau 1947: 166).

Autopoiesis Stressing the tragedy of human existence, it seems only likely that current realismreadings increasingly focus on theological aspects by interpreting realism as a political theology (cf. Mollov 2002; Rengger 2013; Paipais 2013; Troy 2013). Realists’ concern about modernity depriving people of the ability to experience themselves in their subjectivity and their attendance to questions of international ethics are being interpreted as a contribution to the manifold attempts to reinstil spirituality and transcendental security in people. This reading of realism, however, is not without its problems, as it neglects the human potential for meaning-autopoiesis that is particularly to be found in Morgenthau’s work. Although human nature was tragic for Morgenthau, he did not promote a pessimistic worldview. The initial reason for engaging with others might have been to satisfy one’s drive to prove oneself and to subdue human imperfections, but in doing so, people can reflect about social life-worlds, realising that they are constructed in intersubjective, discursive processes through which power is established in collectivity. This is the case because the ‘propensity for self-deception is mitigated by man’s capacity for transcending himself, for looking at himself as he might look to others’ (Morgenthau 1963: 422). This implies that, while trying to elude their fate, people not only can learn to accept it, but also can understand that meaning and identity are created in autopoiesis. In other words, Morgenthau promoted a positive worldview (Rösch 2015), in which people can actively embrace the opportunity to give meaning to their life-worlds through their own thoughts, actions and relations. In this process, people also develop their identities. Arriving at what Hannah Arendt would have called amor mundi (Young-Bruehl 1982: 324), however, was also for Morgenthau a long and arduous personal process, as meticulously traced by Christoph Frei (2001; also Scheuerman 2009a; Rösch 2015).3 From Frei, we know that Morgenthau started this journey with studying Friedrich Nietzsche. It was through his work that he learned about amor fati (Nietzsche 2003: 157): namely, the acceptance of one’s fate. For Nietzsche, this embracing of one’s fate is the initial recognition of the eternal recurrence of time

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 346

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans j. morgenthau

347

and space. In Thus Spoke Zarathustra, Nietzsche (1969: 234) explained this nihilism as ‘[e]verything goes, everything returns; the wheel of existence rolls forever. Everything dies, everything blossoms anew; the year of existence runs on forever. . . . Everything departs, everything meets again; the ring of existence is true to itself forever.’ If people realise this initial aimlessness and meaninglessness, they can also understand that modernity has deprived them of their ability to contribute actively to their own life-worlds. For Morgenthau, this insight was the initial step that eventually would encourage people to develop and make use of all their abilities. However, realising that life in itself does not have a prescribed meaning is an awesome experience. It can be disappointing, since it offers with each answer new questions, with each victory a new disappointment, and thus seems to lead nowhere. In this labyrinth of unconnected causal connections man discovers many little answers but no answer to the great questions of his life, no meaning, no direction. (Morgenthau 1947: 176) Countless combinations of actions and reactions provide a multitude of eternally recurrent moments, which evolve without preinscribed purpose. Still, Morgenthau did not intend to surrender to this nihilism but aimed to overcome it, since Nietzsche (1968: 336) also accentuated that ‘[t]he unalterable sequence of certain phenomena demonstrates no “law” but a power relationship between two or more forces’. People do not have to agonise about these returning moments but they can choose to affirm them. This constitutes Nietzsche’s amor fati. Relating the initially meaningless moments to oneself and transforming them into significant situations enable people to realise that life is eternal becoming. Even more challenging, however, is the dolorous experience that amor fati provides because it causes ‘transcendental homelessness’ (Lukács 1963: 41). People yearn for ontological security (Giddens 1984) because it provides a clearly structured life through standardised conceptions of reason, virtue, justice, and even pity and happiness, for which they accept that their subjectivity is being negated. Only when people approve their fate can they become an Übermensch. In agreement with Mihaela Neacsu (2010: 99), it was this Nietzschean concept that provided Morgenthau with the ideal for what is required to arrive at a positive connotation of one’s life-world. The recognition of the eternal recurrence, and concurrently the renunciation of an ideologised life through the ability to alienate oneself intellectually from one’s life-world, enable an understanding of dominant knowledge-power relations and how they are temporally and spatially conditioned, and consideration of their influence on society. The Übermensch epitomises the ability to recognise and the will to overcome the surrounding nihilistic world. Through self-restraint, self-assurance and self-reflection, people are enabled to refer the ever-recurrent moments to themselves, creating meaning and identity. It is for this reason that Morgenthau (1972: 48–9) deplored the absence of the qualities of an Übermensch in Science: Servant or Master?: [t]his meaningless and aimless activity may convey the superficial appearance of an abundant dynamism trying to transform the empirical world. In truth, however, it is not the pressure of creative force but flight from his true task that drives man beyond himself through action. In the intoxication of incessant activity, man tries

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 347

23/10/18 12:45 PM

348

felix rösch

to forget the question posed by the metaphysical shock. Yet, since the noise of the active world can drown out that question but cannot altogether silence it, complete oblivion, which is coincident with the end of consciousness itself, becomes the unacknowledged ultimate aim. Achieving the stage of an Übermensch, through the ability to give meaning to one’s lifeworld and to create one’s own identity, is total liberation, since ‘[w]illing liberates: that is the true doctrine of will and freedom’ (Nietzsche 1969: 111). It liberates people from surrendering to the illusions of ideologies that control the construction of life-worlds and it helps them to accept human imperfections. People begin to take ownership over themselves through embedding their ‘biological existence within technological and social artefacts that survive that existence. [Their] imagination creates new worlds of religion, art, and reason that live after their creator’ (Morgenthau 1972: 146). However, Morgenthau did not endorse Nietzsche’s view of a pre-existing reality which considered the will to power and its achievement as the highest ethical value in itself. Rather, the will to power has to be implemented for the achievement of the common good, since ‘there is nothing more senseless for the human conscience than a morale which is indifferent to the dissolution of human society’ (Morgenthau 1937: 88; author’s translation). To claim this societal meaning-autopoiesis, Morgenthau agreed with his fellow émigré scholars like Paul Tillich, Eric Voegelin and particularly Arendt (Rösch 2014b), as for all of them it was fuelled by a reinvigoration of an ‘ethics of responsibility’ (Klusmeyer 2011: 86; Sigwart 2013: 408). To reinstall this form of ethics, Morgenthau actively engaged in the public sphere. Much has been written about Morgenthau’s political activism, particularly in relation to the Vietnam War (cf. Rafshoon 2001; Cozette 2008; Tjalve 2008; Zambernardi 2011). Hence, it suffices here to stress that Morgenthau’s engagement rested on an understanding of scholarship as a corrective of the political status quo. In this regard, he acted in a Socratian maieutic manner by discerning people’s political interests through discussions and by establishing fora in which the political could re-evolve. For Morgenthau, scholars had therefore to act as facilitators of the political, through which people can transcend the various constraints in modern societies in order to free them in their thought and action, and to help them create their life-worlds. However, as Morgenthau (1955: 446–7; also Sigwart 2013: 412–13) was well aware, convincing others of their capacities by challenging vested interests causes discomfort among people because their habitual ways of thinking are questioned. Morgenthau’s own life exemplifies the consequences critical scholarship can face, even in democratic societies. Best known is certainly the ‘Operation Morgenthau’, in which the Federal Bureau of Investigation (FBI) and the White House aimed to collect imputations against him (Cox 2007: 184; Cozette 2008: 17). However, despite being critical of American (foreign) policy-making, Morgenthau remained an ardent supporter of American civic culture. Even at times when the ideological penetration of socio-political life seemed irrevocable, he did not question its assimilative capacity (Behr and Rösch 2013) but aimed to reaffirm it. Morgenthau’s criticism was, therefore, not a criticism of substance, but a criticism voiced in fear that the USA would lose its liberal culture and threaten its democratic system: a loss that Morgenthau had already experienced in the downfall of the Weimar Republic (for a general discussion, see Greenberg 2015).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 348

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans j. morgenthau

349

Peace and the Possibility of a World State Embracing one’s amor fati and realising the human ability to construct socio-political life-worlds autopoieticly eventually nurtured Morgenthau’s political agenda. For Morgenthau, the nation-state was an outdated model of human sociation and adhering to it only fortifies a belligerent outlook on the world. In contrast, he strived for the establishment of a peaceful world state. This brought him into opposition with many of his American colleagues, as Morgenthau aspired to a paradigm change in international politics, wanting to abolish inter-national relations altogether. Certainly, Morgenthau’s vision of a world state does not live up to the standards of more elaborated cosmopolitan visions, but realist contributions still have the potential to add to current cosmopolitan discourses, helping ‘defenders of the global state . . . to stay sober’ (Scheuerman 2011: 150). While delivering the first Council on Religion and International Affairs (CRIA) lecture on morality and foreign affairs, Morgenthau (1979: 42) insisted that ‘we are living in a dream world’. Humans still hold on to an obsolescent form of sociation – the nation-state – although the world has changed dramatically since the end of the Second World War. Contrary to what we find in current scholarship (cf. Mirkowski 2011), nation-states were, for Morgenthau (1979: 34), ‘no longer viable economic, political, or military units’, having lost the ability to administrate their sovereignty effectively. Claiming that the nation-state is economically outdated can be explained by contextualising Morgenthau’s CRIA lecture from 1979, as he gave this lecture in the aftermath of the second oil crisis. Decreased oil production in the wake of the Iranian Revolution irretrievably destroyed the myth of a consistent economic rise in which numerous states had lived under the Bretton Woods system since the late 1940s. States were no longer able to yield enough economic power to control all the interrelationships of an increasingly globalised economy. Morgenthau was also critical of the nation-state politically. These ‘blind and potent monster[s]’ (Morgenthau 1962: 61) have an interest in securing their existence through an increase in the possibility of international conflict in which its citizens can freely follow their drives because, nationally, various ideologies have in their egalitarianism deprived them of their ability to act and thereby establish an identity. Finally, in military terms, nation-states can no longer guarantee their territorial integrity and the security of their citizens. Indeed, the development of nuclear weapons has made the existence of borders obsolete because an aggressor no longer has to face its own considerable losses in order to overcome them. A border is, therefore, in Morgenthau’s (1966a: 9; 1970b: 61–2) sense, reduced to an artificial line on a map, and the traditional concept of sovereignty that yielded exclusive rights to nation-states on the international level is rendered obsolete (for more, see van Munster and Sylvest 2016). To transcend the shortcomings of the nation-state, Morgenthau argued for the creation of a world state, as expounded in detail by William Scheuerman (2011). However, to be able to create a world state, a world community has to be established first. If citizens are not willing to give their loyalty to a world state and would rather leave it with their nation-state, no attempt at establishing institutions for a world state can be successful (Speer 1968: 215; Fromkin 1993: 84). Furthermore, in the aftermath of the recently ended Second World War, Morgenthau expressed doubt that

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 349

23/10/18 12:45 PM

350

felix rösch

the principle of national sovereignty could be circumvented in the foreseeable future because people would continue to imagine space as being monopolised by the state. Morgenthau (1948: 344) came across this impenetrability of the state in the writings of Hans Kelsen (see Jütersonke 2010) and used it to stress that, under the current system, only one organisation can claim sovereignty within a given territory. To transcend national sovereignty, a world community has first to be established through traditional forms of diplomacy. By negotiating on equal terms, Morgenthau hoped to establish such a community through which a compromise could be established, based on common understanding, trust and loyalty among people. Although Morgenthau was initially sceptical of the ability of international organisations, like the United Nations and the forerunners of the European Union, to provide a forum for such diplomatic encounters, he became more optimistic during the 1960s due to the achievements of the late Secretary-General of the UN, Dag Hammarskjöld (Morgenthau 1970a), and in view of a reconsideration of David Mitrany’s functionalist approach (Ashworth 2014: 221–5). Morgenthau (1962: 75–6) had concluded that, as much as a common agreement to shift loyalties to a world state has to be achieved by creating a world community, international forums also have to be established; through these forums, such compromises can be facilitated because, through daily contact, they allow countries to recognise commonalities, while being sensitive enough to accept those conditions and experiences which separate each culture.

Conclusion This chapter has investigated Morgenthau’s understanding of human nature and its relation to the establishment of peace globally. It has been pointed out that sustainable peace was, for Morgenthau, unattainable as long as the Westphalian system of nationstates dominated international relations. For this reason, normatively, Morgenthau, like other realist scholars (Scheuerman 2011), aspired to a world state, as it was only in a global political community that he could imagine lasting peace and security being established. Although Morgenthau was aware that the establishment of a world state would require dramatic socio-political and cultural changes, as well as changes to human mindsets, he did not consider it altogether unattainable. This positive outlook rested on Morgenthau’s understanding of human nature. This connection might come as a surprise, given that human nature was, for Morgenthau, dominated by tragedy. Still, for Morgenthau, it is because of human tragedy that humans can eventually establish a world state. To provide evidence for this verdict, this chapter has discussed one particular aspect of human tragedy that so far has received limited academic interest: solitariness. For Morgenthau, perfection was out of reach for humans, as it is in their nature to live together in communities. This prevents them from achieving perfection, as they can never be alone, but it also helps them to subdue their quest for perfection, as they can pursue the drive to prove oneself. Pursuing this drive in human interactions, however, puts people in a position to realise that their life-worlds are not given, but rather socially constructed through their thoughts, actions and relations. This stresses a neglected element of Morgenthau’s thought which, however, is central to understanding his optimistic worldview. Drawing upon Nietzsche, autopoiesis, for

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 350

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans j. morgenthau

351

Morgenthau, implied that humans have the ability to understand that reality has no pre-given meaning. Rather, meaning is created in a wilful, collective process. This insistence on autopoiesis freed Morgenthau to think beyond the nation-state, and encouraging others to go through this potentially cruel thought process was the central concern for his engagement in the public realm.

Notes 1. For a general discussion on criticising IR as Eurocentric, see Kuru (2016); also Jørgensen et al. (2017). 2. Notable exceptions are the works of Brent Steele (2007) and Daniel Levine (2012). 3. Leigh Jenco (2007: 752–3) has identified a similar understanding of scholarship and intellectuality in general for a Chinese context. She argues that ‘the process of attaining . . . wisdom takes a lifetime of practice and study. Its borders are made permeable not by means of prior intellectual or ethnic background, but by means of . . . very hard work.’

Bibliography Ashworth, Lucian M. (2014), A History of International Thought: From the Origins of the Modern State to Academic International Relations, London: Routledge. Behr, Hartmut and Amelia Heath (2009), ‘Misreading in IR theory and ideology critique: Morgenthau, Waltz, and neo-realism’, Review of International Studies, vol. 35, no. 2, pp. 327–49. Behr, Hartmut and Felix Rösch (2013), ‘The ethics of anti-hubris in the political philosophy of international relations: Hans J. Morgenthau’, in Jodok Troy (ed.), Religion and the Realist Tradition: From Political Theology to International Relations Theory and Back, London: Routledge, pp. 111–28. Behr, Hartmut and Xander Kirke (2014), ‘The tale of a “realism” in international relations: E-International Relations’, available at (last accessed 22 February 2015). Behr, Hartmut and Michael C. Williams (2016), ‘Interlocuting classical realism and critical theory: Negotiating “divides” in international relations theory’, Journal of International Political Theory, doi: 10.1177/1755088216671735. Chou, Mark (2011), ‘Morgenthau, the tragic: On tragedy and the transition from scientific man to politics among nations’, Telos, vol. 157, pp. 109–28. Cox, Michael (2007), ‘Hans J. Morgenthau, realism, and the rise and fall of the Cold War’, in Michael C. Williams (ed.), Realism Reconsidered: The Legacy of Hans Morgenthau in International Relations, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 166–94. Cozette, Murielle (2008), ‘Reclaiming the critical dimension of realism: Hans J. Morgenthau and the ethics of scholarship’, Review of International Studies, vol. 34, no. 1, pp. 5–27. Frei, Christoph (2001), Hans J. Morgenthau: An Intellectual Biography, Baton Rouge: Louisiana State University Press. Fromkin, David (1993), ‘Remembering Hans Morgenthau’, World Policy Journal, vol. 10, no. 3, pp. 81–8. Giddens, Anthony (1984), The Constitution of Reality: Outline of the Theory of Structuration, Cambridge: Polity Press. Gismondi, Mark (2004), ‘Tragedy, realism, and postmodernity: Kulturpessimismus in the theories of Max Weber, E. H. Carr, Hans J. Morgenthau, and Henry Kissinger’, Diplomacy and Statecraft, vol. 15, no. 3, pp. 435–64.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 351

23/10/18 12:45 PM

352

felix rösch

Greenberg, Udi (2015), The Weimar Century: German Emigres and the Ideological Foundations of the Cold War, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Jenco, Leigh K. (2007), ‘“What does Heaven ever say?” A methods-centered approach to crosscultural engagement’, American Political Science Review, vol. 101, no. 4, pp. 741–55. Jørgensen, Knud Erik, Audrey Alejandro, Alex Reichwein, Felix Rösch and Helen Turton (2017), Trends in European International Relations Theory: Reappraising European IR Theoretical Traditions, London: Palgrave Macmillan. Jütersonke, Oliver (2010), Morgenthau, Law and Realism, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Klusmeyer, Douglas (2009), ‘Beyond tragedy: Hannah Arendt and Hans Morgenthau on responsibility, evil and political ethics’, International Studies Review, vol. 11, no. 2, pp. 332–51. Klusmeyer, Douglas (2011), ‘The American republic, executive power and the national security state: Hannah Arendt’s and Hans Morgenthau’s critiques of the Vietnam War’, Journal of International Political Theory, vol. 7, no. 1, pp. 63–94. Kostagiannis, Konstantinos (2014), ‘Hans Morgenthau and the tragedy of the nation-state’, International History Review, vol. 36, no. 3, pp. 513–29. Kuru, Deniz (2016), ‘Historicising Eurocentrism and anti-Eurocentrism in IR: A revisionist account of disciplinary self-reflexivity’, Review of International Studies, vol. 42, no. 2, pp. 351–76. Lebow, Richard Ned (2003), The Tragic Vision of Politics: Ethics, Interests, and Orders, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Lebow, Richard Ned and Toni Erskine (eds) (2012), Tragedy and International Relations, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Levine, Daniel J. (2012), Recovering International Relations: The Promise of Sustainable Critique, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Levine, Daniel J. (2013), ‘Why Hans Morgenthau was not a critical theorist (and why contemporary IR realists should care)’, International Relations, vol. 27, no. 1, pp. 95–118. Lukács, Georg (1963), The Theory of the Novel: A Historic–Philosophical Essay on the Forms of Great Epic Literature, London: Merlin. Mirkowski, Philip (2011), ‘Realism and neoliberalism: From reactionary modernism to postwar conservatism’, in Nicolas Guilhot (ed.), The Invention of International Relations Theory: Realism, the Rockefeller Foundation, and the 1954 Conference on Theory, New York: Columbia University Press, pp. 210–38. Mollov, M. Benjamin (2002), Power and Transcendence: Hans J. Morgenthau and the Jewish Experience, Lanham, MD: Lexington. Molloy, Seán (2010), ‘From The Twenty Years’ Crisis to Theory of International Politics: A rhizomatic reading of realism’, Journal of International Relations and Development, vol. 13, no. 4, pp. 378–404. Morgenthau, Hans J. (n.d.), ‘The Significance of Being Alone’, Leo Baeck Institute New York, Hans Morgenthau Collection, Series III, Box 4, Folder 6. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1929), Die internationale Rechtspflege, ihr Wesen und ihre Grenzen, Leipzig: Universitätsverlag von Robert Noske. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1930), ‘Über die Herkunft des Politischen aus dem Wesen des Menschen’, Container 151, Manuscript Division, Washington, DC: Library of Congress. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1933), La Notion du ‘politique’ et la théorie des différends internationaux, Paris: Librairie du Recueil Sirey. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1934), ‘Über den Sinn der Wissenschaft in dieser Zeit und über die Bestimmung des Menschen’, Container 151, Manuscript Division, Washington, DC: Library of Congress. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1937), ‘Kann in unserer Zeit eine objektive Moralordnung aufgestellt werden? Wenn ja, worauf kann sie gegründet werden? Kennwort: Metaphysik’, Container 112, Manuscript Division, Washington, DC: Library of Congress.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 352

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hans j. morgenthau

353

Morgenthau, Hans J. (1945), ‘The evil of politics and the ethics of evil’, Ethics, vol. 56, no. 1, pp. 1–18. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1947), Scientific Man vs. Power Politics, London: Latimer House. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1948), ‘The problem of sovereignty reconsidered’, Columbia Law Review, vol. 48, no. 3, pp. 341–65. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1955), ‘Reflections on the state of political science’, Review of Politics, vol. 17, no. 4, pp. 431–60. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1960), ‘The social crisis in America: Hedonism of status quo’, Chicago Review, vol. 14, no. 2, pp. 69–88. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1962), Politics in the Twentieth Century. Volume I: The Decline of Democratic Politics, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1963), ‘On trying to be just’, Commentary, May, pp. 420–3. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1966a), ‘Introduction’, in David Mitrany, A Working Peace System, Chicago: Quadrangle, pp. 7–11. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1966b), ‘Letter to the editors of the New York Times, 16th August’, Container 43, Manuscript Division, Washington, DC: Library of Congress. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1968), ‘But are they allowed to do that?’, Christian Science Monitor, 19 July, p. 9. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1970a), Truth and Power: Essays of a Decade, 1960–1970, London: Pall Mall. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1970b), ‘Der Friede im nuklearen Zeitalter’, in Oskar Schatz (ed.), Der Friede im nuklearen Zeitalter: Eine Kontroverse zwischen Realisten und Utopisten. 4: Salzburger Humanismusgespräch, Munich: Manz, pp. 34–62. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1972), Science: Servant or Master?, New York: New American Library. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1979), Human Rights and Foreign Policy, New York: Council on Religion and International Affairs. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1984), ‘Fragment of an intellectual autobiography: 1904–1932’, in Kenneth W. Thompson and Robert J. Myers (eds), Truth and Tragedy. A Tribute to Hans J. Morgenthau, New Brunswick: Transaction, pp. 1–17. Morgenthau, Hans J. (2004), Political Theory and International Affairs: Hans J. Morgenthau on Aristotle’s The Politics, ed. by Anthony F. Lang, Jr, Westport: Praeger. Morgenthau, Hans J. (2012), The Concept of the Political, ed. by Hartmut Behr and Felix Rösch, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Munster, Rens van and Caspar Sylvest (2016), Nuclear Realism: Global Political Thought During the Thermonuclear Revolution, London: Routledge. Neacsu, Mihaela (2010), Hans J. Morgenthau’s Theory of International Relations: Disenchantment and Re-enchantment, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1968), The Will to Power, New York: Vintage. Nietzsche, Friedrich (1969), Thus Spoke Zarathustra: A Book for Everyone and No One, London: Penguin. Nietzsche, Friedrich (2003), The Gay Science: With a Prelude in German Rhymes and an Appendix of Songs, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Paipais, Vassilios (2013), ‘Necessary fiction: Realism’s tragic theology’, International Politics, vol. 50, no. 6, pp. 846–62. Rafshoon, Ellen Glaser (2001), ‘A realist’s moral opposition to war: Hans J. Morgenthau and Vietnam’, Peace & Change, vol. 26, no. 1, pp. 55–77. Rengger, Nicholas (2013), ‘On theology and international relations: World politics beyond the empty sky’, International Relations, vol. 27, no. 2, pp. 141–57. Rösch, Felix (2013), ‘Realism as social criticism: The thinking partnership of Hannah Arendt and Hans Morgenthau’, International Politics, vol. 50, no. 6, pp. 815–29. Rösch, Felix (2014a), ‘Best friends forever? Classical realism and critical theory. E -International Relations’, available at (last accessed 24 February 2015).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 353

23/10/18 12:45 PM

354

felix rösch

Rösch, Felix (ed.) (2014b), Émigré Scholars and the Genesis of International Relations: A European Discipline in America?, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Rösch, Felix (2015), Power, Knowledge, and Dissent in Morgenthau’s Worldview, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Rösch, Felix (2016a), ‘Unlearning modernity: A realist method for critical international relations?’, Journal of International Political Theory, doi: 10.1177/1755088216671535. Rösch, Felix (2016b), ‘Crisis, values, and the purpose of science: Hans Morgenthau in Europe’, Ethics & International Affairs, vol. 30, no. 1, pp. 23–31. Scheuerman, William E. (2008), ‘Realism and the left: The case of Hans J. Morgenthau’, Review of International Studies, vol. 34, no. 1, pp. 29–51. Scheuerman, William E. (2009a), Hans Morgenthau: Realism and Beyond, Cambridge: Polity Press. Scheuerman, William E. (2009b), ‘A theoretical missed opportunity? Hans J. Morgenthau as a critical realist’, in Duncan Bell (ed.), Political Thought and International Relations: Variations on a Realist Theme, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 41–62. Scheuerman, William E. (2011), The Realist Case for a Global Reform, Cambridge: Polity Press. Schuett, Robert (2007), ‘Freudian roots of political realism: The importance of Sigmund Freud to Hans J. Morgenthau’s Theory of International Power Politics’, History of the Human Sciences, vol. 20, no. 4, pp. 53–78. Schuett, Robert (2010), Political Realism, Freud, and Human Nature in International Relations: The Resurrection of the Realist Man, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Sigwart, Hans-Jörg (2013), ‘The logic of legitimacy: Ethics in political realism’, Review of Politics, vol. 75, no. 3, pp. 407–32. Solomon, Ty (2012), ‘Human nature and the limits of the self: Hans Morgenthau on love and power’, International Studies Review, vol. 14, no. 2, pp. 201–24. Speer, James P., II (1968), ‘Hans Morgenthau and the world state’, World Politics, vol. 20, no. 2, pp. 207–27. Steele, Brent J. (2007), ‘Eavesdropping on honored ghosts’: From classical to reflexive realism’, Journal of International Relations and Development, vol. 10, no. 3, pp. 272–300. Stullerova, Kamila (2016), ‘Embracing ontological doubt: The role of “reality” in political realism’, Journal of International Political Theory, doi: 10.1177/1755088216673079. Thrift, Nigel (2000), ‘It’s the little things’, in David Atkinson and Klaus Dodds (eds), Geopolitical Traditions: A Century of Geopolitical Thought, London: Routledge, pp. 380–7. Tjalve, Vibeke Schou (2008), Realist Strategies of Republican Peace: Niebuhr, Morgenthau, and the Politics of Patriotic Dissent, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Troy, Jodok (ed.) (2013), Religion and the Realist Tradition: From Political Theology to International Relations Theory and Back, London: Routledge. Troy, Jodok (2015), ‘Desire for power or the power of desire? Mimetic theory and the heart of twentieth-century realism’, Journal of International Political Theory, vol. 11, no. 1, pp. 26–41. Young-Bruehl, Elisabeth (1982), Hannah Arendt. For Love of the World, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Zambernardi, Lorenzo (2011), ‘The impotence of power: Morgenthau’s critique of American intervention in Vietnam’, Review of International Studies, vol. 37, no. 3, pp. 1335–56.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 354

23/10/18 12:45 PM

28 Hannah Arendt Philosophical anthropology and politics Douglas B. Klusmeyer

Chapter Overview

I

n contrast to postwar realists such as Hans Morgenthau and George Kennan, Hannah Arendt rejects any substantive notion of a universal human nature. Dismissive of both psychoanalytical and behaviourist theories, she also challenged the validity of psychological approaches to the study of human nature. Nevertheless, she develops a rich philosophical anthropology that emerges from her critical analysis of totalitarianism and the pathologies of modernity that gave rise to it. In building on this foundation, she emphasises the liminal character of individual identity that becomes visible only through action and speech. At the same time, she underscores how our natural capacities and limits as a species shape the distinctive condition of human existence but do not determine the meaning of who we are as persons. In tracing the history of Western civilisation from the ancient Greeks to the present, she seeks to show how we have become alienated from the world in prioritising the experience of the self as the source of meaning. This chapter is divided into three main sections. It begins by considering Arendt’s analysis in The Origins of Totalitarianism of the Nazi quest to transform human nature, which it examines as part of her broader critique of modernity. The next section focuses on her explication of the different modes of human activity, which provides the cornerstone of her philosophical anthropology. The chapter then turns to explore some of the major criticisms of her approach regarding its theoretical abstractness, its Euro-centric biases and its assumptions about race and gender. *

*

*

In his book Man, the State and War (1959), Kenneth Waltz delineates three ‘images’ designating general approaches to the analysis of international politics. Adherents of the first ground their analysis on postulated conceptions of human nature either to explain the chronic resort to aggression and violence or to identify the potential for cooperation and peace in a future international order. Adherents of the second emphasise the importance of the internal character of individual states in their explanations. In discussing examples of such approaches, Waltz devotes most of his attention to modern American thinkers. He makes no reference to Hannah Arendt, though her book The Origins of Totalitarianism (1951) might have appeared highly pertinent to his examination of the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 355

23/10/18 12:45 PM

356

douglas b. klusmeyer

first and second images. By contrast, Mark Greif (2015: 90), in his recent study of the philosophical anthropology discourse in American thought from 1933 to 1973, singles out this work as that discourse’s ‘one true masterpiece’ and Arendt herself as the unrivalled ‘master’ of it. Waltz’s neglect of Arendt’s work is hardly exceptional. Until fairly recently, scholars of international relations have largely ignored her work.1 In his study, Greif emphasises not only the complexity and scope of the philosophical anthropology discourse, but also the importance of context for understanding why this discourse rose to dominance and then declined. Two world wars, a global depression, the eruption of new forms of authoritarianism, and the experience with the industrialised mass murder of the Holocaust not only had undermined traditional assumptions about rationality as a uniquely defining characteristic of the human animal, but also had exposed how fragile the human condition is. Seeking to explain the impact of this endless parade of catastrophes on her generation, Arendt (1985: vii–viii) observes: We no longer hope for an eventual restoration of the old world order with all its traditions, or for the reintegration of the masses of five continents who have been thrown into a chaos produced by the violence of wars and revolutions and the growing decay of all that has still been spared. Under the most diverse conditions and disparate circumstances, we watch the development of the same phenomena – homelessness on an unprecedented scale, rootlessness to an unprecedented degree. Never has our future been more unpredictable, never has depended so much on political forces that cannot be trusted to follow rules of common sense and selfinterest – forces that look like sheer insanity, if judged by the standards of other centuries. . . . On the level of historical insight and political thought there prevails an ill-defined, general agreement that the essential structure of all civilizations is at the breaking point. While Waltz largely ignores this context, it is central to understanding the acute sense of crisis that animated the work of the era’s best minds contemplating the capabilities, limitations and vulnerabilities of human beings (Greif 2015: 27–99; Katznelson 2003). Aside from her intellectual gifts, one major reason why Arendt became a ‘master’ of the discourse was that she was so well versed in contemporary German philosophical methods and debates that had arisen over the nature of human personhood and identity. As Greif (2015: 27, 52) points out, German émigrés not only brought this advantage, but also, fleeing the collapse of the Weimer Republic after the Nazi seizure of power, they had a much better appreciation than their American counterparts of the higher stakes involved in these debates. They began from a shared rejection of distinguishing human beings by positing some sort of metaphysical essence. In Arendt’s (1998: 10–11, 181) terms, they sought to answer the question of who we are, as opposed to the focus of the empirical sciences on the question of what we are. They stressed how the meanings of human identity are defined through history at both the individual and the collective levels. For thinkers such as Arendt, this approach entailed analysing the kinds of human capabilities and modes of activity through which people are able to create their identities and construct their worlds. While this approach privileges interpretation (or hermeneutical methods) over explanation, after the fashion of the natural sciences, its adherents, including Arendt, drew selectively on findings in biology and other sciences as it suited their purposes.2

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 356

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hannah arendt

357

Like Waltz, Arendt rejects both pessimistic and optimistic conceptions of human nature as dangerously reductive in any effort to explain political phenomena and moral conduct. In her view, for example, attributing violence to innate human aggressiveness obscures fundamental questions about the reasons that particular means of violence are chosen in specific contexts, and the relationship of these means to the ends they are intended to serve. She dismisses attempts to draw upon scientific research into animal behaviour to develop biological explanations because they start from the mistaken assumption that human beings are programmed like other animals and that standards of behaviour derived from such studies can be applied to human beings in distinguishing natural from unnatural behaviour. In her view, the idea of a common human nature presupposes a sameness that cannot account for the endless variety of cultures, social forms and political organisations in which people live. The most important common feature of existence that human beings share is not any ascribed collection of character traits but the worlds they inhabit and sustain together (Arendt 1972: 156–60; Arendt 2005: 93–4, 106–7; Arendt 1998: 193–4; Arendt 1983a: 12, 16–17). Pessimistic views of human nature, Arendt points out, have been much more predominant in the Western intellectual tradition than optimistic views. That predominance, she contends, reflects a deep, enduring bias among Western thinkers, and especially philosophers, against the highly contingent, chaotic character of politics. This bias has also often led to a strong preference for hierarchical order organised around command/obedience relationships at the expense of freedom (Arendt 2005: 130–8; Arendt 1998: 203, 222–7, 300; Arendt 1972: 134–41). As she observes of Thomas Hobbes’s own pessimistic assessment of human nature: It would be a grave injustice to Hobbes and his dignity as a philosopher to consider this picture of man as an attempt at psychological realism or philosophical truth. The fact is that Hobbes is interested in neither, but concerned exclusively with the political structure itself, and he depicts the feature of man according to the needs of the Leviathan. For argument’s and conviction’s sake, he presents his political outline as though he started from a realistic insight into man, a being that ‘desires power after power’, and as though he proceeded from this insight to a plan for a body politic best fitted for this power-thirsty animal. (Arendt 1985: 140–1) She finds optimistic postulates of human nature, such as those of Rousseau, no more credible in their application to politics than those of Hobbes. Most typically, she argues, those who conceive the political affairs in terms of fraternity, compassion or sympathy speak from the perspective of the pariah: that is, the marginalised, oppressed and persecuted. Such ideals of human solidarity based on a model of personal relationships arise from the ‘worldless’ experiences of those who have been excluded from the political realm. While the appeal of such intimate relationships is readily understandable, they fail to take into account the differences that distinguish individuals from one another, and so cannot serve as a suitable guide for politics (Arendt 1983a: 12–14; Arendt 1998: 52–3, 137). Law and institutional structures provide both the spatial separations and the linkages bridging them, but it is the human capacity for communication that enables individuals to enlarge their personal perspectives by exchanging views with one another and to enter into consensual agreements with others (Arendt 1994a: 186; Arendt 1983b: 84–6, 205; Arendt 2006: 178–81).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 357

23/10/18 12:45 PM

358

douglas b. klusmeyer

Human Nature, the Holocaust and Superfluous Peoples In reviewing examples of postwar scholars of international relations with a pessimistic view of human nature, Waltz discusses George Kennan and Hans Morgenthau as major cases in point. In his book American Diplomacy, Kennan suggests that the Holocaust raised no enduring issues worth pondering. As he observed: The cruelties, the untruths, the endless deriding of man’s nature practiced in the concentration camps: all these institutions of the police state, though they may have something of the lurid fascination that manifestations of danger and anarchy always exert in a well-regulated and composed society, sooner or later end up – like some stale and repetitious pornography – by boring everybody, including those who practice them. (Kennan 1952: 140) Morgenthau, despite his scorching criticisms of the failure of liberal political thinkers and social scientists to face up to the role of evil in politics in his book Scientific Man vs. Power Politics (1946) never analytically engaged (at least in print) the meaning of the Holocaust as an exemplar of evil, its connections to modernity, or its implications for thinking about the human condition (Klusmeyer 2005: 118–26; Klusmeyer 2009: 332–51). Consistent with Kennan and Morgenthau, Waltz apparently concludes that industrialised genocide has no significant bearing on his themes concerning human nature or the modern character of the war and the state because he never comments on the Holocaust. By contrast, Arendt (1994b: 310) began from the standpoint that the totalitarian phenomenon, as exemplified in the Nazi concentration camp system, had ‘clearly exploded our categories of political thought and our standards of moral judgment’. The perpetrators had committed a crime against the human status of such magnitude that it exceeded the human capacity either to punish or to forgive (Arendt 1985: 459). In Arendt’s view, the concentration camps were designed not simply to degrade human nature, but also to transform it. They served as the laboratories in which the Nazis experimented with their techniques of total domination in seeking to reduce everyone to interchangeable cogs of a machine (Arendt 1985: 436–7, 457–9). She distinguished three stages in this transformation process. The first step entailed the killing of the ‘juridical person’ in the targeted classes of people through removing all legal protections, such as stripping them of basic rights (Arendt 1985: 447–51). The second step involved killing the ‘moral person’ by perverting any basis for distinguishing right from wrong. ‘When a man is faced with the alternative’, she explains, of betraying and thus murdering his friends or of sending his wife and children, for whom he is in every sense responsible, to their death; when even suicide would mean the immediate murder of his own family – how is he to decide? The alternative is no longer between good and evil, but between murder and murder. (Arendt 1985: 452) The third step focused on killing the ‘individuality’ of the inmates: that is, all unique attributes of personhood. More fundamentally, it entailed destroying their ‘spontaneity’: that is, the human capacity to initiate something new. ‘Nothing then remains’,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 358

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hannah arendt

359

Arendt (1985: 455) observes, ‘but ghastly marionettes with human faces, which all behave like the dog in Pavlov’s experiments, which all react with perfect reliability even when going to their own death, and which do nothing but react.’ In Arendt’s (1985: 438) view, the Nazi ambition for total domination put human nature itself at stake because this goal could be achieved only by eliminating plurality as a defining feature of the human condition. While underscoring the unprecedented character of the totalitarian phenomenon generally and the Holocaust in particular, Arendt argues that the elements that combined into these new radical forms long preceded the Nazi seizure of power. In her view, the mounting consequences of social atomisation and political disintegration that accompanied the European modernisation process had prepared the grounds from which totalitarian movements could arise and succeed. Industrial capitalism created a permanent subclass of surplus labour that reduced many workers to misery and haunted the imaginations of those who avoided falling into it. The modern nationstate model in which the nation became increasingly equated with the exclusionary identity of ethnicity eroded tolerance for cultural diversity and legal protections for ethnic minorities within states. This erosion was reflected not only in the spread of persecution, mass expulsions and population transfers between states, but also, after the First World War, in the creation of millions of stateless and refugee groups that were unwanted everywhere. ‘The Nazis and the Bolsheviks’, Arendt (1985: 459) concludes from this history, can be sure that their factories of annihilation which demonstrate the swiftest solution to the problem of overpopulation, of economically superfluous and socially rootless masses, are as much of an attraction as a warning. Totalitarian solutions may well survive the fall of totalitarian regimes in the form of strong temptations which will come up whenever it seems impossible to alleviate political, social, or economic misery in a manner worthy of men. In her view, the totalitarian ambition to render everyone superfluous is conceivable only where large classes of persons have already been reduced to this condition and where this kind of marginalisation has achieved widespread acceptance as an irremediable, if unfortunate, structural feature of modernity (Arendt 1985: 151–2, 267–90, 311, 316–18, 447). Arendt’s critique of modernity rests, in part, on a distinction drawn between man as a purely natural being and man with a social–cultural identity as a member of a political community. While this distinction is implicit in her account of the path to total domination in the concentration camp system, she makes it explicit in her critique of the 1789 French Declaration of Rights and her examination of the plight of refugee and stateless groups. Drawing a direct link between these different foci in her analysis, Arendt (1985: 300) observes: ‘the survivors of the extermination camps, the inmates of the concentration and internment camps, and even the comparatively happy stateless people could see . . . that the abstract nakedness of being nothing but human was their greatest danger’. The fatal error of the French Declaration, she contends, began with predicating the guarantee of universal, inalienable rights on the abstraction of individuals from any concrete context of relationships and specific qualities that define their identities as persons belonging to some place in the world. Only individuals able

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 359

23/10/18 12:45 PM

360

douglas b. klusmeyer

to express their tangible humanity in a manner recognisable by their fellow humans are clothed by such identities. In Arendt’s (1985: 299) view, people typically care for others not because they share some common natural characteristics of the species but because of who they are as actual persons and how they stand in relationship to them. ‘The conception of human rights, based upon the assumed existence of a human being as such,’ Arendt (1985: 299) writes as a former refugee, broke down at the very moment when those who professed to believe in it were for the first time confronted with people who had indeed lost all other qualities and specific relationships – except that they were still human. The world found nothing sacred in the abstract nakedness of being human. Belonging to a community is what gives individuals a spatial framework in which to act and speak in ways that will be seen and heard by others. Those who do not belong to a community are rendered merely superfluous. ‘Their plight’, Arendt (1985: 295–6) comments, ‘is not that they are not equal before the law, but that no law exists for them; not that they are oppressed but that nobody wants to oppress them.’ In effect, she concludes, such persons have been expelled from humanity, irrespective of whatever shared human essence one might attribute to them in any metaphysical or natural sense (Arendt 1994c: 408). In contrast to the authors of the French Declaration and the American Declaration of Independence, Arendt rejects the proposition that any rights derive from human nature, from a transcendent moral order inscribed in nature, or from a divine authority. Believing such postulates have lost their plausibility in the modern world, she emphasises how every legal and political order is grounded on convention: that is, is an expression of human agreement and artifice (Arendt 1985: 301; Arendt 2005: 93–4; Arendt 2006: 21). By nature, we are neither equal nor free, in Arendt’s view, but rather are decidedly unequal in our natural attributes as individuals while ruled by the imperatives of our own physical needs and drives. However, nature has endowed us with the capabilities to transcend these imperatives and to offset our natural differences through the creation of a political realm. The full exercise of these capabilities then depends on our doing so.

Modes of Human Activity and Alienation Arendt integrates her analysis of the sources and elements of totalitarianism into a broader diagnosis of the pathologies of modernity. She expands this critique of modernity in her next major work, The Human Condition, as part of her most comprehensive effort to develop the philosophical anthropology implicit in The Origins of Totalitarianism. In the latter, Arendt (1985: 478) discerns: What prepares men for totalitarian domination in the non-totalitarian world is the fact that loneliness, once a borderline experience, usually suffered in marginal social conditions like old age, has become an everyday experience of the ever growing masses in our century.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 360

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hannah arendt

361

The growth of this experience, she argues, is a product of the atomised character of modern society that isolates individuals from the connections with others essential to giving one a meaningful place in the world. It has accompanied the capitalist transformation of the economy that has elevated the individual’s role as labourer and consumer into the defining attribute of personal identity. In The Human Condition, Arendt (1998: 6, 248–57) seeks to trace historically how this experience of ‘world alienation’ developed from the era of ancient Greece, but also to show how radically human capabilities have been transvalued in the process. Her approach begins by positing a hierarchy of these capabilities, from action at the apex followed by work and labour. In her words, the book ‘deals only with the most elementary articulations of the human condition, with those activities that traditionally, as well as according to current opinion, are within the range of every human being’ (Arendt 1998: 6–7, 248–57). It focuses on labour, work and action as fundamental activities of the vita activa, as opposed to the vita contemplativa, which she contends has been privileged in the Western tradition at the expense of recognising the distinctive modes of the vita activa (Arendt 1998: 2, 12–17).3 Her conception of this hierarchy provides the normative basis through which she critically evaluates the pivotal developments in Western history and modernity. Through this explication, she seeks to recover and develop a distinctive conception of human agency, which she sees exemplified in political action. By Arendt’s schema, labour is the most basic mode of our being in the world. This activity, she observes, ‘corresponds to the biological process of the human body, whose spontaneous growth, metabolism, and eventual decay are bound to the vital necessities produced and fed into the life process by labor’ (Arendt 1998: 7). In other words, it is governed by the imperatives of satisfying our physical needs and appetites required for survival in the sense common to all animal species. Our labour then arises from an instinctive compulsion and most typically in solitary acts, such as digestion and giving birth. While our needs determine definite constraints of our existence and satisfying them can be dully repetitive, the experience of labour can also be a source of joy in affirming our sense of being alive. At the same time, Arendt (1998: 81–4, 106) emphasises the contempt expressed for labour in antiquity because of its slavish character in being mindlessly driven by bodily necessity. Emancipation from the domination of such natural processes is thus the prerequisite for the human experience of freedom. Arendt (1998: 79–81) seeks to distinguish labour sharply from work because too often the terms have come to be used interchangeably, which thereby obscures important differences in their fundamental character. In contrast to the former, work, she explains, ‘corresponds to the unnaturalness of human existence, which is not imbedded in, and whose mortality is not compensated by, the species’ ever-recurring life cycle’ (Arendt 1998: 7). The object of work is the production of the durable artefacts, such as dwellings, furniture, roads and bridges. This fabrication not only transforms the natural world humans inhabit, but also becomes a condition of human existence as an objective framework of human experience. The artefacts humans create with their tools give the results of their efforts a measure of permanence absent in the labouring process. All fabrication, she points out, has an instrumental character, which reduces both human activity and the materials of nature into a means to an end. In this mode of being usefulness and utility are the highest standards for judging

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 361

23/10/18 12:45 PM

362

douglas b. klusmeyer

any activity and the world itself. Work also has a violent dimension, in that it destroys the nature of objects in order to construct new ones (Arendt 1998: 139–40, 143–4, 147, 150–7, 173). In developing her conception of action, Arendt underscores its categorical difference from fabrication. ‘Action’, she explains, ‘is the only activity that goes on directly between men without the intermediary of things or matter’ (Arendt 1998: 7). Through the performance of actions, individuals reveal most fully the unique qualities of their own identities in endless varieties (Arendt 1998: 179–81). In expressing the distinctiveness of individual personhood, action, she writes, ‘corresponds to the human condition of plurality, to the fact that men, not Man, live on the earth and inhabit the world’ (Arendt 1998: 7). Action and speech are closely related. Speech provides the communicative field in which action occurs. Without the former, human deeds are rendered meaningless both to the doer and the observer because language is the medium through which human beings encode their worlds with meaning. Through action and speech, individuals disclose who they are. This disclosure enables mutual recognition. ‘Human plurality’, Arendt (1998: 175) observes, ‘has the twofold character of equality and distinction.’ Action and speech not only directly reflect this character, but also are predicated on it. ‘If men were not equal,’ she explains, ‘they could neither understand each other and those who came before them nor plan for the future and foresee the needs of those who will come after them’ (Arendt 1998: 175). If individuals were not unique, they would not require either speech or action to be comprehended because their needs and wants would be the same. The human animal, she suggests, is instinctively driven to display its unique qualities for the sheer satisfaction of doing so. Nature has equipped us with five senses through which to experience the world and through which we become real to those with whom we share it (Arendt 1978a: 19, 29–30; Arendt 1998: 206; Arendt 2005: 106–7). In contrast to fabrication, Arendt stresses that the meaning of an action is distinct from whatever motives or goals the agent performing it has. As in the theatre, the meaning of an action is expressed through the performance and how an audience interprets it. The goals and results of an action lie outside the activity itself. To judge the meaning of an action by instrumental criteria, by the achievement of an end or the expediency, ignores the revelatory character of the performance. It also obscures the fact that an agent’s goals are variable, changing in accordance with circumstances, and clash with the opposing goals of other agents (Arendt 2005: 193–4). ‘Motives and aims,’ she observes, ‘no matter how pure or how grandiose, are never unique; like psychological qualities, they are typical, characteristic of different types of persons’ (Arendt 1998: 206; Arendt 1978a: 35; Arendt 1997: 83). Moreover, whatever motive may prompt an agent to act, it is never the sole source inspiring it and remains distinct from the performance itself. In focusing on the performative aspects of action as a form of artistry, she incorporates aesthetic criteria into judging action at the expense of standards of morality and justice (Arendt 1998: 2007). Arendt is dismissive of psychology because it degrades appreciation for the wondrous qualities of human action, whose meaning becomes explained as the expression of some hidden dynamic inside people at the expense of how it actually appears in the world. More broadly, she sees the inner self of personhood to be formless and unknowable in any direct manner. Any intuitive sense of self is inchoate and ephemeral. Individuals are able to articulate their so-called inner lives in any fixed or stable

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 362

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hannah arendt

363

way only through cognitive processes that impose a distorting artificial order upon an endless flux of sensations and impulses. Individuals express their unique identities in any coherent form only through their words and deeds that render them visible in the world (Arendt 1998: 179–80). In choosing how one will appear to others, Arendt (1978a: 37) explains in The Life of the Mind, I am not merely reacting to whatever qualities may be given me; I am making an act of deliberate choice among the various potentialities of conduct with which the world has presented me. Out of such acts arises finally what we call character or personality, the conglomeration of a number of identifiable qualities gathered together into a comprehensible and reliably identifiable whole, and imprinted, as it were, on an unchangeable substratum of gifts and defects peculiar to our soul and body structure. In sum, the individual has no means of appearing as a tangible self apart from that identity projected externally, and it is through interaction with others that the reality of who we are as unique persons is confirmed (Arendt 1998: 179–80; Arendt 1978a: 31–7, 39–40). For Arendt, the significance and uniqueness of an action are best captured in the form of a narrative. Because they always have a clear beginning, actions are the subject matter of stories. The agent initiating the action is always the story’s hero but never its author. In contrast to the explanatory models of the social sciences, the narrative form both contextualises and gives textual substance to the account in a manner that can resonate most deeply with an audience because they can relate empathically through their imaginations to the plot and characters. In replicating the performance of the action, the narrative discloses ‘who’ the agent is. ‘Action reveals itself fully’, Arendt (1998: 192) observes, only to the storyteller, that is, to the backward glance of the historian, who indeed always knows better what it was all about than the participants. . . . What the storyteller narrates must necessarily be hidden from the actor himself, at least as long as he is in the act or caught in its consequences, because to him the meaningfulness of his actions is not in the story that follows. The storyteller has a decisive advantage over the agent in conveying the meaning of the action not simply by the benefit of hindsight, but also from the opportunity to consider it from multiple standpoints and in relationship to the actions of other agents. For Arendt, all three modes of human activity are ontologically rooted in natality as a condition of human existence. Labour and work are entailed in procreation, providing for young, preparing them for adulthood, and maintaining a durable world of things for them to enter. However, natality is most closely related to the human faculty for action understood as the capacity for spontaneity and initiation of something new. Giving birth always signifies beginning something. Procreation interrupts the established flow of human events with the continual introduction of newcomers into the world. Each of these newcomers arrives as a stranger and unique as an individual, whose actions and the responses to them are unforeseeable (Arendt 1998: 7–8, 178; Arendt 1993a: 61; Arendt 1978b: 109–10, 217, 247). It is, she observes, ‘the birth

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 363

23/10/18 12:45 PM

364

douglas b. klusmeyer

of new men and the new beginning, the action they are capable of by virtue of being born. Only the full experience of this capacity can bestow upon human affairs faith and hope’ (Arendt 1998: 247). In her view, action, whose initiation and consequences are always unpredictable and which always threatens to exceed any limits humans erect to contain it, is the essence of human freedom (Arendt 1998: 177–8; 1993b: 146, 151–6, 166–71). Fundamental to this concept of action and freedom is the capacity of individuals to bind themselves together through promises and agreements to act in concert on behalf of shared principles and goals (Arendt 1998: 243–7; Arendt 2006: 164–7; Arendt 1972: 143, 151, 179). From this basis, Arendt develops her critique of modern society. In The Human Condition, she seeks to show how the activities of the household have expanded exponentially beyond their original boundaries and have thereby undermined the preservation of any enduring public realm and the conditions of freedom. In the process, the hierarchy of labour, work and action has been inverted. The routinised character of the modern labouring process and the boundless appetite for consumption that the capitalist economy encourages have reduced us to the level of an animal laborans. Likewise, the instrumental mentality of the homo faber has pervaded politics. The conformist pressures of mass society have obscured the reality of human plurality itself. Arendt makes little effort to conceal the elitism that infuses this critique.

Arendt’s Philosophical Anthropology in Critical Perspective Greif (2015) argues that the American philosophical anthropology discourse was flawed from its inception by (among other things) its abstract generality. Its practitioners focused their analysis on ‘man’ as a homogenous, universal type that not only obscured the reality of human diversity, but also ignored the mediated, often fragmented and conflicted manner through which individuals and groups define their particular identities. As a result, they proved remarkably inattentive to issues of race and gender, which would come to the fore in the late 1950s and 1960s. In some respects, Greif’s critique merely echoes Arendt’s own criticisms of conventional approaches to the question of human nature, her insistence on the liminal character of the inner self, and her emphasis on plurality as a core feature of the human condition. However, while she dismisses any conception of ‘man’ as a singular being, she refers consistently to ‘men’ in her expositions, as if gender is irrelevant as a difference to be considered. While she devotes considerable attention to tracing the racism of racial ideologies and the role of race in shaping the dynamics of imperial rule, her analysis has been subject to withering criticism by later scholars for its own racist premises (see, for example, Norton 1995; Gines 2007). In his exploration of the sources and influence of her anti-primitivism, Jimmy Klausen (2010) has developed an incisive analysis of the tensions in Arendt’s twofold commitments between an inclusive, cosmopolitan universalism and an exclusivist cultural particularism. On the one hand, she conceives her typology of human capabilities in universal terms, affirms the common ancestral origin of humanity, and rejects any stage theory of human socio-cultural evolution. On the other hand, she assumes that these capabilities can be fully realised only after a certain level of civilisation or cultural cultivation has been achieved, in which human activity can be objectified in artefacts. She characterises those peoples who either have never reached this

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 364

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hannah arendt

365

level, such as African tribes in the era of European imperial rule, or have been cut off from their relationship to a civilised community, such as refugees, as natural, wordless beings and as lacking any distinctive human character comprehensible to civilised observers. In explaining the standpoint of the European colonists in Africa, she observes, for example, They treated the natives as raw material and lived on them as one might live on the fruits of wild trees. Lazy and unproductive, they agreed to vegetate on essentially the same level as the black tribes had vegetated for thousands of years. The great horror which had seized European men at their first confrontation with native life was stimulated by precisely this touch of inhumanity among human beings who apparently were as much a part of nature as wild animals. (Arendt 1985: 194) She provides no counterpoint to this perception by considering how the colonisers may have appeared in the eyes of the indigenous people who had been conquered by them or by examining their own patterns of life and culture. This same tension is reflected in her understanding of human freedom. As Hauke Brunkhorst (2000) has observed of Arendt’s aristocratic republicanism, she posits both a universal, existential conception built on her idea of natality and an exclusive conception of participatory political freedom. While the first assumes that all human beings are capable of action and spontaneity, the latter reserves participation for a self-selected elite interested in entering the political realm. In her view, this tension was bound to the fact that, throughout history, the overwhelming majority of people had never proven able to actualise their capacity for freedom, which was no less true in the modern world than it had been in antiquity. In concluding his examination of the American discourse on man, Greif argues that we should abandon such efforts to focus on more narrowly circumscribed, pragmatic matters. In reaching this conclusion, he seeks to show how a group of American novelists, such as Ralph Ellison, Saul Bellow and Thomas Pynchon, had used this aesthetic form to explore in much greater depth the issues of individual identity and human nature than earlier theorists had been able to do (Greif 2015: 255, 327–9). In drawing this sharp contrast, he seems unaware that Arendt (1983a: 22; see also Arendt 1983c: 105) had long before observed, ‘No philosophy, no analysis, no aphorism, be it ever so profound, can compare in intensity and richness of meaning with a properly narrated story.’ Greif also appears to have overlooked her emphasis in The Human Condition on the role of storytelling in endowing action with meaning and revealing individual identity. Her example then suggests that the opposition he perceives between theory and fiction is not nearly as irreconcilable as he supposes. Arendt develops a much broader critique than Greif concerning the dangers of bringing the abstract standards of theory to judge the political realm. She insists on the supreme importance of seeking to comprehend the meaning of events in one’s own time as we encounter them. For Arendt (1985: x), ‘comprehension . . . means the unpremeditated, attentive facing up to, and resisting of, reality – whatever it may be’. The Origins of Totalitarianism is devoted to this purpose. Arendt’s philosophical anthropology provides an essential normative foundation for both her critical and her prescriptive interpretations of politics. In evaluating the strengths and weaknesses of this foundation, any assessment will inevitably reflect – implicitly or explicitly – one’s own view of human nature. Her work offers an

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 365

23/10/18 12:45 PM

366

douglas b. klusmeyer

exemplar that Christopher Berry might have used to illustrate his own argument for the indispensability of this kind of viewpoint in the study of politics. ‘[I]t establishes presuppositionally’, Berry (1986: 133) writes, ‘the area, field, or conceptual space within which politics operates.’ Making these presuppositions explicit, he argues, clarifies the normative basis on which all critiques and prescriptions are ultimately grounded. That debates over human nature, as he points out, are inevitably contentious and open-ended is consistent with Arendt’s emphasis on the perspectival character of human understanding and, more broadly, the plurality of the human condition. All of her interpretations of that condition and the pathologies of modernity then must be approached contextually and provisionally as reflecting the limited standpoint and experiences of one observer seeking to share her perspective with others and to stimulate the thinking of those who engage with her works.

Notes 1. Two recent works have begun to redress this neglect: see Lang and Williams (2005); Owens (2007). 2. This is reflected in Arendt’s acknowledgement of her debt to one of the most influential members of this movement: Gehlen and his work, Der Mensch (Arendt 1998: 177, n.1). 3. Culminating in her final and unfinished work, The Life of the Mind, Arendt subsequently devotes considerable attention to the various dimensions of the vita contemplativa, most notably with respect to the nature of human thinking and judgement.

Bibliography Arendt, Hannah (1972), ‘On violence’, in Crises of the Republic, New York: Harcourt Brace, pp. 103–98. Arendt, Hannah (1978a), ‘Thinking’, in Life of the Mind, New York: Harcourt Brace, pp. 3–238. Arendt, Hannah (1978b), ‘Willing’, in Life of the Mind, New York: Harcourt Brace, pp. 3–239. Arendt, Hannah (1983a), ‘On humanity in dark times’, in Men in Dark Times, New York: Harcourt Brace, pp. 3–31. Arendt, Hannah (1983b), ‘Karl Jaspers: Citizen of the world?’, in Men in Dark Times, New York: Harcourt Brace, pp. 81–94. Arendt, Hannah (1983c), ‘Isak Dinesen’, in Men in Dark Times, New York: Harcourt Brace, pp. 95–109. Arendt, Hannah (1985) [1951], The Origins of Totalitarianism, New York: Harcourt. Arendt, Hannah (1993a), ‘The concept of history’, in Between Past and Present, New York: Penguin, pp. 41–90. Arendt, Hannah (1993b), ‘What is freedom?’, in Between Past and Future, New York: Penguin, pp. 143–71. Arendt, Hannah (1994a), ‘What is existential philosophy?’, in J. Kohn (ed.), Essays in Understanding, 1930–1954, New York: Schocken, pp. 163–87. Arendt, Hannah (1994b), ‘Understanding and politics’, in J. Kohn (ed.), Essays in Understanding, 1930–1954, New York: Schocken, pp. 307–27. Arendt, Hannah (1994c), ‘A reply to Eric Voegelin’, in J. Kohn (ed.), Essays in Understanding, 1930–1954, New York: Schocken, pp. 401–8. Arendt, Hannah (1997), Rahel Varnhagen: The Life of a Jewess, ed. by L. Weissberg, translated by R. Winston and C. Winston, Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press. Arendt, Hannah (1998), The Human Condition, Chicago: University of Chicago Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 366

23/10/18 12:45 PM

hannah arendt

367

Arendt, Hannah (2005), ‘Introduction into Politics’, in J. Kohn (ed.), The Promise of Politics, New York: Schocken, pp. 93–204. Arendt, Hannah (2006), On Revolution, New York: Penguin. Berry, Christopher J. (1986), Human Nature, Atlantic Highlands, NJ: Humanities Press International. Brunkhorst, Hauke (2000), ‘Equality and elitism in Arendt’, in D. Villa (ed.), The Cambridge Companion to Hannah Arendt, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 178–98. Gehlen, Arnold (1955), Der Mensch: Seine Natur und seine Stellung in der Welt, Bonn: Athenäum. Gines, Kathryn T. (2007), ‘Race thinking and racism in Hannah Arendt’s The Origins of Totalitarianism’, in R. H. King and D. Stone (eds), Hannah Arendt and the Use of History, New York: Berghahn, pp. 38–53. Greif, Mark (2015), The Age of the Crisis of Man: Thought and Fiction in America, 1933–1973, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Katznelson, Ira (2003), Desolation and Enlightenment: Political Knowledge After Total War, Totalitarianism, and the Holocaust, New York: Columbia University Press. Kennan, George (1952), American Diplomacy, 1900–1950, New York: Mentor. Klausen, Jimmy C. (2010), ‘Hannah Arendt’s antiprimitivism’, Political Theory, vol. 38, no. 3, pp. 394–423. Klusmeyer, Douglas B. (2005), ‘Hannah Arendt’s critical realism: Power, justice, and responsibility’, in A. F. Lang and J. Williams (eds), Hannah Arendt and International Relations, New York: Macmillan, pp. 113–78. Klusmeyer, Douglas B. (2009), ‘Beyond tragedy: Hannah Arendt and Hans Morgenthau on responsibility, evil and political ethics’, International Studies Review, vol. 11, no. 2, pp. 332–51. Lang, Anthony F. and John Williams (eds) (2005), Hannah Arendt and International Relations: Readings Across the Lines, New York: Macmillan. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1946), Scientific Man vs. Power Politics, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Norton, Anne (1995), ‘Heart of darkness: Africa and African Americans in the writings of Hannah Arendt’, in B. Honig (ed.), Feminist Interpretations of Hannah Arendt, University Park: Pennsylvania State University Press, pp. 247–61. Owens, Patricia (2007), Between War and Politics: International Relations and the Thought of Hannah Arendt, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Waltz, Kenneth N. (1959), Man, the State and War: A Theoretical Analysis, New York: Columbia University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 367

23/10/18 12:45 PM

29 John H. Herz Political realism in a fragile world Peter M. R. Stirk

Chapter Overview

J

ohn H. Herz (born Hans Hermann Herz) was a German–Jewish student of international law who was influenced by Hans Kelsen. As an emigrant in the USA, Herz contributed in the 1940s and 1950s to the development of International Relations and Realism, or more precisely to a distinctive form of Liberal Realism. He became well known for his exposition of the security dilemma and for his analysis of the trajectory of the modern territorial state from its origins to its decline in the atomic age. This chapter shows how Herz’s emphasis upon the contingency and fragility of the international order and the limitations of human rationality set him apart from what became the dominant form of (Neo-)Realism in the American academy. It argues for the importance of Herz’s ideas in interwar Europe for the development of his work and especially for his understanding of the state as both a legal and a sociological phenomenon. It also explains the difference between the polemical deployment of his concept of Realism and that of Carr and Morgenthau, and the importance of the security dilemma for this polemical deployment of his Realism. This chapter claims that Herz’s historically nuanced Realism is a welcome counterweight to those Realisms that write as if the study of international relations were the study of the recurrence of eternal verities. Herz was a relatively neglected classical Realist whose ideas have recently been revived. *

*

*

John H. Herz was one of that great wave of émigré scholars who fled from the rise of fascism and national socialism and sought refuge on the other side of the Atlantic. Already an exile but still in Europe, he sought to expose the true nature of national socialism, veiled behind its attempted reformulation of international law, in his Die Völkerrechtslehre des Nationalsozialismus, published under the pseudonym Eduard Bristler to protect his family, who were still in Germany (Herz 1938; see also Stirk 2008). In the same year the book was published, Herz embarked for America. In his words, this meant that eventually he would become an emigrant rather than an exile (Herz 1984: 142–3), though he also recalled that he remained a ‘wanderer between two worlds’ (Herz 1984: 9). It also meant a change of professional focus from international law to international relations and political science, a transition that was vital

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 368

23/10/18 12:45 PM

john h. herz

369

for his career but one that too readily distracts attention from important continuities in his thought. Indeed, Herz himself would later express some surprise at how much he still subscribed to his earlier views as a legal scholar as he looked back on the work of his mentor and doctoral supervisor, the Austrian–Jewish jurist Hans Kelsen; this was the man who had encouraged him to make the transition to ‘political science’ (Herz 1964: 118; Herz 1984: 105). Nevertheless, it was as a political scientist and especially as a scholar of international relations that Herz established his reputation in America. Although never acquiring the seminal status of Hans Morgenthau, Herz played a significant role in establishing international relations on the American academic agenda, especially in promoting a Realist self-understanding of the newly consolidating discipline and more specifically in emphasising the importance of the ‘security dilemma’ to the understanding of international relations. Realism and the security dilemma were intimately linked in Herz’s work, especially in his Political Realism and Political Idealism, published in 1951, though substantially written during the war years. The second, and much more successful, book that he published in America was International Politics in the Atomic Age (Herz 1959), a work whose impact was promoted by the success of a related article, ‘Rise and demise of the territorial state’ (Herz 1957; Herz 1984: 169). These reflections on the origins and future of the territorial state as the basic unit of international relations in the modern age, with their emphasis upon the significance of the impenetrable ‘hard shell’ of the territorial state, earned Herz the nickname ‘hard shell Herz’ (Herz 1984: 169). It was the intellectual world of prewar Europe, especially the debates between Hans Kelsen and his opponents, the personal experience of flight and exile – reflected in the very title of Herz’s autobiography, Vom Überleben (On Survival) (Herz 1984), and the atomic age of the Cold War that had shaped Herz’s key ideas in relation to his understanding of Realism. Herz, however, could now be assimilated by an increasingly self-confident Realism which had become the dominant force in international relations. Although he never abandoned Realism as a self-description, there was some tension between his understanding of Realism and the dominant form, or rather forms, of Realism. Herz was and remained convinced of the contingency and fragility of the international order and of the limitations of human rationality. That meant that he was suspicious of the ‘prevalent “scientific” preferences (or prejudices) in present American social science approaches’ (Herz 1981b: 185). Yet he responded to an attempt to align him with what his interpreter understood as a more critical, emancipatory, stream of thought with polite scepticism, confessing to feeling ‘a bit like Molière’s Monsieur Jourdain, who, to his astonishment, learns that he has spoken “prose” all his life without being aware of this achievement’ (Herz 1981b: 237). For some time, Herz was cited especially as the prophet of the security dilemma and as a founding father of Realism, whom one could mobilise in support of this or that version of Realism (for example, Mearsheimer 2001: 36). Few seemed to reread him or to appreciate the nuances and sophistication of his conception of Realism, yet with the revival of interest in classical Realism, Herz too has been rediscovered as a major contributor to our understanding of the Realist tradition (Puglierin 2008; Puglierin 2011; Stirk 2005; Stirk 2014). As with many other classical Realists, understanding Herz requires rediscovering prewar ideas, and setting aside the longstanding but distorting accounts of the origins of international relations in terms of the rejection of law and morality in favour of a

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 369

23/10/18 12:45 PM

370

peter m. r. stirk

commitment to understanding international relations purely in terms of the dictates of power channelled by the decisions of rational actors or the dictates of the international system (see Scheuerman 2011). Herz was never indifferent to moral claims (see, for example, Herz 1976: 124–5). Some moral disposition was, he thought, either ‘“innate” or early acquired’, for ‘most human beings – except for those whom we are accustomed to call, for this reason, “perverse” – seem to possess a basic feeling of pity or compassion’ (Herz 1951: 6). Yet he was an ethical relativist. When he formulated a stance that he designated ‘realist liberalism’ and specified broadly what he understood by liberalism, he prefaced this with the qualification that it was an ‘assumption, not further reducible logically, since it is based on an ultimate ethical standard’ (Herz 1951: 228). Much later in life, he resisted the implication that he had engaged in moral advocacy or the recommendation of ‘altruism’, insisting that he had only ‘pleaded for substituting enlightened, long-range interest for the immediate, parochial one’ (Herz 1981b: 238). He recalled, in the context of his abiding concern with the ‘political–ethical problem’, the influence of Max Weber’s distinction between the ethics of conviction and the ethics of responsibility, later showing a clear preference for the latter. Again, it was Weber’s Science as a Vocation that he described as being ‘fundamental for my attitude as a scientist’ (Herz 1984: 80). Herz’s ethical reflections were bound up with his attitude to law, for he found an answer to the confusion of competing ethical standards and justifications of the state that bedevilled the Weimar Republic in the legal theory of Hans Kelsen (Herz: 1984: 96) Although Kelsen himself adopted a clear ethical–political stance in the Weimar Republic, his legal theory was based upon a strict positivism. His legal theory also ushered in an approach to the concept of the state as a purely legal phenomenon, in the analysis of which both ethical and sociological considerations were allowed no part. This entailed a rejection of one of the most prominent fin-de-siècle theories of the state: Georg Jellinek’s dual or two-sided theory of the state, according to which the state had to be construed from both a legal and a sociological perspective. The young Herz, as Kelsen’s doctoral student, duly asserted, ‘Every kind of two-sided-theory is to be rejected’ (Herz 1931: 70–1) Yet he repeatedly insisted, contra Kelsen, that the sociological perspective could not be excluded entirely. When one considers the effectiveness of law, he wrote, ‘one enters the field of sociology, especially that of mass psychology’ (Herz 1931: 68–9). At the end of the 1930s, he even conceded that the ‘assertion that international law rests on the will of the state . . . has a partial sociological justification’ (Herz 1939: 293). This insistence upon the sociological basis of legal orders, including the international legal order, led Herz to point repeatedly to their underlying fragility. That, indeed, had been evident in his choice of topic for his dissertation: that is, the question of the identity of the state in cases of revolution and territorial changes (Herz 1931; Herz 1935). Taking stock at the end of the 1930s, he argued that the inherent fragility of international law was evident in the paradox that the norms of international law depended on the existence of certain kinds of person – that is, states – but that these persons in turn were dependent for their existence upon ‘relations of power which prepare for their end at any moment and thereby pull the ground from under the rules applying to them’ (Herz 1939: 283). Yet, like Hans Morgenthau, he thought that the level of historical fidelity to treaties was quite remarkable. Moreover, to resort to a flat denial of international law was little more than subservience to the fetishism of the concept of sovereignty (Morgenthau 1967: 265; Herz 1939: 288, 291).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 370

23/10/18 12:45 PM

john h. herz

371

This nuanced grasp of the importance of law, yet also its precariousness and the fragility of the sociological base on which it rested, continued to mark his comments on law and the kind of Realism he espoused. He exposed the limitations of law, condemning Kelsen’s attempt to construe all manner of international phenomena in terms of law as a form of ‘rationalism’ that distorted the reality of law (Herz 1951: 102). Yet he saw international law as facilitating the alternative to ‘real “anarchy”’ (Herz 1959: 60). It appears, he acknowledged, weak or primitive compared with domestic legal orders but such a judgement, he added, misunderstands international law’s ‘very nature as a system of rules and attitudes not contrary to, but implementing, the sovereign independence of states’ (Herz 1959: 59). It is no accident, he insisted, citing Morgenthau, that aside from treaty law, international law developed as a system of rules for dealing with the delimitations of the jurisdiction of states. This mattered: ‘Sovereign units must know, and know in some detail, where their jurisdictions end and those of other units begin. This is the very basis of their independent coexistence’ (Herz 1959: 59). Even under the constraints of the Cold War, Herz saw a role for international law. He suggested that the ‘rules of international law, for instance, may still serve today or tomorrow, in a manner similar to their classical role . . . to delimit and stabilize the respective agreed-upon jurisdiction of the two blocs’. He further speculated on the existence of a set of rules covering the relations which the two blocs ‘were, willy-nilly, involved in’, though ‘this “common law” would apply to specific and limited fields only and, in the absence of common moral or political standards, would express contractual rather than customary, bilateral rather than multilateral relationships’ (Herz 1959: 293). He wrote more generally of ‘legal relevancy through diplomatic procedure’, which ‘is based on what, in analogy to the compromis d’arbitrage, may perhaps be called compromis diplomatique’ (Herz 1964: 112–13). Herz had never been dismissive of international law. He warned against seeing law where power stood unregulated, yet he saw law as facilitating the coexistence of power. International law was not a gapless system of norms but ‘only “islands”, patches of legal material’, which ‘emerge from time to time as results of a corresponding social intention’ (Herz 1964: 113). To dismiss the function of such law was not a mark of Realism, but precisely of a lack of Realism (Herz 1964: 109). When Herz turned to expounding his Realism and his liberal Realism, he did so with some polemical purpose. It is now increasingly recognised that the rhetorical function of the exposition of Realism has to be taken into account (Sylvest 2008: 444). This is true, above all, for E. H. Carr and for Hans Morgenthau, but it is relevant to Herz as well. All three distanced themselves from the Realism they expounded in various ways. Carr declared that it was impossible to be a ‘consistent and thoroughgoing realist’ (Carr 1939: 113). Morgenthau, besides adding more or less continuous qualifications to his dramatic assertions of realist principles, complained of being criticised for ‘ideas he has not only never expressed, but which he has explicitly and repeatedly refuted and which are repugnant to him’ (Morgenthau 1967: xii–xiii). As already noted, Herz qualified his Realism as ‘liberal Realism’ in his major exposition of the position, though not consistently so elsewhere. He also occasionally paused to distance himself from some especially obnoxious ‘pseudo-Realism’ (Herz: 1950: 163; Herz 1951: 75). Understanding the Realism of these men therefore entails understanding the polemical context they presented: it involves identifying the targets of their polemics.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 371

23/10/18 12:45 PM

372

peter m. r. stirk

Here, there is a significant difference between Carr and Morgenthau on the one hand and Herz on the other. For both Carr and Morgenthau, the League of Nations and Woodrow Wilson figured prominently as the target of their ‘realist’ critiques. Carr was consistently scathing of Wilson. The most that Morgenthau would concede was that Wilson had served the national interest in leading America into the First World War but then damned him because ‘Wilson was never able, even when the national interest of the United States was directly menaced, to conceive of the danger in other than moral terms’ (Morgenthau 1951: 25). Although the much-cited failure of the League of Nations and of the hopes of the interwar years constituted an element in Herz’s critique of idealism, it never played the pre-eminent role that it did for Carr and Morgenthau. Moreover, Herz’s judgement of Wilson’s motives for leading America into the First World War was strikingly different from Morgenthau’s: When Wilson led the United States into the war on the side of the Entente he did it in order to save Europe – and the world – from the dangers of German hegemony, although ostensibly it was done for a different principle, that of national self-determination and a future organized ‘peace through law’. (Herz 1951: 211) The most prominent targets of Herz’s realist critique were not Wilson and the League but the French Revolutionaries of 1792 and the Bolsheviks. They were far from being the only manifestation of idealism. Indeed, one of the striking features of Herz’s construction of idealistic political thought is the sheer range of phenomena incorporated within it, from theories of democracy to theories of aristocracy within the polity, and from the revolutionaries of France and Russia to the legal theories of his mentor Hans Kelsen and the doctrines of the French legal theorist Georges Scelle (Herz 1951: 44–102). It could serve as justification for some status quo or as a demand for revolutionary change, playing a ‘powerful role’ in history in the latter capacity (Herz 1951: 36–8). What united these diverse ideas was that they failed to recognise, glossed over or believed that they could ultimately escape from the security dilemma. Realism and its counterpart, idealism, were not primarily to be accounted for in terms of some contrast between the analysis of what is versus the exposition of what ought to be, but rather in terms of the extent to which the body of thought ‘takes into consideration the implications for political life’ of the security dilemma (Herz 1951: 18). Herz explained the nature of the security dilemma by setting out from man’s awareness of his mortality and, more specifically, his fear of death at the hands of his fellow men: This very realization that his own brother may play the role of Cain makes his fellow men appear to him as potential foes. Realization of this fact by others, in turn, makes him appear to them as their potential mortal enemy. Thus there arises a fundamental social constellation, a mutual suspicion and a mutual dilemma: the dilemma of ‘kill or perish’, of attacking first or running the risk of being destroyed. There is apparently no escape from this vicious circle. Whether man is ‘by nature’ peaceful and cooperative, or aggressive and domineering, is not the question. The condition that concerns us here is not an anthropological or biological, but a social one. (Herz 1951: 3)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 372

23/10/18 12:45 PM

john h. herz

373

Herz emphasised that he derived the dilemma from Hobbes’s account of mutual fear and not from the presumption of a power drive in the manner of Morgenthau or the existence of evil as presumed by Reinhold Niebuhr, both of whom he described as ‘my American co-founders of political realism’ (Herz 1984: 160). His insistence that he was not reliant upon any specific assumption about human nature is problematic. Indeed, avoiding some assumption about human nature in theories of international relations is arguably impossible (Schuett 2010). Yet Herz was making an important point in insisting that he did not need to presume that domination or wickedness was built into human nature, and in this he implicitly aligned himself with Hobbes. Hobbes, too, denied that his own account of the security dilemma presumed that men are ‘wicked by nature’, which he said could not be conceded without ‘impiety’, adding that ‘though the wicked were fewer than the righteous, yet because we cannot distinguish them, there is a necessity of suspecting, anticipating, subjugating, self-defending, ever incident to the most honest and fairest conditioned’ (Hobbes 1978: 100). This presumes that some are wicked but not that such wickedness is a part of human nature. There are, however, two senses in which Herz’s Realism does make assumptions about human nature. Like Hobbes again, what drives Herz’s account of the security dilemma is fear. Fear is at the heart of Herzian man. It is no accident that he prefaced one of his darkest accounts of the international condition – the article ‘Power Politics and World Organization’, which appeared in December 1942 – with the words: ‘Power is the supreme manifestation of the fear that man has created for himself by his efforts to liberate himself. It is perhaps the most profound and obscure secret of history’ (Herz 1942: 1039). The second was that, alongside fear, he presumed the existence of some sentiment of compassion or pity. Quite whether this amounted to an instinct or was typical in human motivation is not entirely clear, but the lack of clarity is not decisive. Herz presumed that compassion or pity, crucially along with a feeling of guilt or bad conscience, when the security dilemma inhibited actions in accordance with the dictates of pity, was a powerful factor in human history and played a vital role in political idealism as Herz defined it (Herz 1951: 5–11). Realism was defined in terms of its acknowledgement of the consequences of the security dilemma. Yet Realism – unalloyed, as it were – readily turned into veneration of power and the status quo. At times, Herz suggested that such Realism forfeited the right to be called Realism, as noted above in reference to those who denied any function to international law. More often, he suggested that Realism needed some supplement, as in his own formulation of liberal Realism. Either formulation pointed to Herz’s various attempts to recall, evaluate or even advocate some mitigation of the bleaker conclusions of the fear-driven security dilemma. In the context of international relations, he argued that part of the difficulty lay in the relative neglect of the international realm in the history of political thought. That was, he suggested, itself a reflection of political idealism, as if the perfection of the condition of the state internally would, in and of itself, resolve the challenges of the security dilemma (Herz 1951: 65–6). Yet an understanding of the historical record was an essential precondition, Herz insisted, for any evaluation of the international system (Herz 1984: 120–3). Herz’s Realism was sensitive to the context of events and policies, often criticising superficial resort to historical analogy (see Herz 1975). Indeed, much of his work and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 373

23/10/18 12:45 PM

374

peter m. r. stirk

his type of Realism was the antithesis of those versions of Realism which write as if the study of international relations were the study of the recurrence of eternal verities. The formulation of Herz’s own understanding of the historical record was refined during his years in America and was expounded most fully in his International Politics in the Atomic Age, though it was evident in varying degrees in his writings of the 1940s and early 1950s. His approach to it was governed by the decision that the appropriate focus for theoretical analysis lay not in the ‘behavior patterns of agents’ but rather in the ‘structures’ and systems’ of international relations. He explained that by ‘structure’ he meant ‘the basic features which characterize the given units of international politics at or within a particular period’, while by ‘system’ he meant the formal or informal relationships between those units (Herz 1959: 7). His account began with a paradox: the fact that the ‘classical’ system of international relations had been described as a society, a community or even a family, while it had simultaneously been called an anarchic system of independent, sovereign states. Herz found the answer to this paradox in the qualities of the basic units that constituted the system: namely, in ‘the ultimate, and lowest, substratum where the unit confronts us, in, as it were, its physical, corporeal capacity: as an expanse of territory, encircled for its identification and defense by tangible, military expressions of statehood, like fortifications and fortresses’ (Herz 1959: 40). These states were protected from each other by their ‘hard shell’. States of sufficient size to maintain the ‘impermeability’ or ‘impenetrability’ of their ‘territoriality’ were consolidated, according to Herz, around the time of the Peace of Westphalia of 1648. Herz credited Leibniz with insight into this fundamental criterion of modern statehood. Seeking to break through the complex web of claims and counterclaims surrounding the early modern European state, Leibniz had defined sovereignty by demonstrating the limits of the authority of the two most eminent actors with supranational status: the Pope and the Holy Roman Emperor. Herz quoted Leibniz’s observations that ‘“Should His Holiness desire to make . . . [the papal princes] obey, he has merely to send out his “sbirros” [bailiffs], but in order to constrain . . . [the sovereign princes] he would need an army and canon”’, and that, should the Emperor want to enforce obedience of a sovereign prince ‘“what would begin as a court procedure in an imperial Tribunal, in execution would amount to a war”’ (Herz 1957: 479–80). Two other features of Herz’s account here stand out by virtue of their wider relevance for his thought. The first is the emphasis he placed on Leibniz’s argument that a criterion of sovereignty was the ability to maintain one’s own garrisons in a territory in time of peace whilst excluding the garrisons of any putative superior (Herz 1959: 57). The second is that each of these sovereign princes enforced his jurisdiction over his own subjects whilst repulsing any attempt by external powers to exert such jurisdiction (Herz 1959: 55). Herz’s territorial states were, then, jurisdictions and, as noted above, a primary function of international law was to delimit these jurisdictions. It was, Herz wrote, ‘one of Kelsen’s great merits to have emphasized this by incorporating a theory of “spheres of validity” into his system of international law’ (Herz 1964: 109). Sovereignty, then, had to be seen in connection with territoriality: ‘Legal “impenetrability” has to be seen in its connection with the actual territorial impermeability of the modern state’ (Herz 1959: 50). To use the language of Jellinek, the state had to be grasped as a legal and sociological phenomenon, with the meaning of the legal state being dependent

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 374

23/10/18 12:45 PM

john h. herz

375

on the meaning of the sociological state, and vice versa. This demonstrates the fact that Herz’s Realism not only was historically nuanced but also consisted in showing the interrelationship of the legal and the sociological, rather casting aside the former in favour of the latter. While international law facilitated the existence of a system of states, law was not the main mechanism that held together the system: that was, rather, the balance of power. Herz invoked the balance of power more widely as a general feature of the ‘Realist Liberalism’, seeking, in domestic as in international affairs, devices which would mitigate the evils brought about by the security dilemma rather than seeking solutions which would do away with the dilemma, or standing transfixed, as it were, by the dilemma. For Herz, the ancient Greeks provided ample illustration of the latter vice: ‘Clinging to the undiluted “power and security dilemma” . . . they were unable to break the vicious circle and to pursue any policy of mitigation and restraint’ (Herz 1951: 209). It is important here to note Herz’s reference to a ‘policy of mitigation’, for that was the key to the balance of power as he favoured it. A distinction had to be drawn, he insisted, between the mere existence of a ‘balance of power’ and a conscious ‘balance of power policy’ with a more regulated, even partly organised ‘balance of power system’ (Herz 1951: 206). The former could result mechanically from the clash and adjustment of competing powers but Herz took little interest in that, beyond noting that it could be found to operate even at the periphery of a ‘world empire’ like the Roman Empire. The latter presumed the existence of a conscious policy, including resort to war with the intent to maintain or restore the equilibrium. It involved, he wrote, ‘a peculiar combination of “individualistic” power politics and a kind of “general interest” policy’ (Herz 1951: 208). It had found expression in the eighteenth century in a set of agreements and settlements that was said to constitute the ‘public law of Europe’ and was even endowed with the name of the ‘family’ or ‘concert’ of Europe (Herz 1951: 208). Herz examined other features of this system, including the role of Great Britain as a balancer and extension of the activities of a balancer, now the USA, as the system acquired a global reach (Herz 1951: 210–11). Even earlier, he noted the relationship between Europe and the non-European world, taking up Carl Schmitt’s interpretation of ‘amity lines’ making possible peace or at least some restraint in Europe while the principle of ‘no peace beyond the line’ provided a vent for unrestrained violence in the non-European world. The important point for the general characterisation of Herz’s Realism, however, is that the balance of power, in so far as it served as an expression of Herz’s Realist Liberalism, was a matter of policy and was formulated in the language of society and a common interest, alongside the acknowledged existence of private interests. In arguing thus, Herz stands within a stream of thought that includes Arnold von Heeren’s idea of a ‘system’ of Europe (Heeren 1873), in which, to use the language of a more modern contrast, an ‘associative’ understanding of the balance of power can be set against a mechanical understanding of a balance of power (Little 1989). There is an interesting analogy between Heeren and Herz, for Heeren, who also extolled the virtues of the balance of power, had published the first edition of his book in his native Germany in 1809 at the height of Napoleonic hegemony. He wrote, that is, amidst the wreckage of the balance of power and system of Europe, not knowing that the system and balance would, in some sense, be restored, for some time at least. Herz’s account was also a nostalgic one. The threat to the system and the balance of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 375

23/10/18 12:45 PM

376

peter m. r. stirk

power was already evident, he argued, at the time of the First World War. The war and the strategy of economic blockade, on which both sides gambled, had demonstrated that the self-sufficient ‘fortress-state’ might be starved into submission, while the beginnings of aerial warfare had pointed to the possibility of bypassing the defences that constituted the hard shell of the territorial state (Herz 1959: 77, 99–100). In this context, Herz interpreted the system of collective security associated with the League of Nations as a modification of the traditional system of power politics rather than its opposite (Herz 1959: 76). The system of collective security was intended, like its predecessor, to guarantee the territorial integrity of its members. In the absence of an international police force, it presumed that its members would retain their armed forces and indeed that a minimum level of military strength was a prerequisite for membership. So far did Herz see this as essential that he presented the later indifference of the United Nations to the defensibility of new members as evidence of the ‘decline of genuine collective security in our time’ (Herz 1959: 78; Herz 1957: 485). The system also required a definition of aggression, which would trigger action by the other members (Herz 1951: 222). It is a commonplace that collective security failed in the interwar period and that amongst the reasons for its failure was the difficulty in discerning who was guilty of aggression. For Herz, however, it was quite clear in the crucial cases, Manchuria and Ethiopia, who the aggressor was. Moreover, Herz held that the objective prospects for collective security were quite good in the interwar period. At the time of their aggression, the states concerned could have been defeated quite readily. The fault lay not in want of capacity but in want of will, or rather a want of a ‘minimum degree of rationalization of the self-interest and action of the nations involved’ (Herz 1951: 234). The irony was that after the Second World War, which had taught men something at least of the threat of apparently more distant danger, conditions had changed, rendering strategies of collective security even less likely. The post-Second World War world was a very different place. Although Herz had titled his major study of the dramatic change – change that meant that the very ‘structure of international relations itself is different’ – International Politics in the Atomic Age, he made it clear, from the introduction onwards, that he was concerned with two processes. One was the development of atomic weapons. The other was bipolarity. The proximate simultaneity of the two made it easy, he noted, for both statesmen and students to conflate the impact of the two, but it was ‘a largely fortuitous simultaneity’ (Herz 1959: 111). Herz began his discussion of the ‘[i]mpact of bipolarity’ not with an evaluation of the alliance systems as such but with the idea that, in one sense, the ‘chief characteristic’ of the bipolar system lay in the extension of the hard shell that had once surrounded the territorial state (Herz 1959: 115). The consequence of that he elaborated using the North Atlantic Treaty Organization (NATO) to illustrate his point. The heart of NATO was not Article 5, setting out the alliance’s commitments, but Article 3, with its promise of mutual aid and cooperation. It was on this basis, he argued, that agreements on bases and the stationing of troops on the territory of member states were made. Beyond the framework of the North Atlantic Alliance, the Japanese–American Security Treaty of 1951 fulfilled the same function. The consequences were enormous. These agreements entailed ‘far-reaching restrictions on what traditionally had been within the most sacrosanct sphere of domestic jurisdiction’ (Herz 1959: 123). The presence of such substantial bodies of foreign

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 376

23/10/18 12:45 PM

john h. herz

377

troops made it ‘necessary to provide for complementary legal limitations of “sovereignty” by carving out, as it were, entire chunks of territorial jurisdiction in favor of the “occupying” state’ (Herz 1959: 123). Although the precise arrangements varied, and the variations were important, in some cases at least it seemed to Herz that one could write of garrisoned states sitting on the periphery of the hard shell of the bloc (Herz 1959: 131–2). There were, of course, many other features of the bipolar world. The inoperability of the collective security, given the manifest impossibility of mobilising overwhelming power against the aggressor, was one such change (Herz 1959: 147). The absence of a balancer was another (Herz 1959: 153). Yet another was the enhanced unpredictability of decision-making; an assessment that once again set Herz apart from the mainstream of American Realism, as embodied in Waltzian neo-Realism. The establishment of bases, however, albeit for the protection of the state concerned – that is, the establishment of garrisons along with the associated intrusion in the jurisdiction of the state – went to the heart of the basic units that constituted the structure of the international system in Herz’s account. Yet territorial bipolarity was still a form of territoriality. The hard shell in principle still existed, only now extended across half the globe. The impact of atomic weapons was more dramatic: ‘it means that the decisive change is from “distinctness” and “separateness” to “pervasion”, to the absolute permeability of each unit by each of the others’ (Herz 1959: 168). As had been his custom, and as befits his Realism, Herz qualified such dramatic statements. The international situation was characterised by the ‘coexistence of old and new (or several new) factors, a coexistence in theory and practice of conventional and new concepts’ (Herz 1957: 490). He concluded his International Politics in the Atomic Age with a chapter entitled ‘Universalism as an alternative’, in which he speculated on the possibility, albeit slight, that the atomic age might force upon mankind the recognition of a minimal universal interest in sheer survival (Herz 1959: 235). That was a theme which would recur as he focused upon broader trends of population growth, environmental degradation and the exhaustion of finite resources (Herz 1980: 14–17). The main focus of his argument in the 1940s and 1950s, however, had been the related formulation of a form of Realism and an account of the modern form of the basic unit of international relations: the state. The state had been the starting point of Herz’s reflections. He had come to believe that he had witnessed the end of the state: that was the message embodied in his title ‘Rise and Demise of the Territorial State’ (Herz 1957). He later reflected that the choice had been misleading: he had meant ‘decline’ rather than ‘demise’ (Herz 1984: 169). Moreover, ever ready to revise his judgements, a decade or so later, in the appropriately titled ‘The Territorial State Revisited’, he identified countertendencies to his earlier predictions, but still stated his belief that ‘the pessimistic conclusion that it is almost too late for the development of a system of “new territoriality” seems realistically to impose itself’ (Herz 1968: 33).

Conclusion As a theorist of international relations, Herz was, first and foremost, a theorist of the state. Yet he was a theorist who did not assume that the meaning of the state was fixed and unproblematic. That alone makes him unusual. He was a theorist for whom the state and the relationships states engaged in were themselves part of a fragile world.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 377

23/10/18 12:45 PM

378

peter m. r. stirk

Consistently, his Realism was one that was motivated by what he saw as the profound irrationality of the world in the very specific sense of the experience of the impossibility of reconciling the dictates of the security dilemma and the human sentiment of compassion.

Bibliography Carr, E. H. (1939), The Twenty Years’ Crisis, 1919–1939, London: Macmillan. Heeren, A. H. L. (1873), A Manual of the History of the Political System of Europe and its Colonies, London: Henry G. Bohn. Herz, John (1931), Die Identität des Staates, Düsseldorf: Oligschläger. Herz, John (1935), ‘Beiträge zum Problem der Identität des Staates’, Zeitschrift für öffentliches Recht, vol. 15, no. 2, pp. 241–68. Herz, John [Eduard Bristler] (1938), Die Völkerrechtslehre des Nationalsozialismus, Zürich: Europa. Herz, John (1939), ‘Einige Bemerkungen zur Grundlegung des Völkerrechts’, Internationale Zeitschrift für Theorie des Rechts, vol. 13, no. 2, pp. 275–300. Herz, John (1942), ‘Power politics and world organization’, The American Political Science Review, vol. 36, no. 6, pp. 1039–52. Herz, John (1950), ‘Idealist internationalism and the security dilemma’, World Politics, vol. 2, no. 2, pp. 157–80. Herz, John (1951), Political Realism and Political Idealism, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Herz, John (1957), ‘Rise and demise of the territorial state’, World Politics, vol. 9, no. 4, pp. 473–93. Herz, John (1959), International Politics in the Atomic Age, New York: Columbia University Press. Herz, John (1976) [1962], ‘International politics and the nuclear age’, in John H. Herz (ed.), The Nation-State and the Crisis of World Politics, New York: David McKay, pp. 124–47. Herz, John (1964), ‘The Pure Theory of Law revisited: Hans Kelsen’s doctrine of international law in the nuclear age’, in Salo Engel and Rudolf Métall (eds), Law, State and International Legal Order, Knoxville: University of Tennessee Press, pp. 107–18. Herz, John (1968), ‘The territorial state revisited’, Polity, vol. 1, no. 1, pp. 12–34. Herz, John (1975), ‘Détente and appeasement from a political scientist’s vantage-point’, in George Schwab and Henry Friedlander (eds), Détente in Historical Perspective, New York: Irvington, pp. 26–40. Herz, John (1980), ‘Weltbild und Bewusstwerdung’, Aus Politik und Zeitgeschichte, vol. 11, pp. 3–17. Herz, John (1981a), ‘Political realism revisited’, International Studies Quarterly, vol. 25, no. 2, pp. 182–97. Herz, John (1981b), ‘Comment’, International Studies Quarterly, vol. 25, no. 2, pp. 237–41. Herz, John (1984), Vom Überleben, Düsseldorf: Droste. Hobbes, Thomas (1978), Man and Citizen, New York: Humanities Press. Little, Richard (1989), ‘Deconstructing the balance of power’, Review of International Studies, vol. 15, no. 2, pp. 87–100. Mearsheimer, John (2001), The Tragedy of Great Power Politics, New York: Norton. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1951), In Defense of the National Interest, New York: Knopf. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1967), Politics Among Nations, 4th edn, New York: Knopf. Puglierin, Jana (ed.) (2008), ‘Special issue: A universalist in dark times. John H. Herz 1908–2005’, International Relations, vol. 22, no. 4, pp. 403–526.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 378

23/10/18 12:45 PM

john h. herz

379

Puglierin, Jana (2011), John H. Herz, Berlin: Duncker & Humblot. Scheuerman, William E. (2011), The Realist Case for Global Reform, Cambridge: Polity Press. Schuett, Robert (2010), Political Realism, Freud, and Human Nature in International Relations, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Stirk, Peter M. R. (2005), ‘John H. Herz: Realism and the fragility of the international order’, Review of International Studies, vol. 31, no. 2, pp. 285–306. Stirk, Peter M. R. (2008), ‘John H. Herz and the international law of the Third Reich’, International Relations, vol. 22, no. 4, pp. 427–40. Stirk, Peter M. R. (2014), ‘International law, émigrés, and the foundation of International Relations’, in Felix Rösch (ed.), Émigré Scholars and the Genesis of International Relations, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, pp. 61–80. Sylvest, Casper (2008), ‘John H. Herz and the resurrection of classical realism’, International Relations, vol. 22, no. 4, pp. 441–55.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 379

23/10/18 12:45 PM

30 Isaiah Berlin A political realist without fanaticism Joshua L. Cherniss

Chapter Overview

I

saiah Berlin was a liberal thinker at the heart of whose work was an attack on optimistic assumptions about progress and rationality, and ‘utopian’ political ideals and projects. His thought would thus appear to have strong affinities with the ‘political realism’ of earlier philosophers and historians, and the recent ‘realist’ trend in contemporary normative political theory. Despite these affinities, Berlin is seldom included in ‘canonical’ lists of either classic or contemporary ‘political realists’. Furthermore, Berlin’s own thought reveals what he called (writing of his hero, Alexander Herzen) a ‘curious combination of idealism and scepticism’ – and repeated criticisms of what he himself termed ‘realism’ (or ‘realism in politics’). This chapter discusses the ways in which Berlin might, and might not, be considered a political realist. It also suggests the respects in which his thought – with its characteristic attention to individual judgement and experience, and emphasis on a complex plurality of values – may contribute to a more truly realistic view of politics, which gives both morality and reality, ideals and doubts, their due. *

*

*

In charting the relationship of any individual thinker to a larger tradition or tendency of thought, we should be clear about the meaning and parameters of the tradition or tendency being discussed.1 Ideally, there will be a fairly precise, determinate position associated with the tradition or tendency; and the definition of that tendency or tradition in terms of that position will have been recognised by the thinker under discussion. Such is not the case here. One thing that can confidently be said about political realism is that it tends to emphasise conflict or contestation; it is appropriate that the meaning of ‘political realism’ is itself contested. Political realism also (often) emphasises attention to history – and hence, to variation; again, it is appropriate that the meanings attached to ‘political realism’ have varied – and contending definitions of ‘political realism’ have reflected particular historical conflicts. Two hallmarks of Isaiah Berlin’s approach to political thought were an emphasis on fundamental, significant, ineradicable conflicts of values, and an awareness of historical variability and complexity. Berlin was a philosopher turned historian of ideas

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 380

23/10/18 12:45 PM

isaiah berlin

381

and – at least in some works, such as his highly influential essay ‘Two Concepts of Liberty’ (1958) – a political theorist who combined the history of ideas, conceptual analysis and normative argument. Born to a Jewish family in Riga and a refugee from the Russian Revolution, whose extended family perished in the Holocaust, Berlin embraced his adoptive British homeland (while remaining conscious of his Jewishness and committed to a liberal, democratic Zionism). Committed, above all, to the protection of individuals against violence, oppression and pressures towards conformity, he became one of the leading exponents of liberal political theory of the twentieth century.2 He presented himself, and has been perceived and categorised, as a critic of ‘utopianism’, which he associated with the ideological fanaticism and bloodshed of his time (see, for example, Berlin 2013a: 1–20, 22–50), yet he did not identify himself as a ‘realist’. Indeed, he explicitly attacked what he called ‘political realism’. While he drew on, and expressed affinities with, some thinkers often identified with ‘realism’, he engaged in sharp polemics with other proponents of ‘realism’. Identifying Berlin as a ‘realist’ is therefore questionable, even tendentious. Given these problems, I begin my discussion by distinguishing between different meanings of ‘political realism’ with which Berlin might be identified; my characterisations will not be exhaustive or uncontroversial, but will hopefully clarify the terms of the discussion. I will then review Berlin’s own attitudes toward ‘realism’ as he understood it, and draw out the respects in which Berlin’s thought resembles some features of some of these different (and overlapping) ‘realist’ positions, and diverges from others. Explaining why Berlin did not consider himself a realist, and emphasising that putative ‘realism’ does not exhaust Berlin’s thought, I nevertheless will suggest ways in which Berlin may be viewed as contributing to a more realistic political vision.

Types of Realist Thought ‘Realism’ is a term employed, often promiscuously, in both colloquial speech and academic discourse. In both, it is frequently associated with the tradition of realpolitik or ‘reason of state’ (see Meinecke 1957; Bew 2015). Simplifying wildly, we may identify, at the heart of this tradition, four convictions. First, states in the international system are motivated primarily by a competitive quest for power – or for security from the predations of other states (which is understood to require the acquisition of power). Second, the rulers of states should take the interest or wellbeing of their state, understood as its relative power and security, as the primary objective of their policy. To this, a domestic analogue may be added: third, that states (or their rulers) will seek to secure their authority over the territories and subjects under their power, subordinating or eliminating any competitors; and fourth, they are right to do so. Politics and policy, on this view, are defined by the goal of securing and extending the power of the state; the state is the highest of values and most basic of political units, and thus has analytic and normative primacy in thinking about politics; (sometimes violent) competition is the basic mode, and power the central objective, of political action. Many theorists of ‘reason of state’ add, implicitly or explicitly, the normative judgement that the activity of politics is autonomous from, and superior to, other activities and facets of life.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 381

23/10/18 12:45 PM

382

joshua l. cherniss

When scholars write of the ‘realist’ tradition in political thought, they often posit a family of theories, outlooks and dispositions, which encompasses but goes beyond realpolitik. What one might label ‘classical realism’ as a tradition of political philosophy – a tradition embracing figures such as Thucydides, Tacitus, Augustine, Machiavelli, Hobbes, Weber, Schmitt and Niebuhr, among others – is often seen as emphasising several premises.3 First, such realism is often viewed as founded on assumptions about human nature – and takes such assumptions as the proper, even the necessary, basis for political theorising. While ‘realist’ thinkers in this sense do not deny the significance of historical change, they do posit certain constants of human nature, including competitiveness, vanity, fearfulness, aggression, selfishness and imperfect rationality. The second main component of ‘realist’ political thought concerns the nature of politics. As one might expect, this tradition tends to hold out scant hope for the attainment of peace and justice – and to see any such achievement as requiring means that are not themselves peaceful and just. The natural condition of politics is conflict, its currency force and the threat of force, augmented by rhetoric and (irrational) beliefs. Normatively, many ‘realist’ theorists sharply distinguish the norms of politics from those of personal morality; some realists see politics as subject to its own particular normative standards (such as Weber’s ‘ethic of responsibility’), while others see politics as a moral free-for-all, with only self-interest and power as standards. Politics is also distinguished from economics: it involves motives, forms of reasoning and means of action different from those (putatively) governing economic activity (that is, rationally self-interested exchanges between individual actors). Classical realism sees anarchy and enmity as natural conditions, and stability and security as fragile human achievements. Recently, there has been a revival of ‘realism’ among normative political theorists. This ‘new realism’ has taken shape as a reaction against the ‘moralism’ that its proponents see as dominant in recent normative political theory – meaning primarily ‘neo-Kantian’, ‘liberal’ political philosophy.4 As is often the case, much contemporary realist political theory has taken on features of that which it opposes and seeks to supplant. It thus often frames itself in terms of John Rawls’s distinction between ‘ideal’ and ‘non-ideal’ theory (and champions the latter); it focuses on questions of the proper method for doing normative political theory; it is concerned with how far rational consensus over shared norms can be achieved – and, thus, how far political communities can be ruled by shared conceptions or principles of justice. The new realism also rejects the idea that norms governing politics can be derived from outside of politics itself: politics, it insists, is not an extension of ethics. This could mean either that any such principles must arise from a process of political contestation, or that they can be derived from an account of the (essential) nature of politics. One upshot of this is that contemporary political theory ‘realists’ bristle, on the one hand, at the limitations that ‘moralist’ or (neo-Kantian) liberal theorists would impose on politics – while also insisting on certain limitations on what can be hoped for, and what ought to be pursued, in the practice of politics. Thus, among contemporary realists, some embrace the ‘anti-utopian’ mode of political thinking typified by Berlin, Niebuhr, Aron, Karl Popper and Judith Shklar; others reject the counsels of caution arising from such a ‘liberalism of fear’ in favour of a celebration of political plasticity – the ability of members of polities to remake their societies through

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 382

23/10/18 12:45 PM

isaiah berlin

383

active political struggle. A related point of divergence among contemporary ‘realist’ political theorists is between those who stress permanent or recurrent predicaments arising from the infirmities of human nature (and typically seek to compensate for these infirmities, largely through institutional design), and those who stress historical contingency in a way that (they believe) undermines belief in fixed moral standards or long-term solutions.5 A focus on power, coercion and conflict; pessimism regarding the possibility of consensus, stability and full compliance with any normative ideals; a concern with providing useful guidance for action and not merely theoretical justification of ideals – and, thus, an insistence that proposals be feasible, and norms possible to uphold in practice; an attention to history and psychology, to rhetoric and emotion, to political institutions and processes – these are the common features of realist theory, as broadly understood among contemporary political theorists. All of this suggests that many norms of morality will be difficult or impossible to apply in the political realm – and that seeking to do so may be a recipe for impotence, defeat and perverse consequences. The individual contemplating political action must, to echo Machiavelli, choose between serving her city (or, as Weber would say, her chosen cause) or saving her soul. If she cares more for her soul, she should avoid politics; if she enters politics, she should regard the welfare of her city or cause as paramount, and sacrifice that of her soul accordingly (Machiavelli 1961: 249; Weber 1958).

Berlin and Realism Berlin’s relationship to ‘political realism’ was equivocal. He wrote a masterful essay on Machiavelli, whom he saw as a precursor to his own value-pluralism, and whose dichotomy between political and private morality he stressed (Berlin 2013b; Berlin 2013a: 8–9).6 Berlin was a contemporary and friend (in often complicated ways) to several leading ‘realist’ thinkers of the day – Aron, Niebuhr and George F. Kennan; had a long, complicated relationship with E. H. Carr (discussed below); and was aware, and sharply critical, of other leading contemporary proponents of ‘realism’ – Herbert Butterfield, Walter Lippmann and James Burnham (see Cherniss 2013: 67–87, 112–21, on which the ensuing discussion draws). He was also close to, and influenced, several thinkers often identified with the recent realist revival in political theory: John Gray, Stuart Hampshire and Bernard Williams. Yet he is rarely listed among representatives of this tendency.7 This omission may reflect Berlin’s apparent endorsement of a core tenet of ‘political moralism’ against which contemporary ‘realist’ political theorists define themselves: the view that politics is continuous with (non- or pre-political) ‘morality’ – and that political theory is simply ‘ethics applied to society’ (Berlin 2013a: 2; Berlin and Jahanbegloo 1991: 57).8 Berlin’s political thought also differs from that advocated by many contemporary realist political theorists in so far as it neglects the study of political institutions, as opposed to concepts or values (Waldron 2017: 1–22, 274–89). Nor did Berlin emphasise human nature in the way that classical realist thought typically does. Berlin recognised the existence, and importance, of innate, irrational drives of enmity and aggression, but he did not place central emphasis on them, instead stressing the destructive power of mistaken ideas and the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 383

23/10/18 12:45 PM

384

joshua l. cherniss

human capacity for self-transformative choices. These features appear to put Berlin at variance with many variants of political realism. In writing of ‘realism in politics’, Berlin distinguished between two senses of the term – neither of which corresponds to the varieties of ‘realism’ sketched above. One was a correct perception of reality, free of emotional distortions. The other, ‘more sinister’ sense was that which people had in mind when they admitted to being ‘realists’, ‘usually to explain away some unusually mean or brutal decision’. In this sense, ‘realistic’ had come to mean ‘harsh and brutal, not shrinking from what is usually considered immoral, not swayed by soft sentimental moral considerations’ (Berlin 2013c: 163; Berin 2014: 104). This second sense of ‘realism’ held all ethical principles to be mere justifications for the pursuit or retention of power: there was no standard of ‘right’ opposed to that of ‘might’. Success was the only measure of validity. Berlin regarded this ‘realist’ sensibility as a powerful force in the postwar world, exclaiming in 1951 that ‘Surely there never was a time when more homage was paid to bullies as such: and the weaker the victim the louder (and sincerer) his paeans – vide E. H. Carr, [Arthur] Koestler, Burnham, [Harold] Laski’ (Berlin 2002: 343–4). Of these, Carr, with whom he maintained an uneasy friendship, punctuated by public polemics, loomed largest for Berlin. When Carr’s sympathy for the Soviet Union made securing employment difficult, Berlin tried to find him academic opportunities, while also privately complaining of, and publicly condemning, Carr’s ‘tendency to make fun, sometimes very brutal fun, of both idealism and sentimentality, and to oppose to this an ironical and somewhat contemptuous realism’ (Berlin to Richard Kahn, 12 December 1952, MS Berlin: 131, 208–119). Carr’s identification with ‘those who understand the nature of power and know how to fight for it and how to use it when they have won it’ fostered ‘a corresponding lack of sympathy with those who . . . fall in the race, or, worse still, never begin, or, most ludicrous of all, gallop off in the wrong direction’ was typical of a tendency to treat the victims of history as ‘feeble flotsam adequately taken care of by history which has swept them away as, being against the current, they . . . deserve. Only the victors deserve to be heard; the rest . . . are historical dust’ (Berlin 1951; Berlin 2002: 343). Berlin traced this ‘identification of what is good with what is successful’ to a ‘Hegelian realism’ – inherited and transmitted by Marxism – which identified ‘History’ with ‘the big battalions, marching down a broad avenue, with all the unfulfilled possibilities, all the martyrs and visionaries, wiped out’. Morality, on this view, was founded in reason, as embodied in the course of history. This led to the ‘identification of what works with what is good, of what is right with what succeeds’, and of ‘that which crushes resistance, with that which deserves to crush resistance’. This philosophy of history was the source of ‘openly power-worshipping movements such as Marxism and Fascism, both of which (in their different ways) derived morality from historical success’ (Berlin 2014: 103–6). Berlin disliked, as a matter of personal moral sensibility, the cynicism, ruthlessness, insensitivity, lack of scruple and compassion, and penchant for rule by a rational and determined elite, which he associated with this ‘realism’ (though not with the ‘realism’ of his friend Niebuhr, with whose political views he largely agreed). His aversion to ‘realism’ also reflected considered convictions about the nature of politics.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 384

23/10/18 12:45 PM

isaiah berlin

385

One supposedly ‘realistic’ premise that he rejected was the view that ‘the ends justify means’ – that seemingly immoral acts were rendered morally legitimate because such acts would effect morally desirable outcomes. This was actually unrealistic, Berlin asserted, because ‘evil means destroy good ends’ (Berlin 2008: 345). The resort to violence and lies would perpetuate a society marked by violence and lies – not somehow create a free, peaceful, enlightened one. However, Berlin did not embrace a position of purism or moral absolutism. He accepted that politics often involves tragic dilemmas, which demand the violation of absolute prohibitions; he would have been sympathetic to Michael Walzer’s account of the ‘problem of dirty hands’ (Walzer 1973; see also Rynard and Shugarman 2000; Primoratz 2007). But he also insisted, as a matter of moral principle, that human beings are ends in themselves, and that to treat or conceive of them as mere means was to deny a fundamental moral claim, which could not be simply overridden by appeals to political necessity or the ultimate attainment of morally desirable ends (see Berlin 2002: 338–9; Cherniss 2013: 100–2). Sacrifices of values or violations of principle might be necessary, in the course of politics, in order to avoid even worse violations or sacrifices (of either the same or other values or principles). But such situations were tragic, and should be recognised as involving real, irreparable moral harm or loss (see Berlin 1996: 54; Berlin 2008: 197). This was a central conclusion of Berlin’s ethical pluralism. Berlin’s pluralism is a theory about the nature of human values, which holds that these values (or goods) are plural, sometimes incompatible and incommensurable. That values are plural means that there are many genuine values, to which human beings feel drawn; the claims of these values are intrinsic, and therefore not reducible to or dependent on any single overriding value or system of values. Thus (to take the value Berlin wrote about most) liberty is desirable and good for human beings in itself, as a crucial ingredient in a good human life, and not because it follows from or conduces to any other value, such as wisdom, or happiness, or moral excellence, or a just social order (see Berlin 1996: 54, 73; Berlin 2002: 44, 214). Berlin held, further, that these genuine values will come into conflict in a number of cases. One may not be able to combine certain virtues of character (for instance, easy spontaneity and flexibility, and punctilious commitment to observing rules and principles – both of which may be admirable and useful qualities); or act both fairly and mercifully; or promote both individual liberty and public order, or social equality, or communal solidarity, at the same time. And in many cases, there will be no correct solution to such conflicts of values because values are incommensurable: since they make claims in their own terms, and not as means to or emanations of some one single value (such as happiness or dignity), they cannot be measured or ranked on a single scale (as utilitarianism evaluates different principles or courses of action in terms of their contribution to aggregate happiness). This means that disagreement over how to act – and, thus, conflicts between proponents of mutually incompatible policies – cannot be eliminated from human social life, even if one could assume away ignorance, illusion, partiality and malevolence on the part of human beings (that is, those psychological limitations emphasised by many schools of ‘realist’ thought). Pluralism challenges many moral theories – and thus many forms of ‘political moralism’ – in maintaining that there can be no solution to practical moral problems

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 385

23/10/18 12:45 PM

386

joshua l. cherniss

based on some a priori, apodictic, theory – no categorical principle, decision procedure, fixed ranking of values or model of moral virtue can dependably resolve conflicts between values or determine which choice among values is right. But for Berlin, pluralism did not eliminate the possibility of morally good action, or the responsibility to seek to act morally, in politics. The fact that one cannot establish that, say, the protection of liberty should always take priority over the pursuit of equality, or that justice should always prevail over mercy or kindness, or that, because respect for human life is absolute, violence can never be justified, does not mean that every way of pursuing any of these values is equally good. How much damage a course of action does to other values, how likely it is to serve the value(s) which it aims to realise, what sort of precedent adopting it sets, how it shapes the characters of those who engage in it – these are questions we can, and should, ask (and which point to the importance of political judgement, a topic on which Berlin wrote). Because our knowledge is limited and because each course of action may require sacrificing some good(s) for the sake of serving others, decisions between courses of action will always be uncertain and imperfect. But this was not for Berlin sufficient excuse for not seeking the most decent, least destructive course of action possible. Perfection, certainty of success or of being in the right, and freedom from error and regret – even guilt – were for him illusory, and often self-deluding and morally perverting, aspirations. His rejection of the aspiration toward perfection and certainty was central to Berlin’s critique of ‘utopianism’ and absolutist idealism (see Berlin 1996: 28–39; Berlin 2013c: 138–42). He particularly attacked the tendency of doctrinaire ideologues to sacrifice living human beings to abstractions. It was this rejection of abstractions – and recognition of the dangerous attraction, and ultimate absurdity, of placing abstractions before living realities – that Berlin celebrated in his hero Alexander Herzen. Berlin saw in Herzen both a ‘model of dry realism’ and an unabashed idealist, whose ‘vigorous moral standards about both life & politics’ Berlin took as ‘a point of reference both intellectually & morally’, and whose ‘curious combination of idealism and scepticism’ represented Berlin’s own personal intellectual ideal (Berlin 2008: 119; Berlin 2004: 239, 378; Berlin 2008: 230). Herzen was an ardent idealist, guided in his political campaigns by moral ideals – but wholly aware of harsh political realities and the odds against the success of his crusades. Berlin followed Herzen in repudiating both the ideal of perfection – which he saw as intrinsically threatening to individual liberty and variety, since the attainment of perfection would eliminate the need for choice and the value of innovation (see Berlin 1996: 75; Berlin 2002: 44, 50) – and faith in progress. Indeed, he rejected all deterministic, mono-causal and mono-directional conceptions of history – whether the pessimism of ‘realists’ who reduced history to a never-ending, essentially unchangeable struggle of powers, or the optimism of ‘confident rationalists’ who held that all evil was due to ignorance, and trusted that, as the sciences advanced, ‘true ends as well as efficient means will be discovered . . . men will know more, and therefore be wiser and better and happier’ (Berlin 2002: 111). This rejection of progress stemmed not only from scepticism toward claims that history obeyed laws or followed a particular direction, but also from a moral commitment to the value of individual human beings over and against supposedly more significant institutions and processes. Berlin cared about, ‘not the historical process

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 386

23/10/18 12:45 PM

isaiah berlin

387

or the condition of the universe or the solemn march of the Hegelian God through the world, but the lives and liberties and aspirations of individual men and women whose sufferings no sublime universal harmony could explain away or redeem’. ‘Progress’ toward some goal, however valuable, that cost too much in human suffering was not a simple moral good; it was often impossible to determine whether, on balance, the suffering caused by the means to improvement was ‘outweighed’ by the benefits ultimately attained. And improvements in terms of some values often meant losses in terms of others: greater mobility, and hence individual freedom, could erode valuable human relationships, for example; or increased similarity in treatment and conditions of living among individuals could foster greater equality, but less variety and individuality. Above, I discussed Berlin’s views of ‘political realism’ as he often used the term – to invoke a position that discounts morality in politics, single-mindedly prioritises power and success, and stigmatises weakness, failure and fidelity to ideals. This differs from the ‘realisms’ I described earlier – even if there is sometimes overlap, as these more sophisticated theories are used to license the sort of justifications for brutality, cynicism and craven service to power that Berlin attacked. But, as noted above, Berlin distinguished between two senses of realism – ‘“real” realism’, which was ‘essential’, and realism as a euphemism for acting “shabbily”’ (Berlin to unknown correspondent, MS Berlin 228: folio 250). What were the features of this ‘real’ realism, and how far does it coincide with the variants of realist thought with which we began? Some aspects of Berlin’s ‘real’ realism – a perception of reality unmarred by wishful thinking, comforting illusions, theoretical blinkers or ideological dogma – appear consonant with the attacks on ‘ideal theory’ and calls to focus on ‘real’ politics typical of ‘realism’ in contemporary political theory, as well as the attacks on ‘utopianism’ and attention to history typical of earlier realists. Berlin’s calls for a modestly sceptical empiricism, suspicious of abstractions and of neat theoretical schemes, resemble the intellectual ethic advocated by many realists. His pluralism – with its implication of endemic conflict and imperfection – has also been identified with recent realism in political theory (Galston 2010: 396, 407; Whelan 2004: 345–7, 372), though it should be noted that not all contemporary ‘realists’ embrace pluralism, and not all who claim to embrace value-pluralism are realists. (Among those associated with contemporary ‘realism’ in political theory, Hampshire, Williams and Gray affirm Berlinian valuepluralism; others, such as Chantal Mouffe or William Connolly, embrace a ‘pluralism’ different from Berlin’s.) Another aspect of ‘real’ realism for Berlin is a recognition of the power of ideas to influence human behaviour, for good and ill. This leads him to differ from those ‘realists’ who see ideas as having little or no influence independent of considerations of power and interest, which ideas merely rationalise and mask. This was one element in Berlin’s disagreement with Carr, and with all ‘Marxist’ variants of realism; it also distinguished him from some foreign policy ‘realists’ of his day. Berlin recognised – and, against some ‘rationalist’ thinkers, emphasised – the limited power of human reason and the importance of irrational motivations. But he did not explore typically political emotions in depth, as some realists have done or advocated doing (see Galston 2010: 398). This reflected Berlin’s sense of his métier as the history of ideas, rather than

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 387

23/10/18 12:45 PM

388

joshua l. cherniss

social psychology, although this chosen focus did not indicate a conviction that ideas are the true or sole driving-force of history. The difference between Berlin and realists such as Weber or Aron, who attributed significant, independent historical power to ideas, is thus not significant. Like nearly all ‘political realists’, Berlin saw political actors as at once free and constrained, able to affect the course of events through their actions but unable (fully) to foresee or control the consequences of their choices – though he typically stressed actors’ freedom, whereas most ‘realists’ emphasise the constraints. Berlin’s characteristic tendency to view politics through the lens of individual choice – and the personal predicaments, temperaments and judgements that shape choices – was accompanied, as noted above, by a lack of attention to political institutions. While this might be a shortcoming, we should not be too quick to equate ‘realistic’ political theory with institutionally oriented political theory: Berlin’s focus on individual character, experience and choice both fits within a ‘realist’ tradition (represented by the Machiavelli of The Prince and the Weber of ‘Politics as a Vocation’, as well as Thucydides’ stress on the role of leaders such as Pericles) and may contribute to making our own approach to politics more cognisant of the full reality of politics as experienced by political actors – and, hence, more truly ‘realistic’.10 Berlin indeed resembles many realists in his insistence on the importance of political judgement, to which he devoted tantalising and suggestive attention. Such judgement is, for Berlin, unsystematic and fallible; it is a matter of perceiving the complex interplay of myriad factors in a situation, discerning which are most significant – and imaginatively envisioning unforeseen possibilities. Berlin emphasised such virtuoso political judgement (which was morally neutral) in his accounts of political leaders like Franklin Roosevelt and Chaim Weizmann. But his tributes to them also stressed these figures’ ethical sense, which prevented them from putting their political skills to ill use (as I argue in Cherniss 2018). And he maintained both the possibility and the importance of bringing moral standards to bear on political action.11 Unlike many ‘realists’, Berlin did not see politics as discontinuous with or ‘autonomous’ from the realm of non-political morality. For him, conflicts of values criss-crossed the different spheres or realms of human life; this distinguished him from those who conceive pluralism in terms of conflicts between discrete spheres, each subject to its own particular set of values, goals and means – a position typical of those ‘realists’ (including ‘valuepluralists’ such as Weber) who insist on the autonomy of ‘the political’ and the gulf between politics and ethics.12 Berlin’s pluralism also cuts against – or undercuts – the tendency, pronounced in the ‘reason of state’ tradition but implicit in much realist thought, to see politics as a superior or primary sphere of human life. Berlin shared some element of this outlook: unlike those (including many liberals) who are inclined to dethrone or deprecate politics rigorously, he was inclined to celebrate the greatness of political leaders. Given his personal experiences, Berlin could never underestimate the terrible power of politics to shape individual lives – and, hence, politics’ practical primacy. But his pluralism – and his instinctive sympathy with the powerless, with visionaries and misfits – prevented him from enthroning politics as a normatively superior sphere, identifying political skill with human excellence, or worshipping either political virtuosi or that ‘cold monster’, the state.13

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 388

23/10/18 12:45 PM

isaiah berlin

389

Conclusion Berlin’s thought may be faulted for not having enough to say about the characteristic qualities that distinguish different spheres of life from one another, making the moral dilemmas presented by politics, with its typical means of (legitimated) violence and its structuring power over other facets of life, different from those of other spheres. On the other hand, Berlin’s approach offers a useful caution against the tendency of some realist thinkers to adopt a tendentious account of the proper norms of politics, and the larger tendency to divide up human experience too neatly. One of the main messages of Berlin’s thought was that such neatness is artificial, deceptive and ultimately destructive and oppressive. Human life is too complex and messy to be neatly parcelled out, and human beings have a capacity, and a right, to dispute and define the moral terms of their existence, and reject the artificial boundaries insisted upon by rigid doctrines – including a doctrinaire ‘realism’. This emphasis on untidiness, ambiguity and the importance of flexibility, openness and intellectual modesty constitutes part of Berlin’s own ‘sense of reality’ – and the reason why he was a realist who rejected (some) ‘political realism’.

Notes 1. I am grateful to Edward Hall, Henry Hardy, Laura Hartmann and Andrew Sabl for comments on this chapter. 2. On Berlin’s early life and Zionism, see Dubnov (2012). On the development of his liberalism and pluralism, see Cherniss (2013). For an overview of Berlin’s life, see Ignatieff (1998). On Berlin’s thought, see Gray (1996); Crowder (2004). 3. For an important discussion, and caution of the dangers, of the historiography of ‘realism’, see McQueen (2017). 4. For surveys of recent ‘political theory realism’, see Galston (2010); Stears (2007); see also the articles collected in North (2010); Sabl and Sagar (2017); Sleat (forthcoming). Influential examples of the new ‘realism’ include Mouffe (1993); Honig (1993); Williams (2005); Philp (2007); Geuss (2008). 5. I am indebted to Andrew Sabl for stressing this point. The former tendency tends to predominate in America, and reflects the influence of The Federalist Papers (and European émigrés such as Morgenthau and Carl Friedrich); the latter has been prominent in the UK, and owes a debt to Hegel, Marx, Nietzsche and Critical Theory. However, contemporary British ‘realists’ themselves vary: some appear closer to the earlier, more liberal and ambivalent views of a group of Oxford philosophers – Berlin, Hampshire and Williams; others embrace a more aggressive and austere realism, cultivated at Cambridge by figures such as John Dunn and Raymond Geuss. For ‘American’ realism, see Sabl (2011); Whelan (2004: 289–377); the latter stresses affinities between American realists (principally Madison and Shklar) and the ‘Oxford realists’ Hampshire, Williams and Berlin. 6. Berlin later clarified that Machiavelli was not a pluralist but a ‘dualist’ (Berlin and Jahanbegloo 1991: 54–5), and he tended to see the two ideals, of Christian morality and republican virtue, as rival moral ideals, rather than as norms appropriate to separate spheres of private and public life. Berlin’s account of Machiavelli was echoed by the work of his friend Stuart Hampshire; see, for example, Hampshire (1991). 7. Galston lists Hampshire, Gray and Williams, but not Berlin, as ‘political realists’ (Galston 2010: 386). Berlin’s affinity with political theory realism is noted in Honig (1993: 14, 158)

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 389

23/10/18 12:45 PM

390

8.

9. 10. 11.

12. 13.

joshua l. cherniss and Whelan (2004: 345–7). The connections between Berlin, Hampshire and Williams are explored in forthcoming work by Edward Hall. There are two issues here, between which Berlin does not distinguish: whether the methods of political theory should be the same as/an extension of those of moral/ethical philosophy; and whether the standards of non-political ethics (and conclusions of ethical philosophy) are applicable in the realm of politics. Isaiah Berlin Papers, Bodleian Library, Oxford (cited as MS Berlin). An ‘ideally’ realistic political theory would integrate the personal and the institutional; see, for example, Sabl (2002); Sabl (2012). This statement, like most concerning Berlin, requires qualification. In Berlin’s view, drastic situations – ‘extreme tragic cases’ – in which ‘normal’ moral judgements have no place did sometimes occur in political life. Berlin saw such cases – such as the predicament of Jewish leaders who agreed to collaborate with Nazi authorities, in the hope of saving some of their fellow Jews – not as examples of the conflict of values, but as situations of such appalling duress that ‘ordinary moral categories’ were inapplicable (Berlin to Jonathan Dancy, 28 March and 25 April 1995, in Berlin 2015: 503–6). But such cases were not characteristic of, nor unique to, politics. Weber’s position on this is, however, more complicated than is sometimes recognised, as I suggest in Cherniss (2016). In this, Berlin resembled his fellow Rigan-born, Jewish, refugee liberal Judith Shklar. Though an influence on contemporary ‘realist’ political theory, Shklar rejected the ‘realist’ ethic of Machiavelli and Weber, in favour of a liberalism that demanded a rigorous morality of self-limitation from political agents. See Shklar (1984: 4–5, 242–9); Forrester (2012). Berlin, however, diverged from Shklar in stressing the motivational importance, to any political project, of positive ideals, as well as an aversion to evils. See Berlin (2002: 93).

Bibliography Berlin, Isaiah (1951), ‘Review of E. H. Carr, Studies in Revolution’, International Affairs, vol. 27, pp. 470–1, available at (last accessed 31 May 2018). Berlin, Isaiah (1996), The Sense of Reality: Studies in Ideas and their History, ed. by Henry Hardy, London: Chatto and Windus. Berlin, Isaiah (2002), Liberty: Incorporating Four Essays on Liberty, ed. by Henry Hardy, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Berlin, Isaiah (2004), Flourishing: Letters 1928–1946, ed. by Henry Hardy, London: Chatto and Windus. Berlin, Isaiah (2008), Russian Thinkers, ed. by Henry Hardy and Aileen Kelly, London: Penguin. Berlin, Isaiah (2013a), The Crooked Timber of Humanity: Chapters in the History of Ideas, ed. by Henry Hardy, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Berlin, Isaiah (2013b), ‘The originality of Machiavelli’, in Against the Current: Essays in the History of Ideas, ed. by Henry Hardy, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, pp. 33–100. Berlin, Isaiah (2013c), ‘Realism in politics’, in The Power of Ideas, ed. by Henry Hardy, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, pp. 163–72. Berlin, Isaiah (2014), Freedom and its Betrayal: Six Enemies of Human Liberty, ed. by Henry Hardy, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Berlin, Isaiah (2015), Affirming: Letters 1975–1997, ed. by Henry Hardy and Mark Pottle, London: Chatto and Windus. Berlin, Isaiah and Ramin Jahanbegloo (1991), Conversations with Isaiah Berlin, New York: Charles Scribner’s Sons.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 390

23/10/18 12:45 PM

isaiah berlin

391

Bew, John (2015), Realpolitik: A History, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Cherniss, Joshua L. (2013), A Mind and its Time: The Development of Isaiah Berlin’s Political Thought, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Cherniss, Joshua L. (2016), ‘An ethos of politics between realism and idealism: Max Weber’s enigmatic political ethics’, The Journal of Politics, vol. 78, no. 3, pp. 705–18. Cherniss, Joshua L. (2018), ‘“The Sense of Reality”: Berlin on political judgement, political ethics, and leadership’, in Joshua L. Cherniss and Steven B. Smith (eds), The Cambridge Companion to Isaiah Berlin, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Crowder, George (2004), Isaiah Berlin: Liberty and Pluralism, Cambridge: Polity Press. Dubnov, Arie (2012), Isaiah Berlin: The Journey of a Jewish Liberal, London: Palgrave Macmillan. Forrester, Katrina (2012), ‘Judith Shklar, Bernard Williams and political realism’, European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 11, no. 3, pp. 247–72. Galston, William (2010), ‘Realism in political theory’, European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 9, no. 4, pp. 385–411. Geuss, Raymond (2008), Philosophy and Real Politics, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Gray, John (1996), Isaiah Berlin, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Hampshire, Stuart (1991), Innocence and Experience, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Honig, Bonnie (1993), Political Theory and the Displacement of Politics, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Ignatieff, Michael (1998), Isaiah Berlin: A Life, New York: Metropolitan. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1961), The Letters of Machiavelli, ed. and translated by Allan Gilbert, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. McQueen, Alison (2017), ‘Political realism and the realist “tradition”’, Critical Review of Social and Political Philosophy, vol. 20, no. 3, pp. 296–313. Meinecke, Friedrich (1957) [1924], Machiavellism: The Doctrine of Raison d’Etat and its Place in Modern History, translated by Douglas Scott, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Mouffe, Chantal (1993), The Return of the Political, London: Verso. North, Richard (ed.) (2010), ‘Realism and political theory’, European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 9, no. 4, pp. 379–512. Philp, Mark (2007), Political Conduct, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Primoratz, Igor (ed.) (2007), Politics and Morality, New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Rynard, Paul and David Shugarman (eds) (2000), Cruelty and Deception: The Controversy over Dirty Hands in Politics, Toronto: Broadview Press. Sabl, Andrew (2002), Ruling Passions: Political Offices and Democratic Ethics, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Sabl, Andrew (2011), ‘History and reality: Idealist pathologies and “Harvard School” remedies’, in Jonathan Floyd and Marc Stears (eds), Political Philosophy Versus History? Contextualism and Real Politics in Contemporary Political Thought, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 151–76. Sabl, Andrew (2012), Hume’s Politics: Coordination and Crisis in the History of England, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Sabl, Andrew and Rahul Sagar (eds) (2017), ‘Realism’, Critical Review of International Social and Political Philosophy, vol. 20, no. 3, pp. 269–402. Shklar, Judith N. (1984), Ordinary Vices, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Sleat, Matt (2013), Liberal Realism: A Realist Theory of Liberal Politics, Manchester: Manchester University Press. Sleat, Matt (ed.) (forthcoming), Politics Recovered: Essays in Realist Political Thought, New York: Columbia University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 391

23/10/18 12:45 PM

392

joshua l. cherniss

Stears, Marc (2007), ‘Liberalism and the politics of compulsion’, British Journal of Political Science, vol. 37, no. 3, pp. 533–53. Waldron, Jeremy (2017), Political Political Theory, Cambridge MA: Harvard University Press. Walzer, Michael (1973), ‘The problem of dirty hands’, Philosophy and Public Affairs, vol. 2, no. 2, pp. 160–80. Weber, Max (1958) [1919], ‘Politics as a vocation’, in H. H. Gerth and C. Wright Mills (eds), From Max Weber, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 77–128. Whelan, Frederick G. (2004), Hume and Machiavelli: Political Realism and Liberal Thought, Lanham, MD: Lexington. Williams, Bernard (2005), In the Beginning Was the Deed: Realism and Moralism in Political Argument, ed. by Geoffrey Hawthorn, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 392

23/10/18 12:45 PM

31 Political Realism and Threat Perception Inferring intent from capacity and capacity from intent – and getting it wrong both ways John Mueller

Chapter Overview

T

hreat assessment is a key element in carrying out foreign policy and, for the most part, it has been done badly for international threat, at least in the period since World War Two. This essay explores two important instances. One concerns the exaggeration during the Cold War about the degree to which international communism presented a direct military threat, as well as a subversive one, to Europe and the USA. The other assesses the exaggeration after the Cold War, and particularly after 2001, about the degree to which international terrorism presented a threat. The sources of these errors, however, are different. The grand mistake of the Cold War concerning the Soviet military threat was to infer desperate intent from apparent capacity. For threats presented by domestic communists and by international terrorism, it has been to infer desperate capacity from apparent intent. The essay concludes with a consideration of where and how these misguided and essentially unrealistic threat perceptions came from and if they could have been, or could be, changed. Mostly, it finds that the dynamic is bottom up. *

*

*

Threat assessment is a key element in carrying out foreign policy – or life, for that matter. It involves determining what the dangers out there are and deciding what needs to be done to deal with them. It is extremely important to get this right because underestimating a threat can waylay necessary precaution, while overestimating it can divert time and resources from efforts to deal with threats that are more important. Stephen Walt has argued that, in international relations, states balance not against power, but against threat (Walt 1987). But an important puzzle remains: how do they determine that something is a threat? Logically – or realistically – assessing the degree to which others present a threat is a matter of gauging intent and capacity. For the most part, this has been done badly for international threat, at least in the period since World War Two. Not all threats that could potentially have been seized upon have evoked anxiety. However, it does appear that every national security threat in the last several decades that has

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 395

23/10/18 12:45 PM

396

john mueller

come to be accepted as significant has then eventually been unwisely exaggerated (Mueller 2006). This essay explores two important instances. One concerns the exaggeration during the Cold War about the degree to which international communism presented a direct military threat, as well as a subversive one, to Europe and the USA. The other assesses the exaggeration after the Cold War, and particularly after 2001, about the degree to which international terrorism presented a threat.

Perceptions During the Cold War about the Threat Presented by International Communism Historian John Lewis Gaddis observes that no one at the summit of foreign policy in 1950 anticipated most of the major international developments that were to take place in the next half-century. Among these were the beliefs ‘that there would be no World War’ and that the USA and the Soviet Union, ‘soon to have tens of thousands of thermonuclear weapons pointed at one another, would agree tacitly never to use any of them’ (Gaddis 2012: 403). That is, everybody got it wrong. However, the potential absence of a further world war, whether nuclear or not, was compatible with the fairly obvious observation that those running world affairs after the Second World War were the same people or the intellectual heirs of the people who had tried desperately to prevent that cataclysm. It was entirely plausible that such people, despite their huge differences on many issues, might well manage to keep themselves from plunging into a self-destructive repeat performance. Moreover, although the chief source of concern, the Soviet Union, did subscribe to an aggressive agenda that involved support for class warfare, revolutionary civil wars and subversion in capitalist countries, it was extremely wary of any experience that might lead to anything like the Second World War. The ideology never envisioned direct Hitlerstyle warfare, whether nuclear or not, as a sensible method for pursuing the process of world revolution. Moreover, the Soviets were well poised to observe that major wars had the potential to unseat the regime in Moscow: that is what happened in the First World War and nearly happened again in the Second. Thus, it could have been reasonably argued at the time that major war was simply not on the cards. Although this perspective was not, of course, the only one possible, there was no definitive way to dismiss it. Thus, as a matter of simple, plain, rational, realistic decision-making, this prospect – the one that proved to be true – should have been on the table. But it seems not to have been. Instead, as Gaddis suggests, the accepted perspective was that the prospects were dire. As Hans J. Morgenthau declared in 1979, ‘In my opinion the world is moving ineluctably towards a third world war – a strategic nuclear war. I do not believe that anything can be done to prevent it. The international system is simply too unstable to survive for long’ (Boyle 1985: 73). Such proclamations have obviously proved to be wrong. Indeed, as Robert Jervis notes, ‘The Soviet archives have yet to reveal any serious plans for unprovoked aggression against Western Europe, not to mention a first strike against the United States’ (Jervis 2001: 59). And Vojtech Mastny concludes that ‘The strategy of nuclear deterrence [was] irrelevant to deterring a major war that the enemy did not wish to launch in the first place’ (Mastny 2006: 3).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 396

23/10/18 12:45 PM

threat perception

397

During the Cold War, there was also excessive alarm – or a misplaced sense of threat – about the dangers presented by domestic communists, particularly in the USA. Initially, it was inspired by two spectacular espionage cases. In one, a respected former State Department official, Alger Hiss, was accused of having sent huge quantities of classified documents to the Soviets before World War Two. In the other, two American Communists, Julius and Ethel Rosenberg, were convicted, and then executed, for helping to send atomic secrets to the Soviets. This was all set into high relief with the invasion of South Korea by forces from communist North Korea in 1950, bolstered later in the year by hordes of troops from communist China. The war proved to be a limited, opportunistic and quite cautious military probe at a point of perceived vulnerability in a peripheral area. However, in another instance of threat exaggeration, almost everyone simply assumed that the war was being directed from Moscow and was part of a broad, militarised quest for ‘world domination’ (Mueller 2011: 124). As part of this process, domestic communists were seen to be connected to, and agents of, a vast, foreign-based conspiracy to topple America. Extravagant alarmist proclamations about the degree to which such ‘masters of deceit’ and ‘enemies from within’ presented a threat to the republic found a receptive audience. Thus, J. Edgar Hoover, the highly respected, even revered, director of America’s Federal Bureau of Investigation, divulged in a 1958 book that the American Communist Party was working ‘day and night to further the communist plot in America’ with ‘deadly seriousness’; that a ‘Bolshevik transmission’ was in progress that was ‘virtually invisible to the noncommunist eye, unhampered by time, distance, and legality’; that it was ‘creating communist puppets throughout the country’; and that it had for ‘its objective the ultimate seizure of power in America’ (Hoover 1958: 81). During the Cold War, there apparently was no audience whatever for the proposition that the threat presented by domestic communists was overblown. While their intent may have been threatening, their (‘virtually invisible’) capacity to subvert was vastly inflated in proclamations like those put forward by Hoover.

Perceptions after 9/11 about the Threat Presented by International Terrorism Something similar happened after the terrorist attacks of 11 September 2001. Jane Mayer reports that ‘The only certainty shared by virtually the entire American intelligence community in the fall of 2001 was that a second wave of even more devastating terrorist attacks on America was imminent’ (Mayer 2008: 3). And, as Andrew Liepman and Philip Mudd recall, ‘No one in the dizzying days after 9/11 would have believed that annual terrorism-related casualties leading into 2016 would number only in the dozens; experts might have predicted hundreds, even thousands’ (Liepman and Mudd 2016: 12). That is, everybody got it wrong. Under the circumstances, of course, deep concern was certainly justified. But the ‘certainty’ and the attendant complete dismissal of the possibility that, like Pearl Harbor, 9/11 might prove to be an aberration rather than a harbinger, was not. Extrapolating wildly from 9/11, a terrorist event ten times more destructive than any other in history, terrorism has repeatedly been taken to present a massive, even

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 397

23/10/18 12:45 PM

398

john mueller

existential, threat to the USA or to the West – or even to the world system or to civilisation as we know it (Mueller 2006: 43–7). In fact, al-Qaeda, a fringe group of a fringe group, has done remarkably little since it got horribly lucky in 2001, and terrorism has remained a rare phenomenon, except in war zones where, by deft definitional shift, what would previously have been called insurgency is now being labelled terrorism (Mueller and Stewart 2017b; Cronin 2015). Islamist terrorism in the USA has killed some 6 people per year since 9/11. That is 6 too many, of course, but lightning kills about 30 Americans a year, accident-causing deer another 200, and drownings in bathtubs around 400. And 8 people die from drug overdoses each day in Ohio alone (Johnson 2016). About as many people perished in a fire in a London high-rise building in 2017 as have been killed by Islamist terrorists in the UK in all of history. And however terrible the terrorist outrages committed in Europe in 2015 and 2016, far more people on that continent perished yearly at the hands of terrorists in most years in the 1970s and 1980s (York 2015; Jeremy Shapiro 2016). This low number is unlikely to be the result of security measures, however. There have been scores of terrorist plots rolled up in the USA by the authorities but, looked at carefully, the culprits left on their own do not seem to have had the capacity to increase the death toll very much. As Brian Jenkins puts it, ‘Their numbers remain small, their determination limp, and their competence poor’ (Jenkins 2011: 1; see also Mueller and Stewart 2016a: Ch. 3). Nor can security measures have deterred terrorism. Some targets, such as airliners, may have been taken off the list, but potential terrorist targets remain legion (Mueller and Stewart 2016a: 110–12; Mueller and Stewart 2018: Ch. 1). To a considerable degree, the 9/11 process repeated itself, or was substantially reinforced, in 2014 when a militant group calling itself the Islamic State, or ISIL, but more generally known as ISIS, burst into the official and public spotlight with some military victories in Iraq and Syria in the middle of the year. Particularly traumatic was the way it took over Iraq’s second largest city, Mosul – an achievement, however, chiefly attributable to the fact that the defending Iraqi army, trained by the US military at a cost of $20 billion, essentially fled in disarray (Mueller and Stewart 2016b: 34). Former National Security Agency (NSA) and Central Intelligence Agency (CIA) head Michael Hayden was quick to stoke alarm by proclaiming that ‘this is quite a dangerous thing that we’re seeing unfold here’, and he applied the predictable comparison: ‘It’s probably not 9/11, but it’s certainly in the same area code’ (Fox News Sunday 2014). Senators John McCain and Lindsay Graham swiftly declaimed that the group presented an existential threat to the USA (Mueller and Stewart 2016b: 34). Cries of alarm escalated substantially when ISIS, in reaction to US airstrikes, performed and webcast several beheadings of defenceless Western hostages in the late summer of 2014 (hardly an indication of great military prowess). Democratic Senator Dianne Feinstein was soon insisting that ‘The threat ISIS poses cannot be overstated’ – effectively proclaiming hyperbole on the subject to be impossible, as columnist Dan Froomkin suggests (Froomkin 2014). Equally inspired, Senator Jim Inhofe, born before World War Two, extravagantly claimed that ‘we’re in the most dangerous

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 398

23/10/18 12:45 PM

threat perception

399

position we’ve ever been in’ and that ISIS is ‘rapidly developing a method of blowing up a major U.S. city’ (Cross 2014). And Defence Secretary Chuck Hagel soared ever skyward, saying, ‘we’ve never seen a threat’ like this before, a ‘comprehensive threat’ with sophistication, armaments, strategic knowledge, funding, capacity, ideology. ‘It’s new. The threat is significantly worse than we’ve seen before, not just in Iraq, but in the Middle East’ (Zenko 2014). In contrast, Middle East specialist Ramzy Mardini argued at the same time that ‘the Islamic State’s fundamentals are weak’; ‘it does not have a sustainable endgame’; its ‘extreme ideology, spirit of subjugation, and acts of barbarism prevent it from becoming a political venue for the masses’; its foolhardy efforts to instil fear in everyone limit ‘its opportunities for alliances’ and makes it ‘vulnerable to popular backlash’; ‘its potential support across the region ranges from limited to nonexistent’; and it ‘is completely isolated, encircled by enemies’ (Mardini 2014). Although it garnered little or no attention at the time, Mardini’s assessment proved prescient, and the group that once generated so much alarm has gone into very considerable decline (Mueller and Stewart 2016b; Jacob Shapiro 2016).The alarm itself, however, persists.

Public Opinion as the Primary Driver of Threat Perception It is probably best to see public opinion as the primary driver in the excessive and somewhat bizarre threat exaggeration processes that took place during the Cold War and after 9/11. Thus, the process seems substantially to be bottom-up rather than one inspired by policy-makers, risk entrepreneurs, politicians and members of the media, who seem more nearly to be responding to the fears (and irresponsibly exacerbating them out of a sense of duty and self-interest) than to be creating them (Mueller 2016a: Ch. 2). That is, it seems fair to conclude that, overall, they have been ‘baited with the rabble’s curse’, as Macbeth rather irreverently puts it: elites are fully aware that to appear to be dismissive of the threats accepted and internalised by the public is exceedingly bad politics. Moreover, public fears can often be difficult to dampen. This was certainly the conclusion of President Dwight Eisenhower during the Cold War. He was one of the few people to have recognised that the military threat presented by the Soviet Union was much inflated. As his press secretary recorded at the time, although Eisenhower was concerned about what he called ‘a sort of peaceful infiltration’, he insisted, ‘after many long, long years of study on this problem’, that ‘everything points to the fact that Russia is not seeking a general war and will not for a long, long time, if ever’ (Hagerty 1983: 134). That is, while the Soviets may have had the capacity to launch a major war against the West, they essentially had no desire to do so. But Eisenhower was substantially unwilling to express such an unpopular view in public. Instead, he railed against what he called the ‘military–industrial complex’, attacking a successful lobbying movement for its machinations, but not confronting the premise that gave that movement its effectiveness. And he did even that only after leaving office.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 399

23/10/18 12:45 PM

400

john mueller

Things were similar for the threat presented by domestic communists. At least in the USA, no one ever seems to have said in public: Many domestic Communists adhere to a foreign ideology that ultimately has as its goal the destruction of capitalism and democracy and by violence if necessary; however, they do not present much of a danger, are actually quite a pathetic bunch, and couldn’t subvert their way out of a wet paper bag. Why are we expending so much time, effort, and treasure on this issue?’ That is, everybody got it wrong. Barack Obama had an experience similar to Eisenhower’s. After news about the beheadings of Americans by ISIS stirred a pronounced popular reaction in 2014, he sought to dampen alarm by promulgating the notion in early 2015 that terrorism generally, and ISIS in particular, did not present a threat to the USA that was ‘existential’ (Mueller and Stewart 2016a: 24–5). It is astounding that these utterances – ‘blindingly obvious’, as security specialist Bruce Schneier puts it – appear to mark the first time that officials in the USA have actually made the point clearly in public (Schneier 2015). That this should come off as an apparent act of political courage suggests the depth of the problem – and, essentially, of the ongoing irresponsibility of officials. Five years after 9/11, journalist James Fallows suggested that Americans have ‘lacked leaders to help keep the danger in perspective’ (Fallows 2006). Despite Obama’s almost embarrassingly modest effort, Fallows’s observation remains valid today. Moreover, Obama’s minimalist effort at keeping the threat in perspective, at once remarkable and absurdly belated, scarcely had consequences. It certainly had no impact in reducing fears of terrorism. A year after he made his effort, one poll asked the 83 per cent of its respondents who said they closely followed news stories about ISIS whether the group presented ‘a serious threat to the existence or survival of the US’. Fully 77 per cent agreed, more than two-thirds of them strongly (Mueller and Stewart 2017b). And shortly after Obama’s exhortations, General Michael Flynn, who had recently retired as head of the Defense Intelligence Agency, extravagantly insisted that the terrorist enemy is ‘committed to the destruction of freedom and the American way of life’ while seeking ‘world domination, achieved through violence and bloodshed’. It was reported that his remarks, to an audience of ‘special operators and intelligence officers’, evoked ‘many nods of approval’, ‘occasional cheers’ and ‘ultimately a standing ovation’ (Dozier 2015). Obama seems to have wanted to go further, but he never summoned the political courage to do so during his presidency. In an Atlantic cover story, Jeffrey Goldberg disclosed that Obama ‘never believed that terrorism poses a threat to America commensurate with the fear it generates’ and that he would frequently remind his staff ‘that terrorism takes far fewer lives in America than handguns, car accidents, and falls in bathtubs do’. However, out of concern that Obama would ‘seem insensitive to the fears of the American people’, his advisers fought ‘a constant rearguard action to keep Obama from placing terrorism in what he considers its “proper” perspective’ (Goldberg 2016).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 400

23/10/18 12:45 PM

threat perception

401

The immutability of the issue can also be seen in trends in public opinion. For the most part, popular anxieties about terrorism in the USA have not eroded in the years after 9/11 despite the absence of a second big attack, the death of Osama bin Laden, and the low objective likelihood of being killed by a terrorist (Mueller and Stewart 2016a: Ch. 2). And, while press and political concern about the communist enemy within probably peaked in 1954 in the USA, concern about domestic communists, like that about Islamist terrorism after 9/11, seems to have been internalised. In 1954, some 40 per cent of the public deemed domestic communists to present a great or very great danger, and that percentage declined almost not at all in the ensuing ten years, even though media interest fell greatly. When last tapped, in the mid-1970s, some twenty years after its probable peak, concern about the domestic communist danger had declined only to 30 per cent at a time when press attention to that internal enemy had fallen literally to zero (Mueller and Stewart 2017a). Thus, continuous reminders about the threat, as in the case of terrorism, were not needed for alarm to be sustained. And in both cases, presidents who understood that mistakes were being made were unwilling to say so in public. Instead, they embraced a lesson succinctly put forward by analyst Stephen Sestanovich: ‘It’s not good politics to display your irritation with the American people’ (Jaffe 2015). That is, it is better to let the people wallow in fearful error – essentially to lie to them – than to appear to be insensitive to their fears. James Risen is certainly correct to observe that ‘fear sells’ (Risen 2014: 203). However, H. L. Mencken pushes too far when he says, ‘The whole aim of practical politics is to keep the populace alarmed (and hence clamorous to be led to safety) by menacing it with an endless series of hobgoblins’ (Mencken 1949: 29). Not all fearselling (or fear-mongering) finds a receptive audience. As they sort through products on display, people pick and choose what threats to be scared of. Americans bought the Cold War and terrorism fears, but at the same time they have been unaffected by those who wish them to fear genetically modified food, and a great many have remained substantially unmoved by warnings about global warming – even in the face of authoritative, or seemingly authoritative, warnings that sometimes are of apocalyptic proportions. Why people are more impressed by some fears and threats than others is not easily explained. Research on which hazards will inspire anxiety has come up with a laundry list of suggestions that is anything but tidy. On it are such qualities as recent experience and the uncontrollability of the risks; the dread (or fear) they inspire; their involuntary nature or catastrophic potential; whether they can be preventively controlled, are certain to be fatal, can easily be reduced, result in an inequitable distribution of risk, threaten future generations or affect one personally; whether they are increasing or not observable, unknown to those exposed, new or unfamiliar, and unknown to science; and whether they have immediate effect or affect a large number of people (Slovic, Fischhoff and Lichtenstein 1980; Stewart and Melchers 1997: 208–16). Applying these can be tricky, however. Thus, Daniel Gilbert concludes that people are less afraid of global warming than terrorism because climate change is unintentional, does not violate moral sensibilities, looms in the unseen future and happens

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 401

23/10/18 12:45 PM

402

john mueller

gradually (Gilbert 2006). But much the same could be said for fears about nuclear radiation, and the accident that took place at Fukushima in 2011, caused by a rare tsunami, has had a huge impact around the world, even though it has thus far resulted in no deaths whatever. And although some people say they do not like flying because they have no control over the aircraft, they seem to have little difficulty boarding trains, buses, taxicabs and ocean liners. At any rate, the incentives in the USA and elsewhere have been to play to the galleries and to exaggerate the threat even as ISIS went into decline. If 77 per cent of the people appear to be convinced that ISIS presents ‘a serious threat to the existence or survival of the US’, there is likely to be considerably more purchase in servicing the notion than in seeking to counter it: emphasising its menace – or residual menace – is far more likely to attract readers, viewers, voters and funders.

Public Fears and Public Policy-Making Officials serving the public are tasked at the most fundamental level to spend funds in a manner that most effectively and efficiently keeps people safe. Doing so is neither easy nor precise, and the funds available for that purpose are, of course, limited. But, to the degree possible, the task should be carried out systematically and professionally. To do otherwise is irresponsible, irrational and unrealistic. And policies so informed can cost lives as funds are directed toward minor hazards rather than toward ones that are objectively far more dangerous. Although allowing emotion to overwhelm sensible analysis is both understandable and common among ordinary people, it is simply not appropriate for officials charged with, and responsible for, keeping them safe. As Cass Sunstein puts it, ‘If people’s values lead them to show special concern with certain risks, government should take that concern into account.’ But ‘any official response should be based on a realistic understanding of the facts’, not on ‘factual mistakes’ (Sunstein 2006: 15, 18). Getting it wrong about the Soviet military threat inspired an extended exercise in what Robert Johnson has called ‘nuclear metaphysics’ (Johnson 1997). In this, it was assumed that the Soviet Union needed to be deterred from launching a direct war against the USA or Western Europe. In the process, the USA spent somewhere between 5.5 and 10 trillion dollars on nuclear weapons and delivery systems – enough to purchase everything (or about half of everything) in the country, except for the land (Mueller 2010: xii). All this, primarily to confront, to deter and to make glowering and menacing faces at a perceived threat of direct military aggression that, essentially, did not exist. In all, it was the stuff of comedy – or, more accurately, farce (Mueller 2011: 127–9). And getting it wrong about the threat presented by domestic communists and by international terrorism led to massively expensive efforts in policing and protecting – not to mention costly wars in Vietnam and Iraq to counter the supposed threat before it could spread to the homeland. The duty of officials in charge of public safety is to provide it most efficiently, given the funds available, not to misspend in a manner that best assuages the public (or, as Macbeth would put it, the rabble). Put bluntly, they are in the death-reduction business, not in the fear-reduction business. Dealing with public fears is primarily the job

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 402

23/10/18 12:45 PM

threat perception

403

of others. Perhaps an army of psychiatrists could be enlisted – though they may not be able to do much about it because fear levels, as suggested above, do not appear to be readily manipulated. If people want to be afraid, nothing will stop them. Accordingly, however, public officials are in some sense free to do their job right: they can expend money responsibly in a manner that best saves lives rather than in one that seeks to reduce fears that are unjustified and perhaps unfathomable. Whatever they do, they are unlikely to affect fear levels much one way or the other. That is, they are at once incapable of reducing fear and unlikely to scare people even more than they are scared now. Thus, expenditures that are wildly disproportionate to limited hazards are neither wise nor responsible – whether such spending is on unnecessary weaponry or on chasing domestic communists or would-be terrorists. As noted earlier, politicians and policy-makers have come to believe that they can defy public fears only at their own peril. However, while to be irrational with your own money may be to be foolhardy, to give in to guilty pleasure or to wallow in caprice, it is irresponsible to be irrational and unrealistic with other people’s money, particularly where public safety is concerned. In the end, it becomes a dereliction of duty that cannot be justified by political pressure, bureaucratic constraints or emotional drives. If officials in charge of providing for public safety are incapable of carrying out their jobs in a manner that provides the most safety for the money expended, they should frankly admit that they are being irresponsible – that they consider retaining their position to be more important than providing for public safety – or they should refuse to take the job in the first place. People who join the army or become firefighters accept the possibility that at some point they may be put in a position in which they are shot at or are required to enter a burning building. People who become decisionmakers should, in equal measure, acknowledge that, to carry out their job properly and responsibly, they may be required on occasion to make some difficult decisions – even ones that may be, or seem potentially to be, career-threatening (Stewart and Mueller 2018: Ch. 7).

Bibliography Boyle, Francis Anthony (1985), World Politics and International Law, Durham, NC: Duke University Press. Cronin, Audrey (2015), ‘ISIS is not a terrorist group’, Foreign Affairs, March/April. Cross, Phil (2014), ‘Senator Inhofe warns of potential terrorist attacks on U.S. soil’, 20 August, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Dozier, Kimberly (2015), ‘Spy general unloads on Obama’s ISIS war plan’, 27 January, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Fallows, James (2006), ‘Declaring victory’, Atlantic, September, pp. 60–73. Fox News Sunday (2014), 29 June. Froomkin, Dan (2014), ‘The congressional hyperbole caucus’, 10 September, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Gaddis, John Lewis (2012), George F. Kennan, New York: Penguin. Gilbert, Daniel (2006), ‘If only gay sex caused global warming’, Los Angeles Times, 2 July. Goldberg, Jeffrey (2016), ‘The Obama doctrine: The U.S. president talks through his hardest decisions about America’s role in the world’, Atlantic, April.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 403

23/10/18 12:45 PM

404

john mueller

Hagerty, James C. (1983), The Diary of James C. Hagerty: Eisenhower in Mid-Course, 1954– 1955, ed. by Robert H. Ferrell, Bloomington: Indiana University Press. Hoover, J. Edgar (1958), Masters of Deceit: The Story of Communism in America and How to Fight It, New York: Holt, Rinehart and Winston. Jaffe, Greg (2015), ‘What’s actually driving Obama’s “keep calm and carry on” ISIS strategy?’, 19 November, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Jervis, Robert (2001), ‘Was the Cold War a security dilemma?’, Journal of Cold War Studies, Winter, pp. 36–60. Johnson, A. (2016), ‘Drug overdose deaths pushed to another record high in Ohio’, 25 August, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Johnson, Robert H. (1997), Improbable Dangers: U.S. Conceptions of Threat in the Cold War and After, New York: St Martin’s. Liepman, Andrew and Philip Mudd (2016), ‘Lessons from the fifteen-year counterterrorism campaign’, CTC Sentinel, October. Mardini, Ramzy (2014), ‘The Islamic State threat is overstated’, 12 September, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Mastny, Vojtech (2006), ‘Introduction’, in Vojtech Mastny, Sven G. Holtsmark and Andreas Wenger (eds), War Plans and Alliances in the Cold War: Threat Perceptions in the East and West, London and New York: Routledge. Mayer, Jane (2008), The Dark Side: The Inside Story on How the War on Terror Turned into a War on American Ideals, New York: Doubleday. Mencken, H. L. (1949), A Mencken Chrestomathy, New York: Knopf. Mueller, John (2006), Overblown: How Politicians and the Terrorism Industry Inflate National Security Threats, and Why We Believe Them, New York: Free Press. Mueller, John (2010), Atomic Obsession: Nuclear Alarmism from Hiroshima to Al Qaeda, New York: Oxford University Press. Mueller, John (2011), ‘Questing for monsters to destroy’, in Melvyn Leffler and Jeffrey W. Legro (eds), In Uncertain Times: American Foreign Policy after the Berlin Wall and 9/11, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press, pp. 117–30. Mueller, John and Mark G. Stewart (2016a), Chasing Ghosts: The Policing of Terrorism, New York: Oxford University Press. Mueller, John and Mark Stewart (2016b), ‘Misoverestimating ISIS: Comparisons with Al-Qaeda’, Perspectives on Terrorism, August, pp. 32–41. Mueller, John and Mark G. Stewart (2017a), ‘Trends in Public Opinion on Terrorism’, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Mueller, John and Mark G. Stewart (2017b), ‘Misoverestimating terrorism’, in Michael S. Stohl (ed.), The Constructions of Terrorism, Oakland: University of California Press. Mueller, John and Mark G. Stewart (2018), Are We Safe Enough? Measuring and Assessing Aviation Security, Amsterdam, Elsevier. Risen, James (2014), Pay Any Price: Greed, Power, and Endless War, Boston: Houghton, Mifflin, Harcourt. Schneier, Bruce (2015), ‘Obama says terrorism is not an existential threat’, 3 February, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Shapiro, Jacob (2016), ‘A predictable failure: The political economy of the decline of the Islamic State’, CTC Sentinel, September. Shapiro, Jeremy (2016), ‘Why we think terrorism is scarier that it really is (and we probably always will)’, 28 March, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Slovic, Paul, Baruch Fischhoff and Sarah Lichtenstein (1980), ‘Facts and fears: Understanding perceived risk’, in R. C. Schwing and W. A. Albers (eds), Societal Risk Assessment: How Safe is Safe Enough?, New York: Plenum, pp. 181–216.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 404

23/10/18 12:45 PM

threat perception

405

Stewart, Mark G. and Robert E. Melchers (1997), Probabilistic Risk Assessment of Engineering Systems, London: Chapman & Hall. Stewart, Mark G. and John Mueller (2018), Are We Safe Enough? Measuring and Assessing Aviation Security, Amsterdam: Elsevier. Sunstein, Cass R. (2006), ‘Misfearing: A reply’, John M. Olin Program in Law and Economics, Working Paper no. 274, University of Chicago Law School. Walt, Stephen M. (1987), The Origins of Alliances, Ithaca, NY, and London: Cornell University Press. York, Chris (2015), ‘Islamic State terrorism is serious but we’ve faced even deadlier threats in the past’, 29 November, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Zenko, Micah (2014), ‘Exaggeration nation’, 12 November, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 405

23/10/18 12:45 PM

32 Political Realism and Russia State doctrine in three epochs David Kerr

Chapter Overview

T

his chapter reviews the ideas and values that have underpinned Russian statehood and Russia’s position in the system of states. It examines the historical legacies of the previous Russian states – the Russian Empire and the Soviet system – and concludes that there has been long-term resistance to embracing conventional Realist assumptions. In their self-conception and in their idea of Russia in the world, Russian leaders and intellectuals avoided the moral scepticism, primacy of national interest and logic of anarchy that typify Realist thinking. With the end of the Soviet experiment, Russia has been forced by a dual crisis – a crisis of identity and of power – to turn to Realism as doctrine and realpolitik as strategy. Russia insists upon its status and rights as a great power of the global era but doubts remain about where Russia is headed. Has Putinism – the Russian form of realpolitik – paid sufficient attention to strengthening the social and institutional bases of Russian power? Does the Russian assertion of global polycentrism imply a secure place for Russia as a great power or a period of rising challenges and declining relevance? *

*

*

Introduction Realism is both a theory of the state and a theory of the system of states. Traditions of Realism differ because they understand these two types of theory and their interaction in different ways. Part of the exceptionalism of Russian political thought is that, while arguments about the Russian state and Russia’s place in the system of states are longstanding, there has been persistent reluctance to develop a recognisably Russian tradition of Realism. Thus, Russian Idealism – humanist and religious – and Russian rejection of statism – Marxist, anarchist and nihilist – have been at least as prominent and influential as attempts to develop a Russian realism that would stand alongside that of Europe or America. Moreover, the contention about the nature of Russian statehood and Russia’s role in the world reached impasse and then crisis in the first decades of the twentieth century, and was ultimately subsumed within the revolutionary explosion of Soviet power. The Soviet theory of politics was intended not only to abolish all prevailing traditions of international politics but also to achieve

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 406

23/10/18 12:45 PM

russia

407

transcendence over the intellectual contradictions of the past – contradictions of people and state, nationalities and empire, religion and rationalism, realism and idealism were made redundant by Soviet theory and practice. Bourgeois Realism in this view was no more than a convoluted justification for class dictatorship within states and imperialist predation of strong states over weak internationally. Of course, the Soviet aspiration to escape/eradicate the world of realpolitik ran into constant difficulties, contradictions and compromises from its inception (Brest–Litovsk, Rapallo) through its maturity (Brezhnev doctrine) to its demise (Perestroika and New Thinking). The failure of Soviet statehood left Russian thinking on statehood and the states system in disarray. The era of internal and external disorientation was halted with the rise to dominance of Vladimir Putin and the class of derzhavniki (‘powerists’) that seized control of the state in the wake of the Yeltsin interregnum. So was this Realism triumphant? Had Russia finally accepted the imperatives of Realism in its state construction and strategy? Was the anxiety of the Western states about Putin’s realpolitik simply that he was too good at it? Or was the truth more complex – that Russia had tried every variant of statehood and strategy in the last 150 years – imperial, revolutionary and liberal – and had failed at each? Was the Realism of contemporary Russia at home and abroad not one of conviction but of necessity – the last resort of a declining power to maintain its status and credibility? Clearly, the diversity of Russian thinking on statehood and the states system is too complex and shifting a narrative to be dealt with effectively in a short essay, especially given the great schism in the history in this thinking produced by the October Revolution. I will confine my discussion to two problems only: first, what was the connection between statehood and strategy in Russia’s imperial and communist eras, and did Realism play a part in this?; and second, what has happened to Russian thinking about the state and the system of states in the thirty years since the Soviet system failed, and why did Realism prevail over Idealism in the shift from Lenin’s state to Putin’s?

Legacies Before considering why the Russian theory of statehood and states system differed from that in other countries, it is necessary to define certain core aspects of Realism with which to contrast Russian experience and thinking. For the sake of discussion, I will argue for three generic aspects of Realism: moral scepticism; primacy of national interest; and the logic of anarchy and balance of power. Moral scepticism means the limits of appealing to moral laws to arbitrate between states, given states’ egoism and assumptions of moral exclusivity. Primacy of national interest means that states should be organised to maximise national interest gains and that states should follow the course of action in their relations with other states most likely to achieve this. Logic of anarchy and balance of power mean that the absence of authority in international relations creates a collective action problem for states that is best overcome by ensuring that no state or group of states has a preponderant power that would allow them to impose their will on others. As will be seen, Russian imperial and Soviet political thinking failed some or all of these tests for Realist thinking. Tsygankov (2013) argues that Russian international theory has three grand traditions – Westernism, civilisationism and statism – and that each of these reflects different ideas about the principles on which Russian statehood should be founded and how

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 407

23/10/18 12:45 PM

408

david kerr

Russia should relate to the world. There may be a temptation to connect these traditions to the Euro-American traditions of liberalism, normativism and realism but the fit is imprecise and in some senses misleading. Russian Westernism does have its origins in Enlightenment thinking and sought to maintain a connection between Russian political change and the progressive politics of the rest of Europe. But Russia did not develop certain key characteristics of Western political tradition. For example, Russia did not develop an extensive civil society in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries but instead developed the social formation known as intelligentsia – a group of intellectuals and artists who had a responsibility for leading the debate on social progress, political reform and the Russian national idea (Hamburg 2010: 44–69). Some of the intelligentsia assumed that Russia was as much a part of the Enlightenment as any other European society – examples would be the theorist A. I. Herzen or novelist I. S. Turgenev – but many others were committed to the demands of civilisationism and exceptionalism.1 Russian civilisationism was, for most of the nineteenth century, the dominant political tradition and the way that Russia explained itself to the world. Giant intellectual figures like L. N. Tolstoy and F. M. Dostoyevsky advanced visions of Russia as a special kind of society with unique qualities, though they located this civilisational character and mission in different places: Tolstoy in Christian populism and Dostoyevsky in Slavic spirituality and ethnicity. In the civilisationist tradition, the Russian state was less important than the Slavic and Christian identity of Russia. Moreover, the statist idea of Russia was under almost continuous assault throughout the nineteenth century. Russia produced a whole spectrum of radical and absolutist political movements, many of which were committed to violent political change, through either individual acts of terrorism or mass insurrection. The imperial state responded by standard methods of repression, and at certain points extreme reaction. Reform was continually debated but the doctrines of orthodoxy and autocracy remained unchanged throughout the nineteenth century: Russia was destined to greatness because it was a Christ-given state and the emperor represented this unquestionable authority in human form. But none of these claims about the Russian state in the world conformed to the assumptions of Realism, and most justifications for the empire and its continued expansion were driven by religious, ethnic and monarchist beliefs, and not the moral scepticism and national interest calculus that Realism expects. Of course, the Russian state still followed some of the expectations of the international politics of the Imperial Age. The imperial system of Europe was an extension and an intensification of the European balance of power and Russia accepted the logic of competitive empire-building. It was not Russia’s acceptance of the logic of empirebuilding that set it apart but the way it fulfilled this logic. As Lieven (2003) makes clear, most European empires were built on a European national core and an Asian–African periphery, and imperial governments carefully managed the hierarchical relationship – racial, economic, cultural – between core and periphery. But Russia had never had a core nation – it had been an imperial system of territorial expansion from its earliest inception. The Russian state was already multinational in the middle of the eighteenth century and expanded into the Middle East and Asia from that base. This model of continental empire-building, adding lands and peoples in each direction – south, east and west, blurred the boundaries and relationships between core and periphery, and even changed the identity of the empire: Russians were in a minority by the end of the nineteenth century and the Russian state of that time had as many Muslim subjects as

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 408

23/10/18 12:45 PM

russia

409

the Ottoman Empire (Saunders 2010: 34). Russian tri-continental expansion (it might have been four continents if Alaska had not been abandoned) changed both the internal and international logic of the empire. State ideologists became drawn to the notion of Eurasianism – neither European nor Asian in geography, values or orientation but a unique position, and potentially a transcendence, between East and West. This was the empire at its farthest reach from the idea of national interest: just as Russia had never had a core nation to which imperial territory was joined, Russia never had a fixed national idea or set of national interests. The empire was too vast, too diverse and too ungovernable to be contained within an idea as simplistic as national interest. Of course, the vast extent of the empire disguised the critical issue: imperial overload from governing its diverse territories and the rising divisions and tensions within a society that lacked a coherent identity beyond the decaying ideologies of orthodoxy and autocracy. Russia’s commitment to maintaining and managing the imperial balance of power in Europe and beyond explained its participation in the alliance system of the late nineteenth century and early twentieth century, and the World War that this system generated. Russia could not stay out of World War One without admitting that it was not the Great Power that it believed itself to be. Yet it was not Russia that chose war – others chose it and Russia was dragged into the maelstrom. This fateful decision exposed the weaknesses and divisions of Russian society. After the Tsar’s abdication in February 1917, the Provisional Government stayed in the war, fearing the penalties that Germany would impose in any peace treaty. This opened the political front to revolutionary parties advocating peace and radical social change, which the Bolsheviks most ably exploited (Westwood 1993: 230–5). October 1917 produced a schism in the international system that was to endure for most of the twentieth century. What became known as Leninist internationalism had several core components that varied in salience and significance throughout the history of international communism. What is most important to recognise about this body of thought and practice, however, was that it was neither a theory of the states system nor a theory of revolutionary social change but an attempt to amalgamate the two: to explain state behaviour and alignments from Marxist theory and to explain the expansion and development of the socialist world order through strategies of war, anti-imperialism and state seizure. The most difficult aspect of Leninism, as interpreted and applied by his successors J. V. Stalin, N. I. Khrushchev and L. N. Brezhnev, was whether this was an effective operational code for Soviet strategy: was Marxist–Leninist theory a sound basis on which to interpret the behaviour and alignment of states? Was anti-imperialism and state seizure a sound basis on which to organise an international socialist camp that was capable of challenging the capitalist state system?2 Soviet experience of this varied from the inaccurate to the near catastrophic. Well-known examples are Stalin’s failure to understand the nature and potential of Chinese communism and the disastrous attempt to forge a totalitarian alliance with Hitler’s Germany. Even in the years of its maximum power and extension, 1945–85, the Soviet Union remained a contradictory superpower. In the system of states, it achieved a centrality and dominance that had seemed impossible for Russia at the beginning of the century. At the same time, it remained committed to the ideology and political alignments of a revolutionary power. Rational calculations of state and national interest were intermixed with ideological calculations of socialist solidarity and the belief in strengthening

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 409

23/10/18 12:45 PM

410

david kerr

the socialist camp by building Leninist states in the developing regions of the world. A key term used at the height of Soviet power was the ‘correlation of forces’ (sootnoshenie sil); this referred neither to the balance of power nor to the alignment of states and their political–ideological systems but to the conjunction of the two. It was intended to be a ‘grand vision’ that informed and described the success of socialism as a world movement. Sometimes the correlation of forces seemed to have great successes: geopolitical progress, revolutionary solidarity and the advancement of the Leninist states system moved forward together. The Vietnamese revolution is the obvious example. But at other points these forces failed completely, leading to geopolitical reversal, revolutionary failure and the collapse of Moscow-affiliated regimes. The ill-fated attempt to extend Leninism into Afghanistan is the clear case. Soviet ideologists seemed unable to explain or predict how either successes or failures would occur. Therefore, despite the fact the Soviet system was supposed to be the antithesis of the imperial system it overthrew, there was a surprising number of parallels in the thinking and experience of the two Russo-centric systems. Both were reluctant to embrace moral scepticism as a basis for interstate relationships: each believed that their state represented some superior good that gave Holy Russia or Revolutionary Russia a special significance and mission in the system of states. This transcendent value was used to justify and organise an international network of societies and states that were seen as being voluntary adherents to Russia’s cause but with Russia as evident leader and teacher of the others. This reached its culmination in the Brezhnev doctrine: the principle that, once a country had joined the socialist family of states, it could leave only with the approval of the other states, and especially the ‘parent’ in Moscow. As such, the Soviet system shared with the imperial system a difficulty in defining where the national idea or national interest ended and internationalist ideas and solidarities began: both states were able to justify the organisation and expansion of the state only through appeals to ideologies and affiliations that transcended, and often required the rejection of, the nation. Finally, both states were active participants in the balance of power in Eurasia and, by the second half of the twentieth century, at the global level. But participation in the balance of power was never justified by crude strategies of militarism and geopolitics – the Russian view of its statehood and international status always required that strategic and geopolitical objectives were buried within broader and superior international purposes. Terminologies such as correlation of forces were developed to define the scale of the international struggle but also to distinguish Soviet purposes from crude balance-of-power calculations. As this suggests, the Soviet system of international politics required what might be termed ideological maintenance. As well as the usual mechanisms for holding strategic and political affiliations together, Soviet leaderships had to pay particular attention to problems of socialist solidarity, to the interaction between communist parties, and even to how the doctrinal works of Marx, Lenin and others were interpreted and deployed in international politics. This became even more important after the socialist system went bipolar and the Chinese leadership began to challenge Moscow actively on the international stage. This is the primary context from which to view M. S. Gorbachev’s attempt to advance reconstruction (Perestroika) in Soviet socialism and new political thinking (novoe politicheskoe myshlenie) in Soviet international relations (Gorbachev 1988). It is correct to describe Gorbachev’s position as idealist in two senses. First, Gorbachev thought that the evident problems in mature socialism were

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 410

23/10/18 12:45 PM

russia

411

due to fundamental issues arising from the prevailing ideas and institutions. Renewing socialism to meet real-world challenges meant rethinking ideas and institutions within and between socialist countries, including ensuring that the populations of these countries had a greater say in how socialism developed. Second, Gorbachev had confidence in the socialist system as a system of beliefs, values and doctrines. Even though the socialist system had coercive agencies, it was not these agencies that held the socialist system together: it was the shared belief system and the shared histories of these countries. Controversy persists to this day as to what went wrong with the objectives and methods of the Soviet reformers. Was Gorbachev’s idealism justified? Was he right that there was no way to keep ‘really existing socialism’ viable without fundamental reform of its ideas and institutions? Or was his central assumption that there was such a thing as reform socialism wrong, that attempts to change core facets of Leninism would lead not to reconstruction but to state dissolution? In China, they have, since 1989, kept firmly to the latter conclusion – that any attempt to alter the core aspects of Leninism (known in China as the cardinal principles of socialism) would lead to state failure and international humiliation; therefore Leninism must be defended at all costs. In Russia, it has been the first conclusion that has gained support – that the Gorbachev leadership failed to give adequate care and consideration to the necessities of power within the Soviet system and to the imperatives sustaining Russia’s place in the international system. This is part of the basis for Russia’s contemporary Realism, therefore – as with Realisms in other countries, part of the justification for the Realist position is a failed and discredited attempt at idealism.

Russian Realism Today In the sudden and unexpected implosion of the Soviet state and its system of alliances in 1989–91, questions about how Russian statehood and foreign relations were to redefine and reorientate themselves were unavoidable, not least because many of the prevailing assumptions were lost or undermined in the post-Soviet condition. There was a brief interregnum of not more than five years in which it seemed a new Westernism might be the dominant paradigm and orientation, but this assumption was predicated more on internal dynamics and determinants than external. That is, in the condition of state failure, the primary imperative was to deliver a system of values, institutions and core social relationships, which would make Russia governable, prosperous and a normal member of the Western-defined international society. The Westernisers in the government of B. N. Yeltsin tied the success of internal reform (known as ‘transition’) to the success of integration towards the West, but they held sway only in Yeltsin’s first administration, 1991–6. By the second administration, the extent of Russia’s state degeneration was apparent and the crisis of domestic transition was tied to Russia’s difficulty in finding a place in the system of states that reflected its traditions, status and ambitions. Yeltsin resigned midway through his second term in December 1999, to be replaced by his Prime Minister, V. V. Putin. In its international strategy, Russia faced a dual crisis in the 1990s: a crisis of identity and a crisis of power. The identity crisis arose because the state that ended in 1991 was not just the Soviet state but also the imperial state that had preceded it for 400 years. Russia’s geography, demography, economy and external frontiers were drastically redrawn, necessitating the reinvention of the Russian national idea, national interests

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 411

23/10/18 12:45 PM

412

david kerr

and orientations.3 Russian leaderships, elites and scholars were firm in their commitment to the inevitability of Russia’s great power-ness (velikoderzhavnost’) but this still left unknown what kind of great power Russia would be and what kind of great power strategy it would pursue. In parallel with the identity crisis, there was also a power crisis, since many of the instruments and alignments on which Soviet power had been built were broken or lost in the course of the system shift. Rebuilding the bases of Russian power so that it matched Russia’s self-conception would be difficult not only because of the need to find new ways of being powerful but also because it was clear that the nature of Great Powers evolved with the international system. Russia had been a great power in the eighteenth, nineteenth and twentieth centuries but there was little point in trying to resurrect these forms of great power: Russia would have to find the right way to be a great power in the twenty-first century. Contemporary Russian Realism – it might also be called Putinism – has been the attempt to deal with these twin and connected crises. Since the crises were one of identity and one of power, it seems sensible to discuss these topics as the identity of Russian realism and the power of Russian realism. Both of these can be framed as a search – for identity and for power – requiring that we also evaluate how far Russian realism has progressed in its objectives. In conditions in which there was a pessimism about the possibilities of Western membership – except among the small and beleaguered faction of Russian liberals – it was inevitable that there would be a resurgence of civilisationism and statism in Russia’s identity, and indeed an attempt to tie the two together. This was all the more possible because there was finally a Russian nation-state revealed once the European, Caucasian and Central Asian peripheries of the predecessor states were removed. Russia was still multi-ethnic – around 80 per cent of the population of 145 million was ethnic Russian – but from Kaliningrad to Kamchatka all territories were seen as Russian lands and the only colonial frontier that remained was the Caucasus. Almost all variants of civilisationism reasserted themselves to address the question of who the new Russians were – orthodoxy, Slavophilism and pan-Slavism, Eurasianism, as well as many kinds of imperial and Soviet nostalgias. But instead of these social identities defining the Russian nation-state, the flow of identity politics has been rather in the opposing direction: from the state’s identity towards the society. Some of the civilisational discourse has appeared in the statements of Putin and other officials, but this has been in the service of the statist project. The main reason for this is that the civilisational discourse is often inward-looking and backward-looking, and does not serve the state’s purposes in international strategy for the global era. A good example is the neo-Eurasianism of the current leadership. If Eurasianism is understood as a purely geopolitical and geo-economic perspective, then Putin is a committed Eurasianist; but traditional Eurasianism was not solely a geopolitical perspective and defined Russia as a unique civilisation that was neither Western or Eastern, but different and apart from both. This notion of Eurasianism persists in contemporary Russia but is rejected by state doctrine that is clearly Western in its identity orientation, as expressed, for example, in the Foreign Policy Concept of 2013. Given this insistence that Russia was part of the Western world, it is important to consider the reasons for Russia’s identity collision with the Western states in the years after 2001. This can be examined in three terms: defeatism, parity and great power rights. Defeatism means that the Russian leadership and some part of the Russian population believe that the Euro-Atlantic states, and the USA in particular, have conducted

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 412

23/10/18 12:45 PM

russia

413

a twenty-year campaign to get Russia to accept the mindset and status of a defeated power. There are different kinds of defeated power in the US-centred system: those like Germany and Japan, which were occupied by the USA and had this status imposed upon them, and those that were defeated by decline – states who started off as the partner of the USA but through loss of power and status ended up as a subordinate of the USA. The UK is the obvious example. The Russian argument is that neither of these applies to contemporary Russia – it was not defeated in war and it has not declined to the extent that it is unable to maintain and deploy an independent foreign and security policy. In consequence of its status as an undefeated power, Russia expects to be treated with parity in its relations with the Euro-Atlantic states. Russia is aware that certain kinds of hierarchy exist in the Western system but Russia refuses to accept a position that offers less than parity for its interests, its values and, ultimately, its identity. A further problem in this dimension is that, under Putin, Russia’s identity has to be that of a great power, which means that Russia has special rights and responsibilities, particularly with regard to the post-Soviet space. It has been this last problem, even more than the preceding two, that has given rise to the tension in relations between America and Russia. Washington cannot tolerate any special rights and responsibilities other than its own or those advanced by US-centred organisations such as the North Atlantic Treaty Organization (NATO). In this conflicting logic – defeatism, parity and the struggle for special rights – lie the origins of the current geopolitical struggle in the former Soviet space, culminating in the Ukraine crisis. The identity dimensions of Russian realism are mirrored in the power dimensions. As noted, this involves consideration of the connection between Russian great power status and changes to the international system. Russian realism today bears strong resemblance to the Western school of structural realism precisely because it is focused on categories of power, on distributions of power, and the contention between defensive strategies and structures and offensive strategies and structures.4 Putin and the technocrats that run the civilian ministries are all committed modernisers, and much of Putin’s rhetoric refers to Russia’s need to modernise in order to remain competitive at the global level in key categories of power. The controversy here, of course, is whether the Kremlin, with the tremendous political and economic resources that it has at its disposal, has put in place and supported the social and economic institutions that would allow Russia to remain globally competitive. For example, is there a Russian civil society that can act as a partner to the Russian state in its ambitions? In the debate over international power structures, the predominant tendency has been to emphasise the contradictions between unipolarity and polycentrism. Russia has emerged as the sternest critic of a unipolar world order and its geopolitical consequences, as in Putin’s well-known 2007 Munich Security Conference speech (Putin 2007). US unipolarity is condemned not only because it is dangerous but also because it is a failing system in any case. The international power structure is increasingly polycentric and any one state that sought to control these polycentric cores would fast exhaust itself. Therefore, attempts at unipolarity on part of the USA risk abandoning the benefits of a balanced polycentric system for an illusory single core based on Washington’s interests and values (Putin 2015). The polycentric vision – and resistance to a failing unipolarity – have important consequences for the way the Kremlin has conducted its regional and global strategies. It has underpinned the Russian strategy for the development of Russian–Eurasian relations. Russia’s attempts to integrate

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 413

23/10/18 12:45 PM

414

david kerr

and coordinate Central Eurasia on its own terms were not simply a reflection of great power identity and interest but also the Russian contribution and response to movements towards a polycentric order. Russian resistance towards unipolar actions – NATO westward expansion into Central Eurasia, regime changes in Iraq, Libya and Syria – was predicated on the same thinking. It is also clear from official statements and analytical commentaries that Russia draws clear distinction between offensive and defensive structures and strategies. The US unipolar strategy and agencies are continuously identified as offensive in nature and logic, whereas Russia is seen by officials, and apparently in public opinion, as operating on a defensive logic.5 Beyond Eurasia, Russia has sought to reassert its presence in global regions after a twentyyear retreat and became the strongest advocate of the BRICS (Brazil, Russia, India, China and South Africa) movement, which is seen as both emblematic and productive of the new global polycentrism. The contradictory logics of unipolarity versus polycentrism in Russia’s great power strategy obviously contain considerable risks for Russia. Two are obvious. Can Russia afford a sustained confrontation with the USA? A central part of the promise of ending the Cold War was for Russia to end its isolation and become a more integrated member of international society. Russia’s alienation from the Euro-Atlantic states might not lead to reorientation towards alternative partners but towards renewed isolation. Even more than the sanctions applied to Russia as a result of the Ukraine annexation, this might be a high cost to pay. Second, let us assume that Russian officials and analysts are correct and the Western-centric world order is in decline, in terms of both its power and its institutional features. Is Russia well prepared for the post-Western world? In fact, the new polycentrism will generate very strong pressures and influences on Russia, which its state, society and institutions may not be sufficiently strong or adaptive to deal with. This is especially the case with the strategic, economic and technological pressures that will be generated from Asia in this century, to which Russia is particularly exposed. Will Russia’s much-vaunted and much-prized independence in foreign and security policy be able to withstand these pressures? There is a real issue in Russia’s espousal of polycentrism of ‘being careful what you wish for’.

Conclusion: Putin’s Russia as a Normal Realist State It is clear that Russia’s journey towards becoming a normal realist state with a normal realist logic of international relations has been long and convoluted. Only in the post-Cold War era did Russia adopt the moral scepticism typical of realist states. Both the imperial and Soviet systems rejected moral scepticism, believing that their state represented a superior moral and historical path that did not require compromise with such cynical and mundane ideas. Today’s Russia has accepted moral scepticism in full complement, and is particularly resentful of American insistence that Russia accept America’s right to define what is moral or not in international affairs. Equally clear and decisive in its break with the past is the emphasis on national interests. The Russian nation-state and its national interests appear in much clearer definition than has been historically possible and national interest is accepted as the essential foundation for strategy. The final element that identifies Russia as normally realist is the focus on the relationship between anarchy and balance of power in state doctrine. Russia has tied its aspirations to be a twenty-first-century great power on rejection of US

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 414

23/10/18 12:45 PM

russia

415

unipolarity and support for Eurasian and global polycentrism. This leads Russia into geopolitical competition with the US-centred system pushing into Eurasia and into alignment with a Chinese leadership that wishes to assert a Chinese-led centre in Asia (Xi 2014). Russia believes the price of this confrontation with the USA is worth paying because the dynamics of polycentrism support it and because the costs of being a great power are always worth bearing when contrasted with the costs of ceasing to be a great power. Since realism is always a theory or ideology of the state and a theory or ideology of the states system, we can express two concerns with regard to Putinism as Russia’s great power realism: one on the state side and one on the system side. On the state side, we need to ask if Putinism is an escape from the post-Soviet condition or a trap? In the dual crisis of identity and power that Russia faced in the post-Soviet condition, the Kremlin has been much more successful in reconstructing the image of Russia as a great power and much less successful in building the necessary kinds of power to make Russia a successful society – indeed, it has used the image and ideology of velikoderzhavnost’ to disguise the failings in state and state-society construction.6 In this way, Putinism may yet prove to be a trap and not an escape. On the system side, as noted, a great deal depends on whether Russia is right to welcome the onset of the post-Western world and the rise of global polycentrism. It is clear why China favours this, but if realism is the doctrine that privileges national interest above any other good and calls for careful attention to the struggle for a balance of power, has Russia made the right choices? How realistic is Russian Realism?

Notes 1. This and the following comments are based on Berlin (2008). 2. For the definitive analysis of these problems, see Light (1988). 3. There is a very helpful overview of the tendencies in Russian international relations at this time in the special issue of Communist and Post-Communist Studies (2004). 4. The other tendency has been an interest in neoclassical realism, which allows focus on the particularities of Russian statehood. See discussion in Romanova (2012). 5. It was also notable that Russia gained support for its interpretation of the US actions as offensive and its response as great power defence from the leading Western theorist of offensive realism. See Mearsheimer (2014). 6. In a poll conducted by the Levada Center in March 2014, 63 per cent of respondents said they believed Russia was a great power. A very narrow majority – 48 per cent to 47 per cent – thought that it was better to live in a great power that was respected and feared than in a country that was not a great power but had a high quality of life. See Vedomosti (2014).

Bibliography Berlin, Isaiah (2008) Russian Thinkers, ed. by Henry Hardy and Aileen Kelly, London: Penguin. Communist and Post-Communist Studies (2004), ‘New Directions in Russian International Studies’, vol. 37, no. 1. ‘Concept of the Foreign Policy of the Russian Federation’ (2013), approved by President of the Russian Federation V. Putin on 12 February, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 415

23/10/18 12:45 PM

416

david kerr

Gorbachev, M. S. (1988), Perestroika i Novoe Myshlenie dlya nashei strany i dlya vsego mira, Moscow: Politizdat. Hamburg, G. M. (2010), ‘Russian intelligentsias’, in William Leatherbarrow and Derek Offord (eds), A History of Russian Thought, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 44–69. Leatherbarrow, William and Derek Offord (2010), A History of Russian Thought, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Lieven, Dominic (2003), Empire: The Russian Empire and its Rivals from the Sixteenth Century to the Present, London: Yale University Press. Light, Margot (1988), The Soviet Theory of International Relations, Brighton: Wheatsheaf. Mearsheimer, John J. (2014), ‘Why the Ukraine crisis is the West’s fault’, Foreign Affairs, 18 August. Putin, V. V. (2007), ‘Speech to the 2007 Munich Conference on Security Policy’, 10 February, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Putin, V. V. (2015), ‘Plenary session of the 19th St Petersburg International Economic Forum’, 19 June, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Romanova, Tatiana (2012), ‘Neoclassical realism and today’s Russia’, Russia in Global Affairs, 7 October. Saunders, David (2010), ‘The political and social order’, in William Leatherbarrow and Derek Offord (eds), A History of Russian Thought, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 17–43. Tsygankov, Andrei P. (2013), Russia’s Foreign Policy: Change and Continuity in National Identity, Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littlefield. Vedomosti (2014), ‘Velikoderzhavnost’ vmesto dostatka’ [Greatpower-ness in place of wealth], 17 March, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Westwood, J. N. (1993), Endurance and Endeavour: Russian History, 1812–1992, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Xi Jinping (2014), ‘Xi Jinping: Jiji shuli Yazhou anquan guan, gong chuan anquan hezuo xin jumian’ [Xi Jinping: Actively establish the Asian security concept to create new progress in security cooperation], 21 May, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 416

23/10/18 12:45 PM

33 Political Realism and China Cultural political realism with dialectical means Derek M. C. Yuen

Chapter Overview

C

hinese political realism is a form of cultural realism, though this may well be applicable to the rest of non-Western political realisms discussed in this volume. Chinese realism is by no means close to its Western counterpart, except, that is, for its basic assumptions and worldview. Sun Tzu (Sun Zi) is a realist but he stresses nonviolent stratagem and preservation, not destruction, of the enemy; Lao Tzu (Lao Zi) is also a realist yet he emphasises the advantage of the weak and flexible. Only Han Fei Tzu (Han Fei Zi), nowadays more famously known as the Chinese Machiavelli, can be regarded as a purebred realist, somewhat in the Western mould. His realist thought and practices, however, were quickly vilified and shelved with the establishment of the Chinese Empire and the subsequent rise of Confucianism. This chapter examines the development of the Chinese realist tradition during the Spring and Autumn period (770–403 bc) and the Warring States period (403–221 bc). It illustrates how realism was reduced to pan-moralism during China’s imperial era (221 bc–ad 1911) and how it later came back in a form of pragmatism in revolutionary and modern China (1911– ) under Western and Marxist influence and with the revival of Chinese realist traditions. *

*

*

The Founders: Sun Tzu, Lao Tzu and Han Fei Tzu As Alastair Iain Johnston puts it, Chinese strategic thought shares many of the same assumptions as parabellum or hard realpolitik worldviews found in some variants of Western realism. That is, warfare is viewed as a relatively constant element in human interaction, stakes in conflicts with the adversary are viewed in zero-sum terms, and pure violence is highly efficacious for dealing with threats that the enemy is predisposed to make. (Johnston 1995: 30) His view is no doubt right about Chinese strategic thought and realism, for the advents of Sun Tzu, Lao Tzu and Han Fei Tzu all took place during the Spring and Autumn

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 417

23/10/18 12:45 PM

418

derek m. c. yuen

period and the Warring States period, two of the most notable times of war and upheaval in Chinese history. Yet it is equally true that any civilisation that has undergone such an exceedingly anarchic period will almost definitely have developed some realist thought. It is also important to note that the Chinese realist traditions were established prior to the unification of China under the Qin Dynasty in 221 bc, in a setting which bears more resemblance to a multipolar Europe than a unipolar Asia with Imperial China as the sole great power. While the birth of Chinese political realism appears just as natural as that of Western realism, what is really perplexing is the fact that the ‘Chinese have been shrewd practitioners of Realpolitik and students of a strategic doctrine distinctly different from the strategy and diplomacy that found favor in the West’ (Kissinger 2011: 22). Henry Kissinger tries to account for the contrast by looking into the respective intellectual games favoured by each civilisation – chess for the West and wei qi (or go in Japanese) for China. He then summarises that chess produces single-mindedness whereas wei qi generates strategic flexibility, and that this very aspect then differentiates Western and Chinese realisms (Kissinger 2011: 23–5). Kissinger has a point here but this is hardly substantial. Among the definitive analyses of the Chinese realist tradition, ‘A Combined Study of Sun Tzu, Lao Tzu, and Han Fei Tzu’ (‘孫老韓合說’), written by Chinese philosopher Li Zehou (李澤厚), is by far the most successful in examining the three ancient masters and philosophers who laid the foundation of Chinese political realism in a coherent manner (Li Zehou 2000: 76–106). By putting the three masters on the same plane, one can clearly see the path of development of Chinese realist thought from Sun Tzu to Lao Tzu to Han Fei Tzu. This helps clear the doubts about at least three things: first, contrary to the long-established view that Lao Tzu’s Tao Te Ching (that is, Lao Tzu the book) preceded The Art of War, new forms of evidence suggest not only that the latter preceded the former, but also that Tao Te Ching indeed has augmented Sun Tzu’s military dialectics by reapplying his approach at the political and philosophical levels. This helps explain why the political and philosophical dialectics put forward in Tao Te Ching bear a strong resemblance to the military dialectics used in the work of Sun Tzu (see Ho Ping-ti 2002; Li Zehou 2000). Second, it is evident that the thought of the three masters has one core element in common – extensive application of dialectics. With this element at work, it becomes unsurprising that, unlike Western realist practices, Sun Tzu stresses non-violent stratagem and preservation of the enemy, and Lao Tzu the advantage of the weak and flexible, for they regard the whole of reality as a regulated and continuous process that stems purely from the interaction of the factors in play (which are at once opposed and complementary: namely, the famous yin and yang) (Jullien 1996: 15). And Han Fei Tzu practically coined the term maodun (矛盾, literally spear and shield – today the most commonly used phrase for contradiction in Chinese). This illuminates why it is possible that the Chinese realists could arrive at completely different or opposite solutions when dealing with practical problems, and no doubt this carries more weight than merely explaining Chinese realism with the case of wei qi. Third, having learned about the constructive use of dialectics in war from The Art of War, Li Zehou realises that Chinese dialectics is highly unlikely to be derived from dialogue, as is the case in the Western tradition. Rather, Chinese dialectics is most likely to come into existence from military experiences: hence it remains practical and utilitarian in

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 418

23/10/18 12:45 PM

china

419

nature and has highly significant empirical value (Li Zehou 2000: 83). This practical and empirical orientation had a huge impact on Chinese thought. Thus ‘the Chinese sage never conceived of a contemplative activity that was pure knowledge, possessing an end in itself, or that itself represented the supreme end and was altogether disinterested’ (Jullien 1996: 15). Nor did Chinese thought construct a world of ideal forms, archetypes or pure essences that are separate from reality. Instead, order is not perceived as coming from a model that one can fix one’s eyes on and apply to things – it is entirely contained within the course of reality, which it directs in an immanent fashion, ensuring its viability (Jullien 1996: 15). It has been viability and efficacy that truly matter, which constitute the real point of departure for Chinese political realism and for the sages, politicians and generals being cold, calculating and rational in the first place, in order to assess the situation correctly and to make life-and-death judgements and decisions effectively.

Sun Tzu: ‘Interest’ in Chinese Realist Terms To begin with, we should look more closely at Sun Tzu’s treatment of the concept of interest (利 li) to have a better grasp of Chinese realism and its underlying assumptions. As the father of Chinese military dialectics, Sun Tzu never solely determines interest without looking at its opposite: [I]f one is not fully cognizant of the evils of waging war, he cannot be fully cognizant either of how to turn it to best account [his best interest, li]. (Sun Tzu 1994b: 107–8) Armed contest can be both a source of advantage [li] and of danger. (Sun Tzu 1994b: 129) [T]he deliberations of the wise commander are sure to assess jointly both advantages and disadvantages. In taking full account of what is advantageous, he can fulfill his responsibilities; in taking full account of what is disadvantageous, his difficulties become resolvable. (Sun Tzu 1994b: 135) The implication of the above is clear: interest is never evaluated in absolute terms, and hence interest, no matter whether in terms of power or of wealth, can never be the sole governing principle of military and strategic activities. Such two-sidedness of the concept has given rise to two of Sun Tzu’s schemes, the first of which is the principle of ‘preservation’ (quan 全) in The Art of War: Thus one who excels at employing the military subjugates other people’s armies without engaging in battle, captures other people’s fortified cities without attacking them, and destroys other people’s states without prolonged fighting. He must fight under Heaven with the paramount aim of ‘preservation’. Thus his weapons will not become dull, and the gains [li] can be preserved. This is the strategy for planning offensives. (Sun Tzu 1994a: Ch. 3, 177) As gain or interest (that is, li) is not something that should be maximised or sought after in absolute terms (or it could backfire), Sun Tzu’s emphasis has turned to limiting

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 419

23/10/18 12:45 PM

420

derek m. c. yuen

the damage caused in order to preserve the gains won in the war, through which he looks beyond the war to the subsequent peace – the key of winning the peace. Here interest stands for a higher purpose, carries a grand strategic meaning and represents interests at their highest level. Another scheme derived from Sun Tzu’s understanding of the concept of interest is indeed one of the core ideas of The Art of War: Therefore, in warfare rely on deceptive maneuvers to establish your ground, calculate advantages [li] in deciding your movements, and divide up and consolidate your forces to make your strategic changes. (Sun Tzu 1994b: 130) These lines encapsulate Sun Tzu’s operational code in military operations, which is purely instrumental and strategic in nature – at strategic and operational levels, the Chinese concept of interest has regained its realist face and returned to its calculating mode. While interests or advantages are important in deciding one’s moves, it plays a more important role in manipulating the enemy’s move in Sun Tzu’s scheme. And only through this can the cold calculation of Chinese realism be fully utilised. There are a number of places where Sun Tzu demonstrates how this can be done: Thus one who excels at warfare compels men and is not compelled by other men. In order to cause the enemy to come of their own volition, extend some [apparent] profit. In order to prevent the enemy from coming forth, show them [the potential] harm. (Sun Tzu 1994a: 191) [S]ubjugate the feudal lords with potential harm; labor the feudal lords with numerous affairs; and have the feudal lords race after profits. (Sun Tzu 1994a: 203) The overarching scheme to which the concept of interest is subordinated is called ‘shaping’ or ‘moving’ the enemy (形 hsing/xing): Thus one who excels at moving the enemy deploys in a configuration (hsing/xing) to which the enemy must respond. He offers something that the enemy must seize. With profits he moves them, with the foundation [forces] he awaits them. (Sun Tzu 1994a: 188) Sun Tzu’s scheme of shaping the enemy has fully incorporated the concept of interest, taking it to a higher system for the sake of manipulating and controlling the enemy. In this higher system, the concept is not only two-sided, as in any contradictory pair, but also further tailored to two different sets for one’s own use and the consumption of the enemy: Men all know the disposition (hsing/xing) by which we attain victory, but no one knows the configuration (hsing/xing) through which we control the victory. (Sun Tzu 1994a: 193) The same applies to the concept of interest, for there is one kind of interest for one’s own assessment of the situation and another specifically for controlling the enemy.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 420

23/10/18 12:45 PM

china

421

As the Chinese concept of interest alone could have this many variations, it is highly precarious to substitute Western realism and its assumptions for the Chinese ones. If we were to capture Sun Tzu’s thought in the lens of realism, we would say that his understanding of human nature and reality is so dispassionate and penetrating that he could be highly adaptive to unfolding circumstances, shape and manipulate the enemy’s perception and facilitate the transformation of the enemy so that the situation would become favourable to his side.

Lao Tzu: Attaining Efficacy with Dialectics As mentioned above, Tao Te Ching, the Taoist canon, has elevated Sun Tzu’s military dialectics and non-violent stratagem to the political and philosophical levels, and the primacy of politics in The Art of War makes this transformation even more straightforward. Given that Chinese realist thought and dialectics originated from military experience, viability and efficacy are of prime concern. And Tao Te Ching further utilises dialectics and takes it to a new level, offering a new paradigm that would enable the weak to defeat the strong, thereby providing a guide that could be used in almost any form of struggle. While Tao Te (dao de, 道德) as a Chinese term generally stands for morals and virtues, Tao Te Ching (or Classic of the Way and of Virtue) effectively has nothing to do with morals or virtues. Here virtue should not be understood in the moral sense, as a disposition to act in accordance with the good. . . . Virtue should therefore be understood in a different sense, one that relates not to how things ought to be, but rather to effectiveness: it is a quality that can engender a particular effect or that is capable of producing it. (Jullien 1996: 93) To paraphrase Jullien, virtue is interpreted by the verb that means ‘to obtain’, a homonym that has become a synonym: ‘virtue’ is something that is efficient (Jullien 1996: 93). Hence Tao Te Ching should be more precisely known as Classic of the Way and How to Obtain It, with a clear orientation of efficacy that shapes the Taoist methodology. The Taoist methodology, which stresses being weak, flexible and humble, and performing non-action (無為wuwei), is one of the most baffling Chinese ideas to the West, yet it forms an inseparable part of Chinese realism. By embracing Tao, sages draw on contrary means to attain their goals, providing them with an advantage and additional methods for dealing with complex situations. Yet it would be a mistake to focus only on the use of contrary means alone, without taking into account the key logic behind it. Being weak, flexible and humble, and performing non-action are all about setting the right conditions to unfold the desired effects and efficacy. The need for humility, for instance, is neither moral nor psychological; it is purely strategic (Jullien 1996: 116). Likewise, far from advocating disengagement from human affairs and from the world, the non-action of Lao Tzu teaches one how to behave in this world in order to be successful (Jullien 1996: 85). ‘Do nothing yet nothing be left undone’ (Chapter 37) – ‘do nothing’ is merely the means to the end of ‘nothing be left undone’. This is why Tao Te Ching was considered the ‘art of rulership’ (君人南面之術) by the ancient Chinese. It is the establishment of this Taoist methodology and the tremendous

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 421

23/10/18 12:45 PM

422

derek m. c. yuen

calculation involved, not how it is expressed or seen, that marks the true manifestation of Chinese realism. The following passage from Tao Te Ching further illuminates how the Taoists clearly separate value/benefits/essence from usefulness/utility/function: Thirty spokes join at the hub: their use for the cart is where they are not. When the potter’s wheel makes a pot is precisely where there is nothing. When you open doors and windows for a room, it is where there is nothing that they are useful to the room. Therefore being is for benefits, Nonbeing is for usefulness. (Chapter 11) (Lao Tzu 1994: 15) Owing to that inner emptiness, the vase can be a container, an object with a use. Likewise, it is owing to the door and windows pierced through the walls that light enters a room and one can live in it – it is where the fullness is hollowed out and thanks to what has been taken away in the wood, the ground, or the wall that fullness can fulfil a function and acquire the capacity to produce an effect (Jullien 1996: 111). Westerners may tend to think it is the vase or the room that they are after, and this may well form the basis for Western realism. But the Taoists understand that what they should really be after are the utility and functions that derive from the vase and the room. Here we see the dialectical relationships between being and non-being, essence and function; and the Taoists firmly believe it is always the latter that is more important and plays a commanding role in the dialectical relationship. No doubt it is such clear understanding of how effect is realised that produced a very different set of strategic options and preferences within Chinese and Chinese realist thought. This leads to the Chinese concept of quan (權) or quan bian (權變), which states that when facing a contingency, choose any and all actions that will achieve one’s goals (Johnston 1995: 72). Alastair Iain Johnston even regards quan bian as the guiding principle of the Chinese realpolitik or parabellum strategic culture and uses the notion to show that for the Chinese ‘any and all means of eliminating this enemy are legitimate’. Such a false impression was formed because of Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu’s extensive use of dialectics and their deliberate separation of essence and function, condition and consequence when assessing the situation and formulating their strategy. Nevertheless, there finally came a philosopher who was aware of the vast potential of such schemes and tapped and tailored them to the full specifications of realism – and that philosopher was Han Fei Tzu.

Han Fei Tzu: (Perfect Despots) Do Nothing and Let Nothing Be Left Undone Han Fei Tzu was the Chinese philosopher of the Warring States period who developed the Legalism school of thought (also more precisely identified as Realism and Legal Despotism). He studied under the Confucian Realist philosopher Xunzi (荀子), who presumably granted him the realist root of his philosophy. Another main source for his political theories was Tao Te Ching, which he interpreted as a political text, and from which he saw the Tao as a natural law that everyone and everything was forced

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 422

23/10/18 12:45 PM

china

423

to follow. Accordingly, he believed that an ideal ruler made laws, like an inevitable force of nature, that the people could not resist. The coming together of these thoughts contributed to a practical philosophy emphasising that the autocrat will be able to achieve firm control over the state with the mastering of the three methodologies and means: his position/configuration of power (勢, shi/shih); technique/art of rulership ( 術, shu) and the law (法, fa). Han Fei Tzu’s philosophy was very influential on the first emperor of China, even though its main focus centred on politics and administration instead of international relations. In the interest of the state and sovereign, as well as his own firm belief that people were amoral and interest-driven, Han Fei Tzu focused on the aspect of cold calculation and the high level of practicality and viability in the methodologies of Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu, and re-engineered them for the sake and interests of despotism. Jullien shows how such transformation was facilitated by Han Fei Tzu: For Daoism recommended nonaction on the part of the ruler with a view to allowing individuals to flourish, liberating them from the bonds imposed by rules and prohibitions (that were considered to go hand in hand with the development of civilization). ‘Legalist’ despotism, on the contrary, plays exactly the opposite role: it enslaves the entire mass of individuals to the power of a single figure who embodies the State. Whereas Daoism [that is, Taoism] was inclined to bring the social order ever closer to a natural simplicity, the ‘legalists’ organize power in a completely artificial fashion (it is completely independent of the sentiments of the ruler and rests solely on the norms that are imposed and the control that is exercised). However, they then expect this artificial and technically installed system to operate on its own; and by so doing they totally recuperate the nonaction of Daoism and once again plug into the natural element that processes possess. Once again, the ruler needs to do nothing but allow things to take their course. Obedience results of its own accord, and the social order is spontaneous. The ‘legalists’ find themselves again at one with the ‘Daoists’ in their critique of intelligence and their rejection of virtues, since they too attribute efficiency to such spontaneity . . . they are by now anxious to allow their ruler to acquire more power than any of the rival kingdoms in order to reunite China under his sole rule. To this end, they are led to invent new – despotic – conditions in order to recover the virtue of immanence along with all its efficacy. (Jullien 1996: pp. 101–2; emphasis in original) On the other hand, Han Fei Tzu further extends the applicability of Chinese dialectical realism from the political scene (Lao Tzu) to everyday lives. Hence the questions and issues tackled by Legalism are more about practical know-how than knowledge itself – it is about how to handle knowledge, apply knowledge and how to reckon the actual consequences (Li Zehou 2000: 102). By translating everything into the terms of interest and stake, Han Fei Tzu has offered Chinese realism an edge of sharp judgement that never loses touch with the reality: The physician sucks patients’ cuts and holds their blood in his mouth, not because he is intimate with them like a blood relation, but because he expects profits from them. Likewise, when the cartwright finishes making carriages, he wants people to be rich and noble; when the carpenter finishes making coffins, he wants people

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 423

23/10/18 12:45 PM

424

derek m. c. yuen

to die early. Not that the cartwright is benevolent and the carpenter is cruel, but that unless people are noble, the carriages will not sell, and unless people die, the coffins will not be bought. For the same reason, when the clique of the queen, the princess, the concubine, or the crown prince, is formed, they want the ruler to die early. For, unless the ruler dies, their positions will not be powerful. Their motive is not a hatred for the ruler, but their profits are dependent on the ruler’s death. (Han Fei Tzu 1959: Ch. 17) After all, it is the degree of practicality that draws out the difference between Chinese and Western realism. Unlike their Western counterparts, Chinese realists are least concerned with matters such as dialogue (as in dialectics), pure logic and even truth – they care about real-life problems, possibilities and paradoxes in reality as well as practical logic (Li Zehou 2000: 102). Such a tendency is also well reflected in Chinese philosophy. While the thought of Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu stresses soft power and has a dominant soft-power dimension, Han Fei Tzu has removed almost all these traits in his thought, leaving behind sheer ruthlessness and egoism. Non-Chinese as it may seem, Legalism served the needs of the time in the late Warring States period, but not those of a unified empire in which stability and harmony were the main concern. The lesson of the exceptionally short reign of the Qin dynasty, which had lasted for only fifteen years (221–207/206 bc), was striking, and the fall of the dynasty was largely attributed to the impersonal Legalist ruling philosophy. Hence, since the Han dynasty (206 bc–220 ad), which succeeded the Qin dynasty, not only was Legalism vilified, but also the thought of Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu was dismissed as deceptive and manipulative, for they all were regarded as harmful to the society and the reign. Chinese realism had come to its survival moment – either it risked being vanquished or it had to find its way to blend into Confucianism, the new ruling philosophy of the empire.

The Imperial Era: Confucianism Rules Chinese realism faced its toughest times during the Chinese imperial era. Instead of serving the requirements of the wars of unification, the unified empire was in need of a new ruling philosophy that could help strengthen the legitimacy of its reign, and that more stabilising and socially acceptable philosophy or ideology was Confucianism. Confucianism was more than an idealistic thought; its idealism stemmed mainly from its pan-moralism. Such pan-moralism, when applied in statecraft and foreign policy, had led to a transformation that could be called ‘benevolentisation’ (德化) (Gong Yuzhen 2002: 173) – benevolence was the very basis of Chinese virtues as well as moral and ethical codes, and more importantly, the opposite of force, an aspect that the Confucians despised greatly. Benevolentisation was later developed further in a form of value preference that can be summarised as ‘emphasise virtues and de-emphasise efficacy’ (重道德而輕事功), which was exactly the antithesis of realism (Gong Yuzhen 2002: 118). Such non-realist emphasis or tendency can be best described by a famous saying of Mencius: ‘the benevolent is invincible’ (or ‘if one has virtue, one cannot be matched’, 仁者無敵). And it gave rise to the traditional Chinese set of strategic

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 424

23/10/18 12:45 PM

china

425

preference that places non-violent, accommodationist grand strategies before violent defensive or offensive ones and stresses benevolence, righteousness and virtue – or good government – as a basis of security, as Johnston illustrates in the Confucian– Mencian central paradigm of Chinese strategic culture (Johnston 1995: 155). The rise of Confucianism, and thus the Confucian–Mencian strategic culture, not only had left China with two distinctive if not contradictory sets of strategic culture, but also it had granted Confucianism the status of orthodoxy in statecraft and strategy. This was no doubt a heavy blow to Chinese realism: Given the Confucian critique of certain strategic practices, or wanton violence, and of reliance on military force as the basis for security, it is highly unlikely that any works on strategy or military affairs could have emerged that did not incorporate certain key Confucian codes and symbols. (Johnston 1995: 168) Consequently, as Johnston puts it, the Confucian–Mencian paradigm is disconnected from the operational advice, axioms and decision rules that derive from the parabellum (realist) paradigm (Johnston 1995: 155). Even though Johnston chooses to believe that the parabellum (realist) paradigm has always been in the driver’s seat while the Confucian–Mencian paradigm is merely a mask to hide that very fact (Johnston 1995: 169–70), it was an embarrassing fact for Chinese statecraft that the disjuncture between the two paradigms was so great that it had developed into some kind of ‘cognitive-dissonance’. That is, China would not have fallen into the hands of the nomads – the Mongols and the Manchurians – twice, were it not for this. It was principally this disconnected and dysfunctional model for statecraft and strategy that put the Chinese courts, from the Song dynasty (960–1279) onward, in such a situation that they were incapable of fighting against their enemies or making peace with them. Such an impractical, self-contradictory model had further degraded into a form of obscurantism as China faced the Western colonial powers during the Qing dynasty (1644–1912), when moral judgements and delusions had totally taken the place of realistic assessments (Gong Yuzhen 2002: 187–8). It had become apparent that China would not be capable of confronting any great power unless this inherent tension between Confucianism (moralism) and realism were successfully dealt with. And such a tremendous task was left to Mao Zedong following the demise of the Chinese empire.

Mao: Return of the Tao However tremendous his task was, Mao had made a logical and sensible choice in trying to restore the functionality of Chinese statecraft. What lay in front of him was, on the one hand, the highly developed realist traditions from the military and Taoist schools dating back to the Spring and Autumn and Warring States periods and, on the other hand, an inoperative model in a Confucian straitjacket that was possibly directly related to the downfall of three Chinese empires (Song, Ming and Qing dynasties). Also taking into account the fact that Mao had never received a formal military education and never left China before 1950, as well as his interest in Chinese historical fictions such as The Romance of the Three Kingdoms and in Tao Te Ching,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 425

23/10/18 12:45 PM

426

derek m. c. yuen

the Taoist canon, it was almost the default option for Mao to return to Chinese traditional military and strategic thought for solutions. In many ways, despite the fact that it was often expressed in Marxist terminology, Mao’s military and strategic framework clearly bore a stronger resemblance to that of the Chinese dialectics established by Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu than that of the Marxists (Li Zehou 2009: 181). In Marxist dialectics and materialism, Mao saw Chinese dialectics and realism. Therefore, it is unsurprising that Johnston finds it problematic to explain the obvious connections between the thought of Sun Tzu and that of Mao, yet their incompatibility with Chinese statecraft during the Chinese imperial era: [I]t seems that standard interpretations of traditional Chinese strategic thought do not work too well in explaining post-1949 strategic theory or practice. Western literature has often indiscriminately drawn connections between the thought of Sun Zi and Mao Zedong. But what Mao clearly borrowed from Sun Zi and traditional strategic thought was the notion of absolute flexibility (Johnston 1996: 255). [T]here is also a generally accepted view that these characteristics [of Chinese strategic culture] have changed little from Sun Zi through Mao Zedong, though there is not much explanation of why the evolution of China’s alleged strategic culture has been so exceptionally slow. The tendency in the literature is to focus almost exclusively on Sun Zi, compare him with Mao, and assume that an unbroken strategic–cultural chain links the two. (Johnston 1996: 25) Johnston is correct in identifying that what Mao clearly borrowed from Sun Zi and traditional strategic thought was the notion of absolute flexibility (quan bian 權變). However, he fails to realise that Mao’s undertaking was not a logical progression of Chinese statecraft in the imperial era but a revival or renaissance of the Chinese military and strategic traditions of Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu. The notion of quan bian (absolute flexibility), as Johnston encapsulates it, is that when facing a contingency, choose any and all actions that will achieve one’s goals (Johnston 1996: 102). Johnston uses the notion to justify that there were no moral limits on the strategic choice of Chinese empires. Yet what he fails to notice is that there are indeed two approaches regarding the use of morality in Chinese strategic theory and practice. One is the standard Confucian image that the Confucian–Mencian strategic culture offers in terms of moral and political restraints and which furnishes the conditions under which a nation would use force. Another approach is shown in Mao’s strategic practices, in which morality is used in a completely instrumental and strategic manner. Johnston, however, confuses the two. In fact, it just happens that the two approaches are related to the different interpretations of the same Chinese notion of morals or virtues (dao de/tao te 道德) by the Confucians and the Taoists: the Confucians take the notion in its original moral meaning, resulting in the disastrous and paralysing effect on Chinese statecraft in its imperial era. Mao, taking the Taoist interpretation of tao and te (after which Tao Te Ching is named), drops the moral meaning altogether and maintains that Tao (the Way) is the fundamental principle and Te its practical application, stressing Te (De) not in the moral sense but in terms of efficacy: namely, ‘to obtain/actualise’. In other words, the Taoist approach allows the strategic and instrumental use of morality in statecraft without having it restricted or constrained by the political, military and moral limits imposed by Confucianism. This

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 426

23/10/18 12:45 PM

china

427

is a reversal of relationship between Confucianism and Taoism in statecraft, allowing realism to regain control but without losing the moral and ethical considerations – this is the true face of the notion of absolute flexibility (that is, quan bian) which Mao has inherited from Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu, and at last practically solves the problem of inherent tension between Confucianism and realism in the imperial era. It offers a realist alternative that differs remarkably from the Western realpolitik tradition.

Conclusion Chinese political realism has come full circle from Sun Tzu and Lao Tzu to Mao, with a strong comeback today. Yet the 2,000-year influence of Confucianism on Chinese realism and statecraft is still evident and can hardly be rubbed out overnight. Having stood against the rise of Confucianism and the demise of the Chinese empire, Chinese realism has gained added flexibility and evolved into a form of pragmatism that is more predisposed to statecraft and strategy, enabling it to incorporate non-realist ideas and elements more effectively and making instrumental use of these elements more easily possible. In that sense, Chinese political realism not only ‘is aware of the moral significance of political action’, as Hans Morgenthau suggests (Morgenthau 1954: 9), but also it offers a new hybrid or multi-faceted model for realism. When deployed into the fateful Sino-American relations, Chinese realism, after its revival and renewal by Mao, is significant in two respects. First, it enables China to hold and deploy an extra strategic logic on top of the Western strategic logic that China has already familiarised itself with and adapted itself to over all these years – that is, China can apply whichever strategic logic it finds suitable in different situations, whether it be for the purpose of real application or mere deception. Second, the Confucian influence on Chinese realism not only has helped Chinese realism evolve into a form of pragmatism, but also it has helped modern China to develop a spectrum of statecraft that spreads across moralism and realism. Such duality or continuum will give China an enormous advantage over the USA if China understands the importance of staying flexible and maintaining its dialectical approach. Nevertheless, as Chinese realism was once put out of action by Confucianism in the imperial era, it may face a similar fate if China overplays nationalism and patriotism, replacing the pan-moralism of the past with modern-day nationalism and patriotism. This could be particularly damaging for a rising great power like China, for, as Lao Tzu says, ‘Stiffness is thus a companion of death, flexibility a companion of life’ (Lao Tzu 1994: 45). It was this very loss of flexibility, pragmatism and its dialectical approach that cost China an empire in its earlier history.

Bibliography English sources Dellios, Rosita (1994), ‘Chinese Strategic Culture – Part 1: Heritage from the Past’, Research Paper No. 1, Center for East–West Cultural and Economic Studies, Bond University, April. Dellios, Rosita (1994), ‘Chinese Strategic Culture – Part 2: Virtue and Power’, Research Paper No. 2, Center for East–West Cultural and Economic Studies, Bond University, November. Griffith, Samuel B. (1963), Sun Tzu: The Art of War, London: Oxford University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 427

23/10/18 12:45 PM

428

derek m. c. yuen

Han Fei Tzu (1959), The Complete Works of Han Fei Tzu, translated by Liao Wenkui, Ch. 17, available at: (last accessed 15 June 2018). Johnson, Kenneth D. (2009), China’s Strategic Culture: A Perspective for the United States, Monograph, June, Carlisle Barracks, PA: Strategic Studies Institute, US Army War College. Johnston, Alastair Iain (1995), Cultural Realism: Strategic Culture and Grand Strategy in Chinese History, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Johnston, Alastair Iain (1996), ‘Cultural realism and strategy in Maoist China’, in Peter Katzenstein (ed.), The Culture of National Security: Norms and Identity in World Politics, New York: Columbia University Press. Johnston, Alastair Iain (1999), ‘Sun Zi Studies in the United States’, Paper, 25 July, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Jullien, François (1996), A Treatise on Efficacy: Between Western and Chinese Thinking, Honolulu: University of Hawai’i Press. Kissinger, Henry (2011), On China, New York: Penguin. Lao Tzu (1994), ‘Tao Te Ching’, in Thomas Cleary (ed.), The Taoist Classics, Volume 1: The Collected Translations of Thomas Cleary, Boston: Shambhala. Lao Tzu (2001), Tao Te Ching, translated by D. C. Lau, Hong Kong: Chinese University Press. Lao Zi (Lao Tzu) (2003), Dao De Jing: A Philosophical Translation, translated by Roger T. Ames and David L. Hall, New York: Ballantine. Luttwak, Edward N. (2001), Strategy: The Logic of War and Peace, revised and enlarged edn, Cambridge, MA: Belknap Press. Mahnken, Thomas G. (2011), Secrecy and Stratagem: Understanding Chinese Strategic Culture, Woollahra, NSW: Lowy Institute for International Policy. Mao Tse-tung (1967), ‘On protracted war’, in Selected Works of Mao Tse-tung, Vol. II Beijing: Foreign Languages Press. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1954), Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, 2nd revised edn, New York: Alfred A. Knopf. Murawiec, Laurent (2005), ‘Chinese Grand Strategy and the Chinese Way of War’, Written testimony for U.S.–China Economic and Security Review Commission, 15 September, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Nisbett, Richard E. (2003), The Geography of Thought: How Asians and Westerns Think Differently . . . and Why, New York: Free Press. Sawyer, Ralph D. (trans.) (1993), The Seven Military Classics of Ancient China, Boulder, CO: Westview Press. Sawyer, Ralph D (trans.) (2003), The Tao of War: The Martial Tao Te Ching, Boulder, CO: Westview Press. Scobell, Andrew (2002), China and Strategic Culture, Monograph, May, Carlisle Barracks, PA: Strategic Studies Institute, US Army War College. Scobell, Andrew (2003), China’s Use of Military Force: Beyond the Great Wall and the Long March, New York: Cambridge University Press. Scobell, Andrew (2005a), ‘Is there a Chinese way of war?’, Parameters, vol. XXXV, no. 1, Spring, pp. 118–22. Scobell, Andrew (2005b), ‘Strategic culture and China: IR theory versus the fortune cookie?’, Strategic Insights, vol. IV, no. 10, October, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Sonhaus, Lawrence (2006), Strategic Culture and Ways of War, New York: Routledge.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 428

23/10/18 12:45 PM

china

429

Sun Bin (2003), Sun Bin: The Art of Warfare, translated by D. C. Lau and Roger T. Ames, Albany, NY: State University of New York Press. Sun Tzu (1963), Sun Tzu: The Art of War, translated by Samuel B. Griffith, London: Oxford University Press. Sun Tzu (1988), The Art of War, translated by Thomas Cleary, Boston: Shambhala. Sun Tzu (1994a), Sun-Tzu: The Art of War, translated by Ralph D. Sawyer, Boulder, CO: Westview. Sun Tzu (1994b), Sun-Tzu: The Art of Warfare, translated by Roger T. Ames, New York: Ballantine. Thomas, Timothy L. (2007), ‘The Chinese military’s strategic mind-set’, Military Review, vol. 87, no. 6, November, pp. 47–55. Waldron, Arthur (1994), ‘China’s military classics: A review essay’, Joint Force Quarterly, no. 4, Spring, pp. 114–17.

Chinese sources Chen Ku-ying and Bai Xi (2001), Lao Zi Ping Zhuan 老子評傳 [A Critical Biography of Lao Tzu], Nanjing: Nanjing University Press. Feng Zhen Hao (2010), Qi Lu Wen Hua Yan Jiu 齊魯文化研究 [A Study on the Cultures of Qi and Lu], Jinan: Qi Lu Shu She. Gong Yuzhen (2002), Zhong Guo Zhan Lue Wen Hua Jie Xi 中國戰略文化解析 [Analysis of China’s Strategic Culture], Beijing: Military Science Press. Gu De Rong and Zhu Shun Long (2008), Chun Qiu Shi 春秋史 [A History of the Spring and Autumn Period], Shanghai: Shanghai People’s Publishing House. Ho Ping-ti (2002), Three Studies on Suntzu and Laotzu 有關《孫子》《老子》的三篇考證 Taipei: Institute of Modern History, Academia Sinica. Hong Bing (2002), Zhong Guo Zhan Lue Yuan Li Jie Xi中國戰略原理解析 [Analysis of Chinese Strategic Principles], Beijing: Military Science Publishing House. Li Gui-sheng (2009), Zhu Zi Wen Hua Yu Xian Qin Bing Jia 諸子文化與先秦兵家 [Cultures of Pre-Qin Masters and Pre-Qin School of the Military], Changsha: Yue Lu Shu She. Li Ling (2006a), Bing Yi Zha Li: Wo Dou Sun Zi 兵以詐立:我讀《孫子》 [Strategy Is Based on Deception: How I Read Sun Tzu], Beijing: Zhonghua Book Company. Li Ling (2006b), Sun Zi Shi San Pian Zong He Yan Jiu 《孫子》十三篇綜合研究 [A Comprehensive Study of Sun Tzu’s Thirteen Chapters], Beijing: Zhonghua Book Company. Li Zehou (2000), Zhong Guo Gu Dai Si Xiang Shi Lun 中國古代思想史論 [On the History of Chinese Ancient Thought], Taipei: San Min Book Co. Li Zehou (2009), Zhong Guo Xian Dai Si Xiang Shi Lun 中國現代思想史論 [On the History of Chinese Modern Thought], Beijing: SDX Joint Publishing Co. Mao Zedong (1991a), Mao Zedong Xuanji, Vol. 1 毛澤東選集 第一卷 [Selected Works of Mao Zedong, Vol. 1], Beijing: People’s Publishing House. Mao Zedong (1991b), Mao Zedong Xuanji, Vol. 2 毛澤東選集 第二卷 [Selected Works of Mao Zedong, Vol. 2], Beijing: People’s Publishing House. Mao Zedong (1991c), Mao Zedong Xuanji, Vol. 3 毛澤東選集 第三卷 [Selected Works of Mao Zedong, Vol. 3], Beijing: People’s Publishing House. Mi Zhen-yu (ed.) (2008), Zhong Guo Jun Shi Xue Shu Shi, Vol. 1 中國軍事學術史(上卷) [A History of Chinese Military Scholarship, Vol. 1], Beijing: People’s Liberation Army Publishing House. Niu Xian-zhong (1997), Sun Zi San Lun: Cong Gu Bing Fa Dao Xin Zhan Lue 孫子三論:從 古兵法到新戰略 [Three Discourses on Sun Tzu: From Ancient Art of War to New Strategy], Taipei: Rye Field Publishing Co.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 429

23/10/18 12:45 PM

430

derek m. c. yuen

Qiu Wen-shan (2006), Qi Wen Hua Yu Zhong Hua Wen Ming 齊文化與中華文明 [The Culture of Qi and Chinese Civilization], Jinan: Qi Lu Shu She. Sun Tzu (1999), Shi Yi Jia Zhu Sun Zi Xiao Li 十一家注孫子校理 [The Collation of the Eleven Schools of The Art of War Annotations], ed. by Yang Bing-an, Beijing: Zhonghua Book Company. Tian Xu-dong (2010), Gu Dai Bing Xue Wen Hua Tan Lun 古代兵學文化探論 [An Exploration of Culture of Ancient Military Studies], Beijing: China Social Sciences Press. Wei Ru-lin (2001), Sun Zi Jin Zhu Jin Yi 孫子今註今譯 [The Modern Commentaries on and Annotations of Sun Tzu], Taipei: Commercial Press. Yan Xue Tong et al. (2009), Wang Ba Tian Xa Si Xiang Ji Qi Di 王霸天下思想及啟迪 [Thoughts of World Leadership and Implications], Beijing: World Affairs Press. Yu Ru Bo (2001), Sun Zi Bing Fa Yan Jiu Shi 孫子兵法研究史 [A History of the Study of Sun Tzu: The Art of War], Beijing: Military Science Publishing House. Zhang Zhen-ze (2010), Sun Bin Bing Fa Xiao Li 孫臏兵法校理 [The Collation of Sun Bin: The Art of Warfare], Beijing: Zhonghua Book Company.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 430

23/10/18 12:45 PM

34 Political Realism and Iran Geopolitics and defensive realism Marzieh Kouhi Esfahani

Chapter Overview

T

his chapter is an attempt to demystify Iran’s seemingly controversial foreign policy – particularly of the last four decades – with basic tenets of ‘defensive realism’. To provide a more accurate picture, the chapter begins by introducing the most important determinants of Iran’s foreign policy and a brief historical review of the factors shaping Iran’s perception of the world. The evolution of Iran’s foreign policy in the modern era, since the immediate aftermath of the First World War, is then explained. Overall, an attempt is made to show how the destructive role of the Great Powers have prevented, or slowed down, Iran’s political development, especially up to the twenty-first century; how Iranian elites have tried to counter or at least limit these dominant powers’ interferences in state affairs; and the effect that all this has had on Iran’s distrust of hegemonic powers. This is followed by an examination of the significant issues in the Islamic Republic’s foreign policy, such as its relations with various actors and its nuclear crisis, including an explanation of the rationale behind its policies. It is then concluded that, contrary to its exaggerated rhetoric and the charge that it has been ideological, Iran’s foreign policy has, in fact, been largely rational, aimed at maximising state security to survive and ensure the national interest in an anarchic system. *

*

*

Introduction Frequently accused of harbouring ‘terrorism’ and introduced as an ‘Axis of evil’, the ‘main factor of instability in the Middle East’ and the cause of all US failures in its post2000 regional campaigns, Iran has been portrayed as anything but rational. However, examining Iran’s behaviour within historical and geopolitical contexts introduces us to a state struggling for survival and acting in its self-interest, under extremely difficult circumstances, within an anarchical international system and a crisis-ridden region. The existing misperceptions of Iran are rooted in several causes, notably Tehran’s exaggerated rhetoric, which, together with its geopolitical loneliness, its revisionist approach towards the international system and its intricate political system, often results in misconceptions or misinterpretations.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 431

23/10/18 12:45 PM

432

marzieh kouhi esfahani

In what follows, it will be argued that Iran’s behaviour could be examined through the lens of neorealism, particularly defensive realism, which believes that the anarchic nature of the international system encourages states to undertake defensive and moderate policies to maintain their position in the system.

Factors Shaping Iran’s Foreign Policy Iran’s geostrategic location Its situation at the Eurasian crossroads, straddled between the Persian Gulf to the south and the Caspian Sea to the north, both home to significant volumes of hydrocarbon resources, has created a complicated geostrategic location for Iran. In this location, Iran, as a land bridge, connects Central Asia/the Caucasus to the Persian Gulf on the one hand and the Mediterranean/Levant to South Asia on the other; hence, it is directly involved in, and influenced by, geopolitical developments in all these (sub-) regions. Furthermore, the issue of ‘shared ethnicities’ adds to this geopolitical complexity. Since each ‘of Iran’s neighbours sits on a land that constituted Persian territory at one time throughout the history’ (Mokhtari 2005: 210), there are various ethnic groups divided between Iran and a neighbouring country or countries, making each state vulnerable to ethnic tensions manipulated from outside, by its neighbour’s policy towards that ethnic group. An obvious example is the ‘Kurdish’ population dispersed across Iran, Syria, Iraq and Turkey. The Iranian state’s combined Persian–Shia identity adds another twist to this complexity. Most neighbouring countries are of the Sunni sect of Islam; those such as Azerbaijan and Bahrain, in which the population are majority Shia, have different ethnicities. Moreover, other countries with a Persian legacy, Afghanistan and Tajikistan, are majority Sunni, leaving Iran deprived of any natural ally in its geopolitical environment. While abundant hydrocarbon resources and control over the Strait of Hormuz, through which 30 per cent of the world’s annual consumption of oil passes, provides Iran with a further strategic advantage; it also increases the challenges by involving the country in the global politics of energy security. This geostrategic importance, as well as the country’s vast area and relatively large population, makes Iran an important international player and regional power (albeit a medium one). Regardless of who rules it, it is a ‘country which is difficult to engage (with), yet impossible to ignore’ (Wright 2010: Introduction).

An intricate political system Iran’s political system has witnessed several transformations during the modern era, moving from an absolute monarchy to a quasi-parliamentary system involving several parties and a limited monarchical role, to the post-1953 coup developments that resulted in ‘the ascendency of the Shah (monarch) in the political hierarchy’ (Chubin and Zabih 1974: 3), making him the main driving force and decision-maker behind the country’s foreign policy.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 432

23/10/18 12:45 PM

iran

433

Following the establishment of the Islamic Republic, this rather simple system, with minimum interest or pressure groups and no free media to influence foreign policy, evolved into a rather complex system involving several governmental and quasigovernmental organisations riddled with factional rivalry. Various platforms are used by a spectrum of claimants from different centres of power (for example, the Iran Revolutionary Guards Corps, IRGC), pressure and interest groups or influential individuals to express or impose their opinion; all of this creates the potential for sending contradictory messages to the world. Moreover, while several important classifications, such as ‘revolutionary’, ‘third world’ and ‘rentierist’, conspire to have their effect on the nature of the state, the challenges of integration between the three components of the ‘Islamic Republic of Iran’ (‘Islamic plus Republic plus Supreme Leader’) exacerbate factional politics and complicate decision-making within an already intricate system of checks and balances. The dichotomy between ‘Islam’ and ‘Iran’, and the question of the one’s priority over the other when it comes to defining national interests, have, over the years, resulted in a constant interplay between ideology and pragmatism. The way that Iranian leaders interpret the concept ‘Islamic’ results in a paradox with ‘Republicanism’. Based on that interpretation, the Valie Faghih (the Supreme Leader) has the final say in all affairs of the state. On the other hand, within the ‘republican’ system, the people nominate members of parliament and the president, who undertake the tasks of legislation and execution, respectively – an arrangement which leads to frequent conflicts of views between the elected branches of the state, including the administration and the Supreme Leader’s office or those ordained by him.

Historical grievances Despite Persia’s magnificent millennia-old, transcontinental civilisation, which has always been a source of national pride, Iran has repeatedly endured the humiliation of defeat, as well as the pain and destruction of occupation at the hands of various invaders, from the Mongols and Tatars, to the Ottomans and Russians, and even the Allied Forces. Up until 1971, Iran had frequently lost territory, either as a direct consequence of wars and occupations, or as a result of pressure from a dominant power. Furthermore, the Great Powers’ interventions continuously undermined the country’s sovereignty in various forms, including colonial concessions. An examination of early twentieth-century developments provides ample evidence reflecting the destructive role of the Great Powers in Iran’s history, from the 1907 Anglo-Russian Entente, which divided the country into their respective spheres of influence, to the 1919 Anglo-Persian treaty, which ‘completed the country’s humiliation by effectively turning Iran into a British protectorate putting the latter in charge of the country’s trade, finances and the armed forces – the three key pillars of power – in early 20th century Iran’ (Ehteshami 2017:172) This history of subservience to dominant powers has created the ‘cultural features that foreigners find so baffling’ (Keddie and Gasiorowski 1990: 3), including a strong national resistance to any kind of foreign interference and a sensitivity about the country’s sovereignty, territorial integrity and independence, which have a determining impact on foreign policy decision-making, regardless of the nature of the state.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 433

23/10/18 12:45 PM

434

marzieh kouhi esfahani

A Legacy of Foreign Policy Realism? This section provides a brief review of some of the historical determinants of Iran’s foreign policy in the modern era to examine whether there is a legacy of realism, and if so, what its essence is.

Pahlavi’s era Persia’s move towards modern ‘statehood’ began with the rise of Reza Pahlavi to power, with the initial support of Britain and the blessing of the Russians. Putting an end to clan feudalism, he built a powerful central government, undertaking several strategies with the clear intention of moving the country towards meaningful independence by reducing foreign interferences in state affairs. These included: • Extensive development efforts in transport infrastructure, modern industrial plants and the health and education systems. Furthermore, recognising the necessity for effective military force, at least to defend the country, a considerable budget and significant efforts were devoted to modernising the army. • Checking Britain and Russia’s influence by giving opportunities to other countries, especially Germany. • Limiting the influence of the British and the Soviets by cancelling or adjusting existing concessions, including renegotiation of D’Arcy’s oil concession, transfer of printing rights for Persian banknotes from the Bank of England to the Iranian National Bank, the refusal to renew the Soviets’ fishing rights in the Caspian Sea, and the annulment of nineteenth-century capitulations to Europeans (among other examples). Each of these steps towards consolidating the state’s sovereignty was met with various acts of sabotage on the part of the Great Powers. Reza Shah’s declaration of neutrality at the outset of World War Two and his refusal to permit the country’s territory to be used for the training, supply and transport of arms and forces constituted his last attempt to ensure Iran’s security amid such an international catastrophe. None the less, since Iran’s geostrategic location could play as ‘the bridge to victory’, it was occupied by the Allied Forces and Reza Shah was forced to abdicate in favour of the Crown Prince, Mohammad Reza. It might be argued that, under these circumstances, bandwagoning could have saved Reza Shah’s throne and limited the damage. However, despite its short-term advantages, such a strategy would have had graver long-term implications. History had already proved that once the Great Powers found a foothold, they would not lose it without a fight, which would have undermined all prior efforts to reduce their damaging influence. The occupation which had brought about great destruction, with millions of casualties and deaths through famine and epidemics of disease (Majd 2016), did not cease immediately after the end of the war. Being a small power, situated ‘adjacent to a superpower with a reputation for aggressive, expansionist behaviour’ (Seabury1974: Foreword), the country that had been robbed of its Caucasian territories by Russia in the early nineteenth century was yet again in danger of further disintegration in

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 434

23/10/18 12:45 PM

iran

435

the immediate aftermath of the war, when Moscow refused to withdraw its troops and provoked the Azerbaijan–Mahabad secessionist crisis. Tehran took its case to the international community, and eventually, under pressure from the West, Russian troops were pulled out. This crisis, which became one of the important episodes leading to the Cold War, helped Iran to find an ally that seemed to offer support for resisting the pressures from the other Great Powers. Iranian political elites would continue their struggle to consolidate the state’s sovereignty by reducing Anglo-Russian influence through promoting the idea of a ‘negative equilibrium’ policy, even during World War Two. This idea became the basis for the parliamentary prohibition of any new negotiations with foreign oil companies, providing a precedent for the 1952 nationalisation of oil. This outstanding success was negated by Western companies’ boycott of Iran’s oil, blocking the country’s assets abroad, and was followed by the 1953 Anglo-American coup, which overthrew the democratically elected government of Mossadegh. Once again, democratic struggles with the Great Powers proved futile, putting an end to attempts to strike ‘a balance between diametrically opposed aspirations of interested powers’ through parliamentary legislation, an appeal to international organisations, and an ambivalent reliance on the USA’s support for Iran’s non-aligned stance (Chubin and Zabih 1974: 3). The post-coup consolidation of the monarch’s power left the parliament ineffective and the Shah in charge of all important policies. According to the Shah’s last foreign minister, ‘the foreign minister and the Ministry of Foreign Affairs apparatus were executives for the policies planned and pursued by the Shah himself’ (Khalatbari 2008: 108), who, at the time, decided on an alliance with the USA in order to avoid the threats posed by the neighbouring superpower. The new superpower, initially, had a clean slate in terms of not showing any ‘imperialistic inclinations towards Iran’ (Chubin and Zabih 1974: 4–5), of providing significant financial aid to its allies, and of proving its friendship by reinstating the Shah through the coup. Furthermore, US membership of the Central Treaty Organisation (CENTO) provided Iran – who had already joined the pact, fearing Soviet encroachments – with a platform for intelligence sharing and military cooperation, as well as further security guarantees, especially as Washington committed itself to supporting Iran against any invasions by signing a secret contract with the Shah (Khalatbari 2008: 108). Tehran’s foreign policy gradually evolved from initial passive dependency and then defensiveness (1953–63) to one of assertiveness, resulting mainly from the internal stability and economic growth fuelled by oil revenue (Nyrop 1978: 226); all of this led to the so-called ‘independent national policy’. When the Soviets’ change of approach towards Iran and the decline of the Cold War resulted in Tehran’s assessment that Moscow ‘no longer constitutes a clear and present danger to the regime’s security and existence’ (Chubin and Zabih 1974: 6), the government moved towards a de facto non-alignment policy to benefit from the opportunity to receive financial aid from both superpowers, to be able to diversify its sources of military and economic supplies, and to have more room to manœuvre in its foreign policy and be able to balance relations with each superpower, helping to strengthen the state’s overall independence. With growing confidence, the Shah attempted to fill the power vacuum created by Britain’s 1968 departure from the region. Learning from the history of foreign interventions in the Persian Gulf, which had always been to the detriment of Iran, the Shah made

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 435

23/10/18 12:45 PM

436

marzieh kouhi esfahani

significant efforts to promote the policy of ‘maintaining regional security by littoral states’. To this end, on the one hand, he invested in building up a robust army equipped with modern technology, including a state-of-the-art naval capability, and on the other, made extensive confidence-building overtures towards the Arab states of the Persian Gulf, including the 1971 recognition of Bahrain’s independence (Alvandi 2010: 161–3), and the reaching of a continental shelf agreement with other littoral states that paved the way for a collective security arrangement. However, due to the divergence of interests of the states involved, no substantial progress was eventually achieved. Within less than half a century, socio-economic developments, financed by oil money and by foreign investments and aid, had promoted Iran from a country struggling to survive the consequences of foreign occupation to one with enough influence to be in a position to establish relations with numerous countries across the world and to play a significant role in the geopolitics of the region. By the end of the 1970s, the Shah had made significant efforts in reviving the notion of ‘the great civilisation’, as well as taking steps to redefine the country’s relations with the Great Powers by using his position as the head of the Organisation of the Petroleum Exporting Countries (OPEC) to increase the price of oil (Ehteshami 2017: 177)

The Islamic Republic Despite his determined efforts to turn Iran into a modern yet formidable regional state, the Shah’s close relations with the USA and the latter’s support of his dictatorship were perceived by the public ‘as a sign of Iran’s complete subservience to the United States and its loss of independence . . . which developed into a profound source of alienation’ (Ramazani 1989: 203), a view that certainly had a defining effect on Iran’s post-revolution foreign policy. The Islamic Republic brought with it a new set of norms and an identity based on religion, which, although it was not entirely exclusive of elements of the ‘Iranian identity’, certainly espoused a different worldview, values and priorities, resulting in a complete overhaul of Iran’s foreign policy. According to the Islamic worldview, the international system is comprised of two camps, ‘Daar ul Islam’ and ‘Dar ul Kufr’, and all Muslims are part of one great entity called ‘Ummah’, such that its members have a responsibility for the fate of their brethren. Expanding on another Islamic theory, ‘the rejection of authority (ghāedeye Nafye Sabil)’ – which means that under no circumstances should non-Muslims be allowed to have authority over Muslims – Moshirzadeh (2006: 23–4) explains how resisting the superpowers’ hegemony has received top priority on Iran’s foreign policy agenda. Based on the above theoretical framework, the Islamic Republic’s constitution has provided the following as guidelines for Iran’s foreign policy, which, interestingly, relate directly to Iranians’ sensitivities towards their country’s sovereignty, independence and grandeur: • rejecting all forms of oppression and supporting oppressed people’s struggles against oppressors in any part of the world • defending the rights of all Muslims • pursuing a policy of non-alignment towards hegemonic powers • securing the country’s key resources and culture against foreign control.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 436

23/10/18 12:45 PM

iran

437

A brief review of the Islamic Republic’s foreign policy demonstrates Tehran’s continuous struggle to balance these principles with the country’s security and national interests. In line with these principles, the post-revolution provisional government was tasked with terminating the ‘subservient de facto alliance of the Shah’s regime with the United States’ (Ramazani 1989: 204), placing bilateral relations on a plane of equality. Hence, the provisional government adopted a ‘negative equilibrium’ policy aiming ‘to maintain Iran’s independence within the context of the existing international system of nation-states’ (Ramazani 1989: 206). The policy, however, served initially to frustrate more radical elements, who perceived the USA as bent on overthrowing the Islamic Republic and reinstating the Shah, repeating the 1953 experience. The US decision to receive the Shah fused their genuine concerns with a general anger at continuous US interference, pushing them to teach the ‘arrogant devil’ a lesson and resulting in the occupation of the embassy and the 444 days hostage crisis. The hostage crisis and Iran’s frequent attempts to export the revolution intensified the sense of threat, particularly in neighbouring countries, resulting in Tehran’s increased isolation. This, together with post-revolution instabilities, provided Iraq with an opportunity to settle old territorial disputes through military confrontation with Iran, accurately calculating that such a move would be tolerated by the international community. The United Nations (UN) Security Council kept quiet about Iraq’s atrocities for two years (Raji 2013: 60–1). Even Iran’s official complaints about Iraq’s war crimes were initially ignored, and it took the international community ‘at least three and half years to investigate the allegations systematically’ (Adib Moghaddam 2007: 104). The first Security Council resolution condemning Iraq’s use of chemical weapons was issued after the end of the war (Raji 2013: 61). Furthermore, while the Gulf monarchies were bankrolling Saddam, and the Soviet Union and Western countries were supplying him with weapons, ‘nobody provided Iran even with the means for defence’ (CBS News 2018). The experience of being unfairly treated by the international community cemented Iran’s foundation of distrust and sense of victimhood, leading to a strategy of self-reliance and significant efforts towards developing its defence capabilities. Since ‘a policy of unrelenting hostility and pressure . . . was hampering Iran’s ability to sustain itself at home while fighting a total war’ (Sick 1987: 702), Ayatollah Khomeini’s ruling that the preservation of the system (state) is the most essential duty allowed any policy adjustment necessary for state survival, marking ‘a fundamental shift, not in Tehran’s foreign policy goals but in its strategy for pursuing those goals’ (Sick 1987: 702). Consequently, as of July 1984, Iran adopted an open-door foreign policy, interpreted by the then President Khamenei as ‘rational, sound and healthy relations with all countries’, all of which aimed at serving Iran’s interests and ideology (Ramazani 1989: 212). The strategy of mending fences with the international community– by cooling down revolutionary fervour, prioritising national security over ideology, and adopting a pragmatic approach to a degree that would not totally undermine the regime’s core values – developed even further in the post-Khomeini era. An examination of Iran’s behaviour towards important regional and international developments provides ample evidence that, to ensure the state’s survival, priority was given to security in general, with an emphasis on political, economic and military security.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 437

23/10/18 12:45 PM

438

marzieh kouhi esfahani

Perceptions and Objectives The following section provides a brief analysis of some of the key strategic considerations involved in Iran’s foreign policy.

Animosity towards Israel Despite refraining from official recognition of Israel, Tehran had cordial relations with Tel Aviv before the revolution. Indeed, this was considered by the revolutionaries as one of Pahlavi’s unforgivable sins. Years before the revolution, Ayatollah Khomeini was arguing about the Zionist regime and the danger it posed by being the agent of the Great Powers’ conspiracy to divide the Muslim world and rob them of their precious resources. Following the establishment of the Islamic Republic, persistent negation of Israel’s legitimacy, as Karabell (1996–7: 85) has put it, became the local manifestation of the regime’s ideological and constitutional principles, as explained above. Furthermore, Iran’s increasing power and influence since the 1990s have added a dimension of geopolitical rivalry to already existing tensions. Efforts by the more moderate administrations to reduce bilateral tensions have been sabotaged repeatedly by radicals on both sides, giving rise to proxy operations and brinksmanship by both countries, especially from late 2004 onwards. Perceiving the Palestinian–Israeli conflict as a problem of the whole Ummah rather than just the Arabs, Tehran has ‘supported Islamic movements beyond its borders out of both conviction and calculation’. Such rhetorical and material support has ‘served as means of projecting Iranian influence abroad’ (Bakhash 2004: 249). While faced with a scarcity of allied states, non-state actors, such as the Islamic Resistance, Hamas and Hezbollah, have been Iran’s vehicle for penetration of the Levant, acting as its proxies in various parts of the region, much to the dismay of Israel and powerful Arab states.

Relations with the USA Iran’s historical grievances and the USA’s continuing efforts to change or contain the Islamic Republic have been interpreted as Washington’s inherent animosity towards the state, especially by the more conservative factions in Iran. In fact, Tehran’s frequent overtures for the reduction of tension, and even a degree of cooperation under its relatively moderate and pragmatic administrations, have often been followed by harsh reactions from Washington. Rafsanjani’s ‘goodwill versus goodwill’ approach in facilitating the release of Western hostages in Lebanon was met with increased US sanctions. Tehran’s tacit cooperation with the USA in uprooting Al-Qaeda from Afghanistan – including search-and-rescue missions, and use of its longstanding influence to persuade different Afghan factions to sign the December 2001 Bonn Accord, which resulted in the formation of an interim post-Taliban government under Karzai – was repaid by the Bush administration’s January 2002 ‘axis of evil’ speech. This negative branding undermined all efforts at rapprochement on the part of Khatami’s administration, created a securitised international atmosphere

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 438

23/10/18 12:45 PM

iran

439

against the Islamic Republic, and produced Iranian neoconservatives who believed that any compromise with the USA would result in further pressures and that the best option should therefore be a non-compromising approach. More recently, US reluctance to adhere to its commitment to removing nuclear-related sanctions following the 2016 Iran nuclear deal, in addition to repeated efforts by Congress to undermine the deal, and Trump’s outright threats and animosity towards Iran, has been perceived by Iran’s hardliners as proof of the futility of soft, compromising approaches towards the USA.

Relations with the Arab World Adopting a pragmatic approach, Iran was the first to condemn Iraq’s invasion of Kuwait, taking an active neutral stance in sharp contrast with its interventionist reputation. The policy helped improve relations with the Gulf Cooperation Council (GCC) countries to a degree that, at the December 1990 Qatar summit, the organisation welcomed future cooperation with Iran and the country’s participation in regional security arrangements (Ramazani 1992: 400). As explained earlier, ever since the British departure, Iran has continuously pursued a policy of building a regional security arrangement with littoral states of the Persian Gulf while preventing intervention by the dominant powers. However, geopolitical rivalries, lack of trust and divergence of interests have prevented this aspiration from being realised, including the occasion described above, when Egypt’s objection to Iran’s active role in such arrangements halted further developments. Although the extensive conciliatory and confidence-building measures undertaken by different administrations resulted in substantial improvements in relations with many Arab states, particularly up to 2003, the aforementioned factors never left a chance for an alliance. In fact, the Kuwait War had the most undesirable consequences for Iran, as it provided the opportunity for a direct and extensive US presence in the Persian Gulf, based on security pacts signed with the smaller Gulf countries. The Iranian elites, therefore, concluded that no amount of goodwill gestures would result in the level of partnership that Tehran was looking for; this, in turn, limited further overtures and compromises. The boost in Iran’s regional weight, resulting particularly from Iraq’s post-2003 transformations, exacerbated geopolitical rivalry between Iran and the GCC countries, which subsequently turned into open confrontation and proxy wars, especially as subsequent developments, such as the mostly disastrous outcomes of the Arab uprising and the Joint Comprehensive Plan of Action (JCPOA), have reduced Tehran’s isolation and provided it with further influence.

The axis of resistance Iran’s enduring alliance with Syria is at the heart of the axis of resistance, which also includes Lebanon’s Hezbollah, as well as the inconsistent involvement of Hamas. The stealthy foundation of this axis was laid down years before Iran’s 1979 revolution, when Syria was a safe haven for the more religious Iranian opposition,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 439

23/10/18 12:45 PM

440

marzieh kouhi esfahani

some of whom even received military training there. These people later became part of the Islamic Republic’s political elites, bestowing a human connection on state calculations. Maintaining security in the face of common adversaries, such as Israel and the USA, has been a major driving force for all members of the axis. Syrian friendship provided Iran with ‘a powerful Arab ally in its efforts to counter US influence in the region and build a multipolar environment in the Middle East’ (Ehteshami 2017: 187). Syria has also been a gateway for ‘Tehran to extend its reach into Lebanon and its substantial Shia communities’ (Ehteshami 2017: 187), paving the way for the support and organisation of paramilitary groups, particularly Hezbollah. Consequently, as Major General Safavi has put it, ‘Iran’s reach and influence have moved from Iraq and Syria to the Mediterranean . . . our defence line is in the south of Lebanon, and our strategic defence depth is over the Israeli border’ (Daliryan 2014). This is perceived as one of Iran’s leverages against a possible US attack. In response to threats from the USA or Israel, Tehran has warned repeatedly that it can easily target Israel. The geopolitical importance of each individual member for Iran’s security and influence, as well as their cumulative value as an axis, has provided Tehran with an invaluable strategic asset. Hence, Iran’s adversaries have always hoped that by debilitating these close allies, Tehran would be too weak to project power beyond its borders. Goodarzi (2008: xiv) has explained, for example, that once the 2006 Israel–Lebanon conflict had begun, the USA calculated that a sustained and comprehensive Israeli attack would weaken Hezbollah to such a degree that the Syria–Iran camp would be denied an important point of leverage, and that this would pave the way for Washington’s possible military operation against Tehran. Yet Hezbollah’s swift and strong response, resulting from years of training by the IRGC and the fact of being armed with Iranian-supplied missiles, left Israel defeated. Iran’s unsparing support throughout the war and its involvement in the reconstruction of Beirut’s war-torn infrastructure and houses increased Hezbollah’s influence in Lebanese politics. The same logic applies to Iran’s support of Assad following the popular revolt and subsequent civil war. While cheering on the uprisings in other Arab countries, Tehran took a completely different approach to similar events in Syria. The Supreme Leader’s justification for such a double standard was that the uprisings in other countries were anti-US, anti-Zionist; but they (US and Israel) are simulating the events of other Arab countries in Syria to create a problem for the Axis of resistance. Where the slogans are in favour of Zionists and the US, the movement is not authentic, but devious. (BBC Persian 2011) Tehran’s initial support of Assad was due to the exigencies of preserving its strategic depth; however, when the uprising was hijacked by radical terrorist groups financed by Iran’s many rivals, and the rise of the Islamic State in Iraq and Syria (ISIS) began to pose a direct threat to its own security, Tehran had no choice but to involve itself much more deeply and heavily in both countries. Iranian leaders have a simple rationale for justifying the heavy costs of this involvement: if we do not stop the terrorists there, we will have to fight them in Iranian cities.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 440

23/10/18 12:45 PM

iran

441

The nuclear case Iran’s nuclear programme, initiated during the Pahlavi era and perceived as a treacherous project using up national resources in the immediate aftermath of the revolution, was revived in 1994. While Tehran’s main intention, in both the Pahlavi and Islamic Republic eras, was the peaceful application of nuclear technology, both regimes had examined the possibility of developing a nuclear deterrent should Iran’s security be challenged, and both had reportedly taken steps for the development of a complete fuel cycle. Due to Tehran’s low-key approach, its comprehensive nuclear development project, which was embarked upon in the mid-1990s, did not receive serious attention before 2002, as documented in the revelations by an exiled opposition group that consequently overshadowed President Khatami’s efforts to integrate Iran with the international community. Within a few months of the disclosure and to solve important disputed issues, Iran submitted a comprehensive proposal for negotiations with the USA, which offered, inter alia, full security transparency to assure the lack of any Iranian endeavours to develop or possess weapons of mass destruction. Yet the Bush administration refused even to consider the proposal. With the aim of damage control and conflict prevention, negotiations between Iran and the European Troika started in October 2003 and resulted in the 2004 Paris Agreement, in which Iran accepted voluntary and temporary suspension of uranium enrichment and other dual-purpose activities as a confidence-building measure while talks continued in search of a more permanent agreement. As the UK former Foreign Minister has iterated, both in his memoirs and in interview, had it not been for major problems within the US administration under President Bush, we (EU3) could have actually settled the whole Iran nuclear dossier back in 2005, and probably wouldn’t have had President Ahmadinejad as a consequence of the failure as well. (Morrison and Oborne 2013) Upon US insistence, the European Union proposed to Iran that it should permanently suspend enrichment in return for economic incentives. Tehran immediately rejected this proposal, based on clear infringements of the Paris Agreement, as well as Iran’s right within the Non-Proliferation Treaty (NPT), which was interpreted as a violation of Iran’s sovereignty. As his last executive action before leaving office, Khatami ended the self-imposed enrichment suspension. From this point until 2013, Iran’s relations with the world entered a downward spiral. While the USA and Israel undertook various measures to sabotage Iran’s nuclear project, the dossier was referred to the UN Security Council, resulting in punitive international sanctions hitting directly at the heart of Iran’s economy, with the shadow of war coming closer to Iranian skies. Yet no considerable progress was achieved in numerous sets of negotiations before 2013, when Rouhani, Iran’s chief nuclear negotiator prior to the 2005 setbacks, took office. Following several rounds of cumbersome talks between Iran and the 5+1 at the highest diplomatic level, an agreement was reached over the JCPOA, which was subsequently ratified by the UN Security Council but heavily criticised by Iran’s regional adversaries, Saudi Arabia and Israel.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 441

23/10/18 12:45 PM

442

marzieh kouhi esfahani

The most significant demand that all the Iranian negotiators had emphasised over the years was recognition of Iran’s right to enrichment within the NPT framework, as a sign of acknowledging the country’s sovereignty. Tehran’s rationale for moving towards nuclear deterrence was the countering of its geopolitical insecurities. In addition to the aforementioned security concerns, like the absence of any strong alliance in the face of abundant adversaries, as well as constant pressure and threats from the USA and its allies, the proximity of several nuclear states, including Israel, Pakistan and Russia, was perceived as a potential threat to Iran.

Conclusion To understand Iran’s foreign policy, one needs to look at its actual performance within the historical geopolitical context, rather than its rhetoric, for the latter has often been taken too seriously by third parties – sometimes even mistaken for concrete foreign policy. Despite their many differences, Iranian leaders have, throughout the modern era, pursued similar foreign policy goals that can be summarised as the three ‘S’s: survival, sovereignty and security. Over the course of history, due to its geostrategic location and valuable resources, Iran has repeatedly been faced with interventions by the hegemonic powers that have posed threats to its sovereignty and security. Hence, Tehran has exploited every opportunity to maximise its security through different means. Alliance building, either with Washington against Moscow or within a policy of ‘regional security maintained by regional states’, pursued by both the late Pahlavi and the Islamic Republic, are examples of efforts to balance the hegemonic powers. Frustrated efforts to establish a strategic regional alliance have been a crucial factor in Tehran’s unwavering support for the axis of resistance and its overemphasis on ‘self-reliance’. Increasing its power, in both military and other security sectors, has been Iran’s other option for enhancing its security. Tehran’s efforts to expand its influence, as well as enhancing its defence capabilities in every viable way, from attempts to develop nuclear deterrence to the manufacture of advanced ballistic missiles, are other routes for security maximisation, with an added emphasis on self-sufficiency, based on the bitter lessons of its war with Iraq. Though ideology is at the core of the Islamic Republic, Iran’s revolutionary zeal, at least in the foreign policy domain, has been gradually fading away since the early 1980s and has remained mostly at a rhetorical level and for instrumental use. Tehran’s stable cordial relations with Christian Armenia or Communist China, in contrast to its troublesome relations with Shia Azerbaijan and many other Muslim countries, are clear examples of prioritising security and national interest over ideology. The most significant remnants of ideology in Iran’s foreign policy are its antiAmerican, anti-Israeli notions. None the less, Iran has demonstrated a willingness to make compromises over those two issues when there has been either an imminent security concern or an opportunity to pursue the national interest, including Tehran’s 2003 overture to strike a grand bargain ‘with the US – rebuffed by the Bush administration – under which Iran would have recognised a two-state solution to the Israeli–Palestinian issue’ (Hassibi 2014). Such examples, which are in sharp contrast to Tehran’s exaggerated rhetoric, can be explained by a simple philosophy introduced by Ayatollah Khomeini, who provided a flexible framework to ensure the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 442

23/10/18 12:45 PM

iran

443

state’s survival and security: that is, ‘preservation of the system (state) is the most essential duty’. The same notion can explain Tehran’s frequent change of strategy between moderation and confrontational approaches, searching always for an effective formula to counter security challenges.

Bibliography Adib Moghaddam, A. (2007), Iran in World Politics: The Question of the Islamic Republic, New York: Hurst. Alvandi, R. (2010), ‘Muhammad Reza Pahlavi and the Bahrain question 1968–1970’, British Journal of Middle Eastern Studies, vol. 37, no. 2, pp. 159–77. Bakhash, S. (2004), ‘Iran’s Foreign Policy under the Islamic Republic, 1979–2000’, in L. Carl Brown (ed.), Diplomacy in the Middle East: the International Relations of Regional and Outside Powers, London: I. B. Tauris, pp. 247–8. BBC Persian (2011), Rahbare Iran E’terezate Surieh ra Harekate Enherafi Khaand, 10 March, available at (last accessed 5 March 2017). CBS News (2018), Transcript: Full Interview with Mohammad Javad Zarif, 22 April, available at (last accessed 19 June 2018). Chubin, S. and S. Zabih (1974), The Foreign Relations of Iran: A Developing State in a Zone of Great-power Conflict, Berkeley: University of California Press. Daliryan, H. (2014), Omghe Strategike Iran, 3 May, available at (last accessed 2 March 2017). Ehteshami, A. (2017), Iran: Stuck in Transition, London: Routledge. Goodarzi, J. (2013), ‘Iran and Syria at the crossroads: The fall of the Tehran–Damascus axis?’, Viewpoints, no. 35, available at (last accessed 19 June 2018). Hassibi, N. (2014), Why Can’t Iran and Israel be Friends?, 18 April, available at (last accessed 10 April 2017). Karabell, Z. (1996–7), ‘Fundamental misconceptions: Islamic foreign policy’, Foreign Policy, vol. 105, pp. 76–90. Keddie, N. and Gasiorowski, M. (1990), Neither East, Nor West, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Khalatbari, A. A. (2008), ‘Yaddashthaye Vazire Omure Kharejeh’, Faslnameye Motaleate Tarikhi, no. 21, pp. 107–36. Majd, M. G. (2016), Iran under Allied Occupation in World War II: The Bridge to Victory & A Land of Famine, Lanham, MD: University Press of America. Mokhtari, F. (2005), ‘No one will scratch my back: Iranian security perceptions in historical context’, Middle East Journal, vol. 59, no. 2, pp. 209–9. Morrison, D. and P. Oborne (2013), US Scuppered Deal with Iran in 2005, Says then British Foreign Minister, 23 September, available at (last accessed 2 March 2017). Moshirzadeh, H. (2006), ‘Tahlile siāsate khārejie Iran az manzare sāzehengāri’, in N. Mosaffa, Negāhi Be Siāsate Khārejie Jomhūrie Eslāmie Iran, Tehran: Daftare Motāleāte Siāsi va Bainolmelalie Vezārate Omūre Khāreje (Farsi).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 443

23/10/18 12:45 PM

444

marzieh kouhi esfahani

Nyrop, R. F. (1978), Iran: A Country Study, Washington, DC: American University Foreign Area Studies. Press TV (2016), Iran FM Defends Right to Use Missiles for Defence, available at (last accessed 10 February 2017). Raji, M. M. (2013), Aghaye Safir: Gofte Gu ba Mohammad Javad Zarif, Tehran: Nashre Nay. Ramazani, R. K. (1989), ‘Iran’s foreign policy: Contending orientations’, Middle East Journal, vol. 43, pp. 202–17. Ramazani, R. K. (1992), ‘Both North and South’, Middle East Journal, vol. 46, no. 3, pp. 393–412. Seabury, P. (1974), Foreword, in S. Chubin and S. Zabih, The Foreign Relations of Iran: A Developing State in a Zone of Great-power Conflict, Berkeley: University of California Press. Sick, G. (1987), ‘Iran’s quest for superpower status’, Foreign Policy, vol. 65, no. 4, pp. 76–90. Wright, R. B. (2010), The Iran Primer: Power, Politics, and U.S. Policy, Washington, DC: Woodrow Wilson International Center for Scholars.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 444

23/10/18 12:45 PM

35 Political Realism and Israel Reading Maslow in the land of magical realism Uriel Abulof

Chapter Overview

T

his article resolves an intriguing puzzle: the safer Israel has become, the more anxious Israelis have turned. Israel has never been more prosperous or powerful than it is today, yet Israelis have increasingly opted for fearmongering politicians, urging conservative, religious and nationalist policies. Why? I argue that the answer lies in Israel’s ‘magical realism’, meshing the imperative of survival and safety with the spell of belonging, recognition and legitimation. I trace this amalgam back to Maslow’s hierarchy of human needs, which realism should have employed but has not. I thus address the Israeli puzzle by piecing together three accounts: the existence of real dangers, the social construction of existential threats and the search for belonging and esteem. I conclude by complementing basic needs with greed and creeds. Overall, realism and Maslow have much to teach each other, and us, about real-world problems. *

*

*

Introduction Since 2008, I have been teaching ‘Introduction to International Relations’ at Tel-Aviv University in Israel, to approximately 300 students annually. As this is too large a class for in-depth conversations, I enjoy conducting anecdotal polls. Concluding the near-statutory instruction on the IR schools of thought, I ask my students: ‘So, do you now subscribe to realism, liberalism or constructivism? Perhaps to the English School, feminism or critical theories? Any Marxists in the audience?’ The balance of raised hands requires no careful counting: realism reigns, with constructivism a close second; all other approaches lag far behind. Indeed, in what is arguably the most liberal university in Israel, IR liberalism rarely excites my students. I might be at fault, and yet for Israelis, as my students and myself are, the results should come as no surprise. Israelis often take pride in their painful awareness of the hard facts of real politics: it is all about power, and might makes right. We inhabit a tough neighbourhood, where survival is paramount and only strength assures safety. Some in the liberal West may be so hopelessly naive as to believe in the goodwill of people, in altruism, cosmopolitanism, and progress towards peace and prosperity. But

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 445

23/10/18 12:45 PM

446

uriel abulof

we have learned our lessons well; the history of the world, and of our own people, has sobered us and made us realise that war is inevitable, that the next round always awaits. At the same time, few in Israel can dodge the power of ideas, of deep-seated convictions, of what lies beyond the materially tangible matrix of hard power. In this realm, God, state and nation, Bible, culture and civilisations roam the landscape. They cast their spell over us, for better and for worse. In short, we live, I believe, in a land of magical realism. This observation may account for an intriguing puzzle: the safer Israel has become, the more anxious Israelis have grown. Since the Holocaust, the Jewish people, both within and outside Israel, have gradually gained strength and security. Israel has never been more prosperous and powerful – militarily, economically and politically. And yet Israelis – and here I focus on Israeli Jews – have increasingly opted for fear-mongering politicians, most notably in the last generation, marked by the leadership of Benjamin Netanyahu. Why? The amalgam of ‘magical realism’, I suggest, can help resolve this seeming paradox. Theoretically, this account reintroduces the study of human nature to realism, and vice versa. Realism is, of course, no stranger to human nature. The founder of modern IR realism, Hans Morgenthau (1948: 4), commences his influential Politics Among Nations by declaring that since ‘social forces are the product of human nature in action’, we must seek ‘an exact examination of things as they are and human nature as it is’. In practice, however, few political scientists, and fewer realists, have heeded Morgenthau’s advice (cf. Forbes and Smith 1983; Pennock and Chapman 1977). Had realists done so, Abraham Maslow could have offered them invaluable insights. From his seminal paper ‘A Theory of Human Motivation’ (1943) to The Farther Reaches of Human Nature (1971), published a year after he died, Maslow devoted his life to the study of human nature. His ‘hierarchy of human needs’, spanning survival, safety, love, esteem and self-actualisation, remains one of the most daring attempts to figure out the dynamic structure of human motivations. His thesis may be incomplete or too ordered (Alkire 2002; Tay and Diener 2011), but many of its propositions have been empirically substantiated (Kenrick et al. 2010; Taormina and Gao 2013). And yet, political realism has mostly ignored Maslow (cf. Burton 1990; Hummel and Isaak 1980), while Maslow himself missed some important realist insights. Below I first present the Israeli puzzle and then revisit Maslow, through a ‘magical realist’ reading, to resolve it.

The Puzzle: Fear and Trembling in (Mighty) Zion Few peoples and states have faced mortal dangers more than the Jewish people and the Jewish state, from the biblical narrative of slavery in Egypt, through the destruction of the First and Second Temples, exiles and pogroms, subjugation and discrimination, to the extermination camps of the Holocaust. And yet, since the end of World War Two, the Jewish people, in diaspora and homeland, have become increasingly secure. In the diaspora, while anti-Semitism, discrimination and hate crimes still abide, their scope and scale have greatly dwindled, and most Jews have increasingly enjoyed the peace and prosperity of Western countries. In the old–new homeland too, Jews have become more prosperous and powerful than ever before. Zionism, the Jewish national movement of late modernity, achieved in 1948 its primary goal: establishing an independent statehood for the people. In its War of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 446

23/10/18 12:45 PM

israel

447

Independence (1947–9), Israel defeated both Palestine’s Arabs and Arab states. Less than a decade later, Israel had swiftly captured, and relinquished, the Sinai Peninsula. In 1967, Israel Defence Forces (IDF) defeated the armies of Egypt, Jordan and Syria (aided by Iraq and Lebanon) in a stunning six days, taking hold over Sinai, the Golan Heights, the Gaza Strip, the West Bank and all of Jerusalem. Even the surprise attacks by Egypt and Syria on Yom Kippur 1973 did not succeed, and the IDF soon regained the upper hand. At the same time, Israel has developed a sizeable and diverse nuclear arsenal, sustaining a nuclear monopoly in the region by attacking Iraq (1981) and Syria (2007), and indirectly through Western diplomacy vis-à-vis Iran (2015). Israel has forged an effective alliance with a global superpower, the USA, which became hegemonic in the early 1990s. It attained peace treaties with two of its fiercest enemies, Egypt (1979) and Jordan (1994), and was even recognised by the Palestinian Liberation Organisation (PLO), before negotiating for a settlement (1993– ). The Second Palestinian Intifada (2000–4) failed to force Israel’s withdrawal from the occupied territories, yet contributed to the political disintegration of Palestinian society. More recently, in the wake of the Arab Spring, Israel’s Arab neighbours, especially Syria, have greatly weakened, with Sunni leaders holding fast to the conciliatory Arab Peace Initiative (2002, 2007). From its inception and throughout, Israel’s economy has grown dramatically, becoming robust enough to contain the ill effects of the Second Intifada and the global financial crisis. With recent gas discoveries, Israel has also become more self-reliant in energy than ever. To sum up, Israel has become safer and stronger, and its survival more assured, than ever before. Yet a quick look at Israel’s politics reveals a confusing trend: even as it has become safer, Israelis seem increasingly fearful. Electoral trends are indicative. Israelis have opted for right-wing politicians who underscore the existential threats facing the Jewish state, urging conservative, religious and nationalist policies. From the emergence of the modern Jewish Yishuv (polity) in the late nineteenth century and for Israel’s first thirty years, left-wing parties, led by the Labor Party, formed coalitions. The first right-wing coalition rose in 1977, led by the Likud, established in the wake of the Yom Kippur War. Over the following forty years, left-wing coalitions led for less than six years. Most telling of Israel’s politics of fear is the prominence of Benjamin Netanyahu. Since his first election as premier in 1996, Netanyahu, an artisan of fear-mongering, has reiterated one key message: Israel faces mortal threats everywhere, and Israeli Jews must elect him to remain safe and survive. Domestic media and academia, human rights activists, demographic trends, terrorism, worldwide anti-Semitism, Arab rejectionism, the Iranian nuclear project – all these, and more, inhabit the mental universe of Netanyahu and of many Israeli Jews, who have opted for his governments. What can explain this seeming paradox between Israel’s growing might and its mounting fears?

Real Dangers Human nature, especially human motivations, should inform any causal claim in the social sciences. Without understanding what drives people, we cannot account for their conduct. This goes for all social theories, and realism is no exception: to offer causality, it must theorise human motivations, figure out the dynamic structure of the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 447

23/10/18 12:45 PM

448

uriel abulof

push-and-pull forces that impact people. Herein lies the first contribution of Maslow’s theory to realism: it directly addresses these motivations, submitting that they are hierarchically structured. But Maslow’s contribution to realism goes further and deeper, for he posits the predominance of material motivations for survival and safety, which is the premise of all realist thought. Maslow’s (1943) detailed hierarchy of basic human needs gave his theory its pyramid-like imagery: 1. 2. 3. 4.

physiological survival, including food, water, sleep, air and warmth safety from threats, thus seeking a predictable, stable, ordered world love, affection – both giving and receiving – as well as belonging esteem, both by the self (strength and confidence) and by others (recognition, appreciation and prestige) 5. self-actualisation, a sense that ‘what a man can be – he must be’. Importantly, in the balance between realism and idealism, Maslow (1971: 214) empirically favours the former: ‘Lower basic needs are prepotent to higher needs, which in turn are prepotent to meta needs (intrinsic values). This means that materialism is prepotent to “idealism” but also that they both exist.’ For Maslow (1999: 163, 164), ‘man’s higher nature rests upon man’s lower nature, needing it as a foundation and collapsing without this foundation. . . . Our godlike qualities rest upon and need our animal qualities.’ After all, ‘for the man who is extremely and dangerously hungry, no other interests exist but food. He dreams food, he remembers food, he thinks about food, he emotes only about food, he perceives only food and he wants only food’ (Maslow 1943: 374). Moreover, the material needs for survival and safety always lurk. Their satiation is perforce tentative: neglect them for a moment and they may well return to bite. The prepotency of material realism makes perfect sense to most contemporary Israeli Jews, for whom the survival instinct is first, not second, nature. They would, however, inform Maslow that survival and safety go together; for the Jewish people, to be unsafe is to risk annihilation. Prime Minister Ben-Gurion (1955) explained: Our security problem means the problem of our survival. Physical survival in its simplest sense . . . they [the Arabs] intend, as many of them openly say, to throw us all into the sea; in plainer words – to destroy the Jews in Israel. Ben-Gurion made this ominous remark in response to the arms deal between Czechoslovakia and Egypt, when the balance of power between the newly independent state and its enemies was still precarious. A decade later, the imbalance of power became evident – favouring Israel – and the gap has grown ever since. Still, Israel’s foes present it with substantial security challenges in terms of both intentions and capabilities. Israeli concerns with intentions are directed at both inner and outer circles. Regarding the former, Palestinian leaders have persistently rejected Israel’s demand to recognise it as a Jewish state, which, to many Israeli Jews, reveals their ‘true colours’: their ultimate desire to get rid of the Jewish state. Other proximate nonstate actors – chiefly, the Hamas and Hezbollah (and, more recently, al-Qaeda and

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 448

23/10/18 12:45 PM

israel

449

the Islamic State of Iraq and Syria, or ISIS) – feature even harsher rejectionism of Israel, often embedded in deep anti-Semitism. In the outer circle, Iranian rhetoric has been the most inflammatory. President Mahmoud Ahmadinejad (2005–13), arguably a Holocaust denier, is a prime case in point, allegedly calling to ‘wipe off the map’ the Zionist regime, read Israel. Granted, between these circles, more moderate Arab regimes (for example, Egypt, Jordan and Lebanon) have employed relatively benign, albeit still critical, discourse. Still, desires to see, and intentions to inflict, politicide and genocide on the Jewish state persist. These vicious intentions are not vacuous: Israel’s enemies are not entirely frail and some are getting stronger. Its precarious nuclear monopoly notwithstanding, Israel is much smaller – geographically and demographically – and strategically more vulnerable, than its current and potential rivals. Turkey, under a hostile, and increasingly hegemonic, Recep Erdoğan, is a military powerhouse. It ranks eighth in the Global Fire Power (2017) index worldwide and first in the Middle East. Its military budget, aircraft and military personnel outstrip Israel’s; its tanks and navy are on par with Israel’s. Saudi Arabia’s military budget, Syria’s tanks, Egypt’s navy and aircraft, Iran’s personnel – all have an advantage over Israel’s (Gould and Szoldra 2017). Facing such a ‘nightmare coalition’, Israel might not be the last one standing. Non-state actors too pose grave military threats. Hezbollah, in particular, has turned from a strong terror group to an effective army, with about 45,000 fighters (half in regular service), tens of thousands of rockets, hundreds of long-range missiles (with a range that covers all of Israel), hundreds of drones, advanced surfaceto-sea missiles and anti-aircraft systems, and thousands of anti-tank missiles (Harel and Cohen 2016). ‘Just because you’re paranoid doesn’t mean they aren’t after you,’ instructed Joseph Heller in Catch-22, and Israel may be trapped in a similar catch. However overly fearful, Israel, and Israeli Jews, face real threats, some quite acute, which almost perforce make them fearful – remaining in the primal rungs of Maslow’s pyramid and opting for fear-mongering politicians.

Constructing Threats Maslow’s pyramid is an integrated physiological–psychological construct: satisfying the various needs should provide for a healthy and happy life. However, while this material–mental amalgam is the overall goal, Maslow clearly attributes the actual needs to either physiological or psychological drives. He sees the primal needs for survival and safety as objective, anchored in material reality, and reserves the subjective dimensions for the higher needs. But are not threats to survival and security also subjective, even intersubjective? Realism should realise they are. After all, as Thucydides (2009) noted, ‘the real reason, true but unacknowledged, which forced the [Peloponnesian] war was the growth of Athenian power and Spartan fear of it’. The shift in the objective balance of power triggers hostility when perceived as dangerous. IR realism seemingly notes that via Walt’s (1987) ‘balance of threat’ theory, yet its determining factors either fall back on objective criteria (aggregate power, the offence–defence balance and geographic proximity) or border on tautology (perceptions of intent). Constructivism

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 449

23/10/18 12:45 PM

450

uriel abulof

offers a corrective via ‘securitisation theory’, focusing on the social, often discursive, construction of security (Buzan, Waever and De Wilde 1998). Securitisation theory becomes especially pertinent to Israel when it embraces its existentialism – figuring out how societies construct threats as endangering the very existence of the people and their state (Abulof 2014a). In the case of Israel, one can trace the antecedent of such processes in the deep history of the Jewish people. ‘The world has many images of Israel,’ argued Simon Rawidowicz (1986: 54), ‘but Israel has only one image of itself: that of an expiring people, forever on the verge of ceasing to be.’ Rawidowicz made this observation in 1948, when the Jewish state was founded, Zionism seemingly realised. Still, despite its incessant attempt to quell the perils of Jewish life on the verge of the abyss, Zionism has continuously seen itself living on the edge, longing for the ostensible eviternity of self-assured nations, while wallowing in the mire of collective mortality (Abulof 2015b). Generations after Rawidowicz, noted journalist Ari Shavit (2013) thus began his popular personal narrative, My Promised Land: For as long as I can remember, I remember fear. Existential fear. The Israel I grew up in – the Israel of the mid-1960s – was energetic, exuberant, and hopeful. But I always felt that beyond the well-to-do houses and upper-middle-class lawns of my hometown lay a dark ocean. Jews and non-Jews alike have perceived imminent perils to the Jewish state. A search for the terms ‘existential threat’ or ‘existential danger’ in news databases (including the Western press) shows Israel to be the subject of about half of the articles containing these terms.1 This existential anxiety is key to deciphering Israel, as Gerard Araud realised at the twilight of his term as French Ambassador to Israel: For us, the Europeans, it is difficult, almost impossible, to understand such deep existential fear, but I recognize it as one of the strongest factors impacting thoughts and decision making in Israel. Anyone taking this mood into consideration sees everything differently (Ha’aretz, 29 September 2006) Elites and public alike have partaken in the construction of existential threats, signalling that survival and safety are not – perhaps can never be – assured. Importantly, these discourses do not merely reflect but also affect material reality, especially when the speakers are decision-makers. The Jewish–Palestinian conflict has been a centurylong object of such ‘securitisation’ – framed as endangering the Jewish state. Thus, for example, at the height of the Second Intifada, Chief of Staff of the IDF Moshe Ya’alon referred to the conflict as a ‘cancerous existential threat’ (Ha’aretz, 30 August 2002). Some weeks later, the former (and future) Prime Minister, Benjamin Netanyahu, expanded on the lethal clinical language to refer to the Islamic movement in Israel (YNET, 21 September 2002). Such statements lay the groundwork for taking harsh measures against the Palestinian threat, seeking, in the words of Ya’alon, to ‘sear their consciousness’, so they would never contemplate the disappearance of the Jewish state (Abulof 2014b). Similarly, Zionism’s struggle to obtain and sustain a

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 450

23/10/18 12:45 PM

israel

451

Jewish majority has translated into the ‘demographic demon’ discourse, shaping and justifying key policies (Abulof 2014a). Israel’s nuclear policy is another case in point. The basic needs of survival and safety have been paramount: the regional nuclear monopoly became the ultimate guarantee of survival. Seymour Hersh (1991), in The Samson Option, sketched the profile of the ‘Israeli bomb’ as a last resort, an existential defence line to bring the whole house down on its inhabitants, as Samson had done to the Philistines. Tellingly, the vow ‘never again’ was physically etched on to Dimona’s first product.2 Queried about the nuclear project, Ben-Gurion wrote to US President John Kennedy: ‘What was done to six million of our brothers twenty years ago may happen to the two million Jews in Israel if the IDF, perish the thought, is defeated’ (cited in Cohen 1996). In a later letter about the project, he wrote to Kennedy, ‘While it may not come about today or tomorrow, I am not certain that the State will continue to exist for long after my death’ (cited in Heller 2010: 338). Nuclear weapons were conceived not only as the ultimate deterrent but also as a way to convince the Muslim–Arab world that its opposition to the Jewish state was futile. This went hand in hand with efforts to prevent the nuclearisation of conflict states. The 1981 demolition of Iraq’s nuclear reactor was described by Prime Minister Menachem Begin (1981) to cheering crowds as an existential act par excellence: The reactor collapsed and fell, and was no more! It will not be again! The children of Israel will live! Houses will be built for them! And the people of Israel will live in the Land of Israel for generations, and will not live in fear. A generation later, in September 2007, Israel attacked a potential nuclear facility in Syria. The Iranian nuclear project is a recurrent theme in Israeli 2000s securitisation. Major General (res.) Yossi Peled, for example, proclaimed that Iran ‘is the largest, most real, most existential threat, raising the possibility that the State of Israel may be a fleeting episode . . . this is a terrifying existential threat’ (Ha’aretz, 20 October 2006). Prime Minister Netanyahu, before and during his second and third terms in office (2009– ), effectively leveraged this discourse. He repeatedly stressed Iran’s nuclear programme as an existential threat to Israel: ‘The year is 1938, Iran is Germany, and is intending to acquire nuclear weapons’ (Ha’aretz, 19 November 2006). His rhetoric has resonated with, and has probably affected, Israeli Jewish public opinion. A clear majority saw Iran as seeking nuclear weapons in order to obliterate Israel, a third saying they would consider leaving Israel if Iran acquires the bomb (Yaar and Hermann 2014: August 2006, February 2012; Center for Iranian Studies 2009; Ma’ariv, 24 November 2006). Notably, Netanyahu and Iranian leaders, especially Ahmadinejad, have boosted their domestic legitimacy through the mutual exchange of radical rhetoric (Abulof 2013). To be sure, there is plenty of manipulation in the politics of fear, in Israel as elsewhere. Fear-mongering, many Zionist leaders realised, is an effective instrument of power; it can be used, and abused, to advance various goals. And yet, these leaders may also be sincere and fearful. Moreover, they, as us, may ponder: perhaps fear itself is the best guarantee of survival and safety? Yitzchak Tabenkin, a Zionist leader, exposed the merits of this paradox: ‘Has there been anything created without seeing

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 451

23/10/18 12:45 PM

452

uriel abulof

darkness, without seeing the abyss into which the House of Israel was slipping? It was this sight that was the source of strength’ (cited in Luz 2003: 79). Rawidowicz (1986: 61) confessed to be ‘often tempted to think that this fear of cessation was fundamentally a kind of protective individual and collective emotion . . . as if its incessant preparation for the end made this very end absolutely impossible’. Many fail to resist Rawidowicz’s temptation. Shavit (2013), for example, admonishes those Israeli Jews who ‘were fooled by the Zionist success story’, so much so that ‘they lost sight of the existential risk embodied in the Zionist deed. Gradually they lost the concentration and caution required of those walking a tightrope over the abyss.’

Belonging and Esteem Maslow (1943: 380–2) saw survival and safety as commencing, not concluding, the human journey: if both needs ‘are fairly well gratified, then there will emerge the love and affection and belongingness needs’, followed by ‘desire for a stable, firmly based . . . self-respect, or self-esteem, and for the esteem of others’, seeking strength, recognition and prestige. The lesson is often lost on neorealists, who eschew human nature and instead personify the state into a rational caricature of humans (Abulof 2015a). Some of their more attentive forerunners, however, had grasped the importance of human nature, and – long before the advent of IR constructivism – of the search for belonging and esteem. Niebuhr (1944), for example, well understood that ‘man is the kind of animal who cannot merely live’, but also harbours the ‘will-to-live-truly’, mainly through the collective, as well as ‘the desire for “power and glory”’, which renders intergroup relations especially combustive. Israel is a fascinating laboratory for the roles of belonging and esteem in politics. Disillusioned by emancipation that allowed for anti-Semitism, early Zionists reasserted their belonging to – indeed, the very existence of – a Jewish people, demanding it is respected as such, finding its independent place among modern nations. Theodore (Ze’ev) Herzl (1946) thus opened his ‘Der Judenstaat’ (The Jewish State, 1896), declaring, ‘We are a people, one people!’ (‘Wir sind ein Volk, Ein Volk!’). The statement both reflected the crisis of religious Jewish identity facing the challenges of modernity and prescribed an old–new anchor for Jewish peoplehood – ethnic (Jewishness) rather than religious (Judaism) – to make a moral demand for national self-determination. This nascent nationalism often underplayed its religious underpinning both to signal a break from the exilic, subjugated existence and to assert a unity based on fate, not faith. Until 1967, secular Zionism had largely contained the tension between the national and religious senses of ethnic belonging. Thereafter, this tension erupted with vengeance, often positing Judaism and Israeliness against each other. Increasingly, Judaism waxed and Israeliness waned, lending an upper hand to the political right. To be sure, while fiercely debating what it means to be Jewish, Zionist and Israeli, Israeli Jews have overwhelmingly identified themselves with all three. Almost all Israeli Jews have identified, and have been identified, as Jews, part of an ‘extended ethnic family’, whether religiously observant or secular, in the Land of Israel or in the Diaspora (Arian and Keissar-Sugarmen 2012). Most, moreover, consider themselves ‘Zionist’ (Arian and Keissar-Sugarmen 2012: 69), feel a sense of belonging to the country and are proud Israelis (Hermann 2011: 103–7).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 452

23/10/18 12:45 PM

israel

453

Yet Israeliness turned out to be not merely fresher, but also more fragile, than Judaism. In 1952, Ben Gurion (1997: 164) pondered: The State came into being, yet it did not find the nation which had awaited it. For centuries the Jewish people had asked in prayer: ‘Will there be a state for the people?’ No one had ever imagined the terrifying question: ‘Will there be a people for the state when it comes into being?’ Yet that is the question of all questions for the State of Israel. The question still looms heavily. Israeliness has been increasingly caught in between clashing interpretations: on the one hand, its civic understanding extols Israel as home to all its citizens; on the other, its ethno-national connotation delimits its appeal to Jews alone, or even just Zionists. Against this backdrop, the years 1967–73 marked a turning point in the public ascendancy of Jewish identity, often at the expense of Israeliness. The 1967 appropriation of the ‘promised land’ facilitated a religious revival, and the devastating surprise of the 1973 war engendered ‘a deep crisis of leadership, values, and identity. The nation was filled with despair, self-doubt, and existential fear. Let down by Israel, many sought comfort in Judaism’ (Shavit 2013; see also Peri et al. 2012). A generation later, the peace process of the mid-1990s foregrounded the Jewish– Israeli identity tension, which reached an apex in the assassination of Prime Minister Yitzhak Rabin and the subsequent 1996 electoral victory of Netanyahu over Prime Minister Shimon Peres. The heated public discourse focused on the swelling gap between Jewish identity, with its growing religious nationalist elements, and Israeli identity, which was associated with the secular left. The electoral slogan of the incumbent Prime Minister was ‘Israel is strong with Peres’. In opposition, Netanyahu’s slogan, used massively in the days before the elections, was ‘Netanyahu is good for the Jews’. Peres later explained his defeat: ‘We lost . . . we are Israelis,’ and the winners ‘don’t have an Israeli mentality . . . you can call them Jews’ (cited in Ben-Simon 1997). A few months after his election, Netanyahu whispered in the ear of an aged kabbalist, Rabbi Yitzhak Kaduri: ‘The people of the left have forgotten what it is to be Jewish.’ The Israeli–Jewish cleavage resurfaced during the passionate debate over the unilateral disengagement from the Gaza Strip (2004–5). Opponents of the move occasionally tarnished supporters as betraying the Jewish family and should thus be banished from it. The opposition’s campaign slogan, ‘A Jew does not expel a Jew’, indicated as much, while implicitly suggesting that Jews may readily expel non-Jews. Thus, while most Zionist centre and left have retained their Jewish self-identification, the right – secular, traditional and religious – have often blamed and shamed the left as either ‘traitors’ or ‘self-hating Jews’ (for example, Sheleg 2014). The Israeli–Jewish cleavage resonates well in surveys and elections. While some surveys strongly indicate the Jewish eclipse of Israeliness (Arian and Keissar-Sugarmen 2012: 63; Pew Global Attitudes Project 2016), other polls point to the lingering potency of Israeliness. Yet even the latter findings suggest clear fault lines: while secular and left wing favour Israeli to Jewish identity, ultra-orthodox, religious and traditional say Jewish identity is more important to them (Hermann 2016: 76–8). Belonging and esteem deeply entwine, not least in politics. In contemporary Israel, the predominance of Jewish identity often implies ethnocentrism and xenophobia.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 453

23/10/18 12:45 PM

454

uriel abulof

Nearly two-thirds of Jewish respondents believe that the Jews are ‘the chosen people’ (Hermann 2013: 71–4), and 76 per cent are unwilling to ‘accept an Arab as your spouse or that of your children’ (Hermann 2016: 239). As both Niebuhr (1944: 16–21, 46, 182) and Morgenthau (1948: 74, 414), but few of their neorealists successors, realised, people often project their need for esteem collectively on to the international arena. Thus, for example, Israeli governments have increasingly demanded a recognition of Israel’s Jewishness, especially since the Second Intifada, which was largely seen as evincing Arab rejectionism – negating the very existence of the Jewish state. The unapologetic demand is projected both internationally and domestically. Tellingly, a plurality of Israeli Jews agrees that ‘those who are unwilling to affirm that Israel is the state of the Jewish people should lose their right to vote’ (Hermann 2016: 184–5). Israeli politics clearly demonstrate that beyond the realism of survival and safety, the magics of belonging and esteem cast their spell. Still, should we subscribe to Maslow’s hierarchy, to the supremacy of the material over the mental? Israeli politics, I submit, reveal one of Maslow’s errors: belonging permeates the entire hierarchy, not just one rung. While individuals may survive, and feel safe, in utter solitude, these examples are rare and far between, and certainly love and esteem are senseless in a social void. We turn to others to survive, become safe, experience love and gain esteem. Indeed, Israeli Jews have turned to identity politics from the outset, not just recently, after achieving (objectively) more safety.

Conclusions: Above and beyond Basic Needs This chapter followed Maslow’s thesis on basic human needs. Indicating their resonance in realist theory and the Israeli case, it decoded the edge of contemporary rightwing politicians when making claims about survival, safety, belonging and esteem. But Maslow’s (1943: 380–382) pyramid goes beyond basic needs, which may allow, at long last, for ‘self-actualisation’ when ‘the individual is doing what he is fitted for’, fulfilling ‘the desire . . . to become everything that one is capable of becoming’. While lauding this higher need for authenticity, Maslow (1971: 231) posits that just 1 per cent of people actually seek, let alone attain, it; for others, ‘the higher-need levels would be mostly at the level of esteem and self-esteem’. Authenticity readily meshes the private with the public. The individual may selfactualise, occasionally self-sacrifice, for the survival, safety and esteem of the collective; the collective may self-actualise by ensuring individual needs. Moreover, authenticity, in and beyond politics, may be essentialist or existentialist. Essentialist authenticity searches for an innate self, ‘an inner, more biological, more instinctoid core of human nature’, to guide ‘the search for one’s own intrinsic, authentic values’ (Maslow 1943: 382). Existentialist authenticity instead embraces freedom (as choice), which all humans, in whatever predicament, always harbour, suggesting that if freedom is not forgotten, one cannot but be oneself. The matrix of authenticity has permeated Israeli politics, often through moral discourse. Zionism sought to actualise itself by ensuring the survival and safety of Jews, and by giving them a sense of belonging and esteem; and Zionists have partially realised themselves by building the Jewish state, securing it, trying to make it a respectable member of ‘the family of nations’. Throughout, some have searched for

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 454

23/10/18 12:45 PM

israel

455

an inherent core of self that one can either be loyal or traitor to; others have sought to legitimate Zionism by making a choice and a moral case for it (Abulof 2017). All this suggests that human needs, whether basic or above-basic, do not exhaust human motivations. To grasp what drives us, as distinctively human, we must go beyond needs, to probe creeds and greed: beliefs about right and wrong, and the desire to have more than what one needs. The three, we may discover, interplay. There is no greed that creed cannot turn into need: money, territories or wi-fi can all be narrated as part of what we need. The stories we tell ourselves and others about what would help us survive, become safe, belong, gain esteem and realise ourselves – these stories of human nature – partake in creating our reality and our politics.

Notes 1. ProQuest digital library of key newspapers, including: The Wall Street Journal (1982+), The New York Times (1995+), The Chicago Tribune (1985+) and The Los Angeles Times (1985+). Google’s news archives (2000 onward) yield similar findings. 2. Dimona is a town in the Negev Desert, next to which the Negev Nuclear Research Center was sited. In international political speak, its name is now used as shorthand for the Israeli nuclear programme.

Bibliography Abulof, Uriel (2013), ‘Nuclear diversion theory and legitimacy crisis: The case of Iran’, Politics & Policy, vol. 41, no. 5, pp. 690–722. Abulof, Uriel (2014a), ‘Deep securitization and Israel’s “demographic demon”’, International Political Sociology, vol. 8, no. 4, pp. 396–415. Abulof, Uriel (2014b), ‘National ethics in ethnic conflicts: The Zionist “iron wall” and the “Arab question”’, Ethnic and Racial Studies, vol. 37, no. 14, pp. 2653–69. Abulof, Uriel (2015a), ‘The malpractice of rationality in international relations’, Rationality and Society, vol. 27, no. 3, pp. 358–84. Abulof, Uriel (2015b), The Mortality and Morality of Nations, New York: Cambridge University Press. Abulof, Uriel (2017), ‘Conscientious politics and Israel’s moral dilemmas’, Contemporary Politics, vol. 23, no. 1, pp. 34–52. Alkire, Sabina (2002), ‘Dimensions of human development’, World Development, vol. 30, no. 2, pp. 181–205. Arian, Asher and Ayala Keissar-Sugarmen (2012), A Portrait of Israeli Jews: Beliefs, Observance, and Values of Israeli Jews, 2009, Jerusalem: Israel Democracy Institute. Begin, Menachem (1981), ‘Election Speech at Kikar Malachei Yisrael, Tel Aviv, 28 June 1981’, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Ben-Gurion, David (1955), ‘Induction Speech to the Israeli Government, 2 November 1955’, Jerusalem: Knesset Protocols. Ben-Gurion (1997) [1952], Like Stars and Dust: Essays from Israel’s Government Year Book, Sede-Boqer Campus: Ben-Gurion Research Center. Ben-Simon, Daniel (1997), A Different Country: The Collapse of the Left and the Rise of the Right [Hebrew: Erets Acheret: Nitschon Ha-Shulayim: Ekhc Karas Ha-Semol Ve-Alah Ha-Yamin?], Tel-Aviv: Aryeh Nir, Modan. Burton, John W. (ed.) (1990), Conflict: Human Needs Theory, New York: St Martin’s Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 455

23/10/18 12:45 PM

456

uriel abulof

Buzan, Barry, Ole Waever and Jaap De Wilde (1998), Security: A New Framework for Analysis, Boulder, CO: Lynne Rienner. Center for Iranian Studies (2009), ‘Think Tank Survey, 20–21 May 2009’, for the conference ‘The Iranian Revolution, 30 Years Later’, 24–5 May. Cohen, Avner (1996), ‘Nuclear weapons, obscurity and democracy in Israel [Hebrew]’, in B. Neuberger and I. Ben-Ami (eds), Democracy and National Security in Israel, Tel-Aviv: Open University. Forbes, Ian and Steve Smith (eds) (1983), Politics and Human Nature, New York: St Martin’s Press. Global Firepower (2017), ‘2017 World Military Strength Rankings’, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Gould, Skye and Paul Szoldra (2017), ‘The 25 most powerful militaries in the world’, Business Insider, 15 March. Harel, Amos and Gili Cohen (2016), ‘Hezbollah: From terror group to army’, Ha’aretz, 12 July. Heller, Joseph (2010), Israel and the Cold War [Hebrew: YiśRa’el ṾEha-MilḥAmah Ha-ḲArah], Śedeh-Boḳer: Ben-Guryon University. Hermann, Tamar (2011), Israeli Democracy Index 2011 [Hebrew], Jerusalem: Israeli Democracy Institute. Hermann, Tamar (2013), Israeli Democracy Index 2013, Jerusalem: Israeli Democracy Institute. Hermann, Tamar (2016), Israeli Democracy Index 2016, Jerusalem: Israeli Democracy Institute. Hersh, Seymour M. (1991), The Samson Option: Israel’s Nuclear Arsenal and American Foreign Policy, New York: Random House. Herzl, Theodor (1946), The Jewish State: An Attempt at a Modern Solution of the Jewish Question, 4th edn, London: R. Searl. Hummel, Ralph P. and Robert A. Isaak (1980), Politics for Human Beings, 2nd edn, Monterey, CA: Duxbury Press. Kenrick, Douglas T., Vladas Griskevicius, Steven L. Neuberg and Mark Schaller (2010), ‘Renovating the pyramid of needs: Contemporary extensions built upon ancient foundations’, Perspectives on Psychological Science, vol. 5, no. 3, pp. 292–314. Luz, Ehud (2003), Wrestling with an Angel: Power, Morality, and Jewish Identity, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Maslow, Abraham H. (1943), ‘A theory of human motivation’, Psychological Review, vol. 50, no. 4, pp. 370–96. Maslow, Abraham H. (1971), The Farther Reaches of Human Nature, New York: Viking Press. Maslow, Abraham H. (1999) [1962], Toward a Psychology of Being, 3rd edn, New York: J. Wiley & Sons. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1948), Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, New York: Knopf. Niebuhr, Reinhold (1944), The Children of Light and the Children of Darkness: A Vindication of Democracy and a Critique of its Traditional Defence, New York: C. Scribner’s Sons. Pennock, J. Roland and John W. Chapman (eds) (1977), Human Nature in Politics, New York: New York University Press. Peri, Yoram, Tamar Hermann, Shlomo Fischer, Asher Cohen, Bernard Susser, Nissim Leon and Yaacov Yadgar (2012), ‘The “religionization” of Israeli society’, Israel Studies Review, vol. 27, no. 1, pp. 1–30. Pew Global Attitudes Project (2016), Israel’s Religiously Divided Society, Washington, DC: Pew Research Center. Rawidowicz, Simon (1986), ‘Israel, the ever-dying people’, in B. C. I. Ravid (ed.), Israel, the Ever-Dying People, and Other Essays, Rutherford: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press. Shavit, Ari (2013), My Promised Land: The Triumph and Tragedy of Israel [Ebook], New York: Spiegel & Grau.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 456

23/10/18 12:45 PM

israel

457

Sheleg, Bambi (ed.) (2014), ‘Racism, violence and self-restraint’ [Hebrew], Eretz Acheret’s special online issue, no. 71, July. Taormina, Robert J. and Jennifer H. Gao (2013), ‘Maslow and the motivation hierarchy: Measuring satisfaction of the needs’, The American Journal of Psychology, vol. 126, no. 2, pp. 155–77. Tay, Louis and Ed Diener (2011), ‘Needs and subjective well-being around the world’, Journal of Personality and Social Psychology, vol. 101, no. 2, pp. 354–65. Thucydides (2009) [404 bc], The Peloponnesian War, translated by M. Hammond, New York: Oxford University Press. Walt, Stephen M. (1987), The Origins of Alliances, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Yaar, Ephraim and Tamar Hermann (2014), ‘War and Peace Index’, June 1994 to October 2014, ed. by the Tami Steinmetz Center for Peace Research and the Evens Program in Mediation and Conflict Resolution, Tel-Aviv: Tel-Aviv University.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 457

23/10/18 12:45 PM

36 Political Realism and India Hinduism, history and technology Rashed Uz Zaman

Chapter Overview

A

s India raises its profile militarily, economically and diplomatically, it has become quite common to say that it will play an important role in world politics. A lively debate has emerged as to what influences Indian policy-makers on their current course. While some argue that realist thinking has never been the forte of Indian statecraft and philosophy, an increasingly powerful counterargument has emerged, highlighting the realist basis of India’s foreign and strategic policies. Under such circumstances, it becomes essential to trace the nature of Indian political realism. This essay argues that there are, and can be, no ‘unencultured’ realists. India may tend to act like other security communities at times but that does not mean it has a universal theory of realist behaviour. Rather, India’s geography, history, values, ideas and patterns of thinking influence its realist behaviour and make it distinct. Indian political realism has been influenced and shaped by India’s experience of several foreign invasions, including Muslim and European, which brought about political, social and economic changes within the country. Moreover, Hinduism’s pervading influence on Indian political realism means the concept of danda (discipline, force or restraint) is entwined with dharma (duty). Both constitute the Hindu tradition of political thought and anyone who would equate Indian political thought with one of them and contend that it is either wholly moralistic or blatantly cynical would paint a distorted picture of it. The objective of this chapter is to explain Indian political realism and discern its impact on India’s strategic behaviour. *

*

*

Introduction Remember too, that India is no longer a piece, even a king or a queen, on the Asiatic chessboard only. It is a royal piece on the chessboard of international politics. George N. Curzon, Lord Curzon of Kedleston (Curzon 1909: 13) India woke up to life and freedom on 15 August 1947, when the British Indian Empire folded after 190 years of imperial rule. In spite of its manifold problems, at that particular juncture of history it seemed that India was truly destined to achieve

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 458

23/10/18 12:45 PM

india

459

greatness. However, the future did not turn out to be as expected, and until the 1990s India seemed to remain a large, unwieldy Third World country mired in seemingly insurmountable problems and suffering from a low ‘Hindu rate of growth’, a term coined by Indian economist Raj Krishnan.1 To paraphrase Charles de Gaulle, India had great potential and it always would. The early 1990s saw India facing a massive economic crisis that forced the country to initiate economic reforms and embrace liberal economic policies. Such policies made India a major economic player. Militarily, too, India has made tremendous strides in the past few decades and today it is a military power that has to be taken seriously (Ganguly 2016: 167–88). As India raises its profile economically and militarily, it is natural that it will play a more important role in world politics. In order to understand India’s growing ambition and role on the world stage, it is imperative that we have a clear understanding of Indian political thinking, as discerned through the prism of Indian strategic culture. It should be pointed out that the concept of strategic culture is a contentious one and scholars have often crossed swords over its definition and parameters (Johnston 1995: 32–64; Gray 1986; Gray 1999). For the sake of brevity, this chapter will adhere to the following definition of strategic culture: ‘Strategic culture consists of the socially constructed and transmitted assumptions, habits of mind, traditions and preferred methods of operation – that is, behavior – that are more or less specific to a particular geographically based security community’ (Gray 1999: 28). I argue that, as India moves ahead into the future, its central identity is likely to display a pattern: there is a recognisably Indian worldview and a recognisably Indian way of dealing with the world (Cohen 2001: 309). Of course, there are important theoretical and methodological challenges as far as the concept of strategic culture is concerned. Patrick Porter pinpoints one such challenge when he looks at Ruth Benedict’s canonical text of ‘national character’ study, The Chrysanthemum and the Sword (1946), and identifies how a culture may portray itself rhetorically on the surface in a particular manner but how there may be contradictions and undercurrents of conflict beneath (Porter 2009: 53). However, this approach is a potentially valuable complement to the realist perspectives and helps achieve a better understanding of state behaviour and foreign policy by drawing attention to cultural factors that may influence the logic of policy-makers in various societies (Gilboy and Heginbotham 2012: 25–6). India is no exception to this understanding. While there are sceptics who argue that India has faltered when it comes to having a grand strategy (Tanham 1992; Subrahmanyam 2005: 3–17), Kanti Bajpai and others argue, in a splendid collection of essays, that it is a fallacy to believe that India has no grand strategy – that is, no coherent, discernible way of deploying the entire gamut of the Indian state’s resources – namely, military, diplomatic, political, economic, cultural and moral – for achieving the goals of security (Bajpai, Basit and Krishnappa 2014: 9). This chapters attempts at first to identify the main strands of Indian political realism. The first section thus looks at Indian political thinking and locates the main philosophical premises of Indian political realism. Subsequently, how this realism is played out in various episodes of India’s history will be gauged; and then ‘how’ and ‘if’ this realism is present in Indian strategic culture will be examined. The conclusion discusses the relevance of political realism in present-day India, and the challenges and opportunities it offers for understanding India’s foreign and security policies.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 459

23/10/18 12:45 PM

460

rashed uz zaman

Philosophical Premises of Indian Political Realism Any study of Indian political realism must first deal with the definition of realism itself. Tracing its origins from the Melian Dialogue, as described by the Athenian exiled general Thucydides, realism argues that relations among states take place in the absence of a world government: in other words, the international system is an anarchical system. To survive in such a system, states attempt to maximise their security or power, and usually military power is the main currency through which states attempt to ensure their security (Elman 2007: 11–20; Haslam 2002). While realism has been identified as an integral aspect of Western political thought, epitomised by the popularity of the Florentine thinker Niccolò Machiavelli (Fischer 1995: 248–79), Indian political thought has usually been identified as lacking such a tradition and has often suffered the fate of being compared somewhat condescendingly with Western political thought. One Indian writer claims that the hold of the Orientalist mode of thought, even on Indian scholars, was such that few maintained that Western political thought was methodically more rigorous and thus systematically abstract and universal. At the same time, Indian thought was perceived to be religious and metaphysical without having the tools to deal with political (non-theological) and philosophical (epistemological) issues (Singh 2011: xi). A similar argument is also made by other scholars, who point out that the image of India, and of the Orient in general, of societies where men are so much less concerned with the material than in the Occident, is an erroneous notion (Gowen 1929: 173; Sarkar 1918: 482–500; Ghosal 1923: 1–23). To reinforce this position, Gowen shows that the Indian ideal life is much more fully rounded and reiterated the importance of recognising the trivarga, or threefold way of life, which comprises, first, dharma, or religious duty; second, artha, or the cult of the useful; and, third, kama, or the worship of the desirable. This threefold way of life thus brings contradictory streams into Indian philosophy, with the literature displaying some of the most profound religious writings simultaneously with some of the most licentious through devotion to kama, and some of the most cold-bloodedly practical as reflected by the arthasastras. All of this leads Gowen to the conclusion that Indians have, at all times and through manifold ways, deified earthly good as well as spiritual reality (Gowen 1929: 174–5). Hindu political thinkers perceived political life in terms of two central concepts: namely, danda and dharma. Political life, according to the Hindu thinkers, meant using danda to maintain dharma. The term danda implies force or punishment and is usually used to explain the punitive use of the coercive power of the ruler or government. The term dharma is quite a difficult term to pin down but can be assumed to mean the ability to hold a society or a community together. Since Hinduism assumes that a society is held together by ensuring that all individuals and groups do their specific duties, the term dharma refers to duties. Given the precarious nature of all political authority, Hindu political thought requires political authority to rest on the twin pillars of dharma and danda. Thus, it must be clearly accepted that the ruler is to be devoted to the maintenance of dharma and should always be willing to use danda to ensure it (Parekh 1986: 17–24). The interconnected nature of Hindu political thought reminds us of the futility of trying to delineate too clear a division between danda and dharma. Of course, certain characteristics are prevalent within the two strands. Thus, systematic studies

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 460

23/10/18 12:45 PM

india

461

of dharma, called dharmasastras, are moralistic at times, whereas those of danda, called arthasastras, can be realistic to the point of being identified as cynical texts. However, dharmasastras are not politically naive. Rather, they freely acknowledge the political imperative to override moral principles and values under compelling circumstances. At the same time, the authors of the arthasastras were aware of, and insisted on, the observance of dharma (Shahi 2014: 68–74). Such eclectic approaches meant that authors of both types of text took cognisance of each other. Therefore, while it is true that dharmasastra writers may at times have overlooked the frail nature of human beings, they did not shy away from the need to use force. In a similar vein, the arthasastra writers, while inclined to treat political power as the end objective, were usually aware of the importance of taking into consideration the moral ends of the government. Thus it is a fallacy to perceive the two approaches as representing two totally divergent views of human society, for their views on these subjects were more or less the same (Parekh 1986: 19). The eclectic nature or the Weltanschauung of the Hindu way of life is captured eloquently through the history of India, as described through the Hindu sacred scriptures, like the Rig Veda and the Puranas, and the epics, the Mahabharata and Ramayana. The Rig Veda is a collection of 1,028 hymns used in worship by the IndoAryans in the period 2,000 to 1,500 bc. The Vedic hymns reflect a state of affairs in which society was in constant warfare (Hume 1916: 31). The two great deities who are described in the Rig Vedas are Indra and Varuna. These war gods are favourites of the authors of the Rig Vedas, and sketches of the mythological war gods only serve to highlight the importance of war to the ancient Hindus (Bonnerjea 1934: 35). Such themes on the importance of war and the veneration of heroes are carried down the ages and warlike qualities are viewed with greater respect than purely peaceful ones. Moreover, nowhere is this more clearly shown than in the story of the Mahabharata, India’s greatest epic. The Mahabharata is a martial epic but often it is more. It remains the Indian national saga and is the most popular of all India’s sacred texts, a fact verified by its presence in nearly every Hindu household and the appeal it has to all, whether in Bengal or South India, the Punjab or the Deccan (Radhakrishnan 2008: 404). The theme of the Mahabharata is the great internecine war between the Kauravas and the Pandavas, two branches of the descendants of King Bharata, who is revered as the ancestor of all the Hindus (Hume 1916: 38). The battle takes place over eighteen days on the plain at Kurukshetra, resulting in the annihilation of many clans, including most of the Kauravas. The Pandavas, after a long and peaceful reign, abdicate, install a grandson and go to the City of the Gods in the Himalayas (Thapar 2002: 101). While the Mahabharata is fascinating reading, the Bhagavad-Gita is of particular relevance for understanding the nature of Indian political realism. It describes a moment when the hosts fight the great battle and one of the Pandavas, Arjuna, suddenly becomes remorseful over the impending slaughter of kindred and friends. Krishna, a chieftain of the Yadav clan and a cousin of the Pandavas, is Arjuna’s charioteer and he steps in to counsel and console Arjuna. Yet Arjuna remains unconvinced and is adamant about not fighting. At this point, Krishna introduces an entirely novel idea: a warrior must simply dissociate himself from the effects of his actions and perform his duty. It is to be done devoid of any personal animus or agenda (Armstrong 2014: 67). Through this interaction, one can discern the philosophical part on the meaning of life and the Hindu ideal of duty. The

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 461

23/10/18 12:45 PM

462

rashed uz zaman

lesson from this dialogue between a conscience-stricken Arjuna and Krishna is this: one has to perform one’s duty, irrespective of killing anybody. Moreover, the eternal nature of the soul makes dilemmas over killing and injury irrelevant. Arjuna, coming from the warrior caste, can only abide by his appropriate duty, which is to engage in death-dealing warfare (Hume 1916: 44). Karen Armstrong draws a poignant conclusion from this episode. It tells us, she says, that there are no easy answers to war and peace. Yes, Indian ritual and mythology often glorified violence, but they also provided people with the means to confront its tragedy and lessen aggression from the psyche. For her, human beings are flawed creatures with violent hearts who long for peace (Armstrong 2014: 67). Leaving the domain of mythology and epics behind and entering the period of recorded history, one sees continuity between the lessons of the Rig Vedas and the Mahabharata and the practice of political realism in ancient India. Ashoka was the third king of the famous Maurya dynasty, which ruled India from c. 321 to 185 bc. Ashoka himself reigned from 268 to 233 bc and under him the Mauryan Empire reached its zenith. However, it is not for lording over such a vast polity that Ashoka is remembered today. Rather, he is fondly recalled for his espousal of non-violence and Buddhism. In 261 bc, Ashoka commenced on a campaign to conquer Kalinga, an area which corresponds to the present-day Indian state of Orissa. After seeing the death and destruction caused by his aggression against Kalinga, Ashoka renounced war and decided to embrace Buddhism. Today, Ashoka is credited with the spread of Buddhism in East and Southeast Asia, and honoured as one of India’s greatest rulers (Early 2005: 317–49). While the benevolent acts of Ashoka are to be rightly commemorated, it should also be remembered that Ashoka’s conversion to Buddhism did not lead him to demobilise his army. As for Kalinga, it was not restored it to its original rulers (Basham 1967: 55–6). In spite of his acceptance of the Buddhist faith, Ashoka must have realised that others would resort to violent means to succeed him and unleash more havoc, and, as always, it was the peasants and the poor, the general population, who would suffer most. Once more, Karen Armstrong’s words prove relevant, for she calls this ‘Ashoka’s dilemma’ and identifies it as the dilemma of civilisation itself. As society developed and weaponry became more deadly, the empire, founded and maintained by violence, would, ironically, become the most effective means of keeping the peace (Armstrong 2014: 63). The discussion until now has focused on the ancient texts and epics and used them to identify elements of Indian political realism. However, given India’s rich history and culture, it would be parochial to subscribe the sources of India’s political realism to a single stream. Indeed, the contribution of Islamic law and worldview, as well as ideas about justice and equality, have played an important role in moulding the modern Indian psyche. Jayashree Vivekanandan has shown the way in which Akbar, the most famous of the Mughal rulers, formulated a grand strategy, which has resonance even today. Vivekanandan notes that while Akbar sought to expand his domain, he avoided massive wars. The size of the subcontinent and the militarisation of society played an important role in constraining the Mughals from assuming a hegemonic position. Instead, diplomacy was often resorted to – diplomacy manifested through varying tactics of material and symbolic accommodation aimed

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 462

23/10/18 12:45 PM

india

463

at the regional kingdoms in the ‘core’ and ‘periphery’ of the Indian subcontinent. Pointing to the existence of an ancient Indian political thought, which emphasises the importance of violence and power but also harbours a moral and symbolic vein which highlighted accommodation and justice in the service of stability and order, Vivekanandan deduces that the Mughals prioritised the latter (Vivekanandan 2014: 63–85). It should not surprise observers that modern India, drawing on its ancient and medieval traditions, has also tried to rely more on a range of accommodative policies in dealing with its external security and foreign policy challenges. While ancient and medieval episodes of India’s history have influenced strategic culture, it should also be pointed out that India was subjected to 190 years of British colonial rule, and this episode needs to be taken into consideration when trying to understand Indian political thought, for it is this colonial encounter in social, cultural, political, economic and intellectual sectors which has profoundly shaped and influenced modern India (Raychaudhuri 2006). The legacy of the British rule in India endures in Indian strategic thinking. How this has come about will be described in the following lines. The British in India recognised that the security of India would require a watchful eye on its environs. Thus, all the probable entry points into British India would have to be guarded and every effort made to prevent any foreign power from using them. Jaswant Singh writes that the aim of preventing entry into India became a strategic objective and this inevitably led to concerns about Tibet, Afghanistan, Burma and the Indian Ocean, and awareness of foreign designs on India (Singh 2004: 19). This also meant that British policy planners in India acted differently at times from their counterparts in London. The famous observation of Lord Ellenborough, Governor-General of India (1841–4) – ‘I must write and act for India, not for England’ (Lord Ellenborough cited in Embree 1989: 129; Brobst 2005) – indicates how India’s concerns, rather than Britain’s, influenced the thinking and behaviour of the British Empire’s representative in India. Guy Wint observes that William M. Thackeray, by referring to British officers in India as ‘Indians’, recognised, perhaps unconsciously, their position (Wint 1947: 18). However, while it is true that the empire which the British built in India was ‘based on Indian, and not British needs’ (Wint 1947: 116), it must also be remembered that the British imperial heritage was ‘in itself a hybrid product for it owed a great deal to the preceding Mogul (sic) empire especially with regard to the administrative tradition’ (Rothermund 1986: 139; Tanham 1992: 19). If the British were successful in imitating the Mughals, they went a step further and created a war machine which allowed British India, and later independent India, to become an important player in international politics and thus strengthen the old adage that armies are as important for diplomacy as instruments are for making music. To the question of why the British were able to conquer India militarily, there are quite a few plausible answers. The vacuum created by the disappearance of Mughal rule allowed the British to exploit the situation and make good use of the political opportunities on offer. Again, the British were able to field better-armed, well-trained and well-paid forces, which delivered the result in times of need. Also, the British made good use of intelligence to neutralise adversaries before crucial confrontations (Barua 2005). However, any explanation of the British Indian Army’s success must take into account the contributions of the sepoys, or native soldiers, and the fact that the sepoys

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 463

23/10/18 12:45 PM

464

rashed uz zaman

maintained, and the British fostered, South Asian values that enhanced the performance of these indigenous troops. In a study of the sepoys of the British Indian Army, John Lynn argues that the British built upon the religious creed of the warrior caste, and on traditional societal and cultural values, creating a well-oiled war machine that was used effectively to further British India’s interests. In other words, the synergy between innovation and tradition meant that the sepoy fought well, not only because he was drilled in European tactics, carried Western weapons and wore European uniform but also because he was motivated by traditional South Asian ideals. Lynn correctly writes that it was the merger of European military culture with South Asian religious, social and village values and practices that led to a new military culture unique to India and its army (Lynn 2003: 145–79). In the preceding pages, I have shown how religious and cultural values and societal norms have shaped Indian strategic culture. Elements like geography are also vital in shaping Indian political realism (Gupta 1990: 711–14). Strange though it may seem, Indian strategic culture is influenced to a great extent by the need to master complex machinery and the urge to build, acquire and operate state-of-the-art technology. Aircraft carriers, powerful weapons systems including warships and nuclear submarines, and nuclear weapons are all a manifestation of this need. The Indian fascination with technology is not as deeply ingrained as the American; neither is the extent to which they reflect this infatuation in their strategic culture as great (Gray 1986: 21–47; Adas 2006). However, the Indian view of technological advancement and its cultural lessons must be taken into consideration in any study of how India views, and goes about ensuring, its security goals. Why is this so? The answer lies in India’s colonial past. This experience compelled India to seek to master technology and science and purge itself of the odium of being considered a backward society vulnerable to the machines and might of a superior technological foe. Michael Adas, in his book Machines as the Measure of Men (1989), draws attention to the part that scientific and technological advancements played in convincing Europeans of their superiority over African, Indian and Chinese people. In the case of India, James Mill’s History of British India, published in 1817, had a seminal role in highlighting the perceived backwardness of Indian science and technology and justifying British rule over India. Mill wrote his six-volume magnum opus without even visiting India but this did not prevent the History of British India from attaining dizzying heights of popularity (Sen 2005: 78). What is important for this chapter is the fact that, in dismissing Indian culture and achievements, Mill set scientific thinking and technological skills as the criteria by which human beings and their culture were to be gauged (Adas 1989: 166). Mill’s argument was picked up by French sociologist Gustave Le Bon, who added that it was the technological and scientific superiority of European militaries that allowed them to subdue and rule the vast Indian subcontinent (Adas 1989: 175–7). So what impact did such views have on Indians themselves? I argue that India’s acquisition and development of technologically advanced weapons are needed not only to ensure India’s security but also to send a message to the world about India’s ability to develop and master modern technology. Such mastery means Indians are able to rival the West’s scientific and technological achievements and therefore prove the validity of the prowess of Indian civilisation. Suchman and Eyre note that weapons acquisitions are often ‘structured and driven by institutionalized normative structures that link advanced weaponry with modernization and sovereignty’ (Suchman and Eyre 1992: 137).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 464

23/10/18 12:45 PM

india

465

Indian Political Realism and Diplomacy While it is certainly true that ancient or medieval India was influenced by political realism, it is in independent India that we see the implementation of realist polices. As independent India’s first prime minister and foreign minister, Jawaharlal Nehru’s worldview played a most important role in formulating the country’s foreign and security policies. Raghavan argues that, in his understanding of the role of force in international relations, Nehru stood at the juncture of the liberal and realist traditions (Raghavan 2010: 14). Force, Nehru believed, was an enduring element in interactions between states, and notes, ‘The necessity for this will only disappear when there is only a single World-State [sic]’ (Nehru 1987: 542). However, this was not to give in to the belief that the use of force was inevitable but rather to strive to limit this tendency and use it in such a way that the evil nature of force is lessened (Nehru 1987: 552). Accordingly, Nehru pursued a pragmatic foreign policy in which realism was effectively used to ensure that India’s interest were protected and furthered. Ashok Kapur has pointed out that Nehru’s foreign policy deftly emulated a strategy similar to the great realist thinker Kauṭilya’s mandala or ‘circle of states’ system, which is premised on the notion that the neighbour is one’s natural enemy and the state next to the immediate neighbour is likely to be one’s friend (Kapur 1976). Given India’s friendly relations with countries like Afghanistan, Vietnam and the Soviet Union, and its enmity with Pakistan and China, it seems that Nehru did understand the utility of realism. From the very beginning, India under Nehru successfully presented to the world a distinct Indian policy with regard to international politics. It was a policy in which morality played a more prominent role than the use of force. In this policy of nonalignment, ideas like peaceful coexistence, disarmament and the peaceful settlement of disputes were the key instruments by which world peace was to be attained. Even as late as 1960, Nehru reiterated that India’s policy was rooted in these elements rather than purely military thinking (Kavic 1967: 2; Guha 2014: 134). However, Nehru’s moralism and his ideology of anti-imperialism did not lead to the disappearance of realism from India’s foreign policy. Instead, a relatively consistent strain of realism was shrouded by an announcement and posture that Indian would avoid being ensnared in the bipolar politics of the Cold War (Nayar and Paul 2003: 141–4; Chaudhuri 2014: 257). Thus, non-alignment did not prevent Nehru from seeking military aid from the USA, Great Britain and Israel during the short Sino-Indian border war of 1962 (Anderson 2013: 129); nor did it restrain India from concluding the Indo-Soviet Treaty of Peace, Friendship and Cooperation in August 1971. The latter ensured the transfer of a huge quantity of Soviet weapons, which helped India pursue its military intervention in East Pakistan (subsequently Bangladesh) in December 1971 (Raghavan 2013: 128). A similar pattern of acting in a realist manner when it comes to dealing with India’s smaller neighbours becomes clear when one notices that India has obliged weak neighbouring states to sign treaties of friendship that give India the right to have a say in their foreign and defence policies. Such treaties were signed with Bhutan in 1949, Sikkim in 1950 and Nepal in 1950. Moreover, while these treaties have not prevented India from using coercive measures against their smaller neighbours to protect India’s interest, even postures of moving away from such overt interventionist policies and allowing extra-regional actors to play a role in the South Asian region do not mean that India has fundamentally shifted from its traditional policy toward the region (Mazumdar 2012: 286–302).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 465

23/10/18 12:45 PM

466

rashed uz zaman

The culmination of the various streams that comprise Indian political realism is easily observed with regard to India’s nuclear policy (Zaman 2008: 131–59). However, it should be made clear that this realism has been Indian in nature whenever the concept of ‘power in the service of ensuring justice’ played a key role. The motivations for such thinking and behaviour are influenced by what India thinks of itself. Thus, history, philosophy, geography and a yearning to match technological achievements have all interacted and produced a distinctively Indian approach to nuclear weapons. This approach allows the Indian leadership to reconcile its nuclear capabilities with its traditional commitment to peace (Upadhyaya 2009: 77–8).

Conclusion This chapter has argued that there is something peculiarly Indian when it comes to the realism practised by India. Of course, critics may question whether there is anything new when one observes India. In an interesting essay, Robert Kaufman points out that, contrary to the prevailing perception, Winston Churchill, the British Prime Minister who steered the country through World War Two, reflects in his writings and decisions a coherent theory of foreign policy that successfully synthesises the most compelling aspects of realism and idealism (Kaufman 1995: 314–53). What is so distinct, then, about Indians operating along the same principles? To sceptics of Indian political realism, there is nothing specifically Indian about its effort to control the actions of its neighbours, using violence when required, acquiring weapons and pursuing its own interest. It is merely acting like a big power, mimicking the way other big powers behave (Sahni 1996: 161). In other words, the logic of realism pervades its behaviour, just as it does for all great and aspiring powers. However, this chapter is premised on the belief that there are, and can be, no ‘unencultured’ realists (Gray 2003: 292; Zaman 2016: 85–102). Security communities might tend to act in similar ways at times, but that does not mean they believe in a universal theory of strategic behaviour. The same logic also applies to political realism. Some patterns of realism may be similar across various political communities, but each community has its own values, ideas, and patterns of thinking and acting that mould its realism and make it distinct (Vivekanandan 2016: 14). However, one must not get carried away by the notion that realism may be explained only by its cultural aspects. In a world where no supreme authority prevails, the ruler must be vigilant about the security and survival of the state or community. Thus, while the national interest of states does have a significant subjective component, the condition of survival, as influenced by geographical location, economic issues and military prowess, does comprise an objective component in the definition of the national interest (Gilpin 1996: 7–8; Porter 2009: 81). Still, as the world awakens to the growing importance of India, an understanding of Indian political realism, as discerned from its strategic culture, will certainly help make sense of the way India perceives the world.

Note 1. The expression is used to refer to the low annual growth rate of the economy of India, which stagnated around 3.5 per cent from 1950 to 1980.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 466

23/10/18 12:45 PM

india

467

Bibliography Adas, Michael (1989), Machines as the Measure of Men: Science, Technology, and Ideologies of Western Dominance, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Adas, Michael (2006), Dominance by Design: Technological Imperatives and America’s Civilizing Mission, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Anderson, Perry (2013), The Indian Ideology, London: Verso. Armstrong, Karen (2014), Fields of Blood: Religion and the History of Violence, London: The Bodley Head. Bajpai, Kanti, Saira Basit and V. Krishnappa (2014), ‘Introduction: India’s Grand Strategic Thought and Practice’, in Kanti Bajpai, Saira Basit and V. Krishnappa (ed.), India’s Grand Strategy: History, Theory and Cases, London: Routledge. Barua, Pradeep (2005), The State at War in South Asia, Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press. Basham, A. L. (1967), The Wonder That Was India, London: Sidgwick & Jackson. Bonnerjea, Biren, ‘Peace and war in Hindu culture’, Primitive Man, vol. 7, p. 3, July. Brobst, Peter John (2005), The Future of the Great Game: Sir Olaf Caroe, India’s Independence, and the Defense of Asia, Akron, OH: University of Akron Press. Chaudhuri, Rudra (2014), Forged in Crisis: India and the United States Since 1947, London: C. Hurst. Cohen, Stephen (2001), India: Emerging Power, New Delhi: Oxford University Press. Curzon, George N., Lord Curzon of Kedleston (1909), The Place of India in the Empire: Being, an Address Delivered Before the Philosophical Institute of Edinburgh, London: John Murray. Early, Abraham (2005), Gem in the Lotus: The Seeding of Indian Civilisation, London: Phoenix. Elman, Colin (2007), ‘Realism’, in Martin Griffiths (ed.), International Relations Theory for the Twenty-First Century: An Introduction, London: Routledge. Embree, Ainslie T. (1989), ‘The diplomacy of dependency: Nineteenth century foreign policy’, in Mark Juergensmeyer (ed.), Imagining India: Essays on Indian History, New Delhi: Oxford University Press. Fischer, Markus (1995), ‘Machiavelli’s theory of foreign politics’, Security Studies, vol. 5, p. 2. Ganguly, Rajat (2016), ‘Indian military transformation in the twenty-first century’, in Pauline Eadie and Wyn Rees (eds), The Evolution of Military Power in the West and Asia: Security Policy in the Post-Cold War Era, London: Routledge. Ghosal, Ubendranath (1923), A History of Hindu Political Theories, London: Oxford University Press. Gilboy, George J. and Eric Heginbotham (2012), Chinese and Indian Strategic Behavior: Growing Power and Alarm, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Gilpin, Robert G. (1996), ‘No one loves a political realist’, Security Studies, vol. 5, p. 3. Gowen, Herbert H. (1929), ‘“The Indian Machiavelli” or political theory in India two thousand years ago’, Political Science Quarterly, vol. 44, p. 2. Gray, Colin S. (1981), ‘National style in strategy: The American example’, International Security, vol. 6, p. 2, Fall. Gray, Colin S. (1986), Nuclear Strategy and National Style, Lanham, MD: Hamilton Press. Gray, Colin S. (1999), Modern Strategy, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Gray, Colin S. (2003), ‘In praise of strategy’, Review of International Studies, no. 29, April. Guha, Ramachandra (2014), ‘Jawaharlal Nehru: A romantic in politics’, in Ramachandra Guha (ed.), Makers of Modern Asia, Cambridge, MA: The Belknap Press of Harvard University Press. Gupta, Anirudha (1990), ‘A Brahmanic framework of power in South Asia?’, Economic & Political Weekly, vol. 25, p. 14, 7 April. Haslam, Jonathan (2002), No Virtue Like Necessity: Realist Thought in International Relations since Machiavelli, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 467

23/10/18 12:45 PM

468

rashed uz zaman

Hume, Robert E. (1916), ‘Hinduism and war’, The American Journal of Theology, vol. 20, p. 1, January. Johnston, Alastair I. (1995), ‘Thinking about strategic culture’, International Security, vol. 19, no. 4, Spring. Kapur, Ashok (1976), India’s Nuclear Option: Atomic Diplomacy and Decision Making, New Delhi: Praeger. Kaufman, Robert G. (1995), ‘E. H. Carr, Winston Churchill, Reinhold Niebuhr, and US: The case for principled, prudential and democratic liberalism’, Security Studies, vol. 5, p. 2. Kavic, Lorne J. (1967), India’s Quest for Security: Defence Policies, 1947–1965, Berkeley: University of California Press. Lynn, John A. (2003), Battle: A History of Combat and Culture: From Ancient Greece to Modern America, Boulder, CO: Westview Press. Mazumdar, Arijit (2012), ‘India’s South Asia policy in the twenty-first century: New approach, old strategy’, Contemporary Politics, vol. 18, p. 3, September. Nayar, Baldev Raj and T. V. Paul (2003), India in the World Order: Searching for Major Power Status, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Nehru, Jawaharlal (1987) [1936], An Autobiography, New Delhi: Oxford University Press. Parekh, Bhikhu (1986), ‘Some reflections on the Hindu tradition of political thought’, in Thomas Pantham and Kenneth L. Deutsch (eds), Political Thought in Modern India, New Delhi: Sage. Porter, Patrick (2009), Military Orientalism: Eastern War Through Western Eyes, London: Hurst. Radhakrishnan, S. (2008), Indian Philosophy, Volume 1, 2nd edn, New Delhi: Oxford University Press. Raghavan, Srinath (2010), War and Peace in Modern India: A Strategic History of the Nehru Years, Ranikhet: Permanent Black. Raghavan, Srinath (2013), 1971: A Global History of the Creation of Bangladesh, Ranikhet: Permanent Black. Raychaudhuri, Tapan (2006), Europe Reconsidered: Perceptions of the West in NineteenthCentury Bengal, New Delhi: Oxford University Press. Rothermund, Dietmar (1986), ‘The legacy of the British-Indian Empire in independent India’, in Wolfgang J. Mommsen and Jurgen Osterhammel (eds), Imperialism and After: Continuities and Discontinuities, London: Allen & Unwin. Sahni, Varun (1996), ‘Just another big country’, in Kanti Bajpai and Amitabh Matoo (eds), Securing India: Strategic Thought and Practice, New Delhi: Manohar. Sarkar, Benoy Kumar (1918), ‘Indian political philosophy’, Political Science Quarterly, vol. 33, p. 4, December. Sen, Amartya (2005), The Argumentative Indian: Writings on Indian History, Culture and Identity, London: Allen Lane. Shahi, Deepshikha (2014), ‘Arthashastra beyond realpolitik: The “eclectic” face of Kautilya’, Economic & Political Weekly, vol. 49, p. 41, 11 October. Singh, Jaswant (2004), Defending India, Basingstoke: Macmillan. Singh, Mahendra Prasad (2011), ‘Introduction’, in M. P. Singh and Himanshu Roy (eds), Indian Political Thought: Themes and Thinkers, New Delhi: Pearson. Subrahmanyam, K. (2005), ‘Does India have a strategic perspective?’, in K. Subrahmanyam and Arthur Monteiro, Shedding Shibboleths: India’s Evolving Strategic Outlook, New Delhi: Wordsmiths. Suchman, Mark S. and Dana P. Eyre (1992), ‘Military procurement as rational myth: Notes on the social construction of weapons proliferation’, Sociological Forum, vol. 7, p. 1, March. Tanham, George K. (1992), Indian Strategic Thought: An Interpretive Essay, Santa Monica, CA: RAND.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 468

23/10/18 12:45 PM

india

469

Thapar, Romila (2002), The Penguin History of Early India: From the Origins to AD 1300, New Delhi: Penguin. Upadhyaya, Priyankar (2009), ‘Peace and conflict: Reflections on Indian thinking’, Strategic Analysis, vol. 33, p. 1, January. Vivekanandan, Jayashree (2014), ‘Strategy, legitimacy and the imperium: Framing the Mughal strategic discourse’, in Kanti Bajpai, Saira Basit and V. Krishnappa (eds), India’s Grand Strategy: History, Theory and Cases, London: Routledge. Vivekanandan, Jayashree (2016), ‘The text as tradition: Interpreting India’s strategic history’, in Pradeep Kumar Gautam, Saurabh Mishra and Arvind Gupta (eds), Indigenous Historical Knowledge: Kautilya and his Vocabulary, Volume II, New Delhi: IDSA. Wint, Guy (1947), The British in India, London: Faber and Faber. Zaman, Rashed Uz (2008), ‘India’s strategic culture and its nuclear policy’, Journal of the Asiatic Society of Bangladesh, vol. 53, p. 2, December. Zaman, Rashed Uz (2016), ‘Strategic culture in South Asia: Kautilyan sempiternity’, in Pradeep Kumar Gautam, Saurabh Mishra and Arvind Gupta (eds), Indigenous Historical Knowledge: Kautilya and his Vocabulary, Volume III, New Delhi: IDSA.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 469

23/10/18 12:45 PM

37 Political Realism and Japan Cumulative knowledge, area studies and peace Masashi Okuyama

Chapter Overview

E

ven if Japan seems to have plenty of Political Realist ideas in its history at first glance, upon closer examination, it actually does not. This chapter examines what can be perceived as a tradition of Political Realism in Japanese history from the premodern era to the present, focusing especially on how Hans Morgenthau’s Realism in the Cold War era had been received and applied by Japanese scholars and practitioners. It becomes clear that Japan has a unique way of thinking about Realism, and that this is because the Japanese elite have always tended to respect cumulative knowledge in academia, such that the dominant school of international politics has always been focused on historical and area studies. *

*

*

Although it depends on your perspective, Japan is fairly doing well in the world. Its gross national product still ranks third internationally, despite the country suffering a severe economic recession that lasted for almost two ‘lost’ decades. In terms of its control, Japan occupies the sixth largest area of the world’s oceans, despite it being a tiny archipelago.1 Some might say this proves that Japan has been using its long tradition of Political Realist thinking to maintain a certain level of power in international politics. The real story, of course, is always more complicated. This chapter is designed to provide a certain view on the Japanese version of Political Realism in international relations – if, indeed, it can be said to exist at all. The four questions that have to be answered to gain an understanding of Japanese Political Realism are: 1. 2. 3. 4.

What are the main philosophical premises? How are Realist ideas rooted in society or political culture? How are Realist ideas played out in diplomacy? What are the main domestic or political obstacles to carrying out Realist foreign policies in the twenty-first century?

A tentative answer to these questions is that while Japanese leaders have occasionally been Realists, the theoretical aspects of Realism were largely ignored and its knowledge and practice were conveyed as a form of ‘tacit knowledge’ among elites. In short,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 470

23/10/18 12:45 PM

japan

471

the Japanese Realist tradition has always been practised by a minority. Some aspects of Japanese Realism will be presented and discussed in the following three sections of this chapter, which are laid out in historical order: the pre-modern era, the modern era and the postwar period.

Realism in the Pre-Modern Era (before 1868) Japan has been a relatively isolated country due to its geography, located as it is on a relatively small archipelago on the eastern fringe of the Eurasian continent. All nations are basically unique in their own way, but what makes Japan particularly individual is its involvement in a comparatively small number of foreign wars. Since its establishment in the seventh century, Japan has engaged in wars with foreign powers only seven times.2 This has contributed to a smaller demand for Realist perspectives on international relations than in other nations; instead, the people learned about this concept from historical works, especially those from ancient China. Among the best-known classic Chinese works on strategy, which should be considered as Realist works, are: Son-shi (The Art of War of Sun-Tzu 孫子),3 Sangoku-shi (The Romance of the Three Kingdoms 三国志)4 and Juuhasshi-ryaku (The Epitome of Eighteen Histories 十八史略).5 For those not familiar with the Chinese classics, the first one is a collection of the maxims of one of the greatest figures of military history, Sun-Tzu (545–460 bc), and is still considered as the one of the bibles of strategic studies. The second is a grand historic drama based on the international power struggles of three kingdoms (Wei 魏, Go 呉 and Shu 蜀) during the latter half of the Han dynasty (ad 180–280). Japan imported these two books as early as the eighth century. The third one is a historical digest for lay people and is a compilation of famous historical episodes extracted from eighteen books on Chinese history. These books cover the period from the first Han dynasty (90s bc) to the Song dynasty (ad 1300s). Juuhasshiryaku arrived in Japan in around the fourteenth century. What is common to the three books above is that they present the fundamental view that human nature is complex, if not totally evil; that they describe power struggles among nations based on historical evidence; and that they are always focused on the leaders of Chinese dynasties. The most remarkable among the three is Juuhasshi-ryaku because not only was it originally written as a children’s book in China, but also it was widely used in Japan as an introductory textbook for elementary school students in the Edo period (ad 1603–1868) (Ichikawa 1968: 69). This book focuses on power struggles and became a standard overview of East Asian history; in fact, it was used for the study of international relations in the early Meiji period (Takeuchi 2008: 47–51). In this sense, the study of Chinese history was almost equivalent to studying international politics in pre-modern Japan. In addition, Japanese works related to Political Realism should include Taihei-ki (The Taiheiki 太平記)6 and Heike Monogatari (The Tale of Heike 平家物語).7 These were collectively called Gunki-mono (Books on Military History 軍記物), and were quite popular as historical entertainment books from the Warring period (1470s–1590s) to the Edo period (1600s–1860s).8 The basic premises for these books, however, include not only their realistic views of power struggles, but also their philosophical character. Both were somehow influenced by Buddhist thought, for they emphasised the transitional aspect of political power (Kiezaburo 2017: 20). In short, Gunki-mono

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 471

23/10/18 12:45 PM

472

masashi okuyama

was about the political dramas of domestic politics, and power struggles that were always present, but not in the international relations sense. In sum, Realist works, except some books for samurais such as the one by Sun-Tzu, were simply not popular in Japan – until, that is, the dawn of the Meiji Restoration of 1868. This is largely because of the fact that Japan did not have much experience in the international political arena. Of course, there were plenty of examples of power struggles, civil wars and internal strife in domestic politics, but these issues were never discussed in any theoretical works on international politics. Japanese leaders, however, were learning about Realist concepts from historical episodes, such as the ones in Chinese works and Gunki-mono. This preference for historical case studies, which require students to adopt a more cumulative and inductive approach, seems somehow to accord better with the Japanese mind and therefore continues well into the present.

Realism in the Modern Era (from 1869 to 1945) After opening up on the international stage, Japanese politicians and intellectuals became eager to learn about the way European powers practised their foreign relations. This process, called ‘Westernisation’ (西欧化), would provide a great opportunity for the development of Political Realism in Japan. Especially after the Meiji Restoration of 1868, Japanese elites suddenly awakened to the urge to know what other international participants were doing for their survival as nation-states. This led to a sudden revival of interest among Japanese elites in Juuhasshi-ryaku and other such books about Chinese history, which became so-called Asian Studies (東洋学).9 But in general, academic interest was directed at the study of diplomatic history (外交史) and European international law (万国公法) (Kawata 1996: 336). In fact, these largely predominated, so that there was not much focus on theoretical arguments, such as were introduced by E. H. Carr or Hans Morgenthau in the West. During this period, the development of Japanese Realism had three remarkable aspects, which I will now describe. The first is an internal ‘clash of civilisations’ during the early Meiji period: that is, between ‘European centrism’ (西洋主義) and ‘Asian centrism’ (アジア主義) (Samuels 2008: Part 1, Ch. 1, esp. 18–20). These two were, in their way, versions of a ‘Japanese Realism’, in the sense that both schools of thought urged Japan to balance the European powers’ expansion by promoting industrialisation and militarisation. This Meiji consensus was called Fukoku-Kyohei (富国強兵), but its approach was later divided into the two streams mentioned above. The former emphasis was more concerned with European powers with a liberal inclination, whereas the latter leaned more towards establishing Asian hegemony using national power, borrowing concepts from theoretical knowledge of Asian Studies. In general, discussions about the concept of international politics remained relatively normative and naive. Some intellectuals, however, had started to discuss theoretical topics in international politics based on the ideas of Western political philosophers. The second remarkable element is the emergence of Tokutomi Soho’s (徳富蘇峰) ‘Power World’ (腕力世界). In the 1870s and 1880s, Japan’s position on the international stage started to be discussed by Meiji-era intellectuals, one of whom was Chomin Nakae in his (中江兆民) Sansuijin-keirin-mondo (Discourse by Three Drunkards on Government 三酔人経綸問答) (Tanaka 2009: 7).10 This book consists of dialogues

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 472

23/10/18 12:45 PM

japan

473

between three characters: Mr Hero (豪傑君 Militaristic Realist), Mr Gentleman (紳 士君 Anti-militaristic Liberal) and Mr Nankai (南海先生 Liberal–Defensive Realist). Nakae used these characters to put forward three theoretical models to explain world politics and a suitable approach to international relations that Japan should adopt, but the problem was, he did not specify which model was the most appropriate for Japan. The arguments in his book contained some highly sophisticated ideas, however, such as a possible precursor to John Herz’s ‘security dilemma’.11 But the most renowned intellectual during the Meiji to the early Showa period (1925–45), in terms of Realism, was Soho Tokutomi (徳富蘇峰).12 In his magnum opus, Nihon-no-Shourai (The Future of Japan 日本の将来), Tokutomi provided two images of international politics: one is Heiwa-Sekai (The Peaceful World 平和世界) and the other is Wanryoku-sekai (The Power World 腕力世界) (Tokutomi 2015: 31–55).13 The latter was an exemplary image of Political Realism. It is an irony that the originally liberal Tokutomi later became a promoter of the Power World view, especially after witnessing Japan’s international humiliation when it was forced to comply with the European demand to relinquish the Liaodong Peninsula, ceded to Japan by China under a provision of the Treaty of Shimonoseki of 1895. Tokutomi, a famous journalist and intellectual during his time, became so hawkish that he was one of the most prominent Japanese warmongers right up to the country’s surrender that ended World War Two (Tanaka 2008: 8). The third element is Japanese academia’s preference for bottom-up approaches in colonial studies. Since the acquisition of Taiwan at the end of the nineteenth century,14 Japan had faced some serious difficulties in managing its foreign territories and colonies. This in turn made the elites more predisposed to studying colonial studies (now called area studies). And thus this differed quite markedly to the Western case, in which the study of Political Realism more naturally took a more deductive, direct approach in tackling international problems, such as the structure of international order or the causes of war. However, this was not the case for the Japanese elites and scholars, since their main concerns were how to manage their newly acquired and still little understood territories, with whom Japan had never had strong ties historically. An example of this approach is provided by the studies conducted by the South Manchurian Railway. This organisation had its own intelligence unit, and its rich collection of stored knowledge was well respected during this period. Established in 1907, its intelligence unit mainly surveyed East Asian politics, economics and geography, and worked as a precursor of what is now called a ‘think tank’ (Young 1966). Although there were internal debates about the degree to which it cooperated with the Japanese military (the Kwantung Army), and although some claimed that liberals and even Marxists were working in the unit, thus arousing government concern (Kawata 1966: 377),15 its main purpose was closely related to Japanese colonial policy. A pure Realism, however, was not evident in academia. Its overall tendency was more idealistic, emphasising cooperation among nations.16 Of course, there were some notable exceptions, such as the publication of Kanji Ishiwara’s Sekai Saishusen-ron (the theory of the Final World War, 1940) (Peattie 1975), the rise of the ‘geopolitical school’ in Kyoto University,17 and the advent of the ‘Greater East Asian Co-Prosperity Sphere theory’ (Asian studies), promoted as justification for current colonial policies (Kawata 1996: 341).18 But in Japan there were not enough systematic or deductive efforts in the style of E. H. Carr or Hans Morgenthau.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 473

23/10/18 12:45 PM

474

masashi okuyama

During this eighty-year period, Japan showed particular devotion to Political Realism, especially in the area of Asian centrism, yet in academia the most notable tendency was the dominance of historical/area studies, which preferred more cumulative or inductive approaches.

Realism in the Post-World War Two Period (from 1945 to the Present) Japan’s traumatic defeat in 1945 had a significant impact on the direction of the study of international politics and the government’s conduct of foreign policy. In the area of Political Realism, there were three significant factors in the post-World War era in Japan. First, there was the huge presence of the USA, especially in the area of national security, and the fact that Japanese academia was heavily influenced by scholarly studies of international politics emanating from that country. Second, Japanese academics were inclined to a ‘peace orientation’, which hampered the healthy development of Political Realism in Japan. Third, there was Japanese scholars’ ignorance of so-called Neorealism, initiated by Kenneth Waltz. The first notable element in post-World War Japan was the influence of the USA, in the scope of what Joseph Nye called ‘hard power’ and also in ‘soft power’. Japan was occupied by the US-led Allies for seven years, and during this period some members of the former Japanese elites who were considered to have been involved in the war effort were purged by the General Headquarters (GHQ). This created a period of ‘emptiness’ in the study of international politics, but the biggest consequence was a full-scale influx of ideas pertaining to Political Realism into the Japanese academy. According to Murata (2009: 45), there are several reasons for this. First of all, Japan lost the war and was partially blamed for the collapse of the League of Nations system, on which Japanese scholars pinned their hopes for world peace. Another reason for the rise of Political Realism was the strong anti-communist sentiment at that time. Realism was somehow considered to be one of arguments in the ideological debate of the period. Finally, a selection of great works were imported and introduced to Japan in rapid succession: for example, George Kennan’s American Diplomacy, E. H. Carr’s Twenty Years Crisis, Reinhold Niebuhr’s The Irony of American History and Hans Morgenthau’s Politics Among Nations. In short, Western Political Realism in Japan was rooted in post-World War Two Japan, at least in academia. One of the heated topics that concerned Japanese Realists, such as Masataka Kosaka (高坂正堯) and Yonosuke Nagai (永井陽之助), was the issue of Japan’s position in the world, particularly in relation to the USA. In fact, it was an issue for the US–Japan Alliance, which was hotly debated by the public during the 1960s and 1970s, and one of the core themes that ‘Realists’ used for their case was directly related to Morgenthau’s ideas about Realism. For example, one of the dominant so-called ‘Idealist’ arguments of that time against the US–Japan Alliance was that Japan should reduce its Self-Defence Force dramatically, so that Japan could make a small contribution to the United Nations Police Force and take up a position of neutrality, to avoid being involved in a possible nuclear war between the USA and the Soviet Union. A nuclear standoff always carries a seed of miscalculation, so it would be better not to take sides in a competition between superpowers in order to

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 474

23/10/18 12:45 PM

japan

475

avoid catastrophic damage in a nuclear war. Following this logic, the US–Japan Alliance was always a grave concern: thus, Japan should seek neutrality.19 Professor Kosaka of Kyoto University was one of the leading Realist figures in the postwar era who countered this idealist argument by quoting Morgenthau’s balance of power concept. In his famous article published in 1963, Kosaka insisted that the US–Japan Alliance was preferable for Japan because, if Japan were to adopt neutrality, the Cold War peace, which was maintained by the US–Soviet balance of power, would be at risk (Kosaka 1963: 38–49). Basing himself on the premises of Morgenthau’s arguments, Kosaka knew the limitations of the balance of power as a tool for peace. In fact, Morgenthau acknowledged that there was a set of shared moral norms for keeping the peace among policy-makers at the Congress of Vienna of 1815, and Kosaka followed him by insisting that this type of principle of ‘shared values’ is fundamental to any balance of power mechanism.20 Kosaka argued, as did Morgenthau, that the Cold War system might be riskier than the balance of power adopted by the Vienna Congress, but still, if Japan chose neutrality, it would tip the balance of power for the worse. Kosaka reiterated that Japan is a part of the Western alliance, so it was a grave error to adopt neutrality (Kosaka 1963: 40). In short, Kosaka insisted that Japan should be aware that it was already deeply involved in the balance of power system in place during the Cold War. As these arguments suggest, the American impact on the thinking of Japanese academics was in terms of Morgenthau’s Realism and its relevance to the US–Japan Alliance. In fact, Kosaka’s argument contained one of the most fundamental themes on how to live peacefully with one’s adversaries. On the surface, he was talking about problems associated with the US–Japan Alliance, but the argument was fundamentally about the basic mechanism or an approach to international relations in general. Incidentally, some Realists later worked as government appointees or practitioners. For example, Kosaka had a position in the Sato government (1964–71) as an unofficial diplomatic advisor, and Kei Wakaizumi, a professor at Kyoto Sangyo University, had a portfolio dealing with Okinawan issues in the same administration (Murata 2009: 51). However, they were Political Realists and they took a position that was held by a minority of Japanese academics, which in fact remains the case to this day. The second American influence on Japanese academics in the postwar period was in the latter’s overt emphasis on a ‘peace orientation’ in the study of international politics. This is quite evident from the strong general antipathy to Morgenthau amongst Japanese scholars. In Japan, Politics among Nations, Morgenthau’s magnum opus, had already been debated in the early 1950s, and the full version was translated into Japanese in 1963 (Morgenthau 1963). Although Japanese academia accepted and respected Morgenthau’s Realist theory, there were at least two general reactions from scholars. One type of reaction was based on the simplicity of Morgenthau’s arguments. Japanese scholars of the time had tried to interpret the text carefully, and learned that Morgenthau had excessively discarded the historical, sociological and cultural elements of international politics for the sake of constructing an abstract, systematic theory. Any such systematic theory-building must inevitably involve simplification, and this is where many scholars were critical of Morgenthau’s Realism (Oyane 2016: 68–70). For example, the most typical of these was a diplomatic historian, Yoshitake Oka. In a 1955 book, Oka criticised Morgenthau by arguing that his theory

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 475

23/10/18 12:45 PM

476

masashi okuyama

summarised into just the one simple concept of the ‘national interest’ a number of complex elements that should be considered anew, and case by case, for each country (Oka 2009: 4). Another type of reaction took the form of normative arguments, largely put forward by postwar peace-seekers. The textbook example was that presented by Professor Kawata of the University of Tokyo. Being a mea culpa ex-soldier of the Japanese Imperial Army, Kawata strongly insisted that Morgenthau reduced the complex phenomena of international politics to mere political struggle, and that this picture of struggle must be a complete challenge to political idealism and pacifist policies (Kawata 1996: 62). One notable exception from the peace camp, which was less hostile to Morgenthau’s theory, came from University of Tokyo Professor Kazuyoshi Sakamoto, a selfproclaimed protégé of Morgenthau. After studying under Morgenthau at the University of Chicago in the 1950s, Sakamoto borrowed directly from Morgenthau’s work and used it to construct his own theory of peace studies. Indeed, Sakamoto had a series of great debates with Kosaka on the issue of the US–Japan Alliance, as already mentioned above, and it was Sakamoto who insisted during this debate that Japan should seek neutrality and the Japanese Self-Defence Force should be reduced in size in order for Japan to be allowed to contribute to the UN security forces (Sakamoto 1959: 80). The basis of this justification was, according to Sakamoto, Morgenthau’s concept of ‘national interest’. Morgenthau, Sakamoto believed, was vague, as it was not clear whether the ‘national interest’ meant the government’s interest or the population’s interest. Sakamoto thought that what mattered was the population’s interest, and at the same time, the most dangerous aspect of the Cold War system was miscalculation between the two camps, which could lead to a dreadful, and quite possibly nuclear, exchange (Sakamoto 1959: 56–66). If Japan revised the US–Japan Security Treaty in this context (in 1970), it would send a strong message challenging China and the Soviet Union, and this could spark a miscalculation between East and West. This imperative, together with Sakamoto’s perceived Cold War structural shift for stability in 1955 at the Geneva conference, would be enough justification for Japan to seek neutrality and a reduction in the size of its Self-Defence Force: again, all in order to prevent a miscalculation (Sakamoto 1959: 84). For Sakamoto, what mattered most was the people’s interest, not the national government’s interest, and the best way to prevent a nuclear catastrophe was, in a way, for Japan to involve itself more in the UN structure. In other words, Sakamoto used Morgenthau’s power politics argument and refined it to justify and support his own pacifist argument. The third notable element in postwar Japan, as regards Political Realism, was academia’s indifference to Kenneth Waltz’s so-called Neorealism. As we already know, Waltz had attempted to make the study of international politics a social science in his most acclaimed work, Theory of International Politics (1979).21 According to Tomoko Okagaki, a co-translator of Waltz’s Man, the State, and War (Waltz 1979), Japanese academia totally ignored Waltz’s attempt to construct a theoretical model, and specifically focused on nuclear weapons. In other words, Japanese scholars of international politics were not interested in the scientific explanation presented by Waltz’s structuralism, but rather in the issue of actual policy implications (Okagaki 2016: 164–5). Japanese political scholars tended to value studies of concrete phenomena, not some abstract arguments about social scientific theory. In short, tangible wins over intangible in Japan.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 476

23/10/18 12:45 PM

japan

477

Another interesting point here is that constructivism, which had risen in part as a form of criticism of Neorealism in the early 1990s by Alexander Wendt and others,22 did not have a fresh impact on Japanese academia. A possible reason is that Japanese scholars were already familiar with the literature of French philosophers, especially that of Michel Foucault, Jean-Paul Sartre and Jacques Derrida. In other words, the criticism from constructivists was self-evident for many Japanese academics, who had already been debating the importance of norms and values in international politics for some time (Tanaka 2009: 12). What do these explanations tell us about Japanese Realism in the postwar era? The first point is that Political Realism, especially its purely theoretical forms, did not greatly interest Japanese scholars because, in general, they preferred the bottom-up type of approach. Another point, especially applied to the case of Waltz, is that Japan was not, or at least was not perceived as, a major player in determining the outcome of the international system. In short, the system per se was not Japan’s interest, contrary to (mainly) that of Waltz (Murata 2009: 57). The general unpopularity of Political Realism in Japanese academic circles in this era, however, was largely attributed to the preference of international political scholars for the topics of diplomatic history and area studies. In fact, Akihiko Tanaka, one of the most remarkable figures among contemporary Japanese scholars in the field of international politics, has mentioned that there was a ‘potential polarity’ between the school of theoretical studies and that of historical, area studies (Tanaka 2009: 13–16). In other words, if Political Realism was not that popular in Japan, it had already had a rich historical, area studies background, which contained some form of Realist elements.

Does Realism Have a Brighter Future in Japan? It is time to get back to the questions put forward at the beginning of this chapter. First, what are the main philosophical premises of Japanese Political Realism? A simple answer would be ‘power is influence’, but there is a strong sense in society that this power has been transitional in the domestic arena. Second, how are Realist ideas rooted in society or political culture? The theory of Political Realism in Morgenthau’s sense would be accepted tacitly by political leaders and practitioners, but candid arguing for Realist ideas in a public setting would still be taboo in Japanese society. One of the interesting points here is that a bottom-up approach has been most prominent among Japanese academics. There is a sense in society in general that any theoretical argument should be avoided to keep society at peace. Third, how are Realist ideas played out in diplomacy? From the Meiji to the Showa era (1926–1989), the Realist policy of the accumulation of national power has certainly played a substantial role in diplomacy, especially in the sense of trying to prevent foreign invasions. Yet not enough attention was paid to the theory per se, except by a very limited number of scholars and practitioners. It was not until after World War Two that Japanese academia started to turn its focus on Political Realism through the influence of America and Morgenthau’s arguments, but Japanese political applications of Realism have always been limited in scope because of the overt, and overriding, peace orientation.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 477

23/10/18 12:45 PM

478

masashi okuyama

Fourth, and finally, what are the main domestic or political obstacles to implementing Realist foreign policies in the twenty-first century? There is no doubt that Political Realism is becoming more popular in the Japanese academic community. For example, notable works on Realism by Waltz and Mearsheimer have been translated into Japanese and published in the last two decades.23 One can assume that one of the reasons for this phenomenon is that the East Asian regional security environment is becoming more dangerous, due to the rise of China as a military power and the unpredictability of the North Korean dictatorial regime. This has created a social environment that lends itself to discussions of security policy in Realist language. The main obstacle, however, is still in the normative attitude of Japanese society, which fears a backlash from a neighbouring country with a view to recent history (Samuels 2008: 186). Peace, whatever that means, has been the absolute value that Japan should pursue in the postwar era, and this still applies to the current political setting in Japan. Overall, Japanese academia’s attitude towards Political Realism has been a mixed one, if not totally negative. The reason for this might be that the dominant school of international politics has always been focused on historical and area studies. In sum, Japanese scholars believe that Realism does not reside in an abstract or theoretical discourse, but permeates the cumulative knowledge of the subject.

Notes 1. For a compact overview of Japan’s strategic position in English, see Woolley (2005: esp. Ch. 1). 2. Of course, this depends on how you look at different cases. See, for example, Okuyama (2011). 3. In Japan, Son-Shi is quite popular and there are a number of versions, but the one regarded as the standard translation is Kanaya (2000). 4. The most popular version is Yoshikawa (1989). 5. See Takeuchi (2008). 6. See McCullough (2004). 7. See Tyler (2014). 8. For example, Nagazumi (2002). 9. For example, Nakami (2006: 13–54). 10. In English, Nakae (1992). 11. This idea was expressed as Karyo (過慮). See Nakae (2014: 124). 12. For a general biography, see Pierson (2014). 13. In English, Tokutomi (1990). For a survey of the imperial expansion of Japan, see Barnhart (1987); Snyder (1991); Beasley (1987); Crowley (1974). 14. For a first-hand account, see a memoir written by the foreign minister at that time, Munemitsu Mutsu (2015). 15. For an original work by such person, see Yanaihara (1934). 16. See, for example, Kawata (1996: 342). 17. See, for example, Shibata (2016); Herwig (2016: Ch. 2). 18. For Japan’s Korean policy, see, for example, Conroy (1960). 19. Sakamoto (1959: 31–47). This article was reprinted in Sakamoto (2015: 56–96), the reference is from the latter. 20. See, for example, Stone (2005: 32–3).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 478

23/10/18 12:45 PM

japan

479

21. For a Japanese version, see Waltz (2010). 22. For notable works on constructivism, see Wendt (1999); Wendt (1992); Ruggie (1998); Onuf (1989). 23. Waltz’s Theory of International Politics (1979) was published as Kokusai Seiji in 2010, as mentioned above. John Mearsheimer’s The Tragedy of Great Power Politics (2001), an archetype of Political Realism, was published in 2007 as Taikokuseiji no Higeki (2007).

Bibliography Barnhart, Michael A. (1987), Japan Prepares for Total War: The Search for Economic Security, 1919–1941, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Beasley, W. G. (1987), Japanese Imperialism, 1894–1945, Oxford: Clarendon. Conroy, Hilary (1960), The Japanese Seizure of Korea, 1868–1910: A Study of Realism and Idealism in International Relations, Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press. Crowley, James B. (1974), ‘Japan’s military foreign policies’, in James W. Morley (ed.), Japan’s Foreign Policy, 1868–1941: A Research Guide, New York: Columbia University Press. Herwig, Holger H. (2016), The Demon of Geopolitics: How Karl Haushofer ‘Educated’ Hitler and Hess, Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littlefield. Ichikawa, Jinzo (1968), Juhasshiryaku, Tokyo: Meitoku Shuppan. Kanaya, Osamu (2000), Shintei Son-shi, Tokyo: Iwanami. Kawata, Tadashi (1996), Kokusai Kannkei Kenkyu, Tokyo: Tokyo Shoseki. Kiezaburo, Sugimoto (ed.) (2017), Sinban Heike Monogatari, vol. 1, Tokyo: Kodansha. Kosaka, Masataka (1963), ‘Genjitu Shugisha no Heiwaron’, Chuou-Koron, January, pp. 38–49. McCullough, Helen Craig (2004), The Taiheiki: A Chronicle of Medieval Japan, Tokyo: Tuttle. Mearsheimer, John (2001), The Tragedy of Great Power Politics, New York: W. W. Norton. In Japanese: John Mearsheimer, Taikokuseiji no Higeki, translated by Masashi Okuyama, Tokyo: Gogatsu Shobo. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1963), Kokusai-Seiji Gaku, 3 vols, translated by Terufumi Ito and Tatsuo Urano, Tokyo: Asahi Sha. Murata, Koji (2009), ‘Realism – sono nihonteki tokucho’, in Japan Association of International Politics (eds), Japanese Studies of International Politics: Theoretical Perspectives on International Relations, Tokyo: Yuhi-kaku. Mutsu, Munemitsu (2015) [1929], Ken Ken Roku, Tokyo: Chuukou Shinsha. Nagazumi, Yasuaki (2002), Gunki Monogatari no Sekai, Tokyo: Iwanami. Nakae, Chomin (2014) [1887], Sansuijin Keirin-Mondou, Tokyo: Kobunsha. In English: Nakae Chomin (1992), A Discourse by Three Drunkards on Government, Boston: Weatherhill. Nakami, Tatsuo (2006), ‘Nihonteki Toyogaku no Keisei to Kouzu’, in Mio Kishimoto (ed.), Teikoku Nihon no Gakuchi, Tokyo: Iwanami, pp. 13–54. Oka, Yoshitake (2009) [1955], Kokusai Seijishi, Tokyo: Iwanami. Okagaki, Tomoko (2016), ‘Kenneth Waltz no nihonteki juyo’, in Nihon no Kokusai Kankeiron, Tokyo: Keiso Shobo. Okuyama, Masashi (2011), Classical Geopolitical Theory and Japan’s Strategic History, PhD Thesis, University of Reading. Onuf, Nicholas Greenwood (1989), World of Our Making, Columbia: University of South Carolina Press. Oyane, Satoshi (2016), ‘Nihon ni okeru Morgenthau tono Taiwa’, in Nihon no Kokusai Kankeiron, Tokyo: Keiso Shobo. Peattie, Mark R. (1975), Ishiwara Kanji and Japan’s Confrontation with the West, Princeton NJ: Princeton University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 479

23/10/18 12:45 PM

480

masashi okuyama

Pierson, John D. (2014), Tokutomi Soho, 1863–1957: A Journalist for Modern Japan, Princeton NJ: Princeton University Press. Ruggie, John Gerard (1998), Constructing the World Polity: Essays on International Institutionalisation, London: Routledge. Sakamoto, Yoshikazu (1959), ‘Chuuritsu Nihon no Bouei Kousou’, Sekai, no. 164, August, pp. 31–47. Reprinted in Yoshikazu Sakamoto (2015), Kenryoku Seiji wo Koeru Michi, Tokyo: Iwanami, pp. 56–96. Samuels, Richard J. (2008), Securing Japan: Tokyo’s Grand Strategy and the Future of East Asia, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Shibata, Yoichi (2016), Teikoku Nihon to Chiseigaku, Tokyo: Seibundo Shuppan. Snyder, Jack (1991), Myths of Empire: Domestic Politics and International Ambition, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Stone, Ronald H. (2005), Prophetic Realism: Beyond Militarism and Pacifism in an Age of Terror, New York: T&T Clark International. Takeuchi, Hiroyuki (2008), Juhasshiryaku, Tokyo: Kodansha. Tanaka, Akihiko (2009), ‘Introduction’, in Japan Association of International Politics (eds), Japanese Studies of International Politics: Theoretical Perspectives on International Relations, Tokyo: Yuhi-kaku. Tokutomi, Soho (2015), Shorai no Nihon/Yoshida Shoin, Tokyo: Chuou Koron Shinsha. In English: Tokutomi Soho, The Future Japan (1990), translated by Sinh Vinh, Edmonton: University of Alberta Press. Tyler, Royall (2014), The Tale of the Heike, New York: Penguin Classics. Waltz, Kenneth N. (1959), Man, the State, and War, New York: Columbia University Press. In Japanese: Kenneth N. Waltz (2013), Ningen, Kokka, Sensou, translated by Akio Watanabe and Tomoko Okagaki, Tokyo: Keiso Shobou. Waltz, Kenneth N. (1979), Theory of International Politics, New York: McGraw-Hill. In Japanese: Kenneth N. Waltz (2010), Kokusai Seiji no Riron, translated by Masaru Kawano and Tomoko Okagaki, Tokyo: Keiso Shobo. Wendt, Alexander (1992), ‘Anarchy is what states make of it: The social construction of power politics’, International Organization, vol. 46, no. 2, pp. 391–425. Wendt, Alexander (1999), Social Theory of International Politics, London: Cambridge University Press. Woolley, Peter J. (2005), Geography and Japan’s Strategic Choices: From Seclusion to Internationalization, Washington DC: Potomac. Yanaihara, Tadao (1934), Manshu Mondai, Tokyo: Iwanami. Yoshikawa, Eiji (1989), Sangoku-Shi, 8 vols, Tokyo: Kodansha. In English: Luo, Guanzhong (2014), The Three Kingdoms, 3 vols, translated by Yu Sumei, ed. by Ronald C. Iverson, Singapore: Tuttle. Young, John (1966), The Research Activities of the South Manchurian Railway Company, 1907–1945: A History and Bibliography, New York: Columbia University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 480

23/10/18 12:45 PM

38 Political Realism and Regionalism China, Southeast Asia and the case of ASEAN David Martin Jones

Chapter Overview

T

here is no contemporary realist theory of regionalism. Instead, the prevailing normativist, liberal institutionalist or constructivist idioms that currently dominate the study of International Relations treat regionalism as the harbinger of a more cosmopolitan and just world order. This is odd, given that, in the case of the Association of South East Asian Nations (ASEAN), its founding fathers shared a realist vision of the ends of the association they formed in Bangkok at the height of the Cold War, which ran very hot in Southeast Asia in 1967. This chapter first examines the realist ideas that affected the creation of ASEAN and the political culture it evolved over time. It will subsequently explore how those ideas played out in ASEAN’s distinctive diplomatic practice and finally will discuss the key domestic and political obstacles that impede its development into a broader East Asian regional security community in the twenty-first century. *

*

*

Raison d’État à l’ASEAN The early scholarship of regional security in Southeast Asia and its practice contrasts vividly with more recent commentary regarding the prospects for both an enhanced and a more completely integrated community of ASEAN.1 In the 1960s and 1970s, commentators generally lamented the failure of attempts at regional security cooperation and regarded the eventual formation of ASEAN in 1967 as limited in both its scope and utility. Assembled from the stillborn attempts at postwar regional cooperation, notably the South East Asian Treaty Organization (SEATO), the Association of South East Asia (ASA) and Maphilindo, the future grouping cobbled together elements of these failed arrangements into the ASEAN Declaration, signed in Bangkok in August 1967. Here the five founding members (Malaysia, the Philippines, Indonesia, Thailand and Singapore) agreed ‘to accelerate the economic growth, social progress and cultural development in the region through joint endeavour and partnership . . . [and] promote regional peace and stability’ (The ASEAN Declaration 1967).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 481

23/10/18 12:45 PM

482

david martin jones

That the grouping agreed anything at all represented the symbolic resolution of a conflict over the postcolonial Southeast Asian regional order and Indonesia’s acceptance of the right of the recently decolonised states of Malaysia and Singapore to a place in that order. It evinced a realist acceptance on the part of the anti-communist, New Order government, which came to power in Jakarta in 1965, that the existence of similarly anti-communist regimes in its immediate vicinity was more important than the new state’s commitment, under its first post-independence leader, Sukarno, to build a greater Indonesia ( Indonesia Raya). Under President Suharto (1965–98), Indonesia saw the association as a basis not for regional integration but for internal resilience. This and the shared perception of an external threat constituted the basis for a regional grouping based on arbitrary, colonial-era, territorial boundaries. Hence, a small group of insecure, new, non-communist states in Southeast Asia formed ASEAN. They shared little, apart from their realist appreciation of a common threat from the projection of communism, in its Maoist and Vietnamese variations, into Laos and Cambodia, and, via the domino effect, potentially into Thailand, Malaysia, Singapore and Indonesia. ASEAN’s first-generation leadership sought to abate this existential threat through a realist practice of prudently avoiding interstate conflict and building coherent nation-states. As S. Rajaratnam, the then Singaporean Foreign Minister, observed in 1970: [The] fragmentation of Southeast Asia into many new nation states has not necessarily created viable states. The very nationalism which brought these new states into being is in turn breeding divisive sub nationalisms based on race, language, religion and culture. This together with growing internal economic difficulties makes national consolidation and national stability a more pressing problem than the problem of regional integration. (Rajaratnam 2007: 288) In other words, the practice of regionalism in Southeast Asia revealed a political paradox that sought ‘to reconcile the theory of regionalism with the practice of nationalism’ (Rajaratnam 2007: 288). Ultimately, as Rajaratnam again observed, when it came to translating ASEAN objectives into practice, ‘it is not regional interests but national interests which became the primary consideration’ (Rajaratnam 2007: 287–90). In the regional practice of ASEAN over the next five decades nothing much changed. Asian regionalism meant the pragmatic acceptance of the regional order and offered a convenient tool for resolving national problems at the level of the member state. This view of regionalism as reinforcing rather than diluting national resilience constituted the basis of ASEAN’s cornerstone Treaty of Amity and Cooperation (TAC, 1976), later reaffirmed in the Bali Concord 2003 and inscribed in the ASEAN Charter (2007) that endowed the body with a legal persona. Never more than an ‘intergovernmental entity’, the Association early demonstrated ‘a strong disposition against any supranational tendency’ (Leifer 1989: 153). Michael Leifer, the foremost twentieth-century scholar of the organisation, pointed out that it did not even incur ‘the obligations’ or establish ‘the structure of an alliance’, and credited ASEAN with at best developing a ‘collegial identity’ (Leifer 2005a: 104). This identity, moreover, emerged in response to the Indochina crisis occasioned by Vietnam’s invasion of Cambodia in 1978. Vietnam’s actions breached ASEAN’s TAC (1976), which upheld as the basis of national resilience the principle of non-interference in the internal affairs

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 482

23/10/18 12:45 PM

regionalism

483

of member states as the realist sine qua non of regional cooperation, peace and stability. It was in the course of the Indochina crisis and its eventual resolution, in 1991, that the ‘pattern of international alignments in the Cold War . . . permitted ASEAN a unique latitude for collective diplomacy over a regional conflict’ (Leifer 1999: 32). At the end of the Cold War, ASEAN stood revealed as a diplomatic community of weak states, and its collegial style represented the ‘institutional fruit’ of sub-regional conflict resolution between 1976 and 1991. It could also be viewed as an ‘embryonic security community’ practising cooperative security (Leifer 1987: 4): that is, an essentially realist, intra-elite undertaking that reconciled previously conflicting but weak and insecure states via its machinery of dialogue, dispute management and conflict avoidance. In terms of the pragmatic recognition of their shared weakness and difference, this required a culture that emphasised norms of good interpersonal relations and non-binding consensus. In this, ASEAN’s practice contained ‘an evident dimension of balance of power’ within ‘an institutional framework of multilateral constraint’ that actively avoided solving outstanding intramural problems (Leifer 2005b: 153). This realist practice of non-binding consensus and non-interference, coupled with ASEAN’s export-oriented growth and openness to international investment, meant its regional diplomatic status improved dramatically over time. The original ASEAN states maintained both peace and impressive economic growth from 1985 to 1997. By 1998, the Association had expanded to encompass Burma/Myanmar and the communist Indochinese states (Laos, Cambodia and Vietnam), which it had been aligned against between 1978 and 1991. From the late 1990s, too, a new generation of scholars challenged the realism that informed the early understanding of Southeast Asia’s diplomatic practice. Attracted by ASEAN’s distinctive diplomatic style and convinced that the ‘economic rise of Southeast Asia’, along with the rest of the Pacific littoral, had ‘proven itself a sound developmental model’ (Nesadurai 1996: 51), this later generation entertained the notion that ASEAN’s distinctive political culture might fashion a wider East Asian Community embracing China, Japan and North Korea. The process of engagement with an emerging China after 1994 through new ASEAN mechanisms like the ASEAN Regional Forum (ARF) extended ASEAN’s procedural norms, establishing them as the basis, it seemed, of a wider regional order. According to this constructivist view, and contrary to a realist understanding, a shared sense of weakness, rather than power, had facilitated ASEAN’s capacity to transform the Asia Pacific order. For Muthiah Alagappa, ASEAN’s ‘emphasis on principles and norms as well as its conception of comprehensive security’ emerged ‘from the weakness of the ASEAN states in power endowment’ (Alagappa 2003: 76). Indeed, the ARF demonstrated ‘how under certain conditions, weaker states can offer normative leadership in building an institution whose membership includes all the great powers of the current international system’ (Acharya 2003: 211). Interestingly, while both realist and idealist scholars agreed upon the collective weakness of ASEAN, those of a normativist and constructivist disposition serendipitously discovered state weakness productive of positive ideational and social outcomes, culminating in a wider sense of regional identity and purpose. In the period dating from the Asian Financial Crisis (1997) to the formation of the East Asian Community in 2007, the fact that China adopted a new security concept (xin anquan guan) and embraced ‘multipolarity’ seemed to prove that the ASEAN way

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 483

23/10/18 12:45 PM

484

david martin jones

could transform state interest into a shared regional identity. For scholars and regional diplomats, China’s growing enthusiasm for normalising regional relations via the ARF and ASEAN Plus Three (APT – ASEAN plus China, Japan and South Korea), and its subsequent incorporation of Australia, New Zealand and India in an East Summit mechanism after 2007, seemed to offer proof of the transformative possibilities of the distinctive diplomatic culture pervading this expanded regional grouping. The prevailing perception of ASEAN-driven regionalism therefore assumes that a collocation of weak state actors engineered a set of procedural norms and persuaded stronger regional actors to adapt to them. Superficially, it would seem that the economically and politically weaker ASEAN states drove this community and shaped its development. If so, it represented a unique case refuting realism, where a group of weak state actors determine the fate of stronger ones. But is this the process that is determining regional order in the Asia Pacific?

ASEAN’s Widening and the Problem of Deepening Pragmatism was a central feature of ASEAN’s weak state diplomacy and this has determined its attempts to manage the wider East Asian region. ASEAN, despite its growth in the 1990s into a regional bloc of ten states and its ambitious attempt after 2007 to forge an East Asian Community embracing the Northeast Asian states of China, South Korea and Japan, has never escaped the constituting fact that its version of regionalism is principally concerned with national security and the prioritisation of state interest. Such a realist understanding of regionalism sits uneasily with the ‘new regionalism’ promoted by scholars like David Held and Anthony Giddens, and practised somewhat uncertainly by the European Union (EU). 2 The normative transformation which characterised the European project has distorted the scholarship and understanding of ASEAN, which has, as we have seen, come to assume that ASEAN norms can both transform its member states and project common values into the wider region, socialising China, South Korea and Japan into a community of shared fate.3 Yet somewhat curiously, local and Western scholarship, together with ASEAN official statements, rarely draw attention to the fact that Asian regionalism is all too evidently state-determined. Indeed, not only was Asian regionalism thought of in terms of creating regional order rather than a supranational, ‘new’ regionalism, but also ASEAN’s first generation of leaders recognised the pragmatic utility of an organisation that presented to the wider international community the notion of a regional grouping, even if that grouping had little in common apart from the fact that its member states recognised each other’s existence. As Rajaratnam prudently observed, ‘regionalism . . . is a valuable instrument for strengthening the bargaining position of constituent members within the international system which is dominated by richer and more advanced countries’ (Rajaratnam 2007: 189). Yet all ASEAN could achieve in terms of the contingent historical conditions of its emergence was not regional integration, but stability as a basis for promoting growth and cooperation. Even at the infrastructural level of the ASEAN economy, little has been collectively achieved over forty years. For although member states have achieved impressive growth in their gross domestic product (GDP), an intra-ASEAN market, in terms of common investment rules, industrial marques or patterns of consumption,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 484

23/10/18 12:45 PM

regionalism

485

has not evolved. Former Malaysian Prime Minister Mahathir Mohamad (1981–2003) warned in the 1990s that ASEAN had failed to develop into anything like a one-stop Southeast Asian shop. Instead, ASEAN’s success resided in ‘providing a climate of peace and stability’ that allowed member states ‘to concentrate on (export oriented) economic development’ (Mahathir 2004: 129). ASEAN, Mahathir argued, needed ‘to proceed rapidly to a higher plane of cooperation, collective action and self reliance in order to have an effective voice in international, inter regional and multilateral fora’ (Mahathir 2004: 129). In order to achieve this, Mahathir stressed the need to integrate regional trade. However, levels of intraregional trade and investment remained worryingly low, despite the move to form an ASEAN Free Trade Area (AFTA) in 1992 and a regional preferential trade arrangement. Mahathir observed, with growing frustration, that ‘in agriculture as in other fields, we are both competitors and rivals’, and the expansion of ASEAN after 1995 (to include a northern tier of Burma, Cambodia, Laos and Vietnam) only added to inter-ASEAN competitiveness for both markets and foreign direct investment (FDI). Despite an official policy of ‘prosper thy neighbour’, ASEAN was not a community in the European sense. Instead, ASEAN remained, at the millennium, a grouping of ‘separate nations with the interests of our own people at heart. We are not about to discard our newfound nationalism in favour of wider regional loyalties’ (Mahathir 1997: 153). It was in order to escape the paradox that ASEAN found itself in, as a consequence of its desire to use the region as a vehicle for nationalism, that explains the attempt to advance itself as the model for a more inclusive East Asian Community. As Mahathir, the first to articulate an East Asian Economic Grouping, argued, without a combined voice, ASEAN, and East Asia more generally, would be at the mercy of North American and European regional blocs. Thus, despite Mahathir’s commendation, the period after 2002 showed little progress towards an integrated South East Asian economic community. The slow implementation of tariff, non-tariff and financial reforms meant that ASEAN did not achieve its avowed aim of a single market in 2015. Indeed, the ASEAN Secretariat observed, in 2013, that ASEAN members had adopted less than 50 per cent of single market policy provisions. Moreover, to the extent that the ASEAN economies have grown since 2002, it has been a result of their emerging role as a supplier of commodities to China. Thus, whilst ASEAN’s exports to the EU were the same ‘as China’s in 2000 . . . by 2012, China’s exports to the EU were more than triple ASEAN’s’ (Napoli 2014: 348). Over the decade, since 2003, China–ASEAN trade increased 24 per cent year on year from $78 billion to $444 billion (Lo 2014). Since 2009, China has been ASEAN’s third largest trading partner (Xinhua Insight 2012). Moreover, the return of FDI to Southeast Asia after 2003 reflects Chinese rather than Western or Japanese and South Korean investment in Southeast Asia. ‘Chinese FDI into ASEAN increased 11 times’ between 2003 and 2008 (Napoli 2014: 356). After 2002, therefore, the East Asian Community idea offered an escape from the prisoner’s dilemma that limits ASEAN as an integrated market or security community by projecting its limitations on to a broader diplomatic canvas, thereby endowing this expanded ASEAN grouping with the appearance of ‘a common voice’. In other words, trapped by the fact that the Cold War conditions of regionalism no longer applied to

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 485

23/10/18 12:45 PM

486

david martin jones

the changed international, economic and political reality at the millennium, ASEAN, rather than addressing the issue of integration, evaded it by promoting its weak state regionalism as the basis for a wider regional framework. To be sure, the wider region adopted ASEAN’s culture of consensus building, peer pressure and well-oiled mechanisms of conflict avoidance and conflict management. This non-binding ASEAN way of diplomacy, rather than the legalistic forms and rulebased institutions of Western provenance, governs the East Asian Community grouping. Indeed, the ASEAN’s TAC has become the admission price to both ASEAN and the wider community. Yet, the founding members of ASEAN negotiated the TAC as the basis of regional order in vastly different, Cold War, circumstances. The treaty itself was an unremarkable document that reflects the values of its era. It requires, inter alia, all members to ‘respect the independence, sovereignty, equality, territorial integrity of all nations, the settlement of disputes by peaceful means and non-interference in the internal affairs of one another’. However, premised as it is upon internal resilience rather than external security, it ipso facto cannot build the economic, political or security community in Southeast Asia, or the wider region, to which it ostensibly aspires. Hence, in areas of common regional concern like the transnational threat posed by environmental hazard or regional terrorism, ASEAN norms of non-interference and non-binding consensus actively inhibit greater integration, within Southeast Asia, despite official rhetoric to the contrary. One example will suffice to illustrate this. Smallholders in the Indonesian provinces of Sumatra and Kalimantan constitute the main source of the land and forest fires that cause the pollution that perennially envelops Singapore and peninsular Malaysia. To address the problem, ASEAN convened meetings and made declarations, dating from 1990. These culminated in the 2002 Agreement on Transboundary Haze Pollution. Like all ASEAN agreements, however, it lacked any mechanism of enforcement. The fact that the major polluter, Indonesia, only signed the agreement in 2014 further compounds the problem. Despite the agreement, the region has been enveloped in dangerous and health-threatening smog pollution on at least four occasions between October 2006 and February 2016. Commenting on Indonesia’s failure to implement the ASEAN agreement, Singapore environment minister Vivian Balakrishnan observed, in February 2014, ‘we will try to encourage them to take action, but we all know the welfare of close neighbours is not their priority. [These are the] hard truths of regional politics’ (‘Singapore haze fears mount as Riau fires rage on’ 2014). A similar pattern of unenforceable agreements characterises the grouping’s incoherent approach to the regional terror threat that has evolved since 2000. In other words, ASEAN’s adherence to its diplomatic culture of non-interference and consensus continues to determine its regional posture, which eschews the benefits of greater political or economic integration in an era of global interconnection. This limitation to the ASEAN way became obvious to an ASEAN Eminent Persons Group (EPG), charged in 2004 with framing a legally enforceable ASEAN charter. Reporting their findings to the postponed 12th ASEAN summit in January 2007, the EPG proposed the need for ‘systems to monitor and enforce agreements’, as well as ‘pool some aspects of their sovereignty’ (ASEAN 2007). The summit subsequently charged a high-level task force with agreeing the terms of this charter, crucial to correcting ASEAN’s negligent underambition.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 486

23/10/18 12:45 PM

regionalism

487

However, although the more developed and longstanding ASEAN members recognised the need to move away from the norms of non-binding consensus so inimical to both integration and collective security, they evidently suit the more politically problematic and economically underdeveloped ASEAN members, like Myanmar, Cambodia, Vietnam and Laos, who joined the organisation after the exposure of the limitations of their authoritarian development models after 1995. They also suit China, and here ASEAN’s attempt to project its weak state regionalism on to a broader canvas came into conflict with China’s assertiveness and its realpolitik assumption of regional hegemony. The evolution of ASEAN’s diplomacy with China over the South China Sea exposed the limitations of applying a weak state realism designed for Southeast Asian consumption to a sphere dominated by far more powerful actors. This has had the consequence of fragmenting rather than consolidating regionalism and bequeathing the Asia Pacific with a difficult legacy.

ASEAN Hubris Meets China’s Realpolitik in the South China Sea In February 1992, China’s Law of the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zones laid claim to 90 per cent of the South China Sea on the basis of its historical right to the area, dating from the Xia dynasty, which reigned between the twenty-first and sixteenth centuries bc. In July 1992, ASEAN proclaimed the Manila Declaration, which represented the first premonitory snuffling of the organisation’s quarter-century-long effort to enmesh China in habits of regional good citizenship via workshops on ‘Managing Potential Conflicts in the South China Sea’. Initiated by Indonesia in 1991 and attended by China, Taiwan and Vietnam (Odgaard 2001: 298), after 1994, these workshops became the focus of ASEAN’s collective diplomacy towards China, the ARF. In an attempt to engage China in a ‘broad security-oriented dialogue’, the ARF predictably adopted a ‘non-confrontational and process oriented approach’ that deferred ‘issues that do not lend themselves easily to compromise’ (Odgaard 2001: 299). Despite attending ARF colloquies between 1992 and 1999, China rejected any attempt at multilateralism, insisting instead upon a bilateral approach (Hyer 1995: 42). China’s behaviour, between 1970 and 1990, had given little indication of a commitment to peaceful resolution (Huxley 1998: 115). In 1995, the occupation of Mischief Reef by the People’s Republic of China (PRC) challenged the Philippine’s Exclusive Economic Zone and furnished ASEAN with further proof of the PRC’s forceful approach to recovering its purported lost territory. Although China signed, with reservations, the UN Convention on the Law of the Seas (UNCLOS) in 1996, and participated in the ARF, the PRC continued to build structures on the reef. China’s increasing power relative to Southeast Asia and its propensity to assert its claims unilaterally presented ASEAN with an obvious security dilemma (Huxley 1998: 115). The dispute brought ‘to the fore incompatibilities between the practices China and the countries of Southeast Asia normally employ to ensure peace . . . in their regional environment’ (Odgaard 2001: 292–3). During the Asian financial crisis (1998–2001), however, China acted with notable restraint (Guoxing Ji 1998). This change of tone partly reflected the fact that ASEAN states had seemingly recognised China’s regional ambition. Their posture yielded strange, but not entirely unpalatable, fruit. Between 1998 and 2008, China evinced

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 487

23/10/18 12:45 PM

488

david martin jones

growing comfort with the ASEAN view that intractable disputes should be put to one side and peacefully resolved, as advocated in the Manila Declaration. Beijing’s comfort with the ASEAN process culminated in the signing of a non-binding Declaration on the Conduct of Parties in the South China Sea (2002). The Declaration reaffirmed UNCLOS, the TAC and China’s Five Principles of Peaceful Coexistence. It further eschewed the use of force and sought to build an atmosphere of trust and cooperation. In the same year, China and ASEAN agreed a plan of action for an ASEAN–China Strategic Partnership for Peace and Prosperity, as well as a Framework Agreement on ASEAN–China Economic Cooperation. In 2003, China signed the TAC. The fact that Beijing had shifted from norm-avoiding to norm-affirming behaviour seemed to support the view that the ASEAN-driven ARF process could transform state interests and achieve regional peace and harmony through dialogue and consensus (Johnston 2003). Chwee Kuik Cheng contended that China’s attendance at the ARF connoted a paradigm shift in its foreign policy from unilateralism to multilateralism, or a ‘good neighborliness policy’ (mulin zheng ci) (Kuik Cheng 2005: 105). China had seemingly limited ‘its own sovereign interests for the sake of engagement in multilateral frameworks and pursuit of greater regional interdependence’ (Kuik Cheng 2005: 76). For Samuel Kim, this showed ‘the rise of China as a responsible regional power’ accepting ASEAN-driven regionalism (Kim 2004: 52). To assert such a transformed regional diplomacy, however, was premature. This became apparent after 2008. Between 1998 and 2008, China had switched from ‘frown’ to ‘smile’ diplomacy (see Hyer 1995) by China’s fourth-generation leader Hu Jintao. The hard line China had pursued prior to 1998 had raised the undesirable possibility of US involvement in the Spratly dispute, which China preferred to treat as a neighbourhood watch issue. By appearing to adopt ASEAN’s non-confrontational approach, China could draw ASEAN into its sphere of influence whilst a regionally inclusive ASEAN way sidelined the USA (Hyer 1995). In addition, the soft line had the positive side-effect of quarantining the problem of Taiwan, which, significantly, was excluded from the 2002 Declaration. Yet the actual resolution of the South China Sea dispute remained immured in the ARF’s managerial mode, and the emphasis upon norms had become an exercise in public relations. The shift between soft and hard lines became evident once more as China’s economy flourished, whilst financial crisis debilitated the Western democracies between 2008 and 2014. In the context of the tensions accompanying the transition from the fourth to the fifth generation of the politburo leadership, a new assertiveness increasingly assumed a maritime as well as a territorial dimension. With the rapid modernisation of the force projection capacity of the People’s Liberation Army Navy (PLAN) under fifth-generation leader Xi Jinping, a ‘China Dream’ could now become a regional reality. After 2012, China shifted from charm to a more forceful reassertion of claims to the Spratly Islands. The issue came to a head in April, when PLAN vessels confronted the Philippine navy over the detention of Chinese trawlers fishing in the Scarborough shoals within the Philippine exclusive economical zone (EEZ). This standoff and the growing international awareness of China’s blue water capacity in the South China Sea exposed ASEAN’s diplomatic limitations. ASEAN came to suffer the effects of weak state regionalism syndrome. Both the Philippines and Vietnam looked to the USA when confronted by China’s renewed

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 488

23/10/18 12:45 PM

regionalism

489

assertiveness. The ARF process revealed its regional impotence rather than collective strength. Meeting in Phnom Penh in July 2012, ASEAN foreign ministers failed to agree the most anodyne of communiqués on regional security. Although the meeting was supposed to announce agreement on a multilateral code of conduct to address the South China Sea, the Cambodian Chair of the ASEAN summit overruled the announcement. China, as one diplomat cynically observed, had ‘bought the chair’ (Perlez 2012). The events in Phnom Penh illustrated how Chinese client states like Burma/Myanmar, Laos and Cambodia offered a potential ‘foretaste of bloc formation to come’ (Brown 2012). As the situation evolved between 2012 and 2016, China continued its ‘smile and frown’, or ‘push and pull’ diplomacy (Avendano 2013), further fragmenting ASEAN’s attempt at a collective response. At the East Asian Summit in Brunei in October 2013, the PRC adopted a soft line, proposing a new treaty of friendship and cooperation with ASEAN. The new treaty, the Chinese Prime Minister Li Keqiang contended, would usher in a ‘diamond decade’. As The Straits Times observed, ‘the implicit message was that China had sufficiently deep pockets to back up its diamond decade’ with a ‘slew of sweeteners in the form of billion dollars of development projects’ (‘China’s overtures to cement ties with ASEAN’ 2013). The ASEAN response was lukewarm. It still sought a collective code of conduct for the South China Sea, which China refused. Meanwhile, in 2013, the Philippine President Benigno Aquino referred its dispute with China not to ASEAN, but to the international court at The Hague. In a similar vein, when, in May 2014, China positioned a China National Offshore Oil Corporation (CNOOC) oil rig in Vietnam’s EEZ, Vietnam responded by threatening to ‘internationalise’ the dispute. China’s promotion of economic incentives, coupled with naval aggression, reflected Xi’s strategy of proactive assertiveness. This assumed that whilst, in the short term, China’s leaders anticipated resistance, over time, they calculate ‘that their growing leverage will be sufficient to persuade weaker and vulnerable neighbours to accede to China’s territorial demands’ (‘China’s overtures to cement ties with ASEAN’ 2013: 2). China pursued a salami-slicing strategy to take the South China Sea in small increments by rendering the economic costs of resistance high. This was evidently the case with the Philippines, where Benigno Aquino’s successor as president, Rodrigo Duterte, offended by the UN’s criticism and US lectures concerning his human rights record, dismissed the International Tribunal Law of the Seas ruling, delivered in July 2016, which declared that China had no legal basis for its claim to the South China Sea, as a ‘mere piece of paper’. Subsequently announcing closer ties with China, the Philippines received multibillion-dollar Chinese trade and investment deals (‘China, Philippines agree to cooperate’ 2017). China, thus, envisages its regional economic and security interests working in tandem. It therefore pursues a policy of maritime assertiveness in order to consolidate its one economic belt and one maritime silk road strategy (Cole 2013: 197). In the process, however, it envisages a ‘sea change’ in the regional strategic balance. Indeed, ‘the South China Sea is the first place where Chinese ambition comes face to face with American strategic resolve’ (Hayton 2014: xvi). Hence, although Chinese Premier Li Keqiang envisages the East Asian Community as one of ‘common destiny’ (ming yun gong tong ti), it is also, from a Chinese perspective, one of asymmetric dependence. Here China’s understanding of regionalism, unlike

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 489

23/10/18 12:45 PM

490

david martin jones

ASEAN’s, assumes a Chinese core operating across an ASEAN periphery. The relationship is one of reciprocity, but failure to respect China’s claims invokes sanctions. Thus, when the Philippines and Vietnam reject China’s interpretation of its history and territory, they suffer Chinese sanctions in terms of investment and access to the growing China market. Such assertiveness has led to the fragmentation of ASEAN, as well as the growing involvement of both Japan and the USA in the dispute. At the Shangri-La dialogue in Singapore in June 2014, US Defence Secretary Chuck Hagel remarked that ‘the US policy is clear. We take no position on competing territorial claims. But we firmly oppose any nation’s use of intimidation, coercion or the threat of force to assist those claims’ (Sheridan 2014). At the same meeting, Japanese Prime Minister Shinzo Abe announced that Japan would provide the Philippines and Vietnam with naval patrol vessels. The South China Sea dispute thus demonstrates how more powerful actors manipulate ASEAN’s norms to advance grand strategic interests. The strategic manœuvering brought about by the ARF process, furthermore, has complicated the relationship between the USA, the three Northeast Asian states and ASEAN in ways that ASEAN diplomacy failed to anticipate.

ASEAN Plus Three: ASEAN’s Security Dilemma The APT process assumed that the involvement of a triumvirate of regional powers – China, Japan and South Korea – with ASEAN would evolve into an integrated East Asian economic and security community. This assumption begs the question as to whether such a community can function without the participation of the USA. Dating from the 1971 announcement of a Zone of Peace, Freedom and Neutrality, ASEAN aspired to a region free from great power interference. The logical inference was the exclusion of the USA from the evolving East Asian Community. Given that China presents itself as the US’s successor in terms of regional economic and maritime power, this constituted something of a strategic lacuna. Since 1951, the USA, as an external balancer, offset the potentially destabilising rivalries of the region’s major powers, Japan and China. Indeed, ASEAN’s more intelligent diplomats acknowledged the importance of the US role in practice, if not in security community theory. This reliance on US security, whilst simultaneously advocating schemes for regional resilience that required, over an unspecified period, a diminution of US power in Asia, was a contradiction that ASEAN diplomacy failed to address. The fact that an exclusive pan-Asian view enjoyed semi-official currency, before 2008, only reinforced the sense that ASEAN’s wider regional economic and security policy was oddly disjointed. For ASEAN to bandwagon with China against the USA, after the AFC, undermined the ostensible purpose for which the ARF and APT processes were devised: namely, to educate China in good regional citizenship. Unwilling to address this incoherence, ASEAN instead resorted to mixed messaging. In practice, this meant side-stepping difficult problems whilst extolling East Asian solidarity. ASEAN-style regionalism ultimately functions, as the South China Sea case demonstrates, as a screen to conceal realist interstate diplomacy. Regional foreign policy, ASEAN practice and the lack of any real institutional deepening within either ASEAN, the APT or the EAC confirms this.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 490

23/10/18 12:45 PM

regionalism

491

This notwithstanding, scholarly commentary and ASEAN’s official statements assert that, despite empirical evidence to the contrary, ‘ASEAN is not as weak as it may seem’ because it makes ‘an important contribution to the normative environment of the region by reinforcing the fundamental principles of international society’ (Narine 1998: 33–47). The problem here is that the only ‘institutional principle’ to which ASEAN is formally committed is that of non-interference. Therefore, the only fundamental principle of international society it has reinforced is a realist commitment to the sovereignty of the nation-state. It is, moreover, this strange disjuncture between the normativist character of both academic commentary and recent ASEAN declarations of unity and harmony, and the realist practice of interstate diplomacy, that accounts for the largely utopian discourse of ASEAN-led regionalism.

Conclusion Regional scholars and diplomats maintain that ASEAN represents an evolving economic and security community. They contend that the norms the ASEAN process implemented, over time, transformed Southeast Asia and are building a shared East Asian identity. ASEAN’s extension into the East Asian Community process after 1997 offers an interesting test case of the dominant assumptions in regional scholarship and diplomacy, and the utility of liberal, normative and constructivist accounts of international relations. The latter maintains that the future of international relations requires regional identities to replace nation-states. Socialisation transforms state interests into shared norms, creating the ideational basis of a shared identity. Nation speaking unto nation would see nations evolving into postnational constellations. This widely held teleology found its quotidian exemplification in the evolution of ASEAN into a putative East Asian Community. Problematically, however, those who advanced the view that ASEAN had transformed itself into an embryonic security community paid sedulous attention to official rhetoric and the conduct of ASEAN summitry, but overlooked the fact that the statements East Asian political leaders issued needed to be read in the particular context in which they were made. Declaratory intent disguised a complex of hidden motives. ASEAN’s realist norm of non-interference and its practice of non-binding consensus actually inhibited deeper integration either within ASEAN or in the wider region. Following the essentially intergovernmental practice of the ASEAN regime, states realistically pursue bilateral or trilateral arrangements rather than building any supranational structure. Meanwhile, extending conflict avoidance strategies to a wider East Asian Community has not altered the strategic reality of the weakness of ASEAN; it merely projected it on to a wider canvas. In fact, what seems to be a Japanese and Chinese acculturation to the ASEAN way is far from it, as these powers manipulate it for strategic influence. Whatever strategic mutation ASEAN assumes, it can only mask the fact that weaker states cannot shape the fate of stronger ones. Ultimately, norms advanced by weak states in such circumstances can only be what stronger states make of them. ASEAN’s founders recognised this. However, subsequent leaders, convinced by their own rhetorical hyperbole, abandoned prudence for the illusion of regional community. This is the tragedy of weak states.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 491

23/10/18 12:45 PM

492

david martin jones

Notes 1. See the ‘Declaration of ASEAN Concord 11 (Bali Concord 11)’ (2003), which envisaged ‘a dynamic, cohesive, resilient and integrated ASEAN community’. 2. See Giddens (2014: 18–56). 3. See Acharya (2013: 222–44).

Bibliography Acharya, Amitay (2003), ‘Regional institutions and Asian security order: Norms, power, and prospects for peaceful change’, in Muthiah Alagappa (ed.), Asian Security Order: Instrumental and Normative Features, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Acharya, Amitay (2013), ‘Contingent socialization in Asian regionalism: Possibilities and limits’, in Miles Kahler and Andrew MacIntyre (eds), Integrated Regions: Asia in Comparative Perspective, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Alagappa, Muthiah (2003), ‘Constructing security order in Asia: Conceptions and issues’, in Muthiah Alagappa (ed.), Asian Security Order: Instrumental and Normative Features, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. ASEAN (2007), Cebu Declaration on the Blueprint of an ASEAN Charter, Jakarta ASEAN Secretariat, available at (last accessed 12 August 2015). Avendano, Christine (2013), ‘Aquino wants peaceful resolution to Scarborough stand-off’, The Inquirer, 4 October. Brown, David (2012), ‘Sea of Trouble’, Asia Times, 17 July. ‘China, Philippines agree to cooperate on 30 projects worth $3.7 billion’ (2017), 23 January, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). ‘China’s overtures to cement ties with ASEAN’ (2013), The Straits Times, 12 October. Cole, Bernard D. (2013), ASEAN Maritime Strategies Negotiating Troubled Waters, Annapolis, MD: Naval Institute Press. ‘Declaration of ASEAN Concord 11 (Bali Concord 11)’ (2003), Bali, Indonesia, 7 October, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). ‘Declaration on the Conduct of Parties in the South China Sea’ (2002), available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Giddens, Anthony (2014), Turbulent and Mighty Continent: What Future for Europe?, Cambridge: Polity Press. Guoxing Ji (1998), ‘China versus South China Sea security’, Security Dialogue, vol. 29, no. 1, pp. 101–12. Hayton, Bill (2014), The South China Sea: The Struggle for Power in Asia, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Huxley, Tim (1998), ‘A threat in the South China Sea? A rejoinder’, Security Dialogue, vol. 29, no. 1, pp. 113–18. Hyer, Eric (1995), ‘The South China Sea disputes: Implications of China’s earlier territorial settlements’, Pacific Affairs, vol. 68, no. 1, pp. 34–54. Johnston, Alastair Iain (2003), ‘Is China a status quo power?’, International Security, vol. 27, no. 4, pp. 5–56. Kim, Samuel (2004), ‘Regionalization and regionalism in East Asia’, Journal of East Asian Studies, vol. 4, no. 1, pp. 39–67. Kuik Cheng, Chwee (2005), ‘Multilateralism in China’s ASEAN policy: Its evolution, characteristics and aspiration’, Contemporary Southeast Asia, vol. 27, no. 1, pp. 102–22.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 492

23/10/18 12:45 PM

regionalism

493

Leifer, Michael (1987), ASEAN’s Search for Regional Order, Singapore: Faculty of Arts and Social Sciences, National University of Singapore. Leifer, Michael (1989), ASEAN and the Security of Southeast Asia, London: Routledge. Leifer, Michael (1999), ‘The ASEAN peace process: A category mistake’, Pacific Review, vol. 12, no. 1, pp. 25–38. Leifer, Michael (2005a), ‘ASEAN’s search for regional order’, in Kin Wah Chin and Leo Suryadinata (eds), Michael Leifer: Selected Works on Southeast Asia, Singapore: ISEAS. Leifer, Michael (2005b), ‘Truth about the balance of power’, in Kin Wah Chin and Leo Suryadinata (eds), Michael Leifer: Selected Works on Southeast Asia, Singapore: ISEAS. Lo, Jennifer (2014), ‘Forging ahead with shared vision’, China Daily, 12 December. Mahathir, Mohamad (1997), ‘Speech to the US Council of Foreign Relations’, September, Reflections on ASEAN Selected Speeches, Kuala Lumpur: Pelanduk. Mahathir, Mohamad (2004), ‘24th ASEAN ministerial meeting, 19 July, 1991’, Reflections on ASEAN Selected Speeches, Kuala Lumpur: Pelanduk. Napoli, C. (2014), ‘China’s economic rise: Implications for ASEAN trade flows’, Journal of South East Asia Economies, vol. 31, no. 3, pp. 345–60. Narine, Shaun (1998), ‘Institutional theory and Southeast Asia: The case of ASEAN’, World Affairs, vol. 161, no. 1, pp. 33–47. Nesadurai, Helen E. S. (1996), ‘APEC: A tool for US regional domination’, Pacific Review, vol. 9, no. 1, pp. 31–57. Odgaard, Liselotte (2001), ‘Deterrence and cooperation in the South China Sea’, Contemporary Southeast Asia, vol. 23, no. 2, pp. 292–306. Perlez, Jane (2012), ‘ASEAN leaders at regional meeting fail to address disputes on South China Sea’, New York Times, 12 July. Rajaratnam, S. (2007), The Prophetic and the Political, ed. by Chan Heng Chee and Obaid Ul Haq, Singapore: ISEAS. Sheridan, Greg (2014), ‘Sabre rattling imbues Shangri-La with a growing sense of menace’, The Straits Times, 5 June. ‘Singapore haze fears mount as Riau fires rage on’ (2014), Jakarta Post, 13 February. ‘The ASEAN Declaration (Bangkok Declaration)’ (1967), Bangkok, 8 August, available at

(last accessed 15 June 2018). Xinhua Insight (2012), ‘China, ASEAN stress cooperation’, 12 July, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 493

23/10/18 12:45 PM

39 Political Realism and Nationalism Can nationalism be ‘liberalised’? Peter Iver Kaufman

Chapter Overview

A

s Karl Popper pointed out, nationalism is among the few ‘isms’ that nudge devotees to recognise a single theorist – or set of several – as pioneers or paladins whose remarks inspired all subsequent thinking about nationality. Perhaps the absence of a canonical one – or few – invites colleagues to select variously from among many variable core conditions for the development of nationalism’s exclusionary practices and for its susceptibility to liberalisation. The challenge of sifting those selections and, to borrow Hans-Jörg Sigwart’s term, ‘unmasking’ assumptions that lead to conclusions about exclusion and liberalisation falls to political realists sceptical about the effectiveness of moralists’ insufficiently practice-dependent theories of justice. At stake in nearly every conversation about nationalists’ sentiments, nationalism’s liberalisation and the inevitability of exclusion or marginalisation is the viability of multi-ethnic states. The survey of some such conversations that follows here finishes by proposing what may pass for an alternative to the nationalisms that, as Tony Judt noticed, appear to many to be ‘more realistic than socialism’ and ‘more immediately reassuring than liberalism’ – an alternative patched together from the observations of several political realists mentioned here and studied elsewhere in this volume. *

*

*

One of the principal challenges facing political realists is what Hans-Jörg Sigwart of the University at Erlangen-Nürnberg calls ‘unmasking’. He would have realists unmask the usually unsubtle ‘illusions’ forming ‘the basis of the dominant self-perception in any given society . . . illusions that are in danger of becoming dysfunctional or even destructive’. Political realists, on Sigwart’s watch, are keen to replace illusions and ideologies with self-interest as the foundation of all political arrangements (Sigwart 2013: 412 (‘illusions’) and 422 (‘self-interest’)).1 Nationalisms would seem to supply a feast for realists, not simply because they simmer and surge nearly everywhere but also because, as Anthony Smith has said, nationalist ideologies are generally superficial and always ‘secondary to politics’. Smith wrote influentially about nationalism for fifty years before his death in 2016, insisting that political relations and institutions – not illusions, despite nationalists’ fondness for them – shaped their objectives: specifically, the unification, renewal or dismemberment of existing states (Smith 2010: 79–80).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 494

23/10/18 12:45 PM

nationalism

495

Moralism and wishful thinking (or utopianism) are realists’ principal targets; political philosopher Raymond Geuss refers to them as ‘window dressing’. He suggests moralists recoil from an ‘excessive knowledge of details’ to avoid having details ‘obscure the bright line [they draw] between the side of the angels [where they find themselves] and the forces of evil’. For Geuss, ‘power and material interest are all that matters’; ‘everything else is mere pretext’. Be that as it may, nationalists’ pretexts none the less require unmasking before the practices they inspire are probed, if one wants – as Geuss does – to offer as descriptive and prescriptive the discoveries that realists make as they study political practices. If Geuss is correct, realists should discover, a posteriori, viable alternatives to prevailing illusions that nationalists attach to their celebrations of legitimacy and sovereignty (Geuss 2010a: 421; Geuss 2010b: 32, 38–9). Before we finish on the fringes of those alternatives, several questions and a few initial – one might say, definitional – issues summon our attention. Does political realism’s awareness of ethical ambiguities, which is perhaps one of its greatest strengths, disqualify it from contributing to thoughtful analyses of nationalisms that thrive on unambiguous assertions of rights or prerogatives, or uniquely qualify it to do so? Do the distinctions between tribalism and nationalism, between racism and nationalism, and between patriotism and nationalism hold? Are elites or plebes responsible for the prevalence of nationalisms? Are nationalisms preconditions for – or consequences of – empires’ disintegration? Given the ascendancy and preponderance of ethno-nationalisms, are possibilities for civic and liberal nationalisms worth mentioning? Finally, yet first to be engaged, does political realism’s emphasis on the importance of circumstance, the inevitability of conflict and the ineradicability of self-interest make realism the perfect staging area for an exploration of nationalists’ enthusiasms? Augustine, from the late fourth century, Bishop of Hippo on the North African coast, was no stranger to conflict. Donatist Christians, whom he and Catholic Christian colleagues censured as secessionists, probably outnumbered and, if we may trust Augustine’s polemics, often bullied their critics. Pagans rioted in Sufes in the nearby province of Byzance, leaving many Christians dead. Other pagans assaulted the Bishop of Calama in Numidia, only 70 or so kilometres from Hippo.2 To advance the interests of Catholic Christianity, Augustine courted public officials. Yet he learned earlier, in Italy, he tells us in his Confessions, and later, reflecting on political treachery in his compendious City of God, that self-interest, flattery, deceit, rancour and a lust for domination characterised political culture. Sallust, famed historian of republican Rome, and Paul, the Christians’ apostle, suggested to Augustine that his torturous times were symptoms of intrapsychic turmoil – perpetuated in every individual by inordinate desires to acquire name or fame, influence and affluence. He shuffled insights he drew from reading and from experiences coping with imperial, regional and municipal officials into what Miles Hollingworth aptly calls his ‘iconoclastic project’. Its aim was to deflate the Romans’ self-image.3 Yet Augustine looked as well to prepare the faithful to receive relief from God, for his sobering discovery was that the faithful could not self-medicate. If they contemplated their character without illusions (descendant in se), they would find ‘evil days’ within (inveniunt in se dies malignos) and would comprehend that, wherever they went, circumstance and self-interest determined how that evil, which he cast as a war, played out.4 Peace this side of the grave was unlikely. For Augustine, inordinate desires were simply too formidable. Still, God’s love for – and within – the faithful would occasionally move

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 495

23/10/18 12:45 PM

496

peter iver kaufman

them to pay forward that love in their compassion for others. Citizens of a celestial city, the faithful were pilgrims passing through this wicked world. Those for whom a confederation of terrestrial cities formed their patria – and whose patriotisms only seemed less exclusive and aggressive than their pagan peers’ imperialism – deluded themselves, in Augustine’s judgement; without naming the bishop, Bernard Yak endorses this when, paying homage to his colleague and fellow realist Judith Shklar, he strips liberalism of its illusions. Yak maintains that, in strong light, the differences between patriotism and nationalism disappear. To political theorist William Galston, moralists who think otherwise are ‘far too sanguine about the possibility of achieving either normative or practical consensus’. Galston hastily adds that political realists brake well shy of ‘valoriz[ing] disruption and strife’. Much as Augustine, however, he, Yak, Shklar and other political realists acknowledge the pervasive presence of both (Galston 2010: 396).5 The realists are sceptical that talk of virtue can curb the self-interest and assertiveness that fuel nationalists’ zeal, about which we will shortly say more. Galston relies on common sense. Surely a sensible consensus would commend levels of coordination in multi-ethnic communities and should abhor what follows from its absence. Solutions to ‘the coordination problem’ may not eliminate all the ‘unacceptable features of uncoordinated life’, but Galston is optimistic about the creation of ‘arena[s] of contestation’ that ‘contain . . . conflict short of war’ (Galston 2010: 391). Doubts seem rather reasonable, for how might creation, in this context, be most effective? Moralists masterminding principles of justice in their seminars might treat self-interest and conflict thoughtfully, though, as noted, they seem to realists to overlook the importance of circumstance. Moralists with their theories of justice are insufficiently ‘practice-dependent’, Andrea Sangiovanni says, explaining that ‘historical contingencies’ – notably, participants’ ‘reciprocal expectations’ and ‘exchanges mediated through participation in a common way of life’ – must factor in all efforts to determine what is fair or foul, if one expects determinations to be effective (Sangiovanni 2008: 146, 156–63). One would assume, therefore, that massive ethnographic effort would be called for. Historians hoping to help formulate practice-dependent judgements would face formidable challenges. Yet twenty years ago, Michael Ignatieff showed how much can be learned from casual, though far from frivolous, ‘journeys into the new nationalism’. From Kurds and Quebecois, inter alia, he learned how nationalists accessorised their longing for autonomy. He discovered that nationalism might thrive when the rhetoric of resentment was exchanged for ‘a rhetoric of self-affirmation’ (Ignatieff 1993: 160–2). And Urs Altermatt’s historical reflections on Europe after the Second World War astutely infer that, although the preferences for coordination are tempered by experiences of coordinated harassment, ethnic enclaves have come to see that coordination and centralisation conducive to political stability are the best guarantees of cultural autonomy (Altermatt 1996: 88–9). Before generalising from Ignatieff’s and Altermatt’s observations, we need to concede that instability plagues most multinational states. Nationalists in ethnic enclaves often conclude that harassment has reached intolerable levels and that they are confronted with a choice between wholesale assimilation and disruptive secession. Bernard Yak claims that a step away from either option, as well as a ‘first step’ toward reconciliation, is to ‘stop thinking and talking about national self-determination as a basic right’. Maybe so, though Yak’s way forward looks to be an ongoing depoliticisation of nationalism, which seems utterly unrealistic. He defines ‘nationality’ as an

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 496

23/10/18 12:45 PM

nationalism

497

intergenerational phenomenon characterised by cultural continuities – and sustained by ‘social friendship[s]’. He suspects that nationalisms’ ‘taste for political power’ is responsible for their illiberal tendencies, but he endorses political philosopher Yael Tamir’s controversial emphasis on the cultural rather than kinship and territorial connections (blood and soil) that account for nationalism’s appeal. Indeed, Yak insists that the value of ‘social friendship’ could be cast to eclipse politicised images of solidarity and a yearning for sovereignty, however impressive the former and seemingly irrepressible the latter. But David Miller’s response to Yak’s contentions seems crippling, for they seem to have denuded nationalisms, stripping ‘the political dimension’ from nationality.6 As for Tamir’s tame version of nationalism, in effect, it appears to be what Sanford Levinson calls a ‘counsel of compromise’, attractive to liberals but unlikely to attract nationalists, whose demands and depredations make headlines. Their actions, along with many statist reactions, are evidence of what Dutch historian Joseph Leerssen, featuring twentieth-century bloodbaths, calls the ‘unremitting barbarism lurking under the appearance of civilization’ (Leerssen 2006: 234; Levinson 1995: 633). Leersen’s study stretches well back into history, far behind pogroms and crusades, to substantiate that ‘unremitting barbarism’, but colleagues who think liberalism and nationalism are compatible prefer to stay well away from morgues and object to scholars concentrating on the more horrid ‘manifestations’ of the nationalists’ sentiments and ideologies. To be sure, self-styled liberal nationalists are no more forgiving of villains than those who commemorate victims, yet the liberals remonstrate against identifying nationalism with national socialism. Nationalism has even been taken off the table in discussions of the Nazi enterprise, in some instances, by those arguing that Aryan supremacy was international in scope and ambition. But what Joan Cocks depicts as ‘the baleful backdrop of the 1930s and 1940s’ should not simply be dismantled as if it were a mere set for – and not part of the plot of – the history of nationalism (Cocks 2002: 108–10).7 And what Aryan supremacists still make clear is that tribalism merits a place in that history, given its power to link self-interest with collective interest. Both tribalism and nationalism – more compellingly than altruism, Conor Cruise O’Brien notices – turn ordinary subjects into warriors, propelling them to kill and to die for collectives without flinching. Does distortion follow if we exchange ‘tribalism’ for ‘nationalism’ in O’Brien’s analysis of ‘the fateful and explosive conjunction between the emotional force of nationalism and the totalitarian potential of Rousseau’s General Will’ (O’Brien 1993: 143)? Even Yael Tamir’s Liberal Nationalism recognises that ‘feelings of shame or anger . . . reflect’ tribal or national ‘connectedness as much as feelings of pride’ (Tamir 1993: 98).8 And shame – more easily than disapproval – is weaponised to reintegrate strays and, as we shall learn, to turn collectives against one another. Put simply, tribal and national ‘connectedness’ channels animosities, abrades moral constraints and often causes chaos. Walker Connor’s conclusion holds: we would be mistaken to associate ‘the emotional magnetism . . . collectives exert upon individuals’ with tribes and to associate more thoughtful and deliberate attachments with nations, awarding tribes ‘subethnic status’, consigning them to some ‘primitive, evolutionary stage in human organization’ (Connor 1994: 107–8). Scholars who classify nationalisms as principally cultural phenomena make what Connor considers a mistake. Political measures – subtle or brutal – to maintain some notion of purity or to assert cultural superiority may not go unreported but they are often filed as epiphenomena, as inessential and rectifiable. No doubt political effects of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 497

23/10/18 12:45 PM

498

peter iver kaufman

nationalist fervour have been exaggerated. As Victor Zaslavsky explains, nationalism appears to have been less a cause than a consequence of the Soviet Union’s disintegration. Dreams of becoming politically autonomous Ukrainians or Uzbeks revived after economic crises forced ‘the central state’ to loosen its hold over nationalist movements (lockerte die Herrschaft) (Zaslavsky 2000: 105–7). The collapse of their Union of Soviet Socialist Republics was undeniably a sign that proponents of Russification had been unsuccessful. Indeed, an on-the-ground analysis of tensions would probably have anticipated a rise of ethno-nationalism after the fall, for impresarios of multi-ethnic states claiming to be comprehensive unapologetically – though not indiscernibly – suppress minorities. And, as Urs Altermatt notes, citing the dismemberment of the former Yugoslavia – the ‘ethnicisation of politics’ (der Ethnisierung der Politik) that preceded it and the ethnic cleansing that followed, suppression tends to radicalise ethno-nationalism and victimise the oppressors as well as the oppressed (Altermatt 1996: 124). Plain enough, practice-dependent analyses, reaching behind civic rhetoric to the protocols designed to preserve the integrity or purity of some cultures, disclose efforts either to force assimilation or to exclude significant difference. Think of the resources and passions poured into building walls or patrolling borders, some of which mark off precincts or ghettos within territories and cities. As Wendy Brown argues, the walls keeping the untethered out or kennelling the rabble in, though presented as security measures, are levels of self-assertion that suggest xenophobia and racism – but also betray the fears and waning sovereignty of those who build and patrol. Such walls ‘resurrect myths of national autonomy and purity’. They also alert us to the likelihood that Benedict Anderson mistakenly distinguished nationalism from racism, presuming that enthusiasts of the former think predominantly ‘in terms of historical destinies’, whereas racists are preoccupied with ‘contaminations’ (Anderson 2016: 149; Brown 2014: 92–105). This is not to say that liberalising nationalism – making it more hospitable – would be impossible. Political realists could suggest adjustments to circumstances that might moderate self-interest and avoid the nastiest consequences of conflict. Still, to presume that the adjustment would make liberalism and nationalism compatible is to waltz into a minefield. Consider David Miller’s thought experiment. Review the inventory of issues he compiled in 2005 – immigration restriction, the rights of cultural minorities, the claims of secessionist movements, responses to the global poor – then imagine the liberals’ and nationalists’ respective positions on all of them. Conceivably, their positions are not as irreconcilable as Miller makes out, but the conspicuous differences give pause and show cause why the burden of proof of compatibility rests with the colleagues who, notwithstanding a few equity initiatives such as land reform identified with nationalists’ revivals, must cope with the considerable discrepancies and dissonance (Miller 2005: 117). Anthony Marx’s study of ‘the exclusionary origins of nationalism’ similarly suggests that illiberal features of nationalist movements were (and are) impossible to scuttle. For scapegoating seems a prominent, permanent feature of nationalists’ efforts to build ‘cohesion’ and momentum. Nationalists’ enclaves, much as nation-states, favour ‘we-versus-them’ approaches to bonding within and doing without political difference, but political scientist Marx and historian Lloyd Kramer concentrate on the larger canvas of nation-states’ development in early modern Europe and America, where differences were anathematised and one set of conflicts were generated to resolve

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 498

23/10/18 12:45 PM

nationalism

499

another – and to consolidate what Marx calls ‘a discriminatory unity’. The rise of nation-states and the nationalism that made them so had been ‘reinforced by depriving rights, property, and residency’ to ‘internal minorities’, all the while, as Kramer proposes, ‘mobiliz[ing] popular hostility’ by stressing ‘the threat from external enemies as justification for internal unity’. And Kramer adds, quite cogently, that ‘the meaning of a nation depends on definitions of difference and on interactive relations with peoples in other cultures, so that the nation’s imaginary essence evolves as definitions of difference and cultural boundaries also evolve’ (Kramer 2011: 21–3; Marx 2003: 12–32). Carrying the analysis forward and surveying ‘juridical measures’ in multi-ethnic states as well as nation-states, literary theorist and cultural critic Giorgio Agamben examines protocols prejudicial to subjects who fail to conform and embrace as normal what sovereign powers present as conditions of belonging to the societies they rule. Non-conformity becomes desecration. Agamben sees authorities’ claims about living in a perpetual state of emergency as a pretext for proscribing alternatives to group-think (Agamben 1990: 59–60). Exclusion to the extremes of isolation and extermination become complicit, he says, in making the exceptional and the excluded appear perfectly normal (Agamben 1998: 44). Nationalist projects appear to fit such specifications, and control over the imagination is critical to their success. Benedict Anderson writes discerningly about the fabrication of a ‘national imagination’, which artwork, anthems, fiction and other cultural products amply supply, popularising what, from a distance, may seem to be a crude, ‘cliché-ridden’ exceptionalism (Anderson 2016: 22–36).9 Yet it would be misleading to presume ‘nation-formation’ and exceptionalism retroject present political concerns and interests on pasts otherwise irrelevant to them. Anthony Smith’s criticisms of modernists and constructionists seem sustainable; he refers to their preoccupation with ‘retrospective nationalism’. To be sure, pasts are created in the present, yet seldom out of whole cloth, so realists are well advised to attend to the assessments of ethno-symbolists who document the recycling and ‘reinterpretation[s] of pre-existing cultural motifs’ and sentiments. Practice-dependent analysis registers continuities as well as novelties and identifies institutions that maintain collective cultural identities, giving political clout to some, while perpetuating the exclusion of others. As Smith suggests, the process of furnishing ‘comprehensive framework[s] for understanding the place of the individual in the community’ and the place of the community in the world – frameworks that create a healthy climate for insiders and usually summon up rough weather for others – is a process best studied ‘over la longue durée’ (Smith 2010: 90–3). And, as Agamben adds, the process ought to be sifted for evidence of ‘massive manipulation’. Politics, commerce, spectacles (weapons of mass distraction) and schooling sustain a ‘majoritarian tyranny’, to borrow Michael Ignatieff’s characterisation of ethno-nationalists’ hegemony. The last, education, is of paramount importance. Curricula often become combat zones. And, as Michael Ignatieff notes, ‘the liberal ideal of a purely procedural state . . . that takes no view as to what language or values should be taught in the state’s public schools is a fiction’ (Ignatieff 1993: 169–70; Agamben 1990: 34–5). Johann Gottlieb Fichte famously foregrounded education in his Addresses to a German ‘nation’ divided into fractious principalities. The Germans’ armies had just been humiliated by Bonaparte, so Fichte had no alternative but to give his present, the first decade of the nineteenth century, to others. He reserved the future, however, for

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 499

23/10/18 12:45 PM

500

peter iver kaufman

his fellow Germans – if only they would capitalise on their common language and heritage to devise and implement a remedial, unifying curriculum (Fichte 1955: 180–1).10 His appeal to government officials and pedagogues to do so is now considered one of the classics in studies of nationalist literature. Colonial powers at about the same time saw the unifying effects of education as highly desirable, although only to a point. As Benedict Anderson shows, commenting on the Dutch in Indonesia, that colony of over 3,000 islands posed quite a challenge. Languages divided the inhabitants – occasionally, inhabitants of a single island; their confessional commitments to Islam, Buddhism, Catholicism, Protestantism and a bushel of ‘native’ religions made for competition – and worse – rather than collaboration. The Dutch trusted that schools could ‘nurture bonding’, Anderson says; textbooks and teaching qualifications were standardised. The objective was to create ‘a self-contained, coherent universe of experience’, to develop an ‘amiably competitive comradeship’ and to have the Indonesians embrace ‘national’ identity. They became ‘islanders’ – indigenous yet inferior others to their Dutch masters, whose schools were almost certainly uplifting, though they lifted islanders to a level beyond which they were prohibited from proceeding. The Dutch established ‘a colossal, highly rationalized, tightly centralized’ bureaucracy dedicated, in part, to restricting any sense of islander entitlement that might threaten colonists’ prerogatives (Anderson 2016: 120–3). The islanders’ education, according to Anderson’s sketch, overcame some resentments that divided the archipelago into warring sects, although Dutch condescension plausibly created new resentments. Still, it is not inconceivable that the islanders’ reportedly ‘coherent universe of experience’ defused ‘the intensity of nationalists’ hostility’, which is just what many liberals and moral theorists expect of dialogue. The persistence of self-interest, however, suggests that liberal axioms – derived from abstract reflection and incubating in colloquies – are likelier to run aground when released into political cultures invariably characterised by relentless conflict. Moralism and liberalism, that is, are at a distinct disadvantage when cunning nationalists control the curriculum and are eager to ensure that ‘the primary imaginings of the young are those of the nation’, as Sanford Levinson says, predicting that liberal educators who encourage their students to question rather than to accept and respect will rightly be perceived as a threat to the ‘hegemonic ambitions’ of the dominant cultures of multiethnic states (Levinson 1995: 635–6). Karl Popper is one of the more notorious critics of nationalists’ ambitions. He accused Fichte and other ‘apostles of nationalism’ of ‘windbaggery’. Popper compared them to liberal educators. The latter, he proposes, are correct to promote personal responsibility, whereas the former – the nationalists, giving primacy to ‘collective or group responsibility’ – indulged their ‘tribal instincts’: instinct that Popper would have suppressed. His confidence that they could be suppressed is, however, unrealistic. And his complaint that no one has defined nationality in ways that can be used as a basis for ‘practical politics’ is, unfortunately, inaccurate (Popper 1962: 2:49–55). Multiple notions of nationalism and nationality compete to inform political practice, and some have done so to disastrous effect. Popper is correct on one count: unlike most other ‘isms’ (socialism or liberalism, for example), nationalism has not recognised a single theorist – or a set of several – whose texts determine the contour of all subsequent thinking about nationality. This is not to say that historians never put forth nominees. E. J. Hobsbawm dubbed Johann Gottfried Herder ‘prophet among

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 500

23/10/18 12:45 PM

nationalism

501

nationalist intellectuals’, and a case can be made that, only twenty years older than Fichte, Herder did aspire to something in the order of what Fichte contemplated and what Chancellor Otto von Bismarck later accomplished: a German Reich.11 Herder hoisted the German language to near-sacred status. His analysis combined swooning romanticism with an ounce or two of political realism; he insisted that German had not been developed in abstraction as a language apart from political practices but amidst invigorating political distractions. Among them, he singled out tribal conflicts, during which nostalgia for past heroics was poured into calls to action (Aufruffungen) and upbeat anthems.12 He rejoiced that, as Rome’s empire disintegrated, robust Germans and not the Slavs were on hand to carry the torch. And civilised Europeans, he added, ought to be gratified by that exchange (wir können sehr zufrieden seyn).13 None the less, Herder’s remarks on nationalism filled relatively few pages of his many philosophical, historical and literary studies. He was proud of his heritage, yet his general enthusiasm for nationalism was somewhat muted.14 Popper paid little attention to Hobsbawm’s ‘prophet’ Herder, whose brand of ‘linguistic nationalism’ presumably looked less offensive to him than the ‘rigid tribalism’, taboos of which were issued as though they were beyond question or criticism and the very essence of a ‘closed society’ (Popper 1962: 1:172–4). Popper composed his description and vindication of an ‘open society’ – and identified its enemies – between 1938 and 1943. By then, Hitler appeared to have carried ‘the day’ for over a decade. Historian Malachi Haim Hacohen characterises nationalist sentiment in Austrian schools as ‘virulent’. Students in Popper’s Vienna ‘reified [German] identity as a race’, convinced of Hitler’s descriptions of its superiority and its destiny. Talk of collective empowerment turned menacing (Hacohen 2000: 52–3). Scholars who favour blending liberalism with nationalism, as noted, scold colleagues who dwell on the more manic, fanatical, lethal expressions of the latter. But political realists can hardly ignore the behemoth in the room. Much as Machiavelli was committed to ‘sharply drawn examples’ in Il Principe – to link cruelty with security – realists study practice-dependent policies, the bigotry and the exclusions that marked twentieth-century national socialism and continue to stain the twenty-first-century revivals of nativism and tribalism in the so-called ‘first’ and ‘third’ worlds.15 From Ian Kershaw’s studies of Hitler – the Munich ‘drummer’ – and of the collapse of the Social Democrats’ opposition, as well as the acquiescence of business and industry to a crude and cruel regime, we learn about the importance of crisis. Kershaw refers to crisis as Hitler’s oxygen. Humiliated by the terms of the Versailles Treaty, which carved large slices from what Herder and Fichte would have been thrilled to call their Reich, propertied Germans, experiencing spiralling inflation and currency collapses, and frightened by communist agitation, would have thought themselves more than halfway to hell. Hitler, bar-room orator during the 1920s, Chancellor by the early 1930s and der Führer soon thereafter, took advantage (Kershaw 1998: 200–4). Humiliation played a significant part in eighteenth-century Russian nationalism, turning ‘undiluted admiration into envy’, as Liah Greenfeld reports, and turning envy into anger. Greenfeld borrows the term ressentiment to capture both ‘the sense of inadequacy’ that dawned on Russian elites – and particularly Tsar Peter – when they compared their empire to the regimes of Western Europe and the sense of frustration that grew as Russians increasingly complained that Western Europeans conspired to keep them unenlightened (Greenfeld 1992: 223–53).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 501

23/10/18 12:45 PM

502

peter iver kaufman

Isaiah Berlin’s influential essay on nationalism attributes considerable influence to feelings of humiliation, degradation and envy. His metaphor for nationalism, ‘the bent twig’, emphasises the reactionary character of nationalist fervour. No grand theory need apply. The ‘inflamed desire of the insufficiently regarded to count for something’ can only be held off provisionally, Berlin says, before it snaps back, often catching the hegemonic unaware (Berlin 1972: 30). Ideologues often contribute to the force with which the backlash is experienced, yet, as Eric Kaufmann says, ‘horizontal, peer-to-peer dynamics’ of nationalisms – the effect of Berlin’s ‘insufficiently regarded’ – will supply much of the momentum. Scholars may be tempted to think of the theoretically informed and articulate – of people they might recognise in their academies as peers – as the indispensable catalysts of nationalist movements and, to be sure, intellectual elites undeniably have stirred nationalist sentiment. Yet sentiments probably ought to be foregrounded along with ‘networks’, usually less perceptible than the ideologues, networks that, as Kaufmann reminds us, create contagion. Feelings ‘flow’, he says, and ‘feedback’ increases their intensity. As proof, he offers ‘the erratic nature of nationalist awakenings’ and blueprint-less agitation (Kaufmann 2017: 16–22). And the primacy of affect over intellect, should realists be able to ascertain it, would account also for the truth of Walker Connor’s counterintuitive contention that greater communication with, and increased exposure to, ethnic others exacerbates rather than dissipates animosities (Connor 1994: 36–7). To say that the sentiments fuelling nationalist fervour pass along networks of nonelites is not to deny the significance of pitchmen and princes – or presidents. Hitler’s appeal was (and is) incontestable. Yet, to my mind, pole position belongs to Niccolò Machiavelli, who compiled an assortment of ruthlessly effective leaders, from Darius and Hannibal to Cesare Borgia and Pope Julius II, to awaken his dedicatee, Lorenzo de’ Medici, to the need for an Italian redeemer in the early sixteenth century. Then, strictly speaking, there was no Italy. The Piedmont and peninsula were divided into republics and principalities, the elites of any acting with depraved indifference to the wellbeing of their neighbours. French troops camped in swatches of Lombardy; Aragonese officials ruled Naples, the South and Sicily. Machiavelli thought foreign occupation humiliating. Packing his Principe with illustrations of self-interest, conflict, and the circumstances and daring that had made for ruthlessly effective leadership, he finished by emphasising the need for ‘Italian valor’ and ‘Italian resourcefulness’ (virtù italica) – along with Lorenzo’s leadership – to stop the flood of others (illuvione esterne) from dividing and conquering all that was left of Rome’s greatness. An assortment of peculiarly Italian traits, Machiavelli tells Lorenzo, would ensure a victory over the ‘barbarians’, for there were no better soldiers in Europe than Italians (né migliori soldati). Yet it was providential that Italy had been overrun and had endured ordeals without leadership (senza capo). God created both the need and the vacancy, both of which beckoned (as Machiavelli had begged) Lorenzo to undertake a ‘sacred’ campaign (Machiavelli 1994: Ch. 26). Italy in fragments – some ‘owned’ by outsiders – disturbed and spurred Machiavelli, who would have had no brief for an early modern equivalent of the multi-ethnic state. He hoped that Lorenzo would tidy up the mess that a millennium and more of multiculturalism made of Italy after the Romans’ rule of Western Europe eroded. Several challenges facing nationalists centuries later are connected with what distressed Machiavelli and are related, of course, to the persistence of self-interest and conflict – a persistence

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 502

23/10/18 12:45 PM

nationalism

503

liberals and political moralists call ‘assumption’ while political realists call it ‘fact’. Yet many challenges today are vastly different. As I write, global and regional alternatives retain some appeal, even though so many regional associations are failing or feeble. What Tony Judt said in 1994 seems to be just as true now as it was then: nationalism, to many, is ‘more realistic than socialism’ and ‘more immediately reassuring than liberalism’ (Judt 1994: 51). Realistic and reassuring, probably, yet Antje Helmerich notices that nationalist parties seem insatiable. Cheerful after an election cycle that rewards them with media recognition and perhaps a modicum of power, nationalists generally grow hungry for more – more privileges or more conformity within their ranks. Their very survival depends on pressing their arguments in multi-ethnic states for decentralisation and political autonomy (Helmerich 2004). Might satisfaction come when states are brought into line with national boundaries? Arguably, no, for, as Bernard Yak knows, nationalists’ sentiments frequently morph into imperialist ambitions. And when internal enemies disappear – exiled, exterminated or sequestered underground – external others will appear and be seen standing between nations and their destinies; Yak generalises from the worst case, national socialism and Hitler’s Reich (Yak 2012: 121–2). But political realists, setting aside the drivel about democratic or authoritarian utopias, understand that states’ striving for power is irrepressible. ‘The recognition of that fact’ – that ‘given’, as Barbara Kunz proffers – ‘must constitute the point of departure of all political thinking and acting.’ This ‘striving’ can be overlooked – as some liberals and moralists demonstrate – but it ‘cannot be overcome’ (Kunz 2010: 192). ‘Cannot be overcome’, however, does not suggest ‘cannot be opposed’. One illustrious political realist, Hannah Arendt, referring to the conventual or communal alternatives proposed by another, Bishop Augustine of Hippo, whom we have already met, acknowledges what could be described as an appreciation for realists’ countercultural responses to the ‘striving for power’ that Helmerich, Kunz and Yak identify and, to an extent, vilify. In 1929, in her doctoral dissertation, Arendt spotted Augustine’s estrangement from the self-interest and conflict in the Romans’ past and in their provinces. She discovered him plotting a new beginning, a sodality held together by respect and compassion, alongside and opposed to (neben und gegen) the prevailing political corruption (Arendt 1929: 86).16 Subsequently, Arendt grew hopeful about new beginnings. In what could have been an unguarded moment, while reflecting on the human condition, she let a hint of desperation creep into her prose, letting on that ‘the miracle that saves the world, the realm of human affairs, from its normal natural ruin is ultimately the fact of natality’. Political realists are not known for faith in miracles and Arendt soon clarified: compassion may be more likely to take hold in alternative ‘new’ polities, she stipulated, than in politicised, depersonalised spaces where respect is reserved for an admired few. She apparently figured realists would eventually learn that ‘sovereignty, the ideal of uncompromising self-sufficiency and mastership, is contradictory to the very condition of plurality’. Perhaps she also surmised that nationalists, whose sentiments dominate politics as presently conceived, could never learn to ‘survive the disabilities of nonsovereignty’. And that being so, her ‘new beginning’ and Augustine’s seemed a sound, satisfying, compassionate and only somewhat miraculous alternative (Arendt 1998: 233–6, 243–7).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 503

23/10/18 12:45 PM

504

peter iver kaufman

Notes 1. The priority awarded to ‘unmasking’ raises the possibility that the political realists’ job ‘is essentially critical and cautionary’, for which, see Galston (2010: 408–9). 2. For Calama, see Kaufman (2003: 22–35); for Sufes, see Magalhães de Oliveira (2006: 246–62). 3. See the opening paragraph of Hollingworth’s chapter on Augustine in this volume. For life in sad, difficult times, laboriosis tristibusque temporibus, see Augustine’s De civitate Dei 2.23. 4. Augustine, Sermon 25.4: ‘secum trahit bellum suum quocumque iit’; J. P. Migne’s edition of Augustine’s sermons in Patrologia, Series Latina is accessible at (last accessed 15 June 2018). 5. For patriotism and nationalism, see Yak (2012: 40–1). For Yak’s tribute, see Yak (1996). For Shklar’s realism, see Forrester (2012: 247–72). 6. See Yak (2012: 154–6, 286–9); Tamir 1993: 26–7, 90–4; Hearn (2014: 403–4). 7. Wayne Norman protests against ‘the inaccurate identification of nationalism with its most extreme racist and fascist manifestations’ (1999: 59). 8. Siniša Malešević (2013: 165–7) discusses the perils of equating ‘connectedness’ with ephemeral feelings of pride and shame. 9. Aviel Roshwald (2006: 224–5) acknowledges that ‘clichés about national chosenness are powerful forces that do in fact shape history’. 10. ‘Bloss an die Erziehung hat man nicht gedacht; suchen wir in Geschaft, so last uns dieses ergreifen.’ 11. Compare Eric Hobsbawm, Nations and Nationalism since 1780 (1992: 57) with Wayne Norman, Negotiating Nationalism (2006: 7–9). 12. ‘Abhandlung über Ursprung der Sprache’, in Herder (1909: 5:141): Krieg gegen einen anderen Stamm. 13. ‘Ideen zur Philosophie der Geschichte der Menschheit’, in Herder (1909: 14:288–9). 14. See, for example, Irmscher (1994: 211–13). 15. For Machiavelli, on this count, see Owen (2017: 49–50). 16. ‘So entsteht aus der Entfremdung selbst ein neues Miteinander und Füreinander, das neben und gegen die alte societas besteht.’

Bibliography Agamben, Giorgio (1990), La communità che viene, Turin: Einaudi. Agamben, Giorgio (1998), Quel che resta di Auschwitz, Turin: Bollati Boringhieri. Altermatt, Urs (1996), Das Fanal von Sarajevo: Ethnonationalismus in Europa, Paderborn: Schöningh. Anderson, Benedict (2016), Imagined Communities: Reflections on the Origin and Spread of Nationalism, revised edn, London: Verso. Arendt, Hannah (1929), Die Liebesbegriff bei Augustin: Versuch einer philosophischen Interpretation, Berlin: Julius Springer. Arendt, Hannah (1998), The Human Condition, Chicago: University of Chicago Press, pp. 233–6, 243–7. Augustine, Sermon 25.4, in Patrologia, Series Latina, accessible at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Berlin, Isaiah (1972), ‘The bent twig: A note on nationalism’, Foreign Affairs, vol. 51, no. 1, pp. 11–30. Brown, Wendy (2014), Walled States, Waning Sovereignty, New York: Zone. Cocks, Joan (2002), Passion and Paradox: Intellectuals Confront the National Question, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 504

23/10/18 12:45 PM

nationalism

505

Connor, Walker (1994), Ethnonationalism: The Quest for Understanding, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Fichte, Johann Gottlieb (1955), Reden an die deutsche Nation, Hamburg: Felix Meiner. Forrester, Katrina (2012), ‘Judith Shklar, Bernard Williams, and political realism’, European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 11, no. 3, pp. 247–72. Galston, William (2010), ‘Realism in political theory’, European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 9, no. 4, pp. 385–411. Gellner, Ernest (2008), Nations and Nationalism, 2nd edn, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Geuss, Raymond (2010a), ‘Realismus, Wunschdenken, Utopie’, Deutsche Zeitschrift für Philosophie, vol. 58, no. 3, pp. 419–29. Geuss, Raymond (2010b), Politics and the Imagination, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Greenfeld, Liah (1992), Nationalism: Five Roads to Modernity, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Hacohen, Malachi (2000), Karl Popper, the Formative Years: Politics and Philosophy in Interwar Vienna, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Hearn, Jonathan, Chandran Kukathas, David Miller and Bernard Yak (2014), ‘Debate on Bernard Yak’s book Nationalism and the Moral Psychology of Community’, Nations and Nationalism, vol. 20, no. 3, pp. 403–4. Helmerich, Antje (2004), ‘Ethnonationalismus und das politische Potenzial nationalistischer Bewegungen’, part 3, accessible at (last accessed 19 June 2017). Herder, Johann Gottfried (1909) [1877–1913], Herders Sämmtliche Werke, 33 vols, ed. by Bernhard Suphan, Berlin: Weidmannsche Buchhandlung. Hobsbawm, E. J. (1992), Nations and Nationalism since 1780, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Ignatieff, Michael (1993), Blood and Belonging: Journeys into the New Nationalism, New York: Farrar, Straus, and Giroux. Irmscher, Hans Dietrich (1994), ‘Nationalität und Humanität im Denken Herder’, Orbis Litterarum, vol. 49, no. 4, pp. 189–215. Judt, Tony (1994), ‘The new old nationalism’, New York Review of Books, vol. 41, no. 10, 26 May, pp. 44–51. Kaufmann, Eric (2003), ‘Patience and/or politics: Augustine and the crisis of Calama’, Vigiliae Christianae, vol. 57, no. 1, pp. 22–35. Kaufmann, Eric (2017), ‘Complexity and nationalism’, Nations and Nationalism, vol. 23, no. 1, pp. 6–25. Kershaw, Ian (1998), Hitler, 1889–1936: Hubris, New York: Norton. Kramer, Lloyd (2011), Nationalism in Europe and America: Politics, Cultures, and Identities since 1775, Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press. Kunz, Barbara (2010), ‘Hans J. Morgenthau’s political realism, Max Weber, and the concept of power’, Max Weber Studies, vol. 10, no. 2, pp. 189–208. Leerssen, Joseph (2006), National Thought in Europe: A Cultural History, Amsterdam: Amsterdam University Press. Levinson, Sanford (1995), ‘Is liberal nationalism an oxymoron? An essay for Judith Shklar’, Ethics, vol. 105, no. 3, pp. 626–45. Machiavelli, Niccolò (1994), Il Principe, Milan: Montadori. Magalhães de Oliveira, Julio César (2006), ‘Ut majors pagani non sint! Pouvoir, iconoclasme, et action populaire à Carthage au début du Vᵉ siècle’, Antiquité tardive, no. 14, pp. 246–62. Malešević, Siniša (2013), Nation-States and Nationalisms, Cambridge: Polity Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 505

23/10/18 12:45 PM

506

peter iver kaufman

Marx, Anthony W. (2003), Faith in Nation: Exclusionary Origins of Nationalism, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Miller, David (2005), ‘Crooked timber or bent twig? Isaiah Berlin’s nationalism’, Political Studies, vol. 53, no. 1, pp. 100–23. Norman, Wayne (1999), ‘Theorizing nationalism (normatively): The first steps’, in Ronald Beiner (ed.), Theorizing Nationalism, Albany: State University of New York Press. Norman, Wayne (2006), Negotiating Nationalism, Oxford: Oxford University Press. O’Brien, Conor Cruise (1993), ‘The wrath of ages: Nationalism’s primordial roots’, Foreign Affairs, vol. 72, no. 5, pp. 142–9. Owen, David (2017), ‘Machiavelli’s Il Principe and the politics of glory’, European Journal of Political Theory, vol. 16, no. 1, pp. 49–50. Popper, Karl (1962), The Open Society and its Enemies, 2 vols, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Roshwald, Aviel (2006), The Endurance of Nationalism, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Sangiovanni, Andrea (2008), ‘Justice and the priority of politics to morality’, The Journal of Political Philosophy, vol. 16, no. 2, pp. 137–64. Sigwart, Hans-Jörg (2013), ‘The logic of legitimacy: Ethics in political realism’, The Review of Politics, vol. 75, no. 3, pp. 407–32. Smith, Anthony D. (2010), Nationalism, 2nd edn, Cambridge: Polity Press. Tamir, Yael (1993), Liberal Nationalism, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Yak, Bernard (1996), ‘Introduction’, in Bernard Yak (ed.), Liberalism Without Illusions: Essays on Political Theory and the Political Vision of Judith Shklar, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Yak, Bernard (2012), Nationalism and the Moral Psychology of Community, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Zaslavsky, Victor (2000), ‘Die Erbschaft der sowjetischen Nationalitätenpolitik’, in Detlev Claussen, Oskar Negt and Michael Werz (eds), Kritik des Ethnonationalismus, Frankfurt: Neue Kritik, pp. 81–107.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 506

23/10/18 12:45 PM

40 Political Realism and Religion Analysing the extant, critiquing through the prophetic Cecelia Lynch

Chapter Overview

R

ealism and religion are frequently considered to be incompatible, which is all the more interesting because they are both problematic categories of analysis. I argue in this chapter that realism’s too-frequent assumptions of analytical and moral superiority vis-à-vis its constructed ‘others’ stunts debate about the full panoply of relations of power, especially concerning forms of oppression and injustice. I highlight some of the shortcomings of the realist tradition by juxtaposing it with the religious ‘prophetic’ tradition. The latter provides prescient insights into relations of power that the former tends to ignore or discount, but that must be appreciated to counter the xenophobic and racist claims enabled by opponents of both traditions in the past as well as the present. *

*

*

Introduction It is all too easy to find problematic and ‘unrealistic’ claims and exhortations among religious believers, or adherents. The idea that the earth and its history are only 6,000 years old, claims that the end times are near, and exhortations to commit suicidal missions or killings because of religious commitment all feed the proposition that religion is in essence irrational, emotional, unrealistic and dangerous. Moreover, we live in a period in which truth claims by national leaders in some countries, particularly in the West, seem to require progressively less in the way of evidence, ‘fact’ or ‘reality’, and their fantastical claims sometimes receive support from noisy factions of religious adherents, among others. But anything that is too easy to characterise probably masks other, more complicated realities, and such is the case, I argue, with placing realism against religion. That does not mean, however, that we should judge religion solely according to criteria that have become part of the realist canon. In this chapter, I first juxtapose realism and religion, noting the problematic nature of both categories while describing how scholars and popular figures focus primarily on the deficiencies of the latter. Next, I bring prominent countervoices into the mix to reinsert religion and religious ethics into the canon of thoughtful commitments based

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 507

23/10/18 12:45 PM

508

cecelia lynch

on persuasive analyses of the conditions of the past, present and future. Here, however, I also introduce commitments that we might call the ‘prophetic’, which is usually associated with a prescient analysis of the current historical context and how it came to be, combined with a moral stance about existing injustices and a warning about future repercussions if present actions, structures and practices that perpetuate injustices are not changed. Ultimately, I argue that the problem with the realist/religion conundrum is not some unrealistic essence for religion, but rather the long and perhaps unalterable tendency of those who deploy the realist appellation to limit their analysis of existing conditions in ways that prevent the full ‘realisation’ of such extant injustices, as well as thoughtful repertoires of ways to counteract them. That such limitations are prescribed in the name of what is ‘real’ and ‘possible’ – while discounting and marginalising those who use their prophetic voice to illuminate injustices – makes the political project of rehabilitating realism to connote an expansive range of genuine examination and analysis of the world and its possibilities (the goal of this volume’s editors) laudable but perhaps impossible. I do not claim that religion is somehow as, if not more, ‘realistic’, in the sense of a practical or thoughtful reflection and analysis of the world, than other modes of organising ethical traditions, knowledge and experience. In fact, unlike a number of the contributors to this volume, I have no stake either in promoting political or religious realism, per se, or in reinforcing a reputation as a realist scholar. Given that much of my work concerns subjects such as religion, ethics and peace movements – subjects that many who do have a stake in realism dismiss a priori as ‘unrealistic’, ‘irrational’, ‘utopian’ or ‘idealistic’ – the moniker of realism has never done much for me. It has always seemed more of an analytical obstacle, an appellation to be accorded to oneself to demonstrate that others do not fulfil its always ambiguous criteria. While I am sympathetic to the editors’ desire to view realism afresh and more expansively, the hurdles faced by such a carefully constructed capaciousness appear to me to be close to insurmountable. (Given this position, perhaps I am succumbing to my own realist tendencies!)

Can We Speak of Realism and Religion Together? For many, realism and religion are unnatural bedfellows. Both are problematic categories of analysis, although this volume addresses the numerous facets of the former – historical, political and philosophical – to insist that it has a pragmatic, thoughtful core. ‘Religion’ likewise has a historical provenance and intersecting genealogies, but it is a very different category of beast. Scholars today debate religion’s meanings, implications and opposites (generally in the form of ‘secularisms’) and try to grasp its elusive nature and what it includes (Is Confucianism a kind of religion? What about African spiritualities, which are often included under the rubric of ‘culture’? What about secular ideologies of various kinds?). For example, the debate about the historical origins of the category of religion in early modern Europe (Asad 1993: 2003) helped to lead to continued questioning of whether secularisms are inevitably tied to the development of Protestant Christianity’s liberal pretensions or whether there are forms of secularism in the global South that are distinct in character from European versions (Mahmood 2015; Bilgrami 2016); what the implications are for non-monotheistic forms of practice or belief (Ling 2014; Atiemo 2014); and whether

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 508

23/10/18 12:45 PM

religion

509

we can draw a firm line between ‘religion’ and ‘secularism’ (Lynch 2011; Jakelic 2015), among others. Overall, however, observers treat religion as something that has difficulty fitting into temporal and historical categories (that is, ‘the real world’), while realism is all about assessing the possibilities for action within the boundaries believed to exist in those categories. Numerous scholars of religion have delineated the historical and philosophical ways in which religion is cut out of the rational, and therefore ‘real’ world (see chapters by Erica Benner and Zhao Tingyang for more discussion of the relationship that is frequently assumed between the real and the rational). Charles Taylor’s masterful work describes in great detail the movement from a world of ‘enchantment’ and ‘magical thinking’ (the ancient to the medieval periods) to one of disenchantment; in the process he analyses how human beings moved from a ‘porous’ to a ‘buffered’ self (Taylor 2007). Taylor does not, however, warn that religion was never or cannot be realistic. Instead, he takes us through a world where philosophical developments and socio-political change became constitutive elements of a progressive secularisation of the Western world. The porous self intimately connected religious and political belief and practice; the buffered self, gradually developed in the modern era, sees religion and its associated doctrines and commitments as merely one option among others. Other scholars, such as Mona Sheikh, note that religious commitment is perceived to have an ‘x’ factor – something that constitutes it as sui generis, beyond what can be observed or deduced as ‘real’ (Sheikh forthcoming 2018). Moving to popular punditry, well-known critics of religion, such as American talk show host and provocateur Bill Maher, focus on the supposedly unchanging exclusivist identity of religious followers, who become dangerous precisely because they adhere rigidly to what is, for him, unchanging, irrational and unrealistic doctrine. Of course, many religious thinkers and scholars of religion would disagree with the idea that religion is not or cannot be ‘realistic’. In the fourth century, St Augustine disputed the idea that the fall of Rome took place because of its turn away from Roman religion to Christianity, detailing in depth how the fall happened in ways that could not be tied to the wrath of multiple gods. He subsequently demarcated the ways in which Christians could participate in political violence, even though no earthly polity that might be supported by such violence could ever represent the divine. In the twelfth century, Maimonides, in taking Aristotle as a point of departure, insisted that logic was the foundation of Jewish law, thus solidifying a relationship between religion and rationality, while Ibn Khaldun’s fourteenth-century theory of social and political conflict became one of the forerunners of twentieth-century classical realist thought (Kalpakian 2008; Pasha 2018). Blaise Pascal, in the seventeenth century, addressed the conundrum of ‘belief’ versus ‘realism’ head on, using his ground-breaking work in probabilistic logic to argue that the odds of God’s existence made it realistic to act ‘as if’ such an existence were true (Hájek 2017). In each of these cases and for each of these thinkers, commitment to ‘faith’, ‘belief’ and/or a religious tradition was part and parcel of a deep and thorough evaluation of historical circumstances in conjunction with logical probabilities and possibilities. In the late nineteenth and early twentieth centuries, sociologists of religion also reformulated our understanding of religious tradition and practice to be comprehensible vis-à-vis the ‘realities’ of different socio-political contexts. Émile Durkheim made sense of religious conviction by firmly separating the ‘sacred’ from the ‘profane’, while

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 509

23/10/18 12:45 PM

510

cecelia lynch

Max Weber’s conceptual apparatus allowed us to understand religious convictions, institutions and practices as, more often than not, extremely ‘realistic’, in that they make sense, given socio-historical and politico-economic circumstances (Durkheim 2014; Weber 1993 [1922]). For Weber, the essential issue for adherents of any religion is how to address the problem of theodicy: in other words, how to cope with the existence of evil and suffering in the world, and what to do when coping mechanisms and belief systems fall short. As David Blaney has pointed out, however, this problem extends in various ways through the modern, ‘secularised’ era as well (Blaney forthcoming 2018). Liberals, as well as realists, still try to cope with evil and suffering, reformulated as poverty, inefficiency, war, conflict and bad management of the balance of power. Like religious adherents, their coping mechanisms, as well as their solutions, also inevitably fall short, at least in part because the enterprise of either pinpointing ultimate causes or finding realistic and/or rational solutions to these problems cannot be determined once and for all. Weber theorised that religions in the modern era were developing increasingly into ‘world religions’, whose reach extended far beyond their geographical origins, and whose ‘rationalised’ modes of existence reflected the institutional characteristics of modernity. Yet, while some interpret Weber as saying that this rationalisation would eventually give way to more or less global secularisation, many trends in religion have demonstrated the opposite. These include the rise and global spread of Pentecostalism, whose origins were ironically in the very period in which Weber wrote, as a means of reuniting the Protestant Christian mind/body bifurcation (Miller and Yamamori 2007; Martin 2001; Corten and Marshall-Fratani 2001). They also include an increased sensibility regarding ‘indigenous’ religions and their cosmic, environmental, political and healing practices, traditions and claims in virtually all parts of the world (Atiemo, Golo and Boakye 2014; Scauso 2016). Weber, nevertheless, did not excise cosmically whole religions from being either realistic or rationalist, and instead explained their existence as temporally logical responses to the problem of theodicy. At this point, we could argue that thoughtful people and thinkers have demonstrated that religious commitments of a wide variety of types – including commitments to monotheism and polytheism, as well as to a temporal world, spirit world and/or eternal existence – are all, in theory, ‘realistic’ propositions, given particular historical and geographical contexts, and be done with it. However, the existence of political realism and its apogee in the early twentieth century make such a move difficult, if not impossible. This is because, during the 1930s and 1940s especially, the moves to define what has become known as classical realism, as well as ‘Christian’ realism, reinforced the deployment of realism as a claim to superiority over other forms of thought and specific people who were labelled unrealistic, idealistic, utopian. Despite the rehabilitation of classical realism’s emphasis on prudence in international relations theory, the assumption of superiority – especially of analysis, understanding and vision – has not changed. As Michael Loriaux (1992) points out, taking Augustine seriously would require more scepticism on the part of twentieth-century realists themselves regarding their prescriptions for managing international order and security. While frequently thoughtful, such twentieth-century assumptions underlying realist logic often focused at least as much, if not more, on those whom they labelled utopian rather than those – such as the fascists and national socialists – whose ideas and actions to reform the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 510

23/10/18 12:45 PM

religion

511

world and the resolution of those ills were based on unsubstantiated xenophobic and racist claims. Such assumptions on the part of realists also helped to stunt debates that might have presented more trenchant challenges to the ‘real’ (in the sense of most potent) dangers of their times.

The Early Twentieth-Century Apogee of Realism and Religion Such assumptions underlying political realism grew in influence during the interwar period, reaching their apex after World War Two. Walter Lippmann, E. H. Carr, Herbert Butterfield (also a Christian) and Hans Morgenthau were early, ‘classical’ realist thinkers in international relations. At the same time, however, Reinhold Niebuhr (1932; 1953) began to develop what soon became known as ‘Christian realism’, which purported to merge the understanding of ‘what is’ with the analysis of ‘what is possible to achieve’. However, the developing realist canon of the period, especially on the part of Lippmann, Carr and Niebuhr, could not exist without an opposite, variously labelled ‘idealists’, ‘utopians’, ‘liberals’ and/or ‘pacifists’. I have asserted elsewhere that these realists’ arguments about interwar peace movements were problematic, for two primary reasons. First, they vastly oversimplified how other, also thoughtful scholars, theologians and activists analysed complex social processes, instead lumping them together under the labels of ‘idealists’ and ‘utopians’. As a result, the terms ‘utopianism’ and ‘idealism’ (in other words, what ‘ought to be’) have since represented an imposed category – on those who self-described realists decide are unrealistic. Second, in doing so, these assertions have created a realist superiority complex, whose power derived in large part from fostering the sense that challengers were emotional and irrational rather than basing their analyses of the world on power and interest (Lynch 1999: 210–11). Reinhold Niebuhr, of course, was the pre-eminent exponent of this tendency among religious thinkers during the interwar and early post-World War Two periods. Niebuhr’s articulation of ‘Christian realism’ allowed separate moralities for the individual and the group, and for the person and the nation-state. The realities of power and interest required, in fact, these separate moral codes. Thus the state could not be bound by Christian exhortations to the individual, such as ‘thou shalt not kill’. Many equated Niebuhr’s bifurcation with St Augustine’s two cities (the ‘city of God’ and the ‘city of man’). Even though Reinhold Niebuhr himself did not make this mistake – he understood that Augustine’s two cities referred to those who look to God for fulfilment versus those who look for material gain – he did use other aspects of Augustinian thought to craft and legitimise his own insistence on the necessity of dual moralities appropriate to different realms. Insisting on such an ethical binary helped encourage the idea that different moral codes are both appropriate and necessary, which has become almost a truism in some schools of international relations. The Christian realist legitimation of these dual codes, explicitly articulated as a difference between the individual and the polity, led in turn to an emphasis on the teleology or endpoints involved in ethical action, which made the primary difference in individual and political ethics the actions that were oriented to ‘this world’ (political ethics) versus those that are ‘otherworldly’ in orientation (individual ethics), to use Max Weber’s phraseology. This set up the extremely problematic idea that orientations to ‘this world’ could be realistic while ‘otherworldly’ orientations, by definition, could not be. Of course,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 511

23/10/18 12:45 PM

512

cecelia lynch

neither Carr nor Niebuhr would argue that all ethics and actions oriented to the ‘city of man’ were realistic in conception, logic or implementation. As a result, the next step was to delegitimise what they saw as political ethics that were grounded in any kind of teleology, be it liberal, communist, fascist or transcendent. Each of these logics based analysis and action on a temporality that was yet to come, allegedly ignoring extant power and interests. Such teleologies, for realists, promoted futile, and at times dangerous, aspirations.

Prophetic Traditions’ Analytical and Ethical Power A good part of the disdain these early, classical realists articulated was reserved for their liberal brethren who wanted to engineer and systematise forms of national and international governance to tame the power that realists believed was fundamental to political life. The debate, in realist terms, was about whether power could be eliminated or even permanently controlled through social engineering (the unrealistic position) or managed more or less wisely and prudently (the realist stance). However, the debate between eliminating and managing power neglected the insights from prophetic religious traditions. In these traditions – including Judaism, Christianity and Islam, but also Buddhism and many traditional religions – a seer or visionary formulates an innovative, trenchant and usually unwelcome analysis of socio-political conditions, including, above all, the evils of continuing extant, unequal relations of power. While such visionaries in Judaism and Christianity, especially, often preached to those who do not or would not hear them, the traditions still elevated (though usually posthumously) their foresight and fearlessness. Gustavo Gutiérrez (2007: 28) connects prophecy to the condemnation of injustice: we find in Scripture the repudiation of poverty but along with this the denunciation of those responsible for this situation, who are frequently driven by selfishness and indifference toward other members of society. . . . Poverty is tied to injustice. The difficult biblical texts of prophets like Amos, Micah, Isaiah, and, of course, of other biblical authors on the subject are well known. The guilty ones are openly named. Prophets go straight to the top – they are fearless particularly because they mince no words with those who wield power over them. ‘Your rulers are rogues and cronies of thieves; every one of them is avid for presents and greedy for gifts,’ says Isaiah, who charges rulers with ignoring justice for the ‘orphans and widows’ (Signer 2007: 298). Prophets tell rulers precisely how they perpetuate injustice and evil, and demand that they stop unjust practices. Prophetic pronouncements require that those who profit from oppressing others, who enjoy material comfort and ease while others suffer, change immediately, giving up the perks of corruption and the comforts that shield them from injustice while radically transforming the systems that enable these inequalities. Given such radical – and difficult – demands, ‘false prophets’ also arise, and warnings against them abound. False prophets are part and parcel of the same structures and practices that breed injustice against the poor. Elsa Tamez (2007: 43) points out that, for Latin American liberation theologians, the poor are victims of oppression, ‘whether caused by the governors of nations or empires, judges, priests, the wealthy

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 512

23/10/18 12:45 PM

religion

513

who thought only about accumulating riches, or false prophets’. False prophets, then, enable unjust structures by making things seem easier than they are, by legitimising greed and inequality on the part of the wealthy and powerful, by allowing discriminatory practices, by not demanding radical change. Both realist and prophetic traditions attempt to cope with extant power relations. Each cuts into significant aspects of these relations: the realist focuses on sovereign power dynamics, while the prophet focuses on political oppression and economic inequality. Each does so, arguably, without proposing a lasting resolution of the problem of power within historical time. Nevertheless, the proposed actions of each differ radically: the realist tradition proposes accommodations with extant modes of action and balances of power, while the prophetic tradition demands active rupture from them. As A. J. Muste, a Christian contemporary of Reinhold Niebuhr, said of the Christian realist framework: it provided ‘a pseudo-Christian cover for the sterile sophistication of power politics’. Muste, moreover, accused Niebuhr of the same charge that Niebuhr levelled at pacifists: ‘Muste insightfully accused Niebuhr of smearing the pacifist as an “absolutist” while [he, Niebuhr] made the present order “eternal and absolute”’ (Commins 1996: 64). Muste’s arguments, in other words, demonstrate that, despite realism’s attempt to exit from teleological thinking, it can never do so completely. Both the prophet and the realist assume a certain teleology – the first regarding the dangers of not condemning actions based only on power and interest; the second regarding the idea of ‘management’ of the present as the only future possible. While prophets ‘penetrate the numbness’ that naturalises unjust social practices, prophecy also cannot work without some element of hope, or belief that radical change can bring about justice (Gutiérrez 2007). Prophets chastise the powerful but they place hope primarily in those on the margins of power, who are also called to act in ways that can bring about the justice that the prophet foresees. In this, the prophet differs from the realist, who accords decision-making agency to those responsible for governing. Nevertheless, hope still plays a role in realism: the bulk of realist counsel stems from the hope that leaders will govern prudently and manage politics wisely, if only they are awake to the permanent dangers of power in international politics.

Dangers and Implications Erin K. Wilson argues that ‘secular ways of being’ commit an ‘ontological injustice’ by excising frameworks that might be deemed ‘religious’ from their conditions of possibility (Wilson forthcoming 2018). Expanding our understanding of ontological frames is critical to meeting the needs of massive numbers of displaced people, for Wilson, among many other challenges. Avoiding such ontological injustice, then, becomes an integral component of acting justly in the world, and becomes all the more important in a historical time, the early twenty-first century, and place, the ‘modern West’, where xenophobic public officials and elements of the news media blur standards for judging truth and reality, justifying discrimination of religious, ethnic, sexual and racial minorities through unsupported claims of danger. In this way, the early twenty-first century is not unlike the 1930s and 1940s heyday of classical realist thought. Realists, political and theological, insist that the starting point of any viable political analysis must concern ‘what is’, not ‘what should be’. In the early twentieth

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 513

23/10/18 12:45 PM

514

cecelia lynch

century, as well as the early twenty-first, there was/is radical disagreement about ‘what should be’ not only between religious and secular commentators, but also among religious commentators and among secular commentators themselves. Selfdescribed realists, indeed, constantly assess what should be, generally pointing out that it must be some version of the present. Prophets, conversely, proclaim that justice can occur only through radically changed relations of power, in which the rich and powerful forfeit their positions of privilege in favour of justice for the poor and marginalised. Yet during both periods, debates about political possibility have confronted fantastical claims regarding reality and ‘truth’: that is, beliefs about ‘what is’. This difference, in both kind and degree of claims about reality and truth, results in a potentially much more dangerous ethico-political conundrum than that between realists and liberals, or even realists and religious prophets. Realists, those they label utopians or idealists, and prophets all agree in principle that discriminatory racialised and xenophobic claims – ‘false prophecy’ – must be countered. Reinhold Niebuhr, for example, decried racial injustice in the US context, putting forth both moral and pragmatic reasons for resisting racist and discriminatory claims. Nevertheless, as Richard Wightman Fox shows, on several occasions he advocated inaction or slow action in the face of injustice. These included his halting approach to integrating his former Detroit parish in the 1930s, and his response to McCarthyism after the Second World War (Fox 1985: 119–20, 242). Ultimately, the difference between realists (secular and religious) and religious prophets does not concern the ability to see clearly important elements of extant conditions because both grasp important elements of relations of power. Moreover, realist and religious perspectives can be merged, as thinkers from Augustine to Maimonides to Niebuhr demonstrate. (Conversely, fantastical political and religious claims that justify forms of discrimination, inequality, violence and injustice can also coexist.) Nevertheless, there are significant differences between the realist and the prophetic traditions. Two of the most interesting concern whether or not they emphasise justice, including whether relations of power must be changed to begin to achieve it; and who is ultimately responsible for injustice and who must take the lead in overturning it. The realist emphasises the idea that those who govern must act prudently in accordance with power politics; the prophet wants to jolt those who govern into changing their ways while encouraging the oppressed to lead the charge into a more just future. The problem with realist thought and prescriptions, when juxtaposed against the prophetic religious tradition, is the realist’s tendency to lump the liberal and the prophetic together, and hence to stunt the analysis of and debate about injustices. This, in turn, limits the articulation of creative ways to cut through them and do things differently. Which strategy, in the end, is more ‘realistic’ remains an open question.

Bibliography Asad, Talal (1993), Genealogies of Religion: Discipline and Reasons of Power in Christianity and Islam, Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press. Asad, Talal (2003), Formations of the Secular: Christianity, Islam, Modernity, Standford, CA: Stanford University Press. Atiemo, Abamfo O. (2014), ‘What is religion? The question of definition in the study of religions’, in Abamfo O. Atiemo, Ben-Willie K. Golo and Lawrence K. Boakye (eds), Unpacking

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 514

23/10/18 12:45 PM

religion

515

the Sense of the Sacred: A Reader in the Study of Religions, Legon and Banbury: Ayebia Clarke in conjunction with the University of Ghana, pp. 8–20. Atiemo, Abamfo O., Ben-Willie K. Golo and Lawrence K. Boakye (eds) (2014), Unpacking the Sense of the Sacred: A Reader in the Study of Religions, Legon and Banbury: Ayebia Clarke in conjunction with the University of Ghana. Bilgrami, Akeel (ed.) (2016), Beyond the Secular West, New York: Columbia University Press. Blaney, David (2018), ‘Adam Smith’s ambiguous theodicy and the ethics of IPE’, in Eric Heinze and Brent Steele (eds), Handbook of Ethics in International Relations, New York: Routledge. Carr, E. H. (2016), The Twenty Years’ Crisis, 1919–1939, Basingstoke, Palgrave Macmillan. Commins, Gary (1996), Spiritual People, Radical Lives: Spirituality and Justice in Four TwentiethCentury American Lives, San Francisco: International Scholars. Corten, André and Ruth Marshall-Fratani (eds) (2001), Between Babel and Pentecost: Transnational Pentecostalism in Africa and Latin America, Bloomington: Indiana University Press. Durkheim, Émile (2014), The Elementary Forms of the Religious Life, North Charleston, SC Create Space Independent Publishing Platform. Fox, Richard Wightman (1985), Reinhold Niebuhr, A Biography, New York: Pantheon. Gutiérrez, Gustavo (2007), ‘Memory and prophecy’, in Daniel G. Groody, S.J. (ed.), The Option for the Poor in Christian Theology, Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press, pp. 17–38. Hájek, Alan (2017), ‘Pascal’s wager’, in Stanford Encyclopedia of Philosophy, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Jakelic, Slavica (2015), ‘Secular-religious encounters as peacebuilding’, in Atalia Omer, R. Scott Appleby and David Little (eds), Religion, Conflict, and Peacebuilding, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Kalpakian, Jack (2008), ‘Ibn Khaldun’s influence on current international relations theory’, The Journal of North African Studies, vol. 13, no. 3, pp. 363–76. Ling, Lily H. M. (2014), The Dao of World Politics: Towards a Post-Westphalian, Worldist International Relations, New York: Routledge. Loriaux, Michael (1992), ‘The realists and Saint Augustine: Skepticism, psychology, and moral action in international relations thought’, International Studies Quarterly, vol. 36, no. 4, pp. 401–20. Lynch, Cecelia (1999), Beyond Appeasement: Interpreting Interwar Peace Movements in World Politics, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Lynch, Cecelia (2011), ‘Religious humanitarianism and the global politics of secularism’, in Craig Calhoun, Mark Juergensmeyer and Jonathan VanAntwerpen (eds), Rethinking Secularism, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Mahmood, Saba (2015), Religious Difference in a Secular Age: A Minority Report, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Martin, David (2001), Pentecostalism: The World Their Parish, Malden, MA: Wiley-Blackwell. Miller, Donald E. and Tetsunao Yamamori (2007), Global Pentecostalism: The New Face of Christian Social Engagement, Berkeley: University of California Press. Niebuhr, Reinhold (1932), Moral Man and Immoral Society: A Study in Ethics and Politics, New York: Scribners. Niebuhr, Reinhold (1953), Christian Realism and Political Problems, New York: Scribners. Pasha, M. (2018), ‘Beyond the “religious turn”: International Relations as political theology’, in A. Gofas, I. Hamati-Ataya and N. Onuf (eds), The Sage Handbook of the History, Philosophy and Sociology of International Relations, New York: SAGE, pp. 106–121. Scauso, Marcos (2016), ‘Indianismo and decoloniality: Voices of resistance’, in Jay Smith and Sabine Dreher (eds), Religious Activism in the Global Economy: Promoting, Reforming, or Resisting Neoliberal Globalization?, Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littlefield International.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 515

23/10/18 12:45 PM

516

cecelia lynch

Sheikh, Mona (2018), ‘Religion, emotions, and conflict escalation’, in Eric Heinze and Brent Steele (eds), Handbook of Ethics in International Relations, New York: Routledge. Signer, Michael (2007), ‘Social justice in Judaism’, in Daniel G. Groody, S.J. (ed.), The Option for the Poor in Christian Theology, Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press, pp. 290–301. Tamez, Elsa (2007), ‘Poverty, the poor, and the option for the poor’, in Daniel G. Groody, S.J. (ed.), The Option for the Poor in Christian Theology, Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press, pp. 41–54. Taylor, Charles (2007), A Secular Age, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Weber, Max (1993) [1922], The Sociology of Religion, Boston: Beacon Press. Wilson, Erin K. (2018), ‘Solidarity beyond religious and secular: Multiple ontologies as an ethical framework in the politics of forced displacement’, in Eric Heinze and Brent Steele (eds), Handbook of Ethics in International Relations, New York: Routledge.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 516

23/10/18 12:45 PM

41 Political Realism and the Environment Why the United Nations cannot slash global emissions Tom Switzer

Chapter Overview

S

tatecraft is simple, as long as the appearance of success matters more than results. Such a worldview appeared to be the price of victory at the United Nations climate conference in 2015. But the Paris accords were futile, neither legally binding enough to be enforceable and verifiable, nor of sufficient scale to make a difference to climate change. The UN agreement’s flaws are a reminder of the limits of liberal internationalism and the enduring reality of power politics in international relations. The UN is not a moral arbiter; nor is it an effective law-making body. The interests of its member states are too diverse. It is relevant as a forum where disputes and grievances are aired. But the agreements the UN reaches, even when they command broad support, are all too often violated when they clash with vital national interests. The climate-change challenge, far from altering the underlying reality of power politics, reaffirms it. While there may be a global problem, there are competing national interests, and each state calculates that the best arrangement is to do as little as possible in climate mitigation efforts, provided other nations do enough to solve the problem. Burden-sharing is difficult to sell to a nation’s citizenry. If states take actions to reduce emissions while competitors do not, they would be at a relative economic disadvantage. That is why, although politicians can talk grandly about fighting global warming, the exercise is meaningless without a mechanism to wield authority. There is no way to referee disagreements among competing nations, because – as realists have all too often argued – the UN lacks the authority to address problems such as climate change satisfactorily. *

*

*

Writing in Moral Man and Immoral Society in 1932, the liberal theologian Reinhold Niebuhr argued, ‘The prestige of the international community is not great enough . . . to achieve a communal spirit sufficiently unified, to discipline recalcitrant nations’ and warned against ‘a too uncritical glorification of co-operation and mutuality’ between powers with opposing national interests (Niebuhr 2013: 110; Niebuhr 2013: 233; see also Morgenthau 1948; Herz 1951). Yet it is the prospect of global cooperation and mutuality that so many pundits and politicians today glorify. Nowhere is this mindset more evident than in the global

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 517

23/10/18 12:45 PM

518

tom switzer

deliberations on how to deal with climate change. Because the threat of man-made global warming is so dangerous, we are told, it is inevitable – indeed, natural – that all states will join forces in a binding collective agreement to put in place policies to decarbonise the planet. That is why the UN agreement to reduce greenhouse gas emissions in Paris has been widely hailed as a historic breakthrough. When the deal was finalised in December 2015, according to The Observer, ‘the cheers rang out, the tears of relief flowed and in scenes of high emotion, the anonymous conference hall in a northern suburb of Paris erupted. Thousands of delegates started to applaud each other’ (Vidal 2015). The Pulitzer Prize-winning columnist Thomas Friedman reflected the prevailing wisdom when he praised the new global accords as a ‘big, big deal’ (Friedman 2015). Under the headline ‘The world’s collective pledge’, the Washington Post (2015) editorialised, ‘The Paris agreement is a landmark in the world’s response to manmade climate change, with every nation that matters acknowledging the problem and pledging to respond.’ President Obama (2015) declared that the climate agreement was ‘a turning point for the world’ and ‘the best chance we have to save the planet that we’ve got’. In reality, Paris was no watershed. It represented a triumph of wishes over facts. True, 195 nations agreed to volunteer their carbon-cutting promises – or ‘intended nationally determined contributions’ (INDCs) – to the Intergovernmental Panel on Climate Change (IPCC) every five years. Under the terms of the agreement, however, they do not have to set ambitious goals. In any case, there are no common standards for measuring improvement. Nor are the signatories required to meet their targets because there is no penalty for non-compliance. Unlike the Kyoto protocol in 1997, the accords are not legally binding. Nations can provide excuses for failure and pledge to do better next time. That is a victory in so far as the UN process continues, but there is a distinct lack of progress in slashing emissions. Because Paris is neither enforceable nor verifiable, there is no mechanism for, in Niebuhr’s parlance, disciplining recalcitrant nations. Nor was the Paris agreement practical. The Danish economist Bjorn Lomborg calculated in November 2015 how much each nation’s contributions would reduce global warming. Using standard models and optimistic assumptions, he concluded that the impacts are generally small. If all nations implemented their carbon emissions targets from the early 2000s to 2030 – and then sustained those cuts through the rest of the century – he suggested that the expected rise in global temperatures would come down by only 0.17 degrees Celsius by the year 2100. As Lomborg (2015) argued, ‘Current climate policy promises will do little to stabilise the climate and their impact will be undetectable for many decades.’ That is why the most prominent climate enthusiasts were the most critical of the Paris agreement. According to former National Aeronautics and Space Administration (NASA) climatologist James Hansen, ‘the international jamboree’ was ‘half-assed and half-baked . . . half-assed because there’s no way to make it global . . . half-baked because there is no enforcement mechanism’ (Milman 2015; Gillis 2015). George Monbiot, The Guardian’s leading environmental columnist, lamented, ‘I see a lot of backslapping, a lot of self-congratulation, and I see very little in terms of the actual substance that is required to avert climate breakdown.’ He went on to describe the shirking of responsibilities and liability as tantamount to offending ‘the basic principles of justice’ (Monbiot 2015).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 518

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the environment

519

1. The failure to move to a carbon-free world is a reminder of the limits of liberal internationalism. It also shows the enduring reality of power politics in international affairs, which Niebuhr identified more than eighty years ago. And yet realism has fallen into disfavour in policy-making and scholarly fields. Since the end of the Cold War, it has widely been denounced as being at odds with the spirit of the times: globalisation, economic interdependency, political convergence and a multilateral rules-based order. In this environment, we are told, realism is irrelevant and outdated. The accepted wisdom among politicians and pundits is hardly surprising because realism is an affront to liberalism in several ways. As Owen Harries, the founding editor of the realist Washington-based magazine The National Interest, has explained, realism stresses tension as a central and enduring fact of life. But liberalism asserts a true and peaceful harmony of interests, obscured only by temporary and removable ignorance and misunderstanding (Harries 1995). Classical realists, such as Hans J. Morgenthau (1946; 1948) and the aforementioned Niebuhr (2013 [1932]; 1941), postulate a universal and unchanging human nature, one that has an incorrigibly selfish and power-seeking component in it (see Schuett 2010). Liberals, however, believe either in the innate virtue of humans, or in a malleable human nature that can be made good by wise policy and a suitable environment. The liberal disdain of realism comes in different forms, most of them representing very durable ideas and powerful impulses. The most utopian, idealist and anti-realist position has been salvation through the UN. As Harries and other realists have long noted, liberals believe profoundly in the redeeming power of such institutions to transform reality. Realists, on the other hand, believe that institutions either reflect reality or have a limited capacity to change reality. Not that any of realism’s defining features has stopped liberals and climate enthusiasts alike from insisting that Paris heralds a move to a zero-carbon global economy. History is not on their side. International agreements neither guarantee practical outcomes nor necessarily hasten the process of harmonisation and political convergence. Test ban and anti-proliferation treaties have not stopped states bent on creating nuclear arsenals. In 1994, Ukraine forged a USA–UK agreement with Russia to protect its security in exchange for dismantling its nuclear stockpile. But two decades later, Moscow still invaded the Crimean Peninsula and meddled in eastern Ukraine to protect what the Kremlin deemed as its traditional sphere of influence. In 2017, 122 nations at the UN passed a resolution to ban nuclear weapons. That did not stop Kim Jong-Un from regularly testing missiles and nuclear reactors. Pyongyang’s defiance in the face of UN sanction reminds one of Walter Lippmann’s observation that the disarmament movement of the interwar era was ‘tragically successful in disarming the nations that believed in disarmament’. The leading liberal American journalist wrote that in 1943, when the illusions of disarmament had been revealed by a world war that would kill about 50 million people. The 2015 UN climate treaty’s ambition is matched only by that of the Paris Peace Pact, often referred to as the Kellogg–Briand Pact (named after the US Secretary of State and French Foreign Minister). Signed by the UN’s forerunner, the League of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 519

23/10/18 12:45 PM

520

tom switzer

Nations, in 1928, the international agreement banned not just certain weapons but also war itself. Like the Versailles peace treaty of 1919 and the Paris climate accords of 2015, Kellogg–Briand attracted great international applause. (Even Japan and Germany were signatories.) However, the treaty went down in history as just another ineffectual attempt to bring peace to the world. Like the other treaties, Kellogg– Briand did not contain protocols for verification or compliance and neither does this new agreement. And like the League of Nations, the UN simply has no way of enforcing its decisions. The point here is that, for all the talk that international treaties lead to peace and harmony, they provide a false sense of security and order. In an anarchic world of sovereign states, nations will place their own interests before any ‘one-world’ idealism. The UN is not a moral arbiter nor is it an effective law-making body. The interests of its member states are too diverse. It is relevant as a forum where disputes and grievances are aired. But the agreements the UN reaches, even when they command broad support, are all too often violated when they clash with vital national interests. The climate-change challenge, far from altering the underlying reality of power politics, reaffirms it. While there may be a global problem, there are competing national interests, and each state calculates that the best arrangement is to do as little as possible in climate mitigation efforts, provided other nations do enough to solve the problem. The history of global efforts to reduce emissions is illustrative. Up until Paris, the record showed political grandstanding, ineffectual or ignored treaties and various disputes over how nations should bear the greatest burdens. This is not surprising. Burden-sharing, after all, is difficult to sell to a nation’s citizenry. If states take actions to reduce emissions while competitors do not, they would be at a relative economic disadvantage. In other words, climate diplomats see mainly burdens to bear rather than opportunities to share. That is why although politicians can talk grandly about fighting global warming, the exercise is meaningless without a mechanism to wield authority.

2. Donald Trump’s decision to pull the USA out of the Paris deal met howls of outrage. Critics believed that staying in the climate accords was cost-free but pulling out was not – an odd argument to make, given that climate mitigation supposedly means pricing fossil fuels out of existence. The President’s supporters saw things differently. In their judgement, Trump was simply protecting the national interest, primarily for two reasons. First, the Trump team believed the Paris agreement had allowed China and India, two of the three leading emitters, to increase their emissions as they see fit in pursuit of economic growth. Second, during the 2016 campaign, Trump pledged to roll back excessive and harmful rules that cost jobs and increase energy prices. For the governing Republicans and even many Democrats, domestic energy production, especially natural gas and oil, is imperative to reviving growth and lifting wages. For Trump in particular, cheaper carbon energy was a way to bring manufacturing back to America.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 520

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the environment

521

In the USA, the Senate is required to ratify international treaties by a two-thirds majority. Yet Trump’s predecessor Barack Obama joined Paris without its consent because he knew the pact would be overwhelmingly defeated. (In 1997, the Senate voted 95–0 to reject the earlier Kyoto agreement.) Many US lawmakers believe that although Paris is a toothless treaty, it would have been used in US courts to provide legal justification for Obama-era regulations. The domestic and global response to Trump’s decision was hostile but he reflected widespread domestic sentiments. In any case, US carbon emissions are coming down – some say faster than in much of Europe – thanks primarily to the shale ‘fracking’ revolution (more later). Some analysts say that, with Washington’s withdrawal from the UN climate accords, it is China and India that are now leading international efforts to decarbonise the planet. As the New York Times (2017) editorialised, ‘Both countries have greatly accelerated their investment in cost-effective, renewable energy sources – and reduced their reliance on fossil fuels.’ It is true that both nation’s leaders made big announcements at Paris, but the world’s number one and number three emitters will not sacrifice economic growth for climate change; they are still rapidly industrialising and primarily rely on carbon energy to fuel their economic expansions. According to a report published by the London-based Global Warming Policy Foundation, ‘With China’s economic growth faltering, the last thing the Communist Party wants is to hobble its economy further by curtailing the use of fossil fuels upon which its economy depends.’ Patricia Adams, writing in ‘The Truth About China’, says, ‘A major cutback in fossil fuels use represents an existential threat to the Communist Party’s rule. It simply isn’t going to happen’ (Adams 2015). That is why the Chinese government, according to the Institute for Energy Research (2016), will spend ‘tens of billions of dollars’ in building new thermal coal plants over the next two years. At the same time, wind power accounts for less than 4 per cent of power generated in 2016, and solar barely 1 per cent. All that China will commit to, Adams argues, is to continue to improve the energy efficiency of its economy as it grows – a goal it has long pursued. It only says it will start reducing emissions in 2030. On the eve of the Paris summit, Beijing revealed that it had burned 17 per cent more coal per year than it had formally disclosed. In the two years since the agreement, it has been revealed that China’s energy companies will make up nearly half of the new coal generation expected to go online in the next decade. According to the New York Times on 1 July 2017, these Chinese companies ‘are building or planning to build more than 700 new coal plants at home and around the world, some in countries that today burn little or no coal’ (Tabuchi 2017). The new plants would expand the world’s coal-fired power capacity by 43 per cent. To the extent that these trends are accurate, it suggests that China’s emissions will continue to escalate steadily. In that case, China is in no position to lead efforts to green the planet. Nor is India, the third largest emitter after China and the USA. There is no question that the Modi government has signalled a new willingness to reduce India’s carbon footprint. But caution is justified. Delhi has not agreed to cap or cut its emissions outright. According to Reuters (2016), India is building a ‘large pipeline of coal-fired power plants’. Shortly after the Paris summit, the world’s largest coal producer, the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 521

23/10/18 12:45 PM

522

tom switzer

state-owned Coal India Ltd, confirmed that coal production would double in the next decade. Why? Because millions of Indians still live in the dark, carbon remains the cheapest source of energy to reduce poverty, and their leaders, notwithstanding their rhetoric, are unwilling to accept anything that depresses growth. India reflects the prevailing attitudes of the developing world. Pope Francis is among leading world figures to attribute escalating carbon emissions to the growth and consumption among rich nations. In fact, it is the countries that do not believe to the Organisation for Economic Co-operation and Development (OECD) that have accounted for about 58 per cent of global greenhouse emissions in recent years, and that share will escalate in coming decades. To say it again: it is no wonder that their leaders have different priorities: they want to expand their economies and reduce poverty, and the cheapest way of doing so, at least for the foreseeable future, is via carbon energy. According to the International Energy Agency (2017), Southeast Asian coal demand will triple for at least two decades. And although the World Bank may disinvest in the coal industry, the new China-led Asian Infrastructure Investment Bank – which includes many Western states, such as Britain, France, Germany and Australia – will fill the void. Liberals hail the global climate fund, where rich nations foot the bill – $100 billion a year from 2020 onwards – for climate-mitigation efforts in the developing world. The logic here is that non-OECD states demand that the developed world live up to its commitments not just to make deeper cuts to emissions, but also to provide financial and technological subsidies to the developing world. However, the developed world states are highly reluctant to meet these non-binding obligations. In 2015, for instance, the developed world raised less than $1 billion. It is also far from clear where the aid will go and on what conditions. Even with the US part of the climate accords, it was far from clear how a climate-sceptic Congress would contribute the lion’s share. It is now virtually non-existent, given Trump’s decision to withdraw from Paris and instead ‘use the money to fix America’s water and environmental infrastructure’, as his election campaign set out in 2016. Imagine an American politician asking voters to pay higher taxes so Uncle Sam can help China become energy-efficient and more economically competitive. Meanwhile, neither China nor India is in a position to replace the financial incentives Washington had originally offered the smaller nations for climate mitigation. The conventional wisdom always stresses the benefits of decarbonisation. It rarely acknowledges the costs. It was (of all people) then British Prime Minister Tony Blair who had a grip on reality in 2005 when he warned, ‘The blunt truth about the politics of climate change is that no country will want to sacrifice its economy in order to meet this challenge’ (Adam 2005). That means that, although many states say they will try to reduce emissions, they will not do so at a rate that threatens their prosperity or gives their competitor an unfair market advantage. In other words, there is no appetite for the kinds of energy tax and carbon restriction that will make meaningful change in global temperatures. Climateers treat catastrophic global warming as established fact, but climate sensitivity still appears to be at the low end of the IPCC’s range. One can recognise that the rise in carbon dioxide coincides with (moderate) warming and still be sceptical of the

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 522

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the environment

523

more alarmist predictions. Although the IPCC models in the 1990s predicted that huge increases in global temperatures would correspond with the 25 per cent rise in carbon emissions since 2000, there has been virtually a hiatus in warming in the past fifteen or so years. This is a widely held view among many distinguished climate scientists, such as the Massachusetts Institute of Technology (MIT)’s Richard Lindzen, Georgia Tech’s Judith Curry, Princeton’s William Happer, University of Alabama’s Roy Spencer and the world-acclaimed physicist Freeman Dyson. According to Professor Lindzen, ‘Model projections have almost all exceeded observations. Even if all the observed warming were due to greenhouse emissions, it would still point to low sensitivity’ (Lindzen and Choi 2009). Meanwhile, no policy consensus exists. Indeed, it is striking that policy-makers across the globe advocate quite different ways of going about climate mitigation – such as an emissions trading scheme, a carbon tax and nuclear energy – which indicates less than unanimity among the climate enthusiasts themselves. Failure to reach a policy consensus on how to slash carbon emissions begs the questions: how would the developed and developing nations alike establish any kind of binding global consensus on tackling climate change? And how would the world agree to an enforceable and verifiable treaty to slash emissions on the scale that the UN’s IPCC demands? Some climate activists, such as the Canadian author Naomi Klein (2014), openly admit that their objective is to use climate change as a means of undermining, perhaps abandoning capitalism. If they were to succeed, this would not only be economically very damaging but – since history shows that capitalism is the best engine we know for lifting people out of poverty – it would entrench poverty, which many would rightly consider immoral and wicked. For one to find activists’ argument persuasive, however, it is necessary to find acceptable – and conceivable – the proposal that people would give up their freedom and prosperity to avoid global warming. Yet that agenda stands no chance of gaining widespread public support. From US public support for shale gas to European frustration with rising green energy costs to the developing world’s addiction to coal, voters have little stomach for more government redistribution and control of the economy in the name of decarbonising the planet. Take Australia. At the 2010 and 2013 federal elections, both the centre-left Labor government and centre-right coalition parties opposed a carbon tax. In 2010, Prime Minister Julia Gillard even proposed an ill-fated citizens’ assembly to talk about climate science and she hardly mentioned the subject during that year’s election campaign. All the polls showed a changing political climate following the global financial crisis and the failure to reach a binding climate deal at the Copenhagen summit in 2009, so much so that Tony Abbott’s victory in 2013 was based primarily on his pledge to repeal the widely unpopular carbon tax that Labor had introduced, notwithstanding election promises to the contrary. The Australian experience showed that command-and-control mechanisms lack broad public support and amount to lost jobs, lower growth and higher prices up and down the energy chain. It is also worth noting that Australia’s total emissions are exceeded by just the annual increase in China’s. And at this stage at least, none of the renewable energy sources is as remotely efficient, reliable and cheap as carbon.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 523

23/10/18 12:45 PM

524

tom switzer

3. The cold, hard reality is that the world will continue to struggle to embrace a genuinely collective and effective approach to climate change. Notwithstanding all the talk that globalisation has falsified power politics, nation-states do not act on the basis of what they perceive to be the goodwill, good intentions or moral purity of other nations. They act on the basis of defending and promoting the national interest. What may make sense for a developed country in Europe does not work for a developing one in Asia eager to expand its economy and lift its people out of poverty. One of the consequences of living in a multipolar world, moreover, is that more groups have effective veto power over collective action. This new pluralistic world has given rise to what the New York Times columnist David Brooks (2008) has called globo-sclerosis – an inability to solve problem after problem. ‘In a de-centered world,’ he argues, ‘all it takes is a few well-placed parochial interests to bring a vast global process tumbling down.’ That is precisely what happened at the Copenhagen climate talks in 2009 when the Chinese and Indian delegations led efforts to scuttle the US–European attempts to replace the Kyoto Treaty of 1997. Climate-change mitigation reflects a widely held view but acting on it, as opposed to merely feeling virtuous, is a complicated and delicate business: one that involves acceptance of not just higher prices across the energy chain and radical changes to our way of life but also a genuinely global response. But there is no way to referee disagreements among competing nations because – as realists have long argued – the UN lacks the authority to address problems like climate change satisfactorily. Given these realities, what now? Is there a plan B? Let me suggest a more realistic strategy, advocated by Lord Nigel Lawson, the former British Energy Secretary and Chancellor of the Exchequer (Lawson 2008; Lawson 2015): that is, jettison the UN’s Paris-style folly, abandon the highly expensive and counterproductive policy of decarbonising the global economy, and do what humankind has always done – adapt to whatever changes in temperature may arise in the future. Beyond adaptation, Lawson suggests, a policy response could involve more public spending on technological research and development in energy, adaptation and geoengineering. As nations grow richer and with the advantages of modern technology, we will better handle any damage wrought by nature. Natural resources are limited but ideas and innovation are not. The spread of capitalism has meant healthier and longer lives. It also holds the best hope of a greener planet. After all, higher rates of economic growth will help enable nations, especially poorer ones, to adapt to environmental challenges. What will also help is entrepreneurial spirit. Think of the technological revolution – fracking – in hydraulic fracturing and horizontal drilling, which allows the USA to extract gas and oil from shale reserves. Although scientists have long been aware of the huge reserves, it was not until relatively recently that they found a way to extract them economically. Shale gas produces roughly half the emissions per kilowatt hour that coal does. Climate activists acknowledge lower US emissions of recent times but attribute the decline to lower growth since the great recession of 2008–9, not shale gas. Never mind that the economic downturn both was temporary and spread throughout the Western world. Moreover, the levelling-off of carbon emissions and sharp decline in emissions

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 524

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the environment

525

per head are peculiar to the USA. It is only in North America that there has been a dramatic shift in electricity generation from coal to gas, and this is entirely due to the shale revolution. A policy of adaptation and innovation, by itself, is not likely to resonate with liberals and climate enthusiasts. But it is a better alternative to economically crippling policies, futile grand gestures and high-profile climate-change summits and conventions when there is no global or policy consensus whatsoever. Whatever evolution toward a lower-carbon energy system takes, it is fair bet that it will be driven by technology and invocation, not a global treaty of carbon regulations.

4. Statecraft is simple, as long as the appearance of success matters more than results. Such a worldview appeared to be the price of victory at the UN climate conference in 2015. But the Paris accords were futile: neither legally binding enough to be enforceable and verifiable, nor of sufficient scale to make a difference to climate change. The point here is an old one, brilliantly encapsulated by political realists in general and Niebuhr in particular, about the utopianism of liberal internationalists. The selfishness of nations, he argued, is proverbial. Unless politicians and policy-makers recognise that we still live in a world of sovereign nation-states with competing interests – and that, as Niebuhr (2013 [1932]: 110) once observed, ‘the prestige of the international community is not great enough . . . to achieve a communal spirit sufficiently unified, to discipline recalcitrant nations’ – they are bound to be disappointed by the world’s failure to decarbonise the planet.

Bibliography Adam, David (2005), ‘Blair signals shift over climate change’, The Guardian, 2 November. Adams, Patricia (2015), ‘The truth about China: Why Beijing will resist demands for abatements’, The Global Warming Policy Foundation Report 19, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Australian Broadcasting Corporation (2015), ‘India warns coal consumption to double in coming years’, ABC Radio AM, 18 December. Brooks, David (2008), ‘Missing Dean Acheson’, New York Times, 1 August. Friedman, Thomas (2015), ‘Paris climate accord is a big, big deal’, New York Times, 16 December. Gillis, Justin (2015), ‘James Hansen, climate scientist turned activist, criticizes Paris talks’, New York Times, 2 December, available at (last accessed 22 June 2018). Harries, Owen (1995), ‘Realism in a new era’, Quadrant, April. Herz, John (1951), Political Realism and Political Idealism, Chicago: Chicago University Press. Institute for Energy Research (2016), ‘China still building coal plants, despite its lower coal consumption’, 20 June, available at (last accessed 21 June 2018). International Energy Agency (2017), Southeast Asia Energy Outlook, Paris: IEA. Klein, Naomi (2014), This Changes Everything: Capitalism vs. The Climate, New York: Simon & Schuster.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 525

23/10/18 12:45 PM

526

tom switzer

Lawson, Nigel (2008), An Appeal to Reason: A Cool Look at Global Warming, London: Overlook Duckworth. Lawson, Nigel (2015), ‘New climate deal faces hurdles’, interview with Tom Switzer, ABC Radio National’s Between the Lines, 21 May. Lewis, Nicholas and Curry, Judith (2014), ‘The implications for climate sensitivity of AR5 forcing and heat uptake estimates’, Climate Dynamics, September. Lindzen, Richard and Yong-Sang Choi (2009), ‘On the observational determination of climate sensitivity and its implications’, Geophysical Research Letters, vol. 36, p. L16705. Lippmann, Walter (1943), US Foreign Policy: Shield of the Republic, Boston: Little, Brown. Lomborg, Bjorn (2015), ‘Impact of current climate proposals’, Global Policy, 9 November. Milman, Oliver (2015), ‘James Hansen, father of climate change awareness, calls Paris talks “a fraud”’, The Guardian, 14 December, available at (last accessed 21 June 2018). Monbiot, George (2015), ‘A turning point for the climate or a disaster? Michael Brune vs. George Monbiot on the Paris Accord’, Democracy Now, 14 December, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Moomaw, William R. (2013), ‘Can the international treaty system address climate change?’, The Fletcher Forum of World Affairs, Winter. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1946), Scientific Man vs. Power Politics, London: Latimer House. Morgenthau, Hans J. (1948), Politics Among Nations: The Struggle for Power and Peace, New York: McGraw Hill. New York Times (2017), Editorial, ‘China and India make big strides on climate change’, 22 May. Niebuhr, Reinhold (2013) [1932], Moral Man and Immoral Society: A Study in Ethics and Politics, with a new foreword by Cornel West, Louisville, KY: Westminster John Knox Press. Niebuhr, Reinhold (1941), The Nature and Destiny of Man, Volume 1: Human Nature, London: Nisbet. Obama, Barack (2015), ‘Statement by the President on the Paris Climate Agreement’, 12 December, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Potter, Ben (2015), ‘Australia’s coal exports set to rise as Southeast Asia demand surges’, Australian Financial Review, 13 October. Reuters (2016), ‘Coal prices rise on output cuts, strong demand in emerging Asia’, 28 June. Schuett, Robert (2010), Political Realism, Freud, and Human Nature in International Relations, Palgrave: New York. Spencer, Roy and William Braswell (2011), ‘On the misdiagnosis of surface temperature feedbacks from variations in Earth’s radiant energy balance’, Remote Sensing, vol. 3, pp. 1603–13. Switzer, Tom (2010), ‘The climate is changing: The rise of Tony Abbott is part of a worldwide reconsideration of the costs of cap-and-trade’, Wall Street Journal Asia, 14 January. Switzer, Tom (2014), ‘Australia’s carbon tax message’, Wall Street Journal Asia, 18 July. Switzer, Tom (2015), ‘Paris deal a triumph of hope over facts’, Sydney Morning Herald, 29 December. Switzer, Tom (2017), ‘Why the world can’t give up its nuclear weapons?’, Sydney Morning Herald, 2 October. Tabuchi, Hiroko (2017), ‘As Beijing joins climate fight, Chinese companies build coal plants’, New York Times, 1 July, available at (last accessed 21 June 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 526

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the environment

527

Trump, Donald (2016), ‘Environmental 2016 election statement’, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Vidal, John, Suzanne Goldenberg and Lenore Taylor (2015), ‘How the historic Paris deal over climate change was finally agreed’, The Observer (UK), 14 December. Wall Street Journal (2017a), Editorial, ‘Paris climate discord’, 1 June. Wall Street Journal (2017b), Editorial, ‘Trump bids Paris adieu’, 2 June. Wall Street Journal (2017c), Editorial, ‘Lessons of the energy export boom’, 16 June. Wall Street Journal (2017b), Editorial, ‘Coal makes a comeback’, 17 August. Washington Post (2015), Editorial, ‘The world’s collective pledge’, 13 December.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 527

23/10/18 12:45 PM

42 Political Realism and the Internet New networks of power Richard Forno

Chapter Overview

T

echnological developments such as the internet, smartphones and social media offer individuals and organisations alike the power to develop, strengthen and/or exploit common interests and group capabilities through shared community participation. But through this process and these technologies, communities can also become selectively informed, intensely fragmented and, ultimately, at odds with each other. The 2016 US presidential election offered a global glimpse of such effects upon both Western democratic political processes and the foundations of society more broadly. This chapter explores the nature of power within the modern networked society. By situating the discussion within this decentralised information environment, it examines how the sources of social authority and political power – in other words, the capacity to create widepread tangible outcomes – have become flattened, with new sources of meaningful social influence arising at the network’s edges – a situation which the author presents as the ‘authorisation-availability’ dynamic regarding the flow of networked information. Using two examples from internet history, he discusses how these network-level entities challenge existing sources of social and political power and create a conflicting cycle of outcomes as the old power paradigms are challenged. Ultimately, the author warns that, despite the potential for dramatic shifts or upheavals in the application of social power through decentralised networks and technological developments – which remains a cherished Gibson-esque cyberpunk notion, radical shifts in the balance of power in society are possible but not assured; however, a constant tension remains between the actors involved. *

*

*

Technological advancements, from the telegraph and the telephone to the internet and social media, continue to serve as useful tools for government entities, as well as politicians, their supporters and lobbyists, and individual citizens. They allow for the expression of views and the planning or conduct of political action. While the so-called ‘Dot Com Revolution’ of the late 1990s introduced global, easy-to-use communication capabilities to the public that once were possessed only by governments and large corporations, the controversial American presidential election of 2016 served as a

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 528

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the internet

529

clear demonstration of the potential of such internet-centric technologies to influence – though some might say determine – the outcome of political processes and to craft assorted political realities. This means that such powers as were once maintained and exclusively wielded by governments, militaries and large media companies have become decentralised, so that individuals and unstructured groups now have the ability to create, collect, analyse and distribute information and knowledge in ways that rival, if not surpass, the traditional sources of knowledge-power, information distribution and social, legal and political authority. Much continues to be written about the ‘networked society’ and how information technologies bridge the proverbial ‘tyranny of distance’ to bring the world closer together, to craft communities and to foster collective action. Indeed, politics and power are functions of society and human nature, just as the possible applications of technology are determined not by the existence of the technology itself but by the intent of its human users. Therefore, this chapter will explore some of the consequences of internet (‘cyber’) capabilities vis-à-vis the question of power and society. Specifically, it will discuss the relationship of social authority and political power to internet technologies and the resulting effect upon the flows of internetbased information. Presuming that ‘knowledge is power’, it will discuss how such technologies can foster greater global public information flows that can lead to shifts in power and influence vis-à-vis their traditional sources: not just once, but in an ongoing and accelerating manner. However, before discussing these issues, a brief introduction must be made of some of the technical aspects of the internet that facilitate these outcomes.

The Architecture of Decentralised Information What is today called the internet can be traced back to the Cold War era of the midtwentieth century and a desire by the USA to develop a network for military command and control that could survive a nuclear exchange with the Soviet Union (Abbate 1999; Leiner et al. 2003). At that time, engineers believed that such a network had to be decentralised so as to offer adversaries no single point of vulnerability, no single target, to disrupt, degrade or destroy its communications links during wartime. Unlike traditional communications networks that required a dedicated point-topoint connection for each message exchanged, this survivable network environment was developed under the principle of distributed communications that allowed messages transiting its network to flow across different pathways simultaneously to reach their ultimate destinations. A key benefit of this technique for message handling was that a communications path between individual network nodes did not require a continuous network line to remain open; once a message transited a pair of nodes, the path was released to accept other messages. It was this feature of network and message resiliency that appealed to engineers as they refined their designs for an information infrastructure that could survive a nuclear war even if individual nodes were destroyed or otherwise unreachable. It would also go on to define one of the key social consequences of the internet’s use in contemporary society. Indeed, a common refrain during the early days of the commercial internet was that ‘the network routes around obstacles’.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 529

23/10/18 12:45 PM

530

richard forno

In fact, it was in these early days of the Advanced Research Projects Agency Network (ARPANET) that e-mail distribution lists (listservs) were invented that allowed a single user to broadcast messages to multiple other network nodes with ease, thereby enabling the individual network user to become their own publisher of information to others. As Abbate (1999) notes in her seminal work on the history of the internet, ‘email laid the groundwork for creating virtual communities throughout the network’ and people would come to see the ARPANET ‘not as a computing system but a communications system’. Of particular significance is the realisation that the evolution of the internet from its original purpose of a time-sharing resource (ARPANET) to one whose primary function was – and remains – communications, demonstrates how technology can evolve in manners far different from its designers’ original intentions, the only limitations on the extent of this evolution being how innovative its users are and how the technology itself is embraced. Ultimately, ARPANET evolved into the present-day internet, complete with networked personal computers, mobile devices, social media, virtual private networking, peer-to-peer communications and more, serving as a dominant resource for public interaction around the world.

The Authorisation–Availability Dynamic In his early writings on information flows, Manuel Castells suggests that networks and networking may provide the impetus for radical change in the traditional notions of society, social organisation and sources of social power (Castells 2000). To Castells, the networked environment is a ‘space of flows’, where capital, information and social organisations exist and evolve. Because such networks are not constrained by geographical locations and rigid processes, he suggests that these networked flows contribute to the ‘destruction of human experience’, in that, among other things, the ability to achieve influence and authority over others is separated from the traditional sources of political power. In discussing the effect of such flows on the nation-state and the international political system, and the potential for redefining the sources of authority and influence within them, Castells (1996) warns that ‘nation states will survive, but not so their sovereignty’. More specifically, he writes that the network enterprise is ‘that specific form of enterprise whose system of means is constituted by the intersection of autonomous systems of goals’. If one presumes that information and knowledge are used as tools to gain and maintain political power in society, two factors regarding the networking of information come to mind. The first influence on network flows relates to the original release of owned information. This can exist in the form of granting or withholding authorisation for others to access information by its owner(s) on either a partial or a complete basis or until certain conditions have been met. For example, an e-book publisher may embargo the sale of a new novel until a certain date and time as part of its worldwide marketing campaign – but selectively release advance excerpts to generate sales interest. Or, a mobile service company may choose to withhold the public release of information pertaining to its quality of service, believing that such information is proprietary and could provide marketplace competitors with an advantage in challenging it to gain customers. Similarly, a software manufacturer may allow third parties to

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 530

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the internet

531

have detailed technical access to its product information or programming interfaces to enable them to build complementary products yet withhold such access from the general public. At a national or political level, governments often withhold (also called ‘classify’) the disclosure of information (such as military plans or diplomatic initiatives) to protect their national secrets, limiting access only to those individuals who are cleared (that is, approved) to access that information. Of course, in other cases, information owners may give authorisation for the free release of their owned information without any restrictions or conditions whatsoever – such as a published government study or the advance book excerpts mentioned earlier. In other words, the decision to grant or withhold the release of information is based on the motivations and perceptions of the information owner. However, once information is released, how it exists and flows within that community must also be considered. For example, although a company may restrict the public disclosure of certain information, that information may become publicly available through a disgruntled employee or corporate whistleblower – at which point, the information has moved beyond the company’s boundary and away from an area under the company’s easy ability to control or influence. Some internet websites, such as Wikileaks.Org, specialise in and are infamous for providing an internet resource for such information to exist and to be made available to the general public which is not easily restricted or disabled by information owners. Conversely, information may exist and be available in an unrestricted form, but this fact alone will not guarantee its flow across the network if public attention is not first drawn to its presence. Consider the amateur playwright who places a script on the public portion of his internet website. Although his act of making the script public grants the internet population the ability to access his product, if he does not take steps to advertise his website and attract attention from the internet population, he is not enabling his resource – his script – for wider networked flows and reaching its desired target audience. In a similar way, data or knowledge – such as scientific data or financial reporting materials – may be uploaded into a public repository or library for anyone to access. Therefore, information ‘availability’ refers not to the granting or withholding of authorisations to access information, but rather to the sheer reality that such information exists on the public network and users are able to obtain it. Although the owner of an information resource may exercise control over it and grant authorisation for its use within its organisational boundary – such as a company or agency network or facility – once that information moves beyond that organisation’s legal or technical ability to control it (even only briefly), the source organisation’s ability to influence its flow across a network or grant authorisations for its use can then be severely, if not hopelessly, limited. The latter is especially true when discoveries are made about privately owned information by third parties such as Wikileaks, commercial media, or independent entities not easily influenced or coerced by information owners to restrict or remove that knowledge from public view. As such, any discussion of information and knowledge flows on the internet would be incomplete without mentioning the phenomenon unofficially named the ‘Streisand Effect’ – namely, when a request to restrict the flow of information already existing on the network becomes publicly known, such as through a publicised legal takedown

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 531

23/10/18 12:45 PM

532

richard forno

order or request by a government entity to remove something from the public internet (Arthur 2009). This request, once it becomes known, tends to generate increased interest in that information from others, including those with no previous interest in the information in question and who are simply curious. Over the years, in both political and commercial spheres, there have been many high-profile cases in which news of the attempted restriction of information flows on the internet has spawned a network response in protest that then went on to propel the information even further into public view – most notably, in cases where several internet users believed they were witness to or victims of abusive applications of commercial intellectual property laws. More recently, in late 2016, fearing the deletion of troves of government scientific research data following a series of national victories by perceived anti-science, anti-knowledge political parties, American researchers began a prolonged and wide-reaching effort to mirror publicly available government data in third-party systems, since that information was believed to run contrary to the incoming administration’s partisan ideology and could be targeted.

Power Challenged In examining these two influences upon the flow of information and knowledge in society, several recurring conditions of controversy between network participants become evident. Arquilla and Ronfeldt (1997) argue that ‘the information revolution . . . disrupts and erodes the hierarchies around which institutions of power and authority are normally designed. It diffuses and redistributes power, often to the benefit of what may be considered weaker, smaller actors.’ Although physical resource owners have maintained dominant control over their properties through traditional methods of tangible property ownership, the internet has challenged, if not changed, the paradigm of how new, information-based properties (such as movies, music, embarrassing videos, leaked political information and more) are controlled. It presents new opportunities for conflict between information owners and those who are able to influence those properties, and it generates new methods and codes of conduct that are largely determined and driven by social expectations. Indeed, this suggests questions over how, or if, information ever can be constrained completely by its owners in a manner similar to the ownership of physical resources. By extension, this can challenge the viability and effectiveness of traditional social organisations (such as governments, corporations or industry cartels) that are based on rigid social hierarchies of resource control and community authority. From an anthropological perspective, Rose (1999) has observed how the internet has helped to divide large population blocks in society into smaller, niche elements that in turn become the building blocks for new flows and relationships. All of this is to say that the internet has helped to trigger bottom-up changes to the traditional methods of social interaction and authority. In other words, networks, as a social and technological construct, can present an opportunity to challenge the traditional centres of social authority, while new information flows can go on to lead to the development of new networks and forms of interaction altogether. A similar sentiment is expressed by Dyer-Witheford (1999), who equates these networks with the proliferation of fringe groups, minorities and other such movements, eager to appropriate these new methods

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 532

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the internet

533

and mechanisms that so clearly lie outside the norms of traditional social organisation and authority. In such cases, information-based resources, news, products or knowledge are distributed in a complex and decentralised fashion, rather than exclusively in the vertical, top-down method that has been favoured by the traditional corporate, social and political powers. Indeed, the rise and purported public acceptance of alternative ‘news’ sources, so-called ‘alternative facts’, and information repeated within partisan echo chambers during the 2016 American presidential election, demonstrate the power and speed of this ‘network effect’ as it unfolds between participants possessed of varying degrees of prominence, legitimacy and contextual understanding. Just as the internet’s design allows it to accommodate an increasing user population along with new technologies to create or exchange information, those within a networked social environment can utilise innovative technology to form new networks, change older ones or evolve their current network into something newer to meet their snowballing information-based needs. Arquilla and Ronfeldt (2001) consider this to be an example of ‘networks fighting networks’ and something that John Urry (2004) identifies as the difference between the ‘egalitarian web’ and an ‘aristocratic pattern’. Urry notes that the latter is an attempt by the power centres in a given network to attempt to manage the unfolding complexity and expand their own ability to influence the network through the traditional methods of top-down influence. However, we are seeing a number of examples now in which the design of the network itself precludes this from occurring. Indeed, as mentioned earlier, during the 2016 American elections, diverse political communities embraced the capabilities of decentralised networks – both technological and social – to further their agendas in the face of established regimes of social authority and information, such as the mainstream media and academia. Notwithstanding all of this, we must remain cognisant of the fact that, while networks are inseparable from hierarchies and sources of power, and may lead to increasing gaps between social authorities and individuals, there remains a possibility that the changes to society that they bring about might actually reinforce the existing social organisations and their mechanisms of control. Notice that in everything we have discussed thus far, power has been at the forefront. The internet remains very much a ‘human’ technology. Its rapid effect upon society shows us that it is, in fact, mirroring and magnifying certain aspects of human nature which have been there all along. So far, this has been somewhat disguised by the fact that the standout examples of the internet’s new networks of power tend to feature the ‘old order’ being outwitted and outrun by the ‘new order’. But ‘power is power’, and if the internet and its networks are one of power’s major new sources and arenas, then we may simply be witnessing the old conflicts in their new, most public, dimension. Examples of two such conflicts – and their political consequences – are discussed next.

An Antagonism of Outcomes First, let us examine the failed attempt by the US government in 1993 to restrict from the rest of the world the distribution of a new and significantly stronger form of cryptography called Pretty Good Privacy (PGP). Phil Zimmerman, the creator of PGP, was pursued by federal law enforcement after copies of PGP began appearing on internet

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 533

23/10/18 12:45 PM

534

richard forno

newsgroups without Zimmerman first obtaining federal approval to ‘export’ (in other words, move beyond its national borders) technology that the US government considered a controlled military munition. By refusing to authorise the export of PGP, the government showed that it believed the widespread availability of PGP’s advanced encryption capabilities represented a significant danger to its ability to intercept electronic communications – particularly those of foreign countries. Underscoring this situation was the government’s belief that it could control the distribution of defencerelated information on the internet in the same manner as it could control the distribution of defence-related items used in the physical world, such as missiles, explosives or other weaponry: in the sense that we have an ‘item’ and we lock it away in a room that few – and only the proverbial ‘good guys’ – can access. However, soon after its initial release on the internet, the computer code for PGP appeared and was exchanged on an increasing number of internet sites around the world. As a result, a conflict between the issues of authorisation and availability became clear. Although the US government desired to restrict the distribution of strong encryption capabilities as part of its national security responsibilities, PGP was obtainable by anyone in the world connected to the internet. Furthermore, once the government began legal proceedings against Zimmerman for distributing PGP and openly tried to remove the software from public access, internet users around the world worked to keep PGP publicly available in the belief that such capabilities were necessary to foster greater personal privacy for global electronic communications – thus demonstrating the ‘Streisand effect’. Consequently, PGP remained outside of the US government’s ability to retrieve, suppress or otherwise restrict its distribution to others as part of its national security interests or desired policy. Anyone and everyone, everywhere, now had access to this software code, deemed a critical national security capability. This situation demonstrated to world governments and internet users alike that the internet and related communications technologies can make the traditional methods of restricting the widespread distribution of information, such as simply including it on a national list of prohibited items, obsolete. In the years following the PGP event, similar situations occurred when emerging technologies challenged government attempts to control the worldwide public distribution of other types of sensitive or restricted information, such as highly detailed satellite images from commercial companies, the location of nuclear power plants, government reports and documents, questionable personal videos and even commonly known scientific facts. In most cases, these actions were begun in the belief that information placed on the internet could be retroactively recalled or restricted (Card 2002). As recently as 2016, Western politicians continue offering speeches and legislative initiatives suggesting that keeping public knowledge out of view is a viable tool of security and a doable outcome. More so, some national governments still attempt to restrict, reclaim or remove from the internet items deemed controllable – such as the Thai government’s ongoing attempts to apply their lèsemajesté laws to ‘prohibit viewing’ (or even the deletion) of information it deems embarrassing for their citizens to see, regardless of where in the world they are or how they are accessing it (Moody 2017). The PGP example also provides insight into the distinctions between ‘knowhow’ and ‘know-that’, made by Gilbert Ryle (1946) and Karl Polanyi (1966) when describing information restrictions and social authority. While a government might

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 534

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the internet

535

wish to restrict the public distribution of strong encryption, encryption itself is a mathematical process. Unless it is able to restrict public know-how about complex algorithms and applied mathematics, or prohibit the human actions of research and enquiry, in reality, such restrictions never can be fully enforced. Even if the government creates its own secret encryption technology (that is, proprietary ‘know-that’), there can be no guarantee that researchers around the world could not, of their own volition and based on their own competencies, derive the ‘know-how’ behind that restricted information and either publicise it anyway or develop their own technologies. Again, it is quite difficult to criminalise the discovery or application of knowledge, both on the internet and in human society. Thus, in terms of power and political realism regarding cyber issues and technology, the PGP example shows that situations can develop in which information is exchanged, even when others might prefer it be restricted. Our second example demonstrating the authorisation-availability dynamic and the resulting shift in power outcomes relates to attempts to constrain the public knowledge of technology ‘know-how’ from the entertainment domain. In the late 1990s, to prevent emerging internet technologies from facilitating the global piracy of digital movies and music, the entertainment industry developed technical methods (known as digital rights management, or DRM) to ensure that each digital file (music or movies) purchased could be played only on a finite number of devices or could not be copied (that is, pirated) to others unless it received additional payments for those copies. DRM was intended to make these non-rivalrous digital items rivalrous – and therefore, to try to make their distribution controllable by their owners in an attempt to protect their rights of ownership in this new digital marketplace. Nevertheless, customers still viewed digital music and movies they had purchased as ‘theirs’ and sought methods to use and enjoy these digital items in the same manner as they did with music obtained from physical media such as records and compact discs: all despite the music industry’s reluctance to embrace internet technologies such as MP3 formats or streaming. Further, DRM was envisioned by entertainment companies as a way to maintain their marketplace role as the primary purveyors and distributors of entertainment media – and thus preserve their top-down legitimacy in an increasingly decentralised customer and content-generation marketplace. In response, sites, services and products quickly emerged to facilitate the widespread distribution of digital entertainment products that were unencumbered by DRM and allowed customers to treat such products as ‘theirs’, even if legally they were not. If DRM was intended for use by rights owners to transform their nonrivalrous digital resources into rivalrous ones to protect their ownership rights in the internet era, the goal of services like Napster, Gnutella, LimeWire and other related services was to offer customers the ability – albeit illegally – to enjoy ‘their’ digital music at any time or anywhere by converting rivalrous digital resources into non-rivalrous ones. Many of these sites, technologies and platforms were based on a central published directory, by means of which users could search for and locate files. This also presented a single point of failure for the entertainment industry to target. Indeed, following several prolonged court battles, the entertainment industry managed to shut down many of these sites and services by targeting those central network directories and ‘nodes’.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 535

23/10/18 12:45 PM

536

richard forno

However, the internet user community’s response to the primary vulnerability of Napster’s centralised directory structure was swift and effective: namely, the development of the peer-to-peer product and network protocol BitTorrent, a network protocol that does not require a centralised directory to facilitate internet file-sharing activities and, subsequently, establishes an information-sharing environment that is difficult to restrict in any meaningful way. Consequently, digital property owners remain challenged by people who draw on BitTorrent-based technologies to obtain pirated products. More recently, and without making an assessment about the quality of information conveyed, social media services such as Facebook, YouTube and Twitter (allowing individuals to broadcast their views to a wide audience) and the rise to prominence of ‘alternative news organisations’ (employing partisan reporters to craft preplanned narratives that cater to a given audience that previously had felt marginalised by traditional media) likewise demonstrate the emergence of influential and authoritative platforms from out of the broader networked community that challenge the status quo of power in society. As with the nature of the internet described earlier, these niche groups from outside the traditional structure of social prominence ‘routed around’ obstacles in responding to external challenges and perceived user needs. This ability of a grassroots community to respond, of its own volition and expertise, to emerging needs that are not served by existing sources of community authority and influence can generate potential conflicts over questions of power, authority and/ or legitimacy in society – along with revealing new and evolving social norms and expectations regarding the use of technology by individuals. As evidenced in both the PGP and BitTorrent examples, the law traditionally, and often significantly, lags behind technological development and, as Arquilla and Ronfeldt (1997) note, sometimes ‘it takes a network to fight a network’. In other words, when one internet user or entity attempts to exert control over information through the application of assorted technical or political methods of restricting information exchange (such as through DRM or legislative/regulatory controls), other internet users may respond against such efforts by inventing new methods to enable that information exchange. The process tends to be cyclical in nature: for nearly every attempt made to constrain information exchanges, equal and opposing attempts are made to enable them. In describing this phenomenon as regards the dialectic of control in social systems, Giddens (1984) writes that such a cyclical dynamic is a constant and that ideas of ‘power’ within these social systems are the capacity of any of the conflicting entities to ‘achieve outcomes’ beneficial to their respective goals. In terms of DRM, when a given protection scheme is broken by third parties, a new one is introduced; it too is assessed and probably breached, and the cycle then repeats itself. Throughout this process, both ‘networks’ maintain some semblance of power – either de facto or de jure – or, sometimes, a shifting combination of both. These are two examples of how technology capabilities can influence political realities in society and disrupt existing or traditional sources of power and authority held by both government and commercial entities. But these are certainly not the only examples. The US government did not ‘own’ the rights to the public nature of the mathematics (that is, the mathematical algorithms) of PGP but had legal authority to control its public distribution in the name of the ‘public interest’ and under the rubric of protecting national security. However, that authority was challenged by those

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 536

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the internet

537

distributing that information over the internet, who believed that it was also in the public interest to have digital communications protected from government eavesdropping. Napster and subsequent concerns over DRM show how digital information can be distributed and used in ways not approved by its legal owner; they also demonstrate both the evolving perceptions of internet users about using technology and how the community can develop solutions to uncatered-for marketplace or user needs. Of course, in each example, the same outcomes might have been achieved without use of the internet or other ‘cyber’ technologies or capabilities, though not with the speed and ease which these resources offer. Nevertheless, despite the potential for networks to score these victories against the traditional paradigms of power and control, we must remember what we said earlier about their potential also to simply replicate the age-old balance of power. In other words, the internet offers radical new resources to both sides, but crucially, it does not change the sides and their ultimate goals.

Conclusion What does the internet have to do with political realism? In their discussion of the internet as a weapon in what they call ‘network-centric warfare’, Cebrowski and Garstka (1998) believed that the internet and its related technologies are the result of the co-evolution of economics, information technology and business processes, thereby representing a fundamental, disruptive change to the contemporary social fabric and its communications mechanisms. Although drawn from a military and national security perspective, the three elements espoused by Cebrowski and Garstka can now be transposed, or expanded, here into a description of the major impacts made upon social communication by the internet in the Western world, specifically: • the shift in focus from the platform to the network • the shift from viewing network participants as independent to viewing them as part of a continuously adapting ecosystem • the importance of making strategic choices to adapt or even survive in such changing ecosystems. Within networked environments, information exists in a nuanced and dynamic state, based upon how it may be exchanged (or flow). At times, this dynamic can enable networked entities (or individuals) to route information flows around assorted obstacles and allow information to be exchanged without the permission of its owner (such as the global distribution of PGP despite US government laws, or BitTorrent). And yet at other times, it may allow an information owner to exert new and potentially significant controls over those flows (such as new forms of attempted DRM on digital products). Networked technologies can both enable and constrain flows of information and knowledge Since the mid-1990s, the political reality of ‘cyber’ and the nature of internet technologies continue to demonstrate that these conflicts – both technical and political – are not easily addressed by any one entity or special interest. As observed by

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 537

23/10/18 12:45 PM

538

richard forno

Czerwinski (1996), at the same time as the world began embracing internet technologies during the 1990s, network-based systems evolved rapidly into a loosely coupled yet complex system – meaning that the new and chaotic behaviours of ‘networked life’ in turn generated their own new expectations of what should and should not be allowed. Today, it is clear how this has also resulted in a radical change to the concept of ‘society’ itself: that is to say, ‘society’ is fast becoming a globalised notion, synonymous with the borderless reach of the internet itself. For individuals, corporate leaders and political authorities hitherto comfortable with centralised hierarchies of command and control – with top-down executive fiat and state-based sovereignty – this new situation is threatening to change the very idea of the ‘powers that be’. Or perhaps not. As I have suggested throughout, despite the language of ‘sea-change’ and ‘paradigm-shift’ that the internet encourages, there is an argument that the entire phenomenon is still unfolding squarely within the traditional scheme of human life: that is to say, we still find that we are using the old language of ‘power’, ‘authority’, ‘control’, ‘security’, ‘rights’ and so on to describe the new reality. This would suggest that the internet owes its very success to its basic function of reproducing in bold new ways the unchanging dynamics of human nature in politics and international relations: that is, dynamics that were postulated (and feared) by classical realists such as Reinhold Niebuhr (1932) and Hans Morgenthau (1948). Whether it will, or could actually, go on to rewrite those dynamics is something that we will have to wait to see.

Bibliography Abbate, J. (1999), Inventing the Internet, Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Arquilla, J. and D. Ronfeldt (1997), ‘The advent of netwar’, in J. Arquilla and D. Ronfeldt (eds), In Athena’s Camp, Santa Monica: RAND Corporation, pp. 271–93. Arquilla, J. and D. Ronfeldt (2001), Networks and Netwars: The Future of Terror, Crime, and Militancy, Santa Monica: RAND Corporation. Arthur, C. (2009), ‘The Streisand effect: Secrecy in the digital age’, The Guardian., 19 March. Card, A. (2002), ‘Action to Safeguard Information Regarding Weapons of Mass Destruction and Other Sensitive Documents Related to Homeland Security’ [Memorandum], available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Castells, M. (1983), ‘Crisis, planning, and the quality of life: Managing the new historical relationships between space and society’, Society and Space, vol. 1, no. 1, pp. 3–21. Castells, M. (2000), The Rise of the Network Society; The Information Age: Economy, Society, and Culture, Cambridge, MA: Wiley-Blackwell. Cebrowski, A. and J. Garstka (1998), ‘Network-centric warfare: Its origin and future’, US Naval Institute Proceedings, vol. 124, no. 1. Czerwinski, T. (1996), ‘Command and control at the crossroads’, Parameters, Autumn, pp. 121–32. Dyer-Witheford, N. (1999), Cyber-Marx: Cycles and Circuits of Struggle in High Technology Capitalism, Chicago: University of Illinois Press. Giddens, A. (1984), The Constitution of Society, Berkeley: University of California Press. Leiner, B., V. Cerf, D. Clark, R. Kahn, L. Kleinrock, D. Lynch, J. Postel, L. Roberts and S. Wolff (2003), A Brief History of the Internet v.3.32 (revised 10 December), The Internet Society, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Moody, G. (2017), ‘Thai Government Forbids any Online Contact with Three Overseas Critics of the Monarchy’, TechDirt, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 538

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the internet

539

Morgenthau, Hans J. (1967) [1948], Politics among Nations, 4th edn, New York: Knopf. Niebuhr, Reinhold (1932), Moral Man and Immoral Society, London: Westminster John Knox. Polanyi, K. (1966), The Tacit Dimension, New York: Doubleday. Rose, N. (1999), Powers of Freedom: Reframing Political Thought, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Ryle, G. (1946), ‘Knowing how and knowing that’, Proceedings of the Aristotelian Society, no. 46, pp. 1–16. Urry, John (2004), ‘The “system” of automobility’, Theory, Culture and Society, vol. 21, nos 4–5, pp. 25–39. Zimmerman, P. (1996), ‘Testimony of Philip R. Zimmermann to the Subcommittee on Science, Technology, and Space of the US Senate Committee on Commerce, Science, and Transportation’, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 539

23/10/18 12:45 PM

43 Political Realism and Terrorism The logic of deterrence: Using mid-range theories to save political realism from itself Alex S. Wilner

Chapter Overview

T

errorism – and the violent non-state actors who use it – pose a conceptual problem for political realism. Despite the paradigm’s strength in untangling and interpreting the nature of power, conflict and war in international relations, realism has little to say about terrorism. Indeed, at times, it appears as though realism would rather dismiss terrorism altogether than find a way to accommodate and integrate the phenomenon into its conceptual and theoretical folds. This hesitancy is both illfounded and self-defeating. Terrorism is not just a passing phase; it is a permanent feature of contemporary security. And by conceding an inability to make sense of it, realism risks losing touch with the evolving nature of international relations, diminishing its explanatory power along the way. Lessons from deterrence theory – and the subfield of deterring terrorism, more specifically – provide the impetus for reimagining realism in an age of terrorism. The logic and practice of deterrence borrow heavily from realism. The way in which deterrence has been broadened and expanded in order to incorporate terrorism thus provides insights for realism itself. *

*

*

Perpetual warfare is not pretty. The USA has effectively been in a state of war with a variety of loosely associated militant organisations – most notably, al-Qaeda and its various allies, offshoots and offspring, including the Islamic State of Iraq and Syria (ISIS) – longer than it was at war with a variety of nation-states during the two world wars combined. The borders of this new war are hazy but also expansive. The USA and its allies have carried out military and other covert and intelligence operations in support of their larger counterterrorism effort in over two dozen states, from Syria and Iraq, to Libya, Pakistan, Nigeria, Niger and the Philippines. And of course, terrorist attacks operationally and inspirationally linked to al-Qaeda’s expansive global network occur in dozens of countries a year. The direct cost of the war effort for the USA is in the trillions of dollars, though the global yearly economic impact of terrorism is magnitudes higher still (Blimes 2013: 62–5). The human cost to this conflict runs into the thousands of US military personal – and tens of thousands of allied military and police personal – along with hundreds of thousands of civilian casualties in

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 540

23/10/18 12:45 PM

terrorism

541

countries like Pakistan, Afghanistan, Iraq, Somalia and Yemen.1 Hundreds of thousands more people have likewise perished in terrorist attacks around the world since 2001.2 Politically, the war has outlived two, two-term US presidents, with a third recently inheriting, and expanding, the mantel for himself. And the war effort itself is marked by episodes of apparent success and failure, spanning the globe. For illustration of the former, France’s lightning intervention in Mali in January 2013 stopped cold a consortium of Islamists, tangentially linked to al-Qaeda’s branch in North Africa, from expanding their northern territorial conquests into southern Mali. While the conflict in Mali simmers on, the intervention was at least tactically successful. For evidence of the latter, turn to Iraq. US President Barack Obama’s January 2014 dismissal of ISIS, which he compared to a junior varsity basketball team to al-Qaeda’s more professional National Basketball Association (NBA) outfit, belies the fact that ISIS owed at least some of its early growth and expansion in the region to the void left by the withdrawal of US forces from Iraq in 2011 (Remnick 2014). In the same month that Obama panned ISIS, the group captured the Iraqi cities of Fallujah and Ramadi. Five months later, it captured Iraq’s second largest city, Mosul, effectively ushering in a new chapter in this evolving conflict. Since then, the ‘long war’ has morphed into the ‘forever war’ (Castner 2017; New York Times 2017). From an international relations (IR) perspective, how are scholars to interpret all of this? More specifically, how can realist propositions, assumptions and theories help us derive some contextual understanding of the evolving nature and function of terrorism in the twenty-first century? Realism might be best understood as a family of distinct but related theories sharing some common characteristics concerning the anarchic nature of the international system, the defining relevance of hard power, the centrality (and unitary characteristic) of state actors, the rationality imbedded in state behaviour, the relative insignificance of domestic characteristics, and the competitive and warprone nature of international interactions. Differences within the family exist – for instance, between structural, offensive, defensive and ‘motivational’ realism – but even then, theoretical divergence is a matter of degree.3 Despite its strength as a paradigm, and explanatory dominance in deciphering international relations, conflict and war, realism was blindsided by al-Qaeda’s stunning attack on the USA on 11 September 2001. Powerful, capable and violent non-state actors – including individuals, groups and organisations – are a challenge for realism (Snyder 2009). Al-Qaeda does not jive well with some core realist tenets. In his conversation with Harry Kreisler half a year after 9/11, John Mearsheimer, a dean of contemporary American realist scholarship, suggested that realism did not have ‘a whole heck of a lot . . . to say about terrorists . . . [or] about the causes of terrorism’. Rather, he went on, My theory and virtually all Realist theories don’t have much to say about transnational actors. However, there is no question that terrorism . . . will play itself out in the context of the international system. [T]herefore, all of the Realist logic about state behavior will have a significant effect on how the war on terrorism will be fought. (‘Conversation with History, John Mearsheimer’ 2002) At risk of pigeonholing scholars and scholarship into one or another paradigmatic camp, the realist response to terrorism largely echoed Mearsheimer’s estimation: it focused on how the USA would respond to transnational terrorism, and on how other

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 541

23/10/18 12:45 PM

542

alex s. wilner

states might interpret and react to America’s counterterrorism response.4 True to its form and function, however, realism has said relatively little about how terrorism relates to systemic anarchy, to the qualities of hard power, to notions of statehood, or to rational decision-making at other levels of analysis beyond the state.5 To explore these themes, this chapter proposes to work backwards, to summarise and distil the lessons from deterring terrorism – a newly emerging subfield of deterrence theory – as a way to highlight broader findings about the future of realism in an age of terrorism. Deterrence and realism have long been interconnected. In 1979, Robert Jervis, another dean of IR theory, went so far as to suggest that deterrence theory helped save realism from itself. ‘Deterrence theory’, he writes, ‘met the main criticisms of Realism – that is, that it was so vague as to accommodate almost all behavior and that it merely summarized what statesmen and even casual observers already knew.’ Jervis goes on: ‘For all its attraction, Realism had provided few explanations for puzzling behavior and had produced few leads for further research. In meeting these shortcomings, deterrence theory may have given Realism a new impetus’ (Jervis 1979: 290). This chapter proposes to update Jervis’s sentiment, applying lessons from deterring terrorism to contemporary realism. Deterring terrorism is a specific collection of mid-range theories conceptually anchored to realism and IR that none the less borrows insights from terrorism studies, intelligence studies and criminology. Applying the logic of deterrence to counterterrorism did not come naturally or easily. Growing pains persist (Wilner 2015a). But it is within these challenges that lessons for realism in an age of terrorism exist. The chapter is divided into two sections. The first section presents a summary of traditional deterrence theory and practice, and offers a description of the field’s historical evolution. The second section begins by discussing the current ‘fourth wave’ of deterrence scholarship, in which the logic of coercion and deterrence is applied to ‘rogue states’, terrorism, cyber security, and other unconventional threats like piracy and organised crime. That leads into a discussion of several lessons from the study of deterring terrorism that are most pertinent for thinking about realism within the context of terrorism more generally. These lessons highlight the parallel logic running through coercion and terrorism, the rationality of non-state violence, the state-like attributes of terrorists, the nature of non-state power and the feasibility of theoretical praxis.

Deterrence Theory: A Primer Few, if any, theoretical approaches – or family of approaches – within IR have as illustrative and longstanding a history than deterrence theory. At its very basic core, deterrence theory involves the use of threats to manipulate behaviour. At least two actors are included in this process: a defender who issues a threat in the hope of changing another’s behaviour, and a challenger who internalises the threat and changes its behaviour. Threats of punishment and retaliation, along with promises to deny an adversary the fruits of its labour or to frustrate its path towards success, can, at times and under the right conditions, translate into a perceptual cost, which, when properly understood and internalised by an adversary, changes its behaviour as a result. Deterrence by punishment and deterrence by denial play upon an actor’s cost–benefit calculus. A defender can use either process to influence a challenger to forgo an unwanted action, in the case of deterrence, or to prompt a challenger to pursue a desired action, in the case of

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 542

23/10/18 12:45 PM

terrorism

543

compellence. In both cases, the logic functions by playing upon an adversary’s ‘strategic choices’, such that it chooses to act in a particular way, not because it must act in a particular way (Freedman 2004: 26). The distinction here is between defeating, or crushing, an adversary such that it has no alternative options available to it – better known as victory – and deterring an adversary such that its change in behaviour is but one choice of many feasible alternatives available to it (Wilner 2015a: 451–7). From these fundamental building blocks, dozens of theoretical tweaks and conceptual iterations have been proposed over the past several decades, greatly expanding the scope of the field. For illustration, consider these examples. Central deterrence – which protects one’s own assets or territory – is pitted against extended and triadic deterrence – which protects the assets or territory of a proxy, partner or ally. Broad deterrence – which seeks to deter all aggression – functions opposite narrow deterrence – which seeks to deter a particular, specific or limited action. General deterrence – which is based on open knowledge of capabilities, functions largely unsaid and regulates status quo relations – sits opposite immediate deterrence – which is based on communicated threats, functions best in a moment of crisis and is tailored against a contemplated, anti-status quo behaviour. Intra-war deterrence explores coercion within the context of an ongoing hot war, and includes threats that actors use within warfare to influence both an opponent’s behaviour and the shape, contours and nature of the conflict itself. Cumulative deterrence functions iteratively, gradually wearing down an adversary’s behaviour through the repeated use of threats and selected use of punishments. And positive inducements and promises of rewards have been hitched to the deterrence wagon, too, broadening the ways in which defenders get what they want beyond the mere issuance of threats.6

Deterrence Prerequisites A subset of the literature on deterrence focuses on the logical prerequisites embedded within the theory. First, and perhaps foremost, deterrence involves the strategic interactions of rational actors, able and willing to assess and weigh the benefits and costs of their actions. Rationality assumes that decision-makers are utility maximisers, able to rank their preferences based on the ‘perceptions of the likelihood’ of a number of competing and different outcomes (Huth and Russett 1984: 499). Critics of rational deterrence theory, however, caution that rational actors can measure utility differently. Some may be risk-prone, others risk-averse.7 The point is that deterrence is a psychological process in which misperception, misinterpretation and even human fragilities can and do upset the processes of accurately communicating or interpreting an adversary’s intentions and motivations. At the extreme, decision-making might even appear irregular or irrational because of the processes and constraints an actor finds itself bound by. Besides rationality, several other prerequisites mark the practice of deterrence. For instance, defenders must define the unwanted behaviour (or wanted behaviour in the case of compellence) and communicate their wishes to the challenger. They must further communicate a willingness to punish violations if challengers resist. The message is not simply ‘do this’, but rather ‘do this, or else’. Even then, defenders need to have the presumed capability to act as they threaten, to retaliate or deny as promised. If not, threats will ring false. Resolve, too, is needed, to illustrate to challengers that the deterrent is far from a bluff. Coercive credibility refers to the plausibility, even believability,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 543

23/10/18 12:45 PM

544

alex s. wilner

of a threat. Deterrence also requires that challengers and defenders share overlapping preferences, however minuscule, not to engage in hostilities. Common, peaceful ground must exist. If, rather, adversaries only share a common desire to punish, destroy and harm each other, then deterrence is afforded no room to function in practice. Finally, defenders must reassure challengers that if they acquiesce to a threat, a punishment will not needlessly follow. This is the crux of the deterrent bargain: if a challenger believes a defender will harm it, regardless of whether or not it changes its behaviour, it will have little incentive to acquiesce to coercive demands. Defenders must communicate a willingness to hold fire, dependent on a defender’s course of action. In sum, for deterrence to work, several prerequisites, from rationality to mutual preferences, must exist.

Four Waves of Deterrence Research Though the logic of deterrence dates back to the ancient Hebrews and was put into practice by both the ancient Greeks and Romans, deterrence theory, as captured by IR, is really a product of the Cold War. Four phases, or waves, mark the theory’s early progression (Jervis 1979; Freedman 2004: 21–5). The process has been slow but purposeful, and largely cumulative in nature, with lessons from previous waves informing the next. The first wave of research emerged soon after World War Two, with deterrence theorists responding to the development, use and proliferation of nuclear weapons and exploring their effect on warfare and statecraft, usually from an American perspective (Brodie 1946; Morgenstern 1959). Herein, deterrence theory acquired its conceptual building blocks. And yet, deterrence theory’s theoretical, practical and political influence on interstate relations was limited during this period. That changed once the Soviet Union and its allies developed a functional nuclear arsenal. The literature on deterrence, now entering its second wave, responded in kind by expanding its reach to explore the manner in which states might manage escalation and best avoid nuclear conflict. Deterrence theory provided a ready conceptual framework for thinking through, and ultimately managing, the nuclear standoff. Scientific models were built, and game theory used to explore the coercive relations between states. Many of the concepts and prerequisites mentioned earlier were introduced and developed, transforming deterrence theory into a robust field of academic study along the way.8 The second wave is marked by its focus on American–Russian bipolar dynamics and alliance structures, on the use of strategic and conventional punishment strategies (rather than denial strategies) for coercive purposes, on major interstate conflict including nuclear warfare, and on preservation of the international status quo by shaping the behaviour and actions of mutually rational and unitary state actors. Eventually, the deductive process captured in the second wave led to the empiricism of the third. Starting in 1970s, deterrence theory was put under the microscope. Competing concepts, models, frameworks, assumptions and theories were tested using both qualitative and quantitative methodologies.9 Deterrence, it was shown, hinged on a defender’s commitment and resolve, but was also informed by the nature of coercive communication, on the type of interests at stake, and on the costs borne by the challenger of acquiescing to demands (George and Smoke 1974; Huth and Russett 1984; Salmon 1976; Schaub 2004; Schelling 1996). And though deterrence was thought effective when the expected utility of a behaviour was less than the expected cost of absorbing a punishment, third-wave scholarship illustrated that utility itself could be measured differently

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 544

23/10/18 12:45 PM

terrorism

545

by distinct, though rational, actors (Lebow 1981; Lebow and Stein 1989). Here, too, work on the psychology of coercion came to fruition: individual-level traits, cognition, bias, fear, pressure and fatigue, along with particular organisational processes and dynamics, informed how deterrence worked in shaping the decision-making process (Holsti 1972; Steinbruner 1976; Jervis, Lebow and Stein 1985; Achen and Snidal 1989; Harvey 1998; Walt 1999; Harvey 1999; Berejikian 2002). Misperception, and failure to interpret an adversary’s motivation and intention, along with culture, values, history and socio-political characteristics, were all rolled into the third wave (Jervis 1976; Jervis 1982–3; Woods and Stout 2010). In sum, third-wave scholarship offered a nuanced and robust interpretation of how deterrence theory worked when put into practice. The exercise continued into the early post-Cold War era but deterrence theory, especially nuclear deterrence theory, fell out of favour as the USA emerged preeminent in the early 1990s. For a while, it appeared as if the USA had little to deter. Deterrence theory sat idle as a result.

Deterring Terrorism: Lessons for Realism The fourth wave of deterrence scholarship emerged after this short hiatus (Knopf 2012: 21–45; Lupovici 2010). Circumstance eventually caught up with the field, and deterrence was tasked to chart the contours of a variety of emerging, asymmetric and often sub- or non-state threats and challenges. The fourth wave has proven especially fertile and rejuvenating; an explosive array of topics, security environments and circumstances has been explored, and new and broadened theories and approaches have been proposed and empirically evaluated. As great-power dynamics faded, deterrence shifted to lesser concerns, like managing aspiring proliferants (for example, Iran, Iraq, North Korea, Libya and Syria), ‘rogue’ states and regional rivalries and security dilemmas (for example, Pakistan–India) (Paul, Morgan and Wirtz 2009; Art and Cronin 2003; Smith 2006; Morgan 2003). Deterrence also turned inward, with researchers applying it to domestic upheaval and rebellion (Machain, Morgan and Regan 2011: 295–316).10 That gave way to work on deterring terrorism following al-Qaeda’s 2001 attack on the USA. Violent non-state actors, terrorists, insurgents, militants, transnational criminals and even pirates became a major focus for deterrence theory.11 Something similar is happening today with cyber deterrence; scholars are exploring the contours of coercion in the digital domain, against both state and non-state adversaries (Arquilla and Ronfeldt 1993; Sterner 2011; Crosston 2011; Libicki 2009; Wilner 2017a). Subsequently, as deterrence theory has shifted its gaze on to newly emerging and largely non-state challenges, the practice of deterrence has likewise expanded. New work is applying deterrence by denial (Wilner and Wenger 2017b) and extended deterrence (Wenger and von Hlatky 2015) to emerging security contexts and considerations, whereas cross-domain deterrence,12 which skips between different levels of analysis and security environments, is being developed for emerging conflict in cyberspace and space. Deterrence by delegitimisation (Long and Wilner 2014) has been developed to tackle the nexus between ideology, motivation and behaviour, while the deterrent role of religion and culture has been likewise explored (Bar 2011: 428–52; Lantis 2009: 476–8). And altogether new concepts, like influence, dissuasion and inducement, are being developed and added to the coercion toolkit (Hagood 2005: 173–84; Ackerman and Pinson 2011; Davis and Jenkins 2002: 9–13).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 545

23/10/18 12:45 PM

546

alex s. wilner

Deterring Terrorism The theory and practice of deterring terrorism makes up the largest subset of this fourth wave of research, though presumably with time the scope and breadth of cyber deterrence will catch up. The idea of deterring terrorism was not warmly welcomed. As I have explored elsewhere in detail, after 9/11, deterrence scepticism ran deep, both within the halls of power and within academia: pointing to the Twin Towers, sceptics assumed that terrorists like al-Qaeda were irrational, hell-bent on death and destruction, and altogether ‘undeterrable’ (Wilner 2011). Two things had to happen before deterrence theory could be properly applied to terrorism. First, the academic literature on terrorism had to expand. Terrorism studies, as a distinct interdisciplinary field of research, has been around a long time but until al-Qaeda’s stunning attack, terrorism was often relegated to the margins of IR and strategic studies, if not altogether ignored. Terrorism was a lesser evil, even considered lowbrow by certain sectors of academia that were too closely associated with policy than with rigorous research. Rarely was terrorism taught by serious Political Science departments. Audrey Kurth Cronin adds, touchingly, that for graduate students, ‘A principal interest in terrorism virtually guarantees exclusion from consideration for most academic positions’ (Cronin 2002/3: 57). The 9/11 attacks brought with them an infusion of support for improving our understanding of contemporary terrorism. New research institutions, scholarships, conferences, consortia and funding, along with pressing practical questions, paved the way for more academic attention.13 The result of all of this, from a deterrence perspective, was that research found that terrorists were indeed rational; that terrorist leaders sought to achieve certain goals and priorities; that terrorist groups learned from their successes and failures, adapted accordingly, and pressed their advantages; and that organisational dynamics informed terrorist behaviour. None of this was to suggest that terrorism was ever justified, but rather that terrorism could be understood as a rational, utility-maximising strategy useful for conventionally weak actors. If so, the logic of deterrence could be applied to the phenomenon. Moreover, related research unpacked terrorist organisations, and terrorism itself, into their anatomical parts and processes. From the abstract capital T, Terrorism, scholars identified the distinctive functional parts of the terrorist system, from various leadership nodes to recruiters, propagandists and trainers, to engineers, logisticians and supporters, and to foot soldiers and suicide operatives. Chris Harmon’s assertion nails it perfectly: Relativists do not understand the depths of their error when they pronounce that ‘terrorism is just a word for violence we don’t like.’ . . . Terrorists are living, breathing men and women using vile but calculated means to make political gains. (Harmon 2007: 62) As for the terrorism processes, the act itself was likewise divided into the sum of its parts: recruitment, training, financing, engineering (of weaponry), planning, orchestration and so on (Powers 2001; Davis and Jenkins 2004). By breaking terrorism down, the logic of deterrence could be applied at all levels of the organisation, top-down, and at all points of the process, from start to finish.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 546

23/10/18 12:45 PM

terrorism

547

The second thing that needed to happen for deterring terrorism to flourish was that deterrence theory itself had to shake off the vestiges of the Cold War. State-centricity made sense when major adversaries were almost exclusively states. And the overwhelming destructive potential of nuclear weapons rightfully demanded that strategic deterrence and the logic of punishment be given near-exclusive priority over conventional deterrence and denial strategies in the years spanning the Cold War. But things had changed with the collapse of the Soviet Union. To match global realities, deterrence needed to revisit a few assumptions, expand its logical boundaries, and provide fresh theoretical insight on how to manage emerging security relationships between asymmetric states and between states and non-state rivals. With deterring terrorism in particular, three conceptual developments took place. First, the scope of the behaviour to be deterred expanded greatly. Traditional deterrence is primarily focused on deterring military attacks and aggression. Deterring terrorism is much more nuanced and can involve deterring any and all acts within the terrorism process itself. The question worth asking was not ‘Can terrorism be deterred?’ but rather ‘What specific part of the terrorist system might be coerced, and how?’ Militant leaders could be threatened with death and capture, financiers with imprisonment, state sponsors with diplomatic censure and other forms of pressure, legitimisers with ideological ridicule, and foot soldiers with tactical failure.14 Deterrence in counterterrorism could be patched together, piecemeal. Second, state-based values and assets that are associated with traditional deterrence, like sovereignty, territoriality, economic survival and socio-political control, were reconceptualised to account better for the types of assets and goals that terrorists themselves valued. While the vast majority of terrorists may be stateless, which limits the use of traditional threats of punishment against territory, they none the less place value on other things. Terrorists may value tactical and strategic success; ideological certitude and religious legitimacy; good leadership; social cohesiveness and camaraderie; popular sympathy and support; prestige, personal glory and martyrdom; freedom of movement and safe havens; and money and other material goods. While traditional threats against territory might not function well, then, in the case of deterring terrorism, states could threaten a number of other assets that terrorists none the less valued in the hope of altering their behaviour. Third, and relatedly, because some terrorist assets could not be threatened with traditional military force, non-kinetic coercive instruments and processes were developed in order to correspond more accurately to terrorist assets. Deterring terrorism moved beyond military retaliation and the logic of deterrence by punishment. New approaches, as illustrated above, were suggested, tapping into the logic of strategic defence and tactical denial, of societal influence and delegitimisation, even religious or ideological persuasion. These new coercive processes could be tailored to target a specific asset and/or component of the terrorism system.

Revisiting Realism What lesson does the evolution of deterrence in general, and the development of deterring terrorism in particular, hold for realism within the context of transnational terrorism? Put somewhat differently: can deterring terrorism help reshape and strengthen

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 547

23/10/18 12:45 PM

548

alex s. wilner

realism, as Jervis contends deterrence theory had done before (Jervis 1979)? By way of conclusion, five findings are discussed. The first lesson is that the way states conceive of deterrence and the way terrorists conceive of terrorism are themselves conceptually similar. At its root, deterrence uses threats of violence to convince an adversary to act in a certain manner. Successful deterrence, as discussed, does not entail physically defeating an adversary or forcing it to act in a particular way. Changes in behaviour are a choice left to the adversary who retains a will and capacity to act. The strategic purpose of terrorism is the same. Terrorist organisations rarely, if ever, militarily defeat their state adversaries. They are, all things considered, exceptionally weak actors. Accordingly, terrorists use violence – and, importantly, the threat of future violence – against civilians in order to convince a state to acquiesce to their demands. Here, too, changes in behaviour are a choice left to the adversary: in this case, the state. The parallel logic running through deterrence and terrorism provides realism with food for thought. A second lesson has to do with rationality. States and terrorist organisations share common attributes of weighing the costs and benefits of their actions, of seeking to profit from zero-sum engagements, of developing a strategy from learned experience, of acting in their best interest. In both contexts, leadership also plays a fundamental role in decision-making. From a deterrence perspective, rational fanatics can be deterred if the right leverages are found. From a realist perspective, rational fanatics may have in common the behavioural characteristics and traits of rational states. A third lesson involves state-like attributes. While terrorists, by definition, are nonstate actors, many, if not most, none the less seek political power and control over a given territory. Terrorist organisations desire to achieve some degree of statehood and to govern according to their ideology. ISIS is but the most vivid example of this phenomenon (Cronin 2015; Byman 2016). At its peak, it controlled over 65,000 square kilometres of Syrian, Iraqi and Libyan territory. That is more territory than many European states, including Switzerland, Belgium and the Netherlands. ISIS governed these territories – the self-proclaimed Caliphate, or the Islamic State – much as a state would have. It printed money, collected taxes and generated other revenue, grossing between $1 and 3 million per day by November 2014 (Johnston 2014). It controlled its borders and cross-border trade, and attracted, welcomed and integrated immigrants from over eighty-five countries. ISIS recruited and trained armed forces, including expeditionary forces, establishing an army of over 30,000 soldiers, and set up an intelligence apparatus. It solidified alliances with local and foreign entities spanning the globe. It exercised control over education, policing, criminal courts and health services within its borders. And it bureaucratised its brutal ideology, systematising rape and slavery. ISIS was not the first terrorist group to develop state-like attributes like these. Al-Qaeda and several groups allied with it have, at one point or another over the past decade, governed parts of Mali, Somalia, Nigeria, Syria, the Philippines, Yemen and Afghanistan. Hamas has controlled and governed Gaza since 2007, after it routed its rival, Fatah. Hezbollah has controlled large parts of Southern Lebanon since at least 2000, and its representatives have run in and won Lebanon’s general elections and have sat within cabinet. From a deterrence perspective, the more state-like a terrorist group becomes, the easier it is to apply traditional forms of deterrence, like territorial punishment. From a realist perspective, the more state-like a terrorist group becomes, the more state-like the group behaves.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 548

23/10/18 12:45 PM

terrorism

549

A fourth lesson involves power. One of realism’s enduring qualities is that it focuses on the distribution of power – hard, military power – among states. Only rarely have terrorists achieved a level of power equal to that of even the weakest state. But occasionally they have, as ISIS, al-Qaeda, Hamas and Hezbollah demonstrate. Presumably, when terrorist organisations gain state-like power, they more easily fit into realism’s prism, and the logic of balancing, expansionism, security dilemma and all the rest would apply to them. Deterring terrorism also accepts the nature and utility of state power, but it also makes room for contemporary terrorist power even in cases where it falls well short of state power. Indeed, in some ways, terrorists retain tactical prowess over states given the very nature of state power (Betts 2002; Bar 2007b). In other ways, as Frank Harvey and I have demonstrated, terrorists retain ‘counter-coercive power’ that dilutes and diminishes state power (Harvey and Wilner 2012: 21–45). From a deterrence perspective, both circumstances matter because even relatively weak terrorists can undermine a state’s coercive credibility. From a realist perspective, terrorist power presumably matters, too, but only when it reaches an ill-defined and hazy apogee, a rare if not recurring event. A final lesson: theories need not remain static. Theoretical evolution and amendment are possible, even while remaining within the logical and conceptual boundaries that help define the approach. Deterrence has done that with deterring terrorism – and, if early developments hold, with cyber deterrence, too – such that the logical prerequisites of deterrence, crucial for conceptually differentiating deterrence from warfighting, remain intact and relevant. That process of theoretical expansion is not without its challenges and risks. As I have suggested elsewhere, at times deterring terrorism has conflated the logic of deterrence with defeat, and defence with denial, blurring important lines that distinguish between these distinct aspects of statecraft (Wilner 2015a). But the reward of expanding a theory’s horizon far surpasses the risk of diluting core concepts: despite early scepticism, deterrence is today being applied in counterterrorism and cyberspace, providing decision-makers and military planners with a third conceptual approach, alongside defence and offence, for managing emerging threats. Theory informs practice. Realism, too, holds promise for decisionmakers, by suggesting ways to constrain state aggression and expansionist tendencies, informing the making and breaking of alliances and evoking the nature, utility and limits of hard power (Snyder 2009). Creatively updating realism for twenty-firstcentury threats, ever mindful and protective of the conceptual boundaries that mark the paradigm, will ensure that realism’s exploratory and explanatory power remains relevant and required.

Notes 1. Watson Institute, Costs of War Project, 2017; Bureau of Investigative Journalism, Drone Warfare Project, 2017. 2. Global Terrorism Database, Consortium for the Study of Terrorism and Responses to Terrorism, University of Maryland, 2017. 3. The literature on Realism is expansive, and beyond the scope of this paper. For a contemporary overview, see Glaser (2016: 15–26). 4. See, for illustration, Mearsheimer (2011); Glaser (2003); Schwarz and Layne (2012); Layne (2009); Walt (2001/2); Pape (2005); Posen (2001/2).

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 549

23/10/18 12:45 PM

550

alex s. wilner

5. For exceptions, see Brenner (2006). 6. Again, the literature discussing these aspects of deterrence is expansive. For an overview, see my discussion in Wilner (2015b: 41–50). 7. See, for example: Lebow and Stein (1989); Steinbruner (1976); Jervis, Lebow and Stein (1985). 8. See, among others, Morgan (1977); Snyder (1961); Schelling (1960); Kahn (1960); Russett (1963); Huth and Russett (1984). 9. See, among others, George and Smoke (1974); Russett (1963); Morgan (1977); Snyder and Diesing (1977). 10. For an earlier, prescient exploration of deterring revolution, see Goldstone (1989: 222–50). 11. See, for instance, Wilner (2015b); Wenger and Wilner (2012); Bahar (2007); Auerswald (2006: 555–67); Sobelman (2016/17). 12. See Lindsay and Gartzke, Cross-Domain Deterrence project. 13. See, for instance, Horgan and Braddock (2012). 14. See Wilner (2015b); Anthony (2003); Trager and Zagorcheva (2005–6); Geipel (2007); Bar (2007a); Malka (2008); Bar (2008); Rid (2012: 128–30, 137–42); Sobelman (2016/17); Wilner (2010); Sawyer and Pate (2011); and the empirical chapters by Shmuel Bar, Michael Cohen, David Romano and Fred Wehling, in Wenger and Wilner (2012).

Bibliography Achen, Christopher and Duncan Snidal (1989), ‘Rational deterrence theory and comparative case studies’, World Politics, vol. 41, no. 2. Ackerman, Gary and Lauren Pinson (2011), I-VEO [Influencing Violent Extremist Organizations] Empirical Assessment: Literature Review and Knowledge Matrix, College Park, MD: National Consortium for the Study of Terrorism and Responses to Terrorism. Anthony, Robert (2003), ‘Deterrence and the 9–11 Terrorists’, Institute for Defense Analyses, May. Arquilla, John and David Ronfeldt (1993), ‘Cyberwar is coming!’, Comparative Strategy, vol. 12, no. 2. Art, Robert and Patrick Cronin (eds) (2003), The United States and Coercive Diplomacy, Washington, DC: US Institute of Peace. Auerswald, David (2006), ‘Deterring nonstate WMD attacks’, Political Science Quarterly, vol. 121, no. 4, pp. 555–67. Bahar, Michael (2007), ‘Attaining optimal deterrence at sea’, Vanderbilt Journal of Transnational Law, vol. 40, no. 1. Bar, Shmuel (2007a), ‘Deterring nonstate terrorist groups: The case of Hizballah’, Comparative Strategy, vol. 26, no. 5. Bar, Shmuel (2007b), ‘Israeli Experience in Deterring Terrorist Organizations’, Herzliya Conference, Israel, 21–4 January. Bar, Shmuel (2008), ‘Deterring terrorists: What Israel has learned’, Policy Review, no. 149. Bar, Shmuel (2011), ‘God, nation, and deterrence: The impact of religion on deterrence’, Comparative Strategy, vol. 30, no. 5, pp. 428–52. Berejikian, Jeffrey (2002), ‘A cognitive theory of deterrence’, Journal of Peace Research, vol. 39, no. 2. Betts, Richard (2002), ‘The soft underbelly of American primacy’, Political Science Quarterly, vol. 117, no. 1. Blimes, Linda (2013), ‘The Financial Legacy of Iraq and Afghanistan’, Harvard Kennedy School, Faculty Research Working Paper Series, March; Institute for Economics and Peace, Global Terrorism Index 2016, pp. 62–5. Brenner, William (2006), ‘In search of monsters: Realism and progress in international relations theory after September 11’, Security Studies, vol. 15, no. 3.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 550

23/10/18 12:45 PM

terrorism

551

Brodie, Bernard (ed.) (1946), The Absolute Weapon, New York: Harcourt, Brace. Byman, Daniel (2016), ‘ISIS goes global’, Foreign Affairs, March/April. Castells, Manuel (1996), The Rise of the Network Society, The Information Age: Economy, Society and Culture, vol. 1, Malden, MA: Blackwell. Castner, Brian (2017), ‘Still fighting, and dying, in the forever war’, New York Times, 9 March. ‘Conversation with History, John Mearsheimer’ (2002), University of California at Berkeley, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Cronin, Audrey Kurth (2002/3), ‘Behind the curve: Globalization and international terrorism’, International Security, vol. 27, no. 3, p. 57. Cronin, Audrey Kurth (2015), ‘ISIS is not a terrorist group’, Foreign Affairs, March/April. Crosston, Matthew (2011), ‘World gone cyber MAD’, Strategic Studies Quarterly, vol. 5, no. 1. Davis, Paul and Brian Jenkins (2002), Deterrence and influence in counterterrorism: A component in the war on al Qaeda, Santa Monica: RAND, pp. 9–13. Davis, Paul and Brian Jenkins (2004), ‘A system approach to deterring and influencing terrorists’, Conflict Management and Peace Science, vol. 21, no. 1. Freedman, Lawrence (2004), Deterrence, Cambridge: Polity Press. Geipel, Gary (2007), ‘Urban terrorists in continental Europe after 1970: Implications for deterrence and defeat of violent nonstate actors’, Comparative Strategy, vol. 26, no. 5. George, Alexander and Richard Smoke (1974), Deterrence in American Foreign Policy: Theory and Practice, New York: Columbia University Press. Glaser, Charles (2003), ‘Structural realism in a more complex world’, Review of International Studies, vol. 29. Glaser, Charles (2016), ‘Realism’, in Alan Collins (ed.), Contemporary Security Studies, 4th edn, New York: Oxford University Press. Goldstone, Jack (1989), ‘Deterrence in rebellions and revolutions’, in Paul Stern Robert Axelrod, Robert Jervis and Ray Radner (eds), Perspectives on Deterrence, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Hagood, Jonathan (2005), ‘Dissuading nuclear adversaries: The strategic concept of dissuasion and the U.S. nuclear arsenal’, Comparative Strategy, vol. 24, no. 2, pp. 173–84. Harmon, Christopher (2007), ‘The myth of the invincible terrorist’, Policy Review, vol. 142, no. 62. Harvey, Frank (1998), ‘Rigor mortis or rigor, more test: Necessity, sufficiency, and deterrence’, International Studies Quarterly, vol. 42, no. 4. Harvey, Frank (1999), ‘Practicing coercion: Revisiting successes and failures using Boolean logic and comparative methods’, Journal of Conflict Resolution, vol. 43, no. 6. Harvey, Frank and Alex Wilner (2012), ‘Counter-coercion, the power of failure, and the practical limits of deterring terrorism’, in Andreas Wenger and Alex Wilner (eds), Deterring Terrorism: Theory and Practice, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Holsti, Ole (1972), Crisis, Escalation, War, Montreal: McGill–Queen’s University Press. Horgan, John and Kurt Braddock (2012), Terrorism Studies: A Reader, New York: Routledge. Huth, Paul and Bruce Russett (1984), ‘What makes deterrence work? Cases from 1900 to 1980’, World Politics, vol. 36, no. 4, p. 499. Jervis, Robert (1976), Perception and Misperception in International Politics, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Jervis, Robert (1979), ‘Deterrence theory revisited’, World Politics, vol. 31, no. 2. Jervis, Robert (1982–3), ‘Deterrence and perception’, International Security, vol. 7, no. 3. Jervis, Robert, Richard Ned Lebow and Janice Gross Stein (1985), Psychology and Deterrence, Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press. Johnston, Patrick (2014), ‘Countering ISIL’s Financing’, Testimony, US House Financial Services Committee, November.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 551

23/10/18 12:45 PM

552

alex s. wilner

Kahn, Herman (1960), On Thermonuclear War, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Knopf, Jeffrey (2012), ‘Terrorism and the fourth wave in deterrence research’, in Andreas Wenger and Alex Wilner (eds), Deterring Terrorism: Theory and Practice, Standford, CA: Stanford University Press, pp. 21–45. Lantis, Jeffrey (2009), ‘Strategic culture and tailored deterrence: Bridging the gap between theory and practice’, Contemporary Security Policy, vol. 30, no. 3, pp. 476–8. Layne, Christopher (2009), ‘America’s Middle East grand strategy after Iraq: The moment for offshore balancing has arrived’, Review of International Studies, vol. 35. Lebow, Richard Ned (1981), Between Peace and War: The Nature of International Crisis, Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press. Lebow, Richard Ned and Janice Gross Stein (1989), ‘Rational deterrence theory: I think, therefore I deter’, World Politics, vol. 41, no. 2. Libicki, Martin C. (2009), Cyberdeterrence and Cyberwar, Santa Monica: RAND. Lindsay, John and Erik Gartzke, Cross-Domain Deterrence project, available at (last accessed 15 June 2018). Long, Jerry Mark and Alex Wilner (2014), ‘Delegitimizing al-Qaida: Defeating an “army whose men love death”’, International Security, vol. 39, no. 1. Lupovici, Amir (2010), ‘The emerging fourth wave of deterrence theory: Toward a new research agenda’, International Studies Quarterly, vol. 54. Machain, Carla M., T. Clifton Morgan and Patrick Regan (2011), ‘Deterring rebellion’, Foreign Policy Analysis, vol. 7, no. 3, pp. 295–316. Malka, Amos (2008), ‘Israel and asymmetrical deterrence’, Comparative Strategy, vol. 27, no. 1. Mearsheimer, John (2011), ‘Imperial by design’, The National Interest, January/February. Morgan, Patrick (1977), Deterrence: A Conceptual Analysis, Beverly Hills: Sage. Morgan, Patrick (2003), Deterrence Now, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Morgenstern, Oskar (1959), The Question of National Defense, New York: Random House. New York Times (2017), Editorial, ‘America’s forever war’, 22 October. Pape, Robert (2005), ‘Soft balancing against the United States’, International Security, vol. 30, no. 1. Paul, T. V., Patrick M. Morgan and James J. Wirtz (eds) (2009), Complex Deterrence: Strategy in the Global Age, Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Posen, Barry (2001/2), ‘The struggle against terrorism: Grand strategy, strategy, and tactics’, International Security, vol. 26, no. 3. Powers, Michael (2001), ‘Deterring terrorism with CBRN weapons: Developing a conceptual framework’, Chemical and Biological Arms Control Institute, Occasional Paper no. 2, February. Remnick, David (2014), ‘Going the distance: On and off the road with Barack Obama’, The New Yorker, 27 January. Rid, Thomas (2012), ‘Deterrence beyond the state: The Israeli experience’, Contemporary Security Policy, vol. 33, no. 2. Russett, Bruce (1963), ‘The calculus of deterrence’, Journal of Conflict Resolution, vol. 7, no. 2. Salmon, Trevor (1976), ‘Rationality and politics: The case of strategic theory’, British Journal of International Studies, vol. 2, no. 3. Sawyer, John P. and Amy Pate (2011), I-VEO [Influencing Violent Extremist Organizations] Empirical Assessment: Case Studies of Historical Efforts to Influence Violent Extremist Organizations, College Park, MD: National Consortium for the Study of Terrorism and Responses to Terrorism. Schaub, Gary (2004), ‘Deterrence, compellence, and prospect theory’, Political Psychology, vol. 25, no. 3. Schelling, Thomas (1960), The Strategy of Conflict, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Schelling, Thomas (1996), Arms and Influence, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 552

23/10/18 12:45 PM

terrorism

553

Schwarz, Benjamin and Christopher Layne (2012), ‘A new grand strategy’, The Atlantic, January. Smith, Derek (2006), Deterring America: Rogue States and the Proliferation of Weapons of Mass Destruction, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Snyder, Glenn (1961), Deterrence and Defense: Toward a Theory of National Security, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Snyder, Glenn and Paul Diesing (1977), Conflict Among Nations, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Snyder, Jack (2009), ‘One world, rival theories’, Foreign Policy, 26 October. Sobelman, Daniel (2016/17), ‘Learning to deter: Deterrence failure and success in the Israel– Hezbollah conflict, 2006–16’, International Security, vol. 41, no. 3. Steinbruner, John (1976), ‘Beyond rational deterrence: The struggle for new conceptions’, World Politics, vol. 28, no. 2. Sterner, Eric (2011), ‘Retaliatory deterrence in cyberspace’, Strategic Studies Quarterly, vol. 5, no. 1. Trager, Robert and Dessislava Zagorcheva (2005–6), ‘Deterring terrorism: It can be done’, International Security, vol. 30, no. 3. Walt, Stephen (1999), ‘Rigor or rigor mortis? Rational choice and security studies’, International Security, vol. 23, no. 4. Walt, Stephen (2001/2), ‘Beyond bin Laden: Reshaping US foreign policy’, International Security, vol. 26, no. 3. Wenger, Andreas and Stefanie von Hlatky (eds) (2015), The Future of Extended Nuclear Deterrence in Europe, Washington, DC: Georgetown University Press. Wenger, Andreas and Alex Wilner (eds) (2012), Deterring Terrorism: Theory and Practice Standford, CA: Stanford University Press. Wilner, Alex (2010), ‘Targeted killings in Afghanistan: Measuring coercion and deterrence in counterterrorism and counterinsurgency’, Studies in Conflict and Terrorism, vol. 33, no. 4. Wilner, Alex (2011), ‘Deterring the undeterrable: Coercion, denial, and delegitimization in counterterrorism’, Journal of Strategic Studies, vol. 34, no. 1. Wilner, Alex (2015a), ‘Contemporary deterrence theory and counterterrorism: A bridge too far?’, NYU Journal of International Law and Politics, vol. 47, no. 2, Winter. Wilner, Alex (2015b), Deterring Rational Fanatics, Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press. Wilner, Alex (2017a), ‘Cyber deterrence and critical infrastructure protection: Expectation, application, and limitation’, Comparative Strategy, vol. 36, no. 4. Wilner, Alex and Andreas Wenger (eds) (2017b), Deterrence by Denial: Theory, Practice, and Empiricism, under review, Fall. Woods, Kevin and Mark Stout (2010), ‘Saddam’s perceptions and misperceptions: The case of “Desert Storm”’, Journal of Strategic Studies, vol. 33, no. 1.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 553

23/10/18 12:45 PM

44 Political Realism and the Open Society The enemy within Todd Breyfogle

Chapter Overview

T

his chapter frames the notion of the open society in terms of the problem of power. The chapter focuses on an exposition of Karl Popper’s definitive description of the open society, then uses the arguments of George Soros to include both the economic and the political dimensions of political realism. The chapter concludes by identifying five threats to the open society, invoking Henri Bergson’s identification of the moral and spiritual dimensions of the idea of the open society. While the open society is distinct from political realism in its approach to power, it wrestles with the necessities of interest which form political realism’s backbone. How does the open society remain both sceptical of power and confident in its humanitarian convictions? What are the resources upon which the open society might draw in order to preserve its humanistic spirit against anti-cosmopolitan charms? *

*

*

The open society is an idea of obscure origins and indeterminate future. The idea of the open society is an answer to the problem of power. Who should hold power? How is power to be restrained? The problem is at once existential and practical. Why is it that some, often not the most virtuous, desire power? Why does the acquisition of power tend to spur a desire for more power? Why does power tend to corrupt? These existential questions, which go to the very core of what it means to be human, prompt the practical attempts to mitigate the acquisition and use of power. By what means is power best restrained? What are the attitudes of individual and collective restraint which allow for the necessary exercise of power while avoiding its excessive application? The idea of the open society answers these questions with an acknowledgement of human fallibility, an emphasis on the wide dispersal of power in the hands of autonomous individuals, and a reliance on institutional restraints on the concentration of power in an individual or group of individuals. In this sense, the history of the open society is in large measure the history of liberal democracy.1

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 554

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the open society

555

1. The definitive account of the open society is that of Karl Popper, whose The Open Society and Its Enemies brought the term ‘open society’ to prominence against the backdrop of the experience of totalitarianism leading to the Second World War. Published in two volumes in 1945, but completed in 1943, The Open Society and Its Enemies is a tour de force of political philosophy, written by a philosopher of science. Volume 1 takes on Plato, with volume 2 criticising Aristotle, Hegel and Marx. And while one may disagree with his readings of these great philosophers (his approach to Plato is more literal than literary), the powers of analysis – textual, structural, historical and philosophical – are stunning. In a central passage, Popper reformulates the problem of power. The question, Who should rule the state? prompts an answer, ‘the good’ or ‘the wise’. But we should admit that it is not at all easy to get a government on whose goodness and wisdom we can rely. If that is granted, then we must ask whether political thought should not face from the beginning the possibility of bad government; whether we should not prepare for the worst leaders, and hope for the best. But this leads to a new approach to the problem of politics, for it forces us to replace the question: Who should rule? by the new question: How can we so organize political institutions that bad or incompetent rulers can be prevented from doing too much damage? (Popper 1971: 121) Popper goes on to address what he calls ‘the theory of (unchecked) sovereignty’, the assumption that the only remaining (or primary) question of political thought is, Who is (or should be) sovereign? With this assumption clearly in view, one can see the ideological answers of the twentieth century. Who should be sovereign: the workers or the capitalists? The communists, the liberals or the fascists? Similarly, we can hear the quasi-ideological answers of the twenty-first century: the West or the rest? The left or the right? The believers or the infidels? The enlightened or the backward? Though Popper does not describe it as such, the theory of (unchecked) sovereignty is, in effect, the foundation of political realism. The contest for power is a zero-sum game, and the limitation on my (or my party’s) power inevitably leads to a surfeit of power in the hands of my enemies. As an antidote to the theory of (unchecked) sovereignty, Popper proposes the ‘theory of checks and balances’ – the institutional moderation of all power (Popper 1971: 122). Implicit in the use of institutions to moderate power is a recognition, again not described by Popper as such, that it is in my interest to have procedural checks on the exercise of all power – the limitation of my power is in my interest not only because it is just, but also because it entails a prudent limitation on the power of my enemies. The theory of checks and balances is a response to the ‘paradox of freedom’ (I may choose the ‘good’ or ‘wise’ ruler only to have that ruler choose a government I do not favour) and the ‘paradox of democracy’ (the people may elect a tyranny) (Popper 1971: 123). Both paradoxes underscore, for Popper, that neither aristocratic nor democratic institutions provide an adequate answer to the question posed by the theory of (unchecked) sovereignty, Who should rule? Neither the best nor the democratic ensure a substantively authoritative outcome of what is right.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 555

23/10/18 12:45 PM

556

todd breyfogle

And yet, for Popper, ‘all long-term politics are institutional’ (Popper 1971: 127), requiring both careful design and principles of personal leadership. ‘Institutions are like fortresses. They must be well designed and manned’ (Popper 1971: 127): that is, educational programmes in the training and selection of future leaders are necessary but not sufficient for an open society. But Popper sees here a further paradox. The education appropriate to an open society is ‘the spirit of criticism’ which fosters ‘intellectual independence’ (Popper 1971: 134). To charge educational institutions with training and selecting the best leaders for political rule produces, Popper observes, just the opposite of what is needed: competition for career success and power rather than curiosity, initiative and originality. The distinction between the institutional and the personal in political order underscores the difficulties of democratic or any other politics in fulfilment of a theory of checks and balances. How do we design institutions strong enough to mitigate the assumption and executive of centralised power? How do we educate the persons who inhabit the institutions to maintain those institutions without succumbing to the temptations of power? The burden of Popper’s extended argument is the contradiction of any form of philosophical or scientific utopianism, whether Plato’s philosopher king or Marx’s historical materialism. Against what he calls ‘Utopian engineering’ – the rational organisation of all means in support of a previously conceived ultimate and ideal end – Popper prefers ‘piecemeal engineering’ – the ad hoc mitigation of injustices without reference to an ideal state (Popper 1971: 157–8). In keeping with his early academic work in cognitive psychology, Popper’s scepticism is essentially one of the limits of human knowledge. Social life is so complicated that few men, or none at all, could judge a blueprint for social engineering on a grand scale; whether it be practicable; whether it would result in a real improvement; what kind of suffering it would involve; and what may be the means for its realization. (Popper 1971: 159) Piecemeal engineering, by contrast, operates in discrete realms on a smaller scale, where opportunities for success are more manageable and the consequences of failure circumscribed. Piecemeal engineering, additionally, increases the likelihood of compromise – in small, rather than in large things – with the recognition that institutions ‘are inevitably the result of a compromise with circumstances, interests, etc’ (Popper 1971: 159). What emerges for Popper in his study of Plato is a more fundamental diagnosis of our social predicament. ‘I believe that Plato, with deep sociological insight, found that his contemporaries were suffering under a severe strain, and this strain was due largely to the social revolution which had begun with the rise of democracy and individualism’ (Popper 1971: 171). This dissension emerging from social change resulted in a ‘deeply rooted unhappiness’ which Plato aimed to arrest with the ‘medico-political treatment he recommended’ (Popper 1971: 171). This insight, Popper observes, ‘led me to see that the strength of both the old and the new totalitarian movements rested on the fact that they attempted to answer a very real need, however badly conceived this attempt may have been’ (Popper 1971: 170). Against the strain and dissension that would seem to accompany the social revolution of democracy and individualism is the temptation to ‘return to tribalism’, to devise social and political institutions which heal

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 556

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the open society

557

the dissatisfactions which accompany freedom and self-determination (what Simone de Beauvoir would soon call ‘the metaphysical risks of liberty’). That is, Popper’s formulation of the ‘open society’ arises specifically out of his analysis of the closed society and its dissolution. In a closed society, a ‘magical attitude toward social custom’ derives from aligning the conventional regularities of social life with the regularities found in nature, patterns of authority which are often held to be enforced by a supernatural will. In closed societies, there are few problems in the forms of life or in the decisions that an individual is called upon to make. This is not to say there are no problems, but rather that the answers to questions of living and acting are largely predetermined. The member of a closed society ‘will rarely find himself in a position of doubting how to act’ because ‘institutions leave no room for personal responsibility’ (Popper 1971: 172). Such a closed society (Popper also calls it a ‘collectivist society’) has an organic character in which the whole supersedes the parts. The application of the organic analogy to society, says Popper, yields ‘veiled forms of propaganda for a return to tribalism’ (Popper 1971: 174).2 With the loss of its organic character, society becomes more open, and ‘may become, by degrees, what I should like to term an “abstract society”. It may, to a considerable extent, lose the character of a concrete or real group of men, or of a system of such real groups’ (Popper 1971: 174). In the open or abstract society, relations are increasingly impersonal, experiences isolated, and individuals atomised or aggregated rather than part of an organic whole. There are many people living in a modern society who have no, or extremely few, intimate personal contacts, who live in anonymity and isolation, and consequently unhappiness. For although society has become abstract, the biological make-up of man has not changed much; men have social needs which they cannot satisfy in an abstract society. (Popper 1971: 174–5) This transition from closed to open societies, says Popper, can ‘be described as one of the deepest revolutions through which mankind has passed’ (Popper 1971: 175). The strain, the uneasiness that comes with the breakdown of a closed society is still felt even in our day, especially in times of social change. It is the strain created by the effort which life in an open and partially abstract society continually demands from us – by the endeavor to be rational, to forgo at least some of our emotional social needs, to look after ourselves, and to accept responsibilities. We must, I believe, bear this strain as the price to be paid for every increase in knowledge, in reasonableness, in co-operation and in mutual help, and consequently in our chances of survival, and in the size of the population. It is the price we have to pay for being human. (Popper 1971: 177) What Popper less explicitly addresses is the paradox that the open society is both the response to and the cause of this continued revolutionary anxiety. The movement from taboo and mystery to reason, the corrosion of communal certainties by individual freedom, and the demands of personal responsibility in circumstances of moral uncertainty are the soil in which tyranny finds its root. Significantly, our social and political strain, for Popper, reduces to the struggle in new circumstances to meet

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 557

23/10/18 12:45 PM

558

todd breyfogle

perennial biological, emotional and social needs. Popper’s description is reminiscent of Rousseau’s observation that freedom is a succulent food but hard to digest. How far can moderating institutions and moderated desires counteract our consumptive desires and the resulting economic and political hangovers? In addressing the existential strain of the open society, Popper implicitly raises the question, What binds a people together in an open society? Can anything provide the kind of anchor or certainty that many long for from the rapidly receding closed society? Popper highlights two possible responses. The first, actually chosen by democratic Athens, was imperialism, a relatively open society within (compared with Sparta or Persia), but tribal with respect to those without. It is worth remembering that open societies, like closed ones, can be tyrannical with respect to their neighbours. The second response, Popper says, was ‘humanitarianism’, perhaps better stated as cosmopolitan humanism (Popper 1971: 182–3). How is it, Popper asks, that such outstanding citizens as Thucydides could stand on the side of reaction? The main point seems to be that although the open society was already in existence, although it had, in practice, begun to develop new values, new equalitarian standards of life, there was still something missing for the ‘educated’. The new faith of the open society, its only possible faith [besides imperialism], humanitarianism, was beginning to assert itself, but was not yet formulated. (Popper 1971: 183) For Popper, this faith was best expressed by Pericles, in the Funeral Oration, which takes as its patriotic affirmation not the principle that the people should rule by majority vote, but that decisions should be anchored in reason, not interest, and in humanitarianism, not parochial power. Popper’s contrast of Pericles and Plato leads him to distinguish between democratic and totalitarian critiques of democracy (Popper 1971: 189). In our day, we often fail to make this distinction between democratic and totalitarian criticisms of democracy, to our peril. Any criticism of the excesses of democracy is held to be undemocratic – that is, there is a tribal imperialism of thought which demonises what might otherwise be seen as democracy’s ‘loyal opposition’. The educated, as well as the less educated, may find themselves in what Popper calls ‘the perennial revolt against freedom’ (Popper 1971: 188). And whether Popper is right in his interpretation of Plato, his observations about the role of philosophy in the open society are trenchant. The rise of philosophy itself can be interpreted, I think, as a response to the breakdown of the closed society and its magical beliefs. It is an attempt to replace the lost magical faith by a rational faith; it modifies the tradition of passing on a theory or a myth by founding a new tradition – the tradition of challenging theories and myths and of critically discussing them. It is this tradition, ‘the tradition of criticism and discussion, and with it the art of thinking rationally’, that is one of the ‘inexplicable facts which stand at the beginning of our civilization’ (Popper 1971: 188). The breakdown of this art opens the floodgates to the closed society. Socrates, more than Pericles, emerges as Popper’s hero of the open society:

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 558

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the open society

559

his intellectualism, i.e. his equalitarian theory of human reason as a universal medium of communication; his stress on intellectual honesty and self-criticism; his equalitarian theory of justice, and his doctrine that it is better to be a victim of injustice than to inflict it upon others . . . his creed of individualism, his belief in the human individual as an end in himself. (Popper 1971: 189–90) That is, Socrates strove to provide the new faith for the open society in his appeal to intellectual honesty and a recognition of our intellectual limitations. ‘Take care of your souls’ is as good a creed for the open society as one can claim. It is this positive faith, not simply the dissolution of tribalism, that guards against ‘self-satisfaction and complacency’. Socrates demanded ‘that the individual should prove worthy of his liberation’ (Popper 1971: 190). How do we prove ourselves worthy of our liberation, even as two worlds contest within each of us – the certainties of the closed society and the charms of the open society? This ‘conflict between two worlds in one soul’ is a struggle which ‘touches our feelings, for it is still going on within ourselves. Plato was the child of a time which is still our own’ (Popper 1971: 196). Popper’s language underscores one of the fundamental tensions within the open society – the faith of reason is not always adequate to speak to our feelings of strain and alienation, the painful recognition of our individual, social, political and institutional imperfections. This is the predicament in which we find ourselves, and it the predicament which Popper felt acutely when he put down his pen in 1943. His conclusion of volume 1 of The Open Society and Its Enemies is worth quoting at length: We can never return to the alleged innocence and beauty of the closed society. . . . For those who have eaten of the tree of knowledge, paradise is lost. The more we try to return to the heroic age of tribalism, the more surely do we arrive at the Inquisition, at the Secret Politics, and at a romanticized gangsterism. Beginning with the suppression of reason and truth, we must end with the most brutal and violent destruction of all that is human. There is no return to a harmonious state of nature. If we turn back, then we must go the whole way, we must return to the beasts. It is an issue which we must face squarely, hard though it may be for us to do so. If we dream of a return to our childhood, if we are tempted to rely on others and so be happy, if we turn back from the task of carrying our cross, the cross of humaneness, of reason, of responsibility, if we lose courage and flinch from the strain, then we must try to fortify ourselves with a clear understanding of the simple decision before us. We can return to the beasts. But if we wish to remain human, then there is only one way, the way into the open society. We must go on into the unknown, courageously, using what reason we have, to plan for security and freedom. (Popper 1971: 200–1) The open society is nothing less than a moral adventure. One of the many remarkable aspects of Popper’s exposition of the open society is his dispassionate analysis in the midst of passionate times (he tells us he began the work in 1938, upon hearing of the invasion of Austria, and concluded in 1943, when the outcome of the war was still uncertain). An Austrian Jew writing in academic

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 559

23/10/18 12:45 PM

560

todd breyfogle

obscurity from New Zealand during the Second World War; a student of cognitive psychology and the history of science; a cultured European of the Enlightenment – Popper brings an admirable deliberativeness and restraint in laying out the facts as he saw them, amidst the horrors of the camps and the destruction of the ideals of European civilisation. His position is also intellectually consistent in resisting the temptation of a new tribalism in apocalyptic times. One cannot crusade for the open society or one becomes inconsistent with the principles of the open society itself. The three epigrams to the two volumes of The Open Society and Its Enemies are instructive. The first, by Samuel Butler, warns of the gullibility of people who are easily led by the nose, offering up common sense at the shrine of logic. The second, by Edmund Burke, cautions against the inevitable fallibility of the plans of great men. The third comes from Walter Lippmann: ‘To the débâcle of liberal science can be traced the moral schism of the modern world which so tragically divides enlightened men’ (epigram, vol. 2). Neither the shrine of logic nor the promises of great individuals can release us from the predicament of the open society, and a science which does not recognise its own limitations will exacerbate rather than mitigate the excesses of individual freedom.

2. In keeping with Popper’s mistrust of methodological essentialism, George Soros deploys Popper’s logic and scepticism of theories that embrace an absolute truth against market decentralisation itself. Writing in 1997, in the Atlantic Monthly, under the title ‘The Capitalist Threat’, Soros suggests that a belief in the ultimate truth of the market is, logically, no different from the supposed scientific verities of Marxism–Leninism. Popper showed that totalitarian ideologies like communism and Nazism have a common element: they claim to be in possession of ultimate truth. Since the ultimate truth is beyond the reach of humankind, these ideologies have to resort to oppression in order to impose their vision on society. (Soros 1997) Soros is quick to deny any moral equivalence between totalitarianism and laissez-faire economic doctrines, but he is concerned that the inadvertent effects of unregulated capitalism produce inequities and instability that threaten the open society. Totalitarianisms of the left and right have used the power of the state to repress individual freedom. ‘I contend’, writes Soros, ‘that an open society may also be threatened from the opposite direction – from excessive individualism’ (Soros 1997). Popper himself might have put it this way: a lack of piecemeal engineering in economic institutions has allowed us to be unworthy of the freedoms we enjoy. Just as belief in ‘historical laws’ supposedly provides the certainties of communism, the presupposition of ‘economic laws’ has prompted recourse to a comparably false sense of certainty that we have mastered the supposed regularities of social and economic progress. ‘Insofar as there is a dominant belief in our society today, it is a belief in the magic of the marketplace. The doctrine of laissez-faire capitalism holds that the common good is best served by the uninhibited pursuit of self-interest’ (Soros 1997). In some sense, this is political realism cast as economic realism writ small, with

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 560

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the open society

561

the exception of the assumption that our economic self-interest is mutually beneficial because not zero-sum. Soros’s critique, like Popper’s and Hayek’s, is fundamentally epistemological: laissezfaire ideology presupposes perfect knowledge, but perfect knowledge is beyond our grasp. Apart from the limitations on the knowledge that any individual or group of individuals can possess, Soros notes that we do not stand apart from the systems we are trying to observe – our expectations and decisions affect the systems we are trying to analyse. Soros acknowledges that he himself made use of this insight in his trading in the financial markets, but this fact serves to underscore the practical importance of the philosophical argument. There is a two-way feedback mechanism between the market participants’ thinking and the situation they think about – ‘reflexivity’. It accounts for both the imperfect understanding of the participants (recognition of which is the basis of the concept of the open society) and the indeterminacy of the process in which they participate. (Soros 1997) The assumption that markets are always right is a fallacy which threatens, for Soros, economic stability, social justice and international relations. This fallacy is both epistemologically and morally unsound because it wrongly absolves us of asking the fundamental question, ‘In what kind of society do we want to live?’ The answer, ‘Let the market decide,’ is an abdication of our responsibility to assume the weight of freedom in a humanitarian spirit. Adopting the supremacy of market values, Soros argues, has served to undermine the moral principles and traditional values that found expression in behaviour outside of the market mechanism, features of religion and culture which open more broadly beyond exchange value. What used to be a medium of exchange has usurped the place of fundamental values, reversing the relationship postulated by economic theory. What used to be professions have turned into businesses. The cult of success has replaced a belief in principles. Society has lost its anchor. (Soros 1997) Exaggerated financial swings, social Darwinism and geopolitical instability are the effects of an unreflective, unchecked belief in the magic of the marketplace, Soros contends, effects for which laissez-faire ideology does not offer us sufficient answers. At an individual, social or international level, the unmoderated pursuit of self-interest is proving determinantal to the common good. Perhaps most significantly, the belief in the magic of the marketplace deprives us of the market’s most valuable resource – the benefits of trial and error that derive from reflexivity, and the corresponding opportunity to modify our decisions and institutions. We might apply Popper’s theory of (unchecked) sovereignty not to the state but to the individual. To shift sovereignty to the individual may disperse power but does not check power and its corrosive effects. And yet institutions which limit individual power tend toward a closed rather than an open society. What Popper assumed and Soros makes explicit is the need for non-coercive institutions which support values and modes of behaviour which check the individual sovereignty which modern economic (and now, digital) life affords.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 561

23/10/18 12:45 PM

562

todd breyfogle

An open society, Soros notes, ‘is not merely the absence of government intervention and oppression. It is a complicated, sophisticated structure, and deliberate effort is required to bring it into existence’ (Soros 1997). And deliberate effort is required to maintain it. But herein lies perhaps the greatest logical and practical paradox of the notion of the open society – we must support it wholeheartedly without succumbing to the open society as an ideology. To tout the open society as the answer, or the necessary culmination of historical or social forces, would be to deny the premises of uncertainty and fallibility upon which an open society is based. Where, then, does our conviction about the open society come from? How do we recognise the relative and provisional validity of our principles while, at the same time, maintaining those humanistic dispositions which separate civilised life from barbarism? Soros notes that it is easier to identify the threats to an open society than it is to give the idea of an open society positive meaning. Is the idea of the open society enough to provide the shared values that bind a people together? Soros describes the commitment to the open society, as he must, as an act of faith rather than a metaphysical certainty. ‘Indeed, it stands to reason that our ideal of the open society is unattainable. To have a blueprint for it would be self-contradictory’ (Soros 1997). But this act of faith has as its initial premise a belief in our own fallibility, and a corresponding hope that, by taking our fallibility as a starting point, we can devise and maintain institutions and values which limit state power and self-interest in ways that allow us to develop our human potential. For Soros, then, the open society is no longer the opposite pole on a binary, but a middle ground between state totalitarianism and laissez-faire capitalism. He recognises the difficulty of articulating and garnering support for the open society as an abstract idea, but finds in it a common-sense rationality which offers the best prospect for freedom and prosperity. That said, belief in the open society is a matter of choice, not a logical necessity. Soros continues: That is not all. Even if the concept of the open society were universally accepted, that would not be sufficient to ensure that freedom and prosperity would prevail. The open society merely provides a framework within which different views about social and political issues can be reconciled; it does not offer a firm view on social goals. If it did, it would not be an open society. This means that people must hold other beliefs in addition to their belief in the open society. Only in a closed society does the concept of the open society provide a sufficient basis for political action; in an open society it is not enough to be a democrat; one must be a liberal democrat or a social democrat or a Christian democrat or some other kind of democrat. A shared belief in the open society is a necessary but not a sufficient condition for freedom and prosperity and all the good things that the open society is supposed to bring. (Soros 1997) The open society would thus seem to require two layers of belief: a set of deeper, substantive values deriving from tradition or religion, and a more superficial (in the descriptive sense) willingness to suspend or compromise a portion of one’s substantive beliefs for the preservation of the framework the open society provides. We might call this latter disposition the politics of restraint – a common-sense recognition that my interest is best served by the mutual limitation of power to preserve the peace, stability and prosperity that an open society is supposed to bring.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 562

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the open society

563

3. How do we assess the prospects of the open society in our own age? Recognising the inescapable challenges posed by the allure of power, there are specific challenges to the idea of the open society that any contemporary defender would have to face. First, there is the challenge of non-state actors. The open society, as formulated by Popper and Soros, presupposes the modern nation-state as the unit of political analysis. Failed states, particularly those fraught with resistance from closed societies within them, threaten the stability and even existence of states based on a more open vision of society. One might see terrorism of various stripes as the continued contest between tribal or closed societies and the anxieties of living in open societies. In Popper’s analysis, ‘home-grown’ terrorists should come as no surprise. Second, the logic of the open society puts both centripetal and centrifugal pressures on the nation-state simultaneously. On the one hand, the logic of the open society extends outward in the form of supranationalism – the United Nations in a weaker form, but also stronger, more federated systems like the European Union. The supranational form of the open society, an extension of Kant’s cosmopolitanism, is that framework in which national interests may be reconciled and moderated. On the other hand, the principle of self-determination that has been the bedrock of the nation-state since the early nineteenth century exerts sub-national pressures. Geographical and ethnic separatist movements may be viewed as tribal attempts to return to a more closed society, or a peoples’ attempt to approximate more fully the open society itself by forming a new nation-state. Is Scottish or Catalonian nationalism, or Britain’s desire to withdraw from the European Union, an expression of tribal self-interest or a liberal attempt to create more open societies within, freed from the limitations of existing state or supra-state power? Are there alternative units of political organisation to the nation-state as we currently conceive it – sub-national or super-national loyalties that may satisfy the emotional social need of belonging while preserving the spirit of selfcriticism and latitude of the open society? The open society defends the freedom to live as one chooses. But the examples of supra- and sub-national self-determination suggest a third challenge to the contemporary notion of the open society: the paradox of tolerance. The open society, as a framework for reconciling more substantive value systems, embraces tolerance. But even an open society must draw a line against intolerance. When does an open society refuse to tolerate the intolerable? Which supra-nationalist institutions, or which nationalist or sub-nationalist parties, are tolerable, and which are not? What cultural ways of life, perhaps imported by immigrants from abroad, are worthy of the freedom afforded by the open society, and which practices must be condemned as antithetical to the open society’s humanitarian spirit? Fourth, the presumed predictive capacities of digital technology threaten the epistemological foundations of the open society. The open society limits and disperses power because of our imperfect knowledge and fallibility. But what if aggregated data are presumed to increase our knowledge dramatically? What if biotechnology can begin to mitigate our imperfections? What if the capacity to synthesise collective preferences and shape those preferences (‘reflexivity’) lures us to a radical democratic politics of real-time referenda on even the smallest political decisions? The moral imperative of the open society is at risk of being sacrificed on the altar of presumed technological imperatives.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 563

23/10/18 12:45 PM

564

todd breyfogle

Fifth, and perhaps most important, are the cultural components of ordered liberty. Popper stressed the movement from the mysteries and taboos of the closed society to the tempered rationality of the open society. Soros emphasised the fallibility of our knowledge and will. Both recognise that the open society as a procedural framework requires additional, substantive moral commitments to freedom and responsibility. Where do those moral commitments come from? How are they formed? How do we encourage a commitment to the open society without falling into Popper’s paradox of leadership – institutions are not capable of educating and selecting the best because they necessarily reward conformity, complacency and compliance, those deadly enemies of the open society? Proponents of an open society have neglected the cultural components of ordered liberty in favour of twin magical charms: the marketplace and majoritarian democracy.

4. To understand this last statement, we need to situate the discussion of the open society in a broader social and intellectual context. Popper and his contemporaries recognised that they were living in the crisis of a recent social experiment unprecedented in human history. Though he finds the seeds of the open society in ancient Athens, Popper dates the open society as an experiment in the West to the mid-seventeenth century. I see now more clearly than ever before that even our greatest troubles spring from something that is admirable and sound as it is dangerous – from our impatience to better the lot of our fellows. For these troubles are the by-products of what is perhaps the greatest of all moral and spiritual revolutions of history, a movement which began three centuries ago. It is the longing of uncounted unknown men to free themselves and their minds from the tutelage of authority and prejudice. (Popper 1971: ix) Our own age thinks only of technological and political revolutions, not moral and spiritual revolutions. Popper explicitly borrows the terms ‘open society’ and ‘closed society’ from Henri Bergson, whose The Two Sources of Morality and Religion is even more neglected today than Popper’s The Open Society and Its Enemies. Published in France in 1932, Two Sources saw seventeen printings by the time its English edition was published in 1935. Popper notes that he parts ways with Bergson in emphasising the rational over the mystical character of the open society, but it is precisely Bergson’s insistence on the mystical character of politics that is worth emphasising here. The bonds of society are not purely rational because life itself is not purely rational. ‘In our eyes,’ Bergson writes, ‘the ultimate end of mysticism is the establishment of a contact, consequently of a partial coincidence, with the creative effort which life itself manifests’ (Bergson 1977: 220). Bergson, of course, identifies this with God but the anthropological insight extends well beyond Christianity or even theism. What Bergson terms ‘mysticism’ Popper replaces with ‘humanitarianism’. We understand what both are trying to say, not merely with our minds but with the whole of our beings. When Martin Luther King, Jr, for example, says that ‘We are caught in an inescapable network of mutuality, tied in a single garment of destiny’,

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 564

23/10/18 12:45 PM

the open society

565

he is not merely appealing to our intellects; he is strumming the mystic chords of the human spirit. Popper and Bergson, and with them a host of contemporaries – from Unamuno and Ortega in Spain to Maritain in France, to Bonhoeffer and Pieper in Germany, to Eliot, Evelyn Waugh and Chesterton in Britain, Reinhold Niebuhr in the USA, and Gandhi and Aurobindo in India – all understood the modern experiment of the open society to be a cultural and spiritual journey. They saw, with Kierkegaard and Goethe before them, the erosion of spiritual vitality and moral energy by the unleashing of power in the industrial economy and the politics of mass democracy. The mastery of the soul which characterised the culture of the medieval period was replaced by the mastery of matter. As Bergson puts it, our culture came to seek assurance ‘in the mastering of things’ not in ‘the mastering of self which makes one independent of things’ (Bergson 1977: 300). The former has ceased to respond to the satisfaction of basic material needs and instead has created artificial needs, sapping our moral energy in the consumption of physical things (Bergson 1977: 304). Bergson’s analogy to the role of fossil fuels in the industrial revolution may be adjusted to our own circumstances in the digital revolution: What we need are new reserves of potential energy – moral energy this time. . . . Machinery will find its true vocation again, it will render services in proportion to its power, only if mankind, which it has bowed still lower to the earth, can succeed, through it, in standing erect and looking heavenwards. (Bergson 1977: 310) Bergson’s hope is that an open society, having adequately addressed our material needs, will free us to address again our spiritual needs, to turn our attention to the soul, to turn our attention to the fullness of life. Mankind lies groaning, half crushed beneath the weight of its own progress. Men do not sufficiently realize that their future is in their own hands. Theirs is the task of determining first of all whether they want to go on living or not. Theirs the responsibility, then, for deciding if they want merely to live, or intend to make just the extra effort required for fulfilling, even on their refractory planet, the essential function of the universe, which is a machine for the making of gods. (Bergosn 1977: 317)

Conclusion We are the enemies and the hope of the open society. The threats to the open society are largely from within. Unless we recognise again, with greater urgency, our place in the great experiment of the open society, we will be unprepared to discover and release the new reserves for moral energy upon which the open society depends. The deepest resources of any people or civilisation are ultimately not the resources of material power, but the vitality that derives from the moral and spiritual resources available over an extended period of time. Open societies do not flourish in conditions of moral scarcity. An open society does not preclude the use of power in domestic or international affairs, but it does broaden the understanding of self-interest in the use of power. The

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 565

23/10/18 12:45 PM

566

todd breyfogle

degree of a society’s openness is reflected in its willingness and unwillingness to use power, and for what reasons. Evaluating whether an open society does the right thing for the wrong reason, or the wrong thing for the right reason, requires that active, never-ending spirit of reason and criticism, confidence and self-criticism that makes for the essence of the open society itself. Only in that confidence and self-criticism are we likely to find ourselves worthy of the liberation we have inherited.

Notes 1. Amartya Sen, among others, has noted that democracy is not a specifically Western phenomenon (Sen 2003: 28–35). By extension, though democracy and the open society are not identical, I am inclined to affirm here that the idea of an open society would seem to have moments of germination in each of the major civilisations. That said, it remains an open question whether the universal claims embedded in the idea of an open society will ever have universal appeal. 2. For a further discussion of the application of the organic analogy to society, see Arendt (1968).

Bibliography Arendt, Hannah (1968), ‘What is authority?’, in Between Past and Future: Eight Exercises in Political Thought, New York: Viking. Bergson, Henri (1977), The Two Sources of Morality and Religion, translated by R. A. Audra and C. Brereton, Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press. Popper, Karl R. (1971), The Open Society and Its Enemies: The Spell of Plato, vol. 1, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Sen, Amartya (2003), ‘Democracy and its global roots’, The New Republic, 6 October, pp. 28–35. Soros, George (1997), ‘The capitalist threat’, Atlantic Monthly, February, vol. 279, no. 2, pp. 45–58, available at (last accessed 9 August 2018). Soros, George (1998), The Crisis of Global Capitalism: Open Society Endangered, New York: Little, Brown.

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 566

23/10/18 12:45 PM

Index

Abbate, J., 530 Abbot, T., 523 Abe, S., 490 Acampora, C. D., 224n Acheson, D., 57, 331, 338 Adams, H., 330 Adams, J. Q., 57, 336 Adams, L. L., 241, 250n Adams, P., 521 Adas, M., 464 Adenauer, K. H. J., 309 Aeneas, 19, 147n Aeschylus, 224 Agamben, G., 499 Agamemnon, 116 Ahmadinejad, M., 441, 449, 451 Ahrensdorf, P., 115, 200n, 278 Alagappa, M., 483 Alcibiades, 18, 118, 222 Alexander I, Tsar, 199 Alexander the Great, 152–3, 198 Ali, D., 129 Alison Phillips, W., 57 Allison, G., 111, 112, 119 Altermatt, U., 496, 498 Alypius, 155–6 Ambrose, St, 157 Anders, G., 99 Anderson, B., 498, 499–500 Aquinas, T., 62, 66, 191–2, 196 Aquino, B., 489 Archibugi, D., 97 Archidamus, 15, 18 Arendt, H., 346, 348, 355–67, 503, 566n Aristophanes, 117 Aristotle, 28, 62, 65–7, 88, 90–1, 156, 159–60, 174, 192, 196, 200n, 228, 239, 269, 279, 343–4, 509, 555

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 567

Armstrong, K., 462 Aron, R., 87, 189–90, 317–27, 382–3, 388 Ashoka, 462 Augustine of Hippo, 90–2, 98, 151–63, 191–3, 198, 216, 218, 254–5, 290–2, 382, 495–6, 503, 509–11, 514 Augustus, 141, 142, 147n Axelrod, R., 35n Bacon, F., 62 Bajpai, K., 459 Balakrishnan, V., 486 Beardsworth, R., 99 Bebel, A., 236n Begin, M., 451 Beitz, C., 98, 190, 195–6 Bellow, S., 365 Ben Gurion, D., 448, 451, 453 Benedict, R., 459 Benner, E., 509 Bergson, H., 554, 564–5 Berlin, I., 16, 169, 380–92, 415n, 502 Berry, C., 366 Bharata, 461 Bismarck, O. von, 51–3, 57 Bloom, H., 186n Bodin, J., 68 Bolingbroke, H., 178, 182, 183, 185 Borges, J. L., 27, 29, 35n Botero, G., 68 Brezhnev, L. N., 407, 409, 410 Brown, W., 498 Broz, J. (Tito), 329 Brunkhorst, H., 365 Brutus, 141–6, 147n, 181–3, 185, 186n Bull, H., 273 Bullitt, W., 328 Burckhardt, J., 220, 224n, 232 Burke, E., 332, 560

23/10/18 12:45 PM

568

index

Burnham, J., 383, 384 Bush, G. H. W., 50 Bush, G. W., 261, 277, 307, 438, 441, 442 Butler, S., 560 Butterfield, H., 90, 98, 290–302, 383, 511 Calpurnius Bibulus, 139 Camillus, 19 Caney, S., 98 Canning, G., 57 Cardinal Richelieu, 298 Carlson, J., 260–1 Carr, E. H., 57, 100, 103, 115, 245, 252, 265–76, 368, 371–2, 383–4, 387, 472–4, 511–12 Carter, J., 252, 262–3 Castells, M., 530 Castlereagh, R. S., 57 Cavour, C. M., 244 Cesare Borgia, 21, 168, 172, 178, 186n, 502 Chamberlain, N., 57, 271 Chrysostom, J. St, 157 Churchill, W., 198–9 Cicero, 67, 142, 144, 156, 174, 187n Clausewitz, C. von, 29, 38, 72–84, 317–26 Cleon, 117, 118, 236n Cohen, E., 80 Cohen, R., 212 Colquhoun, R., 325n, 326n Confucius, 23–4, 31–5, 239, 417, 422, 424–7, 508 Connolly, W., 387 Connor, W., 497, 502 Cordell, H., 247 Count Boniface, 155–8 Cox, M., 266, 273 Craig, C., 99 Creveld, M. van, 45 Croly, H., 54, 56 Cronin, A. K., 546 Curry, J., 523 Curzon, G. N., 458 Cyprian, St, 156 Cyrus II, 168 Dante, A., 231 Darius I, 502 Darwin, C. R., 3, 155, 561 Davidson, Janine, 83n Delbrück, H., 318 Deng Xiaoping, 33 Derrida, J., 477 Descartes, R., 62

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 568

Diodotus, 15, 287 Dionysus, 218, 221–4 Disraeli, B., 57 Dostoyevsky, F. M., 408 Doyle, M., 118 Dulles, J. F., 338 Durkheim, È., 509–10 Duterte, R., 489 Dyson, F., 523 Eisenhower, D. D., 399–400 Elizabeth I, 66, 186n Ellison, R., 365 Elman, C., 72 Emanuel, R., 50 Erasmus, 190 Erdogan, R. T., 50, 449 Fabius Maximus, 19 Fallows, J., 400 Fearon, J., 73 Feaver, P., 75, 78, 83n Feinstein, D., 398 Ferdinand II, 184 Fichte, J. G., 499–501 Flynn, M. T., 400 Fox, R. W., 514 Foucault, M., 477 Frederick the Great, 64, 77, 82n, 298 Freedman, L., 39, 40, 42–4 Frei, C., 346 Freud, S., 7–8, 241, 310–14, 332, 345 Friedman, T., 518 Froomkin, D., 398 Fukuyama, F., 61–2 Gaddis, J. L., 396 Galston, 389n, 496 Gaulle, C. de, 246, 319, 325, 459 Gay, J. A., 314 Gentz, F., 12 Geuss, R., 389n, 495 Giddens, A., 484, 536 Gilbert, D., 401 Gilkey, L., 253 Gillard, J., 523 Gilpin, R., 112 Goethe, J. W. von, 217–18, 221, 224, 224n, 565 Goldberg, J., 400 Gorbachev, M. S., 340, 410–11 Gowen, H. H., 460 Graf Neidhardt von Gneisenau, A. W. A., 318, 321

23/10/18 12:45 PM

index Graham, L., 398 Gray, J., 383 Grayling, A. C., 160 Greenfeld, L., 501 Greif, M., 356, 364 Grotius, H., 86, 205, 278–9, 298 Guillaume de Fontaine, L.-M.-M., 209 Gustavus Adolphus, 77 Gutiérrez, G., 512–13 Habermas, J., 24, 98 Hacohen, M. H., 501 Hagel, C., 399, 490 Hagerty, J. C., 399 Hahlweg, W., 320 Hall, E., 389n Hamilton, A., 57, 244 Hammarskjöld, D., 350 Hampshire, S., 383, 387, 389n, 390n Han Fei Tzu, 33, 417–19, 422–4 Hannibal Barca, 502 Hansen, J., 518 Hardy, H., 389n Harmon, C., 546 Harries, O., 519 Harriman, W. A., 328 Hartmann, L., 389n Haslam, J., 40, 51 Hatab, L., 224n Hayek, F., 62, 561 Heeren, A. H. L., 375 Hegel, G. W. F., 16, 267, 325, 326n, 384, 387, 389n, 555 Heilbrunn, J., 288n Held, D., 97, 484 Heller, J., 449 Helmerich, A., 503 Henry of Navarre, 66 Herder, J. G., 500–1 Herodotus, 115–16 Hersh, S., 451 Herz, J. H., 99–100, 103–4, 268, 304–6, 314, 368–79, 473 Herzen, A. I., 380, 386, 408 Herzl, T., 452 Hesiod, 162n Hiero, 19 Hitler, A., 244, 247, 271, 320, 323, 409 Hobbes, T., 4, 11–18, 20, 24–5, 29–31, 34, 90–1, 98, 99, 105, 113, 119, 121, 155, 159, 167, 185, 189–201, 202–3, 205–6, 213, 215, 220, 244–5, 255, 277, 281, 291–2, 333, 357, 373, 382 Hobsbawm, E. J., 500–1

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 569

569

Hobson, J. A., 53–4 Hoffmann, S., 266 Holborn, H., 52 Holinshed, R., 177 Hollingworth, M., 162n, 495 Homer, 116, 152, 177, 222 Hoover, J. E., 397 Hume, D., 27 Huntington, S. P., 24, 72–80, 83n Hussain Syed, A., 243 Hussein, S., 46, 77, 338 Ibn Khaldun, 509 I Ching, 34 Ignatieff, M., 496, 499, 389n Inhofe, J., 398 Jabloner, C., 311–13 James, H., 330 Jellinek, G., 370, 374 Jenco, L., 351n Jenkins, B., 398 Jervis, R., 396, 542, 548 Johnson, R., 402 Johnston, A. I., 417, 422, 425–6 Johnston, W., 274n Jonsen, A. R., 67, 68 Judt, T., 494, 503 Julius Caesar, 139, 181–4, 186n Jullien, F., 421–3 Kagan, R., 50 Kahn, R., 384 Kant, I., 24, 27, 28, 97, 102–6, 196, 215–17, 223, 304, 314, 317, 326n, 382, 563 Kapur, A., 465 Kaufmann, E., 502 Kauṭilya, 124–36, 465 Kawata, T., 476 Kelly, C., 211 Kelsen, H., 103–5, 303–16, 350, 368–72, 374 Kennan, G. F., 91, 98, 246, 252, 256–7, 293, 303, 328–41, 355, 358, 383, 474 Kennedy, J. F., 241, 338, 451 Kennedy, R. F., 98 Keohane, R., 112, 120 Kershaw, I., 501 Khomeini, R. (Ayatollah), 338, 437–8, 442 Khrushchev, N. I., 246–7, 409 King, M. L., 252–3, 564 Kissinger, H., 50, 56, 98, 158, 305, 307–9, 315, 418 Klausen, J., 364 Klein, N., 523

23/10/18 12:45 PM

570

index

Koestler, A., 384 Kosaka, M., 474–6 Kostagiannis, K., 343 Kramer, L., 498–9 Krauthammer, C., 274n Krishnan, R., 459 Kristol, I., 288 Kristol, W., 277 Kunz, B., 503 Lánczi, A., 277 Lao Tzu, 27, 34, 417–19, 421–4, 426–7 Laski, H., 384 Lawson, N., 524 Lears, J. T. J., 56 Le Bon, G., 313, 464 Lebow, R. N., 41, 343 Legro, J., 279, 308 Leibniz, G. W., 223, 374 Leifer, M., 482–3 Lenin, V. I., 63, 407, 409–11, 560 Levinson, S., 497, 500 Lewis, C. S., 160 Liddell Hart, B., 38 Liebknecht, K., 236n, 237n Liepman, A., 397 Lieven, A., 262, 408 Lieven, D., 408 Li Keqiang, 489 Lindzen, R., 523 Lippmann, W., 54–6, 58, 239–51, 383, 511, 519, 560 Lipsius, J., 67–9 Livy, 67, 137–50, 174 Li Zehou, 418–19 Locke, J., 91 Lomborg, B., 518 Lucretia, 143 Luther, M., 223, 234, 255 Luxemburg, R., 236n, 237n McCain, J., 398 Macedonius, 162n Machiavelli, N., 4, 11–14, 16, 18–21, 24–5, 29, 40, 50–1, 54, 67, 69, 72, 88, 114, 141, 155, 158, 164–76, 177–88, 196–7, 220, 244, 267, 277–84, 288, 291, 325, 333, 382–3, 388, 389n, 390n, 417, 460, 501–2 McClish, M., 126, 128, 131–4, 135n McQueen, A., 147n, 389n Mahan, A. T., 54 Mahathir, M., 485

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 570

Maimonides, 509, 514 Malmsten Schering, 321 Manlius Torquatus, 141–2, 145–6 Mannheim, K., 268, 322 Mao Zedong, 321, 425, 426–7, 482 Mardini, R., 399 Marx, A., 498–9 Marx, K., 24, 62–3, 254, 267, 311, 322, 324–5, 332, 384, 387, 389n, 406, 409–10, 417, 426, 445, 473, 555–6, 560 Maslow, A., 445–57 Mastny, V., 396 Mayer, J., 397 Mearsheimer, J. J., 61, 250, 261, 307–9, 415n, 478, 541 Mencius, 35, 239, 424–5 Mencken, H. L., 330, 401 Metternich, K. von, 58 Mill, J., 464 Mill, J. S., 100 Miller, D., 497–8 Minogue, K., 63, 65 Mitrany, D., 101–2, 272, 350 Mohamad, M., 485 Mohammad Reza Shah, 432, 434–7 Mommsen, W., 230, 232 Monbiot, G., 518 Montaigne, M. de, 67, 181 Moran, B., 83n Moravcsik, A., 279, 308 Morgenthau, H. J., 24, 28–9, 39, 56–8, 64–5, 85–96, 98–106, 115, 189–90, 240, 250, 252, 255–6, 267–8, 277, 280, 284, 288n, 293, 303–7, 310–11, 313–14, 328, 334, 342–54, 355, 358, 368–73, 389n, 396, 427, 446, 454, 470, 472–7, 511, 519, 538 Moses, 168 Mossadegh, M., 435 Mouffe, C., 224n, 387, 389n Mouric, J., 326n Mudd, P., 397 Mumford, L., 99 Munster, R. van, 99 Murray, G., 115 Mussolini, B., 244 Muste, A. J., 513 Napoleon, B., 16, 77, 80, 198–9, 217, 299, 320, 375 Nakae, C., 472–3 Nash, J., 35n Nehru, J., 465

23/10/18 12:45 PM

index Netanyahu, B., 446, 447, 450, 451, 453 Neumann, J. von, 35n Niebuhr, R., 56, 99–100, 103, 252–64, 268, 293, 303, 328, 331, 333, 338, 373, 382–4, 452, 454, 474, 511–14, 517–19, 525, 538, 565 Nietzsche, F., 111, 114, 215–26, 280, 309, 346–8, 350, 389n Nye, J., 474 Oakeshott, M., 62–3, 67 Obama, B., 253, 261 O’Brien, C. C., 497 Oka, Y., 475–6 Olivelle, P., 128, 131–2 Oppermann, M., 325n Orbán, V., 306 Orca, R. de, 178 Osgood, R., 58 Pareto, V., 23, 35 Pascal, B., 509 Paul, St, 155, 157, 255, 495 Pavlov, I. P., 359 Peled, Y., 451 Percy, C. H., 287, 288n Peres, S., 453 Pericles, 15, 18, 117, 119, 157, 221, 222, 236n, 388, 558 Philip II, 66 Plato, 1, 2, 4, 6, 20, 26, 28, 75–6, 114, 159, 174, 192, 196, 220–1, 239, 241–2, 279, 555–6, 558–9 Plutarch, 177, 182–3 Pogge, T., 99, 100 Polanyi, K., 534 Polybius, 67, 174 Pope Alexander VI, 21 Pope Julius II, 502 Popper, K., 382, 494, 500–1, 554–66 Porter, P. 44 Powell, C., 64 Pufendorf, S. von, 298 Putin, V. V., 406–7, 411–15 Pynchon, T., 365 Rabin, Y., 453 Rajaratnam, S., 482, 484 Rawidowicz, S., 450, 452 Rawls, J., 5–6, 261, 309, 382 Reagan, R. W., 332, 339 Risen, J., 401 Robespierre, M., 223

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 571

571

Rochau, A. L. von, 49, 51–3 Roosevelt, F. D., 241, 247, 388 Roosevelt, T. Jr, 54, 101, 241 Roscher, W., 113–14 Rosenberg, E., 397 Rosenberg, J., 397 Rossi, E., 143 Rouhani, H., 441 Rousseau, J.-J., 91, 187n, 193, 202–14, 217, 219–20, 223, 309, 357, 497, 558 Russell, B., 26, 99 Ryle, G., 534 Sabl, A., 389n Saint-Pierre, A. de, 206, 209, 211 Saint-Simon, H. de, 223 Sakamoto, K., 476 Salisbury, R. G.-C., 57 Sallust, 139, 174, 495 Sartre, J.-P., 477 Savonarola, G., 13, 223 Scelle, G., 372 Scharnhorst, G. H. J. von, 318, 321 Schelling, T., 39, 41, 44, 73–4 Scheuerman, W. E., 99, 268, 284, 288n, 349 Schlesinger, A., Jr, 334 Schmitt, C., 24, 88, 93n, 98, 278, 281, 283, 286, 288n, 303, 306, 375, 382 Schuett, R., 100, 268, 345 Schuman, F., 100, 103 Schwarzenberger, G., 100, 103–4 Sen, A., 566n Sestanovich, S., 401 Shakespeare, W., 177–88 Shapiro, I., 106n Sheikh, M., 509 Shils, E., 322 Shklar, J., 382, 389n, 390n, 496 Shotwell, J., 334 Sigwart, H.-J., 344, 494 Simmel, G., 235 Sleat, M., 143 Smith, A., 494, 499 Smith, J. M., 35n Smith, M. L. R., 37–8 Socrates, 27, 165, 222, 231, 279, 348, 558–9 Soros, G., 554, 560–4 Spencer R., 523 Spinoza, B., 277, 280, 288n Stalin, J. V., 246, 247, 340, 409 Stark, J., 323

23/10/18 12:45 PM

572

index

Stone, J., 37–8 Strauss, L., 63, 113–15, 277–89 Suharto, 482 Sunstein, C., 402 Sun Tzu, 31–2, 417–21, 423–4, 426–7, 471–2 Syed, A. H., 243–4 Sylvest, C., 99 Tabenkin, Y., 451 Tacitus, 67, 69, 141, 162n, 382 Tamez, E., 512 Tamir, Y., 497 Tanaka, A., 477 Taylor, A. J. P., 57 Taylor, C., 509 Temperley, H., 57 Thakeray, W. M., 463 Thatcher, M. H., 64 Theseus, 168 Thucydides, 1, 11–16, 18, 20–1, 24, 29, 30, 72, 87, 111–23, 139, 157, 198, 220–2, 224, 277–9, 284–7, 325, 340, 382, 388, 449, 460, 558 Tillich, P., 348 Tocqueville, A. de, 69, 324 Tokutomi, S., 472–3 Toller, E., 236n, 237n Tolstoy, L. N., 177, 232, 236n, 408 Toulmin, S., 67, 68 Toynbee, A., 115 Treitschke, H. von, 52, 228 Trimcev, E., 277 Trotsky, L., 233 Trump, D. J., 25, 263, 314, 439, 520–1, 522 Tsygankov, A. P., 407 Turgenev, I. S., 408 Vecelli, T., 66 Virgil, 177 Vivekanandan, J., 462–3 Voegelin, E., 348

5898_Schuett & Hollingworth.indd 572

Waldron, J., 105 Walsh, E. A., 333 Walt, S., 261, 308–9, 395, 449 Waltz, K., 40, 51, 72, 97, 207, 240, 250, 252–3, 261, 355–8, 377, 474, 476–8 Walzer, M., 98, 169, 286–7, 385 Washington, G., 244 Weber, M., 20, 57, 88–9, 91, 92, 178, 224n, 227–38, 282, 317, 319–20, 325–26n, 338, 370, 382–3, 388, 390n, 510–11 Webster, C., 57 Weil, E., 321 Weizmann, C., 388 Wendt, A., 477 West, T., 277, 279, 288 Weyl, W., 54–6 Wight, M., 85–96, 290–1 Wilberforce, W., 199 Wilhelm II, 244 Williams, B., 383 Wilson, E. K., 513 Wilson, T. W., 55, 56, 58, 241, 245, 247, 265, 372 Wint, G., 463 Wittgenstein, L., 6 Wotton, H., 70 Xenophon, 277 Xi Jinping, 488 Xun Tzu, 31–2 Ya’alon, M., 450 Yak, B., 496–7, 503 Yeltsin, B. N., 407, 411 Zaslavsky, V., 498 Zhao Tingyang, 35n, 509 Zimmerman, P., 533–4 Zimmern, A., 115, 245

23/10/18 12:45 PM